summaryrefslogtreecommitdiff
diff options
context:
space:
mode:
-rw-r--r--.gitattributes4
-rw-r--r--LICENSE.txt11
-rw-r--r--README.md2
-rw-r--r--old/60040-0.txt12441
-rw-r--r--old/60040-0.zipbin315914 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/60040-h.zipbin458721 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/60040-h/60040-h.htm16081
-rw-r--r--old/60040-h/images/cover.jpgbin137558 -> 0 bytes
8 files changed, 17 insertions, 28522 deletions
diff --git a/.gitattributes b/.gitattributes
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..d7b82bc
--- /dev/null
+++ b/.gitattributes
@@ -0,0 +1,4 @@
+*.txt text eol=lf
+*.htm text eol=lf
+*.html text eol=lf
+*.md text eol=lf
diff --git a/LICENSE.txt b/LICENSE.txt
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..6312041
--- /dev/null
+++ b/LICENSE.txt
@@ -0,0 +1,11 @@
+This eBook, including all associated images, markup, improvements,
+metadata, and any other content or labor, has been confirmed to be
+in the PUBLIC DOMAIN IN THE UNITED STATES.
+
+Procedures for determining public domain status are described in
+the "Copyright How-To" at https://www.gutenberg.org.
+
+No investigation has been made concerning possible copyrights in
+jurisdictions other than the United States. Anyone seeking to utilize
+this eBook outside of the United States should confirm copyright
+status under the laws that apply to them.
diff --git a/README.md b/README.md
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..27e095e
--- /dev/null
+++ b/README.md
@@ -0,0 +1,2 @@
+Project Gutenberg (https://www.gutenberg.org) public repository for
+eBook #60040 (https://www.gutenberg.org/ebooks/60040)
diff --git a/old/60040-0.txt b/old/60040-0.txt
deleted file mode 100644
index 938e933..0000000
--- a/old/60040-0.txt
+++ /dev/null
@@ -1,12441 +0,0 @@
-The Project Gutenberg EBook of Notes on Novelists, by Henry James
-
-This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and most
-other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions
-whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms of
-the Project Gutenberg License included with this eBook or online at
-www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the United States, you'll have
-to check the laws of the country where you are located before using this ebook.
-
-Title: Notes on Novelists
- With Some Other Notes
-
-Author: Henry James
-
-Release Date: August 1, 2019 [EBook #60040]
-
-Language: English
-
-Character set encoding: UTF-8
-
-*** START OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK NOTES ON NOVELISTS ***
-
-
-
-
-Produced by David T. Jones, Alex White & the online
-Distributed Proofreaders Canada team at
-http://www.pgdpcanada.net
-
-
-
-
-
-
-
-
-
-
- NOTES ON NOVELISTS
-
- WITH SOME OTHER NOTES
-
-
-
-
-
- By HENRY JAMES
-
-
- A SMALL BOY AND OTHERS
-
- NOTES OF A SON AND BROTHER
-
- NOTES ON NOVELISTS
- WITH SOME OTHER NOTES
-
-
-
-
- NOTES ON NOVELISTS
- WITH SOME OTHER NOTES
-
- BY
-
- HENRY JAMES
-
-
-
-
-
-
- NEW YORK
- CHARLES SCRIBNER’S SONS
- 1914
-
-
-
-
- Copyright, 1914, by
- CHARLES SCRIBNER’S SONS
- * * * * *
- Published October, 1914
-
-
-
-
- CONTENTS
-
- PAGE
-
- Robert Louis Stevenson 1
- Émile Zola 26
- Gustave Flaubert 65
- Honoré de Balzac, 1902 109
- Honoré de Balzac, 1913 143
- George Sand, 1897 160
- George Sand, 1899 187
- George Sand, 1914 214
- Gabriele D’Annunzio, 1902 245
- Matilde Serao 294
- The New Novel, 1914 314
- Dumas the Younger, 1895 362
- The Novel in “The Ring and the Book,” 1912 385
- An American Art-Scholar: Charles Eliot Norton, 1908 412
- London Notes, January 1897 424
- London Notes, June 1897 428
- London Notes, July 1897 436
- London Notes, August 1897 446
-
-
-
-
-
- NOTES ON NOVELISTS
-
- WITH SOME OTHER NOTES
-
-
-
-
- NOTES ON NOVELISTS
-
-
-
-
- ROBERT LOUIS STEVENSON
-
-
-It was the happy fortune of Robert Louis Stevenson to have created
-beyond any man of his craft in our day a body of readers inspired with
-the feelings that we for the most part place at the service only of
-those for whom our affection is personal. There was no one who knew the
-man, one may safely assert, who was not also devoted to the
-writer—conforming in this respect to a general law (if law it be) that
-shows us many exceptions; but, naturally and not inconveniently, it had
-to remain far from true that all devotees of the writer were able to
-approach the man. The case was nevertheless that the man somehow
-approached _them_, and that to read him—certainly to read him with the
-full sense of his charm—came to mean for many persons much the same as
-to “meet” him. It was as if he wrote himself outright and altogether,
-rose straight to the surface of his prose, and still more of his
-happiest verse; so that these things gave out, besides whatever else,
-his look and motions and voice, showed his life and manners, all that
-there was of him, his “tremendous secrets” not excepted. We grew in
-short to possess him entire, and the example is the more curious and
-beautiful as he neither made a business of “confession” nor cultivated
-most those forms through which the _ego_ shines. His great successes
-were supposititious histories of persons quite different from himself,
-and the objective, as we have learned to call it, was the ideal to which
-he oftenest sacrificed.
-
-The effect of it all none the less was such that his Correspondence has
-only seemed to administer delightfully a further push to a door already
-half open and through which we enter with an extraordinary failure of
-any sense of intrusion. We feel indeed that we are living with him, but
-what is that but what we were doing before? Through his Correspondence
-certainly the _ego_ does, magnificently, shine—which is much the best
-thing that in any correspondence it can ever do. But even the “Vailima
-Letters,” published by Mr. Sidney Colvin in 1895, had already both
-established that and allayed our diffidence. “It came over me the other
-day suddenly that this diary of mine to you would make good pickings
-after I am dead, and a man could make some kind of book out of it
-without much trouble. So, for God’s sake, don’t lose them.”
-
-Being on these terms with our author, and feeling as if we had always
-been, we profit by freedoms that seem but the consecration of intimacy.
-Not only have we no sense of intrusion, but we are so prepared to
-penetrate further that when we come to limits we quite feel as if the
-story were mutilated and the copy not complete. There it is precisely
-that we seize the secret of our tie. Of course it was personal, for how
-did it operate in any connection whatever but to make us live with him?
-We had lived with him in “Treasure Island,” in “Kidnapped” and in
-“Catriona,” just as we do, by the light of these posthumous volumes, in
-the South Seas and at Vailima; and our present confidence comes from the
-fact of a particularly charming continuity. It is not that his novels
-were “subjective,” but that his life was romantic, and in the very same
-degree in which his own conception, his own presentation, of that
-element touches and thrills. If we want to know even more it is because
-we are always and everywhere in the story.
-
-To this absorbing extension of the story then the two volumes of
-Letters[1] now published by Mr. Sidney Colvin beautifully contribute.
-The shelf of our library that contains our best letter-writers is
-considerably furnished, but not overcrowded, and its glory is not too
-great to keep Stevenson from finding there a place with the very first.
-He will not figure among the writers—those apt in this line to enjoy
-precedence—to whom only small things happen and who beguile us by
-making the most of them; he belongs to the class who have both matter
-and manner, substance and spirit, whom life carries swiftly before it
-and who signal and communicate, not to say gesticulate, as they go. He
-lived to the topmost pulse, and the last thing that could happen was
-that he should find himself on any occasion with nothing to report. Of
-all that he may have uttered on certain occasions we are inevitably not
-here possessed—a fact that, as I have hinted above, affects us,
-perversely, as an inexcusable gap in the story; but he never fails of
-the thing that we most love letters for, the full expression of the
-moment and the mood, the actual good or bad or middling, the thing in
-his head, his heart or his house. Mr. Colvin has given us an admirable
-“Introduction”—a characterisation of his friend so founded at once on
-knowledge and on judgment that the whole sense of the man strikes us as
-extracted in it. He has elucidated each group or period with notes that
-leave nothing to be desired; and nothing remains that I can think of to
-thank him for unless the intimation that we may yet look for another
-volume—which, however much more free it might make us of the author’s
-mystery, we should accept, I repeat, with the same absence of scruple.
-Nothing more belongs to our day than this question of the inviolable, of
-the rights of privacy and the justice of our claim to aid from editors
-and other retailers in getting behind certain eminent or defiant
-appearances; and the general knot so presented is indeed a hard one to
-untie. Yet we may take it for a matter regarding which such publications
-as Mr. Colvin’s have much to suggest.
-
-There is no absolute privacy—save of course when the exposed subject
-may have wished or endeavoured positively to constitute it; and things
-too sacred are often only things that are not perhaps at all otherwise
-superlative. One may hold both that people—that artists perhaps in
-particular—are well advised to cover their tracks, and yet that our
-having gone behind, or merely stayed before, in a particular case, may
-be a minor question compared with our having picked up a value. Personal
-records of the type before us can at any rate obviously be but the
-reverse of a deterrent to the urged inquirer. They are too happy an
-instance—they positively make for the risked indiscretion. Stevenson
-never covered his tracks, and the tracks prove perhaps to be what most
-attaches us. We follow them here, from year to year and from stage to
-stage, with the same charmed sense with which he has made us follow some
-hunted hero in the heather. Life and fate and an early catastrophe were
-ever at his heels, and when he at last falls fighting, sinks down in the
-very act of valour, the “happy ending,” as he calls it for some of his
-correspondents, is, though precipitated and not conventional,
-essentially given us.
-
-His descent and his origin all contribute to the picture, which it seems
-to me could scarce—since we speak of “endings”—have had a better
-beginning had he himself prearranged it. Without prearrangements indeed
-it was such a cluster of terms as could never be wasted on him, one of
-those innumerable matters of “effect,” Scotch and other, that helped to
-fill his romantic consciousness. Edinburgh, in the first place, the
-“romantic town,” was as much his “own” as it ever was the great
-precursor’s whom, in “Weir of Hermiston” as well as elsewhere, he
-presses so hard; and this even in spite of continual absence—in virtue
-of a constant imaginative reference and an intense intellectual
-possession. The immediate background formed by the profession of his
-family—the charge of the public lights on northern coasts—was a
-setting that he could not have seen his way to better; while no less
-happy a condition was met by his being all lonely in his father’s
-house—the more that the father, admirably commemorated by the son and
-after his fashion as strongly marked, was antique and strenuous, and
-that the son, a genius to be and of frail constitution, was (in the
-words of the charming anecdote of an Edinburgh lady retailed in one of
-these volumes), if not exactly what could be called bonny, “pale,
-penetrating and interesting.” The poet in him had from the first to be
-pacified—temporarily, that is, and from hand to mouth, as is the manner
-for poets; so that with friction and tension playing their part, with
-the filial relation quite classically troubled, with breaks of tradition
-and lapses from faith, with restless excursions and sombre returns, with
-the love of life at large mixed in his heart with every sort of local
-piety and passion and the unjustified artist fermenting on top of all in
-the recusant engineer, he was as well started as possible toward the
-character he was to keep.
-
-All this obviously, however, was the sort of thing that the story the
-most generally approved would have had at heart to represent as the mere
-wild oats of a slightly uncanny cleverness—as the life handsomely
-reconciled in time to the common course and crowned, after a fling or
-two of amusement, with young wedded love and civic responsibility. The
-actual story, alas, was to transcend the conventional one, for it
-happened to be a case of a hero of too long a wind and too well turned
-out for his part. Everything was right for the discipline of Alan
-Fairford but that the youth _was_ after all a phœnix. As soon as it
-became a case of justifying himself for straying—as in the enchanting
-“Inland Voyage” and the “Travels with a Donkey”—how was he to escape
-doing so with supreme felicity? The fascination in him from the first is
-the mixture, and the extraordinary charm of his letters is that they are
-always showing this. It is the proportions moreover that are so
-admirable—the quantity of each different thing that he fitted to each
-other one and to the whole. The free life would have been all his dream
-if so large a part of it had not been that love of letters, of
-expression and form, which is but another name for the life of service.
-Almost the last word about him, by the same law, would be that he had at
-any rate consummately written, were it not that he seems still better
-characterised by his having at any rate supremely lived.
-
-Perpetually and exquisitely amusing as he was, his ambiguities and
-compatibilities yielded, for all the wear and tear of them, endless
-“fun” even to himself; and no one knew so well with what linked
-diversities he was saddled or, to put it the other way, how many horses
-he had to drive at once. It took his own delightful talk to show how
-more than absurd it might be, and, if convenient, how very obscurely so,
-that such an incurable rover should have been complicated both with such
-an incurable scribbler and such an incurable invalid, and that a man
-should find himself such an anomaly as a drenched yachtsman haunted with
-“style,” a shameless Bohemian haunted with duty, and a victim at once of
-the personal hunger and instinct for adventure and of the critical,
-constructive, sedentary view of it. He had everything all
-round—adventure most of all; to feel which we have only to turn from
-the beautiful flush of it in his text to the scarce less beautiful
-vision of the great hilltop in Pacific seas to which he was borne after
-death by islanders and chiefs. Fate, as if to distinguish him as
-handsomely as possible, seemed to be ever treating him to some chance
-for an act or a course that had almost nothing in its favour but its
-inordinate difficulty. If the difficulty was in these cases not _all_
-the beauty for him it at least never prevented his finding in it—or our
-finding, at any rate, as observers—so much beauty as comes from a great
-risk accepted either for an idea or for simple joy. The joy of risks,
-the more personal the better, was never far from him, any more than the
-excitement of ideas. The most important step in his life was a signal
-instance of this, as we may discern in the light of “The Amateur
-Emigrant” and “Across the Plains,” the report of the conditions in which
-he fared from England to California to be married. Here as always the
-great note is the heroic mixture—the thing he _saw_, morally as well as
-imaginatively; action and performance at any cost, and the cost made
-immense by want of health and want of money, illness and anxiety of the
-extremest kind, and by unsparing sensibilities and perceptions. He had
-been launched in the world for a fighter with the organism say of a
-“composer,” though also it must be added with a beautiful saving sanity.
-
-It is doubtless after his settlement in Samoa that his letters have most
-to give, but there are things they throw off from the first that strike
-the note above all characteristic, show his imagination always at play,
-for drollery or philosophy, with his circumstances. The difficulty in
-writing of him under the personal impression is to suggest enough how
-directly his being the genius that he was kept counting in it. In 1879
-he writes from Monterey to Mr. Edmund Gosse, in reference to certain
-grave symptoms of illness: “I may be wrong, but . . . I believe I must
-go. . . . But death is no bad friend; a few aches and gasps, and we are
-done; like the truant child, I am beginning to grow weary and timid in
-this big, jostling city, and could run to my nurse, even although she
-should have to whip me before putting me to bed.” This charming
-renunciation expresses itself at the very time his talent was growing
-finer; he was so fond of the sense of youth and the idea of play that he
-saw whatever happened to him in images and figures, in the terms almost
-of the sports of childhood. “Are you coming over again to see me some
-day soon? I keep returning, and now hand over fist, from the realms of
-Hades. I saw that gentleman between the eyes, and fear him less after
-each visit. Only Charon and his rough boatmanship I somewhat fear.”
-
-The fear remained with him, sometimes greater, sometimes less, during
-the first years after his marriage, those spent abroad and in England in
-health resorts, and it marks constantly, as one may say, one end of the
-range of his humour—the humour always busy at the other end with the
-impatience of timidities and precautions and the vision and invention of
-essentially open-air situations. It was the possibility of the open-air
-situation that at last appealed to him as the cast worth staking all
-for—on which, as usual in his admirable rashnesses, he was
-extraordinarily justified. “No man but myself knew all my bitterness in
-those days. Remember that, the next time you think I regret my
-exile. . . . Remember the pallid brute that lived in Skerryvore like a
-weevil in a biscuit.”
-
-He found after an extraordinarily adventurous quest the treasure island,
-the climatic paradise that met, that enhanced his possibilities; and
-with this discovery was ushered in his completely full and rich period,
-the time in which—as the wondrous whimsicality and spontaneity of his
-correspondence testify—his genius and his character most overflowed. He
-had done as well for himself in his appropriation of Samoa as if he had
-done it for the hero of a novel, only with the complications and
-braveries actual and palpable. “I have no more hope in anything”—and
-this in the midst of magnificent production—“than a dead frog; I go
-into everything with a composed despair, and don’t mind—just as I
-always go to sea with the conviction I am to be drowned, and like it
-before all other pleasures.” He could go to sea as often as he liked and
-not be spared such hours as one of these pages vividly evokes—those of
-the joy of fictive composition in an otherwise prostrating storm, amid
-the crash of the elements and with his grasp of his subject but too
-needfully sacrificed, it might have appeared, to his clutch of seat and
-ink-stand. “If only I could secure a violent death, what a fine success!
-I wish to die in my boots; no more Land of Counterpane for me. To be
-drowned, to be shot, to be thrown from a horse—aye, to be hanged rather
-than pass again through that slow dissolution.”
-
-He speaks in one of the “Vailima Letters,” Mr. Colvin’s publication of
-1895, to which it is an office of these volumes promptly to make us
-return, of one of his fictions as a “long tough yarn with some pictures
-of the manners of to-day in the greater world—not the shoddy sham world
-of cities, clubs and colleges, but the world where men still live a
-man’s life.” That is distinct, and in the same letter he throws off a
-summary of all that in his final phase satisfied and bribed him which is
-as significant as it is racy. His correspondent, as was inevitable now
-and then for his friends at home, appears to have indulged in one of
-those harmless pointings of the moral—as to the distant dangers he
-_would_ court—by which we all were more or less moved to relieve
-ourselves of the depressed consciousness that he could do beautifully
-without us and that our collective tameness was far (which indeed was
-distinctly the case) from forming his proper element. There is no
-romantic life for which something amiable has not to be sweepingly
-sacrificed, and of _us_ in our inevitable category the sweep practically
-was clean.
-
- Your letter had the most wonderful “I told you so” I ever heard
- in the course of my life. Why, you madman, I wouldn’t change my
- present installation for any post, dignity, honour, or advantage
- conceivable to me. It fills the bill; I have the loveliest time.
- And as for wars and rumours of wars, you surely know enough of
- me to be aware that I like that also a thousand times better
- than decrepit peace in Middlesex. I do not quite like politics.
- I am too aristocratic, I fear, for that. God knows I don’t care
- who I chum with; perhaps like sailors best; but to go round and
- sue and sneak to keep a crowd together—never.
-
-His categories satisfied him; he had got hold of “the world where men
-still live a man’s life”—which was not, as we have just seen, that of
-“cities, clubs and colleges.” He was supremely suited in short at
-last—at the cost, it was to be said, of simplifications of view that,
-intellectually, he failed quite exactly (it was one of his few
-limitations) to measure; but in a way that ministered to his rare
-capacity for growth and placed in supreme relief his affinity with the
-universal romantic. It was not that anything could ever be for him plain
-sailing, but that he had been able at forty to turn his life into the
-fairytale of achieving, in a climate that he somewhere describes as “an
-expurgated heaven,” such a happy physical consciousness as he had never
-known. This enlarged in every way his career, opening the door still
-wider to that real puss-in-the-corner game of opposites by which we have
-critically the interest of seeing him perpetually agitated. Let me
-repeat that these new volumes, from the date of his definite
-expatriation, direct us for the details of the picture constantly to the
-“Vailima Letters;” with as constant an effect of our thanking our
-fortune—to say nothing of his own—that he should have had in these
-years a correspondent and a confidant who so beautifully drew him out.
-If he possessed in Mr. Sidney Colvin his literary chargé d’affaires at
-home, the ideal friend and _alter ego_ on whom he could unlimitedly
-rest, this is a proof the more—with the general rarity of such
-cases—of what it was in his nature to make people wish to do for him.
-To Mr. Colvin he is more familiar than to any one, more whimsical and
-natural and frequently more inimitable—of all of which a just notion
-can be given only by abundant citation. And yet citation itself is
-embarrassed, with nothing to guide it but his perpetual spirits,
-perpetual acuteness and felicity, restlessness of fancy and of judgment.
-These things make him jump from pole to pole and fairly hum, at times,
-among the objects and subjects that filled his air, like a charged bee
-among flowers.
-
-He is never more delightful than when he is most egotistic, most
-consciously charmed with something he has done.
-
- And the papers are some of them up to dick, and no mistake. I
- agree with you, the lights seem a little turned down.
-
-When we learn that the articles alluded to are those collected in
-“Across the Plains” we quite assent to this impression made by them
-after a troubled interval, and envy the author who, in a far Pacific
-isle, could see “The Lantern Bearers,” “A Letter to a Young Gentleman”
-and “Pulvis et Umbra” float back to him as a guarantee of his faculty
-and between covers constituting the book that is to live. Stevenson’s
-masculine wisdom moreover, his remarkable final sanity, is always—and
-it was not what made least in him for happy intercourse—close to his
-comedy and next door to his slang.
-
- And however low the lights are, the stuff is true, and I believe
- the more effective; after all, what I wish to fight is the best
- fought by a rather cheerless presentation of the truth. The
- world must return some day to the word “duty,” and be done with
- the word “reward.” There are no rewards, and plenty duties. And
- the sooner a man sees that and acts upon it, like a gentleman or
- a fine old barbarian, the better for himself.
-
-It would perhaps be difficult to quote a single paragraph giving more
-than that of the whole of him. But there is abundance of him in this
-too:
-
- How do journalists fetch up their drivel? . . . It has taken me
- two months to write 45,500 words; and, be damned to my wicked
- prowess, I am proud of the exploit! . . . A respectable little
- five-bob volume, to bloom unread in shop windows. After that
- I’ll have a spank at fiction. And rest? I shall rest in the
- grave, or when I come to Italy. If only the public will continue
- to support me! I lost my chance not dying; there seems blooming
- little fear of it now. I worked close on five hours this
- morning; the day before, close on nine; and unless I finish
- myself off with this letter I’ll have another hour and a half,
- or _aiblins twa_, before dinner. Poor man, how you must envy me
- as you hear of these orgies of work, and you scarce able for a
- letter. But Lord! Colvin, how lucky the situations are not
- reversed, for I have no situation, nor am fit for any. Life is a
- steigh brae. Here, have at Knappe, and no more clavers!
-
-If he talked profusely—and this is perfect talk—if he loved to talk
-above all of his work in hand, it was because, though perpetually frail,
-he was never inert, and did a thing, if he did it at all, with passion.
-He was not fit, he says, for a situation, but a situation overtook him
-inexorably at Vailima, and doubtless at last indeed swallowed him up.
-His position, with differences, comparing in some respects smaller
-things to greater, and with fewer differences after all than likenesses,
-his position resembles that of Scott at Abbotsford, just as, sound,
-sensible and strong on each side in spite of the immense gift of
-dramatic and poetic vision, the earlier and the later man had something
-of a common nature. Life became bigger for each than the answering
-effort could meet, and in their death they were not divided. Stevenson’s
-late emancipation was a fairytale only because he himself was in his
-manner a magician. He liked to handle many matters and to shrink from
-none; nothing can exceed the impression we get of the things that in
-these years he dealt with from day to day and as they came up, and the
-things that, as well, almost without order or relief, he planned and
-invented, took up and talked of and dropped, took up and talked of and
-carried through. Had I space to treat myself to a clue for selection
-from the whole record there is nothing I should better like it to be
-than a tracking of his “literary opinions” and literary projects, the
-scattered swarm of his views, sympathies, antipathies, _obiter dicta_,
-as an artist—his flurries and fancies, imaginations, evocations, quick
-infatuations, as a teller of possible tales. Here is a whole little
-circle of discussion, yet such a circle that to engage one’s self at all
-is to be too much engulfed.
-
-His overflow on such matters is meanwhile amusing enough as mere spirits
-and sport—interesting as it would yet be to catch as we might, at
-different moments, the congruity between the manner of his feeling a
-fable in the germ and that of his afterwards handling it. There are
-passages again and again that light strikingly what I should call his
-general conscious method in this relation, were I not more tempted to
-call it his conscious—for that is what it seems to come to—negation of
-method. A whole delightful letter—to Mr. Colvin, February 1, 1892—is a
-vivid type. (This letter, I may mention, is independently notable for
-the drollery of its allusion to a sense of scandal—of all things in the
-world—excited in some editorial breast by “The Beach of Falesà;” which
-leads him to the highly pertinent remark that “this is a poison bad
-world for the romancer, this Anglo-Saxon world; I usually get out of it
-by not having any women in it at all.” Then he remembers he had “The
-Treasure of Franchard” refused as unfit for a family magazine and
-feels—as well he may—“despair weigh upon his wrists.” The despair
-haunts him and comes out on another occasion. “Five more chapters of
-David. . . . All love affair; seems pretty good to me. Will it do for
-the young person? I don’t know: since the Beach, I know nothing except
-that men are fools and hypocrites, and I know less of them than I was
-fond enough to fancy.”) Always a part of his physiognomy is the play, so
-particularly salient, of his moral fluctuations, the way his spirits are
-upset by his melancholy and his grand conclusions by his rueful doubts.
-
-He communicates to his confidant with the eagerness of a boy
-confabulating in holidays over a Christmas charade; but I remember no
-instance of his expressing a subject, as one may say, as a
-subject—hinting at what novelists mainly know, one would imagine, as
-the determinant thing in it, the idea out of which it springs. The form,
-the envelope, is there with him, headforemost, _as_ the idea; titles,
-names, that is, chapters, sequences, orders, while we are still asking
-ourselves how it was that he primarily put to his own mind what it was
-all to be about. He simply _felt_ this, evidently, and it is always the
-one dumb sound, the stopped pipe or only unexpressed thing, in all his
-contagious candour. He finds none the less in the letter to which I
-refer one of the problems of the wonderful projected “Sophia Scarlet”
-“exactly a Balzac one, and I wish I had his fist—for I have already a
-better method—the kinetic—whereas he continually allowed himself to be
-led into the static.” There we have him—Stevenson, not Balzac—at his
-most overflowing, and after all radiantly capable of conceiving at
-another moment that his “better method” would have been none at all for
-Balzac’s vision of a subject, least of all of _the_ subject, the whole
-of life. Balzac’s method was adapted to his notion of
-presentation—which we may accept, it strikes me, under the protection
-of what he presents. Were it not, in fine, as I may repeat, to embark in
-a bigger boat than would here turn round I might note further that
-Stevenson has elsewhere—was disposed in general to have—too short a
-way with this master. There is an interesting passage in which he
-charges him with having never known what to leave out, a passage which
-has its bearing on condition of being read with due remembrance of the
-class of performance to which “Le Colonel Chabert,” for instance, “Le
-Curé de Tours,” “L’Interdiction,” “La Messe de l’Athée” (to name but a
-few brief masterpieces in a long list) appertain.
-
-These, however, are comparatively small questions; _the_ impression, for
-the reader of the later letters, is simply one of singular beauty—of
-deepening talent, of happier and richer expression, and in especial of
-an ironic desperate gallantry that burns away, with a finer and finer
-fire, in a strange alien air and is only the more touching to us from
-his own resolute consumption of the smoke. He had incurred great
-charges, he sailed a ship loaded to the brim, so that the strain under
-which he lived and wrought was immense; but the very grimness of it all
-is sunny, slangy, funny, familiar; there is as little of the florid in
-his flashes of melancholy as of the really grey under stress of his
-wisdom. This wisdom had sometimes on matters of art, I think, its
-lapses, but on matters of life it was really winged and inspired. He has
-a soundness as to questions of the vital connection, a soundness all
-liberal and easy and born of the manly experience, that it is a luxury
-to touch. There are no compunctions nor real impatiences, for he had in
-a singular degree got what he wanted, the life absolutely
-discockneyfied, the situation as romantically “swagger” as if it had
-been an imagination made real; but his practical anxieties necessarily
-spin themselves finer, and it is just this production of the thing
-imagined that has more and more to meet them. It all hung, the
-situation, by _that_ beautiful golden thread, the swinging of which in
-the wind, as he spins it in alternate doubt and elation, we watch with
-much of the suspense and pity with which we sit at the serious drama. It
-is serious in the extreme; yet the forcing of production, in the case of
-a faculty so beautiful and delicate, affects us almost as the straining
-of a nerve or the distortion of a feature.
-
- I sometimes sit and yearn for anything in the nature of an
- income that would come in—mine has all got to be gone and
- fished for with the immortal mind of man. What I want is the
- income that really comes in of itself, while all you have to do
- is just to blossom and exist and sit on chairs. . . . I should
- probably amuse myself with works that would make your hair curl,
- if you had any left.
-
-To read over some of his happiest things, to renew one’s sense of the
-extraordinarily fine temper of his imagination, is to say to one’s self
-“What a horse to have to ride every week to market!” We must all go to
-market, but the most fortunate of us surely are those who may drive
-thither, and on days not too frequent, nor by a road too rough, a ruder
-and homelier animal. He touches in more than one place—and with notable
-beauty and real authority in that little mine of felicities the “Letter
-to a Young Gentleman”—on the conscience for “frugality” which should be
-the artist’s finest point of honour: so that one of his complications
-here was undoubtedly the sense that on this score his position had
-inevitably become somewhat false. The literary romantic is by no means
-necessarily expensive, but of the many ways in which the practical, the
-active, has to be paid for this departure from frugality would be, it is
-easy to conceive, not the least. And we perceive his recognising this as
-he recognised everything—if not in time, then out of it; accepting
-inconsistency, as he always did, with the gaiety of a man of
-courage—not being, that is, however intelligent, priggish for logic and
-the grocer’s book any more than for anything else. Only everything made
-for keeping it up, and it was a great deal to keep up; though when he
-throws off “The Ebb-Tide” and rises to “Catriona,” and then again to
-“Weir of Hermiston,” as if he could rise to almost anything, we breathe
-anew and look longingly forward. The latest of these letters contain
-such admirable things, testify so to the reach of his intelligence and
-in short vibrate so with genius and charm, that we feel him at moments
-not only unexhausted but replenished, and capable perhaps, for all we
-know to the contrary, of new experiments and deeper notes. The
-intelligence and attention are so fine that he misses nothing from
-unawareness; not a gossamer thread of the “thought of the time” that,
-wafted to him on the other side of the globe, may not be caught in a
-branch and played with; he puts such a soul into nature and such human
-meanings, for comedy and tragedy, into what surrounds him, however
-shabby or short, that he really lives in society by living in his own
-perceptions and generosities or, as we say nowadays, his own atmosphere.
-In this atmosphere—which seems to have had the gift of abounding the
-more it was breathed by others—these pages somehow prompt us to see
-almost every object on his tropic isle bathed and refreshed.
-
-So far at any rate from growing thin for want of London he can transmit
-to London or to its neighbourhood communications such as it would scarce
-know otherwise where to seek. A letter to his cousin, R. A. M.
-Stevenson, of September 1894, touches so on all things and, as he would
-himself have said, so adorns them, brimming over with its happy
-extravagance of thought, that, far again from our feeling Vailima, in
-the light of it, to be out of the world, it strikes us that the world
-has moved for the time to Vailima. There is world enough everywhere, he
-quite unconsciously shows, for the individual, the right one, to be what
-we call a man of it. He has, like every one not convenienced with the
-pleasant back-door of stupidity, to make his account with seeing and
-facing more things, seeing and facing everything, with the unrest of new
-impressions and ideas, the loss of the fond complacencies of youth.
-
- But as I go on in life, day by day, I become more of a
- bewildered child; I cannot get used to this world, to
- procreation, to heredity, to sight, to hearing; the commonest
- things are a burthen. The prim obliterated polite face of life,
- and the broad, bawdy and orgiastic—or mænadic—foundations,
- form a spectacle to which no habit reconciles me; and “I could
- wish my days to be bound each to each” by the same open-mouthed
- wonder. They _are_ anyway, and whether I wish it or not. . . . I
- remember very well your attitude to life—this conventional
- surface of it. You have none of that curiosity for the social
- stage directions, the trivial _ficelles_ of the business; it is
- simian; but that is how the wild youth of man is captured.
-
-The whole letter is enchanting.
-
- But no doubt there is something great in the half success that
- has attended the effort of turning into an emotional region Bald
- Conduct without any appeal, or almost none, to the figurative,
- mysterious and constitutive facts of life. Not that conduct is
- not constitutive, but dear! it’s dreary! On the whole, conduct
- is better dealt with on the cast-iron “gentleman” and duty
- formula, with as little fervour and poetry as possible; stoical
- and short.
-
-The last letter of all, it will have been abundantly noted, has, with
-one of those characteristically thrown-out references to himself that
-were always half a whim, half a truth and all a picture, a remarkable
-premonition. It is addressed to Mr. Edmond Gosse.
-
- It is all very well to talk of renunciation, and of course it
- has to be done. But for my part, give me a roaring toothache! I
- do like to be deceived and to dream, but I have very little use
- for either watching or meditation. I was not born for age. . . .
- I am a childless, rather bitter, very clear-eyed, blighted
- youth. I have, in fact, lost the path that makes it easy and
- natural for you to descend the hill. I am going at it straight.
- And where I have to go down it is a precipice. . . . You can
- never write another dedication that can give the same pleasure
- to the vanished Tusitala.
-
-Two days later he met his end in the happiest form, by the straight
-swift bolt of the gods. It was, as all his readers know, with an
-admirable unfinished thing in hand, scarce a quarter written—a
-composition as to which his hopes were, presumably with much justice and
-as they were by no means always, of the highest. Nothing is more
-interesting than the rich way in which, in “Weir of Hermiston” and
-“Catriona,” the predominant imaginative Scot reasserts himself after
-gaps and lapses, distractions and deflections superficially extreme.
-There are surely few backward jumps of this energy more joyous and _à
-pieds joints_, or of a kind more interesting to a critic. The
-imaginative vision is hungry and tender just in proportion as the actual
-is otherwise beset; so that we must sigh always in vain for the quality
-that this purified flame, as we call it, would have been able to give
-the metal. And how many things for the critic the case suggests—how
-many possible reflections cluster about it and seem to take light from
-it! It was “romance” indeed, “Weir of Hermiston,” we feel, as we see it
-only grow in assurance and ease when the reach to it over all the spaces
-becomes more positively artificial. The case is _literary_ to intensity,
-and, given the nature of the talent, only thereby the more beautiful: he
-embroiders in silk and silver—in defiance of climate and nature, of
-every near aspect, and with such another antique needle as was nowhere,
-least of all in those latitudes, to be bought—in the intervals of
-wondrous international and insular politics and of fifty material cares
-and complications. His special stock of association, most personal style
-and most unteachable trick fly away again to him like so many strayed
-birds to nest, each with the flutter in its beak of some scrap of
-document or legend, some fragment of picture or story, to be retouched,
-revarnished and reframed.
-
-These things he does with a gusto, moreover, for which it must be
-granted that his literary treatment of the islands and the island life
-had ever vainly waited. Curious enough that his years of the tropics and
-his fraternity with the natives never drew from him any such “rendered”
-view as might have been looked for in advance. For the absent and
-vanished Scotland he _has_ the image—within the limits (too narrow ones
-we may perhaps judge) admitted by his particular poetic; but the law of
-these things in him was, as of many others, amusingly, conscientiously
-perverse. The Pacific, in which he materially delighted, made him
-“descriptively” serious and even rather dry; with his own country, on
-the other hand, materially impossible, he was ready to tread an endless
-measure. He easily sends us back again here to our vision of his
-mixture. There was only one thing on earth that he loved as much as
-literature—which was the total absence of it; and to the present, the
-immediate, whatever it was, he always made the latter offering. Samoa
-was susceptible of no “style”—none of that, above all, with which he
-was most conscious of an affinity—save the demonstration of its
-rightness for life; and this left the field abundantly clear for the
-Border, the Great North Road and the eighteenth century. I have been
-reading over “Catriona” and “Weir” with the purest pleasure with which
-we can follow a man of genius—that of seeing him abound in his own
-sense. In “Weir” especially, like an improvising pianist, he
-superabounds and revels, and his own sense, by a happy stroke, appeared
-likely never more fully and brightly to justify him; to have become even
-in some degree a new sense, with new chords and possibilities. It is the
-“old game,” but it is the old game that he exquisitely understands. The
-figure of Hermiston is creative work of the highest order, those of the
-two Kirsties, especially that of the elder, scarce less so; and we ache
-for the loss of a thing which could give out such touches as the quick
-joy, at finding herself in falsehood, of the enamoured girl whose
-brooding elder brother has told her that as soon as she has a lover she
-will begin to lie (“ ‘Will I have gotten my jo now?’ she thought with
-secret rapture”); or a passage so richly charged with imagination as
-that in which the young lover recalls her as he has first seen and
-desired her, seated at grey of evening on an old tomb in the moorland
-and unconsciously making him think, by her scrap of song, both of his
-mother, who sang it and whom he has lost, and
-
- of their common ancestors now dead, of their rude wars composed,
- their weapons buried with them, and of these strange
- changelings, their descendants, who lingered a little in their
- places and would soon be gone also, and perhaps sung of by
- others at the gloaming hour. By one of the unconscious arts of
- tenderness the two women were enshrined together in his memory.
- Tears, in that hour of sensibility, came into his eyes
- indifferently at the thought of either; and the girl, from being
- something merely bright and shapely, was caught up into the zone
- of things serious as life and death and his dead mother. So
- that, in all ways and on either side, Fate played his game
- artfully with this poor pair of children. The generations were
- prepared, the pangs were made ready, before the curtain rose on
- the dark drama.
-
-It is not a tribute that Stevenson would at all have appreciated, but I
-may not forbear noting how closely such a page recalls many another in
-the tenderest manner of Pierre Loti. There would not, compared, be a pin
-to choose between them. How, we at all events ask ourselves as we
-consider “Weir,” could he have kept it up?—while the reason for which
-he didn’t reads itself back into his text as a kind of beautiful rash
-divination in him that he mightn’t have to. Among prose fragments it
-stands quite alone, with the particular grace and sanctity of mutilation
-worn by the marble morsels of masterwork in another art. This and the
-other things of his best he left; but these things, lovely as, on
-rereading many of them at the suggestion of his Correspondence, they
-are, are not the whole, nor more than the half, of his abiding charm.
-The finest papers in “Across the Plains,” in “Memories and Portraits,”
-in “Virginibus Puerisque,” stout of substance and supremely silver of
-speech, have both a nobleness and a nearness that place them, for
-perfection and roundness, above his fictions, and that also may well
-remind a vulgarised generation of what, even under its nose, English
-prose can be. But it is bound up with his name, for our wonder and
-reflection, that he is something other than the author of this or that
-particular beautiful thing, or of all such things together. It has been
-his fortune (whether or no the greatest that can befall a man of
-letters) to have had to consent to become, by a process not purely
-mystic and not wholly untraceable—what shall we call it?—a Figure.
-Tracing is needless now, for the personality has acted and the
-incarnation is full. There he is—he has passed ineffaceably into happy
-legend. This case of the figure is of the rarest and the honour surely
-of the greatest. In all our literature we can count them, sometimes with
-the work and sometimes without. The work has often been great and yet
-the figure _nil_. Johnson was one, and Goldsmith and Byron; and the two
-former moreover not in any degree, like Stevenson, in virtue of the
-element of grace. Was it this element that fixed the claim even for
-Byron? It seems doubtful; and the list at all events as we approach our
-own day shortens and stops. Stevenson has it at present—may we not
-say?—pretty well to himself, and it is not one of the scrolls in which
-he least will live.
-
------
-
-Footnote 1:
-
-“The Letters of Robert Louis Stevenson to his Family and Friends.
-Selected and Edited, with Notes and Introduction, by Sidney Colvin,”
-1899.
-
-
-
-
- ÉMILE ZOLA
-
-
-If it be true that the critical spirit to-day, in presence of the rising
-tide of prose fiction, a watery waste out of which old standards and
-landmarks are seen barely to emerge, like chimneys and the tops of trees
-in a country under flood—if it be true that the anxious observer, with
-the water up to his chin, finds himself asking for the _reason_ of the
-strange phenomenon, for its warrant and title, so we likewise make out
-that these credentials rather fail to float on the surface. We live in a
-world of wanton and importunate fable, we breathe its air and consume
-its fruits; yet who shall say that we are able, when invited, to account
-for our preferring it so largely to the world of fact? To do so would be
-to make some adequate statement of the good the product in question does
-us. What does it do for our life, our mind, our manners, our
-morals—what does it do that history, poetry, philosophy may not do, as
-well or better, to warn, to comfort and command the countless thousands
-for whom and by whom it comes into being? We seem too often left with
-our riddle on our hands. The lame conclusion on which we retreat is that
-“stories” are multiplied, circulated, paid for, on the scale of the
-present hour, simply because people “like” them. As to why people
-_should_ like anything so loose and mean as the preponderant mass of the
-“output,” so little indebted for the magic of its action to any mystery
-in the making, is more than the actual state of our perceptions enables
-us to say.
-
-This bewilderment might be our last word if it were not for the
-occasional occurrence of accidents especially appointed to straighten
-out a little our tangle. We are reminded that if the unnatural
-prosperity of the wanton fable cannot be adequately explained, it can at
-least be illustrated with a sharpness that is practically an argument.
-An abstract solution failing we encounter it in the concrete. We catch
-in short a new impression or, to speak more truly, recover an old one.
-It was always there to be had, but we ourselves throw off an oblivion,
-an indifference for which there are plenty of excuses. We become
-conscious, for our profit, of a _case_, and we see that our
-mystification came from the way cases had appeared for so long to fail
-us. None of the shapeless forms about us for the time had attained to
-the dignity of one. The one I am now conceiving as suddenly
-effective—for which I fear I must have been regarding it as somewhat in
-eclipse—is that of Émile Zola, whom, as a manifestation of the sort we
-are considering, three or four striking facts have lately combined to
-render more objective and, so to speak, more massive. His close
-connection with the most resounding of recent public quarrels; his
-premature and disastrous death; above all, at the moment I write, the
-appearance of his last-finished novel, bequeathed to his huge public
-from beyond the grave—these rapid events have thrust him forward and
-made him loom abruptly larger; much as if our pedestrian critic,
-treading the dusty highway, had turned a sharp corner.
-
-It is not assuredly that Zola has ever been veiled or unapparent; he
-had, on the contrary been digging his field these thirty years, and for
-all passers to see, with an industry that kept him, after the fashion of
-one of the grand grim sowers or reapers of his brother of the brush, or
-at least of the canvas, Jean-François Millet, duskily outlined against
-the sky. He was there in the landscape of labour—he had always been;
-but he was there as a big natural or pictorial feature, a spreading
-tree, a battered tower, a lumpish round-shouldered useful hayrick,
-confounded with the air and the weather, the rain and the shine, the day
-and the dusk, merged more or less, as it were, in the play of the
-elements themselves. We had got used to him, and, thanks in a measure
-just to this stoutness of his presence, to the long regularity of his
-performance, had come to notice him hardly more than the dwellers in the
-marketplace notice the quarters struck by the town-clock. On top of all
-accordingly, for our skeptical mood, the sense of his work—a sense
-determined afresh by the strange climax of his personal history—rings
-out almost with violence as a reply to our wonder. It is as if an
-earthquake or some other rude interference had shaken from the
-town-clock a note of such unusual depth as to compel attention. We
-therefore once more give heed, and the result of this is that we feel
-ourselves after a little probably as much enlightened as we can hope
-ever to be. We have worked round to the so marked and impressive anomaly
-of the adoption of the futile art by one of the stoutest minds and
-stoutest characters of our time. This extraordinarily robust worker has
-found it good enough for him, and if the fact is, as I say, anomalous,
-we are doubtless helped to conclude that by its anomalies, in future,
-the bankrupt business, as we are so often moved to pronounce it, will
-most recover credit.
-
-What is at all events striking for us, critically speaking, is that, in
-the midst of the dishonour it has gradually harvested by triumphant
-vulgarity of practice, its pliancy and applicability can still plead for
-themselves. The curious contradiction stands forth for our relief—the
-circumstance that thirty years ago a young man of extraordinary brain
-and indomitable purpose, wishing to give the measure of these endowments
-in a piece of work supremely solid, conceived and sat down to Les
-Rougon-Macquart rather than to an equal task in physics, mathematics,
-politics or economics. He saw his undertaking, thanks to his patience
-and courage, practically to a close; so that it is exactly neither of
-the so-called constructive sciences that happens to have had the
-benefit, intellectually speaking, of one of the few most constructive
-achievements of our time. There then, provisionally at least, we touch
-bottom; we get a glimpse of the pliancy and variety, the ideal of
-vividness, on behalf of which our equivocal form may appeal to a strong
-head. In the name of what ideal on its own side, however, does the
-strong head yield to the appeal? What is the logic of its so deeply
-committing itself? Zola’s case seems to tell us, as it tells us other
-things. The logic is in its huge freedom of adjustment to the
-temperament of the worker, which it carries, so to say, as no other
-vehicle can do. It expresses fully and directly the whole man, and big
-as he may be it can still be big enough for him without becoming false
-to its type. We see this truth made strong, from beginning to end, in
-Zola’s work; we see the temperament, we see the whole man, with his size
-and all his marks, stored and packed away in the huge hold of Les
-Rougon-Macquart as a cargo is packed away on a ship. His personality is
-the thing that finally pervades and prevails, just as so often on a
-vessel the presence of the cargo makes itself felt for the assaulted
-senses. What has most come home to me in reading him over is that a
-scheme of fiction so conducted is in fact a capacious vessel. It can
-carry anything—with art and force in the stowage; nothing in this case
-will sink it. And it is the only form for which such a claim can be
-made. All others have to confess to a smaller scope—to selection, to
-exclusion, to the danger of distortion, explosion, combustion. The novel
-has nothing to fear but sailing too light. It will take aboard all we
-bring in good faith to the dock.
-
-An intense vision of this truth must have been Zola’s comfort from the
-earliest time—the years, immediately following the crash of the Empire,
-during which he settled himself to the tremendous task he had mapped
-out. No finer act of courage and confidence, I think, is recorded in the
-history of letters. The critic in sympathy with him returns again and
-again to the great wonder of it, in which something so strange is mixed
-with something so august. Entertained and carried out almost from the
-threshold of manhood, the high project, the work of a lifetime,
-announces beforehand its inevitable weakness and yet speaks in the same
-voice for its admirable, its almost unimaginable strength. The strength
-was in the young man’s very person—in his character, his will, his
-passion, his fighting temper, his aggressive lips, his squared shoulders
-(when he “sat up”) and overweening confidence; his weakness was in that
-inexperience of life from which he proposed not to suffer, from which he
-in fact suffered on the surface remarkably little, and from which he was
-never to suspect, I judge, that he had suffered at all. I may mention
-for the interest of it that, meeting him during his first short visit to
-London—made several years before his stay in England during the Dreyfus
-trial—I received a direct impression of him that was more informing
-than any previous study. I had seen him a little, in Paris, years before
-that, when this impression was a perceptible promise, and I was now to
-perceive how time had made it good. It consisted, simply stated, in his
-fairly bristling with the betrayal that nothing whatever had happened to
-him in life but to write Les Rougon-Macquart. It was even for that
-matter almost more as if Les Rougon-Macquart had written _him_, written
-him as he stood and sat, as he looked and spoke, as the long,
-concentrated, merciless effort had made and stamped and left him.
-Something very fundamental was to happen to him in due course, it is
-true, shaking him to his base; fate was not wholly to cheat him of an
-independent evolution. Recalling him from this London hour one strongly
-felt during the famous “Affair” that his outbreak in connection with it
-was the act of a man with arrears of personal history to make up, the
-act of a spirit for which life, or for which at any rate freedom, had
-been too much postponed, treating itself at last to a luxury of
-experience.
-
-I welcomed the general impression at all events—I intimately
-entertained it; it represented so many things, it suggested, just as it
-was, such a lesson. You could neither have everything nor be
-everything—you had to choose; you could not at once sit firm at your
-job and wander through space inviting initiations. The author of Les
-Rougon-Macquart had had all those, certainly, that this wonderful
-company could bring him; but I can scarce express how it was implied in
-him that his time had been fruitfully passed with _them_ alone. His
-artistic evolution struck one thus as, in spite of its magnitude,
-singularly simple, and evidence of the simplicity seems further offered
-by his last production, of which we have just come into possession.
-“Vérité” truly does give the measure, makes the author’s high maturity
-join hands with his youth, marks the rigid straightness of his course
-from point to point. He had seen his horizon and his fixed goal from the
-first, and no cross-scent, no new distance, no blue gap in the hills to
-right or to left ever tempted him to stray. “Vérité,” of which I shall
-have more to say, is in fact, as a moral finality and the crown of an
-edifice, one of the strangest possible performances. Machine-minted and
-made good by an immense expertness, it yet makes us ask how, for
-disinterested observation and perception, the writer had used so much
-time and so much acquisition, and how he can all along have handled so
-much material without some larger subjective consequence. We really rub
-our eyes in other words to see so great an intellectual adventure as Les
-Rougon-Macquart come to its end in deep desert sand. Difficult truly to
-read, because showing him at last almost completely a prey to the danger
-that had for a long time more and more dogged his steps, the danger of
-the mechanical all confident and triumphant, the book is nevertheless
-full of interest for a reader desirous to penetrate. It speaks with more
-distinctness of the author’s temperament, tone and manner than if, like
-several of his volumes, it achieved or enjoyed a successful life of its
-own. Its heavy completeness, with all this, as of some prodigiously
-neat, strong and complicated scaffolding constructed by a firm of
-builders for the erection of a house whose foundations refuse to bear it
-and that is unable therefore to rise—its very betrayal of a method and
-a habit more than adequate, on past occasions, to similar ends, carries
-us back to the original rare exhibition, the grand assurance and grand
-patience with which the system was launched.
-
-If it topples over, the system, by its own weight in these last
-applications of it, that only makes the history of its prolonged success
-the more curious and, speaking for myself, the spectacle of its origin
-more attaching. Readers of my generation will remember well the
-publication of “La Conquête de Plassans” and the portent, indefinable
-but irresistible, after perusal of the volume, conveyed in the general
-rubric under which it was a first instalment, Natural and Social History
-of a Family under the Second Empire. It squared itself there at its
-ease, the announcement, from the first, and we were to learn promptly
-enough what a fund of life it masked. It was like the mouth of a cave
-with a signboard hung above, or better still perhaps like the big booth
-at a fair with the name of the show across the flapping canvas. One
-strange animal after another stepped forth into the light, each in its
-way a monster bristling and spotted, each a curiosity of that “natural
-history” in the name of which we were addressed, though it was doubtless
-not till the issue of “L’Assommoir” that the true type of the monstrous
-seemed to be reached. The enterprise, for those who had attention, was
-even at a distance impressive, and the nearer the critic gets to it
-retrospectively the more so it becomes. The pyramid had been planned and
-the site staked out, but the young builder stood there, in his sturdy
-strength, with no equipment save his two hands and, as we may say, his
-wheelbarrow and his trowel. His pile of material—of stone, brick and
-rubble or whatever—was of the smallest, but this he apparently felt as
-the least of his difficulties. Poor, uninstructed, unacquainted,
-unintroduced, he set up his subject wholly from the outside, proposing
-to himself wonderfully to get into it, into its depths, as he went.
-
-If we imagine him asking himself what he knew of the “social” life of
-the second Empire to start with, we imagine him also answering in all
-honesty: “I have my eyes and my ears—I have all my senses: I have what
-I’ve seen and heard, what I’ve smelled and tasted and touched. And then
-I’ve my curiosity and my pertinacity; I’ve libraries, books, newspapers,
-witnesses, the material, from step to step, of an _enquête_. And then
-I’ve my genius—that is, my imagination, my passion, my sensibility to
-life. Lastly I’ve my method, and that will be half the battle. Best of
-all perhaps even, I’ve plentiful lack of doubt.” Of the absence in him
-of a doubt, indeed of his inability, once his direction taken, to
-entertain so much as the shadow of one, “Vérité” is a positive
-monument—which again represents in this way the unity of his tone and
-the meeting of his extremes. If we remember that his design was nothing
-if not architectural, that a “majestic whole,” a great balanced façade,
-with all its orders and parts, that a singleness of mass and a unity of
-effect, in fine, were before him from the first, his notion of picking
-up his bricks as he proceeded becomes, in operation, heroic. It is not
-in the least as a record of failure for him that I note this particular
-fact of the growth of the long series as on the whole the liveliest
-interest it has to offer. “I don’t know my subject, but I must live into
-it; I don’t know life, but I must learn it as I work”—that attitude and
-programme represent, to my sense, a drama more intense on the worker’s
-own part than any of the dramas he was to invent and put before us.
-
-It was the fortune, it was in a manner the doom, of Les Rougon-Macquart
-to deal with things almost always in gregarious form, to be a picture of
-_numbers_, of classes, crowds, confusions, movements, industries—and
-this for a reason of which it will be interesting to attempt some
-account. The individual life is, if not wholly absent, reflected in
-coarse and common, in generalised terms; whereby we arrive precisely at
-the oddity just named, the circumstance that, looking out somewhere, and
-often woefully athirst, for the taste of fineness, we find it not in the
-fruits of our author’s fancy, but in a different matter altogether. We
-get it in the very history of his effort, the image itself of his
-lifelong process, comparatively so personal, so spiritual even, and,
-through all its patience and pain, of a quality so much more
-distinguished than the qualities he succeeds in attributing to his
-figures even when he most aims at distinction. There can be no question
-in these narrow limits of my taking the successive volumes one by
-one—all the more that our sense of the exhibition is as little as
-possible an impression of parts and books, of particular “plots” and
-persons. It produces the effect of a mass of imagery in which shades are
-sacrificed, the effect of character and passion in the lump or by the
-ton. The fullest, the most characteristic episodes affect us like a
-sounding chorus or procession, as with a hubbub of voices and a
-multitudinous tread of feet. The setter of the mass into motion, he
-himself, in the crowd, figures best, with whatever queer idiosyncrasies,
-excrescences and gaps, a being of a substance akin to our own. Taking
-him as we must, I repeat, for quite heroic, the interest of detail in
-him is the interest of his struggle at every point with his problem.
-
-The sense for crowds and processions, for the gross and the general, was
-largely the _result_ of this predicament, of the disproportion between
-his scheme and his material—though it was certainly also in part an
-effect of his particular turn of mind. What the reader easily discerns
-in him is the sturdy resolution with which breadth and energy supply the
-place of penetration. He rests to his utmost on his documents, devours
-and assimilates them, makes them yield him extraordinary appearances of
-life; but in his way he too improvises in the grand manner, the manner
-of Walter Scott and of Dumas the elder. We feel that he _has_ to
-improvise for his moral and social world, the world as to which vision
-and opportunity must come, if they are to come at all, unhurried and
-unhustled—must take their own time, helped undoubtedly more or less by
-blue-books, reports and interviews, by inquiries “on the spot,” but
-never wholly replaced by such substitutes without a general
-disfigurement. Vision and opportunity reside in a personal sense and a
-personal history, and no short cut to them in the interest of plausible
-fiction has ever been discovered. The short cut, it is not too much to
-say, was with Zola the subject of constant ingenious experiment, and it
-is largely to this source, I surmise, that we owe the celebrated element
-of his grossness. He was _obliged_ to be gross, on his system, or
-neglect to his cost an invaluable aid to representation, as well as one
-that apparently struck him as lying close at hand; and I cannot withhold
-my frank admiration from the courage and consistency with which he faced
-his need.
-
-His general subject in the last analysis was the nature of man; in
-dealing with which he took up, obviously, the harp of most numerous
-strings. His business was to make these strings sound true, and there
-were none that he did not, so far as his general economy permitted,
-persistently try. What happened then was that many—say about half, and
-these, as I have noted, the most silvered, the most golden—refused to
-give out their music. They would only sound false, since (as with all
-his earnestness he must have felt) he could command them, through want
-of skill, of practice, of ear, to none of the right harmony. What
-therefore was more natural than that, still splendidly bent on producing
-his illusion, he should throw himself on the strings he might thump with
-effect, and should work them, as our phrase is, for all they were worth?
-The nature of man, he had plentiful warrant for holding, is an
-extraordinary mixture, but the great thing was to represent a sufficient
-part of it to show that it was solidly, palpably, commonly the nature.
-With this preoccupation he doubtless fell into extravagance—there was
-clearly so much to lead him on. The coarser side of his subject, based
-on the community of all the instincts, was for instance the more
-practicable side, a sphere the vision of which required but the general
-human, scarcely more than the plain physical, initiation, and dispensed
-thereby conveniently enough with special introductions or revelations. A
-free entry into this sphere was undoubtedly compatible with a youthful
-career as hampered right and left even as Zola’s own.
-
-He was in prompt possession thus of the range of sympathy that he
-_could_ cultivate, though it must be added that the complete exercise of
-that sympathy might have encountered an obstacle that would somewhat
-undermine his advantage. Our friend might have found himself able, in
-other words, to pay to the instinctive, as I have called it, only such
-tribute as protesting taste (his own dose of it) permitted. Yet there it
-was again that fortune and his temperament served him. Taste as he knew
-it, taste as his own constitution supplied it, proved to have nothing to
-say to the matter. His own dose of the precious elixir had no
-perceptible regulating power. Paradoxical as the remark may sound, this
-accident was positively to operate as one of his greatest felicities.
-There are parts of his work, those dealing with romantic or poetic
-elements, in which the inactivity of the principle in question is
-sufficiently hurtful; but it surely should not be described as hurtful
-to such pictures as “Le Ventre de Paris,” as “L’Assommoir,” as
-“Germinal.” The conception on which each of these productions rests is
-that of a world with which taste has nothing to do, and though the act
-of representation may be justly held, as an artistic act, to involve its
-presence, the discrimination would probably have been in fact, given the
-particular illusion sought, more detrimental than the deficiency. There
-was a great outcry, as we all remember, over the rank materialism of
-“L’Assommoir,” but who cannot see to-day how much a milder infusion of
-it would have told against the close embrace of the subject aimed at?
-“L’Assommoir” is the nature of man—but not his finer, nobler, cleaner
-or more cultivated nature; it is the image of his free instincts, the
-better and the worse, the better struggling as they can, gasping for
-light and air, the worse making themselves at home in darkness,
-ignorance and poverty. The whole handling makes for emphasis and scale,
-and it is not to be measured how, as a picture of conditions, the thing
-would have suffered from timidity. The qualification of the painter was
-precisely his stoutness of stomach, and we scarce exceed in saying that
-to have taken in and given out again less of the infected air would,
-with such a resource, have meant the waste of a faculty.
-
-I may add in this connection moreover that refinement of intention did
-on occasion and after a fashion of its own unmistakably preside at these
-experiments; making the remark in order to have done once for all with a
-feature of Zola’s literary physiognomy that appears to have attached the
-gaze of many persons to the exclusion of every other. There are judges
-in these matters so perversely preoccupied that for them to see anywhere
-the “improper” is for them straightway to cease to see anything else.
-The said improper, looming supremely large and casting all the varieties
-of the proper quite into the shade, suffers thus in their consciousness
-a much greater extension than it ever claimed, and this consciousness
-becomes, for the edification of many and the information of a few, a
-colossal reflector and record of it. Much may be said, in relation to
-some of the possibilities of the nature of man, of the nature in
-especial of the “people,” on the defect of our author’s sense of
-proportion. But the sense of proportion of many of those he has
-scandalised would take us further yet. I recall at all events as
-relevant—for it comes under a very attaching general head—two
-occasions of long ago, two Sunday afternoons in Paris, on which I found
-the question of intention very curiously lighted. Several men of letters
-of a group in which almost every member either had arrived at renown or
-was well on his way to it, were assembled under the roof of the most
-distinguished of their number, where they exchanged free confidences on
-current work, on plans and ambitions, in a manner full of interest for
-one never previously privileged to see artistic conviction, artistic
-passion (at least on the literary ground) so systematic and so
-articulate. “Well, I on my side,” I remember Zola’s saying, “am engaged
-on a book, a study of the _mœurs_ of the people, for which I am making a
-collection of all the ‘bad words,’ the _gros mots_, of the language,
-those with which the vocabulary of the people, those with which their
-familiar talk, bristles.” I was struck with the tone in which he made
-the announcement—without bravado and without apology, as an interesting
-idea that had come to him and that he was working, really to arrive at
-character and particular truth, with all his conscience; just as I was
-struck with the unqualified interest that his plan excited. It was _on_
-a plan that he was working—formidably, almost grimly, as his fatigued
-face showed; and the whole consideration of this interesting element
-partook of the general seriousness.
-
-But there comes back to me also as a companion-piece to this another
-day, after some interval, on which the interest was excited by the fact
-that the work for love of which the brave license had been taken was
-actually under the ban of the daily newspaper that had engaged to
-“serialise” it. Publication had definitively ceased. The thing had run a
-part of its course, but it had outrun the courage of editors and the
-curiosity of subscribers—that stout curiosity to which it had evidently
-in such good faith been addressed. The chorus of contempt for the ways
-of such people, their pusillanimity, their superficiality, vulgarity,
-intellectual platitude, was the striking note on this occasion; for the
-journal impugned had declined to proceed and the serial, broken off,
-been obliged, if I am not mistaken, to seek the hospitality of other
-columns, secured indeed with no great difficulty. The composition so
-qualified for future fame was none other, as I was later to learn, than
-“L’Assommoir”; and my reminiscence has perhaps no greater point than in
-connecting itself with a matter always dear to the critical spirit,
-especially when the latter has not too completely elbowed out the
-romantic—the matter of the “origins,” the early consciousness, early
-steps, early tribulations, early obscurity, as so often happens, of
-productions finally crowned by time.
-
-Their greatness is for the most part a thing that has originally begun
-so small; and this impression is particularly strong when we have been
-in any degree present, so to speak, at the birth. The course of the
-matter is apt to tend preponderantly in that case to enrich our stores
-of irony. In the eventual conquest of consideration by an abused book we
-recognise, in other terms, a drama of romantic interest, a drama often
-with large comic no less than with fine pathetic interweavings. It may
-of course be said in this particular connection that “L’Assommoir” had
-not been one of the literary things that creep humbly into the world.
-Its “success” may be cited as almost insolently prompt, and the fact
-remains true if the idea of success be restricted, after the inveterate
-fashion, to the idea of circulation. What remains truer still, however,
-is that for the critical spirit circulation mostly matters not the least
-little bit, and it is of the success with which the history of Gervaise
-and Coupeau nestles in _that_ capacious bosom, even as the just man
-sleeps in Abraham’s, that I here speak. But it is a point I may better
-refer to a moment hence.
-
-Though a summary study of Zola need not too anxiously concern itself
-with book after book—always with a partial exception from this remark
-for “L’Assommoir”—groups and varieties none the less exist in the huge
-series, aids to discrimination without which no measure of the presiding
-genius is possible. These divisions range themselves to my sight,
-roughly speaking, however, as scarce more than three in number—I mean
-if the ten volumes of the Œuvres Critiques and the Théâtre be left out
-of account. The critical volumes in especial abound in the
-characteristic, as they were also a wondrous addition to his sum of
-achievement during his most strenuous years. But I am forced not to
-consider them. The two groups constituted after the close of Les
-Rougon-Macquart—“Les Trois Villes” and the incomplete “Quatre
-Évangiles”—distribute themselves easily among the three types, or, to
-speak more exactly, stand together under one of the three. This one, so
-comprehensive as to be the author’s main exhibition, includes to my
-sense all his best volumes—to the point in fact of producing an effect
-of distinct inferiority for those outside of it, which are, luckily for
-his general credit, the less numerous. It is so inveterately pointed out
-in any allusion to him that one shrinks, in repeating it, from sounding
-flat; but as he was admirably equipped from the start for the evocation
-of number and quantity, so those of his social pictures that most easily
-surpass the others are those in which appearances, the appearances
-familiar to him, are at once most magnified and most multiplied.
-
-To make his characters swarm, and to make the great central thing they
-swarm about “as large as life,” portentously, heroically big, that was
-the task he set himself very nearly from the first, that was the secret
-he triumphantly mastered. Add that the big central thing was always some
-highly representative institution or industry of the France of his time,
-some seated Moloch of custom, of commerce, of faith, lending itself to
-portrayal through its abuses and excesses, its idol-face and great
-devouring mouth, and we embrace main lines of his attack. In “Le Ventre
-de Paris” he had dealt with the life of the huge Halles, the general
-markets and their supply, the personal forces, personal situations,
-passions, involved in (strangest of all subjects) the alimentation of
-the monstrous city, the city whose victualling occupies so inordinately
-much of its consciousness. Paris richly gorged, Paris sublime and
-indifferent in her assurance (so all unlike poor Oliver’s) of “more,”
-figures here the theme itself, lies across the scene like some vast
-ruminant creature breathing in a cloud of parasites. The book was the
-first of the long series to show the full freedom of the author’s hand,
-though “La Curée” had already been symptomatic. This freedom, after an
-interval, broke out on a much bigger scale in “L’Assommoir,” in “Au
-Bonheur des Dames,” in “Germinal,” in “La Bête Humaine,” in “L’Argent,”
-in “La Débâcle,” and then again, though more mechanically and with much
-of the glory gone, in the more or less wasted energy of “Lourdes,”
-“Rome,” “Paris,” of “Fécondité,” “Travail” and “Vérité.”
-
-“Au Bonheur des Dames” handles the colossal modern shop, traces the
-growth of such an organisation as the Bon Marché or the
-Magasin-du-Louvre, sounds the abysses of its inner life, marshals its
-population, its hierarchy of clerks, counters, departments, divisions
-and sub-divisions, plunges into the labyrinth of the mutual relations of
-its staff, and above all traces its ravage amid the smaller fry of the
-trade, of all the trades, pictures these latter gasping for breath in an
-air pumped clean by its mighty lungs. “Germinal” revolves about the
-coal-mines of Flemish France, with the subterranean world of the pits
-for its central presence, just as “La Bête Humaine” has for its
-protagonist a great railway and “L’Argent” presents in terms of human
-passion—mainly of human baseness—the fury of the Bourse and the
-monster of Credit. “La Débâcle” takes up with extraordinary breadth the
-first act of the Franco-Prussian war, the collapse at Sedan, and the
-titles of the six volumes of The Three Cities and the Four Gospels
-sufficiently explain them. I may mention, however, for the last
-lucidity, that among these “Fécondité” manipulates, with an amazing
-misapprehension of means to ends, of remedies to ills, no less thickly
-peopled a theme than that of the decline in the French birth-rate, and
-that “Vérité” presents a fictive equivalent of the Dreyfus case, with a
-vast and elaborate picture of the battle in France between lay and
-clerical instruction. I may even further mention, to clear the ground,
-that with the close of Les Rougon-Macquart the diminution of freshness
-in the author’s energy, the diminution of intensity and, in short, of
-quality, becomes such as to render sadly difficult a happy life with
-some of the later volumes. Happiness of the purest strain never indeed,
-in old absorptions of Zola, quite sat at the feast; but there was mostly
-a measure of coercion, a spell without a charm. From these last-named
-productions of the climax everything strikes me as absent but quantity
-(“Vérité,” for instance, is, with the possible exception of “Nana,” the
-longest of the list); though indeed there is something impressive in the
-way his quantity represents his patience.
-
-There are efforts here at stout perusal that, frankly, I have been
-unable to carry through, and I should verily like, in connection with
-the vanity of these, to dispose on the spot of the sufficiently strange
-phenomenon constituted by what I have called the climax. It embodies in
-fact an immense anomaly; it casts back over Zola’s prime and his middle
-years the queerest grey light of eclipse. Nothing moreover—nothing
-“literary”—was ever so odd as in this matter the whole turn of the
-case, the consummation so logical yet so unexpected. Writers have grown
-old and withered and failed; they have grown weak and sad; they have
-lost heart, lost ability, yielded in one way or another—the possible
-ways being so numerous—to the cruelty of time. But the singular doom of
-this genius, and which began to multiply its symptoms ten years before
-his death, was to find, with life, at fifty, still rich in him, strength
-only to undermine all the “authority” he had gathered. He had not grown
-old and he had not grown feeble; he had only grown all too wrongly
-insistent, setting himself to wreck, poetically, his so massive
-identity—to wreck it in the very waters in which he had formally
-arrayed his victorious fleet, (I say “poetically” on purpose to give him
-the just benefit of all the beauty of his power.) The process of the
-disaster, so full of the effect, though so without the intention, of
-perversity, is difficult to trace in a few words; it may best be
-indicated by an example or two of its action.
-
-The example that perhaps most comes home to me is again connected with a
-personal reminiscence. In the course of some talk that I had with him
-during his first visit to England I happened to ask him what opportunity
-to travel (if any) his immense application had ever left him, and
-whether in particular he had been able to see Italy, a country from
-which I had either just returned or which I was luckily—not having the
-Natural History of a Family on my hands—about to revisit. “All I’ve
-done, alas,” he replied, “was, the other year, in the course of a little
-journey to the south, to my own _pays_—all that has been possible was
-then to make a little dash as far as Genoa, a matter of only a few
-days.” “Le Docteur Pascal,” the conclusion of Les Rougon-Macquart, had
-appeared shortly before, and it further befell that I asked him what
-plans he had for the future, now that, still _dans la force de l’âge_,
-he had so cleared the ground. I shall never forget the fine promptitude
-of his answer—“Oh, I shall begin at once Les Trois Villes.” “And which
-cities are they to be?” The reply was finer still—“Lourdes, Paris,
-Rome.”
-
-It was splendid for confidence and cheer, but it left me, I fear, more
-or less gaping, and it was to give me afterwards the key, critically
-speaking, to many a mystery. It struck me as breathing to an almost
-tragic degree the fatuity of those in whom the gods stimulate that vice
-to their ruin. He was an honest man—he had always bristled with it at
-every pore; but no artistic reverse was inconceivable for an adventurer
-who, stating in one breath that his knowledge of Italy consisted of a
-few days spent at Genoa, was ready to declare in the next that he had
-planned, on a scale, a picture of Rome. It flooded his career, to my
-sense, with light; it showed how he had marched from subject to subject
-and had “got up” each in turn—showing also how consummately he had
-reduced such getting-up to an artifice. He had success and a rare
-impunity behind him, but nothing would now be so interesting as to see
-if he could again play the trick. One would leave him, and welcome,
-Lourdes and Paris—he had already dealt, on a scale, with his own
-country and people. But was the adored Rome also to be his on such
-terms, the Rome he was already giving away before possessing an inch of
-it? One thought of one’s own frequentations, saturations—a history of
-long years, and of how the effect of them had somehow been but to make
-the subject too august. Was _he_ to find it easy through a visit of a
-month or two with “introductions” and a Bædeker?
-
-It was not indeed that the Bædeker and the introductions didn’t show, to
-my sense, at that hour, as extremely suggestive; they were positively a
-part of the light struck out by his announcement. They defined the
-system on which he had brought Les Rougon-Macquart safely into port. He
-had had his Bædeker and his introductions for “Germinal,” for
-“L’Assommoir,” for “L’Argent,” for “La Débâcle,” for “Au Bonheur des
-Dames”; which advantages, which researches, had clearly been all the
-more in character for being documentary, extractive, a matter of
-_renseignements_, published or private, even when most mixed with
-personal impressions snatched, with _enquêtes sur les lieux_, with facts
-obtained from the best authorities, proud and happy to co-operate in so
-famous a connection. That was, as we say, all right, all the more that
-the process, to my imagination, became vivid and was wonderfully
-reflected back from its fruits. There _were_ the fruits—so it hadn’t
-been presumptuous. Presumption, however, was now to begin, and what omen
-mightn’t there be in its beginning with such complacency? Well, time
-would show—as time in due course effectually did. “Rome,” as the second
-volume of The Three Cities, appeared with high punctuality a year or two
-later; and the interesting question, an occasion really for the
-moralist, was by that time not to recognise in it the mere triumph of a
-mechanical art, a “receipt” applied with the skill of long practice, but
-to do much more than this—that is really to give a name to the
-particular shade of blindness that could constitute a trap for so great
-an artistic intelligence. The presumptuous volume, without sweetness,
-without antecedents, superficial and violent, has the minimum instead of
-the maximum of _value_; so that it betrayed or “gave away” just in this
-degree the state of mind on the author’s part responsible for its
-inflated hollowness. To put one’s finger on the state of mind was to
-find out accordingly what was, as we say, the matter with him.
-
-It seemed to me, I remember, that I found out as never before when, in
-its turn, “Fécondité” began the work of crowning the edifice.
-“Fécondité” is physiological, whereas “Rome” is not, whereas “Vérité”
-likewise is not; yet these three productions joined hands at a given
-moment to fit into the lock of the mystery the key of my meditation.
-They came to the same thing, to the extent of permitting me to read into
-them together the same precious lesson. This lesson may not, barely
-stated, sound remarkable; yet without being in possession of it I should
-have ventured on none of these remarks. “The matter with” Zola then, so
-far as it goes, was that, as the imagination of the artist is in the
-best cases not only clarified but intensified by his equal possession of
-Taste (deserving here if ever the old-fashioned honour of a capital) so
-when he has lucklessly never inherited that auxiliary blessing the
-imagination itself inevitably breaks down as a consequence. There is
-simply no limit, in fine, to the misfortune of being tasteless; it does
-not merely disfigure the surface and the fringe of your performance—it
-eats back into the very heart and enfeebles the sources of life. When
-you have no taste you have no discretion, which is the conscience of
-taste, and when you have no discretion you perpetrate books like “Rome,”
-which are without intellectual modesty, books like “Fécondité,” which
-are without a sense of the ridiculous, books like “Vérité,” which are
-without the finer vision of human experience.
-
-It is marked that in each of these examples the deficiency has been
-directly fatal. No stranger doom was ever appointed for a man so plainly
-desiring only to be just than the absurdity of not resting till he had
-buried the felicity of his past, such as it was, under a great flat
-leaden slab. “Vérité” is a plea for science, as science, to Zola, is
-_all_ truth, the mention of any other kind being mere imbecility; and
-the simplification of the human picture to which his negations and
-exasperations have here conducted him was not, even when all had been
-said, credible in advance. The result is amazing when we consider that
-the finer observation is the supposed basis of all such work. It is not
-that even here the author has not a queer idealism of his own; this
-idealism is on the contrary so present as to show positively for the
-falsest of his simplifications. In “Fécondité” it becomes grotesque,
-makes of the book the most muscular mistake of _sense_ probably ever
-committed. Where was the judgment of which experience is supposed to be
-the guarantee when the perpetrator could persuade himself that the
-lesson he wished in these pages to convey could be made immediate and
-direct, chalked, with loud taps and a still louder commentary, the sexes
-and generations all convoked, on the blackboard of the “family
-sentiment?”
-
-I have mentioned, however, all this time but one of his categories. The
-second consists of such things as “La Fortune des Rougon” and “La
-Curée,” as “Eugène Rougon” and even “Nana,” as “Pot-Bouille,” as
-“L’Œuvre” and “La Joie de Vivre.” These volumes may rank as social
-pictures in the narrowest sense, studies, comprehensively speaking, of
-the manners, the morals, the miseries—for it mainly comes to that—of a
-bourgeoisie grossly materialised. They deal with the life of individuals
-in the liberal professions and with that of political and social
-adventures, and offer the personal character and career, more or less
-detached, as the centre of interest. “La Curée” is an evocation, violent
-and “romantic,” of the extravagant appetites, the fever of the senses,
-supposedly fostered, for its ruin, by the hapless second Empire, upon
-which general ills and turpitudes at large were at one time so freely
-and conveniently fathered. “Eugène Rougon” carries out this view in the
-high colour of a political portrait, not other than scandalous, for
-which one of the ministerial _âmes damnées_ of Napoleon III., M. Rouher,
-is reputed, I know not how justly, to have sat. “Nana,” attaching itself
-by a hundred strings to a prearranged table of kinships, heredities,
-transmissions, is the vast crowded _epos_ of the daughter of the people
-filled with poisoned blood and sacrificed as well as sacrificing on the
-altar of luxury and lust; the panorama of such a “progress” as Hogarth
-would more definitely have named—the progress across the high plateau
-of “pleasure” and down the facile descent on the other side. “Nana” is
-truly a monument to Zola’s patience; the subject being so ungrateful, so
-formidably special, that the multiplication of illustrative detail, the
-plunge into pestilent depths, represents a kind of technical
-intrepidity.
-
-There are other plunges, into different sorts of darkness; of which the
-esthetic, even the scientific, even the ironic motive fairly escapes
-us—explorations of stagnant pools like that of “La Joie de Vivre,” as
-to which, granting the nature of the curiosity and the substance
-laboured in, the patience is again prodigious, but which make us wonder
-what pearl of philosophy, of suggestion or just of homely recognition,
-the general picture, as of rats dying in a hole, has to offer. Our
-various senses, sight, smell, sound, touch, are, as with Zola always,
-more or less convinced; but when the particular effect upon each of
-these is added to the effect upon the others the mind still remains
-bewilderedly unconscious of any use for the total. I am not sure indeed
-that the case is in this respect better with the productions of the
-third order—“La Faute de l’Abbé Mouret,” “Une Page d’Amour,” “Le Rêve,”
-“Le Docteur Pascal”—in which the appeal is more directly, is in fact
-quite earnestly, to the moral vision; so much, on such ground, was to
-depend precisely on those discriminations in which the writer is least
-at home. The volumes whose names I have just quoted are his express
-tribute to the “ideal,” to the select and the charming—fair fruits of
-invention intended to remove from the mouth so far as possible the
-bitterness of the ugly things in which so much of the rest of his work
-had been condemned to consist. The subjects in question then are
-“idyllic” and the treatment poetic, concerned essentially to please on
-the largest lines and involving at every turn that salutary need. They
-are matters of conscious delicacy, and nothing might interest us more
-than to see what, in the shock of the potent forces enlisted, becomes of
-this shy element. Nothing might interest us more, literally, and might
-positively affect us more, even very nearly to tears, though indeed
-sometimes also to smiles, than to see the constructor of Les
-Rougon-Macquart trying, “for all he is worth,” to be fine with fineness,
-finely tender, finely true—trying to be, as it is called,
-distinguished—in face of constitutional hindrance.
-
-The effort is admirably honest, the tug at his subject splendidly
-strong; but the consequences remain of the strangest, and we get the
-impression that—as representing discriminations unattainable—they are
-somehow the price he paid. “Le Docteur Pascal,” for instance, which
-winds up the long chronicle on the romantic note, on the note of invoked
-beauty, in order to sweeten, as it were, the total draught—“Le Docteur
-Pascal,” treating of the erotic ardour entertained for each other by an
-uncle and his niece, leaves us amazed at such a conception of beauty,
-such an application of romance, such an estimate of sweetness, a
-sacrifice to poetry and passion so little in order. Of course, we
-definitely remind ourselves, the whole long chronicle is explicitly a
-scheme, solidly set up and intricately worked out, lighted, according to
-the author’s pretension, by “science,” high, dry and clear, and with
-each part involved and necessitated in all the other parts, each block
-of the edifice, each “morceau de vie,” _physiologically_ determined by
-previous combinations. “How can I help it,” we hear the builder of the
-pyramid ask, “if experience (by which alone I proceed) shows me certain
-plain results—if, holding up the torch of my famous ‘experimental
-method,’ I find it stare me in the face that the union of certain types,
-the conflux of certain strains of blood, the intermarriage, in a word,
-of certain families, produces nervous conditions, conditions
-temperamental, psychical and pathological, in which nieces _have_ to
-fall in love with uncles and uncles with nieces? Observation and
-imagination, for any picture of life,” he as audibly adds, “know no
-light but science, and are false to all intellectual decency, false to
-their own honour, when they fear it, dodge it, darken it. To pretend to
-any other guide or law is mere base humbug.”
-
-That is very well, and the value, in a hundred ways, of a mass of
-production conceived in such a spirit can never (when robust execution
-has followed) be small. But the formula really sees us no further. It
-offers a definition which is no definition. “Science” is soon said—the
-whole thing depends on the ground so covered. Science accepts surely
-_all_ our consciousness of life; even, rather, the latter closes
-maternally round it—so that, becoming thus a force within us, not a
-force outside, it exists, it illuminates only as we apply it. We do
-emphatically apply it in art. But Zola would apparently hold that it
-much more applies _us_. On the showing of many of his volumes then it
-makes but a dim use of us, and this we should still consider the case
-even were we sure that the article offered us in the majestic name is
-absolutely at one with its own pretension. This confidence we can on too
-many grounds never have. The matter is one of appreciation, and when an
-artist answers for science who answers for the artist—who at the least
-answers for art? Thus it is with the mistakes that affect us, I say, as
-Zola’s penalties. We are reminded by them that the game of art has, as
-the phrase is, to be played. It may not with any sure felicity for the
-result be both taken and left. If you insist on the common you must
-submit to the common; if you discriminate, on the contrary, you must,
-however invidious your discriminations may be called, trust to them to
-see you through.
-
-To the common then Zola, often with splendid results, inordinately
-sacrifices, and this fact of its overwhelming him is what I have called
-his paying for it. In “L’Assommoir,” in “Germinal,” in “La Débâcle,”
-productions in which he must most survive, the sacrifice is ordered and
-fruitful, for the subject and the treatment harmonise and work together.
-He describes what he best feels, and feels it more and more as it
-naturally comes to him—quite, if I may allow myself the image, as we
-zoologically see some mighty animal, a beast of a corrugated hide and a
-portentous snout, soaking with joy in the warm ooze of an African
-riverside. In these cases everything matches, and “science,” we may be
-permitted to believe, has had little hand in the business. The author’s
-perceptions go straight, and the subject, grateful and responsive, gives
-itself wholly up. It is no longer a case of an uncertain smoky torch,
-but of a personal vision, the vision of genius, springing from an inward
-source. Of this genius “L’Assommoir” is the most extraordinary record.
-It contains, with the two companions I have given it, all the best of
-Zola, and the three books together are solid ground—or would be could I
-now so take them—for a study of the particulars of his power. His
-strongest marks and features abound in them; “L’Assommoir” above all is
-(not least in respect to its bold free linguistic reach, already glanced
-at) completely genial, while his misadventures, his unequipped and
-delusive pursuit of the life of the spirit and the tone of culture, are
-almost completely absent.
-
-It is a singular sight enough this of a producer of illusions whose
-interest for us is so independent of our pleasure or at least of our
-complacency—who touches us deeply even while he most “puts us off,” who
-makes us care for his ugliness and yet himself at the same time
-pitilessly (pitilessly, that is, for _us_) makes a mock of it, who fills
-us with a sense of the rich which is none the less never the rare.
-Gervaise, the most immediately “felt,” I cannot but think, of all his
-characters, is a lame washerwoman, loose and gluttonous, without will,
-without any principle of cohesion, the sport of every wind that assaults
-her exposed life, and who, rolling from one gross mistake to another,
-finds her end in misery, drink and despair. But her career, as
-presented, has fairly the largeness that, throughout the chronicle, we
-feel as epic, and the intensity of her creator’s vision of it and of the
-dense sordid life hanging about it is one of the great things the modern
-novel has been able to do. It has done nothing more completely
-constitutive and of a tone so rich and full and sustained. The tone of
-“L’Assommoir” is, for mere “keeping up,” unsurpassable, a vast deep
-steady tide on which every object represented is triumphantly borne. It
-never shrinks nor flows thin, and nothing for an instant drops, dips or
-catches; the high-water mark of sincerity, of the genial, as I have
-called it, is unfailingly kept.
-
-For the artist in the same general “line” such a production has an
-interest almost inexpressible, a mystery as to origin and growth over
-which he fondly but rather vainly bends. How after all does it so get
-itself _done_?—the “done” being admirably the sign and crown of it. The
-light of the richer mind has been elsewhere, as I have sufficiently
-hinted, frequent enough, but nothing truly in all fiction was ever built
-so strong or made so dense as here. Needless to say there are a thousand
-things with more charm in their truth, with more beguilement of every
-sort, more prettiness of pathos, more innocence of drollery, for the
-spectator’s sense of truth. But I doubt if there has ever been a more
-totally _represented_ world, anything more founded and established, more
-provided for all round, more organised and carried on. It is a world
-practically workable, with every part as functional as every other, and
-with the parts all chosen for direct mutual aid. Let it not be said
-either that the equal constitution of parts makes for repletion or
-excess; the air circulates and the subject blooms; deadness comes in
-these matters only when the right parts are absent and there is vain
-beating of the air in their place—the refuge of the fumbler incapable
-of the thing “done” at all.
-
-The mystery I speak of, for the reader who reflects as he goes, is the
-wonder of the scale and energy of Zola’s assimilations. This wonder
-besets us above all throughout the three books I have placed first. How,
-all sedentary and “scientific,” did he get so _near_? By what art,
-inscrutable, immeasurable, indefatigable, did he arrange to make of his
-documents, in these connections, a use so vivified? Say he was “near”
-the subject of “L’Assommoir” in imagination, in more or less familiar
-impression, in temperament and humour, he could not after all have been
-near it in personal experience, and the copious personalism of the
-picture, not to say its frank animalism, yet remains its note and its
-strength. When the note had been struck in a thousand forms we had, by
-multiplication, as a kind of cumulative consequence, the finished and
-rounded book; just as we had the same result by the same process in
-“Germinal.” It is not of course that multiplication and accumulation,
-the extraordinary pair of legs on which he walks, are easily or directly
-consistent with his projecting himself morally; this immense diffusion,
-with its appropriation of everything it meets, affects us on the
-contrary as perpetually delaying access to what we may call the private
-world, the world of the individual. Yet since the individual—for it so
-happens—is simple and shallow our author’s dealings with him, as met
-and measured, maintain their resemblance to those of the lusty bee who
-succeeds in plumping for an instant, of a summer morning, into every
-flower-cup of the garden.
-
-Grant—and the generalisation may be emphatic—that the shallow and the
-simple are _all_ the population of his richest and most crowded
-pictures, and that his “psychology,” in a psychologic age, remains
-thereby comparatively coarse, grant this and we but get another view of
-the miracle. We see enough of the superficial among novelists at large,
-assuredly, without deriving from it, as we derive from Zola at his best,
-the concomitant impression of the solid. It is in general—I mean among
-the novelists at large—the impression of the _cheap_, which the author
-of Les Rougon-Macquart, honest man, never faithless for a moment to his
-own stiff standard, manages to spare us even in the prolonged sandstorm
-of “Vérité.” The Common is another matter; it is one of the forms of the
-superficial—pervading and consecrating all things in such a book as
-“Germinal”—and it only adds to the number of our critical questions.
-How in the world is it made, this deplorable democratic malodorous
-Common, so strange and so interesting? How is it taught to receive into
-its loins the stuff of the epic and still, in spite of that association
-with poetry, never depart from its nature? It is in the great lusty game
-he plays with the shallow and the simple that Zola’s mastery resides,
-and we see of course that when values are small it takes innumerable
-items and combinations to make up the sum. In “L’Assommoir” and in
-“Germinal,” to some extent even in “La Débâcle,” the values are all,
-morally, personally, of the lowest—the highest is poor Gervaise
-herself, richly human in her generosities and follies—yet each is as
-distinct as a brass-headed nail.
-
-What we come back to accordingly is the unprecedented case of such a
-combination of parts. Painters, of great schools, often of great talent,
-have responded liberally on canvas to the appeal of ugly things, of
-Spanish beggars, squalid and dusty-footed, of martyred saints or other
-convulsed sufferers, tortured and bleeding, of boors and louts soaking a
-Dutch proboscis in perpetual beer; but we had never before had to reckon
-with so literary a treatment of the mean and vulgar. When we others of
-the Anglo-Saxon race are vulgar we are, handsomely and with the best
-conscience in the world, vulgar all through, too vulgar to be in any
-degree literary, and too much so therefore to be critically reckoned
-with at all. The French are different—they separate their sympathies,
-multiply their possibilities, observe their shades, remain more or less
-outside of their worst disasters. They mostly contrive to get the
-_idea_, in however dead a faint, down into the lifeboat. They may lose
-sight of the stars, but they save in some such fashion as that their
-intellectual souls. Zola’s own reply to all puzzlements would have been,
-at any rate, I take it, a straight summary of his inveterate
-professional habits. “It is all very simple—I produce, roughly
-speaking, a volume a year, and of this time some five months go to
-preparation, to special study. In the other months, with all my _cadres_
-established, I write the book. And I can hardly say which part of the
-job is stiffest.”
-
-The story was not more wonderful for him than that, nor the job more
-complex; which is why we must say of his whole process and its results
-that they constitute together perhaps the most extraordinary _imitation_
-of observation that we possess. Balzac appealed to “science” and
-proceeded by her aid; Balzac had _cadres_ enough and a tabulated world,
-rubrics, relationships and genealogies; but Balzac affects us in spite
-of everything as personally overtaken by life, as fairly hunted and run
-to earth by it. He strikes us as struggling and all but submerged, as
-beating over the scene such a pair of wings as were not soon again to be
-wielded by any visitor of his general air and as had not at all events
-attached themselves to Zola’s rounded shoulders. His bequest is in
-consequence immeasurably more interesting, yet who shall declare that
-his adventure was in its greatness more successful? Zola “pulled it
-off,” as we say, supremely, in that he never but once found himself
-obliged to quit, to our vision, his magnificent treadmill of the
-pigeonholed and documented—the region we may qualify as that of
-experience by imitation. His splendid economy saw him through, he
-laboured to the end within sight of his notes and his charts.
-
-The extraordinary thing, however, is that on the single occasion when,
-publicly—as his whole manifestation was public—life did swoop down on
-him, the effect of the visitation was quite perversely other than might
-have been looked for. His courage in the Dreyfus connection testified
-admirably to his ability to live for himself and out of the order of his
-volumes—little indeed as living at all might have seemed a question for
-one exposed, when his crisis was at its height and he was found guilty
-of “insulting” the powers that were, to be literally torn to pieces in
-the precincts of the Palace of Justice. Our point is that nothing was
-ever so odd as that these great moments should appear to have been
-wasted, when all was said, for his creative intelligence. “Vérité,” as I
-have intimated, the production in which they might most have been
-reflected, is a production unrenewed and unrefreshed by them, spreads
-before us as somehow flatter and greyer, not richer and more relieved,
-by reason of them. They really arrived, I surmise, too late in the day;
-the imagination they might have vivified was already fatigued and spent.
-
-I must not moreover appear to say that the power to evoke and present
-has not even on the dead level of “Vérité” its occasional minor
-revenges. There are passages, whole pages, of the old full-bodied sort,
-pictures that elsewhere in the series would in all likelihood have
-seemed abundantly convincing. Their misfortune is to have been
-discounted by our intensified, our finally fatal sense of the _procédé_.
-Quarrelling with all conventions, defiant of them in general, Zola was
-yet inevitably to set up his own group of them—as, for that matter,
-without a sufficient collection, without their aid in simplifying and
-making possible, how could he ever have seen his big ship into port? Art
-welcomes them, feeds upon them always; no sort of form is practicable
-without them. It is only a question of what particular ones we use—to
-wage war on certain others and to arrive at particular forms. The
-convention of the blameless being, the thoroughly “scientific” creature
-possessed impeccably of all truth and serving as the mouthpiece of it
-and of the author’s highest complacencies, this character is for
-instance a convention inveterate and indispensable, without whom the
-“sympathetic” side of the work could never have been achieved. Marc in
-“Vérité,” Pierre Froment in “Lourdes” and in “Rome,” the wondrous
-representatives of the principle of reproduction in “Fécondité,” the
-exemplary painter of “L’Œuvre,” sublime in his modernity and paternity,
-the patient Jean Macquart of “La Débâcle,” whose patience is as
-guaranteed as the exactitude of a well-made watch, the supremely
-enlightened Docteur Pascal even, as I recall him, all amorous nepotism
-but all virtue too and all beauty of life—such figures show us the
-reasonable and the good not merely in the white light of the old George
-Sand novel and its improved moralities, but almost in that of our
-childhood’s nursery and school-room, that of the moral tale of Miss
-Edgeworth and Mr. Thomas Day.
-
-Yet let not these restrictions be my last word. I had intended, under
-the effect of a reperusal of “La Débâcle,” “Germinal” and “L’Assommoir,”
-to make no discriminations that should not be in our hero’s favour. The
-long-drawn incident of the marriage of Gervaise and Cadet-Cassis and
-that of the Homeric birthday feast later on in the laundress’s workshop,
-each treated from beginning to end and in every item of their coarse
-comedy and humanity, still show the unprecedented breadth by which they
-originally made us stare, still abound in the particular kind and degree
-of vividness that helped them, when they appeared, to mark a date in the
-portrayal of manners. Nothing had then been so sustained and at every
-moment of its grotesque and pitiful existence lived into as the nuptial
-day of the Coupeau pair in especial, their fantastic processional
-pilgrimage through the streets of Paris in the rain, their bedraggled
-exploration of the halls of the Louvre museum, lost as in the labyrinth
-of Crete, and their arrival at last, ravenous and exasperated, at the
-_guinguette_ where they sup at so much a head, each paying, and where we
-sit down with them in the grease and the perspiration and succumb, half
-in sympathy, half in shame, to their monstrous pleasantries, acerbities
-and miseries. I have said enough of the mechanical in Zola; here in
-truth is, given the elements, almost insupportably the sense of life.
-That effect is equally in the historic chapter of the strike of the
-miners in “Germinal,” another of those illustrative episodes, viewed as
-great passages to be “rendered,” for which our author established
-altogether a new measure and standard of handling, a new energy and
-veracity, something since which the old trivialities and poverties of
-treatment of such aspects have become incompatible, for the novelist,
-with either rudimentary intelligence or rudimentary self-respect.
-
-As for “La Débâcle,” finally, it takes its place with Tolstoi’s very
-much more universal but very much less composed and condensed epic as an
-incomparably human picture of war. I have been re-reading it, I confess,
-with a certain timidity, the dread of perhaps impairing the deep
-impression received at the time of its appearance. I recall the effect
-it then produced on me as a really luxurious act of submission. It was
-early in the summer; I was in an old Italian town; the heat was
-oppressive, and one could but recline, in the lightest garments, in a
-great dim room and give one’s self up. I like to think of the conditions
-and the emotion, which melt for me together into the memory I fear to
-imperil. I remember that in the glow of my admiration there was not a
-reserve I had ever made that I was not ready to take back. As an
-application of the author’s system and his supreme faculty, as a triumph
-of what these things could do for him, how could such a performance be
-surpassed? The long, complex, horrific, pathetic battle, embraced,
-mastered, with every crash of its squadrons, every pulse of its thunder
-and blood resolved for us, by reflection, by communication from two of
-the humblest and obscurest of the military units, into immediate vision
-and contact, into deep human thrills of terror and pity—this bristling
-centre of the book was such a piece of “doing” (to come back to our
-word) as could only shut our mouths. That doubtless is why a generous
-critic, nursing the sensation, may desire to drop for a farewell no term
-into the other scale. That our author was clearly great at congruous
-subjects—this may well be our conclusion. If the others, subjects of
-the private and intimate order, gave him more or less inevitably “away,”
-they yet left him the great distinction that the more he could be
-promiscuous and collective, the more even he could (to repeat my
-imputation) illustrate our large natural allowance of health, heartiness
-and grossness, the more he could strike us as penetrating and true. It
-was a distinction not easy to win and that his name is not likely soon
-to lose.
-
-
-
-
- GUSTAVE FLAUBERT
-
-
-The first thing I find to-day and on my very threshold[2] to say about
-Gustave Flaubert is that he has been reported on by M. Émile Faguet in
-the series of Les Grands Écrivains Français with such lucidity as may
-almost be taken to warn off a later critic. I desire to pay at the
-outset my tribute to M. Faguet’s exhaustive study, which is really in
-its kind a model and a monument. Never can a critic have got closer to a
-subject of this order; never can the results of the approach have been
-more copious or more interesting; never in short can the master of a
-complex art have been more mastered in his turn, nor his art more
-penetrated, by the application of an earnest curiosity. That remark I
-have it at heart to make, so pre-eminently has the little volume I refer
-to not left the subject where it found it. It abounds in contributive
-light, and yet, I feel on reflection that it scarce wholly dazzles
-another contributor away. One reason of this is that, though I enter
-into everything M. Faguet has said, there are things—things perhaps
-especially of the province of the artist, the fellow-craftsman of
-Flaubert—that I am conscious of his not having said; another is that
-inevitably there are particular possibilities of reaction in our
-English-speaking consciousness that hold up a light of their own.
-Therefore I venture to follow even on a field so laboured, only paying
-this toll to the latest and best work because the author has made it
-impossible to do less.
-
-Flaubert’s life is so almost exclusively the story of his literary
-application that to speak of his five or six fictions is pretty well to
-account for it all. He died in 1880 after a career of fifty-nine years
-singularly little marked by changes of scene, of fortune, of attitude,
-of occupation, of character, and above all, as may be said, of mind. He
-would be interesting to the race of novelists if only because, quite
-apart from the value of his work, he so personally gives us the example
-and the image, so presents the intellectual case. He was born a
-novelist, grew up, lived, died a novelist, breathing, feeling, thinking,
-speaking, performing every operation of life, only as that votary; and
-this though his production was to be small in amount and though it
-constituted all his diligence. It was not indeed perhaps primarily so
-much that he was born and lived a novelist as that he was born and lived
-literary, and that to be literary represented for him an almost
-overwhelming situation. No life was long enough, no courage great
-enough, no fortune kind enough to support a man under the burden of this
-character when once such a doom had been laid on him. His case was a
-doom because he felt of his vocation almost nothing but the difficulty.
-He had many strange sides, but this was the strangest, that if we argued
-from his difficulty to his work, the difficulty being registered for us
-in his letters and elsewhere, we should expect from the result but the
-smallest things. We should be prepared to find in it well-nigh a
-complete absence of the signs of a gift. We should regret that the
-unhappy man had not addressed himself to something he might have found
-at least comparatively easy. We should singularly miss the consecration
-supposedly given to a work of art by its having been conceived in joy.
-That is Flaubert’s remarkable, his so far as I know unmatched
-distinction, that he has left works of an extraordinary art even the
-conception of which failed to help him to think in serenity. The chapter
-of execution, from the moment execution gets really into the shafts, is
-of course always and everywhere a troubled one—about which moreover too
-much has of late been written; but we frequently find Flaubert cursing
-his subjects themselves, wishing he had not chosen them, holding himself
-up to derision for having done so, and hating them in the very act of
-sitting down to them. He cared immensely for the medium, the task and
-the triumph involved, but was himself the last to be able to say why. He
-is sustained only by the rage and the habit of effort; the mere _love_
-of letters, let alone the love of life, appears at an early age to have
-deserted him. Certain passages in his correspondence make us even wonder
-if it be not hate that sustains him most. So, successively, his several
-supremely finished and crowned compositions came into the world, and we
-may feel sure that none others of the kind, none that were to have an
-equal fortune, had sprung from such adversity.
-
-I insist upon this because his at once excited and baffled passion gives
-the key of his life and determines its outline. I must speak of him at
-least as I feel him and as in his very latest years I had the fortune
-occasionally to see him. I said just now, practically, that he is for
-many of our tribe at large _the_ novelist, intent and typical, and so,
-gathered together and foreshortened, simplified and fixed, the lapse of
-time seems to show him. It has made him in his prolonged posture
-extraordinarily objective, made him even resemble one of his own
-productions, constituted him as a subject, determined him as a figure;
-the limit of his range, and above all of his reach, is after this
-fashion, no doubt, sufficiently indicated, and yet perhaps in the event
-without injury to his name. If our consideration of him cultivates a
-certain tenderness on the double ground that he suffered supremely in
-the cause and that there is endlessly much to be learned from him, we
-remember at the same time that, indirectly, the world at large possesses
-him not less than the _confrère_. He has fed and fertilised, has
-filtered through others, and so arrived at contact with that public from
-whom it was his theory that he was separated by a deep and impassable
-trench, the labour of his own spade. He is none the less more
-interesting, I repeat, as a failure however qualified than as a success
-however explained, and it is as so viewed that the unity of his career
-attaches and admonishes. Save in some degree by a condition of health (a
-liability to epileptic fits at times frequent, but never so frequent as
-to have been generally suspected,) he was not outwardly hampered as the
-tribe of men of letters goes—an anxious brotherhood at the best; yet
-the fewest possible things appear to have ever succeeded in happening to
-him. The only son of an eminent provincial physician, he inherited a
-modest ease and no other incumbrance than, as was the case for Balzac,
-an over-attentive, an importunate mother; but freedom spoke to him from
-behind a veil, and when we have mentioned the few apparent facts of
-experience that make up his landmarks over and beyond his interspaced
-publications we shall have completed his biography. Tall, strong,
-striking, he caused his friends to admire in him the elder, the florid
-Norman type, and he seems himself, as a man of imagination, to have
-found some transmission of race in his stature and presence, his
-light-coloured salient eyes and long tawny moustache.
-
-The central event of his life was his journey to the East in 1849 with
-M. Maxime Du Camp, of which the latter has left in his “Impressions
-Littéraires” a singularly interesting and, as we may perhaps say,
-slightly treacherous report, and which prepared for Flaubert a state of
-nostalgia that was not only never to leave him, but that was to work in
-him as a motive. He had during that year, and just in sufficient
-quantity, his revelation, the particular appropriate disclosure to which
-the gods at some moment treat the artist unless they happen too
-perversely to conspire against him: he tasted of the knowledge by which
-he was subsequently to measure everything, appeal from everything, find
-everything flat. Never probably was an impression so assimilated, so
-positively transmuted to a function; he lived on it to the end and we
-may say that in “Salammbô” and “La Tentation de Saint-Antoine” he almost
-died of it. He made afterwards no other journey of the least importance
-save a disgusted excursion to the Rigi-Kaltbad shortly before his death.
-The Franco-German War was of course to him for the time as the valley of
-the shadow itself; but this was an ordeal, unlike most of his other
-ordeals, shared after all with millions. He never married—he declared,
-toward the end, to the most comprehending of his confidants, that he had
-been from the first “afraid of life”; and the friendliest element of his
-later time was, we judge, that admirable comfortable commerce, in her
-fullest maturity, with Madame George Sand, the confidant I just referred
-to; which has been preserved for us in the published correspondence of
-each. He had in Ivan Turgenieff a friend almost as valued; he spent each
-year a few months in Paris, where (to mention everything) he had his
-natural place, so far as he cared to take it, at the small literary
-court of the Princess Mathilde; and, lastly, he lost toward the close of
-his life, by no fault of his own, a considerable part of his modest
-fortune. It is, however, in the long security, the almost unbroken
-solitude of Croisset, near Rouen, that he mainly figures for us, gouging
-out his successive books in the wide old room, of many windows, that,
-with an intervening terrace, overlooked the broad Seine and the passing
-boats. This was virtually a monastic cell, closed to echoes and
-accidents; with its stillness for long periods scarce broken save by the
-creak of the towing-chain of the tugs across the water. When I have
-added that his published letters offer a view, not very refreshing, of
-his youthful entanglement with Madame Louise Colet—whom we name
-because, apparently not a shrinking person, she long ago practically
-named herself—I shall have catalogued his personal vicissitudes. And I
-may add further that the connection with Madame Colet, such as it was,
-rears its head for us in something like a desert of immunity from such
-complications.
-
-His complications were of the spirit, of the literary vision, and though
-he was thoroughly profane he was yet essentially anchoretic. I perhaps
-miss a point, however, in not finally subjoining that he was liberally
-accessible to his friends during the months he regularly spent in Paris.
-Sensitive, passionate, perverse, not less than _immediately_
-sociable—for if he detested his collective contemporaries this dropped,
-thanks to his humanising shyness, before the individual encounter—he
-was in particular and superexcellently not _banal_, and he attached men
-perhaps more than women, inspiring a marked, a by no means colourless
-shade of respect; a respect not founded, as the air of it is apt to be,
-on the vague presumption, but addressed almost in especial to his
-disparities and oddities and thereby, no doubt, none too different from
-affection. His friends at all events were a rich and eager _cénacle_,
-among whom he was on occasion, by his picturesque personality, a natural
-and overtopping centre; partly perhaps because he was so much and so
-familiarly at home. He wore, up to any hour of the afternoon, that long,
-colloquial dressing-gown, with trousers to match, which one has always
-associated with literature in France—the uniform really of freedom of
-talk. Freedom of talk abounded by his winter fire, for the _cénacle_ was
-made up almost wholly of the more finely distinguished among his
-contemporaries; of philosophers, men of letters and men of affairs
-belonging to his own generation and the next. He had at the time I have
-in mind a small perch, far aloft, at the distant, the then almost
-suburban, end of the Faubourg Saint-Honoré, where on Sunday afternoons,
-at the very top of an endless flight of stairs, were to be encountered
-in a cloud of conversation and smoke most of the novelists of the
-general Balzac tradition. Others of a different birth and complexion
-were markedly not of the number, were not even conceivable as present;
-none of those, unless I misremember, whose fictions were at that time
-“serialised” in the Revue des Deux Mondes. In spite of Renan and Taine
-and two or three more, the contributor to the Revue would indeed at no
-time have found in the circle in question his foot on his native heath.
-One could recall if one would two or three vivid allusions to him, not
-of the most quotable, on the lips of the most famous of
-“naturalists”—allusions to him as represented for instance by M. Victor
-Cherbuliez and M. Octave Feuillet. The author of these pages recalls a
-concise qualification of this last of his fellows on the lips of Émile
-Zola, which that absorbed auditor had too directly, too rashly asked
-for; but which is alas not reproducible here. There was little else but
-the talk, which had extreme intensity and variety; almost nothing, as I
-remember, but a painted and gilded idol, of considerable size, a relic
-and a memento, on the chimney-piece. Flaubert was huge and diffident,
-but florid too and resonant, and my main remembrance is of a conception
-of courtesy in him, an accessibility to the human relation, that only
-wanted to be sure of the way taken or to take. The uncertainties of the
-French for the determination of intercourse have often struck me as
-quite matching the sharpness of their certainties, as we for the most
-part feel these latter, which sometimes in fact throw the indeterminate
-into almost touching relief. I have thought of them at such times as the
-people in the world one may have to go more of the way to meet than to
-meet any other, and this, as it were, through their being seated and
-embedded, provided for at home, in a manner that is all their own and
-that has bred them to the positive preacceptance of interest on their
-behalf. We at least of the Anglo-American race, more abroad in the
-world, perching everywhere, so far as grounds of intercourse are
-concerned, more vaguely and superficially, as well as less
-intelligently, are the more ready by that fact with inexpensive
-accommodations, rather conscious that these themselves forbear from the
-claim to fascinate, and advancing with the good nature that is the
-mantle of our obtuseness to any point whatever where entertainment may
-be offered us. My recollection is at any rate simplified by the fact of
-the presence almost always, in the little high room of the Faubourg’s
-end, of other persons and other voices. Flaubert’s own voice is clearest
-to me from the uneffaced sense of a winter week-day afternoon when I
-found him by exception alone and when something led to his reading me
-aloud, in support of some judgment he had thrown off, a poem of
-Théophile Gautier’s. He cited it as an example of verse intensely and
-distinctively French, and French in its melancholy, which neither Goethe
-nor Heine nor Leopardi, neither Pushkin nor Tennyson nor, as he said,
-Byron, could at all have matched in _kind_. He converted me at the
-moment to this perception, alike by the sense of the thing and by his
-large utterance of it; after which it is dreadful to have to confess not
-only that the poem was then new to me, but that, hunt as I will in every
-volume of its author, I am never able to recover it. This is perhaps
-after all happy, causing Flaubert’s own full tone, which was the note of
-the occasion, to linger the more unquenched. But for the rhyme in fact I
-could have believed him to be spouting to me something strange and
-sonorous of his own. The thing really rare would have been to hear him
-do that—hear him _gueuler_, as he liked to call it. Verse, I felt, we
-had always with us, and almost any idiot of goodwill could give it a
-value. The value of so many a passage of “Salammbô” and of “L’Éducation”
-was on the other hand exactly such as gained when he allowed himself, as
-had by the legend ever been frequent _dans l’intimité_, to “bellow” it
-to its fullest effect.
-
-One of the things that make him most exhibitional and most describable,
-so that if we had invented him as an illustration or a character we
-would exactly so have arranged him, is that he was formed intellectually
-of two quite distinct compartments, a sense of the real and a sense of
-the romantic, and that his production, for our present cognisance, thus
-neatly and vividly divides itself. The divisions are as marked as the
-sections on the back of a scarab, though their distinctness is
-undoubtedly but the final expression of much inward strife. M. Faguet
-indeed, who is admirable on this question of our author’s duality, gives
-an account of the romanticism that found its way for him into the real
-and of the reality that found its way into the romantic; but he none the
-less strikes us as a curious splendid insect sustained on wings of a
-different coloration, the right a vivid red, say, and the left as frank
-a yellow. This duality has in its sharp operation placed “Madame Bovary”
-and “L’Éducation” on one side together and placed together on the other
-“Salammbô” and “La Tentation.” “Bouvard et Pécuchet” it can scarce be
-spoken of, I think, as having placed anywhere or anyhow. If it was
-Flaubert’s way to find his subject impossible there was none he saw so
-much in that light as this last-named, but also none that he appears to
-have held so important for that very reason to pursue to the bitter end.
-Posterity agrees with him about the impossibility, but rather takes upon
-itself to break with the rest of the logic. We may perhaps, however, for
-symmetry, let “Bouvard et Pécuchet” figure as the tail—if scarabs ever
-have tails—of our analogous insect. Only in that case we should also
-append as the very tip the small volume of the “Trois Contes,”
-preponderantly of the deepest imaginative hue.
-
-His imagination was great and splendid; in spite of which, strangely
-enough, his masterpiece is not his most imaginative work. “Madame
-Bovary,” beyond question, holds that first place, and “Madame Bovary” is
-concerned with the career of a country doctor’s wife in a petty Norman
-town. The elements of the picture are of the fewest, the situation of
-the heroine almost of the meanest, the material for interest,
-considering the interest yielded, of the most unpromising; but these
-facts only throw into relief one of those incalculable incidents that
-attend the proceedings of genius. “Madame Bovary” was doomed by
-circumstances and causes—the freshness of comparative youth and good
-faith on the author’s part being perhaps the chief—definitely to take
-its position, even though its subject was fundamentally a negation of
-the remote, the splendid and the strange, the stuff of his fondest and
-most cultivated dreams. It would have seemed very nearly to exclude the
-free play of the imagination, and the way this faculty on the author’s
-part nevertheless presides is one of those accidents, manœuvres,
-inspirations, we hardly know what to call them, by which masterpieces
-grow. He of course knew more or less what he was doing for his book in
-making Emma Bovary a victim of the imaginative habit, but he must have
-been far from designing or measuring the total effect which renders the
-work so general, so complete an expression of himself. His separate
-idiosyncrasies, his irritated sensibility to the life about him, with
-the power to catch it in the fact and hold it hard, and his hunger for
-style and history and poetry, for the rich and the rare, great
-reverberations, great adumbrations, are here represented together as
-they are not in his later writings. There is nothing of the near, of the
-directly observed, though there may be much of the directly perceived
-and the minutely detailed, either in “Salammbô” or in “Saint-Antoine,”
-and little enough of the extravagance of illusion in that indefinable
-last word of restrained evocation and cold execution “L’Éducation
-Sentimentale.” M. Faguet has of course excellently noted this—that the
-fortune and felicity of the book were assured by the stroke that made
-the central figure an embodiment of helpless romanticism. Flaubert
-himself but narrowly escaped being such an embodiment after all, and he
-is thus able to express the romantic mind with extraordinary truth. As
-to the rest of the matter he had the luck of having been in possession
-from the first, having begun so early to nurse and work up his plan
-that, familiarity and the native air, the native soil, aiding, he had
-finally made out to the last lurking shade the small sordid sunny dusty
-village picture, its emptiness constituted and peopled. It is in the
-background and the accessories that the real, the real of his theme,
-abides; and the romantic, the romantic of his theme, accordingly
-occupies the front. Emma Bovary’s poor adventures are a tragedy for the
-very reason that in a world unsuspecting, unassisting, unconsoling, she
-has herself to distil the rich and the rare. Ignorant, unguided,
-undiverted, ridden by the very nature and mixture of her consciousness,
-she makes of the business an inordinate failure, a failure which in its
-turn makes for Flaubert the most pointed, the most _told_ of anecdotes.
-
-There are many things to say about “Madame Bovary,” but an old admirer
-of the book would be but half-hearted—so far as they represent reserves
-or puzzlements—were he not to note first of all the circumstances by
-which it is most endeared to him. To remember it from far back is to
-have been present all along at a process of singular interest to a
-literary mind, a case indeed full of comfort and cheer. The finest of
-Flaubert’s novels is to-day, on the French shelf of fiction, one of the
-first of the classics; it has attained that position, slowly but
-steadily, before our eyes; and we seem so to follow the evolution of the
-fate of a classic. We see how the thing takes place; which we rarely
-can, for we mostly miss either the beginning or the end, especially in
-the case of a consecration as complete as this. The consecrations of the
-past are too far behind and those of the future too far in front. That
-the production before us _should_ have come in for the heavenly crown
-may be a fact to offer English and American readers a mystifying side;
-but it is exactly our ground and a part moreover of the total interest.
-The author of these remarks remembers, as with a sense of the way such
-things happen, that when a very young person in Paris he took up from
-the parental table the latest number of the periodical in which
-Flaubert’s then duly unrecognised masterpiece was in course of
-publication. The moment is not historic, but it was to become in the
-light of history, as may be said, so unforgettable that every small
-feature of it yet again lives for him: it rests there like the backward
-end of the span. The cover of the old Revue de Paris was yellow, if I
-mistake not, like that of the new, and “Madame Bovary: Mœurs de
-Province,” on the inside of it, was already, on the spot, as a title,
-mysteriously arresting, inscrutably charged. I was ignorant of what had
-preceded and was not to know till much later what followed; but present
-to me still is the act of standing there before the fire, my back
-against the low beplushed and begarnished French chimney-piece and
-taking in what I might of that instalment, taking it in with so
-surprised an interest, and perhaps as well such a stir of faint
-foreknowledge, that the sunny little salon, the autumn day, the window
-ajar and the cheerful outside clatter of the Rue Montaigne are all now
-for me more or less in the story and the story more or less in them. The
-story, however, was at that moment having a difficult life; its fortune
-was all to make; its merit was so far from suspected that, as Maxime Du
-Camp—though verily with no excess of contrition—relates, its cloth of
-gold barely escaped the editorial shears. This, with much more,
-contributes for us to the course of things to come. The book, on its
-appearance as a volume, proved a shock to the high propriety of the
-guardians of public morals under the second Empire, and Flaubert was
-prosecuted as author of a work indecent to scandal. The prosecution in
-the event fell to the ground, but I should perhaps have mentioned this
-agitation as one of the very few, of any public order, in his short
-list. “Le Candidat” fell at the Vaudeville Theatre, several years later,
-with a violence indicated by its withdrawal after a performance of but
-two nights, the first of these marked by a deafening uproar; only if the
-comedy was not to recover from this accident the misprised lustre of the
-novel was entirely to reassert itself. It is strange enough at
-present—so far have we travelled since then—that “Madame Bovary”
-should in so comparatively recent a past have been to that extent a
-cause of reprobation; and suggestive above all, in such connections, as
-to the large unconsciousness of superior minds. The desire of the
-superior mind of the day—that is the governmental, official, legal—to
-distinguish a book with such a destiny before it is a case conceivable,
-but conception breaks down before its design of making the distinction
-purely invidious. We can imagine its knowing so little, however face to
-face with the object, what it had got hold of; but for it to have been
-so urged on by a blind inward spring to publish to posterity the extent
-of its ignorance, that would have been beyond imagination, beyond
-everything but pity.
-
-And yet it is not after all that the place the book has taken is so
-overwhelmingly explained by its inherent dignity; for here comes in the
-curiosity of the matter. Here comes in especially its fund of admonition
-for alien readers. The dignity of its substance is the dignity of Madame
-Bovary herself as a vessel of experience—a question as to which,
-unmistakably, I judge, we can only depart from the consensus of French
-critical opinion. M. Faguet for example commends the character of the
-heroine as one of the most living and discriminated figures of women in
-all literature, praises it as a field for the display of the romantic
-spirit that leaves nothing to be desired. Subject to an observation I
-shall presently make and that bears heavily in general, I think, on
-Flaubert as a painter of life, subject to this restriction he is right;
-which is a proof that a work of art may be markedly open to objection
-and at the same time be rare in its kind, and that when it is perfect to
-this point nothing else particularly matters. “Madame Bovary” has a
-perfection that not only stamps it, but that makes it stand almost
-alone; it holds itself with such a supreme unapproachable assurance as
-both excites and defies judgment. For it deals not in the least, as to
-unapproachability, with things exalted or refined; it only confers on
-its sufficiently vulgar elements of exhibition a final unsurpassable
-form. The form is in _itself_ as interesting, as active, as much of the
-essence of the subject as the idea, and yet so close is its fit and so
-inseparable its life that we catch it at no moment on any errand of its
-own. That verily is to _be_ interesting—all round; that is to be
-genuine and whole. The work is a classic because the thing, such as it
-is, is ideally _done_, and because it shows that in such doing eternal
-beauty may dwell. A pretty young woman who lives, socially and morally
-speaking, in a hole, and who is ignorant, foolish, flimsy, unhappy,
-takes a pair of lovers by whom she is successively deserted; in the
-midst of the bewilderment of which, giving up her husband and her child,
-letting everything go, she sinks deeper into duplicity, debt, despair,
-and arrives on the spot, on the small scene itself of her poor
-depravities, at a pitiful tragic end. In especial she does these things
-while remaining absorbed in romantic intention and vision, and she
-remains absorbed in romantic intention and vision while fairly rolling
-in the dust. That is the triumph of the book as the triumph stands, that
-Emma interests us by the nature of her consciousness and the play of her
-mind, thanks to the reality and beauty with which those sources are
-invested. It is not only that they represent _her_ state; they are so
-true, so observed and felt, and especially so shown, that they represent
-the state, actual or potential, of all persons like her, persons
-romantically determined. Then her setting, the medium in which she
-struggles, becomes in its way as important, becomes eminent with the
-eminence of art; the tiny world in which she revolves, the contracted
-cage in which she flutters, is hung out in space for her, and her
-companions in captivity there are as true as herself.
-
-I have said enough to show what I mean by Flaubert’s having in this
-picture expressed something of his intimate self, given his heroine
-something of his own imagination: a point precisely that brings me back
-to the restriction at which I just now hinted, in which M. Faguet fails
-to indulge and yet which is immediate for the alien reader. Our
-complaint is that Emma Bovary, in spite of the nature of her
-consciousness and in spite of her reflecting so much that of her
-creator, is really too small an affair. This, critically speaking, is in
-view both of the value and the fortune of her history, a wonderful
-circumstance. She associates herself with Frédéric Moreau in
-“L’Éducation” to suggest for us a question that can be answered, I hold,
-only to Flaubert’s detriment. Emma taken alone would possibly not so
-directly press it, but in her company the hero of our author’s second
-study of the “real” drives it home. Why did Flaubert choose, as special
-conduits of the life he proposed to depict, such inferior and in the
-case of Frédéric such abject human specimens? I insist only in respect
-to the latter, the perfection of Madame Bovary scarce leaving one much
-warrant for wishing anything other. Even here, however, the general
-scale and size of Emma, who is small even of her sort, should be a
-warning to hyperbole. If I say that in the matter of Frédéric at all
-events the answer is inevitably detrimental I mean that it weighs
-heavily on our author’s general credit. He wished in each case to make a
-picture of experience—middling experience, it is true—and of the world
-close to him; but if he imagined nothing better for his purpose than
-such a heroine and such a hero, both such limited reflectors and
-registers, we are forced to believe it to have been by a defect of his
-mind. And that sign of weakness remains even if it be objected that the
-images in question were addressed to his purpose better than others
-would have been: the purpose itself then shows as inferior. “L’Éducation
-Sentimentale” is a strange, an indescribable work, about which there
-would be many more things to say than I have space for, and all of them
-of the deepest interest. It is moreover, to simplify my statement, very
-much less satisfying a thing, less pleasing whether in its unity or its
-variety, than its specific predecessor. But take it as we will, for a
-success or a failure—M. Faguet indeed ranks it, by the measure of its
-quantity of intention, a failure, and I on the whole agree with him—the
-personage offered us as bearing the weight of the drama, and in whom we
-are invited to that extent to interest ourselves, leaves us mainly
-wondering what our entertainer could have been thinking of. He takes
-Frédéric Moreau on the threshold of life and conducts him to the extreme
-of maturity without apparently suspecting for a moment either our wonder
-or our protest—“Why, why him?” Frédéric is positively too poor for his
-part, too scant for his charge; and we feel with a kind of
-embarrassment, certainly with a kind of compassion, that it is somehow
-the business of a protagonist to prevent in his designer an excessive
-waste of faith. When I speak of the faith in Emma Bovary as
-proportionately wasted I reflect on M. Faguet’s judgment that she is
-from the point of view of deep interest richly or at least roundedly
-representative. Representative of what? he makes us ask even while
-granting all the grounds of misery and tragedy involved. The plea for
-her is the plea made for all the figures that live without evaporation
-under the painter’s hand—that they are not only particular persons but
-types of their kind, and as valid in one light as in the other. It is
-Emma’s “kind” that I question for this responsibility, even if it be
-inquired of me why I then fail to question that of Charles Bovary, in
-its perfection, or that of the inimitable, the immortal Homais. If we
-express Emma’s deficiency as the poverty of her consciousness for the
-typical function, it is certainly not, one must admit, that she is
-surpassed in this respect either by her platitudinous husband or by his
-friend the pretentious apothecary. The difference is none the less
-somehow in the fact that they are respectively studies but of their
-character and office, which function in each expresses adequately _all_
-they are. It may be, I concede, because Emma is the only woman in the
-book that she is taken by M. Faguet as _femininely_ typical, typical in
-the larger illustrative way, whereas the others pass with him for images
-specifically conditioned. Emma is this same for myself, I plead; she is
-conditioned to such an excess of the specific, and the specific in her
-case leaves out so many even of the commoner elements of conceivable
-life in a woman when we are invited to see that life as pathetic, as
-dramatic agitation, that we challenge both the author’s and the critic’s
-scale of importances. The book is a picture of the middling as much as
-they like, but does Emma attain even to _that_? Hers is a narrow
-middling even for a little imaginative person whose “social”
-significance is small. It is greater on the whole than her capacity of
-consciousness, taking this all round; and so, in a word, we feel her
-less illustrational than she might have been not only if the world had
-offered her more points of contact, but if she had had more of these to
-give it.
-
-We meet Frédéric first, we remain with him long, as a _moyen_, a
-provincial bourgeois of the mid-century, educated and not without
-fortune, thereby with freedom, in whom the life of his day reflects
-itself. Yet the life of his day, on Flaubert’s showing, hangs together
-with the poverty of Frédéric’s own inward or for that matter outward
-life; so that, the whole thing being, for scale, intention and
-extension, a sort of epic of the usual (with the Revolution of 1848
-introduced indeed as an episode,) it affects us as an epic without air,
-without wings to lift it; reminds us in fact more than anything else of
-a huge balloon, all of silk pieces strongly sewn together and patiently
-blown up, but that absolutely refuses to leave the ground. The
-discrimination I here make as against our author is, however, the only
-one inevitable in a series of remarks so brief. What it really
-represents—and nothing could be more curious—is that Frédéric enjoys
-his position not only without the aid of a single “sympathetic”
-character of consequence, but even without the aid of one with whom we
-can directly communicate. Can we communicate with the central personage?
-or would we really if we could? A hundred times no, and if he himself
-can communicate with the people shown us as surrounding him this only
-proves him of their kind. Flaubert on his “real” side was in truth an
-ironic painter, and ironic to a tune that makes his final accepted
-state, his present literary dignity and “classic” peace, superficially
-anomalous. There is an explanation to which I shall immediately come;
-but I find myself feeling for a moment longer in presence of
-“L’Éducation” how much more interesting a writer may be on occasion by
-the given failure than by the given success. Successes pure and simple
-disconnect and dismiss him; failures—though I admit they must be a bit
-qualified—keep him in touch and in relation. Thus it is that as the
-work of a “grand écrivain” “L’Éducation,” large, laboured, immensely
-“written,” with beautiful passages and a general emptiness, with a kind
-of leak in its stored sadness, moreover, by which its moral dignity
-escapes—thus it is that Flaubert’s ill-starred novel is a curiosity for
-a literary museum. Thus it is also that it suggests a hundred
-reflections, and suggests perhaps most of them directly to the intending
-labourer in the same field. If in short, as I have said, Flaubert is the
-novelist’s novelist, this performance does more than any other toward
-making him so.
-
-I have to add in the same connection that I had not lost sight of Madame
-Arnoux, the main ornament of “L’Éducation,” in pronouncing just above on
-its deficiency in the sympathetic. Madame Arnoux is exactly the author’s
-one marked attempt, here or elsewhere, to represent beauty otherwise
-than for the senses, beauty of character and life; and what becomes of
-the attempt is a matter highly significant. M. Faguet praises with
-justice his conception of the figure and of the relation, the relation
-that never bears fruit, that keeps Frédéric adoring her, through
-hindrance and change, from the beginning of life to the end; that keeps
-her, by the same constraint, forever immaculately “good,” from youth to
-age, though deeply moved and cruelly tempted and sorely tried. Her
-contacts with her adorer are not even frequent, in proportion to the
-field of time; her conditions of fortune, of association and occupation
-are almost sordid, and we see them with the march of the drama, such as
-it is, become more and more so; besides which—I again remember that M.
-Faguet excellently notes it—nothing in the nature of “parts” is
-attributed to her; not only is she not presented as clever, she is
-scarce invested with a character at all. Almost nothing that she says is
-repeated, almost nothing that she does is shown. She is an image none
-the less beautiful and vague, an image of passion cherished and abjured,
-renouncing all sustenance and yet persisting in life. Only she has for
-real distinction the extreme drawback that she is offered us quite
-preponderantly through Frédéric’s vision of her, that we see her
-practically in no other light. Now Flaubert unfortunately has not been
-able not so to discredit Frédéric’s vision in general, his vision of
-everyone and everything, and in particular of his own life, that it
-makes a medium good enough to convey adequately a noble impression.
-Madame Arnoux is of course ever so much the best thing in his
-life—which is saying little; but his life is made up of such queer
-material that we find ourselves displeased at her being “in” it on
-whatever terms; all the more that she seems scarcely to affect, improve
-or determine it. Her creator in short never had a more awkward idea than
-this attempt to give us the benefit of such a conception in such a way;
-and even though I have still something else to say about that I may as
-well speak of it at once as a mistake that gravely counts against him.
-It is but one of three, no doubt, in all his work; but I shall not, I
-trust, pass for extravagant if I call it the most indicative. What makes
-it so is its being the least superficial; the two others are, so to
-speak, intellectual, while this is somehow moral. It was a mistake, as I
-have already hinted, to propose to register in so mean a consciousness
-as that of such a hero so large and so mixed a quantity of life as
-“L’Éducation” clearly intends; and it was a mistake of the tragic sort
-that is a theme mainly for silence to have embarked on “Bouvard et
-Pécuchet” at all, not to have given it up sooner than be given up by it.
-But these were at the worst not wholly compromising blunders. What _was_
-compromising—and the great point is that it remained so, that nothing
-has an equal weight against it—is the unconsciousness of error in
-respect to the opportunity that would have counted as his finest. We
-feel not so much that Flaubert misses it, for that we could bear; but
-that he doesn’t _know_ he misses it is what stamps the blunder. We do
-not pretend to say how he might have shown us Madame Arnoux better—that
-was his own affair. What is ours is that he really thought he was
-showing her as well as he could, or as she might be shown; at which we
-veil our face. For once that he had a conception quite apart, apart I
-mean from the array of his other conceptions and more delicate than any,
-he “went,” as we say, and spoiled it. Let me add in all tenderness, and
-to make up for possibly too much insistence, that it is the only stain
-on his shield; let me even confess that I should not wonder if, when all
-is said, it is a blemish no one has ever noticed.
-
-Perhaps no one has ever noticed either what was present to me just above
-as the partial makeweight there glanced at, the fact that in the midst
-of this general awkwardness, as I have called it, there is at the same
-time a danger so escaped as to entitle our author to full credit. I
-scarce know how to put it with little enough of the ungracious, but I
-think that even the true Flaubertist finds himself wondering a little
-that some flaw of taste, some small but unfortunate lapse by the way,
-_should_ as a matter of fact not somehow or somewhere have waited on the
-demonstration of the platonic purity prevailing between this heroine and
-her hero—so far as we do find that image projected. It is alike
-difficult to indicate without offence or to ignore without unkindness a
-fond reader’s apprehension here of a possibility of the wrong touch, the
-just perceptibly false note. I would not have staked my life on
-Flaubert’s security of instinct in such a connection—as an absolutely
-fine and predetermined security; and yet in the event that felicity has
-settled, there is not so much as the lightest wrong breath (speaking of
-the matter in this light of tact and taste) or the shade of a crooked
-stroke. One exclaims at the end of the question “Dear old Flaubert after
-all—!” and perhaps so risks seeming to patronise for fear of not making
-a point. The point made for what it is worth, at any rate, I am the more
-free to recover the benefit of what I mean by critical “tenderness” in
-our general connection—expressing in it as I do our general respect,
-and my own particular, for our author’s method and process and history,
-and my sense of the luxury of such a sentiment at such a vulgar literary
-time. It is a respect positive and settled and the thing that has most
-to do with consecrating for us that loyalty to him as the novelist of
-the novelist—unlike as it is even the best feeling inspired by any
-other member of the craft. He may stand for our operative conscience or
-our vicarious sacrifice; animated by a sense of literary honour,
-attached to an ideal of perfection, incapable of lapsing in fine from a
-self-respect, that enable us to sit at ease, to surrender to the age, to
-indulge in whatever comparative meannesses (and no meanness in art is so
-mean as the sneaking economic,) we may find most comfortable or
-profitable. May it not in truth be said that we practise our industry,
-so many of us, at relatively little cost just _because_ poor Flaubert,
-producing the most expensive fictions ever written, so handsomely paid
-for it? It is as if this put it in our power to produce cheap and
-thereby sell dear; as if, so expressing it, literary honour being by his
-example effectively secure for the firm at large and the general
-concern, on its whole esthetic side, floated once for all, we find our
-individual attention free for literary and esthetic indifference. All
-the while we thus lavish our indifference the spirit of the author of
-“Madame Bovary,” in the cross-light of the old room above the Seine, is
-trying to the last admiration for the thing itself. That production puts
-the matter into a nutshell: “Madame Bovary,” subject to whatever
-qualification, is absolutely the most literary of novels, so literary
-that it covers us with its mantle. It shows us once for all that there
-is no _intrinsic_ call for a debasement of the type. The mantle I speak
-of is wrought with surpassing fineness, and we may always, under stress
-of whatever charge of illiteracy, frivolity, vulgarity, flaunt it as the
-flag of the guild. Let us therefore frankly concede that to surround
-Flaubert with our consideration is the least return we can make for such
-a privilege. The consideration moreover is idle unless it be real,
-unless it be intelligent enough to measure his effort and his success.
-Of the effort as mere effort I have already spoken, of the desperate
-difficulty involved for him in making his form square with his
-conception; and I by no means attach general importance to these secrets
-of the workshop, which are but as the contortions of the fastidious muse
-who is the servant of the oracle. They are really rather secrets of the
-kitchen and contortions of the priestess of _that_ tripod—they are not
-an upstairs matter. It is of their specially distinctive importance I am
-now speaking, of the light shed on them by the results before us.
-
-They all represent the pursuit of a style, of the ideally right one for
-its relations, and would still be interesting if the style had not been
-achieved. “Madame Bovary,” “Salammbô,” “Saint-Antoine,” “L’Éducation”
-are so written and so composed (though the last-named in a minor degree)
-that the more we look at them the more we find in them, under this head,
-a beauty of intention and of effect; the more they figure in the too
-often dreary desert of fictional prose a class by themselves and a
-little living oasis. So far as that desert is of the complexion of our
-own English speech it supplies with remarkable rarity this particular
-source of refreshment. So strikingly is that the case, so scant for the
-most part any dream of a scheme of beauty in these connections, that a
-critic betrayed at artless moments into a plea for composition may find
-himself as blankly met as if his plea were for trigonometry. He makes
-inevitably his reflections, which are numerous enough; one of them being
-that if we turn our back so squarely, so universally to this order of
-considerations it is because the novel is so preponderantly cultivated
-among us by women, in other words by a sex ever gracefully, comfortably,
-enviably unconscious (it would be too much to call them even
-suspicious,) of the requirements of form. The case is at any rate
-sharply enough made for us, or against us, by the circumstance that
-women are held to have achieved on all our ground, in spite of this
-weakness and others, as great results as any. The judgment is
-undoubtedly founded: Jane Austen was instinctive and charming, and the
-other recognitions—even over the heads of the ladies, some of them,
-from Fielding to Pater—are obvious; without, however, in the least
-touching my contention. For signal examples of what composition,
-distribution, arrangement can do, of how they intensify the life of a
-work of art, we have to go elsewhere; and the value of Flaubert for us
-is that he admirably points the moral. This is the explanation of the
-“classic” fortune of “Madame Bovary” in especial, though I may add that
-also of Hérodias and Saint-Julien l’Hospitalier in the “Trois Contes,”
-as well as an aspect of these works endlessly suggestive. I spoke just
-now of the small field of the picture in the longest of them, the small
-capacity, as I called it, of the vessel; yet the way the thing is done
-not only triumphs over the question of value but in respect to it fairly
-misleads and confounds us. Where else shall we find in anything
-proportionately so small such an air of dignity of size? Flaubert _made_
-things big—it was his way, his ambition and his necessity; and I say
-this while remembering that in “L’Éducation” (in proportion I mean
-again,) the effect has not been produced. The subject of “L’Éducation”
-is in spite of Frédéric large, but an indefinable shrinkage has
-overtaken it in the execution. The exception so marked, however, is
-single; “Salammbô” and “Saint-Antoine” are both at once very “heavy”
-conceptions and very consistently and splendidly high applications of a
-manner.
-
-It is in this assured manner that the lesson sits aloft, that the spell
-for the critical reader resides; and if the conviction under which
-Flaubert labours is more and more grossly discredited among us his
-compact mass is but the greater. He regarded the work of art as
-_existing_ but by its expression, and defied us to name any other
-measure of its life that is not a stultification. He held style to be
-accordingly an indefeasible part of it, and found beauty, interest and
-distinction as dependent on it for emergence as a letter committed to
-the post-office is dependent on an addressed envelope. Strange enough it
-may well appear to us to have to apologise for such notions as
-eccentric. There are persons who consider that style comes of itself—we
-see and hear at present, I think, enough of them; and to whom he would
-doubtless have remarked that it goes, of itself, still faster. The thing
-naturally differs in fact with the nature of the imagination; the
-question is one of proprieties and affinities, sympathy and proportion.
-The sympathy of the author of “Salammbô” was all with the magnificent,
-his imagination for the phrase as variously noble or ignoble in itself,
-contribute or destructive, adapted and harmonious or casual and common.
-The worse among such possibilities have been multiplied by the infection
-of bad writing, and he denied that the better ever do anything so
-obliging as to come of themselves. They scarcely indeed for Flaubert
-“came” at all; their arrival was determined only by fasting and prayer
-or by patience of pursuit, the arts of the chase, long waits and
-watches, figuratively speaking, among the peaks or by the waters. The
-production of a book was of course made inordinately slow by the fatigue
-of these measures; in illustration of which his letters often record
-that it has taken him three days[3] to arrive at one right sentence,
-tested by the pitch of his ideal of the right for the suggestion aimed
-at. His difficulties drew from the author, as I have mentioned, much
-resounding complaint; but those voices have ceased to trouble us and the
-final voice remains. No feature of the whole business is more edifying
-than the fact that he in the first place never misses style and in the
-second never appears to have beaten about for it. That betrayal is of
-course the worst betrayal of all, and I think the way he has escaped it
-the happiest form of the peace that has finally visited him. It was
-truly a wonderful success to be so the devotee of the phrase and yet
-never its victim. Fine as he inveterately desired it should be he still
-never lost sight of the question Fine for what? It is always so related
-and associated, so properly part of something else that is in turn part
-of something other, part of a reference, a tone, a passage, a page, that
-the simple may enjoy it for its least bearing and the initiated for its
-greatest. That surely is to be a writer of the first order, to resemble
-when in the hand and however closely viewed a shapely crystal box, and
-yet to be seen when placed on the table and opened to contain
-innumerable compartments, springs and tricks. One is ornamental either
-way, but one is in the second way precious too.
-
-The crystal box then figures the style of “Salammbô” and “Saint-Antoine”
-in a greater degree than that of “Bovary,” because, as the two former
-express the writer’s romantic side, he had in them, while equally
-covering his tracks, still further to fare and still more to hunt.
-Beyond this allusion to their completing his duality I shall not attempt
-closely to characterise them; though I admit that in not insisting on
-them I press most lightly on the scale into which he had in his own view
-cast his greatest pressure. He lamented the doom that drove him so
-oddly, so ruefully, to choose his subjects, but he lamented it least
-when these subjects were most pompous and most exotic, feeling as he did
-that they had then after all most affinity with his special eloquence.
-In dealing with the near, the directly perceived, he had to keep down
-his tone, to make the eloquence small; though with the consequence, as
-we have seen, that in spite of such precautions the whole thing mostly
-insists on being ample. The familiar, that is, under his touch, took on
-character, importance, extension, one scarce knows what to call it, in
-order to carry the style or perhaps rather, as we may say, sit with
-proper ease in the vehicle, and there was accordingly a limit to its
-smallness; whereas in the romantic books, the preferred world of
-Flaubert’s imagination, there was practically no need of compromise. The
-compromise gave him throughout endless trouble, and nothing would be
-more to the point than to show, had I space, why in particular it
-distressed him. It was obviously his strange predicament that the only
-spectacle open to him by experience and direct knowledge was the
-bourgeois, which on that ground imposed on him successively his three so
-intensely bourgeois themes. He was obliged to treat these themes, which
-he hated, because his experience left him no alternative; his only
-alternative was given by history, geography, philosophy, fancy, the
-world of erudition and of imagination, the world especially of this
-last. In the bourgeois sphere his ideal of expression laboured under
-protest; in the other, the imagined, the projected, his need for facts,
-for matter, and his pursuit of them, sat no less heavily. But as his
-style all the while required a certain exercise of pride he was on the
-whole more at home in the exotic than in the familiar; he escaped above
-all in the former connection the associations, the disparities he
-detested. He could be frankly noble in “Salammbô” and “Saint-Antoine,”
-whereas in “Bovary” and “L’Éducation” he could be but circuitously and
-insidiously so. He could in the one case cut his coat according to his
-cloth—if we mean by his cloth his predetermined tone, while in the
-other he had to take it already cut. Singular enough in his life the
-situation so constituted: the comparatively meagre human
-consciousness—for we must come back to that in him—struggling with the
-absolutely large artistic; and the large artistic half wreaking itself
-on the meagre human and half seeking a refuge from it, as well as a
-revenge against it, in something quite different.
-
-Flaubert had in fact command of two refuges which he worked in turn. The
-first of these was the attitude of irony, so constant in him that
-“L’Éducation” bristles and hardens with it and “Bouvard et
-Pécuchet”—strangest of “poetic” justices—is made as dry as sand and as
-heavy as lead; the second only was, by processes, by journeys the most
-expensive, to get away altogether. And we inevitably ask ourselves
-whether, eschewing the policy of flight, he might not after all have
-fought out his case a little more on the spot. Might he not have
-addressed himself to the human still otherwise than in “L’Éducation” and
-in “Bouvard”? When one thinks of the view of the life of his country, of
-the vast French community and its constituent creatures, offered in
-these productions, one declines to believe it could make up the _whole_
-vision of a man of his quality. Or when all was said and done was he
-absolutely and exclusively condemned to irony? The second refuge I speak
-of, the getting away from the human, the congruously and measurably
-human, altogether, perhaps becomes in the light of this possibility but
-an irony the more. Carthage and the Thebaid, Salammbô, Spendius, Matho,
-Hannon, Saint Anthony, Hilarion, the Paternians, the Marcosians and the
-Carpocratians, what are all these, inviting because queer, but a
-confession of supreme impatience with the actual and the near, often
-queer enough too, no doubt, but not consolingly, not transcendently?
-Last remains the question whether, even if our author’s immediate as
-distinguished from his remote view had had more reach, the particular
-gift we claim for him, the perfection of arrangement and form, would
-have had in certain directions the acquired flexibility. States of mind,
-states of soul, of the simpler kind, the kinds supposable in the Emma
-Bovarys, the Frédérics, the Bouvards and the Pécuchets, to say nothing
-of the Carthaginians and the Eremites—for Flaubert’s eremites are
-eminently artless—these conditions represent, I think, his proved
-psychological range. And that throws us back remarkably, almost
-confoundingly, upon another face of the general anomaly. The “gift” was
-of the greatest, a force in itself, in virtue of which he is a
-consummate writer; and yet there are whole sides of life to which it was
-never addressed and which it apparently quite failed to suspect as a
-field of exercise. If he never approached the complicated character in
-man or woman—Emma Bovary is not the least little bit complicated—or
-the really furnished, the finely civilised, was this because,
-surprisingly, he could not? _L’âme française_ at all events shows in him
-but ill.
-
-This undoubtedly marks a limit, but limits are for the critic familiar
-country, and he may mostly well feel the prospect wide enough when he
-finds something positively well enough done. By disposition or by
-obligation Flaubert selected, and though his selection was in some
-respects narrow he stops not too short to have left us three really
-“cast” works and a fourth of several perfect parts, to say nothing of
-the element of perfection, of the superlative for the size, in his three
-_nouvelles_. What he attempted he attempted in a spirit that gives an
-extension to the idea of the achievable and the achieved in a literary
-thing, and it is by this that we contentedly gauge the matter. As
-success goes in this world of the approximate it may pass for success of
-the greatest. If I am unable to pursue the proof of my remark in
-“Salammbô” and “Saint-Antoine” it is because I have also had to select
-and have found the questions connected with their two companions more
-interesting. There are numerous judges, I hasten to mention, who,
-showing the opposite preference, lose themselves with rapture in the
-strange bristling archæological picture—yet all amazingly vivified and
-co-ordinated—of the Carthaginian mercenaries in revolt and the sacred
-veil of the great goddess profaned and stolen; as well in the still more
-peopled panorama of the ancient sects, superstitions and mythologies
-that swim in the desert before the fevered eyes of the Saint. One may be
-able, however, at once to breathe more freely in “Bovary” than in
-“Salammbô” and yet to hope that there is no intention of the latter that
-one has missed. The great intention certainly, and little as we may be
-sweetly beguiled, holds us fast; which is simply the author’s
-indomitable purpose of fully pervading his field. There are countries
-beyond the sea in which tracts are allowed to settlers on condition that
-they will really, not nominally, cultivate them. Flaubert is on his
-romantic ground like one of these settlers; he makes good with all his
-might his title to his tract, and in a way that shows how it is not only
-for him a question of safety but a question of honour. Honour demands
-that he shall set up his home and his faith there in such a way that
-every inch of the surface be planted or paved. He would have been
-ashamed merely to encamp and, after the fashion of most other
-adventurers, knock up a log hut among charred stumps. This was not what
-would have been for him taking artistic possession, it was not what
-would have been for him even personal honour, let alone literary; and
-yet the general lapse from integrity was a thing that, wherever he
-looked, he saw not only condoned but acclaimed and rewarded. He lived,
-as he felt, in an age of mean production and cheap criticism, the
-practical upshot of which took on for him a name that was often on his
-lips. He called it the hatred of literature, a hatred in the midst of
-which, the most literary of men, he found himself appointed to suffer. I
-may not, however, follow him in that direction—which would take us far;
-and the less that he was for himself after all, in spite of groans and
-imprecations, a man of resources and remedies, and that there was always
-his possibility of building himself in.
-
-This he did equally in all his books—built himself into literature by
-means of a material put together with extraordinary art; but it leads me
-again to the question of what such a stiff ideal imposed on him for the
-element of exactitude. This element, in the romantic, was his merciless
-law; it was perhaps even in the romantic that—if there could indeed be
-degrees for him in such matters—he most despised the loose and the
-more-or-less. To be intensely definite and perfectly positive, to know
-so well what he meant that he could at every point strikingly and
-conclusively verify it, was the first of his needs; and if in addition
-to being thus synthetically final he could be strange and sad and
-terrible, and leave the cause of these effects inscrutable, success then
-had for him its highest savour. We feel the inscrutability in those
-memorable few words that put before us Frédéric Moreau’s start upon his
-vain course of travel, “Il connût alors la mélancholie des paquebots;”
-an image to the last degree comprehensive and embracing, but which
-haunts us, in its droll pathos, without our quite knowing why. But he
-was really never so pleased as when he could be both rare and precise
-about the dreadful. His own sense of all this, as I have already
-indicated, was that beauty comes with expression, that expression is
-creation, that it _makes_ the reality, and only in the degree in which
-it _is_, exquisitely, expression; and that we move in literature through
-a world of different values and relations, a blest world in which we
-know nothing except by style, but in which also everything is saved by
-it, and in which the image is thus always superior to the thing itself.
-This quest and multiplication of the image, the image tested and
-warranted and consecrated for the occasion, was accordingly his high
-elegance, to which he too much sacrificed and to which “Salammbô” and
-partly “Saint-Antoine” are monstrous monuments. Old cruelties and
-perversities, old wonders and errors and terrors, endlessly appealed to
-him; they constitute the unhuman side of his work, and if we have not
-the bribe of curiosity, of a lively interest in method, or rather in
-evocation just _as_ evocation, we tread our way among them, especially
-in “Salammbô,” with a reserve too dry for our pleasure. To my own view
-the curiosity and the literary interest are equal in dealing with the
-non-romantic books, and the world presented, the aspects and agents, are
-less deterrent and more amenable both to our own social and expressional
-terms. Style itself moreover, with all respect to Flaubert, never
-_totally_ beguiles; since even when we are so queerly constituted as to
-be ninety-nine parts literary we are still a hundredth part something
-else. This hundredth part may, once we possess the book—or the book
-possesses us—make us imperfect as readers, and yet without it should we
-want or get the book at all? The curiosity at any rate, to repeat, is
-even greatest for me in “Madame Bovary,” say, for here I can measure,
-can more directly appreciate, the terms. The aspects and impressions
-being of an experience conceivable to me I am more touched by the
-beauty; my interest gets more of the benefit of the beauty even though
-this be not intrinsically greater. Which brings back our appreciation
-inevitably at last to the question of our author’s lucidity.
-
-I have sufficiently remarked that I speak from the point of view of his
-interest to a reader of his own craft, the point of view of his
-extraordinary technical wealth—though indeed when I think of the
-general power of “Madame Bovary” I find myself desiring not to narrow
-the ground of the lesson, not to connect the lesson, to its prejudice,
-with that idea of the “technical,” that question of the way a thing is
-done, so abhorrent, as a call upon attention, in whatever art, to the
-wondrous Anglo-Saxon mind. Without proposing Flaubert as the type of the
-newspaper novelist, or as an easy alternative to golf or the bicycle, we
-should do him less than justice in failing to insist that a masterpiece
-like “Madame Bovary” may benefit even with the simple-minded by the way
-it has been done. It derives from its firm roundness that sign of all
-rare works that there is something in it for every one. It may be read
-ever so attentively, ever so freely, without a suspicion of how it is
-written, to say nothing of put together; it may equally be read under
-the excitement of these perceptions alone, one of the greatest known to
-the reader who is fully open to them. Both readers will have been
-transported, which is all any can ask. Leaving the first of them,
-however that may be, to state the case for himself, I state it yet again
-for the second, if only on this final ground. The book and its
-companions represent for us a practical solution, Flaubert’s own
-troubled but settled one, of the eternal dilemma of the painter of life.
-From the moment this rash adventurer deals with his mysterious matter at
-all directly his desire is not to deal with it stintedly. It at the same
-time remains true that from the moment he desires to produce forms in
-which it shall be preserved, he desires that these forms, things of
-_his_ creation, shall not be, as testifying to his way with them, weak
-or ignoble. He must make them complete and beautiful, of satisfactory
-production, intrinsically interesting, under peril of disgrace with
-those who know. Those who don’t know of course don’t count for him, and
-it neither helps nor hinders him to say that every one knows about life.
-Every one does not—it is distinctly the case of the few; and if it were
-in fact the case of the many the knowledge still might exist, on the
-evidence around us, even in an age of unprecedented printing, without
-attesting itself by a multiplication of masterpieces. The question for
-the artist can only be of doing the artistic utmost, and thereby of
-_seeing_ the general task. When it is seen with the intensity with which
-it presented itself to Flaubert a lifetime is none too much for fairly
-tackling it. It must either be left alone or be dealt with, and to leave
-it alone is a comparatively simple matter.
-
-To deal with it is on the other hand to produce a certain number of
-finished works; there being no other known method; and the quantity of
-life depicted will depend on this array. What will this array, however,
-depend on, and what will condition the number of pieces of which it is
-composed? The “finish,” evidently, that the formula so glibly postulates
-and for which the novelist is thus so handsomely responsible. He has on
-the one side to feel his subject and on the other side to render it, and
-there are undoubtedly two ways in which his situation may be expressed,
-especially perhaps by himself. The more he feels his subject the more he
-_can_ render it—that is the first way. The more he renders it the more
-he _can_ feel it—that is the second way. This second way was
-unmistakeably Flaubert’s, and if the result of it for him was a bar to
-abundant production he could only accept such an incident as part of the
-game. He probably for that matter would have challenged any easy
-definition of “abundance,” contested the application of it to the
-repetition, however frequent, of the thing not “done.” What but the
-“doing” makes the thing, he would have asked, and how can a positive
-result from a mere iteration of negatives, or wealth proceed from the
-simple addition of so many instances of penury? We should here, in
-closer communion with him, have got into his highly characteristic and
-suggestive view of the fertilisation of subject by form, penetration of
-the sense, ever, by the expression—the latter reacting creatively on
-the former; a conviction in the light of which he appears to have
-wrought with real consistency and which borrows from him thus its high
-measure of credit. It would undoubtedly have suffered if his books had
-been things of a loose logic, whereas we refer to it not only without
-shame but with an encouraged confidence by their showing of a logic so
-close. Let the phrase, the form that the whole is at the given moment
-staked on, be beautiful and related, and the rest will take care of
-itself—such is a rough indication of Flaubert’s faith; which has the
-importance that it was a faith sincere, active and inspiring. I hasten
-to add indeed that we must most of all remember how in these matters
-everything hangs on definitions. The “beautiful,” with our author,
-covered for the phrase a great deal of ground, and when every sort of
-propriety had been gathered in under it and every relation, in a
-complexity of such, protected, the idea itself, the presiding thought,
-ended surely by being pretty well provided for.
-
-These, however, are subordinate notes, and the plain question, in the
-connection I have touched upon, is of whether we would really wish him
-to have written more books, say either of the type of “Bovary” or of the
-type of “Salammbô,” and not have written them so well. When the
-production of a great artist who has lived a length of years has been
-small there is always the regret; but there is seldom, any more than
-here, the conceivable remedy. For the case is doubtless predetermined by
-the particular kind of great artist a writer happens to be, and this
-even if when we come to the conflict, to the historic case, deliberation
-and delay may not all have been imposed by temperament. The admirable
-George Sand, Flaubert’s beneficent friend and correspondent, is exactly
-the happiest example we could find of the genius constitutionally
-incapable of worry, the genius for whom style “came,” for whom the
-sought effect was ever quickly and easily struck off, the book freely
-and swiftly written, and who consequently is represented for us by
-upwards of ninety volumes. If the comparison were with this lady’s great
-contemporary the elder Dumas the disparity would be quadrupled, but that
-ambiguous genius, somehow never really caught by us in the _fact_ of
-composition, is out of our concern here: the issue is of those
-developments of expression which involve a style, and as Dumas never so
-much as once grazed one in all his long career, there was not even
-enough of that grace in him for a fillip of the finger-nail. Flaubert is
-at any rate represented by six books, so that he may on that estimate
-figure as poor, while Madame Sand, falling so little short of a hundred,
-figures as rich; and yet the fact remains that I can refer the congenial
-mind to him with confidence and can do nothing of the sort for it in
-respect to Madame Sand. She is loose and liquid and iridescent, as
-iridescent as we may undertake to find her; but I can imagine
-compositions quite without virtue—the virtue I mean, of sticking
-together—begotten by the impulse to emulate her. She had undoubtedly
-herself the benefit of her facility, but are we not left wondering to
-what extent _we_ have it? There is too little in her, by the literary
-connection, for the critical mind, weary of much wandering, to rest
-upon. Flaubert himself wandered, wandered far, went much roundabout and
-sometimes lost himself by the way, but how handsomely he provided for
-our present repose! He found the French language inconceivably difficult
-to write with elegance and was confronted with the equal truths that
-elegance is the last thing that languages, even as they most mature,
-seem to concern themselves with, and that at the same time taste,
-asserting rights, insists on it, to the effect of showing us in a
-boundless circumjacent waste of effort what the absence of it may mean.
-He saw the less of this desert of death come back to that—that
-everything at all saved from it for us since the beginning had been
-saved by a soul of elegance within, or in other words by the last
-refinement of selection, by the indifference on the part of the very
-idiom, huge quite other than “composing” agent, to the individual
-pretension. Recognising thus that to carry through the individual
-pretension is at the best a battle, he adored a hard surface and
-detested a soft one—much more a muddled; regarded a style without
-rhythm and harmony as in a work of pretended beauty no style at all. He
-considered that the failure of complete expression so registered made of
-the work of pretended beauty a work of achieved barbarity. It would take
-us far to glance even at his fewest discriminations; but rhythm and
-harmony were for example most menaced in his scheme by repetition—when
-repetition had not a positive grace; and were above all most at the
-mercy of the bristling particles of which our modern tongues are mainly
-composed and which make of the desired surface a texture pricked
-through, from beneath, even to destruction, as by innumerable thorns.
-
-On these lines production was of course slow work for him—especially as
-he met the difficulty, met it with an inveteracy which shows how it
-_can_ be met; and full of interest for readers of English speech is the
-reflection he causes us to make as to the possibility of success at all
-comparable among ourselves. I have spoken of his groans and
-imprecations, his interminable waits and deep despairs; but what would
-these things have been, what would have become of him and what of his
-wrought residuum, had he been condemned to deal with a form of speech
-consisting, like ours, as to one part, of “that” and “which”; as to a
-second part, of the blest “it,” which an English sentence may repeat in
-three or four opposed references without in the least losing caste; as
-to a third face of all the “tos” of the infinitive and the preposition;
-as to a fourth of our precious auxiliaries “be” and “do”; and as to a
-fifth, of whatever survives in the language for the precious art of
-pleasing? Whether or no the fact that the painter of “life” among us has
-to contend with a medium intrinsically indocile, on certain sides, like
-our own, whether this drawback accounts for his having failed, in our
-time, to treat us, arrested and charmed, to a single case of crowned
-classicism, there is at any rate no doubt that we in some degree owe
-Flaubert’s counter-weight for that deficiency to _his_ having, on his
-own ground, more happily triumphed. By which I do not mean that “Madame
-Bovary” is a classic because the “thats,” the “its” and the “tos” are
-made to march as Orpheus and his lute made the beasts, but because the
-element of order and harmony works as a symbol of everything else that
-is preserved for us by the history of the book. The history of the book
-remains the lesson and the important, the delightful thing, remains
-above all the drama that moves slowly to its climax. It is what we come
-back to for the sake of what it shows us. We see—from the present to
-the past indeed, never alas from the present to the future—how a
-classic almost inveterately grows. Unimportant, unnoticed, or, so far as
-noticed, contested, unrelated, alien, it has a cradle round which the
-fairies but scantly flock and is waited on in general by scarce a hint
-of significance. The significance comes by a process slow and small, the
-fact only that one perceptive private reader after another discovers at
-his convenience that the book is rare. The addition of the perceptive
-private readers is no quick affair, and would doubtless be a vain one
-did they not—while plenty of other much more remarkable books come and
-go—accumulate and count. They count by their quality and continuity of
-attention; so they have gathered for “Madame Bovary,” and so they are
-held. That is really once more the great circumstance. It is always in
-order for us to feel yet again what it is we are held by. Such is my
-reason, definitely, for speaking of Flaubert as the novelist’s novelist.
-Are we not moreover—and let it pass this time as a happy hope!—pretty
-well all novelists now?
-
------
-
-Footnote 2:
-
-On the occasion of these prefatory remarks to a translation of “Madame
-Bovary,” appearing in A Century of French Romance, under the auspices of
-Mr. Edmund Gosse and Mr. William Heinemann, in 1902.
-
-Footnote 3:
-
-It was true, delightfully true, that, extravagance in this province of
-his life, though apparently in no other, being Flaubert’s necessity and
-law, he deliberated and hung fire, wrestled, retreated and returned,
-indulged generally in a tragi-comedy of waste; which I recall a charming
-expression of on the lips of Edmond de Goncourt, who quite recognised
-the heroic legend, but prettily qualified it: “Il faut vous dire qu’il y
-avait là-dedans beaucoup de coucheries et d’école buissonière.” And he
-related how on the occasion of a stay with his friend under the roof of
-the Princess Mathilde, the friend, missed during the middle hours of a
-fine afternoon, was found to have undressed himself and gone to bed to
-think!
-
-
-
-
- HONORÉ DE BALZAC
- 1902
-
-
- I
-
-Stronger than ever, even than under the spell of first acquaintance and
-of the early time, is the sense—thanks to a renewal of intimacy and, I
-am tempted to say, of loyalty—that Balzac stands signally apart, that
-he is the first and foremost member of his craft, and that above all the
-Balzac-lover is in no position till he has cleared the ground by saying
-so. The Balzac-lover alone, for that matter, is worthy to have his word
-on so happy an occasion as this[4] about the author of “La Comédie
-Humaine,” and it is indeed not easy to see how the amount of attention
-so inevitably induced could at the worst have failed to find itself
-turning to an act of homage. I have been deeply affected, to be frank,
-by the mere refreshment of memory, which has brought in its train
-moreover consequences critical and sentimental too numerous to figure
-here in their completeness. The authors and the books that have, as we
-say, done something for us, become part of the answer to our curiosity
-when our curiosity had the freshness of youth, these particular agents
-exist for us, with the lapse of time, as the substance itself of
-knowledge: they have been intellectually so swallowed, digested and
-assimilated that we take their general use and suggestion for granted,
-cease to be aware of them because they have passed out of sight. But
-they have passed out of sight simply by having passed into our lives.
-They have become a part of our personal history, a part of ourselves,
-very often, so far as we may have succeeded in best expressing
-ourselves. Endless, however, are the uses of great persons and great
-things, and it may easily happen in these cases that the connection,
-even as an “excitement”—the form mainly of the connections of youth—is
-never really broken. We have largely been living on our
-benefactor—which is the highest acknowledgment one can make; only,
-thanks to a blest law that operates in the long run to rekindle
-excitement, we are accessible to the sense of having neglected him. Even
-when we may not constantly have read him over the neglect is quite an
-illusion, but the illusion perhaps prepares us for the finest emotion we
-are to have owed to the acquaintance. Without having abandoned or denied
-our author we yet come expressly back to him, and if not quite in
-tatters and in penitence like the Prodigal Son, with something at all
-events of the tenderness with which we revert to the parental threshold
-and hearthstone, if not, more fortunately, to the parental presence. The
-beauty of this adventure, that of seeing the dust blown off a relation
-that had been put away as on a shelf, almost out of reach, at the back
-of one’s mind, consists in finding the precious object not only fresh
-and intact, but with its firm lacquer still further figured, gilded and
-enriched. It is all overscored with traces and impressions—vivid,
-definite, almost as valuable as itself—of the recognitions and
-agitations it originally produced in us. Our old—that is our
-young—feelings are very nearly what page after page most gives us. The
-case has become a case of authority _plus_ association. If Balzac in
-himself is indubitably wanting in the sufficiently common felicity we
-know as charm, it is this association that may on occasion contribute
-the grace.
-
-The impression then, confirmed and brightened, is of the mass and weight
-of the figure and of the extent of ground it occupies; a tract on which
-we might all of us together quite pitch our little tents, open our
-little booths, deal in our little wares, and not materially either
-diminish the area or impede the circulation of the occupant. I seem to
-see him in such an image moving about as Gulliver among the pigmies, and
-not less good-natured than Gulliver for the exercise of any function,
-without exception, that can illustrate his larger life. The first and
-the last word about the author of “Les Contes Drolatiques” is that of
-all novelists he is the most serious—by which I am far from meaning
-that in the human comedy as he shows it the comic is an absent quantity.
-His sense of the comic was on the scale of his extraordinary senses in
-general, though his expression of it suffers perhaps exceptionally from
-that odd want of elbow-room—the penalty somehow of his close-packed,
-pressed-down contents—which reminds us of some designedly beautiful
-thing but half-disengaged from the clay or the marble. It is the scheme
-and the scope that are supreme in him, applying this moreover not to
-mere great intention, but to the concrete form, the proved case, in
-which we possess them. We most of us aspire to achieve at the best but a
-patch here and there, to pluck a sprig or a single branch, to break
-ground in a corner of the great garden of life. Balzac’s plan was simply
-to do everything that could be done. He proposed to himself to “turn
-over” the great garden from north to south and from east to west; a
-task—immense, heroic, to this day immeasurable—that he bequeathed us
-the partial performance of, a prodigious ragged clod, in the twenty
-monstrous years representing his productive career, years of
-concentration and sacrifice the vision of which still makes us ache. He
-had indeed a striking good fortune, the only one he was to enjoy as an
-harassed and exasperated worker: the great garden of life presented
-itself to him absolutely and exactly in the guise of the great garden of
-France, a subject vast and comprehensive enough, yet with definite edges
-and corners. This identity of his universal with his local and national
-vision is the particular thing we should doubtless call his greatest
-strength were we preparing agreeably to speak of it also as his visible
-weakness. Of Balzac’s weaknesses, however, it takes some assurance to
-talk; there is always plenty of time for them; they are the last signs
-we know him by—such things truly as in other painters of manners often
-come under the head of mere exuberance of energy. So little in short do
-they earn the invidious name even when we feel them as defects.
-
-What he did above all was to read the universe, as hard and as loud as
-he could, _into_ the France of his time; his own eyes regarding his work
-as at once the drama of man and a mirror of the mass of social phenomena
-the most rounded and registered, most organised and administered, and
-thereby most exposed to systematic observation and portrayal, that the
-world had seen. There are happily other interesting societies, but these
-are for schemes of such an order comparatively loose and incoherent,
-with more extent and perhaps more variety, but with less of the great
-enclosed and exhibited quality, less neatness and sharpness of
-arrangement, fewer categories, sub-divisions, juxtapositions. Balzac’s
-France was both inspiring enough for an immense prose epic and reducible
-enough for a report or a chart. To allow his achievement all its dignity
-we should doubtless say also treatable enough for a history, since it
-was as a patient historian, a Benedictine of the actual, the living
-painter of his living time, that he regarded himself and handled his
-material. All painters of manners and fashions, if we will, are
-historians, even when they least don the uniform: Fielding, Dickens,
-Thackeray, George Eliot, Hawthorne among ourselves. But the great
-difference between the great Frenchman and the eminent others is that,
-with an imagination of the highest power, an unequalled intensity of
-vision, he saw his subject in the light of science as well, in the light
-of the bearing of all its parts on each other, and under pressure of a
-passion for exactitude, an appetite, the appetite of an ogre, for _all_
-the kinds of facts. We find I think in the union here suggested
-something like the truth about his genius, the nearest approach to a
-final account of him. Of imagination on one side all compact, he was on
-the other an insatiable reporter of the immediate, the material, the
-current combination, and perpetually moved by the historian’s impulse to
-fix, preserve and explain them. One asks one’s self as one reads him
-what concern the poet has with so much arithmetic and so much criticism,
-so many statistics and documents, what concern the critic and the
-economist have with so many passions, characters and adventures. The
-contradiction is always before us; it springs from the inordinate scale
-of the author’s two faces; it explains more than anything else his
-eccentricities and difficulties. It accounts for his want of grace, his
-want of the lightness associated with an amusing literary form, his
-bristling surface, his closeness of texture, so rough with richness, yet
-so productive of the effect we have in mind when we speak of not being
-able to see the wood for the trees.
-
-A thorough-paced votary, for that matter, can easily afford to declare
-at once that this confounding duality of character does more things
-still, or does at least the most important of all—introduces us without
-mercy (mercy for ourselves I mean) to the oddest truth we could have
-dreamed of meeting in such a connection. It was certainly _a priori_ not
-to be expected we should feel it of him, but our hero is after all not
-in his magnificence totally an artist: which would be the strangest
-thing possible, one must hasten to add, were not the smallness of the
-practical difference so made even stranger. His endowment and his effect
-are each so great that the anomaly makes at the most a difference only
-by adding to his interest for the critic. The critic worth his salt is
-indiscreetly curious and wants ever to know how and why—whereby Balzac
-is thus a still rarer case for him, suggesting that exceptional
-curiosity may have exceptional rewards. The question of what makes the
-artist on a great scale is interesting enough; but we feel it in
-Balzac’s company to be nothing to the question of what on an equal scale
-frustrates him. The scattered pieces, the _disjecta membra_ of the
-character are here so numerous and so splendid that they prove
-misleading; we pile them together, and the heap assuredly is monumental;
-it forms an overtopping figure. The genius this figure stands for, none
-the less, is really such a lesson to the artist as perfection itself
-would be powerless to give; it carries him so much further into the
-special mystery. Where it carries him, at the same time, I must not in
-this scant space attempt to say—which would be a loss of the fine
-thread of my argument. I stick to our point in putting it, more
-concisely, that the artist of the Comédie Humaine is half smothered by
-the historian. Yet it belongs as well to the matter also to meet the
-question of whether the historian himself may not be an artist—in which
-case Balzac’s catastrophe would seem to lose its excuse. The answer of
-course is that the reporter, however philosophic, has one law, and the
-originator, however substantially fed, has another; so that the two laws
-can with no sort of harmony or congruity make, for the finer sense, a
-common household. Balzac’s catastrophe—so to name it once again—was in
-this perpetual conflict and final impossibility, an impossibility that
-explains his defeat on the classic side and extends so far at times as
-to make us think of his work as, from the point of view of beauty, a
-tragic waste of effort.
-
-What it would come to, we judge, is that the irreconcilability of the
-two kinds of law is, more simply expressed, but the irreconcilability of
-two different ways of composing one’s effect. The principle of
-composition that his free imagination would have, or certainly might
-have, handsomely imposed on him is perpetually dislocated by the quite
-opposite principle of the earnest seeker, the inquirer to a useful end,
-in whom nothing is free but a born antipathy to his yoke-fellow. Such a
-production as “Le Curé de Village,” the wonderful story of Madame
-Graslin, so nearly a masterpiece yet so ultimately not one, would be, in
-this connection, could I take due space for it, a perfect illustration.
-If, as I say, Madame Graslin’s creator was confined by his doom to
-patches and pieces, no piece is finer than the first half of the book in
-question, the half in which the picture is determined by his unequalled
-power of putting people on their feet, planting them before us in their
-habit as they lived—a faculty nourished by observation as much as one
-will, but with the inner vision all the while wide-awake, the vision for
-which ideas are as living as facts and assume an equal intensity. This
-intensity, greatest indeed in the facts, has in Balzac a force all its
-own, to which none other in any novelist I know can be likened. His
-touch communicates on the spot to the object, the creature evoked, the
-hardness and permanence that certain substances, some sorts of stone,
-acquire by exposure to the air. The hardening medium, for the image
-soaked in it, is the air of his mind. It would take but little more to
-make the peopled world of fiction as we know it elsewhere affect us by
-contrast as a world of rather gray pulp. This mixture of the solid and
-the vivid is Balzac at his best, and it prevails without a break,
-without a note not admirably true, in “Le Curé de Village”—since I have
-named that instance—up to the point at which Madame Graslin moves out
-from Limoges to Montégnac in her ardent passion of penitence, her
-determination to expiate her strange and undiscovered association with a
-dark misdeed by living and working for others. Her drama is a
-particularly inward one, interesting, and in the highest degree, so long
-as she herself, her nature, her behaviour, her personal history and the
-relations in which they place her, control the picture and feed our
-illusion. The firmness with which the author makes them play this part,
-the whole constitution of the scene and of its developments from the
-moment we cross the threshold of her dusky stuffy old-time birth-house,
-is a rare delight, producing in the reader that sense of local and
-material immersion which is one of Balzac’s supreme secrets. What
-characteristically befalls, however, is that the spell accompanies us
-but part of the way—only until, at a given moment, his attention
-ruthlessly transfers itself from inside to outside, from the centre of
-his subject to its circumference.
-
-This is Balzac caught in the very fact of his monstrous duality, caught
-in his most complete self-expression. He is clearly quite unwitting that
-in handing over his _data_ to his twin-brother the impassioned economist
-and surveyor, the insatiate general inquirer and reporter, he is in any
-sort betraying our confidence, for his good conscience at such times,
-the spirit of edification in him, is a lesson even to the best of us,
-his rich robust temperament nowhere more striking, no more marked
-anywhere the great push of the shoulder with which he makes his theme
-move, overcharged though it may be like a carrier’s van. It is not
-therefore assuredly that he loses either sincerity or power in putting
-before us to the last detail such a matter as, in this case, his
-heroine’s management of her property, her tenantry, her economic
-opportunities and visions, for these are cases in which he never shrinks
-nor relents, in which positively he stiffens and terribly towers—to
-remind us again of M. Taine’s simplifying word about his being an artist
-doubled with a man of business. Balzac was indeed doubled if ever a
-writer was, and to that extent that we almost as often, while we read,
-feel ourselves thinking of him as a man of business doubled with an
-artist. Whichever way we turn it the oddity never fails, nor the wonder
-of the ease with which either character bears the burden of the other. I
-use the word burden because, as the fusion is never complete—witness in
-the book before us the fatal break of “tone,” the one unpardonable sin
-for the novelist—we are beset by the conviction that but for this
-strangest of dooms one or other of the two partners might, to our relief
-and to his own, have been disembarrassed. The disembarrassment, for
-each, by a more insidious fusion, would probably have conduced to the
-mastership of interest proceeding from form, or at all events to the
-search for it, that Balzac fails to embody. Perhaps the possibility of
-an artist constructed on such strong lines is one of those fine things
-that are not of this world, a mere dream of the fond critical spirit.
-Let these speculations and condonations at least pass as the amusement,
-as a result of the high spirits—if high spirits be the word—of the
-reader feeling himself again in touch. It was not of our author’s
-difficulties—that is of his difficulty, the great one—that I proposed
-to speak, but of his immense clear action. Even that is not truly an
-impression of ease, and it is strange and striking that we are in fact
-so attached by his want of the unity that keeps surfaces smooth and
-dangers down as scarce to feel sure at any moment that we shall not come
-back to it with most curiosity. We are never so curious about successes
-as about interesting failures. The more reason therefore to speak
-promptly, and once for all, of the scale on which, in its own quarter of
-his genius, success worked itself out for him.
-
-It is to that I _should_ come back—to the infinite reach in him of the
-painter and the poet. We can never know what might have become of him
-with less importunity in his consciousness of the machinery of life, of
-its furniture and fittings, of all that, right and left, he causes to
-assail us, sometimes almost to suffocation, under the general rubric of
-_things_. Things, in this sense with him, are at once our delight and
-our despair; we pass from being inordinately beguiled and convinced by
-them to feeling that his universe fairly smells too much of them, that
-the larger ether, the diviner air, is in peril of finding among them
-scarce room to circulate. His landscapes, his “local colour”—thick in
-his pages at a time when it was to be found in his pages almost
-alone—his towns, his streets, his houses, his Saumurs, Angoulêmes,
-Guérandes, his great prose Turner-views of the land of the Loire, his
-rooms, shops, interiors, details of domesticity and traffic, are a short
-list of the terms into which he saw the real as clamouring to be
-rendered and into which he rendered it with unequalled authority. It
-would be doubtless more to the point to make our profit of this
-consummation than to try to reconstruct a Balzac planted more in the
-open. We hardly, as the case stands, know most whether to admire in such
-an example as the short tale of “La Grenadière” the exquisite feeling
-for “natural objects” with which it overflows like a brimming wine-cup,
-the energy of perception and description which so multiplies them for
-beauty’s sake and for the love of their beauty, or the general wealth of
-genius that can calculate, or at least count, so little and spend so
-joyously. The tale practically exists for the sake of the enchanting
-aspects involved—those of the embowered white house that nestles on its
-terraced hill above the great French river, and we can think, frankly,
-of no one else with an equal amount of business on his hands who would
-either have so put himself out for aspects or made them almost by
-themselves a living subject. A born son of Touraine, it must be said, he
-pictures his province, on every pretext and occasion, with filial
-passion and extraordinary breadth. The prime aspect in his scene all the
-while, it must be added, is the money aspect. The general money question
-so loads him up and weighs him down that he moves through the human
-comedy, from beginning to end, very much in the fashion of a camel, the
-ship of the desert, surmounted with a cargo. “Things” for him are francs
-and centimes more than any others, and I give up as inscrutable,
-unfathomable, the nature, the peculiar avidity of his interest in them.
-It makes us wonder again and again what then is the use on Balzac’s
-scale of the divine faculty. The imagination, as we all know, may be
-employed up to a certain point in inventing uses for money; but its
-office beyond that point is surely to make us forget that anything so
-odious exists. This is what Balzac never forgot; his universe goes on
-expressing itself for him, to its furthest reaches, on its finest sides,
-in the terms of the market. To say these things, however, is after all
-to come out where we want, to suggest his extraordinary scale and his
-terrible completeness. I am not sure that he does not see character too,
-see passion, motive, personality, as quite in the order of the “things”
-we have spoken of. He makes them no less concrete and palpable, handles
-them no less directly and freely. It is the whole business in fine—that
-grand total to which he proposed to himself to do high justice—that
-gives him his place apart, makes him, among the novelists, the largest
-weightiest presence. There are some of his obsessions—that of the
-material, that of the financial, that of the “social,” that of the
-technical, political, civil—for which I feel myself unable to judge
-him, judgment losing itself unexpectedly in a particular shade of pity.
-The way to judge him is to try to walk all round him—on which we see
-how remarkably far we have to go. He is the only member of his order
-really monumental, the sturdiest-seated mass that rises in our path.
-
------
-
-Footnote 4:
-
-The appearance of a translation of the “Deux Jeunes Mariées” in A
-Century of French Romance.
-
-
- II
-
-We recognise none the less that the finest consequence of these
-re-established relations is linked with just that appearance in him,
-that obsession of the actual under so many heads, that makes us look at
-him, as we would at some rare animal in captivity, between the bars of a
-cage. It amounts to a sort of suffered doom, since to be solicited by
-the world from all quarters at once, what is that for the spirit but a
-denial of escape? We feel his doom to be his want of a private door, and
-that he felt it, though more obscurely, himself. When we speak of his
-want of charm therefore we perhaps so surrender the question as but to
-show our own poverty. If charm, to cut it short, is what he lacks, how
-comes it that he so touches and holds us that—above all if we be actual
-or possible fellow-workers—we are uncomfortably conscious of the
-disloyalty of almost any shade of surrender? We are lodged perhaps by
-our excited sensibility in a dilemma of which one of the horns is a
-compassion that savours of patronage; but we must resign ourselves to
-that by reflecting that our partiality at least takes nothing away from
-him. It leaves him solidly where he is and only brings us near, brings
-us to a view of _all_ his formidable parts and properties. The
-conception of the Comédie Humaine represents them all, and represents
-them mostly in their felicity and their triumph—or at least the
-execution does: in spite of which we irresistibly find ourselves
-thinking of him, in reperusals, as most essentially the victim of a
-cruel joke. The joke is one of the jokes of fate, the fate that rode him
-for twenty years at so terrible a pace and with the whip so constantly
-applied. To have wanted to do so much, to have thought it possible, to
-have faced and in a manner resisted the effort, to have felt life
-poisoned and consumed by such a bravery of self-committal—these things
-form for us in him a face of trouble that, oddly enough, is not
-appreciably lighted by the fact of his success. It was the having wanted
-to do so much that was the trap, whatever possibilities of glory might
-accompany the good faith with which he fell into it. What accompanies
-_us_ as we frequent him is a sense of the deepening ache of that good
-faith with the increase of his working consciousness, the merciless
-development of his huge subject and of the rigour of all the conditions.
-We see the whole thing quite as if Destiny had said to him: “You want to
-‘do’ France, presumptuous, magnificent, miserable man—the France of
-revolutions, revivals, restorations, of Bonapartes, Bourbons, republics,
-of war and peace, of blood and romanticism, of violent change and
-intimate continuity, the France of the first half of your century? Very
-well; you most distinctly _shall_, and you shall particularly let me
-hear, even if the great groan of your labour do fill at moments the
-temple of letters, how you like the job.” We must of course not appear
-to deny the existence of a robust joy in him, the joy of power and
-creation, the joy of the observer and the dreamer who finds a use for
-his observations and his dreams as fast as they come. The “Contes
-Drolatiques” would by themselves sufficiently contradict us, and the
-savour of the “Contes Drolatiques” is not confined to these productions.
-His work at large tastes of the same kind of humour, and we feel him
-again and again, like any other great healthy producer of these matters,
-beguiled and carried along. He would have been, I dare say, the last not
-to insist that the artist has pleasures forever indescribable; he lived
-in short in his human comedy with the largest life we can attribute to
-the largest capacity. There are particular parts of his subject from
-which, with our sense of his enjoyment of them, we have to check the
-impulse to call him away—frequently as I confess in this relation that
-impulse arises.
-
-The relation is with the special element of his spectacle from which he
-never fully detaches himself, the element, to express it succinctly, of
-the “old families” and the great ladies. Balzac frankly revelled in his
-conception of an aristocracy—a conception that never succeeded in
-becoming his happiest; whether, objectively, thanks to the facts
-supplied him by the society he studied, or through one of the strangest
-deviations of taste that the literary critic is in an important
-connection likely to encounter. Nothing would in fact be more
-interesting than to attempt a general measure of the part played in the
-total comedy, to his imagination, by the old families; and one or two
-contributions to such an attempt I must not fail presently to make. I
-glance at them here, however, the delectable class, but as most
-representing on the author’s part free and amused creation; by which too
-I am far from hinting that the amusement is at all at their expense. It
-is in their great ladies that the old families most shine out for him,
-images of strange colour and form, but “felt” as we say, to their
-finger-tips, and extraordinarily interesting as a mark of the high
-predominance—predominance of character, of cleverness, of will, of
-general “personality”—that almost every scene of the Comedy attributes
-to women. It attributes to them in fact a recognised, an uncontested
-supremacy; it is through them that the hierarchy of old families most
-expresses itself; and it is as surrounded by them even as some
-magnificent indulgent pasha by his overflowing seraglio that Balzac sits
-most at his ease. All of which reaffirms—if it be needed—that his
-inspiration, and the sense of it, were even greater than his task. And
-yet such betrayals of spontaneity in him make for an old friend at the
-end of the chapter no great difference in respect to the pathos—since
-it amounts to that—of his genius-ridden aspect. It comes to us as we go
-back to him that his spirit had fairly made of itself a cage in which he
-was to turn round and round, always unwinding his reel, much in the
-manner of a criminal condemned to hard labour for life. The cage is
-simply the complicated but dreadfully definite French world that built
-itself so solidly in and roofed itself so impenetrably over him.
-
-It is not that, caught there with him though we be, we ourselves
-prematurely seek an issue: we throw ourselves back, on the contrary, for
-the particular sense of it, into his ancient superseded comparatively
-_rococo_ and quite patriarchal France—patriarchal in spite of social
-and political convulsions; into his old-time antediluvian Paris, all
-picturesque and all workable, full, to the fancy, of an amenity that has
-passed away; into his intensely differentiated sphere of _la province_,
-evoked in each sharpest or faintest note of its difference, described
-systematically as narrow and flat, and yet attaching us if only by the
-contagion of the author’s overflowing sensibility. He feels in his vast
-exhibition many things, but there is nothing he feels with the
-communicable shocks and vibrations, the sustained fury of
-perception—not always a fierceness of judgment, which is another
-matter—that _la province_ excites in him. Half our interest in him
-springs still from our own sense that, for all the convulsions, the
-revolutions and experiments that have come and gone, the order he
-describes is the old order that our sense of the past perversely recurs
-to as to something happy we have irretrievably missed. His pages bristle
-with the revelation of the lingering earlier world, the world in which
-places and people still had their queerness, their strong marks, their
-sharp type, and in which, as before the platitude that was to come, the
-observer with an appetite for the salient could by way of precaution
-fill his lungs. Balzac’s appetite for the salient was voracious, yet he
-came, as it were, in time, in spite of his so often speaking as if what
-he sees about him is but the last desolation of the modern. His
-conservatism, the most entire, consistent and convinced that ever
-was—yet even at that much inclined to whistling in the dark as if to
-the tune of “Oh how mediæval I _am_!”—was doubtless the best point of
-view from which he could rake his field. But if what he sniffed from
-afar in that position was the extremity of change, we in turn feel both
-subject and painter drenched with the smell of the past. It is preserved
-in his work as nowhere else—not vague nor faint nor delicate, but as
-strong to-day as when first distilled.
-
-It may seem odd to find a conscious melancholy in the fact that a great
-worker succeeded in clasping his opportunity in such an embrace, this
-being exactly our usual measure of the felicity of great workers. I
-speak, I hasten to reassert, all in the name of sympathy—without which
-it would have been detestable to speak at all; and the sentiment puts
-its hand instinctively on the thing that makes it least futile. This
-particular thing then is not in the least Balzac’s own hold of his
-terrible mass of matter; it is absolutely the convolutions of the
-serpent he had with a magnificent courage invited to wind itself round
-him. We must use the common image—he had created his Frankenstein
-monster. It is the fellow-craftsman who can most feel for him—it being
-apparently possible to read him from another point of view without
-getting really into his presence. We undergo with him from book to book,
-from picture to picture, the convolutions of the serpent, we especially
-whose refined performances are given, as we know, but with the small
-common or garden snake. I stick to this to justify my image just above
-of his having been “caged” by the intensity with which he saw his
-general matter as a whole. To see it always as a whole is our wise, our
-virtuous effort, the very condition, as we keep in mind, of superior
-art. Balzac was in this connection then wise and virtuous to the most
-exemplary degree; so that he doubtless ought logically but to prompt to
-complacent reflections. No painter ever saw his general matter nearly so
-much as a whole. Why is it then that we hover about him, if we are real
-Balzacians, not with cheerful chatter, but with a consideration deeper
-in its reach than any mere moralising? The reason is largely that if you
-wish with absolute immaculate virtue to look at your matter as a whole
-and yet remain a theme for cheerful chatter, you must be careful to take
-some quantity that will not hug you to death. Balzac’s active intention
-was, to vary our simile, a beast with a hundred claws, and the spectacle
-is in the hugging process of which, as energy against energy, the beast
-was capable. Its victim died of the process at fifty, and if what we see
-in the long gallery in which it is mirrored is not the defeat, but the
-admirable resistance, we none the less never lose the sense that the
-fighter is shut up with his fate. He has locked himself in—it is
-doubtless his own fault—and thrown the key away. Most of all perhaps
-the impression comes—the impression of the adventurer committed and
-anxious, but with no retreat—from the so formidably concrete nature of
-his plastic stuff. When we work in the open, as it were, our material is
-not classed and catalogued, so that we have at hand a hundred ways of
-being loose, superficial, disingenuous, and yet passing, to our no small
-profit, for remarkable. Balzac had no “open”; he held that the great
-central normal fruitful country of his birth and race, overarched with
-its infinite social complexity, yielded a sufficiency of earth and sea
-and sky. We seem to see as his catastrophe that the sky, all the same,
-came down on him. He couldn’t keep it up—in more senses than one. These
-are perhaps fine fancies for a critic to weave about a literary figure
-of whom he has undertaken to give a plain account; but I leave them so
-on the plea that there are relations in which, for the Balzacian,
-criticism simply drops out. That is not a liberty, I admit, ever to be
-much encouraged; critics in fact are the only people who have a right
-occasionally to take it. There is no such plain account of the Comédie
-Humaine as that it makes us fold up our yard-measure and put away our
-note-book quite as we do with some extraordinary character, some
-mysterious and various stranger, who brings with him his own standards
-and his own air. There is a kind of eminent presence that abashes even
-the interviewer, moves him to respect and wonder, makes him, for
-consideration itself, not insist. This takes of course a personage sole
-of his kind. But such a personage precisely is Balzac.
-
-
- III
-
-By all of which have I none the less felt it but too clear that I must
-not pretend in this place to take apart the pieces of his immense
-complicated work, to number them or group them or dispose them about.
-The most we can do is to pick one up here and there and wonder, as we
-weigh it in our hand, at its close compact substance. That is all even
-M. Taine could do in the longest and most penetrating study of which our
-author has been the subject. Every piece we handle is so full of stuff,
-condensed like the edibles provided for campaigns and explorations,
-positively so charged with distilled life, that we find ourselves
-dropping it, in certain states of sensibility, as we drop an object
-unguardedly touched that startles us by being animate. We seem really
-scarce to want anything to _be_ so animate. It would verily take Balzac
-to detail Balzac, and he has had in fact Balzacians nearly enough
-affiliated to affront the task with courage. The “Répertoire de la
-Comédie Humaine” of MM. Anatole Cerfberr and Jules Christophe is a
-closely-printed octavo of 550 pages which constitutes in relation to his
-characters great and small an impeccable biographical dictionary. His
-votaries and expositors are so numerous that the Balzac library of
-comment and research must be, of its type, one of the most copious. M.
-de Lovenjoul has laboured all round the subject; his “Histoire des
-Œuvres” alone is another crowded octavo of 400 pages; in connection with
-which I must mention Miss Wormeley, the devoted American translator,
-interpreter, worshipper, who in the course of her own studies has so
-often found occasion to differ from M. de Lovenjoul on matters of fact
-and questions of date and of appreciation. Miss Wormeley, M. Paul
-Bourget and many others are examples of the passionate piety that our
-author can inspire. As I turn over the encyclopedia of his characters I
-note that whereas such works usually commemorate but the ostensibly
-eminent of a race and time, every creature so much as named in the
-fictive swarm is in this case preserved to fame: so close is the
-implication that to have _been_ named by such a dispenser of life and
-privilege is to be, as we say it of baronets and peers, created. He
-infinitely divided moreover, as we know, he subdivided, altered and
-multiplied his heads and categories—his “Vie Parisienne,” his “Vie de
-Province,” his “Vie Politique,” his “Parents Pauvres,” his “Études
-Philosophiques,” his “Splendeurs et Misères des Courtisanes,” his
-“Envers de l’Histoire Contemporaine” and all the rest; so that nominal
-reference to them becomes the more difficult. Yet without prejudice
-either to the energy of conception with which he mapped out his theme as
-with chalk on a huge blackboard, or to the prodigious patience with
-which he executed his plan, practically filling in with a wealth of
-illustration, from sources that to this day we fail to make out, every
-compartment of his table, M. de Lovenjoul draws up the list, year by
-year, from 1822 to 1848, of his mass of work, giving us thus the measure
-of the tension represented for him by almost any twelvemonth. It is
-wholly unequalled, considering the quality of Balzac’s show, by any
-other eminent abundance.
-
-I must be pardoned for coming back to it, for seeming unable to leave
-it; it enshrouds so interesting a mystery. How was so solidly systematic
-a literary attack on life to be conjoined with whatever workable minimum
-of needful intermission, of free observation, of personal experience?
-Some small possibility of personal experience and disinterested life
-must, at the worst, from deep within or far without, feed and fortify
-the strained productive machine. These things were luxuries that Balzac
-appears really never to have tasted on any appreciable scale. His
-published letters—the driest and most starved of those of any man of
-equal distinction—are with the exception of those to Madame de Hanska,
-whom he married shortly before his death, almost exclusively the audible
-wail of a galley-slave chained to the oar. M. Zola, in our time, among
-the novelists, has sacrificed to the huge plan in something of the same
-manner, yet with goodly modern differences that leave him a
-comparatively simple instance. His work assuredly has been more nearly
-dried up by the sacrifice than ever Balzac’s was—so miraculously, given
-the conditions, was Balzac’s to escape the anti-climax. Method and
-system, in the chronicle of the tribe of Rougon-Macquart, an economy in
-itself certainly of the rarest and most interesting, have spread so from
-centre to circumference that they have ended by being almost the only
-thing we feel. And then M. Zola has survived and triumphed in his
-lifetime, has continued and lasted, has piled up and, if the remark be
-not frivolous, enjoyed in all its _agréments_ the reward for which
-Balzac toiled and sweated in vain. On top of which he will have had also
-his literary great-grandfather’s heroic example to start from and profit
-by, the positive heritage of a _fils de famille_ to enjoy, spend, save,
-waste. Balzac had frankly no heritage at all but his stiff subject, and
-by way of model not even in any direct or immediate manner that of the
-inner light and kindly admonition of his genius. Nothing adds more to
-the strangeness of his general performance than his having failed so
-long to find his inner light, groped for it almost ten years, missed it
-again and again, moved straight away from it, turned his back on it,
-lived in fine round about it, in a darkness still scarce penetrable, a
-darkness into which we peep only half to make out the dreary little
-waste of his numerous _œuvres de jeunesse_. To M. Zola was vouchsafed
-the good fortune of settling down to the Rougon-Macquart with the
-happiest promptitude; it was as if time for one look about him—and I
-say it without disparagement to the reach of his look—had sufficiently
-served his purpose. Balzac moreover might have written five hundred
-novels without our feeling in him the faintest hint of the breath of
-doom, if he had only been comfortably capable of conceiving the short
-cut of the fashion practised by others under his eyes. As Alexandre
-Dumas and George Sand, illustrious contemporaries, cultivated a personal
-life and a disinterested consciousness by the bushel, having, for their
-easier duration, not too consistently known, as the true painter knows
-it, the obsession of the thing to be done, so Balzac was condemned by
-his constitution itself, by his inveterately seeing this “thing to be
-done” as part and parcel, as of the very essence, of his enterprise. The
-latter existed for him, as the process worked and hallucination settled,
-in the form, and the form only, of the thing done, and not in any
-hocus-pocus about doing. There was no kindly convenient escape for him
-by the little swinging back-door of the thing _not_ done. He desired—no
-man more—to get out of his obsession, but only at the other end, that
-is by boring through it. “How then, thus deprived of the outer air
-almost as much as if he were gouging a passage for a railway through an
-Alp, _did_ he live?” is the question that haunts us—with the
-consequence for the most part of promptly meeting its fairly tragic
-answer. He did _not_ live—save in his imagination, or by other aid than
-he could find there; his imagination was all his experience; he had
-provably no time for the real thing. This brings us to the rich if
-simple truth that his imagination alone did the business, carried
-through both the conception and the execution—as large an effort and as
-proportionate a success, in all but the vulgar sense, as the faculty
-when equally handicapped was ever concerned in. Handicapped I say
-because this interesting fact about him, with the claim it makes, rests
-on the ground, the high distinction, that more than all the rest of us
-put together he went in, as we say, for detail, circumstance and
-specification, proposed to himself _all_ the connections of every part
-of his matter and the full total of the parts. The whole thing, it is
-impossible not to keep repeating, was what he deemed treatable. One
-really knows in all imaginative literature no undertaking to compare
-with it for courage, good faith and sublimity. There, once more, was the
-necessity that rode him and that places him apart in our homage. It is
-no light thing to have been condemned to become provably sublime. And
-looking through, or trying to, at what is beneath and behind, we are
-left benevolently uncertain if the predominant quantity be audacity or
-innocence.
-
-It is of course inevitable at this point to seem to hear the colder
-critic promptly take us up. He undertook the whole thing—oh exactly,
-the ponderous person! But _did_ he “do” the whole thing, if you please,
-any more than sundry others of fewer pretensions? The retort to this it
-can only be a positive joy to make, so high a note instantly sounds as
-an effect of the inquiry. Nothing is more interesting and amusing than
-to find one’s self recognising both that Balzac’s pretensions were
-immense, portentous, and that yet, taking him—and taking
-_them_—altogether, they but minister in the long run to our fondness.
-They affect us not only as the endearing eccentricities of a person we
-greatly admire, but fairly as the very condition of his having become
-such a person. We take them thus in the first place for the very terms
-of his plan, and in the second for a part of that high robustness and
-that general richness of nature which made him in face of such a project
-believe in himself. One would really scarce have liked to see such a job
-as La Comédie Humaine tackled without swagger. To think of the thing
-really as practicable _was_ swagger, and of the very rarest order. So to
-think assuredly implied pretensions, pretensions that risked showing as
-monstrous should the enterprise fail to succeed. It is for the colder
-critic to take the trouble to make out that of the two parties to it the
-body of pretension remains greater than the success. One may put it
-moreover at the worst for him, may recognise that it is in the matter of
-opinion still more than in the matter of knowledge that Balzac offers
-himself as universally competent. He has flights of judgment—on
-subjects the most special as well as the most general—that are
-vertiginous and on his alighting from which we greet him with a special
-indulgence. We can easily imagine him to respond, confessing
-humorously—if he had only time—to such a benevolent understanding
-smile as would fain hold our own eyes a moment. Then it is that he would
-most show us his scheme and his necessities and how in operation they
-all hang together. _Naturally_ everything about everything, though how
-he had time to learn it is the last thing he has time to tell us; which
-matters the less, moreover, as it is not over the question of his
-knowledge that we sociably invite him, as it were (and remembering the
-two augurs behind the altar) to wink at us for a sign. His convictions
-it is that are his great pardonable “swagger”; to them in particular I
-refer as his general operative condition, the constituted terms of his
-experiment, and not less as his consolation, his support, his amusement
-by the way. They embrace everything in the world—that is in his world
-of the so parti-coloured France of his age: religion, morals, politics,
-economics, physics, esthetics, letters, art, science, sociology, every
-question of faith, every branch of research. They represent thus his
-equipment of ideas, those ideas of which it will never do for a man who
-aspires to constitute a State to be deprived. He must take them with him
-as an ambassador extraordinary takes with him secretaries, uniforms,
-stars and garters, a gilded coach and a high assurance. Balzac’s
-opinions are his gilded coach, in which he is more amused than anything
-else to feel himself riding, but which is indispensably concerned in
-getting him over the ground. What more inevitable than that they should
-be intensely Catholic, intensely monarchical, intensely saturated with
-the real genius—as between 1830 and 1848 he believed it to be—of the
-French character and French institutions?
-
-Nothing is happier for us than that he should have enjoyed his outlook
-before the first half of the century closed. He could then still treat
-his subject as comparatively homogeneous. Any country could have a
-Revolution—every country _had_ had one. A Restoration was merely what a
-revolution involved, and the Empire had been for the French but a
-revolutionary incident, in addition to being by good luck for the
-novelist an immensely pictorial one. He was free therefore to arrange
-the background of the comedy in the manner that seemed to him best to
-suit anything so great; in the manner at the same time prescribed
-according to his contention by the noblest traditions. The church, the
-throne, the noblesse, the bourgeoisie, the people, the peasantry, all in
-their order and each solidly kept in it, these were precious things,
-things his superabundant insistence on the price of which is what I
-refer to as his exuberance of opinion. It was a luxury for more reasons
-than one, though one, presently to be mentioned, handsomely
-predominates. The meaning of that exchange of intelligences in the rear
-of the oracle which I have figured for him with the perceptive friend
-bears simply on his pleading guilty to the purport of the friend’s
-discrimination. The point the latter makes with him—a beautiful cordial
-critical point—is that he truly cares for nothing in the world, thank
-goodness, so much as for the passions and embroilments of men and women,
-the free play of character and the sharp revelation of type, all the
-real stuff of drama and the natural food of novelists. Religion, morals,
-politics, economics, esthetics would be thus, as systematic matter, very
-well in their place, but quite secondary and subservient. Balzac’s
-attitude is again and again that he cares for the adventures and
-emotions because, as his last word, he cares for the good and the
-greatness of the State—which is where his swagger, with a whole society
-on his hands, comes in. What we on our side in a thousand places
-gratefully feel is that he cares for his monarchical and hierarchical
-and ecclesiastical society because it rounds itself for his mind into
-the most congruous and capacious theatre for the repertory of his
-innumerable comedians. It has above all, for a painter abhorrent of the
-superficial, the inestimable benefit of the accumulated, of strong marks
-and fine shades, contrasts and complications. There had certainly been
-since 1789 dispersals and confusions enough, but the thick tradition, no
-more at the most than half smothered, lay under them all. So the whole
-of his faith and no small part of his working omniscience were neither
-more nor less than that historic sense which I have spoken of as the
-spur of his invention and which he possessed as no other novelist has
-done. We immediately feel that to name it in connection with him is to
-answer every question he suggests and to account for each of his
-idiosyncrasies in turn. The novel, the tale, however brief, the passage,
-the sentence by itself, the situation, the person, the place, the motive
-exposed, the speech reported—these things were in his view history,
-with the absoluteness and the dignity of history. This is the source
-both of his weight and of his wealth. What is the historic sense after
-all but animated, but impassioned knowledge seeking to enlarge itself? I
-have said that his imagination did the whole thing, no other
-explanation—no reckoning of the possibilities of personal
-saturation—meeting the mysteries of the case. Therefore his imagination
-achieved the miracle of absolutely resolving itself into multifarious
-knowledge. Since history proceeds by documents he constructed, as he
-needed them, the documents too—fictive sources that imitated the actual
-to the life. It was of course a terrible business, but at least in the
-light of it his claims to creatorship are justified—which is what was
-to be shown.
-
-
- IV
-
-It is very well even in the sketchiest attempt at a portrait of his
-genius to try to take particulars in their order: one peeps over the
-shoulder of another at the moment we get a feature into focus. The loud
-appeal not to be left out prevails among them all, and certainly with
-the excuse that each as we fix it seems to fall most into the picture. I
-have so indulged myself as to his general air that I find a whole list
-of vivid contributive marks almost left on my hands. Such a list, in any
-study of Balzac, is delightful for intimate edification as well as for
-the fine humour of the thing; we proceed from one of the items of his
-breathing physiognomy to the other with quite the same sense of life,
-the same active curiosity, with which we push our way through the thick
-undergrowth of one of the novels. The difficulty is really that the
-special point for which we at the moment observe him melts into all the
-other points, is swallowed up before our eyes in the formidable mass.
-The French apply the happiest term to certain characters when they speak
-of them as _entiers_, and if the word had been invented for Balzac it
-could scarce better have expressed him. He is “entire” as was never a
-man of his craft; he moves always in his mass; wherever we find him we
-find him in force; whatever touch he applies he applies it with his
-whole apparatus. He is like an army gathered to besiege a cottage
-equally with a city, and living voraciously in either case on all the
-country about. It may well be, at any rate, that his infatuation with
-the idea of the social, the practical primacy of “the sex” is the
-article at the top of one’s list; there could certainly be no better
-occasion than this of a rich reissue of the “Deux Jeunes Mariées” for
-placing it there at a venture. Here indeed precisely we get a sharp
-example of the way in which, as I have just said, a capital illustration
-of one of his sides becomes, just as we take it up, a capital
-illustration of another. The correspondence of Louise de Chaulieu and
-Renée de Maucombe is in fact one of those cases that light up with a
-great golden glow all his parts at once. We needn’t mean by this that
-such parts are themselves absolutely all golden—given the amount of
-tinsel for instance in his view, supereminent, transcendent here, of the
-old families and the great ladies. What we do convey, however, is that
-his creative temperament finds in such _data_ as these one of its best
-occasions for shining out. Again we fondly recognise his splendid, his
-attaching swagger—that of a “bounder” of genius and of feeling; again
-we see how, with opportunity, its elements may vibrate into a perfect
-ecstasy of creation.
-
-Why shouldn’t a man swagger, he treats us to the diversion of asking
-ourselves, who has created from top to toe the most brilliant, the most
-historic, the most insolent, above all the most detailed and
-discriminated of aristocracies? Balzac carried the uppermost class of
-his comedy, from the princes, dukes, and unspeakable duchesses down to
-his poor barons _de province_, about in his pocket as he might have
-carried a tolerably befingered pack of cards, to deal them about with a
-flourish of the highest authority whenever there was the chance of a
-game. He knew them up and down and in and out, their arms, infallibly
-supplied, their quarterings, pedigrees, services, intermarriages,
-relationships, ramifications and other enthralling attributes. This
-indeed is comparatively simple learning; the real wonder is rather when
-we linger on the ground of the patrician consciousness itself, the
-innermost, the esoteric, the spirit, temper, tone—tone above all—of
-the titled and the proud. The questions multiply for every scene of the
-comedy; there is no one who makes us walk in such a cloud of them. The
-clouds elsewhere, in comparison, are at best of questions not worth
-asking. _Was_ the patrician consciousness that figured as our author’s
-model so splendidly fatuous as he—almost without irony, often in fact
-with a certain poetic sympathy—everywhere represents it? His
-imagination lives in it, breathes its scented air, swallows this element
-with the smack of the lips of the connoisseur; but I feel that we never
-know, even to the end, whether he be here directly historic or only
-quite misguidedly romantic. The romantic side of him has the extent of
-all the others; it represents in the oddest manner his escape from the
-walled and roofed structure into which he had built himself—his longing
-for the vaguely-felt outside and as much as might be of the rest of the
-globe. But it is characteristic of him that the most he could do for
-this relief was to bring the fantastic into the circle and fit it
-somehow to his conditions. Was his tone for the duchess, the marquise
-but the imported fantastic, one of those smashes of the window-pane of
-the real that reactions sometimes produce even in the stubborn? or are
-we to take it as observed, as really reported, as, for all its
-difference from our notion of the natural—and, quite as much, of the
-artificial—in another and happier strain of manners, substantially
-true? The whole episode, in “Les Illusions Perdues,” of Madame de
-Bargeton’s “chucking” Lucien de Rubempré, on reaching Paris with him,
-under pressure of Madame d’Espard’s shockability as to his coat and
-trousers and other such matters, is either a magnificent lurid document
-or the baseless fabric of a vision. The great wonder is that, as I
-rejoice to put in, we can never really discover which, and that we feel
-as we read that we can’t, and that we suffer at the hands of no other
-author this particular helplessness of immersion. It is _done_—we are
-always thrown back on that; we can’t get out of it; all we can do is to
-say that the true itself can’t be more than done and that if the false
-in this way equals it we must give up looking for the difference. Alone
-among novelists Balzac has the secret of an insistence that somehow
-makes the difference nought. He warms his facts into life—as witness
-the certainty that the episode I just cited has absolutely as much of
-that property as if perfect matching had been achieved. If the great
-ladies in question _didn’t_ behave, wouldn’t, couldn’t have behaved,
-like a pair of nervous snobs, why so much the worse, we say to
-ourselves, for the great ladies in question. We _know_ them so—they owe
-their being to our so seeing them; whereas we never can tell ourselves
-how we should otherwise have known them or what quantity of being they
-would on a different footing have been able to put forth.
-
-The case is the same with Louise de Chaulieu, who besides coming out of
-her convent school, as a quite young thing, with an amount of
-sophistication that would have chilled the heart of a horse-dealer,
-exhales—and to her familiar friend, a young person of a supposedly
-equal breeding—an extravagance of complacency in her “social position”
-that makes us rub our eyes. Whereupon after a little the same phenomenon
-occurs; we swallow her bragging, against our better reason, or at any
-rate against our startled sense, under coercion of the total intensity.
-We do more than this, we cease to care for the question, which loses
-itself in the hot fusion of the whole picture. He has “gone for” his
-subject, in the vulgar phrase, with an avidity that makes the attack of
-his most eminent rivals affect us as the intercourse between introduced
-indifferences at a dull evening party. He squeezes it till it cries out,
-we hardly know whether for pleasure or pain. In the case before us for
-example—without wandering from book to book, impossible here, I make
-the most of the ground already broken—he has seen at once that the
-state of marriage itself, sounded to its depths, is, in the connection,
-his real theme. He sees it of course in the conditions that exist for
-him, but he weighs it to the last ounce, feels it in all its dimensions,
-as well as in all his own, and would scorn to take refuge in any
-engaging side-issue. He gets, for further intensity, into the very skin
-of his _jeunes mariées_—into each alternately, as they are different
-enough; so that, to repeat again, any other mode of representing women,
-or of representing anybody, becomes, in juxtaposition, a thing so void
-of the active contortions of truth as to be comparatively wooden. He
-bears children with Madame de l’Estorade, knows intimately how she
-suffers for them, and not less intimately how her correspondent suffers,
-as well as enjoys, without them. Big as he is he makes himself small to
-be handled by her with young maternal passion and positively to handle
-her in turn with infantile innocence. These things are the very
-flourishes, the little technical amusements of his penetrating power.
-But it is doubtless in his hand for such a matter as the jealous passion
-of Louise de Chaulieu, the free play of her intelligence and the almost
-beautiful good faith of her egotism, that he is most individual. It is
-one of the neatest examples of his extraordinary leading gift, his
-art—which is really moreover not an art—of working the exhibition of a
-given character up to intensity. I say it is not an art because it acts
-for us rather as a hunger on the part of his nature to take on in all
-freedom another nature—take it by a direct process of the senses. Art
-is for the mass of us who have only the process of art, comparatively so
-stiff. The thing amounts with him to a kind of shameless personal,
-physical, not merely intellectual, duality—the very spirit and secret
-of transmigration.
-
-
-
-
- HONORÉ DE BALZAC
- 1913
-
-
-It is a pleasure to meet M. Émile Faguet[5] on the same ground of
-mastered critical method and in the same air of cool deliberation and
-conclusion that so favoured his excellent study of Flaubert in the rich
-series to which the present volume belongs. It was worth while waiting
-these many years for a Balzac to get it at last from a hand of so firm a
-grip, if not quite of the very finest manipulative instinct. It can
-scarce ever be said of M. Faguet that he tends to play with a subject,
-at least a literary one; but nobody is better for circling his theme in
-sound and easy pedestrian fashion, for taking up each of its aspects in
-order, for a sense, above all, of the order in which they _should_ be
-taken, and for then, after doing them successively justice, reaching the
-point from which they appear to melt together. He thus gives us one of
-those literary portraits the tradition of which, so far at least as they
-are the fruit of method, has continued scantily to flourish among
-ourselves. We cannot help thinking indeed that an ideally authoritative
-portrait of Balzac would be the work of some pondering painter able to
-measure the great man’s bequest a little more from within or by a
-coincidence of special faculty, or that in other words the particular
-initiation and fellow-feeling of some like—that is not too
-unlike—imaginative projector as well are rather wanted here to warm and
-colour the critical truth to the right glow of appreciation. Which comes
-to saying, we quite acknowledge, that a “tribute” to Balzac, of however
-embracing an intention, may still strike us as partly unachieved if we
-fail to catch yearning and shining through it, like a motive in a
-musical mixture or a thread of gold in a piece of close weaving, the all
-but overriding sympathy of novelist with novelist. M. Faguet’s
-intelligence at any rate sweeps his ground clear of the anecdotal, the
-question-begging reference to odds and ends of the personal and
-superficial, in a single short chapter, and, having got so promptly over
-this second line of defence, attacks at once the issue of his author’s
-general ideas—matters apt to be, in any group of contributors to a
-“series” of our own, exactly what the contributor most shirks
-considering.
-
-It is true that few writers, and especially few novelists, bring up that
-question with anything like the gross assurance and systematic
-confidence of Balzac, who clearly took for involved in his plan of a
-complete picture of the manners and aspects of his country and his
-period that he should have his confident “say” about as many things as
-possible, and who, throughout his immense work, appears never for an
-instant or in any connection to flinch from that complacency. Here it is
-easy to await him, waylay him and catch him in the act, with the
-consequence, for the most part, of our having to recognise almost with
-compassion the disparity between the author of “La Cousine Bette”
-exercising his genius, as Matthew Arnold said of Ruskin, in making a
-like distinction, and the same writer taking on a character not in the
-least really rooted in that soil. The fact none the less than his
-generalising remains throughout so markedly inferior to his
-particularising—which latter element and very essence of the novelist’s
-art it was his greatness to carry further and apply more consistently
-than any member of the craft, without exception, has felt the impulse,
-to say nothing of finding the way, to do—by no means wholly destroys
-the interest of the habit itself or relieves us of a due attention to
-it; so characteristic and significant, so suggestive even of his special
-force, though in a manner indirect, are the very folds and redundancies
-of this philosopher’s robe that flaps about his feet and drags along the
-ground like an assumed official train. The interest here—where it is
-exactly that a whole face of his undertaking would be most illumined for
-the fellow-artist we imagine trying to exhibit him—depends much less on
-what his reflection and opinion, his irrepressible _obiter dicta_ and
-monstrous _suffisances_ of judgment may be, than on the part played in
-his scheme by his holding himself ready at every turn and at such short
-notice to judge. For this latter fact probably lights up more than any
-other his conception of the range of the novel, the fashion after which,
-in his hands, it had been felt as an all-inclusive form, a form without
-rift or leak, a tight mould, literally, into which everything relevant
-to a consideration of the society surrounding him—and the less relevant
-unfortunately, as well as the more—might be poured in a stream of
-increasing consistency, the underlapping subject stretched, all so
-formidably, to its own constituted edge and the compound appointed to
-reproduce, as in finest and subtlest relief, its every minutest feature,
-overlying and corresponding with it all round to the loss of no fraction
-of an inch.
-
-It is thus the painter’s aspiring and rejoicing consciousness of the
-great square swarming picture, the picture of France from side to side
-and from top to bottom, which he proposes to copy—unless we see the
-collective quantity rather as the vast primary model or sitter that he
-is unprecedentedly to portray, it is this that, rendering him enviable
-in proportion to his audacity and his presumption, gives a dignity to
-everything that makes the consciousness whole. The result is a state of
-possession of his material unlike that of any other teller of tales
-whatever about a circumjacent world, and the process of his gain of
-which opens up well-nigh the first of those more or less baffling
-questions, parts indeed of the great question of the economic rule, the
-practical secret, of his activity, that beset us as soon as we study
-him. To fit what he was and what he did, that is the measure of how he
-used himself and how he used every one and everything else, into his
-after all so brief career (for twenty years cover the really productive
-term of it) is for ourselves, we confess, to renounce any other solution
-than that of his having proceeded by a sense for facts, the
-multitudinous facts of the scene about him, that somehow involved a
-preliminary, a pre-experiential inspiration, a straightness of intuition
-truly impossible to give an account of and the like of which had never
-before been shown. He had not to learn things in order to know them; and
-even though he multiplied himself in more ways than we can reckon up,
-going hither and thither geographically, leading his life with violence,
-as it were, though always with intention, and wasting almost nothing
-that had ever touched him, the natural man, the baptised and registered
-Honoré, let loose with harsh promptitude upon a world formed from the
-first moment to excite his voracity, can only have been _all_ the
-exploiting agent, the pushing inquirer, the infallible appraiser, the
-subject of an _arrière-pensée_ as merciless, in spite of being otherwise
-genial, as the black care riding behind the horseman. There was thus
-left over for him less of mere human looseness, of mere emotion, of mere
-naturalness, or of any curiosity whatever, that didn’t “pay”—and the
-extent to which he liked things to pay, to see them, think of them, and
-describe them as prodigiously paying, is not to be expressed—than
-probably marks any recorded relation between author and subject as we
-know each of these terms.
-
-So it comes that his mastership of whatever given identity might be in
-question, and much more of the general identity of his rounded (for the
-artistic vision), his compact and containing France, the fixed, felt
-frame to him of the vividest items and richest characteristics of human
-life, can really not be thought of as a matter of degrees of confidence,
-as acquired or built up or cumbered with verifying fears. He _was_ the
-given identity and, on the faintest shade of a hint about it caught up,
-became one with it and lived it—this in the only way in which he could
-live, anywhere or at any time: which was by losing himself in its
-relation to his need or to what we call his voracity. Just so his mind,
-his power of apprehension, worked _naturally_ in the interest of a
-society disclosed to that appetite; on the mere approach to the display
-he inhaled information, he recognised himself as what he might best be
-known for, an historian unprecedented, an historian documented as none
-had not only ever been, but had ever dreamed of being—and even if the
-method of his documentation can leave us for the most part but
-wondering. The method of his use of it, or of a portion of it, we more
-or less analyse and measure; but the wealth of his provision or outfit
-itself, the crammed store of his categories and _cadres_, leaves us the
-more stupefied as we feel it to have been honestly come by. All this is
-what it is impossible not to regard as in itself a fundamental felicity
-as no _confrère_ had known; so far, indeed, as Balzac suffered
-_confrères_ or as the very nature of his faculty could be thought of for
-them. M. Brunetière’s monograph of some years ago, which is but a couple
-of degrees less weighty, to our sense, than this of M. Faguet before us,
-justly notes that, whatever other felicity may have graced the exercise
-of such a genius, for instance, as that rare contemporary George Sand,
-she was reduced well-nigh altogether to drawing upon resources and
-enjoying advantages comparatively vague and unassured. She had of course
-in a manner her special resource and particular advantage, which
-consisted, so to speak, in a finer feeling about what she did possess
-and could treat of with authority, and particularly in a finer command
-of the terms of expression, than any involved in Balzac’s “happier”
-example. But her almost fatal weakness as a novelist—an exponent of the
-art who has waned exactly as, for our general long-drawn appreciation,
-Balzac has waxed—comes from her having had to throw herself upon ground
-that no order governed, no frame, as we have said, enclosed, and no
-safety attended; safety of the sort, we mean, the safety of the
-constitutive, illustrative fact among facts, which we find in her rival
-as a warm socialised air, an element supremely assimilable.
-
-It may freely be pronounced interesting that whereas, in her instinct
-for her highest security, she threw herself upon the consideration of
-love as the _type_ attraction or most representable thing in the human
-scene, so, assuredly, no student of that field has, in proportion to the
-thoroughness of his study, felt he could afford to subordinate or almost
-even to neglect it to anything like the tune in which we see it put and
-kept in its place through the parts of the Comédie Humaine that most
-count. If this passion but too often exhales a tepid breath in much
-other fiction—much other of ours at least—that is apt to come
-decidedly less from the writer’s sense of proportion than from his
-failure of art, or in other words of intensity. It is rarely absent by
-intention or by intelligence, it is pretty well always there as the
-theoretic principal thing—any difference from writer to writer being
-mostly in the power to put the principal thing effectively forward. It
-figures as a pressing, an indispensable even if a perfunctory motive,
-for example, in every situation devised by Walter Scott; the case being
-simply that if it doesn’t in fact attractively occupy the foreground
-this is because his hand has had so native, so much greater, an ease for
-other parts of the picture. What makes Balzac so pre-eminent and
-exemplary that he was to leave the novel a far other and a vastly more
-capacious and significant affair than he found it, is his having felt
-his fellow-creatures (almost altogether for him his contemporaries) as
-quite failing of reality, as swimming in the vague and the void and the
-abstract, unless their social conditions, to the last particular, their
-generative and contributive circumstances, of every discernible sort,
-enter for all these are “worth” into his representative attempt. This
-great compound of the total looked into and starting up in its element,
-as it always does, to meet the eye of genius and patience half way,
-bristled for him with all its branching connections, those thanks to
-which any figure could _be_ a figure but by showing for endlessly
-entangled in them.
-
-So it was then that his huge felicity, to re-emphasise our term, was in
-his state of circulating where recognitions and identifications didn’t
-so much await as rejoicingly assault him, having never yet in all the
-world, grudged or at the best suspected feeders as they were at the
-board where sentiment occupied the head, felt themselves so finely
-important or subject to such a worried intention. They hung over a scene
-as to which it was one of the forces of his inspiration that history had
-lately been there at work, with incomparable energy and inimitable art,
-to pile one upon another, not to say squeeze and dovetail violently into
-each other, after such a fashion as might defy competition anywhere, her
-successive deposits and layers of form and order, her restless
-determinations of appearance—so like those of the different “states” of
-an engraver’s impression; all to an effect which _should_ have
-constituted, as by a miracle of coincidence it did, the paradise of an
-extraordinary observer. Balzac lived accordingly, extraordinary since he
-was, in an earthly heaven so near perfect for his kind of vision that he
-could have come at no moment more conceivably blest to him. The later
-part of the eighteenth century, with the Revolution, the Empire and the
-Restoration, had inimitably conspired together to scatter abroad their
-separate marks and stigmas, their separate trails of character and
-physiognomic hits—for which advantage he might have arrived too late,
-as his hapless successors, even his more or less direct imitators,
-visibly have done. The fatal fusions and uniformities inflicted on our
-newer generations, the running together of all the differences of form
-and tone, the ruinous liquefying wash of the great industrial brush over
-the old conditions of contrast and colour, doubtless still have left the
-painter of manners much to do, but have ground him down to the sad fact
-that his ideals of differentiation, those inherent oppositions from type
-to type, in which drama most naturally resides, have well-nigh perished.
-They pant for life in a hostile air; and we may surely say that their
-last successful struggle, their last bright resistance to eclipse among
-ourselves, was in their feverish dance to the great fiddling of Dickens.
-Dickens made them dance, we seem to see, caper and kick their heels,
-wave their arms, and above all agitate their features, for the simple
-reason that he couldn’t make them stand or sit _at once_ quietly and
-expressively, couldn’t make them look straight out as for
-themselves—quite in fact as through his not daring to, not feeling he
-could afford to, in a changing hour when ambiguities and the wavering
-line, droll and “dodgy” dazzlements and the possibly undetected
-factitious alone, might be trusted to keep him right with an incredibly
-uncritical public, a public blind to the difference between a shade and
-a patch.
-
-Balzac on the other hand, born as we have seen to confidence, the tonic
-air of his paradise, might make character, in the sense in which we use
-it, that of the element exposable to the closest verification, sit or
-stand for its “likeness” as still as ever it would. It is true that he
-could, as he often did, resort to fond extravagance, since he was apt at
-his worst to plunge into agitation for mere agitation’s sake—which is a
-course that, by any turn, may cast the plunger on the barrenest strand.
-But he is at his best when the conditions, the whole complex of
-subdivisible form and pressure, are virtually themselves the situation,
-the action and the interest, or in other words when these things exhaust
-themselves, as it were, in expressing the persons we are concerned with,
-agents and victims alike, and when by such vivified figures, whether
-victims or agents, they are themselves completely expressed. The three
-distinguished critics who have best studied him, Taine, Brunetière and
-now (as well as before this) M. Faguet—the first the most eloquent but
-the loosest, and the last the closest even if the dryest—are in
-agreement indeed as to the vast quantity of waste in him, inevitably
-judging the romanticist as whom he so frequently, speculatively,
-desperately paraded altogether inferior to the realist whose function he
-could still repeatedly and richly and for his greater glory exercise.
-This estimate of his particularly greater glory is of a truth not wholly
-shared by M. Taine; but the three are virtually at one, where we of
-course join them, or rather go further than they, as to the enviability,
-so again to call it (and by which we mean the matchless freedom of
-play), of his harvesting sense when he gave himself up in fullest
-measure to his apprehension of the dense wholeness of reality. It was
-this that led him on and kept him true to that happily largest side of
-his labour by which he must massively live; just as it is this, the
-breath of his real geniality, when every abatement is made, that stirs
-to loyalty those who under his example also take his direction and find
-their joy in watching him thoroughly at work. We see then how, when
-social character and evolved type are the prize to be grasped, the facts
-of observation and certification, unrestingly social and historic too,
-that form and fondle and retouch it, never relaxing their action, are so
-easily and blessedly absolute to him that this is what we mean by their
-virtue.
-
-When there were enough of these quantities and qualities flowering into
-the definite and the absolute for him to feed on, feed if not to satiety
-at least to the largest loosening of his intellectual belt, there were
-so many that we may even fall in with most of M. Faguet’s
-discriminations and reserves about him and yet find his edifice rest on
-proportioned foundations. For it is his assimilation of things and
-things, of his store of them and of the right ones, the right for
-representation, that leaves his general image, even with great chunks of
-surface surgically, that is critically, removed, still coherent and
-erect. There are moments when M. Faguet—most surgical he!—seems to
-threaten to remove so much that we ask ourselves in wonder what may be
-left; but no removal matters while the principle of observation
-animating the mass is left unattacked. Our present critic for instance
-is “down”—very understandingly down as seems to us—on some of the
-sides of his author’s rich temperamental vulgarity; which is accompanied
-on those sides by want of taste, want of wit, want of style, want of
-knowledge of ever so many parts of the general subject, too
-precipitately proposed, and want of fineness of feeling about ever so
-many others. We agree with him freely enough, subject always to this
-reserve already glanced at, that a novelist of a high esthetic
-sensibility must always find more in any other novelist worth
-considering seriously at all than he can perhaps hope to impart even to
-the most intelligent of critics pure and simple his subtle reasons for.
-This said, we lose ourselves, to admiration, in such a matter for
-example as the tight hug of the mere material, the supremely important
-if such ever was, represented by the appeal to us on behalf of the
-money-matters of César Birotteau.
-
-This illustration gains logically, much more than loses, from the rank
-predominance of the money-question, the money-vision, throughout all
-Balzac. There are lights in which it can scarce not appear to us that
-his own interest is greater, his possibilities of attention truer, in
-these pressing particulars than in all other questions put together;
-there could be no better sign of the appreciation of “things,” exactly,
-than so never relaxed a grasp of the part played in the world by just
-these. Things for things, the franc, the shilling, the dollar, are the
-very most underlying and conditioning, even dramatically, even
-poetically, that call upon him; and we have everywhere to recognise how
-little he feels himself to be telling us of this, that and the other
-person unless he has first given us full information, with every detail,
-either as to their private means, their income, investments, savings,
-losses, the state in fine of their pockets, or as to their immediate
-place of habitation, their home, their outermost shell, with its windows
-and doors, its outside appearance and inside plan, its rooms and
-furniture and arrangements, its altogether intimate facts, down to its
-very smell. This prompt and earnest evocation of the shell and its
-lining is but another way of testifying with due emphasis to economic
-conditions. The most personal shell of all, the significant dress of the
-individual, whether man or woman, is subject to as sharp and as deep a
-notation—it being no small part of his wealth of luck that the age of
-dress differentiated and specialised from class to class and character
-to character, not least moreover among men, could still give him
-opportunities of choice, still help him to define and intensify, or
-peculiarly to _place_ his apparitions. The old world in which costume
-had, to the last refinement of variety, a social meaning happily
-lingered on for him; and nothing is more interesting, nothing goes
-further in this sense of the way the social concrete could minister to
-him, than the fact that “César Birotteau,” to instance that masterpiece
-again, besides being a money-drama of the closest texture, the very epic
-of retail bankruptcy, is at the same time the all-vividest exhibition of
-the habited and figured, the representatively stamped and countenanced,
-buttoned and buckled state of the persons moving through it. No livelier
-example therefore can we name of the triumphant way in which any given,
-or as we should rather say taken, total of conditions works out under
-our author’s hand for accentuation of type. The story of poor Birotteau
-is just in this supreme degree a hard total, even if every one’s
-money-relation does loom larger, for his or her case, than anything
-else.
-
-The main thing doubtless to agree with M. Faguet about, however, is the
-wonder of the rate at which this genius for an infatuated grasp of the
-environment could multiply the creatures swarming, and swarming at their
-best to perfection, in that jungle of elements. A jungle certainly the
-environment, the rank many-coloured picture of France, would have been
-had it not really created in our observer the joy, thanks to his need of
-a clear and marked order, of its becoming so arrangeable. Nothing could
-interest us more than to note with our critic that such
-multiplications—taken after all at such a rush—have to be paid for by
-a sort of limitation of quality in each, the quality that, beyond a
-certain point and after a certain allowance, ever looks askance at any
-approach to what it may be figured as taking for _insolence_ of
-quantity. Some inquiry into the general mystery of such laws of payment
-would beckon us on had we the space—whereby we might glance a little at
-the wondrous why and wherefore of the sacrifice foredoomed, the loss,
-greater or less, of those ideals now compromised by the tarnished names
-of refinement and distinction, yet which we are none the less, at our
-decentest, still ashamed too entirely to turn our backs on, in the
-presence of energies that, shaking the air by their embrace of the
-common, tend to dispossess the rare of a certified place in it.
-Delightful to the critical mind to estimate the point at which, in the
-picture of life, a sense for the element of the rare ceases to consort
-with a sense, necessarily large and lusty, for the varieties of the real
-that super-abound. Reducible perhaps to some exquisite measure is this
-point of fatal divergence. It declared itself, the divergence, in the
-heart of Balzac’s genius; for nothing about him is less to be gainsaid
-than that on the other or further side of a certain line of rareness
-drawn his authority, so splendid on the hither or familiar side, is
-sadly liable to lapse. It fails to take in whatever fine truth
-experience may have vouchsafed to us about the highest kinds of temper,
-the inward life of the mind, the _cultivated_ consciousness. His truest
-and vividest people are those whom the conditions in which they are so
-palpably embedded have simplified not less than emphasised; simplified
-mostly to singleness of motive and passion and interest, to quite
-measurably finite existence; whereas his ostensibly higher spirits,
-types necessarily least observed and most independently thought out, in
-the interest of their humanity, as we would fain ourselves think them,
-are his falsest and weakest and show most where his imagination and his
-efficient sympathy break down.
-
-To say so much as this is doubtless to provoke the question of where and
-how then, under so many other restrictions, he is so great—which
-question is answered simply by our claim for his unsurpassed mastery of
-the “middling” sort, so much the most numerous in the world, the
-middling sort pressed upon by the vast variety of their dangers. These
-it is in their multitude whom he makes individually living, each with a
-clustered bunch of concomitants, as no one, to our mind, has equalled
-him in doing—above all with the amount of repetition of the feat
-considered. Finer images than the middling, but so much fewer, other
-creative talents have thrown off; swarms of the common, on the other
-hand, have obeyed with an even greater air of multitude perhaps than in
-Balzac’s pages the big brandished enumerative wand—only with a signal
-forfeiture in this case of that gift of the sharply separate, the really
-rounded, personality which he untiringly conferred. Émile Zola, by so
-far the strongest example of his influence, mustered groups and crowds
-beyond even the master’s own compass; but as throughout Zola we live and
-move for the most part but in crowds (he thinking his best but in terms
-of crowdedness), so in Balzac, where he rises highest, we deal, whether
-or no more for our sense of ugliness than of beauty, but with memorable
-person after person. He thought, on his side—when he thought at least
-to good purpose—in terms the most expressively personal, in such as
-could even eventuate in monsters and forms of evil the most finished we
-know; so that if he too has left us a multitude of which we may say that
-it stands alone for solidity, it nevertheless exists by addition and
-extension, not by a chemical shaking-together, a cheapening or
-diminishing fusion.
-
-It is not that the series of the Rougon-Macquart has not several
-distinct men and women to show—though they occur, as a fact, almost in
-“L’Assommoir” alone; it is not either that Zola did not on occasion try
-for the cultivated consciousness, a thing of course, so far as ever
-achieved anywhere, necessarily separate and distinguished; it is that he
-tried, on such ground, with a futility only a shade less marked than
-Balzac’s, and perhaps would have tried with equal disaster had he
-happened to try oftener. If we find in his pages no such spreading waste
-as Balzac’s general picture of the classes “enjoying every advantage,”
-that is of the socially highest—to the elder writer’s success in
-depicting particularly the female members of which Sainte-Beuve, and
-Brunetière in his footsteps, have rendered such strange and stupefying
-homage—the reason may very well be that such groups could not in the
-nature of the case figure to him after the fashion in which he liked
-groups to figure, as merely herded and compressed. To Balzac they were
-groups in which individualisation might be raised to its very finest;
-and it is by this possibility in them that we watch him and his fertile
-vulgarity, his peccant taste, so fallible for delicacies, so unerring
-for simplicities, above all doubtless the homeliest, strongest and
-grimmest, wofully led astray. But it is fairly almost a pleasure to our
-admiration, before him, to see what we have permitted ourselves to call
-the “chunks” of excision carted off to the disengagement of the values
-that still live. The wondrous thing is that they live best where his
-grand vulgarity—since we are not afraid of the word—serves him rather
-than betrays; which it _has_ to do, we make out, over the greater part
-of the field of any observer for whom man is on the whole cruelly,
-crushingly, deformedly conditioned. We grant _that_ as to Balzac’s view,
-and yet feel the view to have been at the same time incomparably active
-and productively genial; which are by themselves somehow qualities and
-reactions that redress the tragedy and the doom. The vulgarity was at
-any rate a force that simply got nearer than any other could have done
-to the whole detail, the whole intimate and evidenced story, of
-submission and perversion, and as such it could but prove itself
-immensely human. It is on all this considered ground that he has for so
-many years stood firm and that we feel him by reason of it and in spite
-of them, in spite of all that has come and gone, not to have yielded,
-have “given,” an inch.
-
------
-
-Footnote 5:
-
-Balzac. Par Émile Faguet, de l’Académie Française. Les Grands Écrivains
-Français. Paris, Hachette, 1913.
-
-
-
-
- GEORGE SAND
- 1897
-
-
-I have been reading in the Revue de Paris for November 1st, 1896, some
-fifty pages, of an extraordinary interest, which have had in respect to
-an old admiration a remarkable effect. Undoubtedly for other admirers
-too who have come to fifty year—admirers, I mean, once eager, of the
-distinguished woman involved—the perusal of the letters addressed by
-George Sand to Alfred de Musset in the course of a famous friendship
-will have stirred in an odd fashion the ashes of an early ardour. I
-speak of ashes because early ardours for the most part burn themselves
-out, while the place they hold in our lives varies, I think, mainly
-according to the degree of tenderness with which we gather up and
-preserve their dust; and I speak of oddity because in the present case
-it is difficult to say whether the agitation of the embers results at
-last in a returning glow or in a yet more sensible chill. That indeed is
-perhaps a small question compared with the simple pleasure of the
-reviving emotion. One reads and wonders and enjoys again, just for the
-sake of the renewal. The small fry of the hour submit to further
-shrinkage, and we revert with a sigh of relief to the free genius and
-large life of one of the greatest of all masters of expression. Do
-people still handle the works of this master—people other than young
-ladies studying French with La “Mare au Diable” and a dictionary? Are
-there persons who still read “Valentine”? Are there others capable of
-losing themselves in “Mauprat”? Has “André,” the exquisite, dropped out
-of knowledge, and is any one left who remembers “Teverino”? I ask these
-questions for the mere sweet sound of them, without the least
-expectation of an answer. I remember asking them twenty years ago, after
-Madame Sand’s death, and not then being hopeful of the answer of the
-future. But the only response that matters to us perhaps is our own,
-even if it be after all somewhat ambiguous. “André” and “Valentine” then
-are rather on our shelves than in our hands, but in the light of what is
-given us in the “Revue de Paris” who shall say that we do not, and with
-avidity, “read” George Sand? She died in 1876, but she lives again
-intensely in these singular pages, both as to what in her spirit was
-most attaching and what most disconcerting. We are vague as to what they
-may represent for the generation that has come to the front since her
-death; nothing, I dare say, very imposing or even very pleasing. But
-they give out a great deal to a reader for whom thirty years ago—the
-best time to have taken her as a whole—she was a high clear figure, a
-great familiar magician. This impression is a strange mixture, but
-perhaps not quite incommunicable; and we are steeped as we receive it in
-one of the most curious episodes in the annals of the literary race.
-
-
- I
-
-It is the great interest of such an episode that, apart from its
-proportionate place in the unfolding of a personal life it has a
-wonderful deal to say on the relation between experience and art at
-large. It constitutes an eminent special case, in which the workings of
-that relation are more or less uncovered; a case too of which one of the
-most striking notes is that we are in possession of it almost
-exclusively by the act of one of the persons concerned. Madame Sand at
-least, as we see to-day, was eager to leave nothing undone that could
-make us further acquainted than we were before with one of the liveliest
-chapters of her personal history. We cannot, doubtless, be sure that her
-conscious purpose in the production of “Elle et Lui” was to show us the
-process by which private ecstasies and pains find themselves transmuted
-in the artist’s workshop into promising literary material—any more than
-we can be certain of her motive for making toward the end of her life
-earnest and complete arrangements for the ultimate publication of the
-letters in which the passion is recorded and in which we can remount to
-the origin of the volume. If “Elle et Lui” had been the inevitable
-picture, postponed and retouched, of the great adventure of her youth,
-so the letters show us the crude primary stuff from which the moral
-detachment of the book was distilled. Were they to be given to the world
-for the encouragement of the artist-nature—as a contribution to the
-view that no suffering is great enough, no emotion tragic enough to
-exclude the hope that such pangs may sooner or later be esthetically
-assimilated? Was the whole proceeding, in intention, a frank plea for
-the intellectual and in some degree even the commercial profit, to a
-robust organism, of a store of erotic reminiscence? Whatever the reasons
-behind the matter, that is to a certain extent the moral of the strange
-story.
-
-It may be objected that this moral is qualified to come home to us only
-when the relation between art and experience really proves a happier one
-than it may be held to have proved in the combination before us. The
-element in danger of being most absent from the process is the element
-of dignity, and its presence, so far as that may ever at all be hoped
-for in an appeal from a personal quarrel, is assured only in proportion
-as the esthetic event, standing on its own feet, represents a noble
-gift. It was vain, the objector may say, for our author to pretend to
-justify by so slight a performance as “Elle et Lui” that sacrifice of
-all delicacy which has culminated in this supreme surrender. “If you
-sacrifice all delicacy,” I hear such a critic contend, “show at least
-that you were right by giving us a masterpiece. The novel in question is
-no more a masterpiece,” I even hear him proceed, “than any other of the
-loose liquid lucid works of its author. By your supposition of a great
-intention you give much too fine an account on the one hand of a
-personal habit of incontinence and on the other of a literary habit of
-egotism. Madame Sand, in writing her tale and in publishing her
-love-letters, obeyed no prompting more exalted than that of exhibiting
-her personal (in which I include her verbal) facility, and of doing so
-at the cost of whatever other persons might be concerned; and you are
-therefore—and you might as well immediately confess it—thrown back for
-the element of interest on the attraction of her general eloquence, the
-plausibility of her general manner and the great number of her
-particular confidences. You are thrown back on your mere curiosity or
-sympathy—thrown back from any question of service rendered to ‘art.’ ”
-One might be thrown back doubtless still further even than such remarks
-would represent if one were not quite prepared with the confession they
-propose. It is only because such a figure is interesting—in every
-manifestation—that its course is marked for us by vivid footprints and
-possible lessons. And to enable us to find these it scarcely need have
-aimed after all so extravagantly high. George Sand lived her remarkable
-life and drove her perpetual pen, but the illustration that I began by
-speaking of is for ourselves to gather—if we can.
-
-I remember hearing many years ago in Paris an anecdote for the truth of
-which I am far from vouching, though it professed to come direct—an
-anecdote that has recurred to me more than once in turning over the
-revelations of the Revue de Paris, and without the need of the special
-reminder (in the shape of an allusion to her intimacy with the hero of
-the story) contained in those letters to Sainte-Beuve which are
-published in the number of November 15th. Prosper Mérimée was said to
-have related—in a reprehensible spirit—that during a term of
-association with the author of “Lélia” he once opened his eyes, in the
-raw winter dawn, to see his companion, in a dressing-gown, on her knees
-before the domestic hearth, a candlestick beside her and a red _madras_
-round her head, making bravely, with her own hands, the fire that was to
-enable her to sit down betimes to urgent pen and paper. The story
-represents him as having felt that the spectacle chilled his ardour and
-tried his taste; her appearance was unfortunate, her occupation an
-inconsequence and her industry a reproof—the result of all of which was
-a lively irritation and an early rupture. To the firm admirer of Madame
-Sand’s prose the little sketch has a very different value, for it
-presents her in an attitude which is the very key to the enigma, the
-answer to most of the questions with which her character confronts us.
-She rose early because she was pressed to write, and she was pressed to
-write because she had the greatest instinct of expression ever conferred
-on a woman; a faculty that put a premium on all passion, on all pain, on
-all experience and all exposure, on the greatest variety of ties and the
-smallest reserve about them. The really interesting thing in these
-posthumous _laideurs_ is the way the gift, the voice, carries its
-possessor through them and lifts her on the whole above them. It gave
-her, it may be confessed at the outset and in spite of all magnanimities
-in the use of it, an unfair advantage in every connection. So at least
-we must continue to feel till—for our appreciation of this particular
-one—we have Alfred de Musset’s share of the correspondence. For we
-shall have it at last, in whatever faded fury or beauty it may still
-possess—to that we may make up our minds. Let the galled jade wince, it
-is only a question of time. The greatest of literary quarrels will in
-short, on the general ground, once more come up—the quarrel beside
-which all others are mild and arrangeable, the eternal dispute between
-the public and the private, between curiosity and delicacy.
-
-This discussion is precisely all the sharper because it takes place for
-each of us within as well as without. When we wish to know at all we
-wish to know everything; yet there happen to be certain things of which
-no better description can be given than that they are simply none of our
-business. “What _is_ then forsooth of our business?” the genuine analyst
-may always ask; and he may easily challenge us to produce any rule of
-general application by which we shall know when to push in and when to
-back out. “In the first place,” he may continue, “half the ‘interesting’
-people in the world have at one time or another set themselves to drag
-us in with all their might; and what in the world in such a relation is
-the observer that he should absurdly pretend to be in more of a flutter
-than the object observed? The mannikin, in all schools, is at an early
-stage of study of the human form inexorably superseded by the man. Say
-that we are to give up the attempt to understand: it might certainly be
-better so, and there would be a delightful side to the new arrangement.
-But in the name of common-sense don’t say that the continuity of life is
-not to have some equivalent in the continuity of pursuit, the renewal of
-phenomena in the renewal of notation. There is not a door you can lock
-here against the critic or the painter, not a cry you can raise or a
-long face you can pull at him, that are not quite arbitrary things. The
-only thing that makes the observer competent is that he is neither
-afraid nor ashamed; the only thing that makes him decent—just
-think!—is that he is not superficial.” All this is very well, but
-somehow we all equally feel that there is clean linen and soiled and
-that life would be intolerable without some acknowledgment even by the
-pushing of such a thing as forbidden ground. M. Émile Zola, at the
-moment I write, gives to the world his reasons for rejoicing in the
-publication of the physiological _enquête_ of Dr. Toulouse—a marvellous
-catalogue or handbook of M. Zola’s outward and inward parts, which
-leaves him not an inch of privacy, so to speak, to stand on, leaves him
-nothing about himself that is _for_ himself, for his friends, his
-relatives, his intimates, his lovers, for discovery, for emulation, for
-fond conjecture or flattering deluded envy. It is enough for M. Zola
-that everything is for the public and no sacrifice worth thinking of
-when it is a question of presenting to the open mouth of that apparently
-gorged but still gaping monster the smallest spoonful of truth. The
-truth, to his view, is never either ridiculous or unclean, and the way
-to a better life lies through telling it, so far as possible, about
-everything and about every one.
-
-There would probably be no difficulty in agreeing to this if it didn’t
-seem on the part of the speaker the result of a rare confusion between
-give and take, between “truth” and information. The true thing that most
-matters to us is the true thing we have most use for, and there are
-surely many occasions on which the truest thing of all is the necessity
-of the mind, its simple necessity of feeling. Whether it feels in order
-to learn or learns in order to feel, the event is the same: the side on
-which it shall most feel will be the side to which it will most incline.
-If it feels more about a Zola functionally undeciphered it will be
-governed more by that particular truth than by the truth about his
-digestive idiosyncrasies, or even about his “olfactive perceptions” and
-his “arithmomania or impulse to count.” An affirmation of our “mere
-taste” may very supposedly be our individual contribution to the general
-clearing up. Nothing often is less superficial than to ignore and
-overlook, or more constructive (for living and feeling at all) than to
-want impatiently to choose. If we are aware that in the same way as
-about a Zola undeciphered we should have felt more about a George Sand
-unexposed, the true thing we have gained becomes a poor substitute for
-the one we have lost; and I scarce see what difference it makes that the
-view of the elder novelist appears in this matter quite to march with
-that of the younger. I hasten to add that as to being of course asked
-why in the world with such a leaning we have given time either to M.
-Zola’s physician or to Musset’s correspondent, this is only another
-illustration of the bewildering state of the subject.
-
-When we meet on the broad highway the rueful denuded figure we need some
-presence of mind to decide whether to cut it dead or to lead it gently
-home, and meanwhile the fatal complication easily occurs. We have
-_seen_, in a flash of our own wit, and mystery has fled with a shriek.
-These encounters are indeed accidents which may at any time take place,
-and the general guarantee in a noisy world lies, I judge, not so much in
-any hope of really averting them as in a regular organisation of the
-struggle. The reporter and the reported have duly and equally to
-understand that they carry their life in their hands. There are secrets
-for privacy and silence; let them only be cultivated on the part of the
-hunted creature with even half the method with which the love of
-sport—or call it the historic sense—is cultivated on the part of the
-investigator. They have been left too much to the natural, the
-instinctive man; but they will be twice as effective after it begins to
-be observed that they may take their place among the triumphs of
-civilisation. Then at last the game will be fair and the two forces face
-to face; it will be “pull devil, pull tailor,” and the hardest pull will
-doubtless provide the happiest result. Then the cunning of the inquirer,
-envenomed with resistance, will exceed in subtlety and ferocity anything
-we to-day conceive, and the pale forewarned victim, with every track
-covered, every paper burnt and every letter unanswered, will, in the
-tower of art, the invulnerable granite, stand, without a sally, the
-siege of all the years.
-
-
- II
-
-It was not in the tower of art that George Sand ever shut herself up;
-but I come back to a point already made in saying that it is in the
-citadel of style that, notwithstanding rash _sorties_, she continues to
-hold out. The outline of the complicated story that was to cause so much
-ink to flow gives, even with the omission of a hundred features, a
-direct measure of the strain to which her astonishing faculty was
-exposed. In the summer of 1833, as a woman of nearly thirty, she
-encountered Alfred de Musset, who was six years her junior. In spite of
-their youth they were already somewhat bowed by the weight of a troubled
-past. Musset, at twenty-three, had that of his confirmed libertinism—so
-Madame Arvède Barine, who has had access to materials, tells us in the
-admirable short biography of the poet contributed to the rather markedly
-unequal but very interesting series of Hachette’s Grands Écrivains
-Français. Madame Sand had a husband, a son and a daughter, and the
-impress of that succession of lovers—Jules Sandeau had been one,
-Prosper Mérimée another—to which she so freely alludes in the letters
-to Sainte-Beuve, a friend more disinterested than these and qualified to
-give much counsel in exchange for much confidence. It cannot be said
-that the situation of either of our young persons was of good omen for a
-happy relation, but they appear to have burnt their ships with much
-promptitude and a great blaze, and in the December of that year they
-started together for Italy. The following month saw them settled, on a
-frail basis, in Venice, where the elder companion remained till late in
-the summer of 1834 and where she wrote, in part, “Jacques” and the
-“Lettres d’un Voyageur,” as well as “André” and “Léone-Léoni,” and
-gathered the impressions to be embodied later in half-a-dozen stories
-with Italian titles—notably in the delightful “Consuelo.” The journey,
-the Italian climate, the Venetian winter at first agreed with neither of
-the friends; they were both taken ill—the young man very gravely—and
-after a stay of three months Musset returned, alone and much ravaged, to
-Paris.
-
-In the meantime a great deal had happened, for their union had been
-stormy and their security small. Madame Sand had nursed her companion in
-illness (a matter-of-course office, it must be owned) and her companion
-had railed at his nurse in health. A young physician, called in, had
-become a close friend of both parties, but more particularly a close
-friend of the lady, and it was to his tender care that on quitting the
-scene Musset solemnly committed her. She took up life with Pietro
-Pagello—the transition is startling—for the rest of her stay, and on
-her journey back to France he was no inconsiderable part of her luggage.
-He was simple, robust and kind—not a man of genius. He remained,
-however, but a short time in Paris; in the autumn of 1834 he returned to
-Italy, to live on till our own day but never again, so far as we know,
-to meet his illustrious mistress. Her intercourse with her poet was, in
-all its intensity, one may almost say its ferocity, promptly renewed,
-and was sustained in that key for several months more. The effect of
-this strange and tormented passion on the mere student of its records is
-simply to make him ask himself what on earth is the matter with the
-subjects of it. Nothing is more easy than to say, as I have intimated,
-that it has no need of records and no need of students; but this leaves
-out of account the thick medium of genius in which it was foredoomed to
-disport itself. It was self-registering, as the phrase is, for the
-genius on both sides happened to be the genius of eloquence. It is all
-rapture and all rage and all literature. The “Lettres d’un Voyageur”
-spring from the thick of the fight; “La Confession d’un Enfant du
-Siècle” and “Les Nuits” are immediate echoes of the concert. The lovers
-are naked in the market-place and perform for the benefit of society.
-The matter with them, to the perception of the stupefied spectator, is
-that they entertained for each other every feeling in life but the
-feeling of respect. What the absence of that article may do for the
-passion of hate is apparently nothing to what it may do for the passion
-of love.
-
-By our unhappy pair at any rate the luxury in question—the little
-luxury of plainer folk—was not to be purchased, and in the comedy of
-their despair and the tragedy of their recovery nothing is more striking
-than their convulsive effort either to reach up to it or to do without
-it. They would have given for it all else they possessed, but they only
-meet in their struggle the inexorable _never_. They strain and pant and
-gasp, they beat the air in vain for the cup of cold water of their hell.
-They missed it in a way for which none of their superiorities could make
-up. Their great affliction was that each found in the life of the other
-an armoury of weapons to wound. Young as they were, young as Musset was
-in particular, they appeared to have afforded each other in that
-direction the most extraordinary facilities; and nothing in the matter
-of the mutual consideration that failed them is more sad and strange
-than that even in later years, when their rage, very quickly, had
-cooled, they never arrived at simple silence. For Madame Sand, in her so
-much longer life, there was no hush, no letting alone; though it would
-be difficult indeed to exaggerate the depth of relative indifference
-from which, a few years after Musset’s death, such a production as “Elle
-et Lui” could spring. Of course there had been floods of tenderness, of
-forgiveness; but those, for all their beauty of expression, are quite
-another matter. It is just the fact of our sense of the ugliness of so
-much of the episode that makes a wonder and a force of the fine style,
-all round, in which it is offered us. That force is in its turn a sort
-of clue to guide, or perhaps rather a sign to stay, our feet in paths
-after all not the most edifying. It gives a degree of importance to the
-somewhat squalid and the somewhat ridiculous story, and, for the old
-George-Sandist at least, lends a positive spell to the smeared and
-yellowed paper, the blotted and faded ink. In this twilight of
-association we seem to find a reply to our own challenge and to be able
-to tell ourselves why we meddle with such old dead squabbles and waste
-our time with such grimacing ghosts. If we were superior to the
-weakness, moreover, how should we make our point (which we must really
-make at any cost) as to the so valuable vivid proof that a great talent
-is the best guarantee—that it may really carry off almost anything?
-
-The rather sorry ghost that beckons us on furthest is the rare
-personality of Madame Sand. Under its influence—or that of old memories
-from which it is indistinguishable—we pick our steps among the
-_laideurs_ aforesaid: the misery, the levity, the brevity of it all, the
-greatest ugliness in particular that this life shows us, the way the
-devotions and passions that we see heaven and earth called to witness
-are over before we can turn round. It may be said that, for what it was,
-the intercourse of these unfortunates surely lasted long enough; but the
-answer to that is that if it had only lasted longer it wouldn’t have
-been what it was. It was not only preceded and followed by intimacies,
-on one side and the other, as unadorned by the stouter sincerity, but
-was mixed up with them in a manner that would seem to us dreadful if it
-didn’t still more seem to us droll, or rather perhaps if it didn’t
-refuse altogether to come home to us with the crudity of contemporary
-things. It is antediluvian history, a queer vanished world—another
-Venice from the actually, the deplorably familiarised, a Paris of
-greater bonhomie, an inconceivable impossible Nohant. This relegates it
-to an order agreeable somehow to the imagination of the fond
-quinquegenarian, the reader with a fund of reminiscence. The vanished
-world, the Venice unrestored, the Paris unextended, is a bribe to his
-judgment; he has even a glance of complacency for the lady’s liberal
-_foyer_. Liszt, one lovely year at Nohant, “jouait du piano au
-rez-de-chaussée, et les rossignols, ivres de musique et de soleil,
-s’égosillaient avec rage sur les lilas environnants.” The beautiful
-manner confounds itself with the conditions in which it was exercised,
-the large liberty and variety overflow into admirable prose, and the
-whole thing makes a charming faded medium in which Chopin gives a hand
-to Consuelo and the small Fadette has her elbows on the table of
-Flaubert.
-
-There is a terrible letter of the autumn of 1834 in which our heroine
-has recourse to Alfred Tattet on a dispute with the bewildered
-Pagello—a disagreeable matter that involved a question of money. “À
-Venise il comprenait,” she somewhere says, “à Paris il ne comprend
-plus.” It was a proof of remarkable intelligence that he did understand
-in Venice, where he had become a lover in the presence and with the
-exalted approval of an immediate predecessor—an alternate
-representative of the part, whose turn had now, on the removal to Paris,
-come round again and in whose resumption of office it was looked to him
-to concur. This attachment—to Pagello—had lasted but a few months; yet
-already it was the prey of complication and change, and its sun appears
-to have set in no very graceful fashion. We are not here in truth among
-very graceful things, in spite of superhuman attitudes and great
-romantic flights. As to these forced notes Madame Arvède Barine
-judiciously says that the picture of them contained in the letters to
-which she had had access, and some of which are before us, “presents an
-example extraordinary and unmatched of what the romantic spirit could do
-with beings who had become its prey.” She adds that she regards the
-records in question, “in which we follow step by step the ravages of the
-monster,” as “one of the most precious psychological documents of the
-first half of the century.” That puts the story on its true footing,
-though we may regret that it should not divide these documentary honours
-more equally with some other story in which the monster has not quite so
-much the best of it. But it is the misfortune of the comparatively short
-and simple annals of conduct and character that they should ever seem to
-us somehow to cut less deep. Scarce—to quote again his best
-biographer—had Musset, at Venice, begun to recover from his illness
-than the two lovers were seized afresh by _le vertige du sublime et de
-l’impossible_. “Ils imaginèrent les déviations de sentiment les plus
-bizarres, et leur intérieur fut le théâtre de scènes qui égalaient en
-étrangeté les fantaisies les plus audacieuses de la littérature
-contemporaine;” that is of the literature of their own day. The register
-of virtue contains no such lively items—save indeed in so far as these
-contortions and convulsions were a conscious tribute to virtue.
-
-Ten weeks after Musset has left her in Venice his relinquished but not
-dissevered mistress writes to him in Paris: “God keep you, my friend, in
-your present disposition of heart and mind. Love is a temple built by
-the lover to an object more or less worthy of his worship, and what is
-grand in the thing is not so much the god as the altar. Why should you
-be afraid of the risk?”—of a new mistress she means. There would seem
-to be reasons enough why he should have been afraid, but nothing is more
-characteristic than her eagerness to push him into the arms of another
-woman—more characteristic either of her whole philosophy in these
-matters or of their tremendous, though somewhat conflicting, effort to
-be good. She is to be good by showing herself so superior to jealousy as
-to stir up in him a new appetite for a new object, and he is to be so by
-satisfying it to the full. It appears not to occur to either one that in
-such an arrangement his own honesty is rather sacrificed. Or is it
-indeed because he has scruples—or even a sense of humour—that she
-insists with such ingenuity and such eloquence? “Let the idol stand long
-or let it soon break, you will in either case have built a beautiful
-shrine. Your soul will have lived in it, have filled it with divine
-incense, and a soul like yours must produce great works. The god will
-change perhaps, the temple will last as long as yourself.” “Perhaps,”
-under the circumstances, was charming. The letter goes on with the ample
-flow that was always at the author’s command—an ease of suggestion and
-generosity, of beautiful melancholy acceptance, in which we foresee, on
-her own horizon, the dawn of new suns. Her simplifications are
-delightful—they remained so to the end; her touch is a wondrous
-sleight-of-hand. The whole of this letter in short is a splendid
-utterance and a masterpiece of the shade of sympathy, not perhaps the
-clearest, which consists of wishing another to feel as you feel
-yourself. To feel as George Sand felt, however, one had to be, like
-George Sand, of the true male inwardness; which poor Musset was far from
-being. This, we surmise, was the case with most of her lovers, and the
-truth that makes the idea of her _liaison_ with Mérimée, who _was_ of a
-consistent virility, sound almost like a union against nature. She
-repeats to her correspondent, on grounds admirably stated, the
-injunction that he is to give himself up, to let himself go, to take his
-chance. That he took it we all know—he followed her advice only too
-well. It is indeed not long before his manner of doing so draws from her
-a cry of distress. “Ta conduite est déplorable, impossible. Mon Dieu, à
-quelle vie vais-je te laisser? l’ivresse, le vin, les filles, et encore
-et toujours!” But apprehensions were now too late; they would have been
-too late at the very earliest stage of this celebrated connection.
-
-
- III
-
-The great difficulty was that, though they were sublime, the couple were
-really not serious. But on the other hand if on a lady’s part in such a
-relation the want of sincerity or of constancy is a grave reproach the
-matter is a good deal modified when the lady, as I have mentioned,
-happens to be—I may not go so far as to say a gentleman. That George
-Sand just fell short of this character was the greatest difficulty of
-all; because if a woman, in a love affair, may be—for all she is to
-gain or to lose—what she likes, there is only one thing that, to carry
-it off with any degree of credit, a man may be. Madame Sand forgot this
-on the day she published “Elle et Lui”; she forgot it again more gravely
-when she bequeathed to the great snickering public these present shreds
-and relics of unutterably personal things. The aberration refers itself
-to the strange lapses of still other occasions—notably to the
-extraordinary absence of scruples with which she in the delightful
-“Histoire de ma Vie” gives away, as we say, the character of her
-remarkable mother. The picture is admirable for vividness, for breadth
-of touch; it would be perfect from any hand not a daughter’s, and we ask
-ourselves wonderingly how through all the years, to make her capable of
-it, a long perversion must have worked and the filial fibre—or rather
-the general flower of sensibility—have been battered. Not this
-particular anomaly, however, but many another, yields to the reflection
-that as just after her death a very perceptive person who had known her
-well put it to the author of these remarks, she was a woman quite by
-accident. Her immense plausibility was almost the only sign of her sex.
-She needed always to prove that she had been in the right; as how indeed
-could a person fail to who, thanks to the special equipment I have
-named, might prove it so brilliantly? It is not too much to say of her
-gift of expression—and I have already in effect said so—that from
-beginning to end it floated her over the real as a high tide floats a
-ship over the bar. She was never left awkwardly straddling on the
-sandbank of fact.
-
-For the rest, in any case, with her free experience and her free use of
-it, her literary style, her love of ideas and questions, of science and
-philosophy, her comradeship, her boundless tolerance, her intellectual
-patience, her personal good-humour and perpetual tobacco (she smoked
-long before women at large felt the cruel obligation), with all these
-things and many I don’t mention she had more of the inward and outward
-of the other sex than of her own. She had above all the mark that, to
-speak at this time of day with a freedom for which her action in the
-matter of publicity gives us warrant, the history of her personal
-passions reads singularly like a chronicle of the ravages of some male
-celebrity. Her relations with men closely resembled those relations with
-women that, from the age of Pericles or that of Petrarch, have been
-complacently commemorated as stages in the unfolding of the great
-statesman and the great poet. It is very much the same large list, the
-same story of free appropriation and consumption. She appeared in short
-to have lived through a succession of such ties exactly in the manner of
-a Goethe, a Byron or a Napoleon; and if millions of women, of course, of
-every condition, had had more lovers, it was probable that no woman
-independently so occupied and so diligent had had, as might be said,
-more unions. Her fashion was quite her own of extracting from this sort
-of experience all that it had to give her and being withal only the more
-just and bright and true, the more sane and superior, improved and
-improving. She strikes us as in the benignity of such an intercourse
-even more than maternal: not so much the mere fond mother as the
-supersensuous grandmother of the wonderful affair. Is not that
-practically the character in which Thérèse Jacques studies to present
-herself to Laurent de Fauvel? the light in which “Lucrezia Floriani” (a
-memento of a friendship for Chopin, for Liszt) shows the heroine as
-affected toward Prince Karol and his friend? George Sand is too
-inveterately moral, too preoccupied with that need to do good which is
-in art often the enemy of doing well; but in all her work the
-story-part, as children call it, has the freshness and good faith of a
-monastic legend. It is just possible indeed that the moral idea was the
-real mainspring of her course—I mean a sense of the duty of avenging on
-the unscrupulous race of men their immemorial selfish success with the
-plastic race of women. Did she wish above all to turn the tables—to
-show how the sex that had always ground the other in the volitional mill
-was on occasion capable of being ground?
-
-However this may be, nothing is more striking than the inward impunity
-with which she gave herself to conditions that are usually held to
-denote or to involve a state of demoralisation. This impunity (to speak
-only of consequences or features that concern us) was not, I admit,
-complete, but it was sufficiently so to warrant us in saying that no one
-was ever less demoralised. She presents a case prodigiously discouraging
-to the usual view—the view that there is no surrender to
-“unconsecrated” passion that we escape paying for in one way or another.
-It is frankly difficult to see where this eminent woman conspicuously
-paid. She positively got off from paying—and in a cloud of fluency and
-dignity, benevolence, competence, intelligence. She sacrificed, it is
-true, a handful of minor coin—suffered by failing wholly to grasp in
-her picture of life certain shades and certain delicacies. What she paid
-was this irrecoverable loss of her touch for them. That is undoubtedly
-one of the reasons why to-day the picture in question has perceptibly
-faded, why there are persons who would perhaps even go so far as to say
-that it has really a comic side. She doesn’t know, according to such
-persons, her right hand from her left, the crooked from the straight and
-the clean from the unclean: it was a sense she lacked or a tact she had
-rubbed off, and her great work is by the fatal twist quite as lopsided a
-monument as the leaning tower of Pisa. Some readers may charge her with
-a graver confusion still—the incapacity to distinguish between fiction
-and fact, the truth straight from the well and the truth curling in
-steam from the kettle and preparing the comfortable tea. There is no
-word oftener on her pen, they will remind us, than the verb to
-“arrange.” She arranged constantly, she arranged beautifully; but from
-this point of view, that of a general suspicion of arrangements, she
-always proved too much. Turned over in the light of it the story of
-“Elle et Lui” for instance is an attempt to prove that the mistress of
-Laurent de Fauvel was little less than a prodigy of virtue. What is
-there not, the intemperate admirer may be challenged to tell us, an
-attempt to prove in “L’Histoire de ma Vie”?—a work from which we gather
-every delightful impression but the impression of an impeccable
-veracity.
-
-These reservations may, however, all be sufficiently just without
-affecting our author’s peculiar air of having eaten her cake and had it,
-been equally initiated in directions the most opposed. Of how much cake
-she partook the letters to Musset and Sainte-Beuve well show us, and yet
-they fall in at the same time, on other sides, with all that was noble
-in her mind, all that is beautiful in the books just mentioned and in
-the six volumes of the general “Correspondance: 1812-1876,” out of which
-Madame Sand comes so immensely to her advantage. She had, as liberty,
-all the adventures of which the dots are so put on the i’s by the
-documents lately published, and then she had, as law, as honour and
-serenity, all her fine reflections on them and all her splendid busy
-literary use of them. Nothing perhaps gives more relief to her masculine
-stamp than the rare art and success with which she cultivated an
-equilibrium. She made from beginning to end a masterly study of
-composure, absolutely refusing to be upset, closing her door at last
-against the very approach of irritation and surprise. She had arrived at
-her quiet elastic synthesis—a good-humour, an indulgence that were an
-armour of proof. The great felicity of all this was that it was neither
-indifference nor renunciation, but on the contrary an intense partaking;
-imagination, affection, sympathy and life, the way she had found for
-herself of living most and living longest. However well it all agreed
-with her happiness and her manners, it agrees still better with her
-style, as to which we come back with her to the sense that this was
-really her _point d’appui_ or sustaining force. Most people have to say,
-especially about themselves, only what they can; but she said—and we
-nowhere see it better than in the letters to Musset—everything in life
-that she wanted. We can well imagine the effect of that consciousness on
-the nerves of this particular correspondent, his own poor gift of
-occasional song (to be so early spent) reduced to nothing by so
-unequalled a command of the last word. We feel it, I hasten to add, this
-last word, in all her letters: the occasion, no matter which, gathers it
-from her as the breeze gathers the scent from the garden. It is always
-the last word of sympathy and sense, and we meet it on every page of the
-voluminous “Correspondance.” These pages are not so “clever” as those,
-in the same order, of some other famous hands—the writer always denied,
-justly enough, that she had either wit or presence of mind—and they are
-not a product of high spirits or of a marked avidity for gossip. But
-they have admirable ease, breadth and generosity; they are the clear
-quiet overflow of a very full cup. They speak above all for the author’s
-great gift, her eye for the inward drama. Her hand is always on the
-fiddle-string, her ear is always at the heart. It was in the soul, in a
-word, that she saw the drama begin, and to the soul that, after whatever
-outward flourishes, she saw it confidently come back. She herself lived
-with all her perceptions and in all her chambers—not merely in the
-showroom of the shop. This brings us once more to the question of the
-instrument and the tone, and to our idea that the tone, when you are so
-lucky as to possess it, may be of itself a solution.
-
-By a solution I mean a secret for saving not only your reputation but
-your life—that of your soul; an antidote to dangers which the unendowed
-can hope to escape by no process less uncomfortable or less inglorious
-than that of prudence and precautions. The unendowed must go round
-about, the others may go straight through the wood. Their weaknesses,
-those of the others, shall be as well redeemed as their books shall be
-well preserved; it may almost indeed be said that they are made wise in
-spite of themselves. If you have never in all your days _had_ a weakness
-worth mentioning, you can be after all no more, at the very most, than
-large and cheerful and imperturbable. All these things Madame Sand
-managed to be on just the terms she had found, as we see, most
-convenient. So much, I repeat, does there appear to be in a tone. But if
-the perfect possession of one made her, as it well might, an optimist,
-the action of it is perhaps more consistently happy in her letters and
-her personal records than in her “creative” work. Her novels to-day have
-turned rather pale and faint, as if the image projected—not intense,
-not absolutely concrete—failed to reach completely the mind’s eye. And
-the odd point is that the wonderful charm of expression is not really a
-remedy for this lack of intensity, but rather an aggravation of it
-through a sort of suffusion of the whole thing by the voice and speech
-of the author. These things set the subject, whatever it be, afloat in
-the upper air, where it takes a happy bath of brightness and vagueness
-or swims like a soap-bubble kept up by blowing. This is no drawback when
-she is on the ground of her own life, to which she is tied by a certain
-number of tangible threads; but to embark on one of her confessed
-fictions is to have—after all that has come and gone, in our time, in
-the trick of persuasion—a little too much the feeling of going up in a
-balloon. We are borne by a fresh cool current and the car delightfully
-dangles; but as we peep over the sides we see things—as we usually know
-them—at a dreadful drop beneath. Or perhaps a better way to express the
-sensation is to say what I have just been struck with in the re-perusal
-of “Elle et Lui”; namely that this book, like others by the same hand,
-affects the reader—and the impression is of the oddest—not as a first
-but as a second echo or edition of the immediate real, or in other words
-of the subject. The tale may in this particular be taken as typical of
-the author’s manner; beautifully told, but told, as if on a last remove
-from the facts, by some one repeating what he has read or what he has
-had from another and thereby inevitably becoming more general and
-superficial, missing or forgetting the “hard” parts and slurring them
-over and making them up. Of everything but feelings the presentation is
-dim. We recognise that we shall never know the original narrator and
-that the actual introducer is the only one we can deal with. But we sigh
-perhaps as we reflect that we may never confront her with her own
-informant.
-
-To that, however, we must resign ourselves; for I remember in time that
-the volume from which I take occasion to speak with this levity is the
-work that I began by pronouncing a precious illustration. With the aid
-of the disclosures of the Revue de Paris it was, as I hinted, to show us
-that no mistakes and no pains are too great to be, in the air of art,
-triumphantly convertible. Has it really performed this function? I thumb
-again my copy of the limp little novel and wonder what, alas, I shall
-reply. The case is extreme, for it was the case of a suggestive
-experience particularly dire, and the literary flower that has bloomed
-upon it is not quite the full-blown rose. “Oeuvre de rancune” Arvède
-Barine pronounces it, and if we take it as that we admit that the
-artist’s distinctness from her material was not ideally complete. Shall
-I not better the question by saying that it strikes me less as a work of
-rancour than—in a peculiar degree—as a work of egotism? It becomes in
-that light at any rate a sufficiently happy affirmation of the author’s
-infallible form. This form was never a more successful vehicle for the
-conveyance of sweet reasonableness. It is all superlatively calm and
-clear; there never was a kinder, balmier last word. Whatever the measure
-of justice of the particular representation, moreover, the picture has
-only to be put beside the recent documents, the “study,” as I may call
-them, to illustrate the general phenomenon. Even if “Elle et Lui” is not
-the full-blown rose we have enough here to place in due relief an
-irrepressible tendency to bloom. In fact I seem already to discern that
-tendency in the very midst of the storm; the “tone” in the letters too
-has its own way and performs on its own account—which is but another
-manner of saying that the literary instinct, in the worst shipwreck, is
-never out of its depth. The worker observed at the fire by Mérimée could
-be drowned but in an ocean of ink. Is that a sufficient account of what
-I have called the laying bare of the relation between experience and
-art? With the two elements, the life and the genius, face to face—the
-smutches and quarrels at one end of the chain and the high luminosity at
-the other—does some essential link still appear to be missing? How do
-the graceless facts after all confound themselves with the beautiful
-spirit? They do so, incontestably, before our eyes, and the
-mystification remains. We try to trace the process, but before we break
-down we had better perhaps hasten to grant that—so far at least as
-George Sand is concerned—some of its steps are impenetrable secrets of
-the grand manner.
-
-
-
-
- GEORGE SAND
- 1899
-
-
-Those among us comfortably conscious of our different usage—aware, some
-would say, of our better conscience—may well have remarked the general
-absence from French practice of biographic commemoration of extinct
-worthies. The Life as we understand it, the prompt pious spacious record
-and mirror of the eminent career, rarely follows the death. The ghost of
-the great man, when he happens to have been a Frenchman, “sits” for such
-portraiture, we gather, with a confidence much less assured than among
-ourselves, and with fewer relatives and friends to surround the chair.
-The manner in which even for persons of highest mark among our
-neighbours biography either almost endlessly hangs back or altogether
-fails, suggests that the approach is even when authorised too often
-difficult. This general attitude toward the question, it would thus
-appear, implies for such retrospects the predominance of doors bolted
-and barred. Hesitation is therefore fairly logical, for it rests on the
-assumption that men and women of great gifts will have lived with
-commensurate intensity, and that as regards some of the forms of this
-intensity the discretion of the inquirer may well be the better part of
-his enthusiasm. The critic can therefore only note with regret so much
-absent opportunity for the play of perception and the art of
-composition. The race that produced Balzac—to say nothing of
-Sainte-Beuve—would surely have produced a Boswell, a Lockhart and a
-Trevelyan if the fashion had not set so strongly against it. We have
-lately had a capital example of the encounter of an admirable English
-portraitist and an admirable English subject. It is not irrelevant to
-cite such a book as Mr. Mackail’s “Life of William Morris” as our
-high-water mark—a reminder of how we may be blessed on both faces of
-the question. Each term of the combination appears supposable in France,
-but only as distinct from the other term. The artist, we gather, would
-there have lost his chance and the sitter his ease.
-
-It completes in an interesting way these observations, which would bear
-much expansion, to perceive that when we at last have a Life of George
-Sand—a celebrity living with the imputed intensity, if ever a celebrity
-did—we are indebted for it to the hand of a stranger. No fact could
-more exactly point the moral of my few remarks. Madame Sand’s genius and
-renown would have long ago made her a subject at home if alacrity in
-such a connection had been to be dreamed of. There is no more
-significant sign of the general ban under which alacrity rests.
-Everything about this extraordinary woman is interesting, and we can
-easily imagine the posthumous honours we ourselves would have hastened
-to assure to a part taken, in literature and life, with such brilliancy
-and sincerity. These demonstrations, where we should most look for them,
-have been none the less as naught—save indeed, to be exact, for the
-publication of a number of volumes of letters. It is just Madame Sand’s
-letters, however—letters interesting and admirable, peculiarly
-qualified to dispose the reader in her favour—that in England or in
-America would have quickened the need for the rest of the evidence. But
-now that, as befalls, we do at last have the rest of the evidence as we
-never have had it before, we are of course sufficiently enlightened as
-to the reasons for a special application of the law of reserves and
-delays. It is not in fact easy to see how a full study of our heroine
-could have been produced earlier; and even at present there is a
-sensible comfort in its being produced at such a distance as practically
-assigns the act to a detached posterity. Contemporaneously it was wise
-to forbear; but to-day, and in Russia, by good luck, it is permitted to
-plunge.
-
-Mme. Wladimir Karénine’s extraordinarily diffuse, but scarcely less
-valuable, biography, of which the first instalment,[6] in two large
-volumes, brings the story but to the year 1838, reaches us in a French
-version, apparently from the author’s own hand, of chapters patiently
-contributed to Russian periodicals. Were it not superficially ungrateful
-to begin with reserves about a book so rich and full, there might be
-some complaint to make of this wonderful tribute on grounds of form and
-taste. Ponderous and prolix, the author moves in a mass, escorted by all
-the penalties of her indifference to selection and compression. She
-insists and repeats, she wanders wide; her subject spreads about her, in
-places, as rather a pathless waste. Above all she has produced a book
-which manages to be at once remarkably expert and singularly provincial.
-Our innocence is perhaps at fault, but we are moved to take the mixture
-for characteristically Russian. Would indeed any but that admirable
-“Slav” superiority to prejudice of which we have lately heard so much
-have availed to handle the particular facts in this large free way?
-Nothing is at all events more curious than the union, on the part of our
-biographer, of psychological intelligence and a lame esthetic. The
-writer’s literary appreciations lag in other words half a century behind
-her human and social. She treats us to endless disquisitions on pages of
-her author to which we are no longer in any manageable relation at
-all—disquisitions pathetic, almost grotesque, in their misplaced good
-faith. But her attitude to her subject is admirable, her thoroughness
-exemplary, the spirit of service in her of the sort that builds the
-monument stone by stone. When we see it reared to the summit, as we are
-clearly to do, we shall feel the structure to be solid if not shapely.
-Nothing is more possible meanwhile than that a culture more
-homogeneous—a French hand or a German—could not have engaged in the
-work with anything like the same sincerity. An English hand—and the
-fact, for _our_ culture, means much—would have been incapable of
-touching it. The present scale of it at all events is certainly an
-exotic misconception. But we can take of it what concerns us.
-
-The whole thing of course, we promptly reflect, concerns at the best
-only those of us who can remount a little the stream of time. The author
-of “L’Histoire de ma Vie” died in 1876, and the light of actuality rests
-to-day on very different heads. It may seem to belittle her to say that
-to care for her at all one must have cared for her from far back, for
-such is not in general the proviso we need to make on behalf of the
-greatest figures. It describes Madame Sand with breadth, but not with
-extravagance, to speak of her as a sister to Goethe, and we feel that
-for Goethe it can never be too late to care. But the case exemplifies
-perhaps precisely the difference even in the most brilliant families
-between sisters and brothers. She was to have the family spirit, but she
-was to receive from the fairies who attended at her cradle the silver
-cup, not the gold. She was to write a hundred books but she was not to
-write “Faust.” She was to have all the distinction but not all the
-perfection; and there could be no better instance of the degree in which
-a woman may achieve the one and still fail of the other. When it is a
-question of the rare originals who have either she confirms us,
-masculine as she is, in believing that it takes a still greater
-masculinity to have both. What she had, however, she had in profusion;
-she was one of the deepest voices of that great mid-century concert
-against the last fine strains of which we are more and more banging the
-doors. Her work, beautiful, plentiful and fluid, has floated itself out
-to sea even as the melting snows of the high places are floated. To feel
-how she has passed away as a “creator” is to feel anew the immense waste
-involved in the general ferment of an age, and how much genius and
-beauty, let alone the baser parts of the mixture, it takes to produce a
-moderate quantity of literature. Smaller people have conceivably ceased
-to count; but it is strange for a member of the generation immediately
-succeeding her own that she should have had the same fate as smaller
-people: all the more that such a mourner may be ruefully conscious of
-contributing not a little himself to the mishap. Does he still read,
-re-read, can he to-day at all deal with, this wonderful lady’s novels?
-It only half cheers him up that on the occasion of such a publication as
-I here speak of he finds himself as much interested as ever.
-
-The grounds of the interest are difficult to give—they presuppose so
-much of the old impression. If the old impression therefore requires
-some art to sustain and justify itself we must be content, so far as we
-are still under the charm, to pass, though only at the worst, for
-eccentric. The work, whether we still hold fast to it or not, has twenty
-qualities and would still have an immense one if it had only its style;
-but what I suppose it has paid for in the long-run is its want of
-plastic intensity. Does any work of representation, of imitation, live
-long that is predominantly loose? It may live in spite of looseness; but
-that, we make out, is only because closeness has somewhere, where it has
-most mattered, played a part. It is hard to say of George Sand’s
-productions, I think, that they show closeness anywhere; the sense of
-that fluidity which is more than fluency is what, in speaking of them,
-constantly comes back to us, and the sense of fluidity is fundamentally
-fatal to the sense of particular truth. The thing presented by intention
-is never the stream of the artist’s inspiration; it is the deposit of
-the stream. For the things presented by George Sand, for the general
-picture, we must look elsewhere, look at her life and her nature, and
-find them in the copious documents in which these matters and many
-others are now reflected. All _this_ mass of evidence it is that
-constitutes the “intensity” we demand. The mass has little by little
-become large, and our obligation to Madame Karénine is that she makes it
-still larger. She sets our face, and without intending to, more and more
-in the right direction. Her injudicious analyses of forgotten fictions
-only confirm our discrimination. We feel ourselves in the presence of
-the extraordinary author of the hundred tales, and yet also feel it to
-be not by reason of them that she now presents herself as one of the
-most remarkable of human creatures. By reason then of what? Of
-everything that determined, accompanied, surrounded their appearance.
-They formed all together a great feature in a career and a character,
-but the career and the character are the real thing.
-
-Such is far from usually the case, I hasten to recognise, with the
-complete and consistent artist. Poor is the art, a thing positively to
-be ashamed of, that, generally speaking, is not far more pressing for
-this servant of the altar than anything else, anything outside the
-church, can possibly be. To have been the tempered and directed hammer
-that makes the metal hard: if that be not good enough for such a
-ministrant, we may know him by whatever he has found better—we shall
-not know him by the great name. The immense anomaly in Madame Sand was
-that she freely took the form of being, with most zest, quite another
-sort of hammer. It testifies sufficiently to her large endowment that,
-given the wide range of the rest of her appetite, she should seem to us
-to-day to have sacrificed even superficially to _any_ form of objective
-expression. She had in spite of herself an imagination almost of the
-first order, which overflowed and irrigated, turning by its mere swift
-current, without effort, almost without direction, every mill it
-encountered, and launching as it went alike the lightest skiff and the
-stateliest ship. She had in especial the gift of speech, speech supreme
-and inspired, to which we particularly owe the high value of the “case”
-she presents. For the case was definitely a bold and direct experiment,
-not at all in “art,” not at all in literature, but conspicuously and
-repeatedly in the business of living; so that our profit of it is before
-anything else that it was conscious, articulate, vivid—recorded,
-reflected, imaged. The subject of the experiment became also at first
-hand the journalist—much of her work being simply splendid
-journalism—commissioned to bring it up to date. She interviewed nobody
-else, but she admirably interviewed herself, and this is exactly our
-good fortune. Her autobiography, her letters, her innumerable prefaces,
-all her expansive parentheses and excursions, make up the generous
-report. We have in this form accordingly a literary title for her far
-superseding any derived from her creative work. But that is the result
-of a mere betrayal, not the result of an intention. Her masterpiece, by
-a perversity of fate, is the thing she least sat down to. It
-consists—since she is a case—in the mere notation of her symptoms, in
-help given to the study of them. To this has the author of “Consuelo”
-come.
-
-But how in the world indeed was the point so indicated _not_ to be the
-particular cross-road at which the critic should lie in wait for a poor
-child of the age whom preceding ages and generations had almost
-infernally conspired to trap for him, to give up, candidly astray, to
-his hands? If the element of romance for which our heroine’s name stands
-is best represented by her personal sequences and solutions, it is
-sufficiently visible that her heredity left her a scant alternative.
-Space fails me for the story of this heredity, queer and complicated,
-the very stuff that stories are made of—a chain of generations
-succeeding each other in confidence and joy and with no aid asked of
-legal or other artificial sanctions. The facts are, moreover,
-sufficiently familiar, though here as elsewhere Madame Karénine adds to
-our knowledge. Presented, foreshortened, stretching back from the quiet
-Nohant funeral of 1876 to the steps of the throne of King Augustus the
-Strong of Poland, father of Maurice de Saxe, great-great-grandfather of
-Aurore Dupin, it all hangs together as a cluster of components more
-provocative than any the great novelist herself ever handled. Her
-pre-natal past was so peopled with _dramatis personæ_ that her future
-was really called on to supply them in such numbers as would preserve
-the balance. The tide of illegitimacy sets straight through the series.
-No one to speak of—Aurore’s father is an exception—seems to have had a
-“regular” paternity. Aurore herself squared with regularity but by a
-month or two; the marriage of her parents gave her a bare escape. She
-was brought up by her paternal grandmother between a son of her father
-and a daughter of her mother born out of wedlock. It all moves before us
-as a vivid younger world, a world on the whole more amused and more
-amusing than ours. The period from the Restoration to the events of 1848
-is the stretch of time in which, for more reasons than we can now go
-into, French life gives out to those to whom its appeal never fails most
-of its charm—most, at all events, of its ancient sociability. Happy is
-our sense of the picturesque Paris unconscious of a future all “avenues”
-and exhibitions; happy our sense of these middle years of a great
-generation, easy and lusty despite the ensanguined spring that had gone
-before. They live again, piecing themselves ever so pleasantly and
-strangely together, in Madame Sand’s records and references; almost as
-much as the conscious close of the old régime so vaunted by Talleyrand
-they strike us as a season it would have been indispensable to know for
-the measure of what intercourse could richly be.
-
-The time was at any rate unable to withhold from the wonderful young
-person growing up at Nohant the conditions she was so freely to use as
-measures of her own. Though the motto of her autobiography is _Wahrheit
-und Dichtung_ quite as much as it had been that of Goethe’s, there is a
-truth beyond any projected by her more regular compositions in her
-evocation of the influences of her youth. Upon these influences Madame
-Karénine, who has enjoyed access through her heroine’s actual
-representatives to much evidence hitherto unpublished, throws a hundred
-interesting lights. Madame Dupin de Francueil and Madame Dupin the
-younger survive and perform for us, “convince” us as we say, better than
-any Lélia or any Consuelo. Our author’s whole treatment of her
-remarkable mother’s figure and history conveniently gives the critic the
-pitch of the great fact about her—the formation apparently at a given
-moment, yet in very truth, we may be sure, from far back, of the
-capacity and the determination to live with high consistency for
-herself. What she made of this resolve to allow her nature all its
-chances and how she carried on the process—these things are, thanks to
-the immense illustration her genius enabled her to lend them, the
-essence of her story; of which the full adumbration is in the detached
-pictorial way she causes her mother to live for us. Motherhood,
-daughterhood, childhood, embarrassed maturity, were phenomena she early
-encountered in her great adventure, and nothing is more typical of her
-energy and sincerity than the short work we can scarce help feeling she
-makes of them. It is not that she for a moment blinks or dodges them;
-she weaves them straight in—embarks with them indeed as her principal
-baggage. We know to-day from the pages before us everything we need to
-know about her marriage and the troubled years that followed; about M.
-Casimir Dudevant and his possible points of view, about her separation,
-her sharp secession, rather, as it first presents itself, and her
-discovery, at a turn of the road as it can only be called, of her
-genius.
-
-She stumbled on this principle, we see, quite by accident and as a
-consequence of the attempt to do the very humblest labour, to support
-herself from day to day. It would be difficult to put one’s finger more
-exactly upon a case of genius unaided and unprompted. She embarked, as I
-have called it, on her great voyage with no grounds of confidence
-whatever; she had obscurely, unwittingly the spirit of Columbus, but not
-so much even as his exiguous outfit. She found her gift of
-improvisation, found her tropic wealth, by leaping—a surprised
-_conquistador_ of “style”—straight upon the coral strand. No awakened
-instinct, probably, was ever such a blessing to a writer so much in
-need. This instinct was for a long time all her initiation, practically
-all her equipment. The curious thing is that she never really arrived at
-the fruit of it as the result of a process, but that she started with
-the whole thing as a Patti or a Mario starts with a voice which _is_ a
-method, which _is_ music, and that it was simply the train in which she
-travelled. It was to render her as great a service as any supreme
-faculty ever rendered its possessor, quite the same service as the
-strategic eye renders a commander in the field or instant courage the
-attacking soldier: it was to carry her through life still more
-inimitably than through the career of authorship. Her books are all rich
-and resonant with it, but they profit by it meagrely compared with her
-character. She walks from first to last in music, that is in literary
-harmonies, of her own making, and it is in truth sometimes only, with
-her present biographer to elbow us a little the way, that these
-triumphant sounds permit us a near enough approach to the procession to
-make out quite exactly its course.
-
-No part of her career is to my sense so curious as this particular
-sudden bound into the arena. Nothing but the indescribable heredity I
-have spoken of appears traceably to have prepared it. We have on one
-side the mere poverty and provinciality of her marriage and her early
-contacts, the crudity of her youth and her ignorance (which included so
-small a view of herself that she had begun by looking for a future in
-the bedaubing, for fancy-shops, of little boxes and fans); and on the
-other, at a stride, the full-blown distinction of “Valentine” and
-“Jacques,” which had had nothing to lead up to it, we seem to make out,
-but the very rough sketch of a love-affair with M. Jules Sandeau. I
-spoke just now of the possible points of view of poor M. Dudevant; at
-which, had we space, it might be of no small amusement to glance—of an
-amusement indeed large and suggestive. We see him, surely, in the light
-of these records, as the most “sold” husband in literature, and not at
-all, one feels, by his wife’s assertion of her freedom, but simply by
-her assertion of her mind. He appears to have married her for a nobody
-approved and guaranteed, and he found her, on his hands, a sister, as we
-have seen, of Goethe—unless it be but a figure to say that he ever
-“found” her anything. He appears to have lived to an advanced age
-without having really—in spite of the lawsuits he lost—comprehended
-his case; not the least singular feature of which had in fact positively
-been the deceptive delay of his fate. It was not till after several
-years of false calm that it presented itself in its special form. We see
-him and his so ruthlessly superseded name, never to be gilded by the
-brilliant event, we see him reduced, like a leaf in a whirlwind, to a
-mere vanishing-point.
-
-We deal here, I think, with something very different from the usual
-tittle-tattle about “private” relations, for the simple reason that we
-deal with relations foredoomed to publicity by the strange economy
-involved in the play of genius itself. Nothing was ever less wasted,
-from beginning to end, than all this amorous experience and all this
-luxury of woe. The parties to it were to make an inveterate use of it,
-the principal party most of all; and what therefore on that marked
-ground concerns the critic is to see what they were appreciably to get
-out of it. The principal party, the constant one through all mutations,
-was alone qualified to produce the extract that affects us as final. It
-was by the publication four years since of her letters to Alfred de
-Musset and to Sainte-Beuve, by the appearance also of Madame Arvède
-Barine’s clear compact biography of Musset, that we began to find her
-personal history brought nearer to us than her own communications had in
-her lifetime already brought it. The story of her relations with Musset
-is accordingly so known that I need only glance at the fact of her
-having—shortly after the highest degree of intimacy between them had,
-in the summer of 1833, established itself in Paris—travelled with him
-to Italy, settled with him briefly in Venice, and there passionately
-quarrelled and parted with him—only, however, several months later, on
-their return to France, to renew again, to quarrel and to part again,
-all more passionately, if possible, even than before. Madame Karénine,
-besides supplying us with all added light on this episode, keeps us
-abreast of others that were to follow, leaves us no more in the dark
-about Michel de Bourges, Félicien Mallefille and Chopin than we had
-already been left about their several predecessors. She is commendably
-lucid on the subject of Franz Liszt, impartially examines the case and
-authoritatively dismisses it. Her second volume brings her heroine to
-the eve of the historic departure with Chopin for Majorca. We have thus
-in a convenient form enough for one mouthful of entertainment, as well
-as for superabundant reflection.
-
-We have indeed the whole essence of what most touches us, for this
-consists not at all of the quantity of the facts, nor even of their
-oddity: they are practically all there from the moment the heroine’s
-general attitude defines itself. That is the solid element—the details
-to-day are smoke. Yet I hasten to add that it was in particular by
-taking her place of an autumn evening in the southward-moving diligence
-with Alfred de Musset, it was on this special occasion that she gave
-most the measure of her choice of the consistent, even though it so
-little meant the consequent, life. She had reached toward such a life
-obviously in quitting the conjugal roof in 1831—had attacked the
-experiment clumsily, but according to her light, by throwing herself on
-such material support as faculties yet untested might furnish, and on
-such moral as several months of the _intimité_ of Jules Sandeau and a
-briefer taste of that of Prosper Mérimée might further contribute. She
-had done, in other words, what she could; subsequent lights show it as
-not her fault that she had not done better. With Musset her future took
-a long stride; emotionally speaking it “looked up.” Nothing was wanting
-in this case—independently of what might then have appeared her
-friend’s equal genius—quite ideally to qualify it. He was several years
-her junior, and as she had her husband and her children, he had, in the
-high degree of most young Frenchmen of sensibility, his mother. It is
-recorded that with this lady on the eve of the celebrated step she quite
-had the situation, as the phrase is, out; which is a note the more in
-the general, the intellectual lucidity. The only other note in fact to
-be added is that of the absence of funds for the undertaking. Neither
-partner had a penny to spare; the plan was wholly to “make money,” on a
-scale, as they went. A great deal was in the event, exactly speaking, to
-be made—but the event was at the time far from clear to them. The
-enterprise was in consequence purely and simply, with a rounded
-perfection that gives it its value for the critic, an affair of the
-heart. That the heart, taking it as a fully representative organ, should
-fail of no good occasion completely and consistently to engage itself
-was the definite and, as appeared, the promising assumption on which
-everything rested. The heart was real life, frank, fearless, intelligent
-and even, so far as might be, intelligible life; everything else was
-stupid as well as poor, muddle as well as misery. The heart of course
-might be misery, for nothing was more possible than that life
-predominantly was; but it was at all events the misery that is least
-ignoble.
-
-This was the basis of Madame Sand’s personal evolution, of her immense
-moral energy, for many a year; it was a practical system, applied and
-reapplied, and no “inquiry” concerning her has much point save as
-settling what, for our enlightenment and our esteem, she made of it. The
-answer meets us, I think, after we have taken in the facts, promptly
-enough and with great clearness, so long as we consider that it is not,
-that it cannot be in the conditions, a simple one. She made of it then
-intellectually a splendid living, but she was able to do this only
-because she was an altogether exceptional example of our human stuff. It
-is here that her famous heredity comes in: we see what a
-race-accumulation of “toughness” had been required to build her up.
-Monstrous monarchs and bastards of kings, great generals and bastards of
-bastards, courtesans, dancers supple and hard, accomplished men and
-women of the old dead great world, seasoned young soldiers of the
-Imperial epic, grisettes of the _pavé de Paris_, Parisian to the core;
-the mixture was not quite the blood of people in general, and obviously
-such a final flower of such a stem might well fix the attention and
-appeal to the vigilance of those qualified to watch its development.
-These persons would, doubtless, however, as a result of their
-observation, have acquired betimes a sense of the high vitality of their
-young friend. Formed essentially for independence and constructed for
-resistance and survival she was to be trusted, as I have hinted, to take
-care of herself: this was always the residuary fact when a passion was
-spent. She took care of Musset, she took care of Chopin, took care, in
-short, through her career, of a whole series of nurslings, but never
-failed, under the worst ingratitude, to be by her own elasticity still
-better taken care of. This is why we call her anomalous and deprecate
-any view of her success that loses sight of the anomaly. The success was
-so great that but _for_ the remainder she would be too encouraging. She
-was one in a myriad, and the cluster of circumstances is too unlikely to
-recur.
-
-It is by her success, none the less, we must also remember, that we know
-her; it is this that makes her interesting and calls for study. She had
-all the illumination that sensibility, that curiosity, can give, and
-that so ingeniously induces surrender to it; but the too numerous
-weaknesses, vulgarities and penalties of adventure and surrender she had
-only in sufficient degree to complete the experience before they shaped
-themselves into the eloquence into which she could always reascend. Her
-eloquence—it is the simplest way to explain her—fairly _made_ her
-success; and eloquence is superlatively rare. When passion can always
-depend upon it to vibrate passion becomes to that extent action, and
-success is nothing but action repeated and confirmed. In Madame Sand’s
-particular case the constant recurrence of the malady of passion
-promoted in the most extraordinary way the superior appearance, the
-general expression, of health. It is of course not to be denied that
-there are in her work infirmities and disfigurements, odd smutches even,
-or unwitting drolleries, which show a sense on some sides enfeebled. The
-sense of her characters themselves for instance is constantly a confused
-one; they are too often at sea as to what is possible and what
-impossible for what we roughly call decent people. Her own categories,
-loose and liberal, are yet ever positive enough; when they err it is by
-excess of indulgence and by absence of the humorous vision, a nose for
-the ridiculous—the fatal want, this last almost always, we are
-reminded, the heel of Achilles, in the sentimental, the romantic
-estimate. The general validity of her novels, at any rate, I leave
-impugned, and the feature I have just noted in them is but one of the
-points at which they fail of reality. I stick to the history of her
-personal experiment, as the now so numerous documents show it; for it is
-here, and here only, that her felicity is amusing and confounding;
-amusing by the quaintness of some of the facts exposed, and yet
-confounding by reason of the beauty mixed with them.
-
-The “affair” with Musset for example has come to figure, thanks to the
-talent of both parties, as one of the great affairs in the history of
-letters; and yet on the near view of it now enjoyed we learn that it
-dragged out scarce more than a year. Even this measure indeed is
-excessive, so far as any measure serves amid so much that is incoherent.
-It supposed itself to have dropped for upwards of six months, during
-which another connection, another imperious heart-history, reigned in
-its stead. The enumeration of these trifles is not, I insist, futile; so
-that while we are about it we shall find an interest in being clear. The
-events of Venice, with those that immediately preceded and followed
-them, distinctly repay inspection as an epitome, taken together, of the
-usual process. They appear to contain, as well as an intensity all their
-own, the essence of all that of other occasions. The young poet and the
-young novelist met then, appear to have met for the first time, toward
-the end of June 1833, and to have become finally intimate in the month
-of August of that year. They started together for Italy at the beginning
-of the winter and were settled—if settled be not too odd a word to
-use—by the end of January in Venice. I neglect the question of Musset’s
-serious illness there, though it is not the least salient part of the
-adventure, and observe simply that by the end of March he had started to
-return to Paris, while his friend, remaining behind, had yielded to a
-new affection. This new affection, the connection with Pietro Pagello,
-dates unmistakably from before Musset’s departure; and, with the
-completion of “Jacques” and the composition of the beautiful “André,”
-the wonderful “Léone-Léoni” and some of the most interesting of the
-“Lettres d’un Voyageur,” constituted the main support of our heroine
-during the spring and early summer. By midsummer she had left Italy with
-Pagello, and they arrive in Paris on August 14th. This arrival marks
-immediately the term of their relations, which had by that time lasted
-some six or seven months. Pagello returned to Italy, and if they ever
-met again it was the merest of meetings and after long years.
-
-In October, meanwhile, the connection with Musset was renewed, and
-renewed—this is the great point—because the sentiments still
-entertained by each (in spite of Pagello, in spite of everything) are
-stronger even than any awkwardness of which either might have been
-conscious. The whole business really is one in which we lose our measure
-alike of awkwardness and of grace. The situation is in the hands of
-comedy—or _would_ be, I should rather say, were it not so distinctly
-predestined to fall, as I have noted, into those of the nobler form. It
-is prolonged till the following February, we make out, at furthest, and
-only after having been more than once in the interval threatened with
-violent extinction. It bequeaths us thus in a handful of dates a picture
-than which probably none other in the annals of “passion” was ever more
-suggestive. The passion is of the kind that is called “immortal”—and so
-called, wonderful to say, with infinite reason and justice. The poems,
-the letters, the diaries, the novels, the unextinguished accents and
-lingering echoes that commemorate it are among the treasures of the
-human imagination. The literature of the world is appreciably the richer
-for it. The noblest forms, in a word, on both sides, marked it for their
-own; it was born, according to the adage, with a silver spoon in its
-mouth. It was an affection in short transcendent and sublime, and yet
-the critic sees it come and go before he can positively turn round. The
-brief period of some seventeen or eighteen months not only affords it
-all its opportunity, but places comfortably in its lap a relation
-founded on the same elements and yet wholly distinct from it. Musset
-occupied in fact but two-thirds of his mistress’s time. Pagello
-overlapped him because Pagello also appealed to the heart; but Pagello’s
-appeal to the heart was disposed of as expeditiously. Musset, in the
-same way, succeeded Pagello at the voice of a similar appeal, and this
-claim, in its turn, was polished off in yet livelier fashion.
-
-Liveliness is of course the tune of the “gay” career; it has always been
-supposed to relegate to comedy the things to which it puts its mark—so
-that as a series of sequences amenable mainly to satire the
-approximations I have made would fall neatly into place. The anomaly
-here, as on other occasions of the same sort in Madame Karénine’s
-volumes, is that the facts, as we are brought near to them, strike us as
-so out of relation to the beautiful tone. The effect and the achieved
-dignity are those of tragedy—tragedy rearranging, begetting afresh, in
-its own interest, all the elements of ecstasy and despair. How can it
-not be tragedy when this interest is just the interest, which I have
-touched on, of exemplary eloquence? There are lights in which the
-material, with its want of nobleness, want of temper, want even of
-manners, seems scarcely life at all, as the civilised conscience
-understands life; and yet it is as the most magnanimous of surrenders to
-life that the whole business is triumphantly reflected in the documents.
-It is not only that “La Nuit d’Octobre” is divine, that Madame Sand’s
-letters are superb and that nothing can exceed, in particular, the high
-style of the passage that we now perceive Musset to have borrowed from
-one of them for insertion in “On ne Badine pas avec l’Amour”—to the
-extreme profit of the generation which was, for many years thereafter,
-to hear Delaunay exquisitely declaim it at the Théâtre Français; it is
-that, strange to say, almost the finest flower of the bouquet is the
-now-famous written “declaration” addressed to Pagello one evening by the
-lady. Musset was ill in bed; he was the attendant doctor; and while,
-watching and ignorant of French, he twirled his thumbs or dipped into a
-book, his patient’s companion, on the other side of the table and with
-the lamp between them, dashed off (it took time) a specimen of her
-finest prose, which she then folded and handed to him, and which, for
-perusal more at leisure, he carried off in his pocket. It proved neither
-more nor less than one of the pontoon bridges which a force engaged in
-an active campaign holds itself ready at any time to throw across a
-river, and was in fact of its kind a stout and beautiful structure. It
-happily spanned at all events the gulf of a short acquaintance.
-
-The incident bears a family resemblance to another which our biographer
-finds in her path in the year 1837. Having to chronicle the close of the
-relation with Michel de Bourges, from which again her heroine had so
-much to suffer, she has also to mention that this catastrophe was
-precipitated, to all appearance, by the contemporaneous dawn of an
-affection “plus douce, moins enthousiaste, moins âpre aussi, et j’espère
-plus durable.” The object of this affection was none other than the
-young man then installed at Nohant as preceptor to Madame Sand’s
-children—but as to whom in the event we ask ourselves what by this time
-her notion of measure or durability can have become. It is just this
-element that has positively least to do, we seem to make out, with
-“affection” as so practised. Affection in any sense worth speaking of
-_is_ durability; and it is the repeated impermanence of those
-manifestations of it on behalf of which the high horse of “passion” is
-ridden so hard that makes us wonder whether such loves and such
-licences, in spite of the quality of free experience they represent, had
-really anything to do with it. It was surely the last thing they
-contained. Félicien Mallefille may be, to his heart’s content, of 1837
-and even of a portion of 1838; it is Chopin who is of the rest of the
-year and—let us hope our biographer will have occasion to show us—of
-at least the whole of the following. It is here that, as I have
-mentioned, she pauses.
-
-One of the most interesting contributions to her subject is the long
-letter from Balzac to his future wife, Madame Hanska, now reproduced in
-the most substantial of the few volumes of his correspondence (“Lettres
-à l’Étrangère, 1833-1842,” published 1899) and printed by Madame
-Karénine. The author, finding himself near Nohant in the spring of 1838,
-went over to pay his illustrious colleague a visit and spent more than a
-day in sustained conversation with her. He had the good fortune to find
-her alone, so that they could endlessly talk and smoke by the fire, and
-nothing can be all at once more vivid, more curious and more judicious
-than his immediate report of the occasion. It lets into the whole
-question of his hostess’s character and relations—inevitably more or
-less misrepresented by the party most involved—air and light and truth;
-it fixes points and re-establishes proportions. It shows appearances
-confronted, in a word, with Balzac’s strong sense of the real and offers
-the grateful critic still another chance to testify for that precious
-gift. This same critic’s mind, it must be added, rests with complacency
-on the vision thus evoked, the way that for three days, from five
-o’clock in the afternoon till five in the morning, the wonderful friends
-must have had things out. For once, we feel sure, fundamental questions
-were not shirked. As regards his comrade at any rate Balzac puts his
-finger again and again on the truth and the idiosyncrasy. “She is not
-_aimable_ and in consequence will always find it difficult to be loved.”
-He adds—and it is here that he comes nearest straightening the
-question—that she has in character all the leading marks of the man and
-as few as possible those of his counterpart. He implies that, though
-judged as a woman she may be puzzling enough, she hangs together
-perfectly if judged as a man. She _is_ a man, he repeats, “and all the
-more that she wants to be, that she has sunk the woman, that she isn’t
-one. Women attract, and she repels; and, as I am much of a man, if this
-is the effect she produces on me she must produce it on men who are like
-me—so that she will always be unhappy.” He qualifies as justly, I may
-parenthesise, her artistic side, the limits of which, he moreover
-intimates, she had herself expressed to him. “She has neither intensity
-of conception, nor the constructive gift, nor the faculty of reaching
-the truth”—Balzac’s own deep dye of the truth—“nor the art of the
-pathetic. But she holds that, without knowing the French language, she
-has _style_. And it’s true.”
-
-The light of mere evidence, the light of such researches as Madame
-Karénine’s, added to her so copious correspondence and autobiography,
-makes Madame Sand so much of a riddle that we grasp at Balzac’s
-authoritative word as at an approach to a solution. It is, strange to
-say, by reading another complexity into her image that we finally
-simplify it. The riddle consists in the irreconcilability of her
-distinction and her vulgarity. Vulgar somehow in spite of everything is
-the record of so much taking and tasting and leaving, so much publicity
-and palpability of “heart,” so much experience reduced only to the terms
-of so many more or less greasy males. And not only vulgar but in a
-manner grotesque—from the moment, that is, that the experience is
-presented to us with any emphasis in the name of terror and pity. It was
-not a passive but an active situation, that of a nature robust and not
-too fastidious, full at all times of resistance and recovery. No history
-gives us really more ground to protest against the new fashion, rife in
-France, of transporting “love,” as there mainly represented, to the air
-of morals and of melancholy. The fashion betrays only the need to
-rejuvenate, at a considerable cost of falsity, an element in connection
-with which levity is felt either to have exhausted itself or to look
-thin as a motive. It is in the light of levity that many of the facts
-presented by Madame Karénine are most intelligible, and that is the
-circumstance awkward for sensibility and for all the graces it is
-invited to show.
-
-The scene quite changes when we cease to expect these graces. As a man
-Madame Sand was admirable—especially as a man of the dressing-gown and
-slippers order, easy of approach and of _tutoiement_, rubbing shoulders
-with queer company and not superstitiously haunted by the conception of
-the gentleman. There have been many men of genius, delightful, prodigal
-and even immortal, who squared but scantly with that conception, and it
-is a company to which our heroine is simply one of the most interesting
-of recruits. She has in it all her value and loses none of her charm.
-Above all she becomes in a manner comprehensible, as any frank Bohemian
-is comprehensible. We have only to imagine the Bohemian really endowed,
-the Bohemian, that is, both industrious and wise, to get almost all her
-formula. She keeps here and there a feminine streak—has at moments an
-excess of volubility and too great an insistence on having been in the
-right; but for the rest, as Balzac says, the character, confronted with
-the position, is an explanation. “Son mâle,” he tells Madame Hanska,
-“était rare”—than which nothing could have been more natural. Yet for
-this masculine counterpart—so difficult to find—she ingenuously spent
-much of her early life in looking. That the search was a mistake is what
-constitutes, in all the business of which the Musset episode is the
-type, the only, the real melancholy, the real moral tragedy.
-
-For all such mistakes, none the less, the whole lesson of the picture is
-precisely in the disconcerting success of her system. Everything was at
-the start against that presumption; but everything at the end was to
-indicate that she was not to have been defeated. Others might well have
-been, and the banks of the stream of her career are marked, not
-invisibly, with mouldering traces of the less lucky or the less buoyant;
-but her attitude as life went on was more and more that of showing how
-she profited of all things for wisdom and sympathy, for a general
-expertness and nobleness. These forces, all clarified to an admirable
-judgment, kept her to the last day serene and superior, and they are one
-of the reasons why the monument before us is felt not to be misplaced.
-There should always be a monument to those who have achieved a prodigy.
-What greater prodigy than to have bequeathed in such mixed elements, to
-have principally made up of them, the affirmation of an unprecedented
-intensity of life? For though this intensity was one that broke down in
-each proposed exhibition the general example remains, incongruously,
-almost the best we can cite. And all we can say is that this brings us
-back once more to the large manner, the exceptional energy and well-nigh
-monstrous vitality, of the individual concerned. Nothing is so absurd as
-a half-disguise, and Madame Sand’s abiding value will probably be in her
-having given her sex, for its new evolution and transformation, the real
-standard and measure of change. This evolution and this transformation
-are all round us unmistakable; the change is in the air; women are
-turned more and more to looking at life as men look at it and to getting
-from it what men get. In this direction their aim has been as yet
-comparatively modest and their emulation low; the challenge they have
-hitherto picked up is but the challenge of the “average” male. The
-approximation of the extraordinary woman has been practically, in other
-words, to the ordinary man. George Sand’s service is that she planted
-the flag much higher—her own approximation at least was to the
-extraordinary. She reached him, she surpassed him, and she showed how,
-with native dispositions, the thing could be done. So far as we have
-come these new records will live as the precious text-book of the
-business.
-
------
-
-Footnote 6:
-
-“George Sand, sa Vie et ses Œuvres, 1804-1876.” Paris, 1899.
-
-
-
-
- GEORGE SAND
- 1914
-
-
-It has much occurred to us, touching those further liberations of the
-subordinate sex which fill our ears just now with their multitudinous
-sound, that the promoters of the great cause make a good deal less than
-they might of one of their very first contentious “assets,” if it may
-not indeed be looked at as quite the first; and thereby fail to pass
-about, to the general elation, a great vessel of truth. Is this because
-the life and example of George Sand are things unknown or obscure to the
-talkers and fighters of to-day—present and vivid as they were to those
-of the last mid-century, or because of some fear that to invoke victory
-in her name might, for particular, for even rueful reasons, not be
-altogether a safe course? It is difficult to account otherwise for the
-fact that so ample and embossed a shield, and one that shines too at
-last with a strong and settled lustre, is rather left hanging on the
-wall than seen to cover advances or ward off attacks in the fray.
-Certain it is that if a lapse of tradition appeared at one time to have
-left a little in the lurch the figure of the greatest of all women of
-letters, of Letters in truth most exactly, as we hold her surely to have
-been, that explanation should have begun to fail, some fourteen years
-ago, with the publication of the first volume of Madame Wladimir
-Karénine’s biography, and even in spite of the fact that this singularly
-interesting work was not till a twelvemonth ago to arrive at the dignity
-of a third,[7] which leaves it, for all its amplitude, still incomplete.
-The latest instalment, now before us, follows its predecessors after an
-interval that had alarmed us not a little for the proper consummation;
-and the story is even now carried but to the eve of the Revolution of
-1848, after which its heroine (that of the Revolution, we may almost
-say, as well as of the narrative) was to have some twenty-seven years to
-live. Madame Karénine appears to be a Russian critic writing under a
-pseudonym; portions of her overbrimming study have appeared dispersedly,
-we gather, in Russian periodicals, but the harmonious French idiom, of
-which she is all-sufficient mistress, welds them effectively together,
-and the result may already be pronounced a commemorative monument of all
-but the first order. The first order in such attempts has for its sign a
-faculty of selection and synthesis, not to say a sense of composition
-and proportion, which neither the chronicler nor the critic in these too
-multiplied pages is able consistently to exhibit; though on the other
-hand they represent quite the high-water mark of patience and
-persistence, of the ideal biographic curiosity. They enjoy further the
-advantage of the documented state in a degree that was scarce to have
-been hoped for, every source of information that had remained in
-reserve—and these proved admirably numerous—having been opened to our
-inquirer by the confidence of the illustrious lady’s two
-great-granddaughters, both alive at the time the work was begun. Add to
-this that there has grown up in France a copious George Sand literature,
-a vast body of illustrative odds and ends, relics and revelations, on
-which the would-be propagator of the last word is now free to
-draw—always with discrimination. Ideally, well-nigh overwhelmingly
-informed we may at present therefore hold ourselves; and were that state
-all that is in question for us nothing could exceed our advantage.
-
------
-
-Footnote 7:
-
-George Sand, sa Vie et ses Œuvres, vol. iii. (1838-1848). Par Wladimir
-Karénine. Paris, Plon, 1912.
-
-
- I
-
-Just the beauty and the interest of the case are, however, that such a
-condition by no means exhausts our opportunity, since in no like
-connection could it be less said that to know most is most easily or
-most complacently to conclude. May we not decidedly feel the sense and
-the “lesson,” the suggestive spread, of a career as a thing scarce
-really to be measured when the effect of more and more acquaintance with
-it is simply to make the bounds of appreciation recede? This is why the
-figure now shown us, blazed upon to the last intensity by the lamplight
-of investigation, and with the rank oil consumed in the process fairly
-filling the air, declines to let us off from an hour of that
-contemplation which yet involves discomfiture for us so long as certain
-lucidities on our own part, certain serenities of assurance, fail
-correspondingly to play up. We feel ourselves so outfaced, as it were;
-we somehow want in any such case to meet and match the assurances with
-which the subject himself or herself immitigably bristles, and are
-nevertheless by no means certain that our bringing up premature forces
-or trying to reply with lights of our own may not check the current of
-communication, practically without sense for us unless flowing at its
-fullest. At our biographer’s rate of progress we shall still have much
-to wait for; but it can meanwhile not be said that we have not plenty to
-go on with. To this may be added that the stretch of “life,” apart from
-the more concrete exhibition, already accounted for by our three volumes
-(if one may discriminate between “production” and life to a degree that
-is in this connection exceptionally questionable), represents to all
-appearance the most violently and variously agitated face of the career.
-The establishment of the Second Empire ushered in for Madame Sand, we
-seem in course of preparation to make out, the long period already more
-or less known to fame, that is to criticism, as the period of her great
-placidity, her more or less notorious appeasement; a string of afternoon
-hours as hazily golden as so many reigns of Antonines, when her genius
-had mastered the high art of acting without waste, when a happy play of
-inspiration had all the air, so far as our spectatorship went, of
-filling her large capacity and her beautiful form to the brim, and when
-the gathered fruit of what she had dauntlessly done and been heaped
-itself upon her table as a rich feast for memory and philosophy. So she
-came in for the enjoyment of all the _sagesse_ her contemporaries (with
-only such exceptions as M. Paul de Musset and Madame Louise Colet and
-the few discordant pleaders for poor Chopin) finally rejoiced on their
-side to acclaim; the sum of her aspects “composing,” arranging
-themselves in relation to each other, with a felicity that nothing could
-exceed and that swept with great glosses and justifications every aspect
-of the past. To few has it been given to “pay” so little, according to
-_our_ superstition of payment, in proportion to such enormities of
-ostensibly buying or borrowing—which fact, we have to recognise, left
-an existence as far removed either from moral, or intellectual, or even
-social bankruptcy as if it had proceeded from the first but on the most
-saving lines.
-
-That is what remains on the whole most inimitable in the picture—the
-impression it conveys of an art of life by which the rough sense of the
-homely adage that we may not both eat our cake and have it was to be
-signally falsified; this wondrous mistress of the matter strikes us so
-as having consumed _her_ refreshment, her vital supply, to the last
-crumb, so far as the provision meant at least freedom and ease, and yet
-having ever found on the shelf the luxury in question undiminished.
-Superlatively interesting the idea of how this result was, how it
-_could_ be, achieved—given the world as we on our side of the water
-mainly know it; and it is as meeting the mystery that the monument
-before us has doubtless most significance. We shall presently see, in
-the light of our renewed occasion, how the question is solved; yet we
-may as well at once say that this will have had for its conclusion to
-present our heroine—mainly figuring as a novelist of the romantic or
-sentimental order once pre-eminent but now of shrunken credit—simply as
-a supreme case of the successful practice of life itself. We have to
-distinguish for this induction after a fashion in which neither Madame
-Sand nor her historian has seemed at all positively concerned to
-distinguish; the indifference on the historian’s part sufficiently
-indicated, we feel, by the complacency with which, to be thorough, she
-explores even the most thankless tracts of her author’s fictional
-activity, telling the tales over as she comes to them on much the same
-scale on which she unfolds the situations otherwise documented. The
-writer of “Consuelo” and “Claudie” and a hundred other things is to this
-view a literary genius whose output, as our current term so gracefully
-has it, the exercise of an inordinate personal energy happens to mark;
-whereas the exercise of personal energy is for ourselves what most
-reflects the genius—recorded though this again chances here to be
-through the inestimable fact of the possession of style. Of the action
-of that perfect, that only real preservative in face of other perils
-George Sand is a wondrous example; but her letters alone suffice to show
-it, and the style of her letters is no more than the breath of her
-nature, her so remarkable one, in which expression and aspiration were
-much the same function. That is what it is really to _have_ style—when
-you set about performing the act of life. The forms taken by this latter
-impulse then cover everything; they serve for your adventures not less
-than they may serve at their most refined pitch for your Lélias and your
-Mauprats.
-
-This means accordingly, we submit, that those of us who at the present
-hour “feel the change,” as the phrase is, in the computation of the
-feminine range, with the fullest sense of what it may portend, shirk at
-once our opportunity and our obligation in not squeezing for its last
-drop of testimony such an exceptional body of illustration as we here
-possess. It has so much to say to any view—whether, in the light of old
-conventions, the brightest or the darkest—of what may either glitter or
-gloom in a conquest of every license by our contemporaries of the
-contending sex, that we scarce strain a point in judging it a provision
-of the watchful fates for this particular purpose and profit: its
-answers are so full to most of our uncertainties. It is to be noted of
-course that the creator of Lélia and of Mauprat was on the one hand a
-woman of an extraordinary gift and on the other a woman resignedly and
-triumphantly voteless—doing without that boon so beautifully, for free
-development and the acquisition and application of “rights,” that we
-seem to see her sardonically smile, before our present tumults, as at a
-rumpus about nothing; as if women need set such preposterous machinery
-in motion for obtaining things which she had found it of the first
-facility, right and left, to stretch forth her hand and take. There it
-is that her precedent stands out—apparently to a blind generation; so
-that some little insistence on the method of her appropriations would
-seem to be peculiarly in place. It was a method that may be summed up
-indeed in a fairly simple, if comprehensive, statement: it consisted in
-her dealing with life exactly as if she had been a man—exactly not
-being too much to say. Nature certainly had contributed on her behalf to
-this success; it had given her a constitution and a temperament, the
-kind of health, the kind of mind, the kind of courage, that might most
-directly help—so that she had but to convert these strong matters into
-the kind of experience. The writer of these lines remembers how a
-distinguished and intimate friend of her later years, who was a very
-great admirer, said of her to him just after her death that her not
-having been born a man seemed, when one knew her, but an awkward
-accident: she had been to all intents and purposes so fine and frank a
-specimen of the sex. This anomalous native turn, it may be urged, can
-have no general application—women cannot be men by the mere trying or
-by calling themselves “as good”; they must have been provided with what
-we have just noted as the outfit. The force of George Sand’s exhibition
-consorts, we contend, none the less perfectly with the logic of the
-consummation awaiting us, if a multitude of signs are to be trusted, in
-a more or less near future: that effective repudiation of the
-_distinctive_, as to function and opportunity, as to working and playing
-activity, for which the definite removal of immemorial disabilities is
-but another name. We are in presence already of a practical shrinkage of
-the distinctive, at the rapidest rate, and that it must shrink till
-nothing of it worth mentioning be left, what is this but a war-cry
-(presenting itself also indeed as a plea for peace) with which our ears
-are familiar? Unless the suppression of the distinctive, however, is to
-work to the prejudice, as we may fairly call it, of men, drawing them
-over to the feminine type rather than drawing women over to
-theirs—which is not what seems most probable—the course of the
-business will be a virtual undertaking on the part of the half of
-humanity acting ostensibly for the first time in freedom to annex the
-male identity, that of the other half, so far as may be at all
-contrivable, to its own cluster of elements. Individuals are in great
-world and race movements negligible, and if that undertaking must
-inevitably appeal to different recruits with a differing cogency, its
-really enlisting its army or becoming reflected, to a perfectly
-conceivable vividness, in the mass, is all our demonstration requires.
-At that point begins the revolution, the shift of the emphasis from the
-idea of woman’s weakness to the idea of her strength—which is where the
-emphasis has lain, from far back, by his every tradition, on behalf of
-man; and George Sand’s great value, as we say, is that she gives us the
-vision, gives us the particular case, of the shift achieved, displayed
-with every assurance and working with every success.
-
-The answer of her life to the question of what an effective annexation
-of the male identity may amount to, amount to in favouring conditions
-certainly, but in conditions susceptible to the highest degree of
-encouragement and cultivation, leaves nothing to be desired for
-completeness. This is the moral of her tale, the beauty of what she does
-for us—that at no point whatever of her history or her character do
-their power thus to give satisfaction break down; so that what we in
-fact on the whole most recognise is not the extension she gives to the
-feminine nature, but the richness that she adds to the masculine. It is
-not simply that she could don a disguise that gaped at the seams, that
-she could figure as a man of the mere carnival or pantomime variety, but
-that she made so virile, so efficient and homogeneous a one. Admirable
-child of the old order as we find her, she was far from our late-coming
-theories and fevers—by the reason simply of her not being reduced to
-them; as to which nothing about her is more eloquent than her living at
-such ease with a conception of the main relevance of women that is
-viewed among ourselves as antiquated to “quaintness.” She could afford
-the traditional and sentimental, the old romantic and historic theory of
-the function most natural to them, since she entertained it exactly as a
-man would. It is not that she fails again and again to represent her
-heroines as doing the most unconventional things—upon these they freely
-embark; but they never in the least do them for themselves, themselves
-as the “sex,” they do them altogether for men. Nothing could well be
-more interesting thus than the extraordinary union of the pair of
-opposites in her philosophy of the relation of the sexes—than the
-manner in which her immense imagination, the imagination of a man for
-range and abundance, intervened in the whole matter for the benefit,
-absolutely, of the so-called stronger party, or to liberate her sisters
-up to the point at which men may most gain and least lose by the
-liberation. She read the relation essentially in the plural term—the
-relations, and her last word about these was as far as possible from
-being that they are of minor importance to women. Nothing in her view
-could exceed their importance to women—it left every other far behind
-it; and nothing that could make for authority in her, no pitch of tone,
-no range of personal inquiry nor wealth of experience, no acquaintance
-with the question that might derive light from free and repeated
-adventure, but belonged to the business of driving this argument home.
-
-
- II
-
-Madame Karénine’s third volume is copiously devoted to the period of her
-heroine’s intimacy with Chopin and to the events surrounding this
-agitated friendship, which largely fill the ten years precedent to ’48.
-Our author is on all this ground overwhelmingly documented, and enlisted
-though she is in the service of the more successful party to the
-association—in the sense of Madame Sand’s having heartily outlived and
-survived, not to say professionally and brilliantly “used,” it—the
-great composer’s side of the story receives her conscientious attention.
-Curious and interesting in many ways, these reflections of George Sand’s
-middle life afford above all the most pointed illustration of the turn
-of her personal genius, her aptitude for dealing with men, in the
-intimate relation, exactly after the fashion in which numberless
-celebrated men have contributed to their reputation, not to say crowned
-their claim to superiority, by dealing with women. This being above all
-the note of her career, with its vivid show of what such dealing could
-mean for play of mind, for quickening of gift, for general experience
-and, as we say, intellectual development, for determination of
-philosophic bent and education of character and fertilisation of fancy,
-we seem to catch the whole process in the fact, under the light here
-supplied us, as we catch it nowhere else. It gives us in this
-application endlessly much to consider—it is in itself so replete and
-rounded a show; we at once recognise moreover how comparatively little
-it matters that such works as “Lucrezia Floriani” and “Un Hiver à
-Majorque” should have proceeded from it, cast into the shade as these
-are, on our biographer’s evidence, by a picture of concomitant energies
-still more attaching. It is not here by the force of her gift for rich
-improvisation, beautiful as this was, that the extraordinary woman holds
-us, but by the force of her ability to act herself out, given the
-astounding quantities concerned in this self. That energy too, we feel,
-was in a manner an improvisation—so closely allied somehow are both the
-currents, the flow of literary composition admirably instinctive and
-free, and the handling power, as we are constantly moved to call it, the
-flow of a splendid intelligence all the while at its fullest
-expressional ease, for the _actual_ situations created by her, for
-whatever it might be that vitally confronted her. Of how to bring about,
-or at the least find one’s self “in for,” an inordinate number of
-situations, most of them of the last difficulty, and then deal with them
-on the spot, in the narrowest quarters as it were, with an eloquence and
-a plausibility that does them and one’s own nature at once a sort of
-ideal justice, the demonstration here is the fullest—as of what it was
-further to have her unfailing verbal as well as her unfailing moral
-inspiration. What predicament could have been more of an hourly strain
-for instance, as we cannot but suppose, than her finding herself
-inevitably accompanied by her two children during the stay at Majorca
-made by Chopin in ’38 under her protection? The victory of assurance and
-of the handling power strikes us as none the less never an instant in
-doubt, that being essentially but over the general _kind_ of
-inconvenience or embarrassment involved for a mother and a friend in any
-real consistency of attempt to carry things off male fashion. We do not,
-it is true, see a man as a mother, any more than we easily see a woman
-as a gentleman—and least of all perhaps in either case as an awkwardly
-placed one; but we see Madame Sand as a sufficiently bustling, though
-rather a rough and ready, father, a father accepting his charge and
-doing the best possible under the circumstances; the truth being of
-course that the circumstances never _can_ be, even at the worst, or
-still at the best, the best for parental fondness, so awkward for him as
-for a mother.
-
-What call, again, upon every sort of presence of mind could have been
-livelier than the one made by the conditions attending and following the
-marriage of young Solange Dudevant to the sculptor Clésinger in 1846,
-when our heroine, summoned by the stress of events both to take
-responsible action and to rise to synthetic expression, in a situation,
-that is in presence of a series of demonstrations on her daughter’s
-part, that we seem to find imaginable for a perfect dramatic adequacy
-only in that particular home circle, fairly surpassed herself by her
-capacity to “meet” everything, meet it much incommoded, yet undismayed,
-unabashed and unconfuted, and have on it all, to her great advantage,
-the always prodigious last word? The elements of this especial crisis
-claim the more attention through its having been, as a test of her
-powers, decidedly the most acute that she was in her whole course of
-life to have traversed, more acute even, because more complicated, than
-the great occasion of her rupture with Alfred de Musset, at Venice in
-’35, on which such a wealth of contemplation and of ink has been
-expended. Dramatic enough in their relation to each other certainly
-those immortal circumstances, immortal so far as immortalised on either
-side by genius and passion: Musset’s return, ravaged and alone, to
-Paris; his companion’s transfer of her favour to Pietro Pagello, whom
-she had called in to attend her friend medically in illness and whose
-intervention, so far from simplifying the juncture, complicated it in a
-fashion probably scarce paralleled in the history of the erotic
-relation; her retention of Pagello under her protection for the rest of
-her period in Venice; her marvellously domesticated state, in view of
-the literary baggage, the collection of social standards, even taking
-these but at what they were, and the general amplitude of personality,
-that she brought into residence with her; the conveyance of Pagello to
-Paris, on her own return, and the apparent signification to him at the
-very gate that her countenance was then and there withdrawn. This was a
-brilliant case for her—of coming off with flying colours; but it
-strikes us as a mere preliminary flourish of the bow or rough practice
-of scales compared to the high virtuosity which Madame Karénine’s new
-material in respect to the latter imbroglio now enables us ever so
-gratefully to estimate. The protagonist’s young children were in the
-Venetian crisis quite off the scene, and on occasions subsequent to the
-one we now glance at were old enough and, as we seem free to call it,
-initiated enough not to solicit our particular concern for them; whereas
-at the climax of the connection with Chopin they were of the perfect age
-(which was the fresh marriageable in the case of Solange) to engage our
-best anxiety, let alone their being of a salience of sensibility and
-temper to leave no one of their aspects negligible. That their parent
-should not have found herself conclusively “upset,” sickened beyond
-repair, or otherwise morally bankrupt, on her having to recognise in her
-daughter’s hideous perversity and depravity, as we learn these things to
-have been, certain inevitabilities of consequence from the social air of
-the maternal circle, is really a monumental fact in respect to our great
-woman’s elasticity, her instinct for never abdicating by mere
-discouragement. Here in especial we get the broad male note—it being so
-exactly the manly part, and so very questionably the womanly, not to
-have to draw from such imputations of responsibility too crushing a
-self-consciousness. Of the extent and variety of danger to which the
-enjoyment of a moral tone could be exposed and yet superbly survive
-Madame Karénine’s pages give us the measure; they offer us in action the
-very ideal of an exemplary triumph of character and mind over one of the
-very highest tides of private embarrassment that it is well possible to
-conceive. And it is no case of that _passive_ acceptance of deplorable
-matters which has abounded in the history of women, even distinguished
-ones, whether to the pathetic or to the merely scandalous effect; the
-acceptance is active, constructive, almost exhilarated by the resources
-of affirmation and argument that it has at its command. The whole
-instance is sublime in its sort, thanks to the acuteness of _all_ its
-illustrative sides, the intense interest of which loses nothing in the
-hands of our chronicler; who perhaps, however, reaches off into the vast
-vague of Chopin’s native affiliations and references with an energy with
-which we find it a little difficult to keep step.
-
-In speaking as we have done of George Sand’s “use” of each twist of her
-road as it came—a use which we now recognise as the very thriftiest—we
-touch on that principle of vital health in her which made nothing that
-might by the common measure have been called one of the graver dilemmas,
-that is one of the checks to the continuity of life, really matter. What
-this felicity most comes to in fact is that doing at any cost the work
-that lies to one’s hand shines out again and yet again as the saving
-secret of the soul. She affirmed her freedom right and left, but her
-most characteristic assertion of it throughout was just in the luxury of
-labour. The exhaustive account we at any rate now enjoy of the family
-life surrounding her during the years here treated of and as she had
-constituted it, the picture of all the queer conflicting sensibilities
-engaged, and of the endless ramifications and reflections provided for
-these, leaves us nothing to learn on that congested air, that
-obstructive medium for the range of the higher tone, which the lady of
-Nohant was so at her “objective” happiest, even if at her superficially,
-that is her nervously, most flurried and depressed, in bravely
-breasting. It is as if the conditions there and in Paris during these
-several years had been consistently appointed by fate to throw into
-relief the applications of a huge facility, a sort of universal
-readiness, with a rare intelligence to back it. Absolutely nothing was
-absent, or with all the data _could_ have been, that might have
-bewildered a weaker genius into some lapse of eloquence or of industry;
-everything that might have overwhelmed, or at least have disconcerted,
-the worker who could throw off the splendid “Lucrezia Floriani” in the
-thick of battle came upon her at once, inspiring her to show that on her
-system of health and cheer, of experiential economy, as we may call it,
-to be disconcerted was to be lost. To be lacerated and calumniated was
-in comparison a trifle; with a certain sanity of reaction these things
-became as naught, for the sanity of reaction was but the line of
-consistency, the theory and attitude of sincerity kept at the highest
-point. The artist in general, we need scarcely remind ourselves, is in a
-high degree liable to arrive at the sense of what he may have seen or
-felt, or said or suffered, by working it out as a subject, casting it
-into some form prescribed by his art; but even here he in general knows
-limits—unless perchance he be loose as Byron was loose, or possess such
-a power of disconnection, such a clear stand-off of the intelligence, as
-accompanied the experiments of Goethe. Our own experiments, we commonly
-feel, are comparatively timid, just as we can scarce be said, in the
-homely phrase, to serve our esthetic results of them hot and hot; we are
-too conscious of a restrictive instinct about the conditions we may, in
-like familiar language let ourselves in for, there being always the
-question of what we should be able “intellectually” to show for them.
-The life of the author of “Lucrezia Floriani” at its most active may
-fairly be described as an immunity from restrictive instincts more ably
-cultivated than any we know. Again and yet again we note the positive
-premium so put upon the surrender to sensibility, and how, since the
-latter was certain to spread to its maximum and to be admired in
-proportion to its spread, some surrender was always to have been worth
-while. “Lucrezia Floriani” ought to have been rather measurably
-bad—lucidity, harmony, maturity, definiteness of sense, being so likely
-to fail it in the troubled air in which it was born. Yet how can we do
-less than applaud a composition throwing off as it goes such a passage
-as the splendid group of pages cited by Madame Karénine from the
-incident of the heroine’s causing herself to be rowed over to the island
-in her Italian lake on that summer afternoon when the sense of her
-situation had become sharp for her to anguish, in order to take stock of
-the same without interruption and see, as we should say to-day, where
-she is? The whole thing has the grand manner and the noblest eloquence,
-reaching out as it does on the spot to the lesson and the moral of the
-convulsions that have been prepared in the first instance with such
-complacency, and illustrating in perfection the author’s faculty for the
-clear re-emergence and the prompt or, as we may call it, the paying
-reaction. The case is put for her here as into its final nutshell: you
-may “live” exactly as you like, that is live in perfect security and
-fertility, when such breadth of rendering awaits your simply sitting
-down to it. Is it not true, we say, that without her breadth our
-wonderful woman would have been “nowhere”?—whereas with it she is
-effectively and indestructibly at any point of her field where she may
-care to pretend to stand.
-
-This biographer, I must of course note, discriminates with delicacy
-among her heroine’s felicities and mistakes, recognising that some of
-the former, as a latent awkwardness in them developed, inevitably parted
-with the signs that distinguished them from the latter; but I think we
-feel, as the instances multiply, that no regret could have equalled for
-us that of our not having the display vivid and complete. Once all the
-elements of the scarce in advance imaginable were there it would have
-been a pity that they should not offer us the show of their full
-fruition. What more striking show, for example, than that, as recorded
-by Madame Karénine in a footnote, the afflicted parent of Solange should
-have lived to reproduce, or rather, as she would herself have said, to
-“arrange” the girlish character and conduct of that young person, so
-humiliating at the time to any near relation, let alone a mother, in the
-novel of “Mademoiselle Merquem,” where the truth to the original facts
-and the emulation of the graceless prime “effects” are such as our
-author can vouch for? The fiction we name followed indeed after long
-years, but during the lifetime of the displeasing daughter and with an
-ease of reference to the past that may fairly strike us as the last word
-of superiority to blighting association. It is quite as if the close and
-amused matching of the character and its play in the novel with the
-wretched old realities, those that had broken in their day upon the
-scared maternal vision, had been a work of ingenuity attended with no
-pang. The example is interesting as a measure of the possible victory of
-time in a case where we might have supposed the one escape to have been
-by forgetting. Madame Sand remembers to the point of
-gratefully—gratefully as an artist—reconstituting; we in fact feel
-her, as the irrepressible, the “healthy” artist, positively to enjoy so
-doing. Thus it clearly defined itself for her in the fulness of time
-that, humiliating, to use our expression, as the dreadful Solange might
-have been and have incessantly remained, she herself had never in the
-least consented to the stupidity or sterility of humiliation. So it
-could be that the free mind and the free hand were ever at her service.
-A beautiful indifferent agility, a power to cast out that was at least
-proportioned to the power to take in, hangs about all this and meets us
-in twenty connections. Who of her readers has forgotten the harmonious
-dedication—her inveterate dedications have always, like her clear light
-prefaces, the last grace—of “Jeanne,” so anciently, so romantically
-readable, to her faithful Berrichon servant who sits spinning by the
-fire? “Vous ne savez pas lire, ma paisible amie,” but that was not to
-prevent the association of her name with the book, since both her own
-daughter and the author’s are in happy possession of the art and will be
-able to pass the entertainment on to her. This in itself is no more than
-a sign of the writer’s fine democratic ease, which she carried at all
-times to all lengths, and of her charming habit of speech; but it
-somehow becomes further illustrational, testifying for the manner in
-which genius, if it be but great enough, lives its life at small cost,
-when we learn that after all, by a turn of the hand, the “paisible amie”
-was, under provocation, bundled out of the house as if the beautiful
-relation had not meant half of what appeared. Françoise and her presence
-were dispensed with, but the exquisite lines remain, which we would not
-be without for the world.
-
-
- III
-
-The various situations determined for the more eminent of George Sand’s
-intimate associates would always be independently interesting, thanks to
-the intrinsic appeal of these characters and even without the light
-reflected withal on the great agent herself; which is why poor Chopin’s
-figuration in the events of the year 1847, as Madame Karénine so fully
-reconstitutes them, is all that is wanted to point their almost
-nightmare quality. Without something of a close view of them we fail of
-a grasp of our heroine’s genius—her genius for keeping her head in deep
-seas morally and reflectively above water, though but a glance at them
-must suffice us for averting this loss. The old-world quality of drama,
-which throughout so thickens and tones the air around her, finds
-remarkable expression in the whole picture of the moment. Every
-connection involved bristles like a conscious consequence, tells for all
-it is worth, as we say, and the sinister complexity of reference—for
-all the golden clearings-up that awaited it on the ideal plane—leaves
-nothing to be desired. The great and odd sign of the complications and
-convulsions, the alarms and excursions recorded, is that these are all
-the more or less direct fruits of sensibility, which had primarily been
-indulged in, under the doom of a preparation of them which no
-preparation of anything else was to emulate, with a good faith fairly
-touching in presence of the eventual ugliness. Madame Sand’s wonderful
-mother, commemorated for us in “L’Histoire de ma Vie” with the truth
-surely attaching in a like degree to no mother in all the literature of
-so-called confession, had had for cousin a “fille entretenue” who had
-married a mechanic. This Adèle Brault had had in the course of her
-adventures a daughter in whom, as an unfortunate young relative, Madame
-Dupin had taken an interest, introducing her to the heiress of Nohant,
-who viewed her with favour—she appears to have been amiable and
-commendable—and eventually associated her with her own children. She
-was thus the third member of that illegitimate progeny with which the
-Nohant scene was to have become familiar, George Sand’s natural brother
-on her father’s side and her natural sister on her mother’s representing
-this element from the earlier time on. The young Augustine, fugitive
-from a circle still less edifying, was thus made a companion of the son
-and the daughter of the house, and was especially held to compare with
-the latter to her great advantage in the matter of character, docility
-and temper. These young persons formed, as it were, with his more
-distinguished friend, the virtual family of Chopin during those years of
-specifically qualified domestication which affect us as only less of a
-mystification to taste than that phase of the unrestricted which had
-immediately preceded them. Hence a tangled tissue of relations within
-the circle that became, as it strikes us, indescribable for difficulty
-and “delicacy,” not to say for the perfection of their impracticability,
-and as to which the great point is that Madame Sand’s having taken them
-so robustly for granted throws upon her temperamental genius a more
-direct light than any other. The whole case belongs doubtless even more
-to the hapless history of Chopin himself than to that of his terrible
-friend—terrible for her power to flourish in conditions sooner or later
-fatal to weaker vessels; but is in addition to this one of the most
-striking illustrations possible of that view or theory of social life
-handed over to the reactions of sensibility almost alone which, while
-ever so little the ideal of the Anglo-Saxon world, has largely governed
-the manners of its sister societies. It has been our view, very
-emphatically, in general, that the sane and active social body—or, for
-that matter, the sane and active individual, addressed to the natural
-business of life—goes wrongly about it to _encourage_ sensibility, or
-to do anything on the whole but treat it as of no prime importance; the
-traps it may lay for us, however, being really of the fewest in a race
-to which the very imagination of it may be said, I think, to have been
-comparatively denied. The imagination of it sat irremovably, on the
-other hand, and as a matter of course, at the Nohant fireside; where
-indeed we find the play and the ravage chiefly interesting through our
-thus seeing the delicate Chopin, whose semi-smothered appeal remains
-peculiarly pathetic, all helpless and foredoomed at the centre of the
-whirl. Nothing again strikes us more in the connection than the familiar
-truth that interesting persons make everything that concerns them
-interesting, or seldom fail to redeem from what might in another air
-seem but meanness and vanity even their most compromised states and
-their greatest wastes of value. Every one in the particular Nohant drama
-here exposed loses by the exposure—so far as loss could be predicated
-of amounts which, in general, excepting the said sensibility, were so
-scant among them; every one, that is, save the ruling spirit of all,
-with the extraordinary mark in her of the practical defiance of waste
-and of her inevitable enrichment, for our measure, as by reflection from
-the surrounding shrinkage. One of the oddest aspects of the scene is
-also one of the wretchedest, but the oddity makes it interesting, by the
-law I just glanced at, in spite of its vulgar side. How could it not be
-interesting, we ask as we read, to feel that Chopin, though far from the
-one man, was the one gentleman of the association, the finest set of
-nerves and scruples, and yet to see how little that availed him, in
-exasperated reactions, against mistakes of perverted sympathy? It is
-relevant in a high degree to our view of his great protectress as
-reducible at her best to male terms that she herself in this very light
-fell short, missed the ideal safeguard which for her friend had been
-preinvolved—as of course may be the peril, ever, with the creature so
-transmuted, and as is so strikingly exemplified, in the pages before us,
-when Madame Karénine ingenuously gives us chapter and verse for her
-heroine’s so unqualified demolition of the person of Madame d’Agoult,
-devotee of Liszt, mother to be, by that token, of Richard Wagner’s
-second wife, and sometime intimate of the author of “Isidora,” in which
-fiction we are shown the parody perpetrated. If women rend each other on
-occasion with sharper talons than seem to belong on the whole to the
-male hand, however intendingly applied, we find ourselves reflect
-parenthetically that the loss of this advantage may well be a matter for
-them to consider when the new approximation is the issue.
-
-The great sign of the Nohant circle on all this showing, at any rate, is
-the intense personalism, as we may call it, reigning there, or in other
-words the vivacity, the acuity and irritability of the personal
-relations—which flourished so largely, we at the same time feel, by
-reason of the general gift for expression, that gift to which we owe the
-general superiority of every letter, from it scarce matters whom, laid
-under contribution by our author. How could people not feel with acuity
-when they could, when they had to, write with such point and such
-specific intelligence?—just indeed as one asks how letters could fail
-to remain at such a level among them when they incessantly generated
-choice matter for expression. Madame Sand herself is of course on this
-ground easily the most admirable, as we have seen; but every one “knows
-how” to write, and does it well in proportion as the matter in hand most
-demands and most rewards proper saying. Much of all this stuff of
-history seems indeed to have been susceptible of any amount of force of
-statement; yet we note all the while how in the case of the great
-mistress of the pen at least some shade of intrinsic beauty attends even
-the presentation of quite abominable facts. We can only see it as
-abominable, at least, so long as we have Madame Sand’s words—which are
-somehow a different thing from her word—for it, that Chopin had from
-the first “sided” with the atrocious Solange in that play of her genius
-which is characterised by our chronicler as wickedness for the sake of
-wickedness, as art for the sake of art, without other logic or other
-cause. “Once married,” says Madame Karénine, “she made a double use of
-this wickedness. She had always hated Augustine; she wished, one doesn’t
-know why, to break off her marriage, and by calumnies and insinuations
-she succeeded. Then angry with her mother she avenged herself on her as
-well by further calumnies. Thereupon took place at Nohant such events
-that”—that in fine we stop before them with this preliminary shudder.
-The cross-currents of violence among them would take more keeping apart
-than we have time for, the more that everything comes back, for
-interest, to the intrinsic weight of the tone of the principal sufferer
-from them—as we see her, as we wouldn’t for the world not see her, in
-spite of the fact that Chopin was to succumb scarce more than a year
-later to multiplied lacerations, and that she was to override and
-reproduce and pre-appointedly flourish for long years after. If it is
-interesting, as I have pronounced it, that Chopin, again, should have
-consented to be of the opinion of Solange that the relations between her
-brother Maurice and the hapless Augustine were of the last impropriety,
-I fear I can account no better for this than by our sense that the more
-the _genius loci_ has to feed her full tone the more our faith in it, as
-such a fine thing in itself, is justified. Almost immediately after the
-precipitated marriage of the daughter of the house has taken place, the
-Clésinger couple, avid and insolent, of a breadth of old time impudence
-in fact of which our paler day has lost the pattern, are back on the
-mother’s hands, to the effect of a vividest picture of Maurice well-nigh
-in a death-grapple with his apparently quite monstrous “bounder” of a
-brother-in-law, a picture that further gives us Madame Sand herself
-smiting Clésinger in the face and receiving from him a blow in the
-breast, while Solange “coldly,” with an iciness indeed peculiarly her
-own, fans the rage and approves her husband’s assault, and while the
-divine composer, though for that moment much in the background, approves
-the wondrous approval. He still approves, to all appearance, the
-daughter’s interpretation of the mother’s wish to “get rid” of him as
-the result of an amorous design on the latter’s part in respect of a
-young man lately introduced to the circle as Maurice’s friend and for
-the intimate relation with whom it is thus desirable that the coast
-shall be made clear. How else than through no fewer consistencies of the
-unedifying on the part of these provokers of the expressional reaction
-should we have come by innumerable fine epistolary passages, passages
-constituting in themselves verily such adornments of the tale, such
-notes in the scale of all the damaged dignity redressed, that we should
-be morally the poorer without them? One of the vividest glimpses indeed
-is not in a letter but in a few lines from “L’Histoire de ma Vie,” the
-composition of which was begun toward the end of this period and while
-its shadow still hung about—early in life for a projected
-autobiography, inasmuch as the author had not then reached her
-forty-fifth year. Chopin at work, improvising and composing, was apt to
-become a prey to doubts and depressions, so that there were times when
-to break in upon these was to render him a service.
-
- But it was not always possible to induce him to leave the piano,
- often so much more his torment than his joy, and he began
- gradually to resent my proposing he should do so. I never
- ventured on these occasions to insist. Chopin in displeasure was
- appalling, and as with me he always controlled himself it was as
- if he might die of suffocation.
-
-It is a vision of the possibilities of vibration in such organisms that
-does in fact appal, and with the clash of vibrations, those both of
-genius and of the general less sanctioned sensibility, the air must have
-more than sufficiently resounded. Some eight years after the beginning
-of their friendship and the year after the final complete break in it
-she writes to Madame Pauline Viardot:
-
- Do you see Chopin? Tell me about his health. I have been unable
- to repay his fury and his hatred by hatred and fury. I think of
- him as of a sick, embittered, bewildered child. I saw much of
- Solange in Paris, the letter goes on, and made her my constant
- occupation, but without finding anything but a stone in the
- place of her heart. I have taken up my work again while waiting
- for the tide to carry me elsewhere.
-
-All the author’s “authority” is in these few words, and in none more
-than in the glance at the work and the tide. The work and the tide rose
-ever as high as she would to float her, and wherever we look there is
-always the authority. “I find Chopin _magnificent_,” she had already
-written from the thick of the fray, “to keep seeing, frequenting and
-approving Clésinger, who struck me because I snatched from his hands the
-hammer he had raised upon Maurice—Chopin whom every one talks of as my
-most faithful and devoted friend.” Well indeed may our biographer have
-put it that from a certain date in May 1847 “the two _Leitmotive_ which
-might have been called in the terms of Wagner the _Leitmotif_ of
-soreness and the _Leitmotif_ of despair—Chopin, Solange—sound together
-now in fusion, now in a mutual grip, now simply side by side, in all
-Madame Sand’s unpublished letters and in the few (of the moment) that
-have been published. A little later a third joins in—Augustine Brault,
-a motive narrowly and tragically linked to the _basso obligato_ of
-Solange.” To meet such a passage as the following under our heroine’s
-hand again is to feel the whole temper of intercourse implied slip
-straight out of our analytic grasp. The allusion is to Chopin and to the
-“defection” of which he had been guilty, to her view, at the time when
-it had been most important that she might count on him. What we have
-first, as outsiders, to swallow down, as it were, is the state of
-things, the hysteric pitch of family life, in which any ideal of
-reticence, any principle, as we know it, of minding one’s business, for
-mere dignity’s sake if for none other, had undergone such collapse.
-
- I grant you I am not sorry that he has withdrawn from me the
- government of his life, for which both he and his friends wanted
- to make me responsible in so much too absolute a fashion. His
- temper kept growing in asperity, so that it had come to his
- constantly blowing me up, from spite, ill-humour and jealousy,
- in presence of my friends and my children. Solange made use of
- it with the astuteness that belongs to her, while Maurice began
- to give way to indignation. Knowing and seeing _la chasteté de
- nos rapports_, he saw also that the poor sick soul took up,
- without _wanting to_ and perhaps without being able to help it,
- the attitude of the lover, the husband, the proprietor of my
- thoughts and actions. He was on the point of breaking out and
- telling him to his face that he was making me play, at
- forty-three years of age, a ridiculous part, and that it was an
- abuse of my kindness, my patience, and my pity for his nervous
- morbid state. A few months more, a few days perhaps, of this
- situation, and an impossible frightful struggle would have
- broken out between them. Foreseeing the storm, I took advantage
- of Chopin’s predilection for Solange and left him to sulk,
- without an effort to bring him round. We have not for three
- months exchanged a word in writing, and I don’t know how such a
- cooling-off will end.
-
-She develops the picture of the extravagance of his sick irritability;
-she accepts with indifference the certainty that his friends will accuse
-her of having cast him out to take a lover; the one thing she “minds” is
-the force of evil in her daughter, who is the centre of all the
-treachery. “She will come back to me when she needs me, that I know. But
-her return will be neither tender nor consoling.” Therefore it is when
-at the beginning of the winter of this same dreadful year she throws off
-the free rich summary of what she has been through in the letter to M.
-Charles Poncy already published in her Correspondence we are swept into
-the current of sympathy and admiration. The preceding months had been
-the heaviest and most painful of her life.
-
- I all but broke down under them utterly, though I had for long
- seen them coming. But you know how one is not always overhung by
- the evil portent, however clear one may read it—there are days,
- weeks, even whole months, when one lives on illusion and fondly
- hopes to divert the blow that threatens. It is always at last
- the most probable ill that surprises us unarmed and unprepared.
- To this explosion of unhappy underground germs joined themselves
- sundry contributive matters, bitter things too and quite
- unexpected; so that I am broken by grief in body and soul. I
- believe my grief incurable, for I never succeed in throwing it
- off for a few hours without its coming upon me again during the
- next in greater force and gloom. I nevertheless struggle against
- it without respite, and if I don’t hope for a victory which
- would have to consist of not feeling at all, at least I have
- reached that of still bearing with life, of even scarcely
- feeling ill, of having recovered my taste for work and of not
- showing my distress. I have got back outside calm and cheer,
- which are so necessary for others, and everything in my life
- seems to go on well.
-
-We had already become aware, through commemorations previous to the
-present, of that first or innermost line of defence residing in George
-Sand’s splendid mastery of the letter, the gift that was always so to
-assure her, on every issue, the enjoyment of the first chance with
-posterity. The mere cerebral and manual activity represented by the
-quantity no less than the quality of her outflow through the post at a
-season when her engagements were most pressing and her anxieties of
-every sort most cruel is justly qualified by Madame Karénine as
-astounding; the new letters here given to the world heaping up the
-exhibition and testifying even beyond the finest of those gathered in
-after the writer’s death—the mutilations, suppressions and other
-freedoms then used, for that matter, being now exposed. If no plot of
-her most bustling fiction ever thickened at the rate at which those
-agitations of her inner circle at which we have glanced multiplied upon
-her hands through the later ’forties, so we are tempted to find her
-rather less in possession of her great _moyens_ when handling the
-artificial presentation than when handling what we may call the natural.
-It is not too much to say that the long letter addressed to the cynical
-Solange in April ’52, and which these pages give us _in extenso_, would
-have made the fortune of any mere interesting “story” in which one of
-the characters might have been presented as writing it. It is a document
-of the highest psychological value and a practical summary of all the
-elements of the writer’s genius, of all her indefeasible advantages; it
-is verily the gem of her biographer’s collection. Taken in connection
-with a copious communication to her son, of the previous year, on the
-subject of his sister’s character and vices, and of their common
-experience of these, it offers, in its ease of movement, its
-extraordinary frankness and lucidity, its splendid apprehension and
-interpretation of realities, its state, as it were, of saturation with
-these, exactly the kind of interest for which her novels were held
-remarkable, but in a degree even above their maximum. Such a letter is
-an effusion of the highest price; none of a weight so baffling to
-estimation was probably ever inspired in a mother by solicitude for a
-clever daughter’s possibilities. Never surely had an accomplished
-daughter laid under such contribution a mother of high culture; never
-had such remarkable and pertinent things had to flow from such a source;
-never in fine was so urgent an occasion so admirably, so inimitably
-risen to. Marvellous through it all is the way in which, while a common
-recognition of the “facts of life,” as between two perfectly intelligent
-men of the world, gives the whole diapason, the abdication of moral
-authority and of the rights of wisdom never takes place. The tone is a
-high implication of the moral advantages that Solange had inveterately
-enjoyed and had decided none the less to avail herself of so little;
-which advantages we absolutely believe in as we read—_there_ is the
-prodigious part: such an education of the soul, and in fact of every
-faculty, such a claim for the irreproachable, it would fairly seem, do
-we feel any association with the great fluent artist, in whatever
-conditions taking place, inevitably, necessarily to have been. If we put
-ourselves questions we yet wave away doubts, and with whatever remnants
-of prejudice the writer’s last word may often have to clash, our own is
-that there is nothing for grand final rightness like a sufficiently
-_general_ humanity—when a particularly beautiful voice happens to serve
-it.
-
-
-
-
- GABRIELE D’ANNUNZIO
- 1902
-
-
-The great feast-days of all, for the restless critic, are those much
-interspaced occasions of his really meeting a “case,” as he soon enough
-learns to call, for his convenience and assistance, any supremely
-contributive or determinant party to the critical question. These are
-recognitions that make up for many dull hours and dry contacts, many a
-thankless, a disconcerted gaze into faces that have proved
-expressionless. Always looking, always hoping for his happiest chance,
-the inquirer into the reasons of things—by which I mean especially into
-the reasons of books—so often misses it, so often wastes his steps and
-withdraws his confidence, that he inevitably works out for himself,
-sooner or later, some handy principle of recognition. It may be a rough
-thing, a mere home-made tool of his trade, but it serves his purpose if
-it keeps him from beginning with mistakes. He becomes able to note in
-its light the signs and marks of the possible precious identity, able to
-weigh with some exactitude the appearances that make for its reality. He
-ends, through much expenditure of patience, by seeing when, how, why,
-the “case” announces and presents itself, and he perhaps even feels that
-failure and felicity have worked together to produce in him a sense for
-it that may at last be trusted as an instinct. He thus arrives at a view
-of all the candidates, frequently interesting enough, who fall short of
-the effective title, because he has at need, perhaps even from afar,
-scented along the wind the strongest member of the herd. He may perhaps
-not always be able to give us the grounds of his certainty, but he is at
-least never without knowing it in presence of one of the full-blown
-products that are the joy of the analyst. He recognises as well how the
-state of being full-blown comes above all from the achievement of
-consistency, of that last consistency which springs from the
-unrestricted enjoyment of freedom.
-
-Many of us will doubtless not have forgotten how we were witnesses a
-certain number of years since to a season and a society that had found
-themselves of a sudden roused, as from some deep drugged sleep, to the
-conception of the “esthetic” law of life; in consequence of which this
-happy thought had begun to receive the honours of a lively appetite and
-an eager curiosity, but was at the same time surrounded and manipulated
-by as many different kinds of inexpertness as probably ever huddled
-together on a single pretext. The spectacle was strange and finally was
-wearisome, for the simple reason that the principle in question, once it
-was proclaimed—a principle not easily formulated, but which we may
-conveniently speak of as that of beauty at any price, beauty appealing
-alike to the senses and to the mind—was never felt to fall into its
-place as really adopted and efficient. It remained for us a queer
-high-flavoured fruit from overseas, grown under another sun than ours,
-passed round and solemnly partaken of at banquets organised to try it,
-but not found on the whole really to agree with us, not proving
-thoroughly digestible. It brought with it no repose, brought with it
-only agitation. We were not really, not fully convinced, for the state
-of conviction is quiet. This was to have been the state itself—that is
-the state of mind achieved and established—in which we were to know
-ugliness no more, to make the esthetic consciousness feel at home with
-us, or learn ourselves at any rate to feel at home with _it_. That would
-have been the reign of peace, the supreme beatitude; but stability
-continued to elude us. We had mustered a hundred good reasons for it,
-yet the reasons but lighted up our desert. They failed to flower into a
-single concrete esthetic “type.” One authentic, one masterful specimen
-would have done wonders for us, would at least have assuaged our
-curiosity. But we were to be left till lately with our curiosity on our
-hands.
-
-This is a yearning, however, that Signor D’Annunzio may at last strike
-us as supremely formed to gratify; so promptly we find in him as a
-literary figure the highest expression of the reality that our own
-conditions were to fail of making possible. He has immediately the value
-of giving us by his mere logical unfolding the measure of our
-shortcomings in the same direction, that of our timidities and penuries
-and failures. He throws a straighter and more inevitable light on the
-esthetic consciousness than has, to my sense, in our time, reached it
-from any other quarter; and there is many a mystery that properly
-interrogated he may help to clear up for us, many an explanation of our
-misadventure that—as I have glanced at it—he may give. He starts with
-the immense advantage of enjoying the invoked boon by grace and not by
-effort, of claiming it under another title than the sweat of his brow
-and the aspiration of his culture. He testifies to the influence of
-things that have had time to get themselves taken for granted. Beauty at
-any price is an old story to him; art and form and style as the aim of
-the superior life are a matter of course; and it may be said of him, I
-think, that, thanks to these transmitted and implanted instincts and
-aptitudes, his individual development begins where the struggle of the
-mere earnest questioner ends. Signor D’Annunzio is earnest in his way,
-quite extraordinarily—which is a feature of his physiognomy that we
-shall presently come to and about which there will be something to say;
-but we feel him all the while in such secure possession of his heritage
-of favouring circumstance that his sense of intellectual responsibility
-is almost out of proportion. This is one of his interesting special
-marks, the manner in which the play of the esthetic instinct in him
-takes on, for positive extravagance and as a last refinement of freedom,
-the crown of solicitude and anxiety. Such things but make with him for
-ornament and parade; they are his tribute to civility; the essence of
-the matter is meanwhile in his blood and his bones. No mistake was
-possible from the first as to his being of the inner literary camp—a
-new form altogether of perceptive and expressive energy; the question
-was settled by the intensity and variety, to say nothing of the
-precocity, of his early poetic production.
-
-Born at Pescara, in the Regno, the old kingdom of Naples, “toward” 1863,
-as I find noted by a cautious biographer, he had while scarce out of his
-teens allowed his lyric genius full opportunity of scandalising even the
-moderately austere. He defined himself betimes very much as he was to
-remain, a rare imagination, a poetic, an artistic intelligence of
-extraordinary range and fineness concentrated almost wholly on the life
-of the senses. For the critic who simplifies a little to state clearly,
-the only ideas he urges upon us are the erotic and the plastic, which
-have for him about an equal intensity, or of which it would be doubtless
-more correct to say that he makes them interchangeable faces of the same
-figure. He began his career by playing with them together in verse, to
-innumerable light tunes and with an extraordinary general effect of
-curiosity and brilliancy. He has continued still more strikingly to play
-with them in prose; they have remained the substance of his intellectual
-furniture. It is of his prose only, however, that, leaving aside the
-Intermezzo, L’Isottèo, La Chimera, Odi Navali and other such matters, I
-propose to speak, the subject being of itself ample for one occasion.
-His five novels and his four plays have extended his fame; they suggest
-by themselves as many observations as we shall have space for. The group
-of productions, as the literary industry proceeds among us to-day, is
-not large, but we may doubt if a talent and a temperament, if indeed a
-whole “view of life,” ever built themselves up as vividly for the reader
-out of so few blocks. The writer is even yet enviably young; but this
-solidity of his literary image, as of something already seated on time
-and accumulation, makes him a rare example. Precocity is somehow an
-inadequate name for it, as precocity seldom gets away from the element
-of promise, and it is not exactly promise that blooms in the hard
-maturity of such a performance as “The Triumph of Death.” There are
-certain expressions of experience, of the experience of the whole man,
-that are like final milestones, milestones for his possible fertility if
-not for his possible dexterity; a truth that has not indeed prevented
-“Il Fuoco,” with its doubtless still ampler finality, from following the
-work just mentioned. And we have had particularly before us, in verse, I
-must add, “Francesca da Rimini,” with the great impression a great
-actress has enabled this drama to make.
-
-Only I must immediately in this connection also add that Signor
-D’Annunzio’s plays are, beside his novels, of decidedly minor weight;
-testifying abundantly to his style, his romantic sense and his command
-of images, but standing in spite of their eloquence only for half of his
-talent, largely as he yet appears in “Il Fuoco” to announce himself by
-implication as an intending, indeed as a pre-eminent dramatist. The
-example is interesting when we catch in the fact the opportunity for
-comparing with the last closeness the capacity of the two rival
-canvases, as they become for the occasion, on which the picture of life
-may be painted. The closeness is never so great, the comparison never so
-pertinent, as when the separate efforts are but different phases of the
-same talent. It is not at any rate under this juxtaposition that the
-infinitely greater amplitude of portrayal resident in the novel strikes
-us least. It in fact strikes us the more, in this quarter, for Signor
-D’Annunzio, that his plays have been with one exception successes. We
-must none the less take “Francesca” but for a success of curiosity; on
-the part of the author I mean even more than on the part of the public.
-It is primarily a pictorial and ingenious thing and, as a picture of
-passion, takes, in the total collection, despite its felicities of
-surface and arrangement, distinctly a “back seat.” Scarcely less than
-its companions it overflows with the writer’s plenitude of verbal
-expression, thanks to which, largely, the series will always prompt a
-curiosity and even a tenderness in any reader interested precisely in
-this momentous question of “style in a play”—interested in particular
-to learn by what esthetic chemistry a play would as a work of art
-propose to eschew it. It is in any such connection so inexpugnable that
-we have only to be cheated of it in one place to feel the subject cry
-aloud for it, like a sick man forsaken, in another.
-
-I may mention at all events the slightly perverse fact that, thanks, on
-this side, to the highest watermark of translation, Signor D’Annunzio
-makes his best appeal to the English public as a dramatist. Of each of
-the three English versions of other examples of his work whose titles
-are inscribed at the beginning of these remarks it may be said that they
-are adequate and respectable considering the great difficulty
-encountered. The author’s highest good fortune has nevertheless been at
-the hands of his French interpreter, who has managed to keep constantly
-close to him—allowing for an occasional inconsequent failure of courage
-when the directness of the original _brave l’honnêteté_—and yet to
-achieve a tone not less idiomatic, and above all not less marked by
-“authority,” than his own. Mr. Arthur Symons, among ourselves, however,
-has rendered the somewhat insistent eloquence of “La Gioconda” and the
-intricate and difficult verse of “Francesca” with all due sympathy, and
-in the latter case especially—a highly arduous task—with remarkably
-patient skill. It is not his fault, doubtless, if the feet of his
-English text strike us as moving with less freedom than those of his
-original; such being the hard price paid always by the translator who
-tries for correspondence from step to step, tries for an identical
-order. Even less is he responsible for its coming still more home to us
-in a translation that the meagre anecdote here furnishing the subject,
-and on which the large superstructure rests, does not really lend itself
-to those developments that make a full or an interesting tragic
-complexity. Behind the glamour of its immense literary association the
-subject of “Francesca” is for purposes of essential, of enlarged
-exhibition delusive and “short.”
-
-These, however, are for the moment side-issues; what is more relevant is
-the stride taken by our author’s early progress in his first novel and
-his second, “Il Piacere” and “L’Innocente”; a pair from the freshness,
-the direct young energy of which he was, for some of his admirers, too
-promptly and to markedly to decline. We may take it as characteristic of
-the intensity of the literary life in him that his brief career falls
-already thus into periods and supplies a quantity of history sufficient
-for those differences among students by which the dignity of history
-appears mainly to be preserved. The nature of his prime inspiration I
-have already glanced at; and we are helped to a characterisation if I
-say that the famous enthroned “beauty” which operates here, so straight,
-as the great obsession, is not in any perceptible degree moral beauty.
-It would be difficult perhaps to find elsewhere in the same compass so
-much expression of the personal life resting so little on any picture of
-the personal character and the personal will. It is not that Signor
-D’Annunzio has not more than once pushed his furrow in this latter
-direction; but nothing is exactly more interesting, as we shall see,
-than the seemingly inevitable way in which the attempt falls short.
-
-“Il Piacere,” the first in date of the five tales, has, though with
-imperfections, the merit of giving us strongly at the outset the
-author’s scale and range of view, and of so constituting a sort of
-prophetic summary of his elements. All that is done in the later things
-is more or less done here, and nothing is absent here that we are not
-afterwards also to miss. I propose, however, that it shall not be
-prematurely a question with us of what we miss; no intelligible
-statement of which, for that matter, in such considerations as these, is
-ever possible till there has been some adequate statement of what we
-find. Count Andrea Sperelli is a young man who pays, pays heavily, as we
-take it that we are to understand, for an unbridled surrender to the
-life of the senses; whereby it is primarily a picture of that life that
-the story gives us. He is represented as inordinately, as quite
-monstrously, endowed for the career that from the first absorbs and that
-finally is to be held, we suppose, to engulf him; and it is a tribute to
-the truth with which his endowment is presented that we should scarce
-know where else to look for so complete and convincing an account of
-such adventures. Casanova de Seingalt is of course infinitely more
-copious, but his autobiography is cheap loose journalism compared with
-the directed, finely-condensed iridescent epic of Count Andrea.
-
-This young man’s years have run but half their course from twenty to
-thirty when he meets and becomes entangled with a woman more infernally
-expert even than himself in the matters in which he is most expert—and
-he is given us as a miracle of social and intellectual
-accomplishment—the effect of whom is fatally to pervert and poison his
-imagination. As his imagination is applied exclusively to the
-employments of “love,” this means, for him, a frustration of all
-happiness, all comfortable consistency, in subsequent relations of the
-same order. The author’s view—this is fundamental—is all of a world in
-which relations of any other order whatever mainly fail to offer
-themselves in any attractive form. Andrea Sperelli, loving,
-accordingly—in the manner in which D’Annunzio’s young men love and to
-which we must specifically return—a woman of good faith, a woman as
-different as possible from the creature of evil communications, finds
-the vessel of his spirit itself so infected and disqualified that it
-falsifies and dries up everything that passes through it. The idea that
-has virtually determined the situation appears in fact to be that the
-hero _would_ have loved in another manner, or would at least have wished
-to, but that he had too promptly put any such fortune, so far as his
-capacity is concerned, out of court. We have our reasons, presently
-manifest, for doubting the possibility itself; but the theory has
-nevertheless given its direction to the fable.
-
-For the rest the author’s three sharpest signs are already unmistakable:
-first his rare notation of states of excited sensibility; second his
-splendid visual sense, the quick generosity of his response to the
-message, as we nowadays say, of aspects and appearances, to the beauty
-of places and things; third his ample and exquisite style, his curious,
-various, inquisitive, always active employment of language as a means of
-communication and representation. So close is the marriage between his
-power of “rendering,” in the light of the imagination, and whatever he
-sees and feels, that we should much mislead in speaking of his manner as
-a thing distinct from the matter submitted to it. The fusion is complete
-and admirable, so that, though his work is nothing if not “literary,” we
-see at no point of it where literature or where life begins or ends: we
-swallow our successive morsels with as little question as we swallow
-food that has by proper preparation been reduced to singleness of
-savour. It is brought home to us afresh that there is no complete
-creation without style any more than there is complete music without
-sound; also that when language becomes as closely applied and impressed
-a thing as for the most part in the volumes before us the fact of
-artistic creation is registered at a stroke. It is never more present
-than in the thick-sown illustrative images and figures that fairly bloom
-under D’Annunzio’s hand. I find examples in “Il Piacere,” as elsewhere,
-by simply turning the pages. “His will”—of the hero’s
-weakness—“useless as a sword of base temper hung at the side of a
-drunkard or a dullard.” Or of his own southern land in September: “I
-scarce know why, looking at the country in this season, I always think
-of some beautiful woman after childbirth, who lies back in her white
-bed, smiling with a pale astonished inextinguishable smile.” Or the
-incision of this: “Where for him now were those unclean short-lived
-loves that left in the mouth the strange acidity of fruit cut with a
-steel knife?” Or the felicity of the following, of a southern night seen
-and felt from the terrace of a villa. “Clear meteors at intervals
-streaked the motionless air, running over it as lightly and silently as
-drops of water on a crystal pane.” “The sails on the sea,” he says of
-the same look-out by day, “were as pious and numberless as the wings of
-cherubim on the gold grounds of old Giottesque panels.”
-
-But it is above all here for two things that his faculty is admirable;
-one of them his making us feel through the windows of his situation, or
-the gaps, as it were, of his flowering wood, the golden presence of
-Rome, the charm that appeals to him as if he were one of the pilgrims
-from afar, save that he reproduces it with an authority in which, as we
-have seen, the pilgrims from afar have mainly been deficient. The other
-is the whole category of the phenomena of “passion,” as passion prevails
-between his men and his women—and scarcely anything else prevails; the
-states of feeling, of ecstasy and suffering engendered, the play of
-sensibility from end to end of the scale. In this direction he has left
-no dropped stitches for any worker of like tapestries to pick up. We
-shall here have made out that many of his “values” are much to be
-contested, but that where they are true they are as fresh as
-discoveries; witness the passage where Sperelli, driving back to Rome
-after a steeplechase in which he has been at the supreme moment worsted,
-meets nothing that does not play with significance into his vision and
-act with force on his nerves. He has before the race had “words,” almost
-blows, on the subject of one of the ladies present, with one of the
-other riders, of which the result is that they are to send each other
-their seconds; but the omens are not for his adversary, in spite of the
-latter’s success on the course.
-
- From the mail-coach, on the return, he overtook the flight
- toward Rome of Giannetto Rutolo, seated in a small two-wheeled
- trap, behind the quick trot of a great roan, over whom he bent
- with tight reins, holding his head down and his cigar in his
- teeth, heedless of the attempts of policemen to keep him in
- line. Rome, in the distance, stood up dark against a zone of
- light as yellow as sulphur; and the statues crowning St. John
- Lateran looked huge, above the zone, in their violet sky. _Then
- it was that Andrea fully knew the pain he was making another
- soul suffer._
-
-Nothing could be more characteristic of the writer than the way what has
-preceded flowers into that last reality; and equally in his best manner,
-doubtless, is such a passage as the following from the same volume,
-which treats of the hero’s first visit to the sinister great lady whose
-influence on his soul and his senses is to become as the trail of a
-serpent. She receives him, after their first accidental meeting, with
-extraordinary promptitude and the last intimacy, receives him in the
-depths of a great Roman palace which the author, with a failure of taste
-that is, unfortunately for him, on ground of this sort, systematic,
-makes a point of naming. “Then they ceased to speak. Each felt the
-presence of the other flow and mingle with his own, with her own, very
-blood; till it was _her_ blood at last that seemed to have become his
-life, and his that seemed to have become hers. The room grew larger in
-the deep silence; the crucifix of Guido Reni made the shade of the
-canopy and curtains religious; the rumour of the city came to them like
-the murmur of some far-away flood.” Or take for an instance of the
-writer’s way of showing the consciousness as a full, mixed cup, of
-touching us ourselves with the mystery at work in his characters, the
-description of the young man’s leaving the princely apartments in
-question after the initiation vouchsafed to him. He has found the great
-lady ill in bed, with remedies and medicine-bottles at her side, but not
-too ill, as we have seen, to make him welcome. “Farewell,” she has said.
-“Love me! Remember!”
-
- It seemed to him, crossing the threshold again, that he heard
- behind him a burst of sobs. But he went on, a little uncertain,
- wavering like a man who sees imperfectly. The odour of the
- chloroform clung to his sense like some fume of intoxication;
- but at each step something intimate passed away from him,
- wasting itself in the air, so that, impulsively, instinctively,
- he would have kept himself as he was, have closed himself in,
- have wrapped himself up to prevent the dispersion. The rooms in
- front of him were deserted and dumb. At one of the doors
- “Mademoiselle” appeared, with no sound of steps, with no rustle
- of skirts, standing there like a ghost. “This way, signor conte.
- You won’t find it.” She had an ambiguous, irritating smile, and
- her curiosity made her grey eyes more piercing. Andrea said
- nothing. The woman’s presence again disconcerted and troubled
- him, affected him with a vague repugnance, stirred indeed his
- wrath.
-
-Even the best things suffer by detachment from their context; but so it
-is that we are in _possession_ of the young man’s exit, so it is that
-the act interests us. Fully announced from the first, among these
-things, was D’Annunzio’s signal gift of never approaching the thing
-particularly to be done, the thing that so presents itself to the
-painter, without consummately doing it. Each of his volumes offers thus
-its little gallery of episodes that stand out like the larger pearls
-occurring at intervals on a string of beads. The steeplechase in “Il
-Piacere,” the auction sale of precious trinkets in Via Sistina on the
-wet afternoon, the morning in the garden at Schifanoia, by the southern
-sea, when Donna Maria, the new revelation, first comes down to Andrea,
-who awaits her there in the languor of convalescence from the almost
-fatal wound received in the duel of which the altercation on the
-race-course has been the issue: the manner of such things as these has
-an extraordinary completeness of beauty. But they are, like similar
-pages in “Il Trionfo” and “Il Fuoco,” not things for adequate citation,
-not things that lend themselves as some of the briefer felicities. Donna
-Maria, on the September night at Schifanoia, has been playing for Andrea
-and their hostess certain old quaint gavottes and toccatas.
-
- It lived again wondrously beneath her fingers, the
- eighteenth-century music, so melancholy in its
- dance-tunes—tunes that might have been composed to be danced,
- on languid afternoons of some St. Martin’s summer, in a deserted
- park, among hushed fountains and pedestals without their
- statues, over carpets of dead roses, by pairs of lovers soon to
- love no more.
-
-Autobiographic in form, “L’Innocente” sticks closely to its theme, and
-though the form is on the whole a disadvantage to it the texture is
-admirably close. The question is of nothing less than a young husband’s
-relation to the illegitimate child of his wife, born confessedly as
-such, and so born, marvellous to say, in spite of the circumstance that
-the wife adores him, and of the fact that, though long grossly, brutally
-false to her, he also adores his wife. To state these data is
-sufficiently to express the demand truly made by them for superiority of
-treatment; they require certainly two or three almost impossible
-postulates. But we of course never play the fair critical game with an
-author, never get into relation with him at all, unless we grant him his
-postulates. His subject is what is given him—given him by influences,
-by a process, with which we have nothing to do; since what art, what
-revelation, can ever really make such a mystery, such a passage in the
-private life of the intellect, adequately traceable for us? His
-treatment of it, on the other hand, is what he actively gives; and it is
-with what he gives that we are critically concerned. If there is nothing
-in him that effectually induces us to make the postulate, he is then
-empty for us altogether, and the sooner we have done with him the
-better; little as the truly curious critic enjoys, as a general thing,
-having publicly to throw up the sponge.
-
-Tullio Hermil, who finally compasses the death of the little “innocent,”
-the small intruder whose presence in the family life has become too
-intolerable, retraces with a master’s hand each step of the process by
-which he has arrived at this sole issue. Save that his wife dumbly
-divines and accepts it his perpetration of the deed is not suspected,
-and we take the secret confession of which the book consists as made for
-the relief and justification of his conscience. The action all goes
-forward in that sphere of exasperated sensibility which Signor
-D’Annunzio has made his own so triumphantly that other story-tellers
-strike us in comparison as remaining at the door of the inner precinct,
-as listening there but to catch an occasional faint sound, while he
-alone is well within and moving through the place as its master. The
-sensibility has again in itself to be qualified; the exasperation of
-feeling is ever the essence of the intercourse of some man with some
-woman who has reduced him, as in “L’Innocente” and in “Il Trionfo,” to
-homicidal madness, or of some woman with some man who, as in “Il Fuoco,”
-and also again by a strange duplication of its office in “L’Innocente,”
-causes her atrociously to suffer. The plane of the situation is thus
-visibly a singularly special plane; that, always, of the more or less
-insanely demoralised pair of lovers, for neither of whom is any other
-personal relation indicated either as actual or as conceivably possible.
-Here, it may be said on such a showing, is material rather alarmingly
-cut down as to range, as to interest and, not least, as to charm; but
-here precisely it is that, by a wonderful chance, the author’s magic
-comes effectively into play.
-
-Little in fact as the relation of the erotically exasperated _with_ the
-erotically exasperated, when pushed on either side to frenzy, would
-appear to lend itself to luminous developments, the difficulty is
-surmounted each time in a fashion that, for consistency no less than for
-brilliancy, is all the author’s own. Though surmounted triumphantly as
-to interest, that is, the trick is played without the least
-falsification of the luckless subjects of his study. They remain the
-abject victims of sensibility that his plan has originally made them;
-they remain exasperated, erotic, hysterical, either homicidally or
-suicidally determined, cut off from any personal source of life that
-does not poison them; notwithstanding all of which they neither starve
-dramatically nor suffer us to starve with them. How then is this
-seemingly inevitable catastrophe prevented? We ask it but to find on
-reflection that the answer opens the door to their historian’s whole
-secret. The unfortunates are deprived of any enlarging or saving
-personal relation, that is of any beneficent reciprocity; but they make
-up for it by their relation both to the _idea_ in general and to the
-whole world of the senses, which is the completest that the author can
-conceive for them. He may be described as thus executing on their behalf
-an artistic _volte-face_ of the most effective kind, with results
-wonderful to note. The world of the senses, with which he surrounds
-them—a world too of the idea, that is of a few ideas admirably
-expressed—yields them such a crop of impressions that the need of other
-occasions to vibrate and respond, to act or to aspire, is superseded by
-their immense factitious agitation. This agitation runs its course in
-strangely brief periods—a singular note, the brevity, of every
-situation; but the period is while it lasts, for all its human and
-social poverty, quite inordinately peopled and furnished. The
-innumerable different ways in which his concentrated couples are able to
-feel about each other and about their enclosing cage of golden wire, the
-nature and the art of Italy—these things crowd into the picture and
-pervade it, lighting it scarcely less, strange to say, because they are
-things of bitterness and woe.
-
-It is one of the miracles of the imagination; the great shining element
-in which the characters flounder and suffer becomes rich and beautiful
-for them, as well as in so many ways for us, by the action of the
-writer’s mind. They not only live in his imagination, but they borrow it
-from him in quantities; indeed without this charitable advance they
-would be poor creatures enough, for they have in each case almost
-nothing of their own. On the aid thus received they start, they get into
-motion; it makes their common basis of “passion,” desire, enchantment,
-aversion. The essence of the situation is the same in “Il Trionfo” and
-“Il Fuoco” as in “L’Innocente”: the temporarily united pair devour each
-other, tear and rend each other, wear each other out through a series of
-erotic convulsions and nervous reactions that are made
-interesting—interesting to _us_—almost exclusively by the special
-wealth of their consciousness. The medium in which they move is
-admirably reflected in it; the autumn light of Venice, the afterglow of
-her past, in the drama of the elderly actress and the young rhetorician
-of “Il Fuoco”; the splendour of the summer by the edge of the lower
-Adriatic in that of the two isolated erotomaniacs of “Il Trionfo,”
-indissolubly linked at last in the fury of physical destruction into
-which the man drags the woman by way of retribution for the fury of
-physical surrender into which she has beguiled him.
-
-As for “L’Innocente” again, briefly, there is perhaps nothing in it to
-match the Roman passages of “Il Piacere”; but the harmony of the
-general, the outer conditions pervades the picture; the sweetness of the
-villeggiatura life, the happiness of place and air, the lovability of
-the enclosing scene, all at variance with the sharpness of the inner
-tragedy. The inner tragedy of “L’Innocente” has a concentration that is
-like the carrying, through turns and twists, upstairs and down, of some
-cup filled to the brim, of which no drop is yet spilled; such cumulative
-truth rules the scene after we have once accepted the postulate. It is
-true that the situation as exhibited involves for Giuliana, the young
-wife, the vulgarest of adventures; yet she becomes, as it unfolds, the
-figure of the whole gallery in whom the pathetic has at once most of
-immediate truth and of investing poetry. I much prefer her for beauty
-and interest to Donna Maria in “Il Piacere,” the principal other image
-of faith and patience sacrificed. We see these virtues as still supreme
-in her even while she faces, in advance, her ordeal, in respect to which
-it has been her hope, in fact her calculation, that her husband will
-have been deceived about the paternity of her child; and she is so
-truthfully touching when this possibility breaks down that even though
-we rub our eyes at the kind of dignity claimed for her we participate
-without reserve in her predicament. The origin of the infant is frankly
-ignoble, whereas it is on the nobleness of Giuliana that the story
-essentially hinges; but the contradiction is wonderfully kept from
-disconcerting us altogether. What the author has needed for his
-strangest truth is that the mother shall feel exactly as the husband
-does, and that the husband shall after the first shock of his horror
-feel intimately and explicitly with the mother. They take in this way
-the same view of their woeful excrescence; and the drama of the child’s
-advent and of the first months of his existence, his insistent and hated
-survival, becomes for them in respect to the rest of the world a drama
-of silence and dissimulation, in every step of which we feel a terror.
-
-The effect, I may add, gains more than one kind of intensity from that
-almost complete absence of _other_ contacts to which D’Annunzio
-systematically condemns his creatures; introducing here, however, just
-the two or three that more completely mark the isolation. It may
-doubtless be conceded that our English-speaking failure of insistence,
-of inquiry and penetration, in certain directions, springs partly from
-our deep-rooted habit of dealing with man, dramatically, on his social
-and gregarious side, as a being the variety of whose intercourse with
-his fellows, whatever forms his fellows may take, is positively half his
-interesting motion. We fear to isolate him, for we remember that as we
-see and know him he scarce understands himself save in action, action
-which inevitably mixes him with his kind. To see and know him, like
-Signor D’Annunzio, almost only in passion is another matter, for passion
-spends itself quickly in the open and burns hot mainly in nooks and
-corners. Nothing, too, in the picture is more striking than the manner
-in which the merely sentimental abyss—that of the couple brought
-together by the thing that might utterly have severed them—is
-consistently and successfully avoided. We should have been certain to
-feel it in many other hands yawning but a few steps off. We see the
-dreadful facts in themselves, are brought close to them with no
-interposing vaguenesses or other beggings of the question, and are
-forcibly reminded how much more this “crudity” makes for the
-communication of tenderness—what is aimed at—than an attitude
-conventionally more reticent. We feel what the tenderness can be when it
-rests on _all_ the items of a constituted misery, not one of which is
-illogically blinked.
-
-For the pangs and pities of the flesh in especial D’Annunzio has in all
-his work the finest hand—those of the spirit exist with him indeed only
-as proceeding from these; so that Giuliana for instance affects us,
-beyond any figure in fiction we are likely to remember, as living and
-breathing under our touch and before our eyes, as a creature of organs,
-functions and processes, palpable, audible, pitiful physical conditions.
-These are facts, many of them, of an order in pursuit of which many a
-spectator of the “picture of life” will instinctively desire to stop
-short, however great in general his professed desire to enjoy the
-borrowed consciousness that the picture of life gives us; and nothing,
-it may well be said, is more certain than that we have a right in such
-matters to our preference, a right to choose the kind of adventure of
-the imagination we like best. No obligation whatever rests on us in
-respect to a given kind—much light as our choice may often throw for
-the critic on the nature of our own intelligence. _There_ at any rate,
-we are disposed to say of such a piece of penetration as “L’Innocente,”
-there is a particular dreadful adventure, as large as life, for those
-who can bear it. The conditions are all present; it is only the reader
-himself who may break down. When in general, it may be added, we see
-readers do so, this is truly more often because they are shocked at
-really finding the last consistency than because they are shocked at
-missing it.
-
-“Il Trionfo della Morte” and “Il Fuoco” stand together as the amplest
-and richest of our author’s histories, and the earlier, and more rounded
-and faultless thing of the two, is not unlikely to serve, I should
-judge, as an unsurpassable example of his talent. His accomplishment
-here reaches its maximum; all his powers fight for him; the wealth of
-his expression drapes the situation represented in a mantle of
-voluminous folds, stiff with elaborate embroidery. The “story” may be
-told in three words: how Giorgio Aurispa meets in Rome the young and
-extremely pretty wife of a vulgar man of business, her unhappiness with
-whom is complete, and, falling in love with her on the spot, eventually
-persuades her—after many troubled passages—to come and pass a series
-of weeks with him in a “hermitage” by the summer sea, where, in a
-delirium of free possession, he grows so to hate her, and to hate
-himself for his subjection to her, and for the prostration of all honour
-and decency proceeding from it, that his desire to destroy her even at
-the cost of perishing with her at last takes uncontrollable form and he
-drags her, under a pretext, to the edge of a sea-cliff and hurls her,
-interlocked with him in appalled resistance, into space. We get at an
-early stage the note of that aridity of agitation in which the narrator
-has expended treasures of art in trying to interest us. “Fits of
-indescribable fury made them try which could torture each other best,
-which most lacerate the other’s heart and keep it in martyrdom.” But
-they understand, at least the hero does; and he formulates for his
-companion the essence of their _impasse_. It is not her fault when she
-tears and rends.
-
- Each human soul carries in it for love but a determinate
- quantity of sensitive force. It is inevitable that this quantity
- should use itself up with time, as everything else does; so that
- when it _is_ used up no effort has power to prevent love from
- ceasing. Now it’s a long time that you have been loving me;
- nearly two years!
-
-The young man’s intelligence is of the clearest; the woman’s here is
-inferior, though in “Il Fuoco” the two opposed faculties are almost
-equal; but the pair are alike far from living in their intelligence,
-which only serves to bestrew with lurid gleams the black darkness of
-their sensual life. So far as the intelligence is one with the will our
-author fundamentally treats it as cut off from all communication with
-any other quarter—that is with the senses arrayed and encamped. The
-most his unfortunates arrive at is to carry their extremely embellished
-minds with them through these dusky passages as a kind of gilded
-glimmering lantern, the effect of which is merely fantastic and
-ironic—a thing to make the play of their shadows over the walls of
-their catacomb more monstrous and sinister. Again in the first pages of
-“Il Trionfo” the glimmer is given.
-
- He recognised the injustice of any resentment against her,
- because he recognised the fatal necessities that controlled them
- alike. No, his misery came from no other human creature; it came
- from the very essence of life. The lover had not the lover to
- complain of, but simply love itself. Love, toward which his
- whole being reached out, from within, with a rush not to be
- checked, love was of all the sad things of this earth the most
- lamentably sad. And to this supreme sadness he was perhaps
- condemned till death.
-
-That, in a nutshell, is D’Annunzio’s subject-matter; not simply that his
-characters see in advance what love is worth for them, but that they
-nevertheless need to make it the totality of their consciousness. In “Il
-Trionfo” and “Il Fuoco” the law just expressed is put into play at the
-expense of the woman, with the difference, however, that in the latter
-tale the woman perceives and judges, suffers in mind, so to speak, as
-well as in nerves and in temper. But it would be hard to say in which of
-these two productions the inexhaustible magic of Italy most helps the
-effect, most hangs over the story in such a way as to be one with it and
-to make the ugliness and the beauty melt together. The ugliness, it is
-to be noted, is continually _presumed_ absent; the pursuit and
-cultivation of beauty—that fruitful preoccupation which above all, I
-have said, gives the author his value as our “case”—being the very
-ground on which the whole thing rests. The ugliness is an accident, a
-treachery of fate, the intrusion of a foreign substance—having for the
-most part in the scheme itself no admitted inevitability. Against it
-every provision is made that the most developed taste in the world can
-suggest; for, ostensibly, transcendently, Signor D’Annunzio’s _is_ the
-most developed taste in the world—his and that of the ferocious yet so
-contracted _conoscenti_ his heroes, whose virtual identity with himself,
-affirmed with a strangely misplaced complacency by some of his critics,
-one would surely hesitate to take for granted. It is the wondrous
-physical and other endowments of the two heroines of “Il Piacere,” it is
-the joy and splendour of the hero’s intercourse with them, to say
-nothing of the lustre of his own person, descent, talents, possessions,
-and of the great general setting in which everything is offered us—it
-is all this that makes up the picture, with the constant suggestion that
-nothing of a baser quality for the esthetic sense, or at the worst for a
-pampered curiosity, might hope so much as to live in it. The case is the
-same in “L’Innocente,” a scene all primarily smothered in flowers and
-fruits and fragrances and soft Italian airs, in every implication of
-flattered embowered constantly-renewed desire, which happens to be a
-blighted felicity only for the very reason that the cultivation of
-delight—in the form of the wife’s luckless experiment—has so awkwardly
-overleaped itself. Whatever furthermore we may reflectively think either
-of the Ippolita of “Il Trionfo” or of her companion’s scheme of
-existence with her, it is enchanting grace, strange, original,
-irresistible in kind and degree, that she is given us as representing;
-just as her material situation with her young man during the greater
-part of the tale is a constant communion, for both of them, with the
-poetry and the nobleness of classic landscape, of nature consecrated by
-association.
-
-The mixture reaches its maximum, however, in “Il Fuoco,” if not perhaps
-in “The Virgins of the Rocks”; the mixture I mean of every exhibited
-element of personal charm, distinction and interest, with every
-insidious local influence, every glamour of place, season and
-surrounding object. The heroine of the first-named is a great tragic
-actress, exquisite for everything but for being unfortunately
-middle-aged, battered, marked, as we are constantly reminded, by all the
-after-sense of a career of promiscuous carnal connections. The hero is a
-man of letters, a poet, a dramatist of infinite reputation and resource,
-and their union is steeped to the eyes in the gorgeous medium of Venice,
-the moods of whose melancholy and the voices of whose past are an active
-part of the perpetual concert. But we see _all_ the persons introduced
-to us yearn and strain to exercise their perceptions and taste their
-impressions as deeply as possible, conspiring together to interweave
-them with the pleasures of passion. They “go in” as the phrase is, for
-beauty at any cost—for each other’s own to begin with; their creator,
-in the inspiring quest, presses them hard, and the whole effect becomes
-for us that of an organised general sacrifice to it and an organised
-general repudiation of everything else. It is not idle to repeat that
-the value of the Italian background has to this end been inestimable,
-and that every spark of poetry it had to contribute has been struck from
-it—with what supreme felicity we perhaps most admiringly learn in “The
-Virgins of the Rocks.” To measure the assistance thus rendered, and
-especially the immense literary lift given, we have only to ask
-ourselves what appearance any one of the situations presented would have
-made in almost any Cisalpine or “northern” frame of circumstance
-whatever. Supported but by such associations of local or of literary
-elegance as _our_ comparatively thin resources are able to furnish, the
-latent weakness in them all, the rock, as to final effect, on which they
-split and of which I shall presently speak, would be immeasurably less
-dissimulated. All this is the lesson of style, by which we here catch a
-writer in the very act of profiting after a curious double fashion.
-D’Annunzio arrives at it both by expression and by material—that is, by
-a whole side of the latter; so that with such energy at once and such
-good fortune it would be odd indeed if he had not come far. It is verily
-in the very name and interest of beauty, of the lovely impression, that
-Giorgio Aurispa becomes homicidal in thought and finally in act.
-
- She would in death become for me matter of thought, pure
- ideality. From a precarious and imperfect existence she would
- enter into an existence complete and definitive, forsaking
- forever the infirmity of her weak luxurious flesh. Destroy to
- possess—there is no other way for him who seeks the absolute in
- love.
-
-To these reflections he has been brought by the long, dangerous past
-which, as the author says, his connection with his mistress has behind
-it—a past of recriminations of which the ghosts still walk. “It dragged
-behind it, through time, an immense dark net, all full of dead things.”
-To quote here at all is always to desire to continue, and “Il Trionfo”
-abounds in the illustrative episodes that are ever made so masterfully
-concrete. Offering in strictness, incidentally, the only exhibition in
-all the five volumes of a human relation other than the acutely sexual,
-it deals admirably enough with this opportunity when the hero pays his
-visit to his provincial parents before settling with his mistress at
-their hermitage. His people are of ancient race and have been much at
-their ease; but the home in the old Apulian town, overdarkened by the
-misdeeds of a demoralised father, is on the verge of ruin, and the dull
-mean despair of it all, lighted by outbreaks of helpless rage on the
-part of the injured mother, is more than the visitor can bear, absorbed
-as he is in impatiences and concupiscences which make everything else
-cease to exist for him. His terror of the place and its troubles but
-exposes of course the abjection of his weakness, and the sordid
-squabbles, the general misery and mediocrity of life that he has to
-face, constitute precisely, for his personal design, the abhorred
-challenge of ugliness, the interference of a call other than erotic. He
-flees before it, leaving it to make shift as it can; but nothing could
-be more “rendered” in detail than his overwhelmed vision of it.
-
-So with the other finest passages of the story, notably the summer day
-spent by the lovers in a long dusty dreadful pilgrimage to a famous
-local miracle-working shrine, where they mingle with the multitude of
-the stricken, the deformed, the hideous, the barely human, and from
-which they return, disgusted and appalled, to plunge deeper into
-consoling but too temporary transports; notably also the incident,
-masterly in every touch, of the little drowned contadino, the whole
-scene of the small starved dead child on the beach, in all the beauty of
-light and air and view, with the effusions and vociferations and
-grimnesses round him, the sights and sounds of the quasi-barbaric life
-that have the relief of antique rites portrayed on old tombs and urns,
-that quality and dignity of looming larger which a great feeling on the
-painter’s part ever gives to small things. With this ampler truth the
-last page of the book is above all invested, the description of the
-supreme moment—for some time previous creeping nearer and nearer—at
-which the delirious protagonist beguiles his vaguely but not fully
-suspicious companion into coming out with him toward the edge of a dizzy
-place over the sea, where he suddenly grasps her for her doom and the
-sense of his awful intention, flashing a light back as into their
-monstrous past, makes her shriek for her life. She dodges him at the
-first betrayal, panting and trembling.
-
- “Are you crazy?” she cried with wrath in her throat. “Are you
- crazy?” But as she saw him make for her afresh in silence, as
- she felt herself seized with still harsher violence and dragged
- afresh toward her danger, she understood it all in a great
- sinister flash which blasted her soul with terror. “No, no,
- Giorgio! Let me go! Let me go! Another minute—listen, listen!
- Just a minute! I want to say——!” She supplicated, mad with
- terror, getting herself free and hoping to make him wait, to put
- him off with pity. “A minute! Listen! I love you! Forgive me!
- Forgive me!” She stammered incoherent words, desperate, feeling
- herself overcome, losing her ground, seeing death close.
- “Murder!” she then yelled in her fury. And she defended herself
- with her nails, with her teeth, biting like a wild beast.
- “Murder!” she yelled, feeling herself seized by the hair, felled
- to the ground on the edge of the precipice, lost. The dog
- meanwhile barked out at the scuffle. The struggle was short and
- ferocious, as between implacable enemies who had been nursing to
- this hour in the depths of their souls an intensity of hate. And
- they plunged into death locked together.
-
-The wonder-working shrine of the Abruzzi, to which they have previously
-made their way, is a local Lourdes, the resort from far and wide of the
-physically afflicted, the evocation of whose multitudinous presence, the
-description of whose unimaginable miseries and ecstasies, grovelling
-struggles and supplications, has the mark of a pictorial energy for such
-matters not inferior to that of Émile Zola—to the degree even that the
-originality of the pages in question was, if I remember rightly, rather
-sharply impugned in Paris. D’Annunzio’s defence, however, was easy,
-residing as it does in the fact that to handle any subject successfully
-handled by Zola (his failures are another matter) is quite inevitably to
-walk more or less in his footsteps, in prints so wide and deep as to
-leave little margin for passing round them. To which I may add that,
-though the judgment may appear odd, the truth and force of the young
-man’s few abject days at Guardiagrele, his _casa paterna_, are such as
-to make us wish that other such corners of life were more frequent in
-the author’s pages. He has the supremely interesting quality in the
-novelist that he _fixes_, as it were, the tone of every cluster of
-objects he approaches, fixes it by the consistency and intensity of his
-reproduction. In “The Virgins of the Rocks” we have also a _casa
-paterna_, and a thing, as I have indicated, of exquisite and wonderful
-tone; but the tone here is of poetry, the truth and the force are less
-measurable and less familiar, and the whole question, after all, in its
-refined and attenuated form, is still that of sexual pursuit, which
-keeps it within the writer’s too frequent limits. Giorgio Aurispa, in
-“Il Trionfo,” lives in communion with the spirit of an amiable and
-melancholy uncle who had committed suicide and made him the heir of his
-fortune, and one of the nephew’s most frequent and faithful loyalties is
-to hark back, in thought, to the horror of his first knowledge of the
-dead man’s act, put before us always with its accompaniment of loud
-southern resonance and confusion. He is in the place again, he is in the
-room, at Guardiagrele, of the original appalled vision.
-
- He heard, in the stillness of the air and of his arrested soul,
- the small shrill of an insect in the wainscot. And the little
- fact sufficed to dissipate for the moment the extreme violence
- of his nervous tension, as the puncture of a needle suffices to
- empty a swollen bladder. Every particular of the terrible day
- came back to his memory: the news abruptly brought to Torretta
- di Sarsa, toward three in the afternoon, by a panting messenger
- who stammered and whimpered: the ride on horseback, at lightning
- speed, under the canicular sky and up the torrid slopes, and,
- during the rush, the sudden faintnesses that turned him dizzy in
- his saddle; then the house at home, filled with sobs, filled
- with a noise of doors slamming in the general scare, filled with
- the strumming of his own arteries; and at last his irruption
- into the room, the sight of the corpse, the curtains inflated
- and rustling, the tinkle on the wall of the little font for holy
- water.
-
-This young man’s great mistake, we are told, had been his insistence on
-regarding love as a form of enjoyment. He would have been in a possible
-relation to it only if he had learned to deal with it as a form of
-suffering. This is the lesson brought home to the heroine of “Il Fuoco,”
-who suffers indeed, as it seems to us, so much more than is involved in
-the occasion. We ask ourselves continually why; that is we do so at
-first; we do so before the special force of the book takes us captive
-and reduces us to mere charmed absorption of its successive parts and
-indifference to its moral sense. Its defect is verily that it has no
-moral sense proportionate to the truth, the constant high style of the
-general picture; and this fact makes the whole thing appear given us
-simply because it has happened, because it was material that the author
-had become possessed of, and not because, in its almost journalistic
-“actuality,” it has any large meaning. We get the impression of a direct
-transfer, a “lift,” bodily, of something seen and known, something not
-really produced by the chemical process of art, the crucible or retort
-from which things emerge for a new function. Their meaning here at any
-rate, extracted with difficulty, would seem to be that there is an
-inevitable leak of ease and peace when a mistress happens to be
-considerably older than her lover; but even this interesting yet not
-unfamiliar truth loses itself in the great poetic, pathetic, psychologic
-ceremonial.
-
-That matters little indeed, as I say, while we read; the two
-sensibilities concerned bloom, in all the Venetian glow, like wondrous
-water-plants, throwing out branches and flowers of which we admire the
-fantastic growth even while we remain, botanically speaking, bewildered.
-They are other sensibilities than those with which we ourselves have
-community—one of the main reasons of their appearing so I shall
-presently explain; and, besides, they are isolated, sequestrated,
-according to D’Annunzio’s constant view of such cases, for an exclusive,
-an intensified and arid development. The mistress has, abnormally, none
-of the protection, the alternative life, the saving sanity of other
-interests, ties, employments; while the hero, a young poet and dramatist
-with an immense consciousness of genius and fame, has for the time at
-least only those poor contacts with existence that the last intimacies
-of his contact with his friend’s person, her poor _corpo non più
-giovane_, as he so frequently repeats, represent for him. It is not for
-us, however, to contest the relation; it is in the penetrating way again
-in which the relation is rendered that the writer has his triumph; the
-way above all in which the world-weary interesting sensitive woman, with
-her infinite intelligence, yet with her longing for some happiness still
-among all her experiments untasted, and her genius at the same time for
-familiar misery, is marked, featured, individualised for us, and, with
-the strangest art in the world—one of those mysteries of which great
-talents alone have the trick—at once ennobled with beauty and
-desecrated by a process that we somehow feel to be that of exposure, to
-spring from some violation of a privilege. “ ‘Do with me,’ ” says the
-Foscarina on a certain occasion, “ ‘whatever you will’; and she smiled
-in her offered abjection. She belonged to him like the thing one holds
-in one’s fist, like the ring on one’s finger, like a glove, like a
-garment, like a word that may be spoken or not, like a draught that may
-be drunk or poured on the ground.” There are some lines describing an
-hour in which she has made him feel as never before “the incalculable
-capacity of the heart of man. And it seemed to him as he heard the
-beating of his own heart and divined the violence of the other beside
-him that he had in his ears the loud repercussion of the hammer on the
-hard anvil where human destiny is forged.” More than ever here the pitch
-of the personal drama is taken up by everything else in the
-scene—everything else being in fact but the immediate presence of
-Venice, her old faded colour and old vague harmonies, played with
-constantly as we might play with some rosy fretted faintly-sounding
-sea-shell.
-
-It would take time to say what we play with in the silver-toned “Virgins
-of the Rocks,” the history of a visit paid by a transcendent young
-man—always pretty much the same young man—to an illustrious family
-whose fortunes have tragically shrunken with the expulsion of the
-Bourbons from the kingdom of Naples, and the three last lovely daughters
-of whose house are beginning to wither on the stem, undiscovered,
-unsought, in a dilapidated old palace, an old garden of neglected pomp,
-a place of fountains and colonnades, marble steps and statues, all
-circled with hard bright sun-scorched volcanic scenery. They are tacitly
-candidates for the honour of the hero’s hand, and the subject of the
-little tale, which deals with scarce more than a few summer days, is the
-manner of their presenting themselves for his admiration and his choice.
-I decidedly name this exquisite composition as my preferred of the
-series; for if its tone is thoroughly romantic the romance is yet of the
-happiest kind, the kind that consists in the imaginative development of
-observable things, things present, significant, related to us, and not
-in a weak false fumble for the remote and the disconnected.
-
-It is indeed the romantic mind itself that makes the picture, and there
-could be no better case of the absolute artistic vision. The mere facts
-are soon said; the main fact, above all, of the feeble remnant of an
-exhausted race waiting in impotence to see itself cease to be. The
-father has nothing personal left but the ruins of his fine presence and
-of his old superstitions, a handful of silver dust; the mother, mad and
-under supervision, stalks about with the delusion of imperial greatness
-(there is a wonderful page on her parading through the gardens in her
-rococo palanquin, like a Byzantine empress, attended by sordid keepers,
-while the others are hushed into pity and awe); the two sons,
-hereditarily tainted, are virtually imbecile; the three daughters,
-candidly considered, are what we should regard in our Anglo-Saxon world
-as but the stuff of rather particularly dreary and shabby, quite
-unutterably idle old maids. Nothing, within the picture, occurs; nothing
-is done or, more acutely than usual, than everywhere, suffered; it is
-all a mere affair of the rich impression, the complexity of images
-projected upon the quintessential spirit of the hero, whose own report
-is what we have—an affair of the quality of observation, sentiment and
-eloquence brought to bear. It is not too much to say even that the whole
-thing is in the largest sense but a theme for style, style of substance
-as well as of form. Within this compass it blooms and quivers and
-shimmers with light, becomes a wonderful little walled garden of
-romance. The young man has a passage of extreme but respectful
-tenderness with each of the sisters in turn, and the general cumulative
-effect is scarcely impaired by the fact that “nothing comes” of any of
-these relations. Too little comes of anything, I think, for any very
-marked human analogy, inasmuch as if it is interesting to be puzzled to
-a certain extent by what an action, placed before us, is designed to
-show or to signify, so we require for this refined amusement at least
-the sense that some general idea _is_ represented. We must feel it
-present.
-
-Therefore if making out nothing very distinct in “Le Vergini” but the
-pictorial idea, and yet cleaving to the preference I have expressed, I
-let the anomaly pass as a tribute extorted by literary art, I may seem
-to imply that a book may have a great interest without showing a perfect
-sense. The truth is undoubtedly that I am in some degree beguiled and
-bribed by the particularly intense expression given in these pages to
-the author’s esthetic faith. If he is so supremely a “case” it is
-because this production has so much to say for it, and says it with such
-a pride of confidence, with an assurance and an elegance that fairly
-make it the last conceivable word of such a profession. The observations
-recorded have their origin in the narrator’s passionate reaction against
-the vulgarity of the day. All the writer’s young men react; but
-Cantelmo, in the volume before us, reacts with the finest contempt. He
-is, like his brothers, a _raffiné_ conservative, believing really, so
-far as we understand it, only in the virtue of “race” and in the grand
-manner. The blighted Virgins, with all that surrounds them, are an
-affirmation of the grand manner—that is of the shame and scandal of
-what in an odious age it has been reduced to. It consists indeed of a
-number of different things which I may not pretend to have completely
-fitted together, but which are, with other elements, the sense of the
-supremacy of beauty, the supremacy of style and, last not least, of the
-personal will, manifested for the most part as a cold insolence of
-attitude—not manifested as anything much more edifying. What it really
-appears to come to is that the will is a sort of romantic ornament, the
-application of which, for life in the present and the future, remains
-awkwardly vague, though we are always to remember that it has been
-splendidly forged in the past. The will in short _is_ beauty, is style,
-is elegance, is art—especially in members of great families and
-possessors of large fortunes. That of the hero of “Le Vergini” has been
-handed down to him direct, as by a series of testamentary provisions,
-from a splendid young ancestor for whose memory and whose portrait he
-has a worship, a warrior and virtuoso of the Renaissance, the model of
-his spirit.
-
- He represents for me the mysterious meaning of the power of
- style, not violable by any one, and least of all ever by myself
- in my own person.
-
-And elsewhere:—
-
- The sublime hands of Violante [the beauty and interest of hands
- play a great part, in general, in the picture], pressing out in
- drops the essence of the tender flowers and letting them fall
- bruised to the ground, performed an act which, as a symbol,
- corresponded perfectly to the character of my style; this being
- ever to extract from a thing its very last scent of life, to
- take from it all it could give and leave it exhausted. Was not
- this one of the most important offices of my art of life?
-
-The book is a singularly rich exhibition of an inward state, the state
-of private poetic intercourse with things, the kind of current that in a
-given personal experience flows to and fro between the imagination and
-the world. It represents the esthetic consciousness, proud of its
-conquests and discoveries, and yet trying, after all, as with the vexed
-sense of a want, to look through other windows and eyes. It goes all
-lengths, as is of course indispensable on behalf of a personage
-constituting a case. “I firmly believe that the greatest sum of future
-dominion will be precisely that which shall have its base and its apex
-in Rome”—such being in our personage the confidence of the “Latin”
-spirit. Does it not really all come back to style? It was to the Latin
-spirit that the Renaissance was primarily vouchsafed; and was not, for a
-simplified statement, the last word of the Renaissance the question of
-taste? That is the esthetic question; and when the Latin spirit after
-many misadventures again clears itself we shall see how all the while
-this treasure has been in its keeping. Let us as frankly as possible add
-that there is a whole side on which the clearance may appear to have
-made quite a splendid advance with Signor D’Annunzio himself.
-
-But there is another side, which I have been too long in coming to, yet
-which I confess is for me much the more interesting. No account of our
-author is complete unless we really make out what becomes of that
-esthetic consistency in him which, as I have said, our own collective
-and cultivated effort is so earnestly attempting and yet so
-pathetically, if not so grotesquely, missing. We are struck,
-unmistakably, early in our acquaintance with these productions, by the
-fact that their total beauty somehow extraordinarily fails to march with
-their beauty of parts, and that something is all the while at work
-undermining that bulwark against ugliness which it is their obvious
-theory of their own office to throw up. The disparity troubles and
-haunts us just in proportion as we admire; and our uneasy wonderment
-over the source of the weakness fails to spoil our pleasure only because
-such questions have so lively an interest for the critic. We feel
-ourselves somehow in presence of a singular incessant _leak_ in the
-effect of distinction so artfully and copiously produced, and we apply
-our test up and down in the manner of the inquiring person who, with a
-tin implement and a small flame, searches our premises for an escape of
-gas. The bad smell has, as it were, to be accounted for; and yet where,
-amid the roses and lilies and pomegranates, the thousand essences and
-fragrances, can such a thing possibly be? Quite abruptly, I think, at
-last (if we have been much under the spell) our test gives us the news,
-not unaccompanied with the shock with which we see our escape of gas
-spring into flame. There is no mistaking it; the leak of distinction is
-produced by a positive element of the vulgar; and that the vulgar should
-flourish in an air so charged, intellectually speaking, with the
-“aristocratic” element, becomes for us straightway the greatest of
-oddities and at the same time, critically speaking, one of the most
-interesting things conceivable.
-
-The interest then springs from its being involved for us in the “case.”
-We recognise so many suggested consequences if the case is really to
-prove responsible for it. We ask ourselves if there be not a connection,
-we almost tremble lest there shouldn’t be; since what is more obvious
-than that, if a high example of exclusive estheticism—as high a one as
-we are likely ever to meet—is bound sooner or later to spring a leak,
-the general question receives much light? We recognise here the value of
-our author’s complete consistency: he would have kept his bottom sound,
-so to speak, had he not remained so long at sea. If those imperfect
-exponents of his faith whom we have noted among ourselves fail to
-flower, for a climax, in any proportionate way, we make out that they
-are embarrassed not so much by any force they possess as by a force—a
-force of temperament—that they lack. The anomaly I speak of presents
-itself thus as the dilemma in which Signor D’Annunzio’s consistency has
-inexorably landed him; and the disfigurement breaks out, strikingly
-enough, in the very forefront of his picture, at the point where he has
-most lavished his colour. It is where he has most trusted and depended
-that he is most betrayed, the traitor sharing certainly his tent and his
-confidence. What is it that in the interest of beauty he most
-elaborately builds on if not on the love-affairs of his heroes and
-heroines, if not on his exhibition of the free play, the sincere play,
-the play closely studied and frankly represented, of the sexual
-relation? It is round this exercise, for him, that expressible,
-demonstrable, communicable beauty prevailingly clusters; a view indeed
-as to which we all generously go with him, subject to the reserve for
-each of us of our own expression and demonstration. It is these things
-on his part that break down, it is his discrimination that falls short,
-and thereby the very kind of intellectual authority most implied by his
-pretension. There is according to him an immense amenity that can be
-saved—saved by style—from the general wreck and welter of what is most
-precious, from the bankruptcy determined more and more by our basely
-democratic conditions. As we watch the actual process, however, it is
-only to see the lifeboat itself founder. The vulgarity into which he so
-incongruously drops is, I will not say the space he allots to
-love-affairs, but the weakness of his sense of “values” in depicting
-them.
-
-We begin to ask ourselves at an early stage what this queer passion may
-be in the representation of which the sense of beauty ostensibly finds
-its richest expression and which is yet attended by nothing else at
-all—neither duration, nor propagation, nor common kindness, nor common
-consistency with other relations, common congruity with the rest of
-life—to make its importance good. If beauty is the supreme need so let
-it be; nothing is more certain than that we can never get too much of it
-if only we get it of the right sort. It is therefore on this very
-ground—the ground of its own sufficiency—that Signor D’Annunzio’s
-invocation of it collapses at our challenge. The vulgarity comes from
-the disorder really introduced into values, as I have called them; from
-the vitiation suffered—that we should have to record so mean an
-accident—by taste, impeccable taste, itself. The truth of this would
-come out fully in copious examples, now impossible; but it is not too
-much to say, I think, that in every principal situation presented the
-fundamental weakness causes the particular interest to be inordinately
-compromised.
-
-I must not, I know, make too much of “Il Piacere”—one of those works of
-promising youth with which criticism is always easy—and I should indeed
-say nothing of it if it were also a work of less ability. It really,
-however, to my mind, quite gives us the key, all in the morning early,
-to our author’s general misadventure. Andrea Sperelli is the key; Donna
-Maria is another key of a slightly different shape. They have neither of
-them the esthetic importance, any more than the moral, that their
-narrator claims for them and in his elaborate insistence on which he has
-so hopelessly lost his way. If they _were_ important—by which I mean if
-they showed in any other light than that of their particular erotic
-exercise—they would justify the claim made for them with such superior
-art. They have no general history, since their history is only, and
-immediately and extravagantly, that of their too cheap and too easy
-romance. Why should the career of the young man be offered as a sample
-of pathetic, of tragic, of edifying corruption?—in which case it might
-indeed be matter for earnest exhibition. The march of corruption, the
-insidious influence of propinquity, opportunity, example, the ravage of
-false estimates and the drama of sterilising passion—all this is a
-thinkable theme, thinkable especially in the light of a great talent.
-But for Andrea Sperelli there is not only no march, no drama, there is
-not even a weakness to give him the semblance of dramatic, of plastic
-material; he is solidly, invariably, vulgarly strong, and not a bit more
-corrupt at the end of his disorders than at the beginning. His
-erudition, his intellectual accomplishments and elevation, are too
-easily spoken for; no view of him is given in which we can feel or taste
-them. Donna Maria is scarcely less signal an instance of the apparent
-desire on the author’s part to impute a “value” defeated by his
-apparently not knowing what a value is. She is apparently an immense
-value for the occasions on which the couple secretly meet, but how is
-she otherwise one? and what becomes therefore of the beauty, the
-interest, the pathos, the struggle, or whatever else, of her
-relation—relation of character, of judgment, even of mere taste—to her
-own collapse? The immediate physical sensibility that surrenders in her
-is, as throughout, exquisitely painted; but since nothing operates for
-her, one way or the other, _but_ that familiar faculty, we are left
-casting about us almost as much for what else she has to give as for
-what, in any case, she may wish to keep.
-
-The author’s view of the whole matter of durations and dates, in these
-connections, gives the scale of “distinction” by itself a marked
-downward tilt; it confounds all differences between the trivial and the
-grave. Giuliana, in “L’Innocente,” is interesting because she has had a
-misadventure, and she is exquisite in her delineator’s view because she
-has repented of it. But the misadventure, it appears, was a matter but
-of a minute; so that we oddly see this particular romance attenuated on
-the ground of its brevity. Given the claims of the exquisite, the
-attenuation should surely be sought in the very opposite quarter; since,
-where these remarkable affections are concerned, how otherwise than by
-the element of comparative duration do we obtain the element of
-comparative good faith, on which we depend for the element, in turn, of
-comparative dignity? Andrea Sperelli becomes in the course of a few
-weeks in Rome the lover of some twenty or thirty women of fashion—the
-number scarce matters; but to make this possible his connection with
-each has but to last a day or two; and the effect of that in its order
-is to reduce to nothing, by vulgarity, by frank grotesqueness of
-association, the romantic capacity in him on which his chronicler’s
-whole appeal to us is based. The association rising before us more
-nearly than any other is that of the manners observable in the most
-mimetic department of any great menagerie.
-
-The most serious relation depicted—in the sense of being in some degree
-the least suggestive of mere zoological sociability—is that of the
-lovers in “Il Fuoco,” as we also take this pair for their creator’s
-sanest and most responsible spirits. It is a question between them of an
-heroic affection, and yet the affection appears to make good for itself
-no place worth speaking of in their lives. It holds but for a scant few
-weeks; the autumn already reigns when the connection begins, and the
-connection is played out (or if it be not the ado is about nothing) with
-the first flush of the early Italian spring. It suddenly, on our hands,
-becomes trivial, with all our own estimate of reasons and realities and
-congruities falsified. The Foscarina has, on professional business, to
-“go away,” and the young poet has to do the same; but such a separation,
-so easily bridged over by such great people, makes a beggarly climax for
-an intercourse on behalf of which all the forces of poetry and tragedy
-have been set in motion. Where then we ask ourselves is the
-weakness?—as we ask it, very much in the same way, in respect to the
-vulgarised aspect of the tragedy of Giorgio Aurispa. The pang of pity,
-the pang that springs from a conceivable community in doom, is in this
-latter case altogether wanting. Directly we lift a little the
-embroidered mantle of that gift for appearances which plays, on Signor
-D’Annunzio’s part, such tricks upon us, we find ourselves put off, as
-the phrase is, with an inferior article. The inferior article is the
-hero’s poverty of life, which cuts him down for pathetic interest just
-as the same limitation in “Il Piacere” cuts down Donna Maria. Presented
-each as victims of another rapacious person who has got the better of
-them, there is no process, no complexity, no suspense in their story;
-and thereby, we submit, there is no esthetic beauty. Why _shouldn’t_
-Giorgio Aurispa go mad? Why shouldn’t Stelio Effrena go away? We make
-the inquiry as disconcerted spectators, not feeling in the former case
-that we have had any communication with the wretched youth’s sanity, and
-not seeing in the latter why the tie of all the passion that has been
-made so admirably vivid for us should not be able to weather change.
-
-Nothing is so singular with D’Annunzio as that the very basis and
-subject of his work should repeatedly go aground on such shallows as
-these. He takes for treatment a situation that is substantially
-none—the most fundamental this of his values, and all the more
-compromising that his immense art of producing illusions still leaves it
-exposed. The idea in each case is superficially specious, but _where_ it
-breaks down is what makes all the difference. “Il Piacere” would have
-meant what it seems to try to mean only if a provision had been made in
-it for some adequate “inwardness” on the part either of the nature
-disintegrated or of the other nature to which this poisoned contact
-proves fatal. “L’Innocente,” of the group, comes nearest to justifying
-its idea; and I leave it unchallenged, though its meaning surely would
-have been written larger if the attitude of the wife toward her
-misbegotten child had been, in face of the husband’s, a little less that
-of the dumb detached animal suffering in her simplicity. As a picture of
-such suffering, the pain of the mere dumb animal, the work is indeed
-magnificent; only its connections are poor with the higher dramatic, the
-higher poetic, complexity of things.
-
-I can only repeat that to make “The Triumph of Death” a fruitful thing
-we should have been able to measure the triumph by its frustration of
-some conceivable opportunity at least for life. There is a moment at
-which we hope for something of this kind, the moment at which the young
-man pays his visit to his family, who have grievous need of him and
-toward whom we look to see some one side or other of his fine
-sensibility turn. But nothing comes of that for the simple reason that
-the personage is already dead—that nothing exists in him but the
-established _fear_ of life. He turns his back on everything but a
-special sensation, and so completely shuts the door on the elements of
-contrast and curiosity. Death really triumphs, in the matter, but over
-the physical terror of the inordinate woman; a pang perfectly
-communicated to us, but too small a surface to bear the weight laid on
-it, which accordingly affects us as that of a pyramid turned over on its
-point. It is throughout one of D’Annunzio’s strongest marks that he
-treats “love” as a matter not to be mixed with life, in the larger sense
-of the word, at all—as a matter all of whose other connections are
-dropped; a sort of secret game that can go on only if each of the
-parties has nothing to do, even on any _other_ terms, with any one else.
-
-I have dwelt on the fact that the sentimental intention in “Il Fuoco”
-quite bewilderingly fails, in spite of the splendid accumulation of
-material. We wait to the end to see it declare itself, and then are
-left, as I have already indicated, with a mere meaningless anecdote on
-our hands. Brilliant and free, each freighted with a talent that is
-given us as incomparable, the parties to the combination depicted have,
-for their affection, the whole world before them—and not the simple
-terraqueous globe, but that still vaster sphere of the imagination in
-which, by an exceptionally happy chance, they are able to move together
-on very nearly equal terms. A tragedy is a tragedy, a comedy is a
-comedy, when the effect, in either sense, is _determined_ for us,
-determined by the interference of some element that starts a
-complication or precipitates an action. As in “Il Fuoco” nothing
-whatever interferes—or nothing certainly that need weigh with the high
-spirits represented—we ask why such precious revelations are made us
-for nothing. Admirably made in themselves they yet strike us as,
-esthetically speaking, almost cruelly wasted.
-
-This general remark would hold good, as well, of “Le Vergini,” if I
-might still linger, though its application has already been virtually
-made. Anatolia, in this tale, the most robust of the three sisters,
-declines marriage in order to devote herself to a family who have, it
-would certainly appear, signal need of her nursing. But this, though it
-sufficiently represents _her_ situation, covers as little as possible
-the ground of the hero’s own, since he, quivering intensely with the
-treasure of his “will,” inherited in a straight line from the
-_cinque-cento_, only asks to affirm his sublimated energy. The
-temptation to affirm it erotically, at least, has been great for him in
-relation to each of the young women in turn; but it is for Anatolia that
-his admiration and affection most increase in volume, and it is
-accordingly for her sake that, with the wonderful moral force behind him
-(kept as in a Florentine casket,) we most look to see him justified. He
-has a fine image—and when has the author not fine images?—to
-illustrate the constant readiness of this possession. The young woman
-says something that inspires him, whereupon, “as a sudden light playing
-over the dusky wall of a room causes the motionless sword in a trophy to
-shine, so her word drew a great flash from my suspended _volontà_. There
-was a virtue in her,” the narrator adds, “which could have produced
-portentous fruit. Her substance might have nourished a superhuman germ.”
-In spite of which it never succeeds in becoming so much as a question
-that his affection for her shall _act_, that this grand imagination in
-him shall operate, that he himself is, in virtue of such things, exactly
-the person to come to her aid and to combine with her in devotion. The
-talk about the _volontà_ is amusing much in the same way as the
-complacency of a primitive man, unacquainted with the uses of things,
-who becomes possessed by some accident of one of the toys of
-civilisation, a watch or a motor-car. And yet artistically and for our
-author the will _has_ an application, since without it he could have
-done no rare vivid work.
-
-Here at all events we put our finger, I think, on the very point at
-which his esthetic plenitude meets the misadventure that discredits it.
-We see just where it “joins on” with vulgarity. That sexual passion from
-which he extracts such admirable detached pictures insists on remaining
-for him _only_ the act of a moment, beginning and ending in itself and
-disowning any representative character. From the moment it depends on
-itself alone for its beauty it endangers extremely its distinction, so
-precarious at the best. For what it represents, precisely, is it
-poetically interesting; it finds its extension and consummation only in
-the rest of life. Shut out from the rest of life, shut out from all
-fruition and assimilation, it has no more dignity than—to use a homely
-image—the boots and shoes that we see, in the corridors of promiscuous
-hotels, standing, often in double pairs, at the doors of rooms. Detached
-and unassociated these clusters of objects present, however obtruded, no
-importance. What the participants do with their agitation, in short, or
-even what it does with them, _that_ is the stuff of poetry, and it is
-never really interesting save when something finely contributive in
-themselves makes it so. It is this absence of anything finely
-contributive in themselves, on the part of the various couples here
-concerned, that is the open door to the trivial. I have said, with all
-appreciation, that they present the great “relation,” for intimacy, as
-we shall nowhere else find it presented; but to see it related, in its
-own turn, to nothing in the heaven above or the earth beneath, this
-undermines, we definitely learn, the charm of that achievement.
-
-And so it is, strangely, that our esthetic “case” enlightens us. The
-only question is whether it be the only case of the kind conceivable.
-May we not suppose another with the elements differently mixed? May we
-not in imagination alter the proportions within or the influences
-without, and look with cheerfulness for a different issue? _Need_ the
-esthetic adventure, in a word, organised for real discovery, give us no
-more comforting news of success? Are there not, so to speak, finer
-possible combinations? are there not safeguards against futility that in
-the example before us were but too presumably absent? To which the sole
-answer probably is that no man can say. It is Signor D’Annunzio alone
-who has really sailed the sea and brought back the booty. The actual
-case is so good that all the potential fade beside it. It has for it
-that it exists, and that, whether for the strength of the original
-outfit or for the weight of the final testimony, it could scarce
-thinkably be bettered.
-
-
-
-
- MATILDE SERAO
-
-
-Few attentive readers, I take it, would deny that the English
-novelist—from whom, in this case, there happens to be even less
-occasion than usual for distinguishing the American—testifies in his
-art much more than his foreign comrade, from whatever quarter, to the
-rigour of convention. There are whole sides of life about which he has
-as little to say as possible, about which he observes indeed in general
-a silence that has visibly ended by becoming for the foreign comrade his
-great characteristic. He strikes the spectator as having with a
-misplaced humility consented once for all to be admonished as to what he
-shall or shall not “mention”—and to be admonished in especial by an
-authority altogether indefinite. He subscribes, when his turn comes
-round, to an agreement in the drawing-up of which he has had no hand; he
-sits down to his task with a certain received canon of the “proper”
-before his eyes. The critic I am supposing reproaches him, naturally, in
-this critic’s way, with a marked failure ever to challenge, much less to
-analyse, that conception; with having never, as would appear, so much as
-put to himself in regard to most of the matters of which he makes his
-mystery the simple question “Proper to what?” How can any authority,
-even the most embodied, asks the exponent of other views, decide for us
-in advance what shall in any case be proper—with the consequent
-implication of impropriety—to our given subject?
-
-The English novelist would, I imagine, even sometimes be led on to
-finding that he has practically had to meet such an overhauling by a
-further admission, though an admission still tacit and showing him not a
-little shy of the whole discussion—principles and formulas being in
-general, as we know, but little his affair. Would he not, if off his
-guard, have been in peril of lapsing into the doctrine—suicidal when
-reflected upon—that there may be also an _a priori_ rule, a “Thou shalt
-not,” if not a “Thou shalt,” as to treatable subjects themselves? Then
-it would be that his alien foe might fairly revel in the sense of having
-him in a corner, laughing an evil laugh to hear him plead in explanation
-that it is exactly _most_ as to the subject to be treated that he feels
-the need laid upon him to conform. What is he to do when he has an idea
-to embody, we might suspect him rashly to inquire, unless, frankly to
-ask himself in the first place of _all_ if it be proper? Not indeed—we
-catch the reservation—that he is consciously often accessible to ideas
-for which that virtue may not be claimed. Naturally, however, still,
-such a plea only brings forth for his interlocutor a repetition of the
-original appeal: “Proper to what?” There is only one propriety the
-painter of life can ask of his morsel of material: Is it, or is it not,
-of the stuff of life? So, in simplified terms at any rate, I seem to
-hear the interchange; to which I need listen no longer than thus to have
-derived from it a word of support for my position. The question of our
-possible rejoinder to the scorn of societies otherwise affected I must
-leave for some other connection. The point is—if point I may expect to
-obtain any countenance to its being called—that, in spite of our great
-Dickens and, in a minor degree, of our great George Eliot, the
-limitations of our practice are elsewhere than among ourselves pretty
-well held to have put us out of court. The thing least conceded to us
-moreover is that we handle at all frankly—if we put forward such a
-claim—even our own subject-matter or in other words our own life. “Your
-own is all we want of you, all we should like to see. But that your
-system really touches your own is exactly what we deny. Never, never!”
-For what it really comes to is that practically we, of all people in the
-world, are accused of a system. Call this system a conspiracy of
-silence, and the whole charge is upon us.
-
-The fact of the silence, whether or no of the system, is fortunately all
-that at present concerns us. Did this not happen to be the case nothing
-could be more interesting, I think, than to follow somewhat further
-several of the bearings of the matter, which would bring us face to face
-with some wonderful and, I hasten to add, by no means doubtless merely
-disconcerting truths about ourselves. It has been given us to read a
-good deal, in these latter days, about _l’âme Française_ and _l’âme
-Russe_—and with the result, in all probability, of our being rather
-less than more penetrated with the desire, in emulation of these
-opportunities, to deliver ourselves upon the English or the American
-soul. There would appear to be nothing we are totally conscious of that
-we are less eager to reduce to the mere expressible, to hand over to
-publicity, current journalistic prose aiding, than either of these fine
-essence; and yet incontestably there are neighbourhoods in which we feel
-ourselves within scent and reach of them by something of the same sense
-that in thick forests serves the hunter of great game. He may not quite
-touch the precious presence, but he knows when it is near. So somehow we
-know that the “Anglo-Saxon” soul, the modern at least, is not far off
-when we frankly consider the practice of our race—comparatively recent
-though it be—in taking for granted the “innocence” of literature.
-
-Our perhaps a trifle witless way of expressing our conception of this
-innocence and our desire for it is, characteristically enough, by taking
-refuge in another vagueness, by invoking the allowances that we
-understand works of imagination and of criticism to make to the “young.”
-I know not whether it has ever officially been stated for us that, given
-the young, given literature, and given, under stress, the need of
-sacrificing one or the other party, it is not certainly by our sense of
-“style” that our choice would be determined: no great art in the reading
-of signs and symptoms is at all events required for a view of our
-probable instinct in such a case. That instinct, however, has too many
-deep things in it to be briefly or easily disposed of, and there would
-be no greater mistake than to attempt too simple an account of it. The
-account most likely to be given by a completely detached critic would be
-that we are as a race better equipped for action than for thought, and
-that to let the art of expression go by the board is through that very
-fact to point to the limits of what we mostly have to express. If we
-accept such a report we shall do so, I think, rather from a strong than
-from a weak sense of what may easily be made of it; but I glance at
-these things only as at objects almost too flooded with light, and come
-back after my parenthesis to what more immediately concerns me: the
-plain reflection that, if the elements of compromise—compromise with
-fifty of the “facts of life”—be the common feature of the novel of
-English speech, so it is mainly indebted for this character to the sex
-comparatively without a feeling for logic.
-
-Nothing is at any rate _a priori_ more natural than to trace a
-connection between our general mildness, as it may conveniently be
-called, and the fact that we are likewise so generally feminine. Is the
-English novel “proper” because it is so much written by women, or is it
-only so much written by women because its propriety has been so firmly
-established? The intimate relation is on either determination all that
-is here pertinent—effect and cause may be left to themselves. What is
-further pertinent, as happens, is that on a near view the relation is
-not constant; by which I mean that, though the ladies are always
-productive, the fashion of mildness is not always the same. Convention
-in short has its ups and downs, and these votaries have of late years, I
-think, been as often seen weltering in the hollow of the wave as borne
-aloft on its crest. Some of them may even be held positively to have
-distinguished themselves most—whether or no in veils of anonymity—on
-the occasion of the downward movement; making us really wonder if their
-number might not fairly, under any steadier force of such a movement, be
-counted on to increase. All sorts of inquiries are suggested in truth by
-the sight. “Emancipations” are in the air, and may it not possibly be
-that we shall see two of the most striking coincide? If convention has,
-to the tune to which I just invited an ear, blighted our fiction, what
-shall we say of its admitted, its still more deprecated and in so many
-quarters even deplored, effect upon the great body under the special
-patronage of which the “output” has none the less insisted on becoming
-incomparably copious? Since the general inaptitude of women appears by
-this time triumphantly to have been proved an assumption particularly
-hollow, despoiled more and more each day of the last tatters of its
-credit, why should not the new force thus liberated really, in the
-connection I indicate, give something of its measure?
-
-It is at any rate keeping within bounds to say that the novel will
-surely not become less free in proportion as the condition of women
-becomes more easy. It is more or less in deference to their constant
-concern with it that we have seen it, among ourselves, pick its steps so
-carefully; but there are indications that the future may reserve us the
-surprise of having to thank the very class whose supposed sensibilities
-have most oppressed us for teaching it not only a longer stride, but a
-healthy indifference to an occasional splash. It is for instance only of
-quite recent years that the type of fiction commonly identified as the
-“sexual” has achieved—for purposes of reference, so far as notices in
-newspapers may be held to constitute reference—a salience variously
-estimated. Now therefore, though it is early to say that all
-“imaginative work” from the female hand is subject to this description,
-there is assuredly none markedly so subject that is _not_ from the
-female hand. The female mind has in fact throughout the competition
-carried off the prize in the familiar game, known to us all from
-childhood’s hour, of playing at “grown-up;” finding thus its
-opportunity, with no small acuteness, in the more and more marked
-tendency of the mind of the other gender to revert, alike in the grave
-and the gay, to those simplicities which there would appear to be some
-warrant for pronouncing puerile. It is the ladies in a word who have
-lately done most to remind us of man’s relations with himself, that is
-with woman. His relations with the pistol, the pirate, the police, the
-wild and the tame beast—are not these prevailingly what the gentlemen
-have given us? And does not the difference sufficiently point my moral?
-
-Let me, however, not seem to have gone too far afield to seek it; for my
-reflections—general perhaps to excess—closely connect themselves with
-a subject to which they are quite ready to yield in interest. I have
-lately been giving a happy extension to an old acquaintance, dating from
-early in the eighties, with the striking romantic work of Matilde Serao;
-a writer who, apart from other successes, has the excellent effect, the
-sign of the stronger few, that the end of her story is, for her reader,
-never the end of her work. On thus recently returning to her I have
-found in her something much more to my present purpose than the mere
-appearance of power and ease. If she is interesting largely because she
-is, in the light of her free, her extraordinary Neapolitan temperament,
-a vivid painter and a rich register of sensations and impressions, she
-is still more so as an exceptionally compact and suggestive _case_, a
-case exempt from interference and presenting itself with a beautiful
-unconsciousness. She has had the good fortune—if it be, after all, not
-the ill—to develop in an air in which convention, in our invidious
-sense, has had as little to say to her as possible; and she is
-accordingly a precious example of the possibilities of free exercise.
-The questions of the proper and the improper are comfortably far from
-her; and though more than in the line of her sisters of English speech
-she may have to reckon with prescriptions as to form—a burden at which
-in truth she snaps her fingers with an approach to impertinence—she
-moves in a circle practically void of all pre-judgment as to subject and
-matter. Conscious enough, doubtless, of a literary law to be offended,
-and caring little in fact, I repeat—for it is her weakness—what wrong
-it may suffer, she has not even the agreeable incentive of an ability to
-calculate the “moral” shocks she may administer.
-
-Practically chartered then she is further happy—since they both
-minister to ease—in two substantial facts: she is a daughter of the
-veritable south and a product of the contemporary newspaper. A
-Neapolitan by birth and a journalist by circumstance, by marriage and in
-some degree doubtless also by inclination, she strikes for us from the
-first the note of facility and spontaneity and the note of initiation
-and practice. Concerned, through her husband, in the conduct of a
-Neapolitan morning paper, of a large circulation and a radical colour,
-she has, as I infer, produced her novels and tales mainly in such
-snatches of time and of inspiration as have been left her by urgent
-day-to-day journalism. They distinctly betray, throughout, the
-conditions of their birth—so little are they to the literary sense
-children of maturity and leisure. On the question of style in a foreign
-writer it takes many contributive lights to make us sure of our ground;
-but I feel myself on the safe side in conceiving that this lady, full of
-perception and vibration, can not only not figure as a purist, but must
-be supposed throughout, in spite of an explosive eloquence, to pretend
-but little to distinction of form: which for an Italian is a much graver
-predicament than for one of our shapeless selves. That, however, would
-perhaps pass for a small quarrel with a writer, or rather with a talker
-and—for it is what one must most insist on—a _feeler_, of Matilde
-Serao’s remarkable spontaneity. Her Neapolitan nature is by itself a
-value, to whatever literary lapses it may minister. A torch kindled at
-that flame can be but freely waved, and our author’s arm has a fine
-action. Loud, loquacious, abundant, natural, happy, with luxurious
-insistences on the handsome, the costly and the fleshly, the fine
-persons and fine clothes of her characters, their satin and velvet,
-their bracelets, rings, white waistcoats, general appointments and
-bedroom furniture, with almost as many repetitions and as free a tongue,
-in short, as Juliet’s nurse, she reflects at every turn the wonderful
-mixture that surrounds her—the beauty, the misery, the history, the
-light and noise and dust, the prolonged paganism and the renewed
-reactions, the great style of the distant and the past and the generally
-compromised state of the immediate and the near. These things were all
-in the germ for the reader of her earlier novels—they have since only
-gathered volume and assurance—so that I well remember the impression
-made on me, when the book was new (my copy, apparently of the first
-edition, bears the date of 1885), by the rare energy, the immense
-_disinvoltura_, of “La Conquista di Roma.” This was my introduction to
-the author, in consequence of which I immediately read “Fantasia” and
-the “Vita e Avventure di Riccardo Joanna,” with some smaller pieces;
-after which, interrupted but not detached, I knew nothing more till, in
-the course of time, I renewed acquaintance on the ground of “Il Paese di
-Cuccagna,” then, however, no longer in its first freshness. That work
-set me straightway to reading everything else I could lay hands on, and
-I think therefore that, save “Il Ventre di Napoli” and two or three
-quite recent productions that I have not met, there is nothing from our
-author that I have not mastered. Such as I find her in everything, she
-remains above all things the signal “case.”
-
-If, however, she appears, as I am bound to note, not to have kept the
-full promise of her early energy, this is because it has suited her to
-move less in the direction—where so much might have awaited her—of
-“Riccardo Joanna” and “La Conquista” than in that, on the whole less
-happily symptomatic, of “Fantasia.” “Fantasia” is, before all else, a
-study of “passion,” or rather of the intenser form of that mystery which
-the Italian _passione_ better expresses; and I hasten to confess that
-had she not so marked herself an exponent of this specialty I should
-probably not now be writing of her. I conceive none the less that it
-would have been open to her to favour more that side of her great talent
-of which the so powerful “Paese di Cuccagna” is the strongest example.
-There is by good fortune in this large miscellaneous picture of
-Neapolitan life no _passione_ save that of the observer curiously and
-pityingly intent upon it, that of the artist resolute at any cost to
-embrace and reproduce it. Admirably, easily, convincingly objective, the
-thing is a sustained panorama, a chronicle of manners finding its unity
-in one recurrent note, that of the consuming lottery-hunger which
-constitutes the joy, the curse, the obsession and the ruin, according to
-Matilde Serao, of her fellow-citizens. Her works are thus divided by a
-somewhat unequal line, those on one side of which the critic is tempted
-to accuse her of having not altogether happily sacrificed to those on
-the other. When she for the most part invokes under the name of
-_passione_ the main explanation of the mortal lot it is to follow the
-windings of this clue in the upper walks of life, to haunt the
-aristocracy, to embrace the world of fashion, to overflow with clothes,
-jewels and promiscuous intercourse, all to the proportionate eclipse of
-her strong, full vision of the more usually vulgar. “La Conquista” is
-the story of a young deputy who comes up to the Chamber, from the
-Basilicata, with a touching candour of ambition and a perilous ignorance
-of the pitfalls of capitals. His dream is to conquer Rome, but it is by
-Rome naturally that he is conquered. He alights on his political twig
-with a flutter of wings, but has reckoned in his innocence without the
-strong taste in so many quarters for sport; and it is with a charge of
-shot in his breast and a drag of his pinions in the dust that he takes
-his way back to mediocrity, obscurity and the parent nest. It is from
-the ladies—as was indeed even from the first to be expected with
-Serao—that he receives his doom; _passione_ is in these pages already
-at the door and soon arrives; _passione_ rapidly enough passes its
-sponge over everything not itself.
-
-In “Cuore Infermo,” in “Addio Amore,” in “Il Castigo,” in the two
-volumes of “Gli Amanti” and in various other pieces this effacement is
-so complete that we see the persons concerned but in the one relation,
-with every other circumstance, those of concurrent profession,
-possession, occupation, connection, interest, amusement, kinship,
-utterly superseded and obscured. Save in the three or four books I have
-named as exceptional the figures evoked are literally professional
-lovers, “available,” as the term is, for _passione_ alone: which is the
-striking sign, as I shall presently indicate, of the extremity in which
-her enjoyment of the freedom we so often have to envy has strangely
-landed our author. “Riccardo Joanna,” which, like “La Conquista,” has
-force, humour and charm, sounding with freshness the note of the general
-life, is such a picture of certain of the sordid conditions of Italian
-journalism as, if I may trust my memory without re-perusal, sharply and
-pathetically imposes itself. I recall “Fantasia” on the other hand as
-wholly _passione_—all concentration and erotics, the latter practised
-in this instance, as in “Addio Amore,” with extreme cruelty to the
-“good” heroine, the person innocent and sacrificed; yet this volume too
-contributes its part in the retrospect to that appearance of marked
-discipleship which was one of the original sources of my interest.
-Nothing could more have engaged one’s attention in these matters at that
-moment than the fresh phenomenon of a lady-novelist so confessedly
-flushed with the influence of Émile Zola. Passing among ourselves as a
-lurid warning even to workers of his own sex, he drew a new grace from
-the candid homage—all implied and indirect, but, as I refigure my
-impression, not the less unmistakable—of that half of humanity which,
-let alone attempting to follow in his footsteps, was not supposed even
-to turn his pages. There is an episode in “Fantasia”—a scene in which
-the relations of the hero and the “bad” heroine are strangely
-consolidated by a visit together to a cattle-show—in which the courage
-of the pupil has but little to envy the breadth of the master. The hot
-day and hot hour, the heavy air and the strong smells, the great and
-small beasts, the action on the sensibilities of the lady and the
-gentleman of the rich animal life, the collapse indeed of the lady in
-the presence of the prize bull—all these are touches for which luckily
-our author has the warrant of a greater name. The general picture, in
-“Fantasia,” of the agricultural exhibition at Caserta is in fact not the
-worse at any point for a noticeable echo of more than one French model.
-Would the author have found so full an occasion in it without a fond
-memory of the immortal Cornices of “Madame Bovary”?
-
-These, however, are minor questions—pertinent only as connecting
-themselves with the more serious side of her talent. We may rejoice in
-such a specimen of it as is offered by the too brief series of episodes
-of “The Romance of the Maiden.” These things, dealing mainly with the
-small miseries of small folk, have a palpable truth, and it is striking
-that, to put the matter simply, Madame Serao is at her best almost in
-direct proportion as her characters are poor. By poor I mean literally
-the reverse of rich; for directly they _are_ rich and begin, as the
-phrase is, to keep their carriage, her taste totters and lapses, her
-style approximates at moments to that of the ladies who do the fashions
-and the letters from the watering-places in the society papers. She has
-acutely and she renders with excellent breadth the sense of benighted
-lives, of small sordid troubles, of the general unhappy youthful (on the
-part of her own sex at least) and the general more or less starved
-plebeian consciousness. The degree to which it testifies to all this is
-one of the great beauties of “Il Paese di Cuccagna,” even if the moral
-of that dire picture be simply that in respect to the gaming-passion,
-the madness of “numbers,” no walk of life at Naples is too high or too
-low to be ravaged. Beautiful, in “Il Romanzo della Fanciulla,” are the
-exhibitions of grinding girl-life in the big telegraph office and in the
-State normal school. The gem of “Gli Amanti” is the tiny tale of
-“Vicenzella,” a masterpiece in twenty small pages—the vision of what
-three or four afternoon hours could contain for a slip of a creature of
-the Naples waterside, a poor girl who picks up a living by the cookery
-and sale, on the edge of a parapet, of various rank dismembered polyps
-of the southern sea, and who is from stage to stage despoiled of the
-pence she patiently pockets for them by the successive small emissaries
-of her artful, absent lover, constantly faithless, occupied, not too far
-off, in regaling a lady of his temporary preference, and proportionately
-clamorous for fresh remittances. The moment and the picture are but a
-scrap, yet they are as large as life.
-
-“Canituccia,” in “Piccole Anime,” may happily pair with “Vicenzella,”
-Canituccia being simply the humble rustic guardian, in field and
-wood—scarce more than a child—of the still more tender Ciccotto; and
-Ciccotto being a fine young pink-and-white pig, an animal of endowments
-that lead, after he has had time to render infatuated his otherwise
-quite solitary and joyless friend, to his premature conversion into
-bacon. She assists, helplessly silent, staring, almost idiotic, from a
-corner of the cabin-yard, by night and lamplight, in the presence of
-gleaming knives and steaming pots and bloody tubs, at the sacrifice that
-deprives her of all company, and nothing can exceed the homely truth of
-the touch that finally rounds off the scene and for which I must refer
-my reader to the volume. Let me further not fail to register my
-admiration for the curious cluster of scenes that, in “Il Romanzo,”
-bears the title of “Nella Lava.” Here frankly, I take it, we have the
-real principle of “naturalism”—a consistent presentment of the famous
-“slice of life.” The slices given us—slices of shabby hungry maidenhood
-in small cockney circles—are but sketchily related to the volcanic
-catastrophe we hear rumbling behind them, the undertone of all the noise
-of Naples; but they have the real artistic importance of showing us how
-little “story” is required to hold us when we get, before the object
-evoked and in the air created, the impression of the real thing.
-Whatever thing—interesting inference—has but effectively to _be_ real
-to constitute in itself story enough. There is no story without it, none
-that is not rank humbug; whereas with it the very desert blooms.
-
-This last-named phenomenon takes place, I fear, but in a minor degree in
-such of our author’s productions as “Cuore Infermo,” “Addio Amore,” “Il
-Castigo” and the double series of “Gli Amanti”; and for a reason that I
-the more promptly indicate as it not only explains, I think, the
-comparative inanity of these pictures, but does more than anything else
-to reward our inquiry. The very first reflection suggested by Serao’s
-novels of “passion” is that they perfectly meet our speculation as to
-what might with a little time become of our own fiction were our
-particular convention suspended. We see so what, on its actual lines,
-does, what _has_, become of it, and are so sated with the vision that a
-little consideration of the latent other chance will surely but refresh
-us. The effect then, we discover, of the undertaking to give _passione_
-its whole place is that by the operation of a singular law no place
-speedily appears to be left for anything else; and the effect of that in
-turn is greatly to modify, first, the truth of things, and second, with
-small delay, what may be left them of their beauty. We find ourselves
-wondering after a little whether there may not really be more truth in
-the world misrepresented according to our own familiar fashion than in
-such a world as that of Madame Serao’s exuberant victims of Venus. It is
-not only that if Venus herself is notoriously beautiful her altar, as
-happens, is by no means always proportionately august; it is also that
-we draw, in the long run, small comfort from the virtual suppression, by
-any painter, of whatever skill—and the skill of this particular one
-fails to rise to the height—of every relation in life but that over
-which Venus presides. In “Fior di Passione” and the several others of a
-like connection that I have named the suppression is really complete;
-the common humanities and sociabilities are wholly absent from the
-picture.
-
-The effect of this is extraordinarily to falsify the total show and to
-present the particular affair—the intimacy in hand for the moment,
-though the moment be but brief—as taking place in a strange false
-perspective, a denuded desert which experience surely fails ever to give
-us the like of and the action of which on the faculty of observation in
-the painter is anything but favourable. It strikes at the root, in the
-impression producible and produced, of discrimination and irony, of
-humour and pathos. Our present author would doubtless contend on behalf
-of the works I have mentioned that pathos at least does abound in
-them—the particular bitterness, the inevitable despair that she again
-and again shows to be the final savour of the cup of _passione_. It
-would be quite open to her to urge—and she would be sure to do so with
-eloquence—that if we pusillanimously pant for a moral, no moral really
-can have the force of her almost inveterate evocation of the absolute
-ravage of Venus, the dry desolation that in nine cases out of ten Venus
-may be perceived to leave behind her. That, however, but half meets our
-argument—which bears by no means merely on the desolation behind, but
-on the desolation before, beside and generally roundabout. It is not in
-short at all the moral but the fable itself that in the exclusively
-sexual light breaks down and fails us. Love, at Naples and in Rome, as
-Madame Serao exhibits it, is simply unaccompanied with any interplay of
-our usual conditions—with affection, with duration, with circumstances
-or consequences, with friends, enemies, husbands, wives, children,
-parents, interests, occupations, the manifestation of tastes. Who are
-these people, we presently ask ourselves, who love indeed with
-fury—though for the most part with astonishing brevity—but who are so
-without any suggested situation in life that they can only strike us as
-loving for nothing and in the void, to no gain of experience and no
-effect of a felt medium or a breathed air. We know them by nothing but
-their convulsions and spasms, and we feel once again that it is not the
-passion of hero and heroine that gives, that can ever give, the heroine
-and the hero interest, but that it is they themselves, with the ground
-they stand on and the objects enclosing them, who give interest to their
-passion. This element touches us just in proportion as we see it mixed
-with other things, with all the things with which it has to reckon and
-struggle. There is moreover another reflection with which the pathetic
-in this connection has to count, even though it undermine not a little
-the whole of the tragic effect of the agitations of _passione_. Is it,
-ruthlessly speaking, certain that the effect most consonant, for the
-spectator, with truth is half as tragic as it is something else? Should
-not the moral be sought in the very different quarter where the muse of
-comedy rather would have the last word? The ambiguity and the difficulty
-are, it strikes me, of a new growth, and spring from a perverse desire
-on the part of the erotic novelist to secure for the adventures he
-depicts a dignity that is not of the essence. To compass this dignity he
-has to cultivate the high pitch and beat the big drum, but when he has
-done so he has given everything the wrong accent and the whole the wrong
-extravagance. Why see it all, we ask him, as an extravagance of the
-solemn and the strained? Why make _such_ an erotic a matter of tears and
-imprecations, and by so doing render so poor a service both to pleasure
-and to pain? Since by your own free showing it is pre-eminently a matter
-of folly, let us at least have folly with her bells, or when these
-must—since they must—sound knells and dirges, leave them only to the
-light hand of the lyric poet, who turns them at the worst to music.
-Matilde Serao is in this connection constantly lugubrious; even from the
-little so-called pastels of “Gli Amanti” she manages, with an ingenuity
-worthy of a better cause, to expunge the note of gaiety.
-
-This dismal _parti pris_ indeed will inevitably, it is to be feared,
-when all the emancipations shall have said their last word, be that of
-the ladies. Yet perhaps too, whatever such a probability, the tone
-scarce signifies—in the presence, I mean, of the fundamental mistake
-from which the author before us warns us off. That mistake, we gather
-from her warning, would be to encourage, after all, any considerable
-lowering of the level of our precious fund of reserve. When we come to
-analyse we arrive at a final impression of what we pay, as lovers of the
-novel, for such a chartered state as we have here a glimpse of; and we
-find it to be an exposure, on the intervention at least of such a
-literary temperament as the one before us, to a new kind of vulgarity.
-We have surely as it is kinds enough. The absence of the convention
-throws the writer back on tact, taste, delicacy, discretion, subjecting
-these principles to a strain from which the happy office of its presence
-is, in a considerable degree and for performers of the mere usual
-endowment, to relieve him. When we have not a very fine sense the
-convention appears in a manner to have it on our behalf. And how
-frequent to-day, in the hurrying herd of brothers and sisters of the
-pen, _is_ a fine sense—of _any_ side of their affair? Do we not
-approach the truth in divining that only an eminent individual here and
-there may be trusted for it? Here—for the case is our very lesson—is
-this robust and wonderful Serao who is yet not to be trusted at all.
-Does not the dim religious light with which we surround its shrine do
-more, on the whole, for the poetry of _passione_ than the flood of
-flaring gas with which, in her pages, and at her touch, it is drenched?
-Does it not shrink, as a subject under treatment, from such expert
-recognitions and easy discussions, from its so pitiless reduction to the
-category of the familiar? It issues from the ordeal with the aspect with
-which it might escape from a noisy family party or alight from a crowded
-omnibus. It is at the category of the familiar that vulgarity begins.
-There may be a cool virtue therefore even for “art,” and an appreciable
-distinction even for truth, in the grace of hanging back and the choice
-of standing off, in that shade of the superficial which we best defend
-by simply practising it in season. A feeling revives at last, after a
-timed intermission, that we may not immediately be quite able, quite
-assured enough, to name, but which, gradually clearing up, soon defines
-itself almost as a yearning. We turn round in obedience to
-it—unmistakably we turn round again to the opposite pole, and there
-before we know it have positively laid a clinging hand on dear old Jane
-Austen.
-
-
-
-
- THE NEW NOVEL
- 1914
-
-
-We feel it not to be the paradox it may at the first blush seem that the
-state of the novel in England at the present time is virtually very much
-the state of criticism itself; and this moreover, at the risk perhaps of
-some added appearance of perverse remark, by the very reason that we see
-criticism so much in abeyance. So far as we miss it altogether how and
-why does its “state” matter, and why and how can it or should it, as an
-absent force, enjoy a relation to that constant renewal of our supply of
-fiction which is a present one so far as a force at all? The relation is
-this, in the fewest words: that no equal outpouring of matter into the
-mould of literature, or what roughly passes for such, has been noted to
-live its life and maintain its flood, its level at least of quantity and
-mass, in such free and easy independence of critical attention. It
-constitutes a condition and a perversity on the part of this element to
-remain irresponsive before an appeal so vociferous at least and so
-incessant; therefore how can such a neglect of occasions, so careless a
-habit in spite of marked openings, be better described than as
-responsibility declined in the face of disorder? The disorder thus
-determines the relation, from the moment we feel that it might be less,
-that it might be different, that something in the way of an order even
-might be disengaged from it and replace it; from the moment in fact that
-the low critical pitch is logically _reflected_ in the poetic or, less
-pedantically speaking, the improvisational at large. The effect, if not
-the prime office, of criticism is to make our absorption and our
-enjoyment of the things that feed the mind as aware of itself as
-possible, since that awareness quickens the mental demand, which thus in
-turn wanders further and further for pasture. This action on the part of
-the mind practically amounts to a reaching out for the reasons of its
-interest, as only by its so ascertaining them can the interest grow more
-various. This is the very education of our imaginative life; and thanks
-to it the general question of how to refine, and of why certain things
-refine more and most, on that happy consciousness, becomes for us of the
-last importance. Then we cease to be only instinctive and at the mercy
-of chance, feeling that we can ourselves take a hand in our satisfaction
-and provide for it, making ourselves safe against dearth, and through
-the door opened by that perception criticism enters, if we but give it
-time, as a flood, the great flood of awareness; so maintaining its high
-tide unless through some lapse of our sense for it, some flat reversion
-to instinct alone, we block up the ingress and sit in stale and
-shrinking waters. Stupidity may arrest any current and fatuity transcend
-any privilege. The comfort of those who at such a time consider the
-scene may be a little, with _their_ curiosity still insistent, to survey
-its platitude and record the exhibited shrinkage; which amounts to the
-attempt to understand how stupidity could so have prevailed. We take it
-here that the answer to that inquiry can but be ever the same. The flood
-of “production” has so inordinately exceeded the activity of control
-that this latter anxious agent, first alarmed but then indifferent, has
-been forced backward out of the gate, leaving the contents of the
-reservoir to boil and evaporate. It is verily on the wrong side of the
-gate that we just now seem to see criticism stand, for never was the
-reservoir so bubblingly and noisily full, at least by the superficial
-measure of life. We have caught the odd accident in the very fact of its
-occurrence; we have seen the torrent swell by extravagant cheap
-contribution, the huge increase of affluents turbid and unstrained.
-Beyond number are the ways in which the democratic example, once
-gathering momentum, sets its mark on societies and seasons that stand in
-its course. Nowhere is that example written larger, to our perception,
-than in “the new novel”; though this, we hasten to add, not in the least
-because prose fiction now occupies itself as never before with the
-“condition of the people,” a fact quite irrelevant to the nature it has
-taken on, but because that nature amounts exactly to the complacent
-declaration of a common literary level, a repudiation the most operative
-even if the least reasoned of the idea of differences, the virtual law,
-as we may call it, of sorts and kinds, the values of individual quality
-and weight in the presence of undiscriminated quantity and
-rough-and-tumble “output”—these attestations made, we naturally mean,
-in the air of composition and on the esthetic plane, if such terms have
-still an attenuated reference to the case before us. With which, if we
-be asked, in the light of that generalisation, whether we impute to the
-novel, or in other words the novelist, _all_ the stupidity against which
-the spirit of appreciation spends itself in vain, we reply perforce that
-we stop short of that, it being too obvious that of an exhibition so
-sterilised, so void of all force and suggestion, there would be nothing
-whatever to say. Our contention is exactly that, in spite of all vain
-aspects, it does yet present an interest, and that here and there seem
-written on it likelihoods of its presenting still more—always on
-condition of its consenting to that more intimate education which is
-precisely what democratised movements look most askance at. It strikes
-us as not too much to say that our actual view of the practice of
-fiction gives as just a measure as could be desired of the general, the
-incurable democratic suspicion of the selective and comparative
-principles in almost any application, and the tendency therewith to
-regard, and above all to treat, one manner of book, like one manner of
-person, as, if not absolutely as good as another, yet good enough for
-any democratic use. Criticism reflects contentiously on that appearance,
-though it be an appearance in which comfort for the book and the manner
-much resides; so that the idea prompting these remarks of our own is
-that the comfort may be deeply fallacious.
-
-
- I
-
-Still not to let go of our imputation of interest to some part at least
-of what is happening in the world of production in this kind, we may say
-that non-selective and non-comparative practice appears bent on showing
-us all it can do and how far or to what appointed shores, what waiting
-havens and inviting inlets, the current that is mainly made a current by
-looseness, by want of observable direction, shall succeed in carrying
-it. We respond to any sign of an intelligent view or even of a lively
-instinct—which is why we give the appearance so noted the benefit of
-every presumption as to its life and health. It may be that the dim
-sense is livelier than the presentable reason, but even that is no
-graceless fact for us, especially when the keenness of young curiosity
-and energy is betrayed in its pace, and betrayed, for that matter, in no
-small abundance and variety. The new or at least the young novel is up
-and doing, clearly, with the best faith and the highest spirits in the
-world; if we but extend a little our measure of youth indeed, as we are
-happily more and more disposed to, we may speak of it as already
-chin-deep in trophies. The men who are not so young as the youngest were
-but the other day very little older than these: Mr. Joseph Conrad, Mr.
-Maurice Hewlett and Mr. Galsworthy, Mr. H. G. Wells and Mr. Arnold
-Bennett, have not quite perhaps the early bloom of Mr. Hugh Walpole, Mr.
-Gilbert Cannan, Mr. Compton Mackenzie and Mr. D. H. Lawrence, but the
-spring unrelaxed is still, to our perception, in their step, and we see
-two or three of them sufficiently related to the still newer generation
-in a quasi-parental way to make our whole enumeration as illustrational
-as we need it. Mr. Wells and Mr. Arnold Bennett have their strongest
-mark, the aspect by which we may most classify them, in common—even if
-their three named contemporaries are doubtless most interesting in one
-of the connections we are not now seeking to make. The author of
-“Tono-Bungay” and of “The New Machiavelli,” and the author of “The Old
-Wives’ Tale” and of “Clayhanger,” have practically launched the boat in
-which we admire the fresh play of oar of the author of “The Duchess of
-Wrexe,” and the documented aspect exhibited successively by “Round the
-Corner,” by “Carnival” and “Sinister Street,” and even by “Sons and
-Lovers” (however much we may find Mr. Lawrence, we confess, hang in the
-dusty rear). We shall explain in a moment what we mean by this
-designation of the element that these best of the younger men strike us
-as more particularly sharing, our point being provisionally that Mr.
-Wells and Mr. Arnold Bennett (speaking now only of them) began some time
-back to show us, and to show sundry emulous and generous young spirits
-then in the act of more or less waking up, what the state in question
-might amount to. We confound the author of “Tono-Bungay” and the author
-of “Clayhanger” in this imputation for the simple reason that with the
-sharpest differences of character and range they yet come together under
-our so convenient measure of value by _saturation_. This is the greatest
-value, to our sense, in either of them, their other values, even when at
-the highest, not being quite in proportion to it; and as to be saturated
-is to be documented, to be able even on occasion to prove quite enviably
-and potently so, they are alike in the authority that creates emulation.
-It little signifies that Mr. Wells’s documented or saturated state in
-respect to a particular matter in hand is but one of the faces of his
-_generally_ informed condition, of his extraordinary mass of gathered
-and assimilated knowledge, a miscellaneous collection more remarkable
-surely than any teller of “mere” tales, with the possible exception of
-Balzac, has been able to draw upon, whereas Mr. Arnold Bennett’s
-corresponding provision affects us as, though singularly copious,
-special, exclusive and artfully economic. This distinction avails
-nothing against that happy fact of the handiest possession by Mr. Wells
-of immeasurably more concrete material, amenable for straight and vivid
-reference, convertible into apt illustration, than we should know where
-to look for other examples of. The author of “The New Machiavelli”
-knows, somehow, to our mystified and dazzled apprehension, because he
-writes and because that act constitutes for him the need, on occasion a
-most desperate, of absorbing knowledge at the pores; the chronicler of
-the Five Towns writing so much more discernibly, on the other hand,
-because he knows, and conscious of no need more desperate than that
-particular circle of civilisation may satisfy.
-
-Our argument is that each is ideally immersed in his own body of
-reference, and that immersion in any such degree and to the effect of
-any such variety, intensity and plausibility is really among us a new
-feature of the novelist’s range of resource. We have seen him, we have
-even seen _her_, otherwise auspiciously endowed, seen him observant,
-impassioned, inspired, and in virtue of these things often very
-charming, very interesting, very triumphant, visibly qualified for the
-highest distinction before the fact and visibly crowned by the same
-after it—we have seen him with a great imagination and a great sense of
-life, we have seen him even with a great sense of expression and a
-considerable sense of art: so that we have only to reascend the stream
-of our comparatively recent literature to meet him serene and immortal,
-brow-bound with the bay and erect on his particular pedestal. We have
-only to do that, but have only also, while we do it, to recognise that
-meantime other things still than these various apotheoses have taken
-place, and that, to the increase of our recreation, and even if our
-limited space condemns us to put the matter a trifle clumsily, a change
-has come over our general receptive sensibility not less than over our
-productive tradition. In these connections, we admit, overstatement is
-easy and over-emphasis tempting; we confess furthermore to a frank
-desire to enrich the case, the historic, with all the meaning we can
-stuff into it. So viewed accordingly it gives us the “new,” to repeat
-our expression, as an appetite for a closer notation, a sharper
-specification of the signs of life, of consciousness, of the human scene
-and the human subject in general, than the three or four generations
-before us had been at all moved to insist on. They had insisted indeed,
-these generations, we see as we look back to them, on almost nothing
-whatever; what was to come to them had come, in enormous affluence and
-freshness at its best, and to our continued appreciation as well as to
-the honour of their sweet susceptibility, because again and again the
-great miracle of genius took place, while they gaped, in their social
-and sentimental sky. For ourselves that miracle has not been markedly
-renewed, but it has none the less happened that by hook and by crook the
-case for appreciation remains interesting. The great thing that saves
-it, under the drawback we have named, is, no doubt, that we have
-simply—always for appreciation—learned a little to insist, and that we
-thus get back on one hand something of what we have lost on the other.
-We are unable of course, with whatever habit of presumption engendered,
-to insist upon genius; so that who shall describe the measure of success
-we still achieve as not virtually the search for freshness, and above
-all for closeness, in quite a different direction? To this nearer view
-of commoner things Mr. Wells, say, and Mr. Arnold Bennett, and in their
-degree, under the infection communicated, Mr. D. H. Lawrence and Mr.
-Gilbert Cannan and Mr. Compton Mackenzie and Mr. Hugh Walpole, strike us
-as having all gathered themselves up with a movement never yet
-undertaken on our literary scene, and, beyond anything else, with an
-instinctive divination of what had most waved their predecessors off it.
-What had this lion in the path been, we make them out as after a fashion
-asking themselves, what had it been from far back and straight down
-through all the Victorian time, but the fond superstition that the key
-of the situation, of each and every situation that could turn up for the
-novelist, was the sentimental key, which might fit into no door or
-window opening on closeness or on freshness at all? Was it not for all
-the world as if even the brightest practitioners of the past, those we
-now distinguish as saved for glory in spite of themselves, had been as
-sentimental as they could, or, to give the trick another name, as
-romantic and thereby as shamelessly “dodgy”?—just in order _not_ to be
-close and fresh, not to be authentic, as that takes trouble, takes
-talent, and you can be sentimental, you can be romantic, you can be
-dodgy, alas, not a bit less on the footing of genius than on the footing
-of mediocrity or even of imbecility? Was it not as if the sentimental
-had been more and more noted as but another name for the romantic, if
-not indeed the romantic as but another name for the sentimental, and as
-if these things, whether separate or united, had been in the same degree
-recognised as unamenable, or at any rate unfavourable, to any consistent
-fineness of notation, once the tide of the copious as a condition of the
-thorough had fairly set in?
-
-So, to express it briefly, the possibility of hugging the shore of the
-real as it had not, among us, been hugged, and of pushing inland, as far
-as a keel might float, wherever the least opening seemed to smile,
-dawned upon a few votaries and gathered further confidence with
-exercise. Who could say, of course, that Jane Austen had not been close,
-just as who could ask if Anthony Trollope had not been copious?—just as
-who could _not_ say that it all depended on what was meant by these
-terms? The demonstration of what was meant, it presently appeared, could
-come but little by little, quite as if each tentative adventurer had
-rather anxiously to learn for himself what _might_ be meant—this
-failing at least the leap into the arena of some great demonstrative,
-some sudden athletic and epoch-making authority. Who could pretend that
-Dickens was anything but romantic, and even more romantic in his humour,
-if possible, than in pathos or in queer perfunctory practice of the
-“plot”? Who could pretend that Jane Austen didn’t leave much more untold
-than told about the aspects and manners even of the confined circle in
-which her muse revolved? Why shouldn’t it be argued against her that
-where her testimony complacently ends the pressure of appetite within us
-presumes exactly to begin? Who could pretend that the reality of
-Trollope didn’t owe much of its abundance to the diluted, the quite
-extravagantly watered strain, no less than to the heavy hand, in which
-it continued to be ladled out? Who of the younger persuasion would not
-have been ready to cite, as one of the liveliest opportunities for the
-critic eager to see representation searching, such a claim for the close
-as Thackeray’s sighing and protesting “look-in” at the acquaintance
-between Arthur Pendennis and Fanny Bolton, the daughter of the Temple
-laundress, amid the purlieus of that settlement? The sentimental habit
-and the spirit of romance, it was unmistakably chargeable, stood out to
-sea as far as possible the moment the shore appeared to offer the least
-difficulty to hugging, and the Victorian age bristled with perfect
-occasions for our catching them in the act of this showy retreat. All
-revolutions have been prepared in spite of their often striking us as
-sudden, and so it was doubtless that when scarce longer ago than the
-other day Mr. Arnold Bennett had the fortune to lay his hand on a
-general scene and a cluster of agents deficient to a peculiar degree in
-properties that might interfere with a desirable density of
-illustration—deficient, that is, in such connections as might carry the
-imagination off to some sport on its own account—we recognised at once
-a set of conditions auspicious to the newer kind of appeal. Let us
-confess that we were at the same time doubtless to master no better way
-of describing these conditions than by the remark that they were, for
-some reason beautifully inherent in them, susceptible at once of being
-entirely known and of seeming detectably thick. Reduction to exploitable
-knowledge is apt to mean for many a case of the human complexity
-reduction to comparative thinness; and nothing was thereby at the first
-blush to interest us more than the fact that the air and the very smell
-of packed actuality in the subject-matter of such things as the author’s
-two longest works was clearly but another name for his personal
-competence in that matter, the fulness and firmness of his embrace of
-it. This was a fresh and beguiling impression—that the state of
-inordinate possession on the chronicler’s part, the mere state as such
-and as an energy directly displayed, _was_ the interest, neither more
-nor less, _was_ the sense and the meaning and the picture and the drama,
-all so sufficiently constituting them that it scarce mattered what they
-were in themselves. Of what they were in themselves their being in Mr.
-Bennett, as Mr. Bennett to such a tune harboured them, represented their
-one conceivable account—not to mention, as reinforcing this, our own
-great comfort and relief when certain high questions and wonderments
-about them, or about our mystified relation to them, began one after
-another to come up.
-
-Because such questions did come, we must at once declare, and we are
-still in presence of them, for all the world as if that case of the
-perfect harmony, the harmony between subject and author, were just
-marked with a flaw and didn’t meet the whole assault of restless
-criticism. What we make out Mr. Bennett as doing is simply recording his
-possession or, to put it more completely, his saturation; and to see him
-as virtually shut up to that process is a note of all the more moment
-that we see our selected cluster of his interesting juniors, and whether
-by his direct action on their collective impulse or not, embroiled, as
-we venture to call it, in the same predicament. The act of squeezing out
-to the utmost the plump and more or less juicy orange of a particular
-acquainted state and letting this affirmation of energy, however
-directed or undirected, constitute for them the “treatment” of a
-theme—_that_ is what we remark them as mainly engaged in, after
-remarking the example so strikingly, so originally set, even if an undue
-subjection to it be here and there repudiated. Nothing is further from
-our thought than to undervalue saturation and possession, the fact of
-the particular experience, the state and degree of acquaintance
-incurred, however such a consciousness may have been determined; for
-these things represent on the part of the novelist, as on the part of
-any painter of things seen, felt or imagined, just one half of his
-authority—the other half being represented of course by the application
-he is inspired to make of them. Therefore that fine secured half is so
-much gained at the start, and the fact of its brightly being there may
-really by itself project upon the course so much colour and form as to
-make us on occasion, under the genial force, almost not miss the answer
-to the question of application. When the author of “Clayhanger” has put
-down upon the table, in dense unconfused array, every fact required,
-every fact in any way invocable, to make the life of the Five Towns
-press upon us, and to make our sense of it, so full-fed, content us, we
-may very well go on for the time in the captive condition, the beguiled
-and bemused condition, the acknowledgment of which is in general our
-highest tribute to the temporary master of our sensibility. Nothing at
-such moments—or rather at the end of them, when the end begins to
-threaten—may be of a more curious strain than the dawning unrest that
-suggests to us fairly our first critical comment: “Yes, yes—but is this
-_all_? These are the circumstances of the interest—we see, we see; but
-where is the interest itself, where and what is its centre, and how are
-we to measure it in relation to _that_?” Of course we may in the act of
-exhaling that plaint (which we have just expressed at its mildest) well
-remember how many people there are to tell us that to “measure” an
-interest is none of our affair; that we have but to take it on the
-cheapest and easiest terms and be thankful; and that if by our very
-confession we have been led the imaginative dance the music has done for
-us all it pretends to. Which words, however, have only to happen to be
-for us the most unintelligent conceivable not in the least to arrest our
-wonderment as to where our bedrenched consciousness may still not
-awkwardly leave us for the pleasure of appreciation. That appreciation
-is also a mistake and a priggishness, being reflective and thereby
-corrosive, is another of the fond dicta which we are here concerned but
-to brush aside—the more closely to embrace the welcome induction that
-appreciation, attentive and reflective, inquisitive and conclusive, is
-in this connection absolutely the golden _key_ to our pleasure. The more
-it plays up, the more we recognise and are able to number the sources of
-our enjoyment, the greater the provision made for security in that
-attitude, which corresponds, by the same stroke, with the reduced danger
-of waste in the undertaking to amuse us. It all comes back to our
-amusement, and to the noblest surely, on the whole, we know; and it is
-in the very nature of clinging appreciation not to sacrifice
-consentingly a single shade of the art that makes for that blessing.
-From this solicitude spring our questions, and not least the one to
-which we give ourselves for the moment here—this moment of our being
-regaled as never yet with the fruits of the movement (if the name be not
-of too pompous an application where the flush and the heat of accident
-too seem so candidly to look forth), in favour of the “expression of
-life” in terms as loose as may pretend to an effect of expression at
-all. The relegation of terms to the limbo of delusions outlived so far
-as ever really cultivated becomes of necessity, it will be plain, the
-great mark of the faith that for the novelist to show he “knows all
-about” a certain congeries of aspects, the more numerous within their
-mixed circle the better, is thereby to set in motion, with due
-intensity, the pretension to interest. The state of knowing all about
-whatever it may be has thus only to become consistently and abundantly
-active to pass for his supreme function; and to its so becoming active
-few difficulties appear to be descried—so great may on occasion be the
-mere excitement of activity. To the fact that the exhilaration is, as we
-have hinted, often infectious, to this and to the charming young good
-faith and general acclamation under which each case appears to
-proceed—each case we of course mean really repaying attention—the
-critical reader owes his opportunity so considerably and so gratefully
-to generalise.
-
-
- II
-
-We should have only to remount the current with a certain energy to come
-straight up against Tolstoy as the great illustrative master-hand on all
-this ground of the disconnection of method from matter—which encounter,
-however, would take us much too far, so that we must for the present but
-hang off from it with the remark that of all great painters of the
-social picture it was given that epic genius most to serve admirably as
-a rash adventurer and a “caution,” and execrably, pestilentially, as a
-model. In this strange union of relations he stands alone: from no other
-great projector of the human image and the human idea is so much truth
-to be extracted under an equal leakage of its value. All the proportions
-in him are so much the largest that the drop of attention to our nearer
-cases might by its violence leave little of that principle alive; which
-fact need not disguise from us, none the less, that as Mr. H. G. Wells
-and Mr. Arnold Bennett, to return to them briefly again, derive, by
-multiplied if diluted transmissions, from the great Russian (from whose
-all but equal companion Turgenieff we recognise no derivatives at all),
-so, observing the distances, we may profitably detect an unexhausted
-influence in our minor, our still considerably less rounded vessels.
-Highly attaching as indeed the game might be, of inquiring as to the
-centre of the interest or the sense of the whole in “The Passionate
-Friends,” or in “The Old Wives’ Tale,” after having sought those
-luxuries in vain not only through the general length and breadth of “War
-and Peace,” but within the quite respectable confines of any one of the
-units of effect there clustered: this as preparing us to address a like
-friendly challenge to Mr. Cannan’s “Round the Corner,” say, or to Mr.
-Lawrence’s “Sons and Lovers”—should we wish to be very friendly to Mr.
-Lawrence—or to Mr. Hugh Walpole’s “Duchess of Wrexe,” or even to Mr.
-Compton Mackenzie’s “Sinister Street” and “Carnival,” discernibly, we
-hasten to add, though certain betrayals of a controlling idea and a
-pointed intention do comparatively gleam out of the two fictions last
-named. “The Old Wives’ Tale” is the history of two sisters, daughters of
-a prosperous draper in a Staffordshire town, who, separating early in
-life, through the flight of one of them to Paris with an ill-chosen
-husband and the confirmed and prolonged local pitch of the career of the
-other, are reunited late in life by the return of the fugitive after
-much Parisian experience and by her pacified acceptance of the
-conditions of her birthplace. The divided current flows together again,
-and the chronicle closes with the simple drying up determined by the
-death of the sisters. That is all; the canvas is covered, ever so
-closely and vividly covered, by the exhibition of innumerable small
-facts and aspects, at which we assist with the most comfortable sense of
-their substantial truth. The sisters, and more particularly the less
-adventurous, are at home in their author’s mind, they sit and move at
-their ease in the square chamber of his attention, to a degree beyond
-which the production of that ideal harmony between creature and creator
-could scarcely go, and all by an art of demonstration so familiar and so
-“quiet” that the truth and the poetry, to use Goethe’s distinction, melt
-utterly together and we see no difference between the subject of the
-show and the showman’s feeling, let alone the showman’s manner, about
-it. This felt identity of the elements—because we at least consciously
-feel—becomes in the novel we refer to, and not less in “Clayhanger,”
-which our words equally describe, a source for us of abject confidence,
-confidence truly _so_ abject in the solidity of every appearance that it
-may be said to represent our whole relation to the work and completely
-to exhaust our reaction upon it. “Clayhanger,” of the two fictions even
-the more densely loaded with all the evidence in what we should call the
-case presented did we but learn meanwhile for what case, or for a case
-of what, to take it, inscribes the annals, the private more
-particularly, of a provincial printer in a considerable way of business,
-beginning with his early boyhood and going on to the complications of
-his maturity—these not exhausted with our present possession of the
-record, inasmuch as by the author’s announcement there is more of the
-catalogue to come. This most monumental of Mr. Arnold Bennett’s
-recitals, taking it with its supplement of “Hilda Lessways,” already
-before us, is so describable through its being a monument exactly not to
-an idea, a pursued and captured meaning, or in short _to_ anything
-whatever, but just simply _of_ the quarried and gathered material it
-happens to contain, the stones and bricks and rubble and cement and
-promiscuous constituents of every sort that have been heaped in it and
-thanks to which it quite massively piles itself up. Our perusal and our
-enjoyment are our watching of the growth of the pile and of the
-capacity, industry, energy with which the operation is directed. A huge
-and in its way a varied aggregation, without traceable lines, divinable
-direction, effect of composition, the mere number of its pieces, the
-great dump of its material, together with the fact that here and there
-in the miscellany, as with the value of bits of marble or porphyry, fine
-elements shine out, it keeps us standing and waiting to the end—and
-largely just because it keeps us wondering. We surely wonder more what
-it may all propose to mean than any equal appearance of preparation to
-relieve us of that strain, any so founded and grounded a postponement of
-the disclosure of a sense in store, has for a long time called upon us
-to do in a like connection. A great thing it is assuredly that _while_
-we wait and wonder we are amused—were it not for that, truly, our
-situation would be thankless enough; we may ask ourselves, as has
-already been noted, why on such ambiguous terms we should consent to be,
-and why the practice doesn’t at a given moment break down; and our
-answer brings us back to that many-fingered grasp of the orange that the
-author squeezes. This particular orange is of the largest and most
-rotund, and his trust in the consequent flow is of its nature
-communicative. Such is the case always, and most naturally, with that
-air in a person who has something, who at the very least has much to
-tell us: we _like_ so to be affected by it, we meet it half way and lend
-ourselves, sinking in up to the chin. Up to the chin only indeed, beyond
-doubt; we even then feel our head emerge, for judgment and articulate
-question, and it is from that position that we remind ourselves how the
-real reward of our patience is still to come—the reward attending not
-at all the immediate sense of immersion, but reserved for the
-after-sense, which is a very different matter, whether in the form of a
-glow or of a chill.
-
-If Mr. Bennett’s tight rotundity then is of the handsomest size and his
-manipulation of it so firm, what are we to say of Mr. Wells’s, who, a
-novelist very much as Lord Bacon was a philosopher, affects us as taking
-all knowledge for his province and as inspiring in us to the very
-highest degree the confidence enjoyed by himself—enjoyed, we feel, with
-a breadth with which it has been given no one of his fellow-craftsmen to
-enjoy anything. If confidence alone could lead utterly captive we should
-all be huddled in a bunch at Mr. Wells’s heels—which is indeed where we
-_are_ abjectly gathered so far as that force does operate. It is
-literally Mr. Wells’s own mind, and the experience of his own mind,
-incessant and extraordinarily various, extraordinarily reflective, even
-with all sorts of conditions made, of whatever he may expose it to, that
-forms the reservoir tapped by him, that constitutes his provision of
-grounds of interest. It is, by our thinking, in his power to name to us,
-as a preliminary, more of these grounds than all his contemporaries put
-together, and even to exceed any competitor, without exception, in the
-way of suggesting that, thick as he may seem to lay them, they remain
-yet only contributive, are not in themselves full expression but are
-designed strictly to subserve it, that this extraordinary writer’s spell
-resides. When full expression, the expression of some particular truth,
-seemed to lapse in this or that of his earlier novels (we speak not here
-of his shorter things, for the most part delightfully wanton and
-exempt,) it was but by a hand’s breadth, so that if we didn’t
-inveterately quite know what he intended we yet always felt sufficiently
-that _he_ knew. The particular intentions of such matters as “Kipps,” as
-“Tono-Bungay,” as “Ann Veronica,” so swarmed about us, in their
-blinding, bluffing vivacity, that the mere sum of them might have been
-taken for a sense over and above which it was graceless to inquire. The
-more this author learns and learns, or at any rate knows and knows,
-however, the greater is this impression of his holding it good enough
-for us, such as we are, that he shall but turn out his mind and its
-contents upon us by any free familiar gesture and as from a high window
-forever open—an entertainment as copious surely as any occasion should
-demand, at least till we have more intelligibly expressed our title to a
-better. Such things as “The New Machiavelli,” “Marriage,” “The
-Passionate Friends,” are so very much more attestations of the presence
-of material than attestations of an interest in the use of it that we
-ask ourselves again and again why so fondly neglected a state of leakage
-comes not to be fatal to _any_ provision of quantity, or even to stores
-more specially selected for the ordeal than Mr. Wells’s always strike us
-as being. Is not the pang of witnessed waste in fact great just in
-proportion as we are touched by our author’s fine off-handedness as to
-the value of the stores, about which he can for the time make us believe
-what he will? so that, to take an example susceptible of brief
-statement, we wince at a certain quite peculiarly gratuitous sacrifice
-to the casual in “Marriage” very much as at seeing some fine and
-indispensable little part of a mechanism slip through profane fingers
-and lose itself. Who does not remember what ensues after a little upon
-the aviational descent of the hero of the fiction just named into the
-garden occupied, in company with her parents, by the young lady with
-whom he is to fall in love?—and this even though the whole opening
-scene so constituted, with all the comedy hares its function appears to
-be to start, remains with its back squarely turned, esthetically
-speaking, to the quarter in which the picture develops. The point for
-our mortification is that by one of the first steps in this development,
-the first impression on him having been made, the hero accidentally
-meets the heroine, of a summer eventide, in a leafy lane which supplies
-them with the happiest occasion to pursue their acquaintance—or in
-other words supplies the author with the liveliest consciousness (as we
-at least feel it should have been) that just so the relation between the
-pair, its seed already sown and the fact of that bringing about all that
-is still to come, pushes aside whatever veil and steps forth into life.
-To show it step forth and affirm itself as a relation, what is this but
-the interesting function of the whole passage, on the performance of
-which what follows is to hang?—and yet who can say that when the
-ostensible sequence is presented, and our young lady, encountered again
-by her stirred swain, under cover of night, in a favouring wood, is at
-once encompassed by his arms and pressed to his lips and heart (for
-celebration thus of their third meeting) we do not assist at a well-nigh
-heartbreaking miscarriage of “effect”? We see effect, invoked in vain,
-simply stand off unconcerned; effect not having been at all consulted in
-advance she is not to be secured on such terms. And her presence would
-so have redounded—perfectly punctual creature as she is on a made
-appointment and a clear understanding—to the advantage of all
-concerned. The bearing of the young man’s act is all in our having begun
-to conceive it as possible, begun even to desire it, in the light of
-what has preceded; therefore if the participants have _not_ been shown
-us as on the way to it, nor the question of it made beautifully to
-tremble for us in the air, its happiest connections fail and we but
-stare at it mystified. The instance is undoubtedly trifling, but in the
-infinite complex of such things resides for a work of art the shy
-virtue, shy at least till wooed forth, of the whole susceptibility. The
-case of Mr. Wells might take us much further—such remarks as there
-would be to make, say, on such a question as the due understanding, on
-the part of “The Passionate Friends” (not as associated persons but as a
-composed picture), of what that composition is specifically _about_ and
-where, for treatment of this interest, it undertakes to find its centre:
-all of which, we are willing however to grant, falls away before the
-large assurance and incorrigible levity with which this adventurer
-carries his lapses—far more of an adventurer as he is than any other of
-the company. The composition, as we have called it, heaven saving the
-mark, is simply at any and every moment “about” Mr. Wells’s general
-adventure; which is quite enough while it preserves, as we trust it will
-long continue to do, its present robust pitch.
-
-We have already noted that “Round the Corner,” Mr. Gilbert Cannan’s
-liveliest appeal to our attention, belongs to the order of
-_constatations_ pure and simple; to the degree that _as_ a document of
-that nature and of that rigour the book could perhaps not more
-completely affirm itself. When we have said that it puts on record the
-“tone,” the manners, the general domestic proceedings and _train de vie_
-of an amiable clergyman’s family established in one of the more sordid
-quarters of a big black northern city of the Liverpool or Manchester
-complexion we have advanced as far in the way of descriptive statement
-as the interesting work seems to warrant. For it _is_ interesting, in
-spite of its leaving itself on our hands with a consistent indifference
-to any question of the charmed application springing from it all that
-places it in the forefront of its type. Again as under the effect of Mr.
-Bennett’s major productions our sole inference is that things, the
-things disclosed, _go on and on, in any given case, in spite of
-everything_—with Mr. Cannan’s one discernible care perhaps being for
-how extraordinarily much, in the particular example here before him,
-they were able to go on in spite of. The conception, the presentation of
-this enormous inauspicious amount as bearing upon the collective career
-of the Folyats is, we think, as near as the author comes at any point to
-betraying an awareness of a subject. Yet again, though so little
-encouraged or “backed,” a subject after a fashion makes itself, even as
-it has made itself in “The Old Wives’ Tale” and in “Clayhanger,” in
-“Sons and Lovers,” where, as we have hinted, any assistance rendered us
-for a view of one _most_ comfortably enjoys its absence, and in Mr. Hugh
-Walpole’s newest novel, where we wander scarcely less with our hand in
-no guiding grasp, but where the author’s good disposition, as we feel
-it, to provide us with what we lack if he only knew how, constitutes in
-itself such a pleading liberality. We seem to see him in this spirit lay
-again and again a flowered carpet for our steps. If we do not include
-Mr. Compton Mackenzie to the same extent in our generalisation it is
-really because we note a difference in him, a difference in favour of
-his care for the application. Preoccupations seem at work in “Sinister
-Street,” and withal in “Carnival,” the brush of which we in other
-quarters scarce even suspect and at some of which it will presently be
-of profit to glance. “I answer for it, you know,” we seem at any rate to
-hear Mr. Gilbert Cannan say with an admirably genuine young pessimism,
-“I answer for it that they were really _like_ that, odd or unpleasant or
-uncontributive, and therefore tiresome, as it may strike you;” and the
-charm of Mr. Cannan, so far as up or down the rank we so disengage a
-charm, is that we take him at his word. His guarantee, his straight
-communication, of his general truth is a value, and values are rare—the
-flood of fiction is apparently capable of running hundreds of miles
-without a single glint of one—and thus in default of satisfaction we
-get stopgaps and are thankful often under a genial touch to get even so
-much. The value indeed is crude, it would be quadrupled were it only
-wrought and shaped; yet it has still the rude dignity that it counts to
-us for experience or at least for what we call under our present pitch
-of sensibility force of impression. The experience, we feel, is ever
-something to conclude upon, while the impression is content to wait; to
-wait, say, in the spirit in which we must accept this younger bustle if
-we accept it at all, the spirit of its serving as a rather presumptuous
-lesson to us in patience. While we wait, again, we are amused—not in
-the least, also to repeat, up to the notch of our conception of
-amusement, which draws upon still other forms and sources; but none the
-less for the wonder, the intensity, the actuality, the probity of the
-vision. This is much as in “Clayhanger” and in “Hilda Lessways,” where,
-independently of the effect, so considerably rendered, of the long lapse
-of time, always in this type of recital a source of amusement in itself,
-and certainly of the noblest, we get such an admirably substantial thing
-as the collective image of the Orgreaves, the local family in whose
-ample lap the amenities and the humanities so easily sit, for Mr.
-Bennett’s evocation and his protagonist’s recognition, and the manner of
-the presentation of whom, with the function and relation of the picture
-at large, strikes such a note of felicity, achieves such a simulation of
-sense, as the author should never again be excused for treating, that is
-for neglecting, as beyond his range. Here figures signally the
-interesting case of a compositional function absolutely performed by
-mere multiplication, the flow of the facts: the Orgreaves, in
-“Clayhanger,” are there, by what we make out, but for “life,” for
-general life only, and yet, with their office under any general or
-inferential meaning entirely unmarked, come doubtless as near squaring
-esthetically with the famous formula of the “slice of life” as any
-example that could be adduced; happening moreover as they probably do to
-owe this distinction to their coincidence at once with reality and
-charm—a fact esthetically curious and delightful. For we attribute the
-bold stroke they represent much more to Mr. Arnold Bennett’s esthetic
-instinct than to anything like a calculation of his bearings, and more
-to his thoroughly acquainted state, as we may again put it, than to all
-other causes together: which strikingly enough shows how much complexity
-of interest may be simulated by mere presentation of material, mere
-squeezing of the orange, when the material happens to be “handsome” or
-the orange to be sweet.
-
-
- III
-
-The orange of our persistent simile is in Mr. Hugh Walpole’s hands very
-remarkably sweet—a quality we recognise in it even while reduced to
-observing that the squeeze pure and simple, the fond, the lingering, the
-reiterated squeeze, constitutes as yet his main perception of method. He
-enjoys in a high degree the consciousness of saturation, and is on such
-serene and happy terms with it as almost make of critical interference,
-in so bright an air, an assault on personal felicity. Full of material
-is thus the author of “The Duchess of Wrexe,” and of a material which we
-should describe as the consciousness of youth were we not rather
-disposed to call it a peculiar strain of the extreme unconsciousness.
-Mr. Walpole offers us indeed a rare and interesting case—we see about
-the field none other like it; the case of a positive identity between
-the spirit, not to say the time of life or stage of experience, of the
-aspiring artist and the field itself of his vision. “The Duchess of
-Wrexe” reeks with youth and the love of youth and the confidence of
-youth—youth taking on with a charming exuberance the fondest costume or
-disguise, that of an adventurous and voracious felt interest, interest
-in life, in London, in society, in character, in Portland Place, in the
-Oxford Circus, in the afternoon tea-table, in the torrid weather, in
-fifty other immediate things as to which its passion and its curiosity
-are of the sincerest. The wonderful thing is that these latter forces
-operate, in their way, without yet being disengaged and
-hand-free—disengaged, that is, from their state of _being_ young, with
-its billowy mufflings and other soft obstructions, the state of being
-present, being involved and aware, close “up against” the whole mass of
-possibilities, being in short intoxicated with the mixed liquors of
-suggestion. In the fumes of this acute situation Mr. Walpole’s
-subject-matter is bathed; the situation being all the while so much more
-his own and that of a juvenility reacting, in the presence of
-everything, “for all it is worth,” than the devised and imagined one,
-however he may circle about some such cluster, that every cupful of his
-excited flow tastes three times as much of his temperamental freshness
-as it tastes of this, that or the other character or substance, above
-all of this, that or the other group of antecedents and references,
-supposed to be reflected in it. All of which does not mean, we hasten to
-add, that the author of “The Duchess of Wrexe” has not the gift of life;
-but only that he strikes us as having received it, straight from nature,
-with such a concussion as to have kept the boon at the stage of
-violence—so that, fairly pinned down by it, he is still embarrassed for
-passing it on. On the day he shall have worked free of this primitive
-predicament, the crude fact of the convulsion itself, there need be no
-doubt of his exhibiting matter into which method may learn how to bite.
-The tract meanwhile affects us as more or less virgin snow, and we look
-with interest and suspense for the imprint of a process.
-
-If those remarks represent all the while, further, that the performances
-we have glanced at, with others besides, lead our attention on, we hear
-ourselves the more naturally asked what it is then that we expect or
-want, confessing as we do that we have been in a manner interested, even
-though, from case to case, in a varying degree, and that Thackeray,
-Turgenieff, Balzac, Dickens, Anatole France, no matter who, can not do
-more than interest. Let us therefore concede to the last point that
-small mercies are better than none, that there are latent within the
-critic numberless liabilities to being “squared” (the extent to which he
-may on occasion betray his price!) and so great a preference for being
-pleased over not being, that you may again and again see him assist with
-avidity at the attempt of the slice of life to butter itself thick. Its
-explanation that it _is_ a slice of life and pretends to be nothing else
-figures for us, say, while we watch, the jam super-added to the butter.
-For since the jam, on this system, descends upon our desert, in its form
-of manna, from quite another heaven than the heaven of method, the mere
-demonstration of its agreeable presence is alone sufficient to hint at
-our more than one chance of being supernaturally fed. The happy-go-lucky
-fashion of it is indeed not then, we grant, an objection so long as we
-do take in refreshment: the meal may be of the last informality and yet
-produce in the event no small sense of repletion. The slice of life
-devoured, the butter and the jam duly appreciated, we are ready, no
-doubt, on another day, to trust ourselves afresh to the desert. We break
-camp, that is, and face toward a further stretch of it, all in the faith
-that we shall be once more provided for. We take the risk, we enjoy more
-or less the assistance—more or less, we put it, for the vision of a
-possible arrest of the miracle or failure of our supply never wholly
-leaves us. The phenomenon is too uncanny, the happy-go-lucky, as we know
-it in general, never _has_ been trustable to the end; the absence of the
-last true touch in the preparation of its viands becomes with each
-renewal of the adventure a more sensible fact. By the last true touch we
-mean of course the touch of the hand of selection; the principle of
-selection having been involved at the worst or the least, one would
-suppose, in any approach whatever to the loaf of life with the
-_arrière-pensée_ of a slice. There being no question of a slice upon
-which the further question of where and how to cut it does not wait, the
-office of method, the idea of choice and comparison, have occupied the
-ground from the first. This makes clear, to a moment’s reflection, that
-there can be no such thing as an amorphous slice, and that any waving
-aside of inquiry as to the sense and value of a chunk of matter has to
-reckon with the simple truth of its having been _born_ of naught else
-but measured excision. Reasons have been the fairies waiting on its
-cradle, the possible presence of a bad fairy in the form of a bad reason
-to the contrary notwithstanding. It has thus had connections at the very
-first stage of its detachment that are at no later stage logically to be
-repudiated; let it lie as lumpish as it will—for adoption, we mean, of
-the ideal of the lump—it has been tainted from too far back with the
-hard liability to form, and thus carries in its very breast the hapless
-contradiction of its sturdy claim to have none. This claim has the
-inevitable challenge at once to meet. How can a slice of life be
-anything but illustrational of the loaf, and how can illustration not
-immediately bristle with every sign of the extracted and related state?
-The relation is at once to what the thing comes from and to what it
-waits upon—which last is our act of recognition. We accordingly
-appreciate it in proportion as it so accounts for itself; the quantity
-and the intensity of its reference are the measure of our knowledge of
-it. This is exactly why illustration breaks down when reference,
-otherwise application, runs short, and why before any assemblage of
-figures or aspects, otherwise of samples and specimens, the question of
-what these are, extensively, samples and specimens _of_ declines not to
-beset us—why, otherwise again, we look ever for the supreme reference
-that shall avert the bankruptcy of sense.
-
-Let us profess all readiness to repeat that we may still have had, on
-the merest “life” system, or that of the starkest crudity of the slice,
-all the entertainment that can come from watching a wayfarer engage with
-assurance in an alley that we know to have no issue—and from watching
-for the very sake of the face that he may show us on reappearing at its
-mouth. The recitals of Mr. Arnold Bennett, Mr. Gilbert Cannan, Mr. D. H.
-Lawrence, fairly smell of the real, just as the “Fortitude” and “The
-Duchess” of Mr. Hugh Walpole smell of the romantic; we have sufficiently
-noted then that, once on the scent, we are capable of pushing ahead. How
-far it is at the same time from being all a matter of smell the terms in
-which we just above glanced at the weakness of the spell of the
-happy-go-lucky may here serve to indicate. There faces us all the while
-the fact that the act of consideration as an incident of the esthetic
-pleasure, consideration confidently knowing us to _have_ sooner or later
-to arrive at it, may be again and again postponed, but can never hope
-not some time to fall due. Consideration is susceptible of many forms,
-some one or other of which no conscious esthetic effort fails to cry out
-for; and the simplest description of the cry of the novel when
-sincere—for have we not heard such compositions bluff us, as it were,
-with false cries?—is as an appeal to us when we have read it once to
-read it yet again. _That_ is the act of consideration; no other process
-of considering approaches this for directness, so that anything short of
-it is virtually not to consider at all. The word has sometimes another
-sense, that of the appeal to us _not_, for the world, to go back—this
-being of course consideration of a sort; the sort clearly that the truly
-flushed production should be the last to invoke. The effect of
-consideration, we need scarce remark, is to light for us in a work of
-art the hundred questions of how and why and whither, and the effect of
-these questions, once lighted, is enormously to thicken and complicate,
-even if toward final clarifications, what we have called the amused
-state produced in us by the work. The more our amusement multiplies its
-terms the more fond and the more rewarded consideration becomes; the
-fewer it leaves them, on the other hand, the less to be resisted for us
-is the impression of “bare ruined choirs where late the sweet birds
-sang.” Birds that have appeared to sing, or whose silence we have not
-heeded, on a first perusal, prove on a second to have no note to
-contribute, and whether or no a second is enough to admonish us of those
-we miss, we mostly expect much from it in the way of emphasis of those
-we find. Then it is that notes of intention become more present or more
-absent; then it is that we take the measure of what we have already
-called our effective provision. The bravest providers and designers show
-at this point something still in store which only the second rummage was
-appointed to draw forth. To the variety of these ways of not letting our
-fondness fast is there not practically no limit?—and of the arts, the
-devices, the graces, the subtle secrets applicable to such an end what
-presumptuous critic shall pretend to draw the list? Let him for the
-moment content himself with saying that many of the most effective are
-mysteries, precisely, of method, or that even when they are not most
-essentially and directly so it takes method, blest method, to extract
-their soul and to determine their action.
-
-It is odd and delightful perhaps that at the very moment of our urging
-this truth we should happen to be regaled with a really supreme specimen
-of the part playable in a novel by the source of interest, the principle
-of provision attended to, for which we claim importance. Mr. Joseph
-Conrad’s “Chance” is none the less a signal instance of provision the
-most earnest and the most copious for its leaving ever so much to be
-said about the particular provision effected. It is none the less an
-extraordinary exhibition of method by the fact that the method is, we
-venture to say, without a precedent in any like work. It places Mr.
-Conrad absolutely alone as a votary of the way to do a thing that shall
-make it undergo most doing. The way to do it that shall make it undergo
-least is the line on which we are mostly now used to see prizes carried
-off; so that the author of “Chance” gathers up on this showing all sorts
-of comparative distinction. He gathers up at least two sorts—that of
-bravery in absolutely reversing the process most accredited, and that,
-quite separate, we make out, of performing the manœuvre under salvos of
-recognition. It is not in these days often given to a refinement of
-design to be recognised, but Mr. Conrad has made his achieve that
-miracle—save in so far indeed as the miracle has been one thing and the
-success another. The miracle is of the rarest, confounding all
-calculation and suggesting more reflections than we can begin to make
-place for here; but the sources of surprise surrounding it might be,
-were this possible, even greater and yet leave the fact itself in all
-independence, the fact that the whole undertaking was committed by its
-very first step either to be “art” exclusively or to be nothing. This is
-the prodigious rarity, since surely we have known for many a day no
-other such case of the whole clutch of eggs, and these withal of the
-freshest, in that one basket; to which it may be added that if we say
-for many a day this is not through our readiness positively to associate
-the sight with any very definite moment of the past. What concerns us is
-that the general effect of “Chance” is arrived at by a pursuance of
-means to the end in view contrasted with which every other current form
-of the chase can only affect us as cheap and futile; the carriage of the
-burden or amount of service required on these lines exceeding surely all
-other such displayed degrees of energy put together. Nothing could well
-interest us more than to see the exemplary value of attention, attention
-given by the author and asked of the reader, attested in a case in which
-it has had almost unspeakable difficulties to struggle with—since so we
-are moved to qualify the particular difficulty Mr. Conrad has “elected”
-to face: the claim for method in itself, method in this very sense of
-attention applied, would be somehow less lighted if the difficulties
-struck us as less consciously, or call it even less wantonly, invoked.
-What they consist of we should have to diverge here a little to say, and
-should even then probably but lose ourselves in the dim question of why
-so special, eccentric and desperate a course, so deliberate a plunge
-into threatened frustration, should alone have seemed open. It has been
-the course, so far as three words may here serve, of his so multiplying
-his creators or, as we are now fond of saying, producers, as to make
-them almost more numerous and quite emphatically more material than the
-creatures and the production itself in whom and which we by the general
-law of fiction expect such agents to lose themselves. We take for
-granted by the general law of fiction a primary author, take him so much
-for granted that we forget him in proportion as he works upon us, and
-that he works upon us most in fact by making us forget him.
-
-Mr. Conrad’s first care on the other hand is expressly to posit or set
-up a reciter, a definite responsible intervening first person singular,
-possessed of infinite sources of reference, who immediately proceeds to
-set up another, to the end that this other may conform again to the
-practice, and that even at that point the bridge over to the creature,
-or in other words to the situation or the subject, the thing “produced,”
-shall, if the fancy takes it, once more and yet once more glory in a
-gap. It is easy to see how heroic the undertaking of an effective fusion
-becomes on these terms, fusion between what we are to know and that
-prodigy of our knowing which is ever half the very beauty of the
-atmosphere of authenticity; from the moment the reporters are thus
-multiplied from pitch to pitch the tone of each, especially as
-“rendered” by his precursor in the series, becomes for the prime poet of
-all an immense question—these circumferential tones having not only to
-be such individually separate notes, but to keep so clear of the others,
-the central, the numerous and various voices of the agents proper, those
-expressive of the action itself and in whom the objectivity resides. We
-usually escape the worst of this difficulty of a tone _about_ the tone
-of our characters, our projected performers, by keeping it single,
-keeping it “down” and thereby comparatively impersonal or, as we may
-say, inscrutable; which is what a creative force, in its blest fatuity,
-likes to be. But the omniscience, remaining indeed nameless, though
-constantly active, which sets Marlow’s omniscience in motion from the
-very first page, insisting on a reciprocity with it throughout, this
-original omniscience invites consideration of itself only in a degree
-less than that in which Marlow’s own invites it; and Marlow’s own is a
-prolonged hovering flight of the subjective over the outstretched ground
-of the case exposed. We make out this ground but through the shadow cast
-by the flight, clarify it though the real author visibly reminds himself
-again and again that he must—all the more that, as if by some
-tremendous forecast of future applied science, the upper aeroplane
-causes another, as we have said, to depend from it and that one still
-another; these dropping shadow after shadow, to the no small menace of
-intrinsic colour and form and whatever, upon the passive expanse. What
-shall we most call Mr. Conrad’s method accordingly but his attempt to
-clarify _quand même_—ridden as he has been, we perceive at the end of
-fifty pages of “Chance,” by such a danger of steeping his matter in
-perfect eventual obscuration as we recall no other artist’s consenting
-to with an equal grace. This grace, which presently comes over us as the
-sign of the whole business, is Mr. Conrad’s gallantry itself, and the
-shortest account of the rest of the connection for our present purpose
-is that his gallantry is thus his success. It literally strikes us that
-his volume sets in motion more than anything else a drama in which his
-own system and his combined eccentricities of recital represent the
-protagonist in face of powers leagued against it, and of which the
-dénouement gives us the system fighting in triumph, though with its back
-desperately to the wall, and laying the powers piled up at its feet.
-This frankly has been _our_ spectacle, our suspense and our thrill; with
-the one flaw on the roundness of it all the fact that the predicament
-was not imposed rather than invoked, was not the effect of a challenge
-from without, but that of a mystic impulse from within.
-
-Of an exquisite refinement at all events are the critical questions
-opened up in the attempt, the question in particular of by what it
-exactly is that the experiment is crowned. Pronouncing it crowned and
-the case saved by sheer gallantry, as we did above, is perhaps to fall
-just short of the conclusion we might reach were we to push further.
-“Chance” _is_ an example of objectivity, most precious of aims, not only
-menaced but definitely compromised; whereby we are in presence of
-something really of the strangest, a general and diffused lapse of
-authenticity which an inordinate number of common readers—since it
-always takes this and these to account encouragingly for
-“editions”—have not only condoned but have emphatically commended. They
-can have done this but through the bribe of some authenticity other in
-kind, no doubt, and seeming to them equally great if not greater, which
-gives back by the left hand what the right has, with however
-dissimulated a grace, taken away. What Mr. Conrad’s left hand gives back
-then is simply Mr. Conrad himself. We asked above what would become, by
-such a form of practice, of indispensable “fusion” or, to call it by
-another name, of the fine process by which our impatient material, at a
-given moment, shakes off the humiliation of the handled, the fumbled
-state, puts its head in the air and, to its own beautiful illusory
-consciousness at least, simply runs its race. Such an amount of handling
-and fumbling and repointing has it, on the system of the multiplied
-“putter into marble,” to shake off! And yet behold, the sense of
-discomfort, as the show here works out, _has_ been conjured away. The
-fusion has taken place, or at any rate _a_ fusion; only it has been
-transferred in wondrous fashion to an unexpected, and on the whole more
-limited plane of operation; it has succeeded in getting effected, so to
-speak, not on the ground but in the air, not between our writer’s idea
-and his machinery, but between the different parts of his genius itself.
-His genius is what is left over from the other, the compromised and
-compromising quantities—the Marlows and their determinant inventors and
-interlocutors, the Powells, the Franklins, the Fynes, the tell-tale
-little dogs, the successive members of a cue from one to the other of
-which the sense and the interest of the subject have to be passed on
-together, in the manner of the buckets of water for the improvised
-extinction of a fire, before reaching our apprehension: all with
-whatever result, to this apprehension, of a quantity to be allowed for
-as spilt by the way. The residuum has accordingly the form not of such
-and such a number of images discharged and ordered, but that rather of a
-wandering, circling, yearning imaginative _faculty_, encountered in its
-habit as it lives and diffusing itself as a presence or a tide, a noble
-sociability of vision. So we have as the force that fills the cup just
-the high-water mark of a beautiful and generous mind at play in
-conditions comparatively thankless—thoroughly, unweariedly, yet at the
-same time ever so elegantly at play, and doing more for itself than it
-succeeds in getting done for it. Than which nothing could be of a
-greater reward to critical curiosity were it not still for the wonder of
-wonders, a new page in the record altogether—the fact that these things
-are apparently what the common reader has seen and understood. Great
-then would seem to be after all the common reader!
-
-
- IV
-
-We must not fail of the point, however, that we have made these remarks
-not at all with an eye to the question of whether “Chance” has been well
-or ill inspired as to its particular choice of a way of really attending
-to itself among all the possible alternatives, but only on the ground of
-its having compared, selected and held on; since any alternative that
-might have been preferred and that should have been effectively adopted
-would point our moral as well—and this even if it is of profit none the
-less to note the most striking of Mr. Conrad’s compositional
-consequences. There is one of these that has had most to do with making
-his pages differ in texture, and to our very first glance, from that
-straggle of ungoverned verbiage which leads us up and down those of his
-fellow fabulists in general on a vain hunt for some projected mass of
-truth, some solidity of substance, as to which the deluge of “dialogue,”
-the flooding report of things said, or at least of words pretendedly
-spoken, shall have learned the art of being merely illustrational. What
-first springs from any form of real attention, no matter which, we on a
-comparison so made quickly perceive to be a practical challenge of the
-preposterous pretension of this most fatuous of the luxuries of
-looseness to acquit itself with authority of the structural and
-compositional office. Infinitely valid and vivid as illustration, it
-altogether depends for dignity and sense upon our state of possession of
-its historic preliminaries, its promoting conditions, its supporting
-ground; that is upon our waiting occupancy of the chamber it proposes to
-light and which, when no other source of effect is more indicated, it
-doubtless inimitably fills with life. Then its relation to what encloses
-and confines and, in its sovereign interest, finely compresses it,
-offering it constituted aspects, surfaces, presences, faces and figures
-of the matter we are either generally or acutely concerned with to play
-over and hang upon, then this relation gives it all its value: it has
-flowered from the soil prepared and sheds back its richness into the
-field of cultivation. It is interesting, in a word, only when nothing
-else is equally so, carrying the vessel of the interest with least of a
-stumble or a sacrifice; but it is of the essence that the sounds so set
-in motion (it being as sound above all that they undertake to convey
-sense,) should have something to proceed from, in their course, to
-address themselves to and be affected by, with all the sensibility of
-sounds. It is of the essence that they should live in a medium, and in a
-medium only, since it takes a medium to give them an identity, the
-intenser the better, and that the medium should subserve them by
-enjoying in a like degree the luxury of an existence. We need of course
-scarce expressly note that the play, as distinguished from the novel,
-lives exclusively on the spoken word—not on the report of the thing
-said but, directly and audibly, on that very thing; that it thrives by
-its law on the exercise under which the novel hopelessly collapses when
-the attempt is made disproportionately to impose it. There is no danger
-for the play of the cart before the horse, no disaster involved in it;
-that form being _all_ horse and the interest itself mounted and astride,
-and not, as that of the novel, dependent in the first instance on
-wheels. The order in which the drama simply says things gives it all its
-form, while the story told and the picture painted, as the novel at the
-pass we have brought it to embraces them, reports of an infinite
-diversity of matters, gathers together and gives out again a hundred
-sorts, and finds its order and its structure, its unity and its beauty,
-in the alternation of parts and the adjustment of differences. It is no
-less apparent that the novel may be fundamentally _organised_—such
-things as “The Egoist” and “The Awkward Age” are there to prove it; but
-in this case it adheres unconfusedly to that logic and has nothing to
-say to any other. Were it not for a second exception, one at this season
-rather pertinent, “Chance” then, to return to it a moment, would be as
-happy an example as we might just now put our hand on of the automatic
-working of a scheme unfavourable to that treatment of the colloquy by
-endless dangling strings which makes the current “story” in general so
-figure to us a porcupine of extravagant yet abnormally relaxed bristles.
-
-The exception we speak of would be Mrs. Wharton’s “Custom of the
-Country,” in which, as in this lady’s other fictions, we recognise the
-happy fact of an abuse of no one of the resources it enjoys at the
-expense of the others; the whole series offering as general an example
-of dialogue flowering and not weeding, illustrational and not itself
-starved of illustration, or starved of referability and association,
-which is the same thing, as meets the eye in any glance that leaves Mr.
-Wells at Mr. Wells’s best-inspired hour out of our own account. The
-truth is, however, that Mrs. Wharton is herself here out of our account,
-even as we have easily recognised Mr. Galsworthy and Mr. Maurice Hewlett
-to be; these three authors, with whatever differences between them,
-remaining essentially votaries of selection and intention and being
-embodiments thereby, in each case, of some state over and above that
-simple state of possession of much evidence, that confused conception of
-what the “slice” of life must consist of, which forms the text of our
-remarks. Mrs. Wharton, _her_ conception of the “slice” so clarified and
-cultivated, would herself of course form a text in quite another
-connection, as Mr. Hewlett and Mr. Galsworthy would do each in his own,
-which we abstain from specifying; but there are two or three grounds on
-which the author of “Ethan Frome,” “The Valley of Decision” and “The
-House of Mirth,” whom we brush by with reluctance, would point the moral
-of the treasure of amusement sitting in the lap of method with a
-felicity peculiarly her own. If one of these is that she too has clearly
-a saturation—which it would be ever so interesting to determine and
-appreciate—we have it from her not in the crude state but in the
-extract, the extract that makes all the difference for our sense of an
-artistic economy. If the extract, as would appear, is the result of an
-artistic economy, as the latter is its logical motive, so we find it
-associated in Mrs. Wharton with such appeals to our interest, for
-instance, as the fact that, absolutely sole among our students of this
-form, she suffers, she even encourages, her expression to flower into
-some sharp image or figure of her thought when that will make the
-thought more finely touch us. Her step, without straying, encounters the
-living analogy, which she gathers, in passing, without awkwardness of
-pause, and which the page then carries on its breast as a trophy plucked
-by a happy adventurous dash, a token of spirit and temper as well as a
-proof of vision. We note it as one of the _kinds_ of proof of vision
-that most fail us in that comparative desert of the inselective where
-our imagination has itself to hunt out or call down (often among strange
-witnessed flounderings or sand-storms) such analogies as may mercifully
-“put” the thing. Mrs. Wharton not only owes to her cultivated art of
-putting it the distinction enjoyed when some ideal of expression has the
-_whole_ of the case, the case once made its concern, in charge, but
-might further act for us, were we to follow up her exhibition, as
-lighting not a little that question of “tone,” the author’s own
-intrinsic, as to which we have just seen Mr. Conrad’s late production
-rather tend to darken counsel. “The Custom of the Country” is an eminent
-instance of the sort of tonic value most opposed to that baffled
-relation between the subject-matter and its emergence which we find
-constituted by the circumvalations of “Chance.” Mrs. Wharton’s reaction
-in presence of the aspects of life hitherto, it would seem, mainly
-exposed to her is for the most part the ironic—to which we gather that
-these particular aspects have so much ministered that, were we to pursue
-the quest, we might recognise in them precisely the saturation as to
-which we a moment ago reserved our judgment. “The Custom of the Country”
-is at any rate consistently, almost scientifically satiric, as indeed
-the satiric light was doubtless the only one in which the elements
-engaged could at all be focussed together. But this happens directly to
-the profit of something that, as we read, becomes more and more one with
-the principle of authority at work; the light that gathers is a dry
-light, of great intensity, and the effect, if not rather the very
-essence, of its dryness is a particular fine asperity. The usual
-“creative” conditions and associations, as we have elsewhere languished
-among them, are thanks to this ever so sensibly altered; the general
-authoritative relation attested becomes clear—we move in an air purged
-at a stroke of the old sentimental and romantic values, the perversions
-with the maximum of waste of perversions, and we shall not here attempt
-to state what this makes for in the way of esthetic refreshment and
-relief; the waste having kept us so dangling on the dark esthetic abyss.
-A shade of asperity may be in such fashion a security against waste, and
-in the dearth of displayed securities we should welcome it on that
-ground alone. It helps at any rate to constitute for the talent manifest
-in “The Custom” a rare identity, so far should we have to go to seek
-another instance of the dry, or call it perhaps even the hard,
-intellectual touch in the soft, or call it perhaps even the humid,
-temperamental air; in other words of the masculine conclusion tending so
-to crown the feminine observation.
-
-If we mentioned Mr. Compton Mackenzie at the beginning of these
-reflections only to leave him waiting for some further appreciation,
-this is exactly because his case, to the most interesting effect, is no
-simple one, like two or three of our others, but on the contrary
-mystifying enough almost to stand by itself. What would be this striking
-young writer’s state of acquaintance and possession, and should we find
-it, on our recognition of it, to be all he is content to pitch forth,
-without discriminations or determinants, without motives or lights? Do
-“Carnival” and “Sinister Street” proceed from the theory of the slice or
-from the conception of the extract, “the extract flasked and fine,” the
-chemical process superseding the mechanical? Mr. Compton Mackenzie’s
-literary aspect, though decidedly that of youth, or that of experience,
-a great deal of young experience, in its freshness, offers the
-attraction of a complexity defiant of the prompt conclusion, really
-charms us by giving us something to wonder about. We literally find it
-not easy to say if there may not lurk in “Carnival,” for example, a
-selective sense more apprehensible, to a push of inquiry, than its
-overflooded surface, a real invitation to wade and upon which everything
-within the author’s ken appears poured out, would at first lead us to
-suspect. The question comes up in like fashion as to the distinctly more
-developed successor of that work, before which we in fact find questions
-multiply to a positive quickening of critical pleasure. We ask ourselves
-what “Sinister Street” may mean as a whole in spite of our sense of
-being brushed from the first by a hundred subordinate purposes, the
-succession and alternation of which seem to make after a fashion a plan,
-and which, though full of occasional design, yet fail to gather
-themselves for application or to converge to an idea. Any idea will
-serve, ever, that has held up its candle to composition—and it is
-perhaps because composition proposes itself under Mr. Compton
-Mackenzie’s energy on a scale well-nigh of the most prodigious that we
-must wait to see whither it tends. The question of what he may here mean
-“on the whole,” as we just said, is doubtless admonished to stand back
-till we be possessed of the whole. This interesting volume is but a
-first, committed up to its eyes to continuity and with an announced
-sequel to follow. The recital exhibits at the point we have reached the
-intimate experience of a boy at school and in his holidays, the
-amplification of which is to come with his terms and their breaks at a
-university; and the record will probably form a more squared and
-extended picture of life equally conditioned by the extremity of youth
-than we shall know where else to look for. Youth clearly has been Mr.
-Mackenzie’s saturation, as it has been Mr. Hugh Walpole’s, but we see
-this not as a subject (youth in itself is no specific subject, any more
-than age is,) but as matter for a subject and as requiring a motive to
-redeem it from the merely passive state of the slice. We are sure
-throughout both “Sinister Street” and “Carnival” of breathing the air of
-the extract, as we contentiously call it, only in certain of the rounded
-episodes strung on the loose cord as so many vivid beads, each of its
-chosen hue, and the series of which, even with differences of price
-between them, we take for a lively gage of performance to come. These
-episodes would be easy to cite; they are handsomely numerous and each
-strikes us as giving in its turn great salience to its motive; besides
-which each is in its turn “done” with an eminent sense and a remarkably
-straight hand for doing. They may well be cited together as both
-signally and finely symptomatic, for the literary gesture and the
-_bravura_ breadth with which such frequent medallions as the adventure
-on the boy’s part of the Catholic church at Bournemouth, as his
-experiment of the Benedictine house in Wiltshire, as his period of
-acquaintance with the esthetic _cénacle_ in London, as his relation with
-his chosen school friend under the intensity of boyish choosing, are
-ornamentally hung up, differ not so much in degree as in kind from any
-play of presentation that we mostly see elsewhere offered us. To which
-we might add other like matters that we lack space to enumerate, the
-scene, the aspect, the figure in motion tending always, under touches
-thick and strong, to emerge and flush, sound and strike, catch us in its
-truth. We have read “tales of school life” in which the boys more or
-less swarmed and sounded, but from which the masters have practically
-been quite absent, to the great weakening of any picture of the boyish
-consciousness, on which the magisterial fact is so heavily projected. If
-that is less true for some boys than for others, the “point” of Michael
-Fane is that for him it is truest. The types of masters have in
-“Sinister Street” both number and salience, rendered though they be
-mostly as grotesques—which effect we take as characterising the
-particular turn of mind of the young observer and discoverer
-commemorated.
-
-That he _is_ a discoverer is of the essence of his interest, a
-successful and resourceful young discoverer, even as the poor
-ballet-girl in “Carnival” is a tragically baffled and helpless one; so
-that what each of the works proposes to itself is a recital of the
-things discovered. Those thus brought to our view in the boy’s case are
-of much more interest, to our sense, than like matters in the other
-connection, thanks to his remarkable and living capacity; the heroine of
-“Carnival” is frankly too minute a vessel of experience for treatment on
-the scale on which the author has honoured her—she is done assuredly,
-but under multiplications of touch that become too much, in the narrow
-field, monotonies; and she leaves us asking almost as much what she
-exhibitionally means, what application resides in the accumulation of
-facts concerning her, as if she too were after all but a slice, or at
-the most but a slice _of_ a slice, and her history but one of the
-aspects, on her author’s part, of the condition of repleteness against
-the postulate of the entire adequacy of which we protest. So far as this
-record does affect us as an achieved “extract,” to reiterate our term,
-that result abides in its not losing its centre, which is its fidelity
-to the one question of her dolefully embarrassed little measure of life.
-We know to that extent with some intensity what her producer would be
-at, yet an element of the arbitrary hangs for us about the particular
-illustration—illustrations leaving us ever but half appreciative till
-we catch that one bright light in which they give out all they contain.
-This light is of course always for the author to set somewhere. Is it
-set then so much as it should be in “Sinister Street,” and is our
-impression of the promise of this recital one with a dawning divination
-of the illustrative card that Mr. Mackenzie may still have up his sleeve
-and that our after sense shall recognise as the last thing left on the
-table? By no means, we can as yet easily say, for if a boy’s experience
-has ever been given us for its face value simply, for what it is worth
-in mere recovered intensity, it is so given us here. Of all the
-saturations it can in fact scarce have helped being the most sufficient
-in itself, for it is exactly, where it is best, from beginning to end
-the remembered and reported thing, that thing alone, that thing existent
-in the field of memory, though gaining value too from the applied
-intelligence, or in other words from the lively talent, of the
-memoriser. The memoriser helps, he contributes, he completes, and what
-we have admired in him is that in the case of each of the pearls fished
-up by his dive—though indeed these fruits of the rummage are not all
-pearls—his mind has had a further iridescence to confer. It is the
-fineness of the iridescence that on such an occasion matters, and this
-appeal to our interest is again and again on Mr. Compton Mackenzie’s
-page of the happiest and the brightest. It is never more so than when we
-catch him, as we repeatedly do, in the act of positively caring for his
-expression as expression, positively providing for his phrase as a
-fondly foreseeing parent for a child, positively loving it in the light
-of what it may do for him—meeting revelations, that is, in what it may
-do, and appearing to recognise that the value of the offered thing, its
-whole relation to us, is created by the breath of language, that on such
-terms exclusively, for appropriation and enjoyment, we know it, and that
-any claimed independence of “form” on its part is the most abject of
-fallacies. Do these things mean that, moved by life, this interesting
-young novelist is even now uncontrollably on the way to style? We might
-cite had we space several symptoms, the very vividest, of that
-possibility; though such an appearance in the field of our general
-survey has against it presumptions enough to bring us surely back to our
-original contention—the scant degree in which that field has ever had
-to reckon with criticism.
-
-
-
-
- DUMAS THE YOUNGER
- 1895
-
-
-One of the things that most bring home his time of life to a man of
-fifty is the increase of the rate at which he loses his friends. Some
-one dies every week, some one dies every day, and if the rate be high
-among his coevals it is higher still in the generation that, on awaking
-to spectatorship, he found in possession of the stage. He begins to feel
-his own world, the world of his most vivid impressions, gradually become
-historical. He is present, and closely present, at the process by which
-legend grows up. He sees the friends in question pictured as only death
-can picture them—a master superior to the Rembrandts and Titians. They
-have been of many sorts and many degrees, they have been private and
-public, but they have had in common that they were the furniture of this
-first fresh world, the world in which associations are formed. That one
-by one they go is what makes the main difference in it. The landscape of
-life, in foreground and distance, becomes, as the painters say, another
-composition, another subject; and quite as much as the objects directly
-under our eyes we miss the features that have educated for us our sense
-of proportion.
-
-Among such features for the author of these lines the younger Dumas, who
-has just passed away, was in the public order long one of the most
-conspicuous. Suffused as he is already with the quick historic haze,
-fixed, for whatever term, in his ultimate value, he appeals to me, I
-must begin by declaring, as a party to one of these associations that
-have the savour of the prime. I knew him only in his work, but he is the
-object of an old-time sentiment for the beginning of which I have to go
-back absurdly far. He arrived early—he was so loudly introduced by his
-name. I am tempted to say that I knew him when he was young, but what I
-suppose I mean is that I knew him when I myself was. I knew him indeed
-when we both were, for I recall that in Paris, in distant days and
-undeveloped conditions, I was aware with perhaps undue and uncanny
-precocity of his first successes. There emerges in my memory from the
-night of time the image of a small boy walking in the Palais Royal with
-innocent American girls who were his cousins and wistfully hearing them
-relate how many times (they lived in Paris) they had seen Madame Doche
-in “La Dame aux Camélias” and what floods of tears she had made them
-weep. It was the first time I had heard of pockethandkerchiefs as a
-provision for the play. I had no remotest idea of the social position of
-the lady of the expensive flowers, and the artless objects of my envy
-had, in spite of their repeated privilege, even less of one; but her
-title had a strange beauty and her story a strange meaning—things that
-ever after were to accompany the name of the author with a faint yet
-rich echo. The younger Dumas, after all, was then not only relatively
-but absolutely young; the American infants, privileged and unprivileged,
-were only somewhat younger; the former going with their _bonne_, who
-must have enjoyed the adventure, to the “upper boxes” of the old
-Vaudeville of the Place de la Bourse, where later on I remember thinking
-Madame Fargueil divine. He was quite as fortunate moreover in his own
-designation as in that of his heroine; for it emphasised that bloom of
-youth (I don’t say bloom of innocence—a very different matter) which
-was the signal-note of the work destined, in the world at large, to
-bring him nine-tenths of his celebrity.
-
-Written at twenty-five “La Dame aux Camélias” remains in its combination
-of freshness and form, of the feeling of the springtime of life and the
-sense of the conditions of the theatre, a singular, an astonishing
-production. The author has had no time to part with his illusions, but
-has had full opportunity to master the most difficult of the arts.
-Consecrated as he was to this mastery he never afterwards showed greater
-adroitness than he had then done in keeping his knowledge and his
-_naïveté_ from spoiling each other. The play has been blown about the
-world at a fearful rate, but it has never lost its happy juvenility, a
-charm that nothing can vulgarise. It is all champagne and tears—fresh
-perversity, fresh credulity, fresh passion, fresh pain. We have each
-seen it both well done and ill done, and perhaps more particularly the
-latter—in strange places, in barbarous tongues, with Marguerite Gautier
-fat and Armand Duval old. I remember ages ago in Boston a version in
-which this young lady and this young gentleman were represented as
-“engaged”: that indeed for all I know may still be the form in which the
-piece most enjoys favour with the Anglo-Saxon public. Nothing makes any
-difference—it carries with it an April air: some tender young man and
-some coughing young woman have only to speak the lines to give it a
-great place among the love-stories of the world. I recollect coming out
-of the Gymnase one night when Madame Pierson had been the
-Marguerite—this was very long since—and giving myself up on the
-boulevard to a fine critical sense of what in such a composition was
-flimsy and what was false. Somehow, none the less, my fine critical
-sense never prevented my embracing the next opportunity to expose it to
-the same irritation; for I have been, I am happy to think to-day, a
-playgoer who, whatever else he may have had on his conscience, has never
-had the neglect of any chance to see this dramatist acted. Least of all,
-within a much shorter period, has it undermined one’s kindness to have
-had occasion to admire in connection with the piece such an artist for
-instance as Eleonora Duse. We have seen Madame Duse this year or two in
-her tattered translation, with few advantages, with meagre accessories
-and with one side of the character of the heroine scarcely touched at
-all—so little indeed that the Italian version joins hands with the
-American and the relation of Marguerite and Armand seems to present
-itself as a question of the consecrated even if not approved “union.”
-For this interesting actress, however, the most beautiful thing is
-always the great thing, and her performance—if seen on a fortunate
-evening—lives in the mind as a fine vindication of the play. I am not
-sure indeed that it is the very performance Dumas intended; but he lived
-long enough to have forgotten perhaps what that performance was. He
-might on some sides, I think, have accepted Madame Duse’s as a reminder.
-
-If I have stopped to be myself so much reminded, it is because after and
-outside of “La Dame aux Camélias” Dumas really never figured among us
-all again—a circumstance full of illustration of one of the most
-striking of our peculiarities, the capacity for granting a prodigious
-ear to some one manifestation of an author’s talent and caring nothing
-whatever for the others. It is solely the manifestation and never the
-talent that interests us, and nothing is stranger than the fact that no
-critic has ever explained on our behalf the system by which we hurl
-ourselves on a writer to-day and stare at him to-morrow as if we had
-never heard of him. It gives us the air of perpetually awaking from
-mistakes, but it renders obscure all our canons of judgment. A great
-force makes a great success, but a great force is furthermore no less a
-great force on Friday than on Monday. Was the reader a sorry dupe on the
-first day, or is the writer a wanton sacrifice on the second? That the
-public is intelligent on both occasions is a claim it can scarcely make:
-it can only choose between having its acuteness impugned or its manners
-condemned. At any rate if we have in England and the United States only
-the two alternatives of the roar of the market and the silence of the
-tomb the situation is apt to be different in France, where the quality
-that goes into a man’s work and gives it an identity is the source of
-the attention excited. It happens that the interest in the play of the
-genius is greater there than the “boom” of the particular hit, the
-concern primarily for the author rather than the subject, instead of, as
-among ourselves, primarily for the subject rather than the author. Is
-this because the French have been acute enough to reflect that authors
-comprehend subjects, but that subjects can unfortunately not be said to
-comprehend authors? Literature would be a merry game if the business
-were arranged in the latter fashion. However such a question may be
-answered, Dumas was in his own country, to the end, the force that, save
-in connection with his first play, he failed to become elsewhere; and if
-he was there much the most original worker in his field one of the
-incidental signs of his originality was that, despite our inveterate
-practice, in theatrical matters, of helping ourselves from our
-neighbour’s plate, he was inveterately not a convenience to us. We
-picked our morsels from the plates of smaller people—we never found on
-that of the author of “Le Fils Naturel” any we could swallow. He was not
-to our poor purpose, and I cannot help thinking that this helps a little
-to give his artistic measure. It would be a bad note for him now if we
-had found him amenable to that graceless game of which we show signs
-to-day of having grown ashamed, but which flourished for years in two
-imperturbable communities as the art of theatrical adaptation. A Dumas
-adaptable is a Dumas inconceivable; and in point of fact he was touched
-by the purveyors of the English-speaking stage only to prove fatal to
-them. If the history of so mean a traffic as the one here glanced at
-were worth writing it would throw light on some odd conceptions of the
-delicacy in the abused name of which it was carried on. It is all to the
-honour of our author’s seriousness that he was, in such conditions, so
-unmanageable; though one must of course hasten to add that this
-seriousness was not the only reason of it. There were several others,
-not undiscoverable, and the effect of the whole combination was, in view
-of the brilliant fortune of his productions at home and the eager
-foraging of English and American speculators, to place him on a footing
-all his own. He was of active interest among us only to individual
-observers—simply as one of the most devoted of whom I trace these few
-pages of commemoration.
-
-It takes some analysis, yet is not impossible, to explain why among the
-men of his time to whom the creative gift had been granted his image,
-for sundry such admirers, always presented him as somehow the happiest
-consciousness. They were perhaps not always aware of it, but now that he
-is gone they have a revelation of the place he occupied in the envious
-mind. This envy flowed doubtless, to begin with, from the sense of his
-extraordinarily firm grasp of his hard refractory art; the grasp that
-had put him into possession of it without fumblings or gropings made him
-canter away on the back of it the moment he had touched the stirrup. He
-had the air through all his career of a man riding a dangerous horse
-without ever being thrown. Every one else had a fall—he alone never
-really quitted the saddle, never produced a play that was not to stay to
-be revived and in the case of his comparative failures enjoy some sort
-of revenge, even to that of travelling in the repertory of great
-actresses round the globe. Such travels, moreover, much as they may
-please his shade, are far from having been the only felicities of his
-long career. The others strike me as so numerous that I scarcely indeed
-know where to begin to reckon them. Greatly even if oddly auspicious for
-instance was just his stark son-ship to his prodigious father, his
-having been launched with that momentum into the particular world in
-which he was to live. It was a privilege to make up for the legal
-irregularity attaching to his birth; we think of it really almost to
-wonder that it didn’t lift him on a still higher wave. His limitations,
-which one encounters with a sort of violence, were not to be overlooked;
-it expresses them in some degree to say that he was bricked up in his
-hard Parisianism, but it is also incontestable that some of them were
-much concerned in producing his firm and easy equilibrium. We
-understand, however, the trap they set for him when we reflect that a
-certain omniscience, a great breadth of horizon, may well have seemed to
-him to be transmitted, in his blood, from such a boundless fountain of
-life. What mattered to him the fact of a reach of reference that stopped
-at the _banlieue_, when experience had sat at his cradle in the shape
-not at all of a fairy godmother but of an immediate progenitor who was
-at once fabulous and familiar? He had been encompassed by all history in
-being held in such arms—it was an entrance into possession of more
-matters than he could even guess what to do with. The profit was all the
-greater as the son had the luxury of differing actively from the father,
-as well as that of actively admiring and, in a splendid sense, on all
-the becoming sides, those of stature, strength and health, vividly
-reproducing him. He had in relation to his special gift, his mastery of
-the dramatic form, a faculty of imagination as contracted as that of the
-author of “Monte Cristo” was boundless, but his moral sense on the other
-hand, as distinguished from that of his parent, was of the liveliest,
-was indeed of the most special and curious kind. The moral sense of the
-parent was to be found only in his good humour and his good health—the
-moral sense of a musketeer in love. This lack of adventurous vision, of
-the long flight and the joy of motion, was in the younger genius quite
-one of the conditions of his strength and luck, of his fine assurance,
-his sharp edge, his high emphasis, his state untroubled above all by
-things not within his too irregularly conditioned ken. The things close
-about him were the things he saw—there were alternatives, differences,
-opposites, of which he lacked so much as the suspicion. Nothing
-contributes more to the prompt fortune of an artist than some such
-positive and exclusive temper, the courage of his convictions, as we
-usually call it, the power to neglect something thoroughly, to abound
-aggressively in his own sense and express without reserve his own
-saturation. The saturation of the author of “Le Demi-Monde” was never
-far to seek. He was as native to Paris as a nectarine to a south wall.
-He would have fared ill if he had not had a great gift and Paris had not
-been a great city.
-
-It was another element of the happy mixture that he came into the world
-at the moment in all our time that was for a man of letters the most
-amusing and beguiling—the moment exactly when he could see the end of
-one era and the beginning of another and join hands luxuriously with
-each. This was an advantage to which it would have taken a genius more
-elastic to do full justice, but which must have made him feel himself
-both greatly related and inspiringly free. He sprang straight from the
-lap of full-grown romanticism; he was a boy, a privileged and initiated
-youth, when his father, when Victor Hugo, when Lamartine and Musset and
-Scribe and Michelet and Balzac and George Sand were at the high tide of
-production. He saw them all, knew them all, lived with them and made of
-them his profit, tasting just enough of the old concoction to understand
-the proportions in which the new should be mixed. He had above all in
-his father, for the purpose that was in him, a magnificent
-springboard—a background to throw into relief, as a ruddy sunset seems
-to make a young tree doubly bristle, a profile of another type. If it
-was not indispensable it was at any rate quite poetic justice that the
-successor to the name should be, in his conditions, the great casuist of
-the theatre. He had seen the end of an age of imagination, he had seen
-all that could be done and shown in the way of mere illustration of the
-passions. That the passions are always with us is a fact he had not the
-smallest pretension to shut his eyes to—they were to constitute the
-almost exclusive subject of his study. But he was to study them not for
-the pleasure, the picture, the poetry they offer; he was to study them
-in the interest of something quite outside of them, about which the
-author of “Antony” and “Kean,” about which Victor Hugo and Musset,
-Scribe and Balzac and even George Sand had had almost nothing to say. He
-was to study them from the point of view of the idea of the right and
-the wrong, of duty and conduct, and he was to this end to spend his
-artistic life with them and give a new turn to the theatre. He was in
-short to become, on the basis of a determined observation of the manners
-of his time and country, a professional moralist.
-
-There can scarcely be a better illustration of differences of national
-habit and attitude than the fact that while among his own people this is
-the character, as an operative force, borne by the author of “Le
-Demi-Monde” and “Les Idées de Madame Aubray,” so among a couple of
-others, in the proportion in which his reputation there has emerged from
-the vague, his most definite identity is that of a mere painter of
-indecent people and indecent doings. There are, as I have hinted,
-several reasons for the circumstance already noted, the failure of the
-attempt to domesticate him on the English-speaking stage; but one states
-the case fairly, I think, in saying that what accounts for half of it is
-our passion, in the presence of a work of art, for confounding the
-object, as the philosophers have it, with the subject, for losing sight
-of the idea in the vehicle, of the intention in the fable. Dumas is a
-dramatist as to whom nine playgoers out of ten would precipitately
-exclaim: “Ah, but you know, isn’t he dreadfully immoral?” Such are the
-lions in the path of reputation, such the fate, in an alien air, of a
-master whose main reproach in his native clime is the importunity and
-the rigour of his lesson. The real difference, I take it, is that
-whereas we like to be good the French like to be better. We like to be
-moral, they like to moralise. This helps us to understand the number of
-our innocent writers—writers innocent even of reflection, a practice of
-course essentially indelicate, inasmuch as it speedily brings us face to
-face with scandal and even with evil. It accounts doubtless also for the
-number of writers on the further side of the Channel who have made the
-journey once for all and to whom, in the dangerous quarter they have
-reached, it appears of the very nature of scandal and evil to be
-inquired about. The whole undertaking of such a writer as Dumas is,
-according to his light, to carry a particular, an esthetic form of
-investigation as far as it will stretch—to study, and study thoroughly,
-the bad cases. These bad cases were precisely what our managers and
-adapters, our spectators and critics would have nothing to do with. It
-defines indeed the separation that they should have been, in the light
-in which he presented them, precisely what made them for his own public
-exceptionally edifying. One of his great contentions is, for instance,
-that seduced girls should under all circumstances be married—by
-somebody or other, failing the seducer. This is a contention that, as we
-feel, barely concerns us, shut up as we are in the antecedent conviction
-that they should under no circumstances be seduced. He meets all the
-cases that, as we see him, we feel to have been spread out before him;
-meets them successively, systematically, at once with a great
-earnestness and a great wit. He is exuberantly sincere: his good faith
-sometimes obscures his humour, but nothing obscures his good faith. So
-he gives us in their order the unworthy brides who must be denounced,
-the prenuptial children who must be adopted, the natural sons who must
-be avenged, the wavering ladies who must be saved, the credulous fiancés
-who must be enlightened, the profligate wives who must be shot, the
-merely blemished ones who must be forgiven, the too vindictive ones who
-must be humoured, the venal young men who must be exposed, the
-unfaithful husbands who must be frightened, the frivolous fathers who
-must be pulled up and the earnest sons who must pull them. To enjoy his
-manner of dealing with such material we must grant him in every
-connection his full premise: that of the importunity of the phenomenon,
-the ubiquity of the general plight, the plight in which people are left
-by an insufficient control of their passions. We must grant him in fact
-for his didactic and dramatic purpose a great many things. These things,
-taken together and added to some others, constitute the luxurious terms
-on which I have spoken of him as appearing to the alien admirer to have
-practised his complicated art.
-
-When we speak of the passions in general we really mean, for the most
-part, the first of the number, the most imperious in its action and the
-most interesting in its consequences, the passion that unites and
-divides the sexes. It is the passion, at any rate, to which Dumas as
-dramatist and pamphleteer mainly devoted himself: his plays, his
-prefaces, his manifestos, his few tales roll exclusively on the special
-relation of the man to the woman and the woman to the man, and on the
-dangers of various sorts, even that of ridicule, with which this
-relation surrounds each party. This element of danger is what I have
-called the general plight, for when our author considers the sexes as
-united and divided it is with the predominance of the division that he
-is principally struck. It is not an unfair account of him to say that
-life presented itself to him almost wholly as a fierce battle between
-the woman and the man. He sides now with one and now with the other; the
-former combatant, in her own country, however, was far from pronouncing
-him sympathetic. His subject at all events is what we of English race
-call the sexes and what they in France call the sex. To talk of love is
-to talk, as we have it, of men and women; to talk of love is, as the
-French have it, to _parler femmes_. From every play of our author’s we
-receive the impression that to _parler femmes_ is its essential and
-innermost purpose. It is not assuredly singular that a novelist, a
-dramatist _should_ talk of love, or even should talk of nothing else:
-what, in addition to his adroitness and his penetration, makes the
-position special for Dumas is that he talks of it—and in the form of
-address most associated with pure diversion—altogether from the anxious
-point of view of the legislator and the citizen.
-
-“Diane de Lys,” which immediately followed “La Dame aux Camélias,” is,
-so far as I can recall it, a picture pure and simple, a pretty story, as
-we say, sufficiently romantic and rather long-winded; but with “Le
-Demi-Monde” began his rich argumentative series, concluding only the
-other day with “Denise” and “Francillon,” the series in which every
-theme is a proposition to be established and every proposition a form of
-duty to be faced. The only variation that I can recollect in the list is
-the disinterested portraiture of “Le Père Prodigue,” with its remarkable
-presentation, in the figure of Albertine de la Borde, of vice
-domesticated and thrifty, keeping early hours and books in double-entry,
-and its remarkable illustration, I may further add, of all that was the
-reverse of infallible in the author’s power to distinguish between
-amiable infirmities and ugly ones. The idea on which “Le Père Prodigue”
-rests belongs more distinctively to the world of comedy than almost any
-other situation exhibited in the series; but what are we to say of the
-selection, for comic effect, of a fable of which the principal feature
-is a son’s not unfounded suspicion of the attitude of his own father to
-his own wife? The father is the image of a nature profusely frivolous,
-but we scent something more frivolous still in the way his frivolity is
-disposed of. At the time the play was produced the spectator thought
-himself warranted in recognising in this picture the personal character
-(certainly not the personal genius) of the elder Dumas. If the spectator
-_was_ so warranted, that only helps, I think, to make “Le Père Prodigue”
-a stumbling-block for the critic—make it, I mean, an exhibition of the
-author off his guard and a fact to be taken into account in an estimate
-of his moral reach; a moral reach, for the rest, at all events, never
-impugned by any obliquity in facing that conception of the duty imposed
-which it is the main source of the writer’s interest in the figured
-circumstances that they may be held to impose it, and which he was apt
-to set forth more dogmatically, or at least more excitedly, in an
-occasional and polemical pamphlet. These pamphlets, I may
-parenthetically say, strike me as definitely compromising to his
-character as artist. What shines in them most is the appetite for a
-discussion, or rather the appetite for a conclusion, and the passion for
-a simplified and vindictive justice. But I have never found it easy to
-forgive a writer who, in possession of a form capable of all sorts of
-splendid application, puts on this resource the slight of using
-substitutes for it at will, as if it is good but for parts of the cause.
-If it is good for anything it is good for the whole demonstration, and
-if it is not good for the whole demonstration it is good for
-nothing—nothing that _he_ is concerned with. If the picture of life
-doesn’t cover the ground what in the world _can_ cover it? The fault can
-only be the painter’s. Woe, in the esthetic line, to any example that
-requires the escort of precept. It is like a guest arriving to dine
-accompanied by constables. Our author’s prefaces and treatises show a
-mistrust of disinterested art. He would have declared probably that his
-art was not disinterested; to which our reply would be that it had then
-no right to put us off the scent and prepare deceptions for us by coming
-within an ace of being as good as if it were.
-
-The merits of the play—that is of the picture, in these hands—are
-sometimes singularly independent of the lesson conveyed. The merits of
-the lesson conveyed are in other cases much more incontestable than
-those of the picture, than the production of the air of life or the
-happiest observance of the conditions of the drama. The conclusion, the
-prescription, of “Denise” strikes me (to give an instance) as singularly
-fine, but the subject belongs none the less to the hapless order of
-those that fail to profit by the dramatic form though they have
-sacrificed the highest advantages of the literary. A play—even the
-best—pays so tremendously by what it essentially can not do for the
-comparatively little it practically can, that a mistake in the
-arithmetic of this positive side speedily produces a wide deviation. In
-other words the spectator, and still more the reader, sees such a theme
-as that of “Denise,” which may be described as the evolution of a view,
-presented most in accordance with its nature when the attempt is not
-made to present it in accordance with the nature of the theatre. It is
-the nature of the theatre to give its victims, in exchange for
-melancholy concessions, a vision of the immediate not to be enjoyed in
-any other way; and consequently when the material offered it to deal
-with is not the immediate, but the contingent, the derived, the
-hypothetic, our melancholy concessions have been made in vain and the
-inadequacy of the form comes out. In “Francillon,” partly perhaps
-because the thing has nothing to do with anybody’s duty—least of all
-with the heroine’s, which would be surely to keep off the streets—the
-form happens to be remarkably adequate. The question is of the liberty
-of the protagonist, the right of a wronged and indignant wife to work
-out her husband’s chastisement in the same material as his sin, work it
-out moreover on the spot, as a blow is repaid by a blow, exacting an eye
-for an eye and a tooth for a tooth. The play has all the kinds of life
-that the theatre can achieve, because in the first place Dumas, though
-acting as the wife’s advocate, has had the intelligence to give us a
-solution which is only a scenic sequence and not a real, still less a
-“philosophic,” one; and because in the second it deals with emotions and
-impulses, which can be shown by the short measure, and not with
-reflections and aspirations, which can be shown but by the long.
-
-I am not pretending to take things in turn, but a critic with a generous
-memory of the spell of Dumas should not, however pressed, neglect to
-strain a point for “Le Demi-Monde.” I doubt my competence, however, to
-consider that admirable work scientifically—I find myself too condemned
-to consider it sentimentally. A critic is lost, as a critic, from the
-moment his feeling about the worse parts of the matter he investigates
-fails to differ materially from his feeling about the better. That is an
-attitude even less enlightened than being unconscious of the blemishes;
-all the same it must serve me for the present case. I am perfectly aware
-that Olivier de Jalin is a man of no true delicacy; in spite of which I
-take when I see them represented the liveliest interest in his
-proceedings. I am perfectly aware that Madame d’Ange, with her _calme
-infernal_, as George Sand calls it, is tainted and tortuous; in spite of
-which my imagination quite warms to Madame d’Ange. Perhaps I should
-indeed rather say that this interest and this sympathy have for their
-object the great total of the play. It is the member of the series in
-which Dumas first took up the scales in one hand and the sword in the
-other, and it is a wonderful piece of work, wonderful in kind of
-maturity, for a man of thirty. It has all the easy amplitude we call
-authority. I won’t pretend to say what I think, here, of the author’s
-justice, and if I happen to think ill of it I won’t pretend to care. I
-see the thing through too many old memories, old echoes, old charms. In
-the light of the admirable acting of ancient days, of the faded image of
-the exquisite Desclée, of a dim recollection even of the prehistoric
-Rose Chéri and of Mademoiselle Delaporte, it represents too many of the
-reasons why I saw him always ideally triumphant. To practise an art
-which for its full, its rich effect depended on interpretation, and to
-be able to do one’s work with an eye on interpretation of that
-quality—this had in common with supreme bliss the element at any rate
-of being attainable only by the elect. It partook of a peace the world
-cannot give. To be a moralist with the aid of Croizette, a philosopher
-with the aid of Delaunay, an Academician, even, with the aid of
-Bartet—such things suggested an almost equivocal union of virtue and
-success. One had never seen virtue so agreeable to one’s self, nor
-success so useful to others. One had never seen a play that was a model
-so alive in spite of it. Models in the theatre were apt to be dead and
-vivacities vulgar. One had never above all seen on the stage a picture
-so conformable to deep pictorial art, a drama so liberally, gradually,
-scientifically flushed with its action. Beautiful in “Le Demi-Monde” is
-the way the subject quietly, steadily, strongly expands from within.
-
-It was always the coercive force that his tone gave one the strongest
-sense of life, and it remains the interesting thing that this element in
-Dumas abounds in spite of not being fed from the source that we usually
-assume to be the richest. It was not fed from the imagination, for his
-imagination, by no means of the great plastic sort, has left us a
-comparatively small heritage of typical figures. His characters are all
-pointed by observation, they are clear notes in the concert, but not one
-of them has known the little invisible push that, even when shyly and
-awkwardly administered, makes the puppet, in spite of the string, walk
-off by himself and quite “cut,” if the mood take him, that distant
-relation his creator. They are always formal with this personage and
-thoroughly conscious and proud of him; there is a charm of mystery and
-poetry and oddity, a glory of unexpectedness, that they consistently
-lack. Their life, and that, in each case, of the whole story (quite the
-most wonderful part of this) is simply the author’s own life, his high
-vitality, his very presence and temperament and voice. They do more for
-him even than they do for the subject, and he himself is at last
-accordingly the most vivid thing in every situation. He keeps it at
-arm’s length because he has the instinct of the dramatist and the
-conscience of the artist, but we feel all the while that his face is
-bigger than his mask. Nothing about his work is more extraordinary than
-this manner in which his personality pervades without spoiling it the
-most detached and most impersonal of literary forms. The reasons for
-such an impunity are first that his precautions, the result of a great
-intelligence, were so effective, and second that his personality, the
-result of a great affiliation, was so robust. It may be said that the
-precautions were not effective if the man himself was what one most
-enjoyed in the play. The only answer to that can be that I speak merely
-for myself and for the fresher sensibility of the happy time. Other
-admirers found certainly other things; what I found most was a tall
-figure in muscular motion and the sense of a character that had made
-admirably free with life. If it was mainly as an unabashed observer that
-he had made free, and if the life supplied was much of it uncommonly
-queer, that never diminished the action of his hard masculinity and his
-fine intellectual brutality. There was an easy competence in it all, and
-a masterful experience, and a kind of vicarious courage. In particular
-there was a real genius for putting all persons—especially all bad
-ones—very much in their place. Then it was all, for another bribe, so
-copious and so close, so sustained and so quiet, with such fascinating
-unities and complex simplicities and natural solutions. It was the
-breath of the world and the development of an art.
-
-All the good, however, that I recollect thinking of Dumas only reminds
-me how little I desired that my remarks in general should lead me into
-vain discriminations. There are some indeed that are not vain—at least
-they help us to understand. He has a noble strain of force, a fulness of
-blood that has permitted him to be tapped without shrinking. We must
-speak of him in the present tense, as we always speak of the masters.
-The theatre of his time, wherever it has been serious, has on the ground
-of general method lived on him; wherever it has not done so it has not
-lived at all. To pretend to be too shocked to profit by him was a way of
-covering up its levity, but there was no escaping its fate. He was the
-kind of artistic influence that is as inevitable as a medical specific:
-you may decline it from black bottle to-day—you will take it from a
-green bottle to-morrow. The energy that went forth blooming as Dumas has
-come back grizzled as Ibsen, and would under the latter form, I am sure,
-very freely acknowledge its debt. A critic whose words meet my eyes as I
-write very justly says that: “Just as we have the novel before Balzac
-and the novel after Balzac, the poetry that preceded Victor Hugo and the
-poetry that followed him, so we have the drama before Alexandre Dumas
-and the drama after him.” He has left his strong hand upon it; he
-remodelled it as a vehicle, he refreshed it as an art. His passion for
-it was obviously great, but there would be a high injustice to him in
-not immediately adding that his interest in the material it dealt with,
-in his subject, his question, his problem, was greater still than this
-joy of the craftsman. That might well be, but there are celebrated cases
-in which it has not been. The largest quality in Dumas was his immense
-concern about life—his sense of human character and human fate as
-commanding and controllable things. To do something on their behalf was
-paramount for him, and _what_ to do in his own case clear: what else but
-act upon the conscience as violently as he could, and with the
-remarkable weapons that Providence had placed within his grasp and for
-which he was to show his gratitude by a perfectly intrepid application?
-These weapons were three: a hard rare wit, not lambent like a flame, but
-stiff and straight like an arrow from a crossbow; a perception not less
-rare of some of the realities of the particular human tendency about
-which most falsities have clustered; and lastly that native instinct for
-the conditions of dramatic presentation without which any attempt to
-meet them is a helpless groping.
-
-It must always be remembered of him that he was the observer of a
-special order of things, the moralist of a particular relation as the
-umpire of a yacht-race is the legislator of a particular sport. His
-vision and his talent, as I have said, were all for the immediate, for
-the manners and the practices he himself was drenched with: he had none
-of the faculty that scents from afar, that wings away and dips beyond
-the horizon. There are moments when a reader not of his own race feels
-that he simplifies almost absurdly. There are too many things he didn’t
-after all guess, too many cases he didn’t after all provide for. He has
-a certain odour of bad company that almost imperils his distinction.
-This was doubtless the deepest of the reasons why among ourselves he
-flourished so scantly: we felt ourselves to be of a world in which the
-elements were differently mixed, the proportions differently marked, so
-that the tables of our law would have to be differently graven. His very
-earnestness was only a hindrance—he might have had more to say to us if
-he had consented to have less application. This produced the curious
-dryness, the obtrusive economy of his drama—the hammered sharpness of
-every outline, the metallic ring of every sound. His terrible knowledge
-suggested a kind of uniform—gilt buttons, a feathered hat and a little
-official book; it was almost like an irruption of the police. The most
-general masters are the poets, with all the things they blessedly don’t
-hold for so very certain and all the things they blessedly and
-preferably invent. It is true that Dumas was splendid, in his way,
-exactly because he was not vague: his concentration, all confidence and
-doctrine and epigram, is the explanation of his extraordinary force.
-That force is his abiding quality: one feels that he was magnificently a
-man—that he stands up high and sees straight and speaks loud. It is his
-great temperament, undiminished by what it lacks, that endears him to
-his admirers. It made him still of the greater race and played well its
-part in its time—so well that one thinks of him finally as perhaps not,
-when all is said, of the very happiest group, the group of those for
-whom in the general affection there is yet more to come. He had an
-immense reverberation—he practised the art that makes up for being the
-most difficult by being the most acclaimed. There is no postponed poetic
-justice for those who have had everything. He was seconded in a manner
-that must have made success a double delight. There are indications that
-the dramatist of the future will be less and less elated. He may well
-become so if he is to see himself less and less interpreted.
-
-
-
-
- THE NOVEL IN “THE RING AND THE BOOK”[8]
- 1912
-
-
-If on such an occasion as this—even with our natural impulse to shake
-ourselves free of reserves—some sharp choice between the dozen
-different aspects of one of the most copious of our poets becomes a
-prime necessity, though remaining at the same time a great difficulty,
-so in respect to the most voluminous of his works the admirer is
-promptly held up, as we have come to call it; finds himself almost
-baffled by alternatives. “The Ring and the Book” is so vast and so
-essentially gothic a structure, spreading and soaring and branching at
-such a rate, covering such ground, putting forth such pinnacles and
-towers and brave excrescences, planting its transepts and chapels and
-porticos, its clustered hugeness or inordinate muchness, that with any
-first approach we but walk vaguely and slowly, rather bewilderedly,
-round and round it, wondering at what point we had best attempt such
-entrance as will save our steps and light our uncertainty, most enable
-us to reach our personal chair, our indicated chapel or shrine, when
-once within. For it is to be granted that to this inner view the
-likeness of the literary monument to one of the great religious gives
-way a little, sustains itself less than in the first, the affronting
-mass; unless we simply figure ourselves, under the great roof, looking
-about us through a splendid thickness and dimness of air, an
-accumulation of spiritual presences or unprofaned mysteries, that makes
-our impression heavily general—general only—and leaves us helpless for
-reporting on particulars. The particulars for our purpose have thus
-their identity much rather in certain features of the twenty
-faces—either of one or of another of these—that the structure turns to
-the outer day and that we can, as it were, sit down before and consider
-at our comparative ease. I say comparative advisedly, for I cling to the
-dear old tradition that Browning is “difficult”—which we were all
-brought up on and which I think we should, especially on a rich
-retrospective day like this, with the atmosphere of his great career
-settling upon us as much as possible, feel it a shock to see break down
-in too many places at once. Selecting my ground, by your kind
-invitation, for sticking in and planting before you, to flourish so far
-as it shall, my little sprig of bay, I have of course tried to measure
-the quantity of ease with which our material may on that noted spot
-allow itself to be treated. There are innumerable things in “The Ring
-and the Book”—as the comprehensive image I began with makes it needless
-I should say; and I have been above all appealed to by the possibility
-that one of these, pursued for a while through the labyrinth, but at
-last overtaken and then more or less confessing its identity, might have
-yielded up its best essence as a grateful theme under some fine strong
-economy of _prose_ treatment. So here you have me talking at once of
-prose and seeking that connection to help out my case.
-
-From far back, from my first reading of these volumes, which took place
-at the time of their disclosure to the world, when I was a fairly young
-person, the sense, almost the pang, of the novel they might have
-constituted sprang sharply from them; so that I was to go on through the
-years almost irreverently, all but quite profanely if you will, thinking
-of the great loose and uncontrolled composition, the great heavy-hanging
-cluster of related but unreconciled parts, as a fiction of the so-called
-historic type, that is as a suggested study of the manners and
-conditions from which our own have more or less traceably issued, just
-tragically spoiled—or as a work of art, in other words, smothered in
-the producing. To which I hasten to add my consciousness of the scant
-degree in which such a fresh start from our author’s documents, such a
-reprojection of them, wonderful documents as they can only have been,
-may claim a critical basis. Conceive me as simply astride of my
-different fancy, my other dream, of the matter—which bolted with me, as
-I have said, at the first alarm.
-
-Browning worked in this connection literally _upon_ documents; no page
-of his long story is more vivid and splendid than that of his find of
-the Book in the litter of a market-stall in Florence and the swoop of
-practised perception with which he caught up in it a treasure. Here was
-a subject stated to the last ounce of its weight, a living and breathing
-record of facts pitiful and terrible, a mass of matter bristling with
-revelations and yet at the same time wrapped over with layer upon layer
-of contemporary appreciation; which appreciation, in its turn, was a
-part of the wealth to be appreciated. What our great master saw was his
-situation founded, seated there in positively packed and congested
-significance, though by just so much as it was charged with meanings and
-values were those things undeveloped and unexpressed. They looked up at
-him, even in that first flush and from their market-stall, and said to
-him, in their compressed compass, as with the muffled rumble of a
-slow-coming earthquake, “Express us, express us, immortalise us as we’ll
-immortalise _you_!”—so that the terms of the understanding were so far
-cogent and clear. It was an understanding, on their side, with the poet;
-and since that poet had produced “Men and Women,” “Dramatic Lyrics,”
-“Dramatis Personæ” and sundry plays—we needn’t even foist on him
-“Sordello”—he could but understand in his own way. That way would have
-had to be quite some other, we fully see, had he been by habit and
-profession not just the lyric, epic, dramatic commentator, the
-extractor, to whatever essential potency and redundancy, of the moral of
-the fable, but the very fabulist himself, the inventor and projector,
-layer down of the postulate and digger of the foundation. I doubt if we
-have a precedent for this energy of appropriation of a deposit of
-_stated_ matter, a block of sense already in position and requiring not
-to be shaped and squared and caused any further to solidify, but rather
-to suffer disintegration, be pulled apart, melted down, hammered, by the
-most characteristic of the poet’s processes, to powder—dust of gold and
-silver, let us say. He was to apply to it his favourite system—that of
-looking at his subject from the point of view of a curiosity almost
-sublime in its freedom, yet almost homely in its method, and of
-smuggling as many more points of view together into that one as the
-fancy might take him to smuggle, on a scale on which even he had never
-before applied it; this with a courage and a confidence that, in
-presence of all the conditions, conditions many of them arduous and arid
-and thankless even to defiance, we can only pronounce splendid, and of
-which the issue was to be of a proportioned monstrous magnificence.
-
-The one definite forecast for this product would have been that it
-should figure for its producer as a poem—as if he had simply said, “I
-embark at any rate for the Golden Isles”; everything else was of the
-pure incalculable, the frank voyage of adventure. To what extent the
-Golden Isles were in fact to be reached is a matter we needn’t pretend,
-I think, absolutely to determine; let us feel for ourselves and as we
-will about it—either see our adventurer, disembarked bag and baggage
-and in possession, plant his flag on the highest eminence within his
-circle of sea, or, on the other hand, but watch him approach and beat
-back a little, tack and turn and stand off, always fairly in sight of
-land, catching rare glimpses and meeting strange airs, but not quite
-achieving the final _coup_ that annexes the group. He returns to us
-under either view all scented and salted with his measure of contact,
-and that for the moment is enough for us—more than enough for me at any
-rate, engaged for your beguilement in this practical relation of
-snuffing up what he brings. He brings, however one puts it, a detailed
-report, which is but another word for a story; and it is with his story,
-his offered, not his borrowed one—a very different matter—that I am
-concerned. We are probably most of us so aware of its general content
-that if I sum this up I may do so briefly. The Book of the Florentine
-rubbish-heap is the full account (as full accounts were conceived in
-those days) of the trial before the Roman courts, with inquiries and
-judgments by the Tuscan authorities intermixed, of a certain Count Guido
-Franceschini of Arezzo, decapitated, in company with four
-confederates—these latter hanged—on February 22, 1698, for the murder
-of his young wife Pompilia Comparini and her ostensible parents, Pietro
-and Violante of that ilk.
-
-The circumstances leading to this climax were primarily his marriage to
-Pompilia, some years before, in Rome—she being then but in her
-thirteenth year—under the impression, fostered in him by the elder
-pair, that she was their own child and on this head heiress to moneys
-settled on them from of old in the event of their having a child. They
-had in fact had none, and had, in substitution, invented, so to speak,
-Pompilia, the luckless base-born baby of a woman of lamentable character
-easily induced to part with her for cash. They bring up the hapless
-creature as their daughter, and as their daughter they marry her, in
-Rome, to the middle-aged and impecunious Count Guido, a rapacious and
-unscrupulous fortune-seeker by whose superior social position, as we
-say, dreadfully _decaduto_ though he be, they are dazzled out of all
-circumspection. The girl, innocent, ignorant, bewildered, scared and
-purely passive, is taken home by her husband to Arezzo, where she is at
-first attended by Pietro and Violante and where the direst
-disappointment await the three. Count Guido proves the basest of men and
-his home a place of terror and of torture, from which at the age of
-seventeen, and shortly prior to her giving birth to an heir to the
-house, such as it is, she is rescued by a pitying witness of her misery,
-Canon Caponsacchi, a man of the world and adorning it, yet in holy
-orders, as men of the world in Italy might then be, who clandestinely
-helps her, at peril of both their lives, back to Rome, and of whom it is
-attested that he has had no other relation with her but this of
-distinguished and all-disinterested friend in need. The pretended
-parents have at an early stage thrown up their benighted game, fleeing
-from the rigour of their dupe’s domestic rule, disclosing to him
-vindictively the part they have played and the consequent failure of any
-profit to him through his wife, and leaving him in turn to wreak his
-spite, which has become infernal, on the wretched Pompilia. He pursues
-her to Rome, on her eventual flight, and overtakes her, with her
-companion, just outside the gates; but having, by the aid of the local
-powers, reachieved possession of her, he contents himself for the time
-with procuring her sequestration in a convent, from which, however, she
-is presently allowed to emerge in view of the near birth of her child.
-She rejoins Pietro and Violante, devoted to her, oddly enough, through
-all their folly and fatuity; and under their roof, in a lonely Roman
-suburb, her child comes into the world. Her husband meanwhile, hearing
-of her release, gives way afresh to the fury that had not at the climax
-of his former pursuit taken full effect; he recruits a band of four of
-his young tenants or farm-labourers and makes his way, armed, like his
-companions, with knives, to the door behind which three of the parties
-to all the wrong done him, as he holds, then lurk. He pronounces, after
-knocking and waiting, the name of Caponsacchi; upon which, as the door
-opens, Violante presents herself. He stabs her to death on the spot with
-repeated blows—like her companions she is off her guard; and he throws
-himself on each of these with equal murderous effect. Pietro, crying for
-mercy, falls second beneath him; after which he attacks his wife, whom
-he literally hacks to death. She survives, by a miracle, long enough, in
-spite of all her wounds, to testify; which testimony, as may be
-imagined, is not the least precious part of the case. Justice is on the
-whole, though deprecated and delayed, what we call satisfactory; the
-last word is for the Pope in person, Innocent XII. Pignatelli, at whose
-deliberation, lone and supreme, on Browning’s page, we splendidly
-assist; and Count Guido and his accomplices, bloodless as to the act
-though these appear to have been, meet their discriminated doom.
-
-That is the bundle of facts, accompanied with the bundle of proceedings,
-legal, ecclesiastical, diplomatic and other, _on_ the facts, that our
-author, of a summer’s day, made prize of; but our general temptation, as
-I say—out of which springs this question of the other values of
-character and effect, the other completeness of picture and drama, that
-the confused whole might have had for us—is a distinctly different
-thing. The difference consists, you see, to begin with, in the very
-breath of our poet’s genius, already, and so inordinately, at play on
-them from the first of our knowing them. And it consists in the second
-place of such an extracted sense of the whole, which becomes, after the
-most extraordinary fashion, bigger by the extraction, immeasurably
-bigger than even the most cumulative weight of the mere crude evidence,
-that our choice of how to take it all is in a manner determined for us:
-we can only take it as tremendously interesting, interesting not only in
-itself but with the great added interest, the dignity and authority and
-beauty, of Browning’s general perception of it. We can’t not accept
-this, and little enough on the whole do we want not to: it sees us, with
-its tremendous push, that of its poetic, esthetic, historic, psychologic
-shoulder (one scarce knows how to name it), so far on our way. Yet all
-the while we are in presence not at all of an achieved form, but of a
-mere preparation for one, though on the hugest scale; so that, you see,
-we are no more than decently attentive with our question: “Which of them
-all, of the various methods of casting the wondrously mixed metal, is
-he, as he goes, preparing?” Well, as he keeps giving and giving, in
-immeasurable plenty, it is in our selection from it all and our picking
-it over that we seek, and to whatever various and unequal effect find,
-our account. He works over his vast material, and we then work _him_
-over, though not availing ourselves, to this end, of a grain he himself
-doesn’t somehow give us; and there we are.
-
-I admit that my faith in my particular contention would be a degree
-firmer and fonder if there didn’t glimmer through our poet’s splendid
-hocus-pocus just the hint of one of those flaws that sometimes deform
-the fair face of a subject otherwise generally appealing or
-promising—of such a subject in especial as may have been submitted to
-us, possibly even with the pretension to impose it, in too complete a
-shape. The idea but half hinted—when it is a very good one—is apt to
-contain the germ of happier fruit than the freight of the whole branch,
-waved at us or dropped into our lap, very often proves. This happens
-when we take over, as the phrase is, established data, take them over
-from existing records and under some involved obligation to take them as
-they stand. That drawback rests heavily for instance on the so-called
-historic fiction—so beautiful a case it is of a muddlement of
-terms—and is just one of the eminent reasons why the embarrassed Muse
-of that form, pulled up again and again, and the more often the fine
-intelligence invokes her, by the need of a superior harmony which shall
-be after all but a superior truth, catches up her flurried skirts and
-makes her saving dash for some gap in the hedge of romance. Now the flaw
-on this so intensely expressive face, that of the general _donnée_ of
-the fate of Pompilia, is that amid the variety of forces at play about
-her the unity of the situation isn’t, by one of those large straight
-ideal gestures on the part of the Muse, handed to us at a stroke. The
-question of the whereabouts of the unity of a group of data subject to
-be wrought together into a thing of art, the question in other words of
-the point at which the various implications of interest, no matter how
-many, _most_ converge and interfuse, becomes always, by my sense of the
-affair, quite the first to be answered; for according to the answer
-shapes and fills itself the very vessel of that beauty—the beauty,
-exactly, _of_ interest, of maximum interest, which is the ultimate
-extract of any collocation of facts, any picture of life, and the finest
-aspect of any artistic work. Call a novel a picture of life as much as
-we will; call it, according to one of our recent fashions, a slice, or
-even a chunk, even a “bloody” chunk, of life, a rough excision from that
-substance as superficially cut and as summarily served as possible, it
-still fails to escape this exposure to appreciation, or in other words
-to criticism, that it has had to be selected, selected under some sense
-for something; and the unity of the exhibition should meet us, does meet
-us if the work be done, at the point at which that sense is most patent.
-If the slice or the chunk, or whatever we call it, if _it_ isn’t “done,”
-as we say—and as it so often declines to be—the work itself of course
-isn’t likely to be; and there we may dismiss it.
-
-The first thing we do is to cast about for some centre in our field;
-seeing that, for such a purpose as ours, the subject might very nearly
-go a-begging with none more definite than the author has provided for
-it. I find that centre in the embracing consciousness of Caponsacchi,
-which, coming to the rescue of our question of treatment, of our search
-for a point of control, practically saves everything, and shows itself
-moreover the only thing that _can_ save. The more we ask of any other
-part of our picture that it shall exercise a comprehensive function, the
-more we see that particular part inadequate; as inadequate even in the
-extraordinarily magnified range of spirit and reach of intelligence of
-the atrocious Franceschini as in the sublime passivity and plasticity of
-the childish Pompilia, educated to the last point though she be indeed
-by suffering, but otherwise so untaught that she can neither read nor
-write. The magnified state is in this work still more than elsewhere the
-note of the intelligence, of any and every faculty of thought, imputed
-by our poet to his creatures; and it takes a great mind, one of the
-greatest, we may at once say, to make these persons express and confess
-themselves to such an effect of intellectual splendour. He resorts
-primarily to _their_ sense, their sense of themselves and of everything
-else they know, to exhibit them, and has for this purpose to keep them,
-and to keep them persistently and inexhaustibly, under the fixed lens of
-his prodigious vision. He this makes out in them boundless treasures of
-truth—truth even when it happens to be, as in the case of Count Guido,
-but a shining wealth of constitutional falsity. Of the extent to which
-he may after this fashion unlimitedly draw upon them his exposure of
-Count Guido, which goes on and on, though partly, I admit, by repeating
-itself, is a wondrous example. It is not too much to say of
-Pompilia—Pompilia pierced with twenty wounds, Pompilia on her
-death-bed, Pompilia but seventeen years old and but a fortnight a
-mother—that she _acquires_ an intellectual splendour just by the fact
-of the vast covering charity of imagination with which her recording,
-our commemorated, avenger, never so as in this case an avenger of the
-wronged beautiful things in life, hangs over and breathes upon her. We
-see her come out to him, and the extremely remarkable thing is that we
-see it, on the whole, without doubting that it might just have been.
-Nothing could thus be more interesting, however it may at moments and in
-places puzzle us, than the impunity, on our poet’s part, of most of
-these overstretchings of proportion, these violations of the immediate
-appearance. Browning is deep down below the immediate with the first
-step of his approach; he has vaulted over the gate, is already far
-afield and never, so long as we watch him, has occasion to fall back. We
-wonder, for, after all, the real is his quest, the very ideal of the
-real, the real most finely mixed with life, which _is_ in the last
-analysis the ideal; and we know, with our dimmer vision, no such reality
-as a Franceschini fighting for his life, fighting for the vindication of
-his baseness, embodying his squalor, with an audacity of wit, an
-intensity of colour, a variety of speculation and illustration, that
-represent well-nigh the maximum play of the human mind. It is in like
-sort scarce too much to say of the exquisite Pompilia that on her part
-intelligence and expression are disengaged to a point at which the
-angels may well begin to envy her; and all again without our once
-wincing so far as our consistently liking to see and hear and believe is
-concerned. Caponsacchi regales us, of course, with the rarest fruit of a
-great character, a great culture and a great case; but Caponsacchi is
-acceptedly and naturally, needfully and illustratively, splendid. He
-_is_ the soul of man at its finest—having passed through the smoky
-fires of life and emerging clear and high. Greatest of all the spirits
-exhibited, however, is that of the more than octogenarian Pope, at whose
-brooding, pondering, solitary vigil, by the end of a hard grey winter
-day in the great bleak waiting Vatican—“in the plain closet where he
-does such work”—we assist as intimately as at every other step of the
-case, and on whose grand meditation we heavily hang. But the Pope
-strikes us at first—though indeed perhaps only at first—as too high
-above the whole connection functionally and historically for us to place
-him within it dramatically. Our novel faces provisionally the question
-of dispensing with him, as it dispenses with the amazing, bristling, all
-too indulgently presented Roman advocates on either side of the case,
-who combine to put together the most formidable monument we possess to
-Browning’s active curiosity and the liveliest proof of his almost
-unlimited power to give on his readers’ nerves without giving on his
-own.
-
-What remains with us all this time, none the less, is the effect of
-magnification, the exposure of each of these figures, in its degree, to
-that iridescent wash of personality, of temper and faculty, that our
-author ladles out to them, as the copious share of each, from his own
-great reservoir of spiritual health, and which makes us, as I have
-noted, seek the reason of a perpetual anomaly. Why, bristling so with
-references to _him_ rather than with references to each other or to any
-accompanying set of circumstances, do they still establish more truth
-and beauty than they sacrifice, do they still, according to their
-chance, help to make “The Ring and the Book” a great living thing, a
-great objective mass? I brushed by the answer a moment ago, I think, in
-speaking of the development in Pompilia of the resource of expression,
-which brings us round, it seems to me, to the justification of
-Browning’s method. To express his inner self—his outward was a
-different affair!—and to express it utterly, even if no matter how, was
-clearly, for his own measure and consciousness of that inner self, to
-_be_ poetic; and the solution of all the deviations and disparities or,
-speaking critically, monstrosities, in the mingled tissue of this work,
-is the fact that whether or no by such convulsions of soul and sense
-life got delivered for him, the garment of life (which for him was
-poetry and poetry alone) got disposed in its due and adequate
-multitudinous folds. We move with him but in images and references and
-vast and far correspondences; we eat but of strange compounds and drink
-but of rare distillations; and very soon, after a course of this, we
-feel ourselves, however much or however little to our advantage we may
-on occasion pronounce it, in the world of Expression at any cost. That,
-essentially, _is_ the world of poetry—which in the cases known to our
-experience where it seems to us to differ from Browning’s world does so
-but through this latter’s having been, by the vigour and violence, the
-bold familiarity, of his grasp and pull at it, moved several degrees
-nearer us, so to speak, than any other of the same general sort with
-which we are acquainted; so that, intellectually, we back away from it a
-little, back down before it, again and again, as we try to get off from
-a picture or a group or a view which is too much _upon_ us and thereby
-out of focus. Browning is “upon” us, straighter upon us always, somehow,
-than anyone else of his race; and we thus recoil, we push our chair
-back, from the table he so tremendously spreads, just to see a little
-better what is on it. This makes a relation with him that it is
-difficult to express; as if he came up against us, each time, on the
-same side of the street and not on the other side, across the way, where
-we mostly see the poets elegantly walk, and where we greet them without
-danger of concussion. It is on this same side, as I call it, on _our_
-side, on the other hand, that I rather see our encounter with the
-novelists taking place; we being, as it were, more mixed with them, or
-they at least, by their desire and necessity, more mixed with us, and
-our brush of them, in their minor frenzy, a comparatively muffled
-encounter.
-
-We have in the whole thing, at any rate, the element of action which is
-at the same time constant picture, and the element of picture which is
-at the same time constant action; and with a fusion, as the mass moves,
-that is none the less effective, none the less thick and complete, from
-our not owing it in the least to an artful economy. Another force pushes
-its way through the waste and rules the scene, making wrong things right
-and right things a hundred times more so—that breath of Browning’s own
-particular matchless Italy which takes us full in the face and remains
-from the first the felt rich coloured air in which we live. The quantity
-of that atmosphere that he had to give out is like nothing else in
-English poetry, any more than in English prose, that I recall; and since
-I am taking these liberties with him, let me take one too, a little,
-with the fruit of another genius shining at us here in association—with
-that great placed and timed prose fiction which we owe to George Eliot
-and in which _her_ projection of the stage and scenery is so different a
-matter. Curious enough this difference where so many things make for
-identity—the quantity of talent, the quantity of knowledge, the high
-equality (or almost) of culture and curiosity, not to say of “spiritual
-life.” Each writer drags along a far-sweeping train, though indeed
-Browning’s spreads so considerably furthest; but his stirs up, to my
-vision, a perfect cloud of gold-dust, while hers, in “Romola,” by
-contrast, leaves the air about as clear, about as white, and withal
-about as cold, as before she had benevolently entered it. This straight
-saturation of our author’s, this prime assimilation of the elements for
-which the name of Italy stands, is a single splendid case, however; I
-can think of no second one that is not below it—if we take it as
-supremely expressed in those of his lyrics and shorter dramatic
-monologues that it has most helped to inspire. The Rome and Tuscany of
-the early ’fifties had become for him so at once a medium, a bath of the
-senses and perceptions, into which he could sink, in which he could
-unlimitedly soak, that wherever he might be touched afterwards he gave
-out some effect of that immersion. This places him to my mind quite
-apart, makes the rest of our poetic record of a similar experience
-comparatively pale and abstract. Shelley and Swinburne—to name only his
-compeers—are, I know, a part of the record; but the author of “Men and
-Women,” of “Pippa Passes,” of certain of the Dramatic Lyrics and other
-scattered felicities, not only expresses and reflects the matter; he
-fairly, he heatedly, if I may use such a term, exudes and perspires it.
-Shelley, let us say in the connection, is a light and Swinburne, let us
-say, a sound; Browning alone of them all is a temperature. We feel it,
-we are in it at a plunge, with the very first pages of the thing before
-us; to which, I confess, we surrender with a momentum drawn from fifty
-of their predecessors, pages not less sovereign, elsewhere.
-
-The old Florence of the late spring closes round us; the hand of Italy
-is at once, with the recital of the old-world litter of Piazza San
-Lorenzo, with that of the great glare and of the great shadow-masses,
-heavy upon us, heavy with that strange weight, that mixed pressure,
-which is somehow, to the imagination, at once a caress and a menace. Our
-poet kicks up on the spot and at short notice what I have called his
-cloud of gold-dust. I can but speak for myself at least—something that
-I want to feel both as historic and esthetic truth, both as pictorial
-and moral interest, something that will repay my fancy tenfold if I can
-but feel it, hovers before me, and I say to myself that, whether or no a
-great poem is to come off, I will be hanged if one of the vividest of
-all stories and one of the sharpest of all impressions doesn’t. I beckon
-these things on, I follow them up, I so desire and need them that I of
-course, by my imaginative collaboration, contribute to them—from the
-moment, that is, of my finding myself really in relation to the great
-points. On the other hand, as certainly, it has taken the author of the
-first volume, and of the two admirable chapters of the same—since I
-can’t call them cantos—entitled respectively “Half-Rome” and “The Other
-Half-Rome,” to put me in relation; where it is that he keeps me more and
-more, letting the closeness of my state, it must be owned, occasionally
-drop, letting the finer call on me even, for bad quarters-of-an-hour,
-considerably languish, but starting up before me again in vivid
-authority if I really presume to droop or stray. He takes his wilful way
-with me, but I make it my own, picking over and over as I have said,
-like some lingering talking pedlar’s client, his great unloosed pack;
-and thus it is that by the time I am settled with Pompilia at Arezzo I
-have lived into all the conditions. They press upon me close, those
-wonderful dreadful beautiful particulars of the Italy of the eve of the
-eighteenth century—Browning himself moving about, darting hither and
-thither in them, at his mighty ease: beautiful, I say, because of the
-quantity of romantic and esthetic tradition from a more romantic and
-esthetic age still visibly, palpably, in solution there; and wonderful
-and dreadful through something of a similar tissue of matchless and
-ruthless consistencies and immoralities. I make to my hand, as this
-infatuated reader, _my_ Italy of the eve of the eighteenth century—a
-vast painted and gilded rococo shell roofing over a scenic, an amazingly
-figured and furnished earth, but shutting out almost the whole of our
-own dearly-bought, rudely-recovered spiritual sky. You see I have this
-right, all the while, if I recognise my suggested material, which keeps
-coming and coming in the measure of my need, and my duty to which _is_
-to recognise it, and as handsomely and actively as possible. The great
-thing is that I have such a group of figures moving across so
-constituted a scene—figures so typical, so salient, so reeking with the
-old-world character, so impressed all over with its manners and its
-morals, and so predestined, we see, to this particular horrid little
-drama. And let me not be charged with giving it away, the idea of the
-latent prose fiction, by calling it little and horrid; let me not—for
-with my contention I can’t possibly afford to—appear to agree with
-those who speak of the Franceschini-Comparini case as a mere vulgar
-criminal anecdote.
-
-It might have been such but for two reasons—counting only the principal
-ones; one of these our fact that we see it so, I repeat, in Browning’s
-inordinately-coloured light, and the other—which is indeed perhaps but
-another face of the same—that, with whatever limitations, it gives us
-in the rarest manner three characters of the first importance. I hold
-three a great many; I could have done with it almost, I think, if there
-had been but one or two; our rich provision shows you at any rate what I
-mean by speaking of our author’s performance as above all a preparation
-for something. Deeply he felt that with the three—the three built up at
-us each with an equal genial rage of reiterative touches—there couldn’t
-eventually not be something done (artistically done, I mean) if someone
-would only do it. There they are in their old yellow Arezzo, that
-miniature milder Florence, as sleepy to my recollection as a little
-English cathedral city clustered about a Close, but dreaming not so
-peacefully nor so innocently; there is the great fretted fabric of the
-Church on which they are all swarming and grovelling, yet after their
-fashion interesting parasites, from the high and dry old Archbishop,
-meanly wise or ignobly edifying, to whom Pompilia resorts in her woe and
-who practically pushes her way with a shuffling velvet foot; down
-through the couple of Franceschini cadets, Canon Girolamo and Abate
-Paul, mere minions, fairly in the verminous degree, of the overgrown
-order or too-rank organism; down to Count Guido himself and to Canon
-Caponsacchi, who have taken the tonsure at the outset of their careers,
-but none too strictly the vows, and who lead their lives under some
-strangest profanest pervertedest clerical category. There have been
-before this the Roman preliminaries, the career of the queer Comparini,
-the adoption, the assumption of the parentship, of the ill-starred
-little girl, with the sordid cynicism of her marriage out of hand,
-conveying her presumptive little fortune, her poor handful of even less
-than contingent cash, to hungry middle-aged Count Guido’s stale “rank”;
-the many-toned note or turbid harmony of all of which recurs to us in
-the vivid image of the pieties and paganisms of San Lorenzo in Lucina,
-that banal little church in the old upper Corso—banal, that is, at the
-worst, with the rare Roman _banalité_; bravely banal, or banal with
-style—that we have all passed with a sense of its reprieve to our
-sight-seeing, and where the bleeding bodies of the still-breathing
-Pompilia and her extinct companions are laid out on the greasy marble of
-the altar-steps. To glance at these things, however, is fairly to be
-tangled, and at once, in the author’s complexity of suggestion, to which
-our own thick-coming fancies respond in no less a measure; so that I
-have already missed my time to so much even as name properly the
-tremendous little chapter we should have devoted to the Franceschini
-interior as revealed at last to Comparini eyes; the sinister scene or
-ragged ruin of the Aretine “palace,” where pride and penury and, at
-once, rabid resentment show their teeth in the dark and the void, and
-where Pompilia’s inspired little character, clear silver hardened,
-effectually beaten and battered, to steel, begins to shine at the
-blackness with a light that fairly outfaces at last the gleam of wolfish
-fangs—the character that draws from Guido, in his, alas, too boundless
-harangue of the fourth volume, some of the sharpest specifications into
-which that extraordinary desert, that indescribable waste of
-intellectual life, as I have hinted at its being, from time to time
-flowers.
-
- “None of your abnegation of revenge!
- Fly at me frank, tug where I tear again!
- Away with the empty stare! Be holy still,
- And stupid ever! Occupy your patch
- Of private snow that’s somewhere in what world
- May now be growing icy round your head,
- And aguish at your foot-print—freeze not me!”
-
-I have spoken of the enveloping consciousness—or call it just the
-struggling, emerging, comparing, at last intensely living conscience—of
-Caponsacchi as the indicated centre of our situation or determinant of
-our form, in the matter of the excellent novel; and know of course what
-such an indication lets me in for, responsibly speaking, in the way of a
-rearrangement of relations, in the way of liberties taken. To lift our
-subject out of the sphere of anecdote and place it in the sphere of
-drama, liberally considered, to give it dignity by extracting its finest
-importance, causing its parts to flower together into some splendid
-special sense, we supply it with a large lucid reflector, which we find
-only, as I have already noted, in that mind and soul concerned in the
-business that have at once the highest sensibility and the highest
-capacity, or that are, as we may call it, most admirably agitated. There
-is the awkward fact, the objector may say, that by our record the mind
-and soul in question are not concerned till a given hour, when many
-things have already happened and the climax is almost in sight; to which
-we reply, at our ease, that we simply don’t suffer that fact to be
-awkward. From the moment I am taking liberties I suffer _no_
-awkwardness; I should be very helpless, quite without resource and
-without vision, if I did. I said it to begin with: Browning works the
-whole thing over—the whole thing as originally given him—and we work
-_him_; helpfully, artfully, boldly, which is our whole blest basis. We
-therefore turn Caponsacchi on earlier, ever so much earlier; turn him
-on, with a brave ingenuity, from the very first—that is in Rome if need
-be; place him there in the field, at once recipient and agent, vaguely
-conscious and with splendid brooding apprehension, awaiting the
-adventure of his life, awaiting his call, his real call (the others have
-been such vain shows and hollow stopgaps), awaiting, in fine, his
-terrible great fortune. His direct connection with Pompilia begins
-certainly at Arezzo, only after she has been some time hideously
-mismated and has suffered all but her direst extremity—that is of the
-essence; we _take_ it; it’s all right. But his indirect participation is
-another affair, and we get it—at a magnificent stroke—by the fact that
-his view of Franceschini, his fellow-Aretine sordidly “on the make,” his
-measure of undesired, indeed of quite execrated contact with him,
-brushed against in the motley hungry Roman traffic, where and while that
-sinister soul snuffs about on the very vague or the very foul scent of
-_his_ fortune, may begin whenever we like. We have only to have it begin
-right, only to make it, on the part of two men, a relation of strong
-irritated perception and restless righteous convinced instinct in the
-one nature and of equally instinctive hate and envy, jealousy and latent
-fear, on the other, to see the indirect connection, the one with
-Pompilia, as I say, throw across our page as portentous a shadow as we
-need. Then we get Caponsacchi as a recipient up to the brim—as an
-agent, a predestined one, up to the hilt. I can scarce begin to tell you
-what I see him give, as we say, or how his sentient and observational
-life, his fine reactions in presence of such a creature as Guido, such a
-social type and image and lurid light, as it were, make him
-comparatively a modern man, breathed upon, to that deep and interesting
-agitation I have mentioned, by more forces than he yet reckons or knows
-the names of.
-
-The direct relation—always to Pompilia—is made, at Arezzo, as we know,
-by Franceschini himself; preparing his own doom, in the false light of
-his debased wit, by creating an appearance of hidden dealing between his
-wife and the priest which shall, as promptly as he likes—if he but work
-it right—compromise and overwhelm them. The particular deepest
-damnation he conceives for his weaker, his weakest victim is that she
-shall take the cleric Caponsacchi for her lover, he indubitably
-willing—to Guido’s apprehension; and that her castigation at his hands
-for this, sufficiently proved upon her, shall be the last luxury of his
-own baseness. He forges infernally, though grossly enough, an imputed
-correspondence between them, as series of love-letters, scandalous
-scrawls, of the last erotic intensity; which we in the event see
-solemnly weighed by his fatuous judges, all fatuous save the grave old
-Pope, in the scale of Pompilia’s guilt and responsibility. It is this
-atrocity that at the _dénouement_ damns Guido himself most, or
-well-nigh; but if it fails and recoils, as all his calculations do—it
-is only his rush of passion that doesn’t miss—this is by the fact
-exactly that, as we have seen, his wife and her friend are, for our
-perfect persuasion, characters of the deepest dye. There, if you please,
-is the finest side of our subject; such sides come up, such sides flare
-out upon us, when we get such characters in such embroilments. Admire
-with me therefore our felicity in this first-class value of Browning’s
-beautiful critical genial vision of his Caponsacchi—vision of him as
-the tried and tempered and illuminated _man_, a great round smooth,
-though as yet but little worn gold-piece, an embossed and figured ducat
-or sequin of the period, placed by the poet in my hand. He gives me that
-value to spend for him, spend on all the strange old experience, old
-sights and sounds and stuffs, of the old stored Italy—so we have at
-least the wit to spend it to high advantage; which is just what I mean
-by our taking the liberties we spoke of. I see such bits we can get with
-it; but the difficulty is that I see so many more things than I can have
-even dreamed of giving you a hint of. I see the Arezzo life and the
-Arezzo crisis with every “i” dotted and every circumstance presented;
-and when Guido takes his wife, as a possible trap for her, to the
-theatre—the theatre of old Arezzo: share with me the tattered vision
-and inhale the musty air!—I am well in range of Pompilia, the
-tragically exquisite, in her box, with her husband not there for the
-hour but posted elsewhere; I look at her in fact over Caponsacchi’s
-shoulder and that of his brother-canon Conti, while this light
-character, a vivid recruit to our company, manages to toss into her lap,
-and as coming in guise of overture from his smitten friend, “a
-papertwist of comfits.” There is a particular famous occasion at the
-theatre in a work of more or less contemporary fiction—at a petty
-provincial theatre which isn’t even, as you might think, the place where
-Pendennis had his first glimpse of Miss Fotheringay. The evening at the
-Rouen playhouse of Flaubert’s “Madame Bovary” has a relief not elsewhere
-equalled—it is the most _done_ visit to the play in all
-literature—but, though “doing” is now so woefully out of favour, my
-idea would be to give it here a precious _pendant_; which connection,
-silly Canon Conti, the old fripperies and levities, the whole queer
-picture and show of manners, is handed over to us, expressly, as inapt
-for poetic illustration.
-
-What is equally apt for poetic or for the other, indeed, is the thing
-for which we feel “The Ring and the Book” preponderantly done—it is at
-least what comes out clearest, comes out as straightest and strongest
-and finest, from Browning’s genius—the exhibition of the great
-constringent relation between man and woman at once at its maximum and
-as the relation most worth while in life for either party; an exhibition
-forming quite the main substance of our author’s message. He has dealt,
-in his immense variety and vivacity, with other relations, but on this
-he has thrown his most living weight; it remains the thing of which his
-own rich experience most convincingly spoke to him. He has testified to
-it as charged to the brim with the burden of the senses, and has
-testified to it as almost too clarified, too liberated and sublimated,
-for traceable application or fair record; he has figured it as never too
-much either of the flesh or of the spirit for him, so long as the
-possibility of both of these is in each, but always and ever as the
-thing absolutely most worth while. It is in the highest and rarest
-degree clarified and disengaged for Caponsacchi and Pompilia; but what
-their history most concludes to is how ineffably it was, whatever
-happened, worth while. Worth while most then for them or for us is the
-question? Well, let us say worth while assuredly for us, in this noble
-exercise of our imagination. Which accordingly shows us what we, for all
-our prose basis, would have found, to repeat my term once more, prepared
-for us. There isn’t a detail of their panting flight to Rome over the
-autumn Apennines—the long hours when they melt together only _not_ to
-meet—that doesn’t positively plead for our perfect prose transcript.
-And if it be said that the mere massacre at the final end is a lapse to
-passivity from the high plane, for our pair of protagonists, of
-constructive, of heroic vision, this is not a blur from the time
-everything that happens happens most effectively to Caponsacchi’s life.
-Pompilia’s is taken, but she is none the less given; and it is in his
-consciousness and experience that she most intensely flowers—with all
-her jubilation for doing so. So that _he_ contains the whole—unless
-indeed after all the Pope does, the Pope whom I was leaving out as too
-transcendent for _our_ version. Unless, unless, further and further, I
-see what I have at this late moment no right to; see, as the very end
-and splendid climax of all, Caponsacchi sent for to the Vatican and
-admitted alone to the Papal presence. _There_ is a scene if we will; and
-in the mere mutual confrontation, brief, silent, searching, recognising,
-consecrating, almost as august on the one part as on the other. It
-rounds us off; but you will think I stray too far. I have wanted, alas,
-to say such still other fond fine things—it being of our poet’s great
-nature to prompt them at every step—that I almost feel I have missed
-half my points; which will doubtless therefore show you these remarks in
-their nakedness. Take them and my particular contention as a pretext and
-a minor affair if you will only feel them at the same time as at the
-worst a restless refinement of homage. It has been easy in many another
-case to run to earth the stray prime fancy, the original anecdote or
-artless tale, from which a great imaginative work, starting off after
-meeting it, has sprung and rebounded again and soared; and perhaps it is
-right and happy and final that one should have faltered in attempting by
-a converse curiosity to clip off or tie back the wings that once have
-spread. You will agree with me none the less, I feel, that Browning’s
-great generous wings are over us still and even now, more than ever now;
-and also that they shake down on us his blessing.
-
------
-
-Footnote 8:
-
-Address delivered before the Academic Committee of the Royal Society of
-Literature in Commemoration of the Centenary of Robert Browning, May 7,
-1912.
-
-
-
-
- AN AMERICAN ART-SCHOLAR: CHARLES ELIOT NORTON
- 1908
-
-
-I gladly embrace the occasion to devote a few words to the honoured
-memory of my distinguished friend the late Charles Eliot Norton, who,
-dying at Cambridge, Massachusetts, on the 21st of October last, after
-having reached his eightieth year, had long occupied—and with an
-originality of spirit and a beneficence of effect all his own—the chair
-of the History of the Fine Arts at Harvard University, as well as, in
-the view of the American world surrounding that seat of influence, the
-position of one of the most accomplished of scholars and most efficient
-of citizens. This commemorative page may not disclaim the personal tone,
-for I can speak of Charles Norton but in the light of an affection which
-began long years ago, even though my part in our relation had to be, for
-some time, markedly that of a junior; of which tie I was to remain ever
-after, despite long stretches of material separation, a conscious and
-grateful beneficiary. I can speak of him therefore as I happened myself
-to see and know him—with interest and sympathy acting, for considerable
-periods together, across distances and superficial differences, yet with
-the sense of his extremely individual character and career suffering no
-abatement, and indeed with my impression of the fine consistency and
-exemplary value of these things clear as never before.
-
-I find this impression go back for its origin very far—to one autumn
-day when, an extremely immature aspirant to the rare laurel of the
-critic, I went out from Boston to Cambridge to offer him a contribution
-to the old, if I should not rather say the then middle-aged, “North
-American Review,” of which he had recently undertaken the editorship. I
-already knew him a little, enough to have met casual kindness at his
-hands; but my vision of his active presence and function, in the
-community that had happily produced and that was long to enjoy him,
-found itself, I think, completely constituted at that hour, with scarce
-an essential touch to be afterwards added. He largely developed and
-expanded as time went on; certain more or less local reserves and
-conservatisms fell away from him; but his temper and attitude, all his
-own from the first, were to give a singular unity to his life. This
-intensity of perception on his young visitor’s part may perhaps have
-sprung a little from the fact that he accepted on the spot, as the
-visitor still romantically remembers, a certain very first awkward essay
-in criticism, and was to publish it in his forthcoming number; but I
-little doubt whether even had he refused it the grace of the whole
-occasion would have lost anything to my excited view, and feel sure that
-the interest in particular would have gained had he charmingly put
-before me (as he would have been sure to do) the ground of his
-discrimination. For his eminent character as a “representative of
-culture” announced itself exactly in proportion as one’s general sense
-of the medium in which it was to be exerted was strong; and I seem
-verily to recall that even in the comparative tenderness of that season
-I had grasped the idea of the precious, the quite far-reaching part such
-an exemplar might play. Charles Norton’s distinction and value—this was
-still some years before his professorate had taken form—showed early
-and above all the note and the advantage that they were to be virtues of
-American application, and were to draw their life from the signal
-American opportunity; to that degree that the detailed record of his
-influence would be really one of the most interesting of American social
-documents, and that his good work is best lighted by a due acquaintance
-with the conditions of the life about him, indispensable for a founded
-recognition of it. It is not too much to say that the representative of
-culture—always in the high and special sense in which he practised that
-faith—had before him in the United States of those days a great and
-arduous mission, requiring plentiful courage as well as plentiful
-knowledge, endless good humour as well as assured taste.
-
-What comes back to me then from the early day I have glanced at is
-exactly that prompt sense of the clustered evidence of my friend’s
-perfect adaptation to the civilising mission, and not least to the
-needfully dauntless and unperturbed side of it. His so pleasant old
-hereditary home, with its ample acres and numerous spoils—at a time
-when acres merely marginal and, so to speak, atmospheric, as well as
-spoils at all felicitously gathered, were rare in the United
-States—seemed to minister to the general assurance, constituting as
-they did such a picture of life as one vaguely supposed recognisable,
-right and left, in an old society, or, otherwise expressed, in that
-“Europe” which was always, roundabout one, the fond alternative of the
-cultivated imagination, but of which the possible American copy ever
-seemed far to seek. To put it in a nutshell, the pilgrimage to the Shady
-Hill of those years had, among the “spoils,” among pictures and books,
-drawings and medals, memories and relics and anecdotes, things of a
-remote but charming reference, very much the effect of a sudden rise
-into a finer and clearer air and of a stopgap against one’s own coveted
-renewal of the more direct experience. If I allude to a particular, to a
-personal yearning appreciation of those matters, it is with the
-justified conviction—this justification having been all along
-abundantly perceptible—that appreciation of the general sort only
-waited to be called for, though to be called for with due authority. It
-was the sign of our host, on the attaching spot, and almost the
-principal one, that he spoke, all round and with the highest emphasis,
-as under the warrant of authority, and that at a time when, as to the
-main matter of his claim and his discourse, scarce anyone pretended to
-it, he carried himself valiantly under that banner. The main matter of
-his discourse offered itself just simply as the matter of
-_civilisation_—the particular civilisation that a young roaring and
-money-getting democracy, inevitably but almost exclusively occupied with
-“business success,” most needed to have brought home to it. The New
-England air in especial was no natural conductor of any appeal to an
-esthetic aim, but the interest of Professor Norton’s general work, to
-say nothing of the interest of his character for a closer view, is
-exactly that the whole fruitful enterprise was to prove intimately a New
-England adventure; illustrating thus at the same time and once more the
-innate capacity of New England for leavening the great American mass on
-the finer issues.
-
-To have grown up as the accomplished man at large was in itself at that
-time to have felt, and even in some degree to have suffered, this hand
-of differentiation; the only accomplished men of the exhibited New
-England Society had been the ministers, the heads of the
-congregations—whom, however, one docks of little of their credit in
-saying that their accomplishments and their earnestness had been almost
-wholly in the moral order. The advantage of that connection was indeed
-what Norton was fundamentally to have enjoyed in his descent, both on
-his father’s and his mother’s side (pre-eminently on the latter, the
-historic stock of the Eliots) from a long line of those stalwart
-pastoral worthies who had notably formed the aristocracy of
-Massachusetts. It was largely, no doubt, to this heritage of character
-and conscience that he owed the strong and special strain of confidence
-with which he addressed himself to the business of perfect candour
-toward his fellow-citizens—his pupils in particular; they, to whom this
-candour was to become in the long run the rarest and raciest and most
-endearing of “treats,” being but his fellow-citizens in the making. This
-view of an urgent duty would have been a comparatively slight thing,
-moreover, without the special preoccupations, without the love of the
-high humanities and curiosities and urbanities in themselves, without
-the conception of science and the ingrained studious cast of mind, which
-had been also an affair of heredity with him and had opened his eyes
-betimes to educative values and standards other than most of those he
-saw flourish near at hand. He would defer to dilettantism as little as
-to vulgarity, and if he ultimately embraced the fine ideal of taking up
-the work that lay close to him at home, and of irrigating the immediate
-arid tracts and desert spaces, it was not from ignorance of the
-temptation to wander and linger where the streams already flowed and the
-soil had already borne an abiding fruit.
-
-He had come to Italy and to England early in life; he had repeated his
-visits to these countries with infinite relish and as often as
-possible—though never, as a good New Englander, without certain firm
-and, where they had to be, invidious discriminations; he was attached to
-them by a hundred intellectual and social ties; but he had been from the
-first incapable of doubting that the best activity and the liveliest
-interest lay where it always, given certain conditions, lies in
-America—in a measure of response to intellectual and esthethic
-“missionary” labour more traceable and appreciable, more distinguishably
-attested and registered, more directly and artlessly grateful, in a
-word, than in the thicker elemental mixture of Europe. On the whole side
-of taste and association his choice was thus betimes for conscious exile
-and for a considerably, though doubtless not altogether irremediably,
-deprived state; but it was at the same time for a freedom of exhortation
-and a play of ironic comment less restricted, after all, in the clear
-American air, than on ground more pretentiously enclosed—less
-restricted, that is, from the moment personal conviction might be
-absolute and indifference to every form of provincial bewilderment
-equally patient and complete. The incontestable _crânerie_ of his
-attitude—a thing that one felt to be a high form of sincerity—always
-at last won success; the respect and affection that more and more
-surrounded him and that finally made his situation sole of its kind and
-pre-eminently happy, attest together the interesting truth that
-unqualified confidence in one’s errand, the serenest acceptance of a
-responsibility and the exercise of a critical authority never too apt to
-return critically upon itself, only require for beneficent action that
-they be attended at once with a fund of illustration and a fund of good
-humour.
-
-Professor Norton’s pre-eminent work in the interpretation of Dante—by
-which I mean his translation, text and notes, of the “Divine Comedy” and
-the “New Life,” an achievement of infinite piety, patience and resource;
-his admirable volume on Church-Building in the Middle Ages (to say
-nothing of his charming earlier one, “Study and Travel in Italy,”
-largely devoted to the cathedral of Orvieto); his long and intimate
-friendship with Ruskin, commemorated by his publication, as
-joint-executor to Ruskin’s will, of the best fruits of the latter’s
-sustained correspondence with him; his numerous English friendships, in
-especial—to say nothing of his native—all with persons of a highly
-representative character: these things give in part the measure of his
-finest curiosities and of his appetite, in all directions, for the best
-sources and examples and the best company. But it is probable that if
-his Harvard lectures are in form for publication, and if his general
-correspondence, and above all his own easily handsomest show in it,
-comes to be published, as most emphatically it should be, they will
-testify not in the least to any unredeemed contraction of life, but to
-the largest and happiest and most rewarded energy. An exhilarated
-invocation of close responsibility, an absolute ease of mind about one’s
-point of view, a thorough and never-failing intellectual wholeness, are
-so far from weakening the appeal to young allegiances that, once they
-succeed at all, they succeed the better for going all their length. So
-it was that, with admirable urbanity of form and uncompromising
-straightness of attack, the Professor of the History of the Fine Arts at
-Harvard for a quarter of a century let himself go; thinking no trouble
-wasted and no flutter and no scandal other than auspicious if only he
-might, to the receptive and aspiring undergraduate mind, brand the ugly
-and the vulgar and the inferior wherever he found them, tracking them
-through plausible disguises and into trumpery strongholds; if only he
-might convert young products of the unmitigated American order into
-material for men of the world in the finer sense of that term; if only
-in short he might render more supple their view, liable to obfuscation
-from sights and sounds about them, of the true meaning of a liberal
-education and of the civilised character and spirit in the civilised
-State.
-
-What it came to thus was that he availed himself to the utmost of his
-free hand for sowing and planting ideals—ideals that, though they might
-after all be vague and general things, lacking sometimes a little the
-clearer connections with practice, were yet a new and inspiring note to
-most of his hearers, who could be trusted, just so far as they were
-intelligent and loyal, not to be heavily embarrassed by them, not to
-want for fields of application. It was given him, quite unprecedentedly,
-to be popular, to be altogether loved and cherished, even while “rubbing
-it into” whomever it might concern that such unfortunates were mainly
-given over to mediocrity and vulgarity, and that half the crude and ugly
-objects and aspects, half the low standards and loose ends surrounding
-them and which they might take for granted with a facility and a
-complacency alike deplorable, represented a platitude of imagination
-that dishonoured the citizen on whom a University worthy of the name
-should have left its stamp. Happy, it would thus in fact seem, beyond
-any other occasion for educative influence, the immense and delightful
-opportunity he enjoyed, the clear field and long reach attached to
-preaching an esthetic crusade, to pleading for the higher amenities in
-general, in a new and superficially tutored, yet also but superficially
-prejudiced, country, where a consequently felt and noted rise of the
-tide of manners may be held to have come home to him, or certainly to
-have visited his dreams. His effect on the community at large, with
-allowances of time, was ever indubitable—even though such workers have
-everywhere to take much on trust and to remember that bushels of
-doctrine, and even tons of example, make at the most ounces and grains
-of responsive life. It can only be the very general and hopeful view
-that sustains and rewards—with here and there, at wide intervals, the
-prized individual instance of the sown seed actively emerging and
-flowering.
-
-If not all ingenious disciples could give independent proof, however,
-all could rally and feel the spirit; all could crowd to a course of
-instruction which, largely elective and optional, yet united more
-listeners than many others put together, and in which the subject
-itself, the illustration of European artistic endeavour at large, or in
-other words the record of man’s most comprehensive sacrifice to
-organised beauty, tended so to take up on familiar ground the question
-of manners, character, conscience, tone, to bristle with questions
-addressed to the actual and possible American scene. That, I hasten to
-add, was of course but one side of the matter; there were wells of
-special science for those who chose to draw from them, and an inner
-circle of pupils whose whole fruitful relation to their philosopher and
-friend—the happy and easy privilege of Shady Hill in general, where
-other charming personal influences helped, not counting as least in
-this—can scarce have failed to prepare much practical evidence for
-observation still to come. The ivory tower of study would ever, by his
-natural bent, I think, have most solicited Charles Norton; but he liked,
-as I say, he accepted without a reserve, the function of presiding over
-young destinies; he believed in the personal and the social
-communication of light, and had a gift for the generous and personal
-relation that perhaps found its best issue, as I have already hinted, in
-his admirable letters. These were not of this hustled and hustling age,
-but of a cooler and steadier sphere and rhythm, and of a charming
-mannerly substantial type to which he will have been, I think, among
-correspondents truly animated by the social spirit and a due cosmopolite
-ideal, one of the last systematically to sacrifice. With the lapse of
-years I ceased to be, I admit, a near spectator of his situation; but my
-sense of his activity—with more intimate renewals, besides,
-occasionally taking place—was to be, all along, so constantly fed by
-echo and anecdote and all manner of indirect glimpses, that I find
-myself speak quite with the confidence and with all the attachment of a
-continuous “assistant.”
-
-With which, if I reflect on this, I see how interesting a _case_ above
-all my distinguished friend was ever to remain to me—a case, I mean, of
-such a mixture of the elements as would have seemed in advance,
-critically speaking, quite anomalous or at least highly incalculable.
-His interest was predominantly in Art, as the most beneficial of human
-products; his ostensible plea was for the esthetic law, under the wide
-wing of which we really move, it may seem to many of us, in an air of
-strange and treacherous appearances, of much bewilderment and not a
-little mystification; of terribly fine and complicated issues in short,
-such as call for the highest interpretative wisdom. But if nothing was
-of a more delightful example than Professor Norton’s large and nourished
-serenity in all these connections, a serenity seasoned and tempered, as
-it were, by infinite interest in his “subject,” by a steadying faith in
-exact and extensive knowledge, so to a fond and incorrigible student of
-character the case, as I have called it, and the long and genial career,
-may seem to shine in the light of quite other importances, quite other
-references, than the presumed and the nominal. Nothing in fact _can_ be
-more interesting to a haunter of other intellectual climes and a
-worshipper at the esthetic shrine _quand même_ than to note once more
-how race and implanted quality and association always in the end come by
-their own; how for example a son of the Puritans the most intellectually
-transmuted, the most liberally emancipated and initiated possible, could
-still plead most for substance when proposing to plead for style, could
-still try to lose himself in the labyrinth of delight while keeping
-tight hold of the clue of duty, tangled even a little in his feet; could
-still address himself all consistently to the moral conscience while
-speaking as by his office for our imagination and our free curiosity.
-All of which vision of him, however, is far from pointing to a wasted
-effort. The great thing, whatever turn we take, is to find before us
-perspectives and to have a weight to throw; in accordance with which
-wisdom the world he lived in received for long no firmer nor more
-gallant and generous impress than that of Charles Eliot Norton.
-
-
-
-
- LONDON NOTES
- _January_ 1897
-
-
-I am afraid the interest of the world of native letters is not at this
-moment so great as to make us despise mere translation as an aid to
-curiosity. There is indeed no reason why we should forbear to say in
-advance what we are certain, every time, to say after (after the heat
-has cooled I mean:) namely, that nothing is easier to concede than that
-Ibsen—contentious name!—would be much less remarked if he were one of
-a dozen. It is impossible, in London at least, to shut one’s eyes to the
-fact that if to so many ingenious minds he is a kind of pictorial
-monster, a grotesque on the sign of a side-show, this is at least partly
-because his form has a monstrous rarity. It is one of the odd things of
-our actual esthetics that the more theatres multiply the less any one
-reads a play—the less any one cares, in a word, for the text of the
-adventure. That no one ever _does_ read a play has long been a
-commonplace of the wisdom of booksellers. Ibsen, however, is a text, and
-Ibsen is read, and Ibsen contradicts the custom and confounds the
-prejudice; with the effect thereby, in an odd way, of being doubly an
-exotic. His violent substance imposes, as it were, his insidious form;
-it is not (as would have seemed more likely) the form that imposes the
-substance. Mr. William Archer has just published his version of “John
-Gabriel Borkman,” of which, moreover, French and German versions reach
-us at the same moment. There are therefore all the elements of a fresh
-breeze in the wind—one has already a sense as of a cracking of whips
-and a girding of loins. You may by this time be terribly tired of it all
-in America; but, as I mentioned a fortnight ago, we have had very recent
-evidence that languor here, in this connection, is by no means as yet
-the dominant note. It is not the dispute itself, however, that most
-interests me: let me pay it, for what it has been and what it still may
-be, the mere superficial tribute of saying that it constitutes one of
-the very few cases of contagious discussion of a matter not political, a
-question not of mere practice, of which I remember to have felt, in a
-heavy air, the engaging titillation. In London generally, I think, the
-wandering breath of criticism is the stray guest at the big party—the
-shy young man whom nobody knows. In this remarkable instance the shy
-young man has ventured to pause and hover, has lighted on a topic,
-introduced himself and, after a gasp of consternation in the company,
-seen a little circle gather round him. I can only speak as one of the
-little circle, testifying to my individual glee.
-
-The author who at the age of seventy, a provincial of provincials, turns
-out “John Gabriel” is frankly for me so much one of the peculiar
-pleasures of the day, one of the current strong sensations, that, erect
-as he seems still to stand, I deplore his extreme maturity and, thinking
-of what shall happen, look round in vain for any other possible source
-of the same kind of emotion. For Ibsen strikes me as an extraordinary
-curiosity, and every time he sounds his note the miracle to my
-perception is renewed. I call it a miracle because it is a result of so
-dry a view of life, so indifferent a vision of the comedy of things. His
-idea of the thing represented is never the comic idea, though this is
-evidently what it often only can be for many of his English readers and
-spectators. Comedy moreover is a product mainly of observation, and I
-scarcely know what to say of his figures except that they haven’t the
-_signs_. The answer to that is doubtless partly that they haven’t the
-English, but have the Norwegian. In such a case one of the Norwegian
-must be in truth this very lack of signs.
-
-They have no tone but their moral tone. They are highly animated
-abstractions, with the extraordinary, the brilliant property of becoming
-when represented at once more abstract and more living. If the spirit is
-a lamp within us, glowing through what the world and the flesh make of
-us as through a ground-glass shade, then such pictures as Little Eyolf
-and John Gabriel are each a _chassez-croisez_ of lamps burning, as in
-tasteless parlours, with the flame practically exposed. There are no
-shades in the house, or the Norwegian ground-glass is singularly clear.
-There is a positive odour of spiritual paraffin. The author nevertheless
-arrives at the dramatist’s great goal—he arrives for all his meagreness
-at intensity. The meagreness, which is after all but an unconscious, an
-admirable economy, never interferes with that: it plays straight into
-the hands of his rare mastery of form. The contrast between this
-form—so difficult to have reached, so “evolved,” so civilised—and the
-bareness and bleakness of his little northern democracy is the source of
-half the hard frugal charm that he puts forth. In the cold fixed light
-of it the notes we speak of as deficiencies take a sharp value in the
-picture. There is no small-talk, there are scarcely any manners. On the
-other hand there is so little vulgarity that this of itself has almost
-the effect of a deeper, a more lonely provincialism. The background at
-any rate is the sunset over the ice. Well in the very front of the scene
-lunges with extraordinary length of arm the Ego against the Ego, and
-rocks in a rigour of passion the soul against the soul—a spectacle, a
-movement, as definite as the relief of silhouettes in black paper or of
-a train of Eskimo dogs on the snow. Down from that desolation the sturdy
-old symbolist comes this time with a supreme example of his method. It
-is a high wonder and pleasure to welcome such splendid fruit from sap
-that might by now have shown something of the chill of age. Never has he
-juggled more gallantly with difficulty and danger than in this really
-prodigious “John Gabriel,” in which a great span of tragedy is taken
-between three or four persons—a trio of the grim and grizzled—in the
-two or three hours of a winter’s evening; in which the whole thing
-throbs with an actability that fairly shakes us as we read; and in
-which, as the very flower of his artistic triumph, he has given us for
-the most beautiful and touching of his heroines a sad old maid of sixty.
-Such “parts,” even from the vulgarest point of view, are Borkman and
-Ella Rentheim.
-
-
-
-
- LONDON NOTES
- _June_ 1897
-
-
-I am afraid there are at this moment only two notes for a communication
-from London to strike. One is that of the plunge into the deep and
-turbid waters of the Jubilee; the other is that of the inevitable
-retreat from them—the backward scramble up the bank and scurry over its
-crest and out of sight. London is in a sorry state; nevertheless I judge
-that the number of persons about to arrive undaunted will not fall
-substantially short of the number of horror-stricken fugitives. Not to
-depart is practically to arrive; for there is little difference in the
-two kinds of violence, the shock you await or the shock that awaits you.
-Let me hasten, however, to declare that—to speak for the present only
-of the former of these—the prospect is full of suggestion, the affair
-promises a rare sort of interest. It began a fortnight since to be
-clear—and the certitude grows each day—that we are to be treated to a
-revelation really precious, the domestic or familiar vision, as it were,
-the back-stairs or underside view, of a situation that will rank as
-celebrated. Balzac’s image of _l’envers de l’histoire contemporaine_ is
-in fact already under our nose, already offered us in a big bouncing
-unmistakable case. We brush with an irreverent hand the back of the
-tapestry—we crawl on unabashed knees under the tent of the circus. The
-commemoration of the completed sixtieth year of her Majesty’s reign will
-figure to the end of time in the roll of English wonders and can
-scarcely fail to hold its own as an occasion unparalleled. And yet we
-touch it as we come and go—we feel it mainly as a great incommodity. It
-has already so intimate, so ugly, so measurable a side that these
-impressions begin to fall into their place with a kind of representative
-force, to figure as a symbol of the general truth that the principal
-pomps and circumstances of the historic page have had their most intense
-existence as material and social arrangements, disagreeable or amusing
-accidents, affecting the few momentary mortals at that time in the
-neighbourhood. The gross defacement of London, the uproarious traffic in
-seats, the miles of unsightly scaffolding between the West End and the
-City, the screaming advertisements, the sordid struggle, the individual
-questions—“Haven’t we been cheated by the plausible wretch?” or “How
-the devil shall we get _to_ our seats after paying such a lot,
-hey?”—these things are actually the historic page. If we are writing
-that page every hour let us at any rate commend ourselves for having
-begun betimes, even though this early diligence be attended with
-extraordinary effects. The great day was a week ago still a month off,
-but what we even then had full in view, was, for the coming stretch of
-time, a London reduced to such disfigurement as might much better seem
-to consort with some great national penance or mourning. The show, when
-the show comes off, is to last but a couple of hours; and nothing so odd
-surely ever occurred in such a connection as so huge a disproportion
-between the discipline and the joy. If this be honour, the simple may
-well say, give us, merciful powers, the rigour of indifference! From
-Hyde Park Corner to the heart of the City and over the water to the
-solid south the long line of thoroughfares is masked by a forest of
-timber and smothered in swaggering posters and catchpenny bids, with all
-of which and with the vociferous air that enfolds them we are to spend
-these next weeks in such comfort as we may. The splendour will have of
-course to be great to wash down the vulgarity—and infinitely dazzling
-no doubt it will be; yet even if it falls short I shall still feel that,
-let the quantity of shock, as I have ventured to call it, be what it
-must, it will on the whole be exceeded by what I have ventured to call
-the quantity of suggestion. This, to be frank, has even now rolled up at
-such a rate that to deal with it I should scarce know where to take it
-first. Let me not therefore pretend to deal, but only glance and pass.
-
-The foremost, the immense impression is of course the constant, the
-permanent, the ever-supreme—the impression of that greatest glory of
-our race, its passionate feeling for trade. I doubt if the commercial
-instinct be not, as London now feels it throb and glow, quite as
-striking as any conceivable projection of it that even our American
-pressure of the pump might, at the highest, produce. That is the real
-tent of the circus—that is the real back of the tapestry. There have
-long, I know, been persons ready to prove by book that the explanation
-of the “historical event” has always been somebody’s desire to make
-money; never, at all events, from the near view, will that explanation
-have covered so much of the ground. No result of the fact that the Queen
-has reigned sixty years—no sort of sentimental or other association
-with it—begins to have the air of coming home to the London conscience
-like this happy consequence of the chance in it to sell something dear.
-As yet that chance is the one sound that fills the air, and will
-probably be the only note audibly struck till the plaudits of the day
-itself begin to substitute, none too soon, a more mellifluous one. When
-the people are all at the windows and in the trees and on the
-water-spouts, house-tops, scaffolds and other ledges and coigns of
-vantage set as traps for them by the motive power, _then_ doubtless
-there will be another aspect to reckon with—then we shall see, of the
-grand occasion, nothing but what is decently and presentably historic.
-All I mean is that, pending the apotheosis, London has found in this
-particular chapter of the career of its aged sovereign only an enormous
-selfish advertisement. It came to me the other day in a quoted epigram
-that the advertisement shows as far off as across the Channel and all
-the way to Paris, where one of the reflections it has suggested—as it
-must inevitably suggest many—appears to be that, in contrast, when, a
-year ago, the Russian sovereigns were about to arrive no good Parisian
-thought for a moment of anything but how he could most work for the
-adornment of his town. I dare say that in fact from a good Parisian or
-two a window or a tree was to be hired; but the echo is at least
-interesting _as_ an echo, not less than as a reminder of how we still
-wait here for the outbreak of the kind of enthusiasm that shall take the
-decorative form. The graceful tip of its nose has, it must be admitted,
-yet to show. But there are other sides still, and one of them
-immense—the light we may take as flooding, I mean, the whole question
-of the solidity of the throne. It is impossible to live long in England
-without feeling that the monarchy is—below-ground, so to speak, in
-particular—a rock; but it was reserved for these days to accentuate the
-immobility of even that portion of the rock which protrudes above the
-surface. It is being tested in a manner by fire, and it resists with a
-vitality nothing short of prophetic. The commercial instinct, as I say,
-perches upon it with a security and a success that banish a rival from
-the field. It is the biggest of all draws for the biggest of all
-circuses; it will bring more money to more doors than anything that can
-be imagined in its place. It will march through the ages unshaken. The
-coronation of a new sovereign is an event, at the worst, well within the
-compass of the mind, and what will that bring with it so much as a fresh
-lively market and miles of new posters and new carpentry? Then, who
-knows?—coronations will, for a stretch and a change perhaps, be more
-frequent than anniversaries; and the bargains struck over the last will,
-again at the worst, carry an hilarious country well on to the next. Has
-not the monarchy moreover—besides thus periodically making trade
-roar—the lively merit, for such an observer as I fancy considering
-these things, of helping more than anything else the answers to the
-questions into which our actual curiosity most overflows; the question
-for instance of whether in the case before us the triumph of vulgarity
-be not precisely the flushed but muscular triumph of the inevitable? If
-vulgarity thrones now on the house-tops, “blown” and red in the face, is
-it not because it has been pushed aloft by deep forces and is really
-after all itself the show? The picturesque at any rate has to meet the
-conditions. We miss, we regret the old “style” of history; but the style
-would, I think, be there if we let it: the age has a manner of its own
-that disconcerts, that swamps it. The age is the loudest thing of all.
-What has altered is simply the conditions. Poor history has to meet
-them, these conditions; she must accommodate herself. She must accept
-vulgarity or perish. Some day doubtless she _will_ perish, but for a
-little while longer she remembers and struggles. She becomes indeed, as
-we look up Piccadilly in the light of this image, perhaps rather more
-dramatic than ever—at any rate more pathetic, more noble in her choked
-humiliation. Then even as we pity her we try perhaps to bring her round,
-to make her understand a little better. We try to explain that if we are
-dreadful to deal with it is only, really, a good deal because we so
-detestably grow and grow. There is so horribly much of us—that’s where
-_our_ style breaks down. Small crowds and paltry bargains didn’t matter,
-and a little vulgarity—just a very little—could in other times manage
-to pass. Our shame, alas, is our quantity.
-
-I have no sooner, none the less, qualified it so ungraciously than I ask
-myself what after all we should do without it. If we have opened the
-floodgates we have at least opened them wide, and it is our very
-quantity that perhaps in the last resort will save us. It cuts both
-ways, as the phrase is—it covers all the ground; it helps the escape as
-well as produces the assault. If retreat for instance at the present
-juncture is, as I began by hinting, urgently imposed, it is thanks to
-our having so much of everything that we find a bridge for our feet. We
-hope to get off in time, but meanwhile even on the spot there are
-blessed alternatives and reliefs. I have been trying a number very hard,
-but I have expatiated so on the complaint that I have left little room
-for the remedy. London reminds one of nothing so often as of the help
-she gives one to forget her. One of the forms actually taken by this
-happy habit is the ingenious little exhibition, at the Grafton
-Galleries, of so-called Dramatic and Musical Art. The name is rather a
-grand one and the show has many gaps; but it profits, as such places in
-London so often profit, by the law that makes you mostly care less what
-you get into than what you get out of. With its Hogarths and
-Zoffanys—none too many, I admit—its other last-century portraits and
-relics, its numerous ghosts of Garrick, its old play-bills and prints,
-its echoes of dead plaudits and its very thin attendance, it happens to
-be for the moment a quiet bower in the bear-garden. It is a “scratch”
-company, but only—and I can scarce say why—in the portion in which the
-portraits of the day prevail is the impression vulgar. Even there indeed
-this suspicion receives a grand lift from Mr. Whistler’s exquisite image
-of Henry Irving as the Philip of Tennyson’s “Queen Mary.” To pause
-before such a work is in fact to be held to the spot by just the highest
-operation of the charm one has sought there—the charm of a certain
-degree of melancholy meditation. Meditation indeed forgets Garrick and
-Hogarth and all the handsome heads of the Kembles in wonder
-reintensified at the attitude of a stupid generation toward an art and a
-taste so rare. Wonder is perhaps after all not the word to use, for how
-_should_ a stupid generation, liking so much that it does like and with
-a faculty trained to coarser motions, recognise in Mr. Whistler’s work
-one of the finest of all distillations of the artistic intelligence? To
-turn from his picture to the rest of the show—which, of course, I
-admit, is not a collection of masterpieces—is to drop from the world of
-distinction, of perception, of beauty and mystery and perpetuity,
-into—well, a very ordinary place. And yet the effect of Whistler at his
-best is exactly to give to the place he hangs in—or perhaps I should
-say to the person he hangs for—something of the sense, of the illusion,
-of a great museum. He isolates himself in a manner all his own; his
-presence is in itself a sort of implication of a choice corner. Have we
-in this a faint foresight of the eventual turn of the wheel—of one of
-the nooks of honour, those innermost rooms of great collections, in
-which our posterity shall find him? Look at him at any rate on any
-occasion, but above all at his best, only long enough, and hallucination
-sets in. We are in the presence of one of the prizes marked with two
-stars in the guidebook; the polished floor is beneath us and the rococo
-roof above; the great names are ranged about, and the eye is aware of
-the near window, in its deep recess, that overhangs old gardens or a
-celebrated square.
-
-
-
-
- LONDON NOTES
- _July_ 1897
-
-
-I continued last month to seek private diversion, which I found to be
-more and more required as the machinery of public began to work. Never
-was a better chance apparently for the great anodyne of art. It was a
-supreme opportunity to test the spell of the magician, for one felt one
-was saved if a fictive world would open. I knocked in this way at a
-dozen doors, I read a succession of novels; with the effect perhaps of
-feeling more than ever before my individual liability in our great
-general debt to the novelists. The great thing to say for them is surely
-that at any given moment they offer us another world, another
-consciousness, an experience that, as effective as the dentist’s ether,
-muffles the ache of the actual and, by helping us to an interval, tides
-us over and makes us face, in the return to the inevitable, a
-combination that may at least have changed. What we get of course, in
-proportion as the picture lives, is simply another actual—the actual of
-other people; and I no more than any one else pretend to say _why_ that
-should be a relief, a relief as great, I mean, as it practically proves.
-We meet in this question, I think, the eternal mystery—the mystery that
-sends us back simply to the queer constitution of man and that is not in
-the least lighted by the plea of “romance,” the argument that relief
-depends wholly upon the quantity, as it were, of fable. It depends, to
-my sense, on the quantity of nothing but art—in which the material,
-fable or fact or whatever it be, falls so into solution, is so reduced
-and transmuted, that I absolutely am acquainted with no receipt whatever
-for computing its proportion and amount.
-
-The only amount I can compute is the force of the author, for that is
-directly registered in my attention, my submission. A hundred things
-naturally go to make it up; but he knows so much better than I what they
-are that I should blush to give him a glimpse of my inferior account of
-them. The anodyne is not the particular picture, it is our own act of
-surrender, and therefore most, for each reader, what he most surrenders
-to. This latter element would seem in turn to vary from case to case,
-were it not indeed that there are readers prepared, I believe, to limit
-their surrender in advance. With some, we gather, it declines for
-instance to operate save on an exhibition of “high life.” In others
-again it is proof against any solicitation but that of low. In many it
-vibrates only to “adventure”; in many only to Charlotte Brontë; in
-various groups, according to affinity, only to Jane Austen, to old
-Dumas, to Miss Corelli, to Dostoievsky or whomever it may be. The
-readers easiest to conceive, however, are probably those for whom, in
-the whole impression, the note of sincerity in the artist is what most
-matters, what most reaches and touches. That, obviously, is the relation
-that gives the widest range to the anodyne.
-
-I am afraid that, profiting by my license, I drag forward Mr. George
-Gissing from an antiquity of several weeks. I blow the dust of oblivion
-from M. Pierre Loti and indeed from all the company—they have been
-published for days and days. I foresee, however, that I must neglect the
-company for the sake of the two members I have named, writers—I speak
-for myself—always in order, though not, I admit, on quite the same
-line. Mr. Gissing would have been particularly in order had he only kept
-for the present period the work preceding his latest; all the more that
-“In the Year of Jubilee” has to my perception some points of superiority
-to “The Whirlpool.” For this author in general, at any rate, I profess,
-and have professed ever since reading “The New Grub Street,” a
-persistent taste—a taste that triumphs even over the fact that he
-almost as persistently disappoints me. I fail as yet to make out why
-exactly it is that going so far he so sturdily refuses to go further.
-The whole business of distribution and composition he strikes me as
-having cast to the winds; but just this fact of a question about him is
-a part of the wonder—I use the word in the sense of enjoyment—that he
-excites. It is not every day in the year that we meet a novelist about
-whom there is a question. The circumstance alone is almost sufficient to
-beguile or to enthrall; and I seem to myself to have said almost
-everything in speaking of something that Mr. Gissing “goes far” enough
-to do. To go far enough to do anything is, in the conditions we live in,
-a lively achievement.
-
-“The Whirlpool,” I crudely confess, was in a manner a grief to me, but
-the book has much substance, and there is no light privilege in an
-emotion so sustained. This emotion perhaps it is that most makes me, to
-the end, stick to Mr. Gissing—makes me with an almost nervous clutch
-quite cling to him. I shall not know how to deal with him, however, if I
-withhold the last outrage of calling him an interesting case. He seems
-to me above all a case of saturation, and it is mainly his saturation
-that makes him interesting—I mean especially in the sense of making him
-singular. The interest would be greater were his art more complete; but
-we must take what we can get, and Mr. Gissing has a way of his own. The
-great thing is that his saturation is with elements that, presented to
-us in contemporary English fiction, affect us as a product of
-extraordinary oddity and rarity: he reeks with the savour, he is bowed
-beneath the fruits, of contact with the lower, with the lowest
-middle-class, and that is sufficient to make him an authority—_the_
-authority in fact—on a region vast and unexplored.
-
-The English novel has as a general thing kept so desperately, so
-nervously clear of it, whisking back compromised skirts and bumping
-frantically against obstacles to retreat, that we welcome as the boldest
-of adventurers a painter who has faced it and survived. We have had low
-life in plenty, for, with its sores and vices, its crimes and penalties,
-misery has colour enough to open the door to any quantity of artistic
-patronage. We have shuddered in the dens of thieves and the cells of
-murderers, and have dropped the inevitable tear over tortured childhood
-and purified sin. We have popped in at the damp cottage with my lady and
-heard the quaint rustic, bless his simple heart, commit himself for our
-amusement. We have fraternised on the other hand with the peerage and
-the county families, staying at fine old houses till exhausted nature
-has, for this source of intoxication, not a wink of sociability left. It
-has grown, the source in question, as stale as the sweet biscuit with
-pink enhancements in that familiar jar of the refreshment counter from
-which even the attendant young lady in black, with admirers and a social
-position, hesitates to extract it. We have recognised the humble, the
-wretched, even the wicked; also we have recognised the “smart.” But save
-under the immense pressure of Dickens we have never done anything so
-dreadful as to recognise the vulgar. We have at the very most recognised
-it as the extravagant, the grotesque. The case of Dickens was absolutely
-special; he dealt intensely with “lower middle,” with “lowest” middle,
-elements, but he escaped the predicament of showing them as vulgar by
-showing them only as prodigiously droll. When his people are not funny
-who shall dare to say what they are? The critic may draw breath as from
-a responsibility averted when he reflects that they almost always _are_
-funny. They belong to a walk of life that we may be ridiculous but never
-at all serious about. We may be tragic, but that is often but a form of
-humour. I seem to hear Mr. Gissing say: “Well, dreariness for
-dreariness, let us try Brondesbury and Pinner; especially as in the
-first place I know them so well; as in the second they are the essence
-of England; and as in the third they are, artistically speaking, virgin
-soil. Behold them glitter in the morning dew.”
-
-So he _is_ serious—almost imperturbably—about them, and, as it turns
-out, even quite manfully and admirably sad. He has the great thing: his
-saturation (with the visible and audible common) can project itself, let
-him get outside of it and walk round it. I scarcely think he stays, as
-it were, outside quite as much as he might; and on the question of form
-he certainly strikes me as staying far too little. It is form above all
-that is talent, and if Mr. Gissing’s were proportionate to his
-knowledge, to what may be called his possession, we should have a larger
-force to reckon with. That—not to speak of the lack of intensity in his
-imagination—is the direction in which one would wish him to go further.
-Our Anglo-Saxon tradition of these matters remains surely in some
-respects the strangest. After the perusal of such a book as “The
-Whirlpool” I feel as if I had almost to explain that by “these matters”
-I mean the whole question of composition, of foreshortening, of the
-proportion and relation of parts. Mr. Gissing, to wind up my reserves,
-overdoes the ostensible report of spoken words; though I hasten to add
-that this abuse is so general a sign, in these days, of the English and
-the American novel as to deprive a challenge of every hope of credit. It
-is attended visibly—that is visibly to those who can see—with two or
-three woeful results. If it had none other it would still deserve
-arraignment on the simple ground of what it crowds out—the golden
-blocks themselves of the structure, the whole divine exercise and
-mystery of the exquisite art of presentation.
-
-The ugliest trick it plays at any rate is its effect on that side of the
-novelist’s effort—the side of most difficulty and thereby of most
-dignity—which consists in giving the sense of duration, of the lapse
-and accumulation of time. This is altogether to my view the stiffest
-problem that the artist in fiction has to tackle, and nothing is more
-striking at present than the blankness, for the most part, of his
-indifference to it. The mere multiplication of quoted remarks is the
-last thing to strengthen his hand. Such an expedient works exactly to
-the opposite end, absolutely minimising, in regard to time, our
-impression of lapse and passage. That is so much the case that I can
-think of no novel in which it prevails as giving at all the sense of the
-gradual and the retarded—the stretch of the years in which developments
-really take place. The picture is nothing unless it be a picture of the
-conditions, and the conditions are usually hereby quite omitted. Thanks
-to this perversity everything dealt with in fiction appears at present
-to occur simply on the occasion of a few conversations about it; there
-is no other constitution of it. A few hours, a few days seem to account
-for it. The process, the “dark backward and abysm,” is really so little
-reproduced. We feel tempted to send many an author, to learn the
-rudiments of this secret, back to his Balzac again, the most
-accomplished master of it. He will learn also from Balzac while he is
-about it that nothing furthermore, as intrinsic effect, so much
-discounts itself as this abuse of the element of colloquy.
-
-“Dialogue,” as it is commonly called, is singularly suicidal from the
-moment it is not directly illustrative of something given us by another
-method, something constituted and presented. It is impossible to read
-work even as interesting as Mr. Gissing’s without recognising the
-impossibility of making people both talk “all the time” and talk with
-the needful differences. The thing, so far as we have got, is simply too
-hard. There is always at the best the author’s voice to be kept out. It
-can be kept out for occasions, it can not be kept out always. The
-solution therefore is to leave it its function, for it has the supreme
-one. This function, properly exercised, averts the disaster of the
-blight of the colloquy really in place—illustrative and indispensable.
-Nothing is more inevitable than such a blight when antecedently the
-general effect of the process has been undermined. We then want the
-report of the spoken word—want that only. But, proportionately, it
-doesn’t come, doesn’t count. It has been fatally cheapened. There is no
-effect, no relief.
-
-I am writing a treatise when I meant only to give a glance; and it may
-be asked if the best thing I find in Mr. Gissing is after all then but
-an opportunity to denounce. The answer to that is that I find two other
-things—or should find them rather had I not deprived myself as usual of
-proper space. One of these is the pretext for speaking, by absolute
-rebound, as it were, and in the interest of vivid contrast, of Pierre
-Loti; the other is a better occasion still, an occasion for the
-liveliest sympathy. It is impossible not to be affected by the frankness
-and straightness of Mr. Gissing’s feeling for his subject, a subject
-almost always distinctly remunerative to the ironic and even to the
-dramatic mind. He has the strongest deepest sense of common humanity, of
-the general struggle and the general grey grim comedy. He loves the
-real, he renders it, and though he has a tendency to drift too much with
-his tide, he gives us, in the great welter of the savourless, an
-individual manly strain. If he only had distinction he would make the
-suburbs “hum.” I don’t mean of course by his circulation there—the
-effect Ibsen is supposed to have on them; I mean objectively and as a
-rounded whole, as a great theme treated.
-
-I am ashamed of having postponed “Ramuntcho,” for “Ramuntcho” is a
-direct recall of the beauty of “Pêcheur d’Islande” and “Mon Frère
-Yves”—in other words a literary impression of the most exquisite order.
-Perhaps indeed it is as well that a critic _should_ postpone—and quite
-indefinitely—an author as to whom he is ready to confess that his
-critical instinct is quite suspended. Oh the blessing of a book, the
-luxury of a talent, that one is only anxious not to reason about, only
-anxious to turn over in the mind and to taste! It is a poor business
-perhaps, but I have nothing more responsible to say of Loti than that I
-adore him. I love him when he is bad—and heaven knows he has
-occasionally been so—more than I love other writers when they are good.
-If therefore he is on the whole quite at his best in “Ramuntcho” I fear
-my appreciation is an undertaking too merely active for indirect
-expression. I can give it no more coherent form than to say that he
-makes the act of partaking one of the joys that, as things mainly go, a
-reader must be pretty well provided to be able not to jump at. And yet
-there are readers, apparently, who _are_ so provided. There are readers
-who don’t jump and are cocksure they can do without it. My sense of the
-situation is that they are wrong—that with famine stalking so abroad
-literally no one can. I defy it not to tell somewhere—become a gap one
-can immediately “spot.”
-
-It is well to content one’s self, at all events, with affection; so
-stiff a job, in such a case, is understanding or, still more,
-explanation. There is a kind of finality in Loti’s simplicity—if it
-even _be_ simplicity. He performs in an air in which, on the part of the
-spectator, analysis withers and only submission lives. Has it anything
-to do with literature? Has it anything to do with nature? It must be, we
-should suppose, the last refinement either of one or of the other. Is it
-all emotion, is it all calculation, is it all truth, is it all humbug?
-All we can say as readers is that it is for ourselves all experience,
-and of the most personal intensity. The great question is whether it be
-emotion “neat” or emotion rendered and reduced. If it be resolved into
-art why hasn’t it more of the chill? If it be sensibility pure why isn’t
-it cruder and clumsier? What is exquisite is the contact of sensibility
-made somehow so convenient—with only the beauty preserved. It is not
-too much to say of Loti that his sensibility begins where that of most
-of those who _use_ the article ends. If moreover in effect he represents
-the triumph of instinct, when was instinct ever so sustained and so
-unerring? It keeps him unfailingly, in the matter of “dialogue,” out of
-the overflow and the waste. It is a joy to see how his looseness is
-pervaded after all by proportion.
-
-
-
-
- LONDON NOTES
- _August_ 1897
-
-
-I shrink at this day from any air of relapsing into reference to those
-Victorian saturnalia of which the force may now be taken as pretty well
-spent; and if I remount the stream for an instant it is but with the
-innocent intention of plucking the one little flower of literature that,
-while the current roared, happened—so far at least as I could
-observe—to sprout by the bank. If it was sole of its kind moreover it
-was, I hasten to add, a mere accident of the Jubilee and as little a
-prominent as a preconcerted feature. What it comes to therefore is that
-if I gathered at the supreme moment a literary impression, the literary
-impression had yet nothing to do with the affair; nothing, that is,
-beyond the casual connection given by a somewhat acrid aftertaste, the
-vision of the London of the morrow as I met this experience in a woeful
-squeeze through town the day after the fair. It was the singular fate of
-M. Paul Bourget, invited to lecture at Oxford under university patronage
-and with Gustave Flaubert for his subject, to have found his appearance
-arranged for June 23. I express this untowardness but feebly, I know,
-for those at a distance from the edge of the whirlpool, the vast
-concentric eddies that sucked down all other life.
-
-I found, on the morrow in question—the great day had been the 22nd—the
-main suggestion of a journey from the south of England up to Waterloo
-and across from Waterloo to Paddington to be that of one of those deep
-gasps or wild staggers, losses of wind and of balance, that follow some
-tremendous effort or some violent concussion. The weather was splendid
-and torrid and London a huge dusty cabless confusion of timber already
-tottering, of decorations already stale, of _badauds_ already bored. The
-banquet-hall was by no means deserted, but it was choked with mere
-echoes and candle-ends; one had heard often enough of a “great national
-awakening,” and this was the greatest it would have been possible to
-imagine. Millions of eyes, opening to dust and glare from the scenery of
-dreams, seemed slowly to stare and to try to recollect. Certainly at
-that distance the omens were poor for such concentration as a French
-critic might have been moved to count upon, and even on reaching Oxford
-I was met by the sense that the spirit of that seat of learning, though
-accustomed to intellectual strain, had before the afternoon but little
-of a margin for pulling itself together. Let me say at once that it made
-the most of the scant interval and that when five o’clock came the bare
-scholastic room at the Taylorian offered M. Bourget’s reputation and
-topic, in the hot dead Oxford air, an attention as deep and as
-many-headed as the combination could ever have hoped to command.
-
-For one auditor of whom I can speak, at all events, the occasion had an
-intensity of interest transcending even that of Flaubert’s strange
-personal story—which was part of M. Bourget’s theme—and of the new and
-deep meanings that the lecturer read into it. Just the fact of the
-occasion itself struck me as having well-nigh most to say, and at any
-rate fed most the all but bottomless sense that constitutes to-day my
-chief receptacle of impressions; a sense which at the same time I fear I
-cannot better describe than as that of the way we are markedly going. No
-undue eagerness to determine whether this be well or ill attaches to the
-particular consciousness I speak of, and I can only give it frankly for
-what, on the whole, it most, for beguilement, for amusement, for the
-sweet thrill of perception, represents and achieves—the quickened
-notation of our “modernity.” I feel that I can pay this last-named
-lively influence no greater tribute than by candidly accepting as an aid
-to expression its convenient name. To do that doubtless is to accept
-with the name a host of other things. From the moment, at any rate, the
-quickening I speak of sets in it is wonderful how many of these other
-things play, by every circumstance, into the picture.
-
-That the day should have come for M. Bourget to lecture at Oxford, and
-should have come by the same stroke for Gustave Flaubert to be lectured
-about, filled the mind to a degree, and left it in an agitation of
-violence, which almost excluded the question of what in especial one of
-these spirits was to give and the other to gain. It was enough of an
-emotion, for the occasion, to live in the circumstance that the author
-of “Madame Bovary” could receive in England a public baptism of such
-peculiar solemnity. With the vision of that, one could bring in all the
-light and colour of all the rest of the picture and absolutely see, for
-the instant, something momentous in the very act of happening, something
-certainly that might easily become momentous with a little
-interpretation. Such are the happy chances of the critical spirit,
-always yearning to interpret, but not always in presence of the right
-mystery.
-
-There was a degree of poetic justice, or at least of poetic generosity,
-in the introduction of Flaubert to a scene, to conditions of credit and
-honour, so little to have been by himself ever apprehended or estimated:
-it was impossible not to feel that no setting or stage for the crowning
-of his bust could less have appeared familiar to him, and that he
-wouldn’t have failed to wonder into what strangely alien air his glory
-had strayed. So it is that, as I say, the whole affair was a little
-miracle of our breathless pace, and no corner from which another member
-of the craft could watch it was so quiet as to attenuate the small
-magnificence of the hour. No novelist, in a word, worth his salt could
-fail of a consciousness, under the impression, of his becoming rather
-more of a novelist than before. Was it not, on the whole, just the
-essence of the matter that had for the moment there its official
-recognition? were not the blest mystery and art ushered forward in a
-more expectant and consecrating hush than had ever yet been known to
-wait upon them?
-
-One may perhaps take these things too hard and read into them foolish
-fancies; but the hush in question was filled to my imagination—quite
-apart from the listening faces, of which there would be special things
-to say that I wouldn’t for the world risk—with the great picture of all
-the old grey quads and old green gardens, of all the so totally
-different traditions and processions that were content at last, if only
-for the drowsy end of a summer afternoon, to range themselves round and
-play at hospitality. What it appeared possible to make out was a certain
-faint convergence: that was the idea of which, during the whole process,
-I felt the agreeable obsession. From the moment it brushed the mind
-certainly the impulse was to clutch and detain it: too doleful would it
-have been to entertain for an instant the fear that M. Bourget’s lecture
-could leave the two elements of his case facing each other only at the
-same distance at which it had found them. No, no; there was nothing for
-it but to assume and insist that with each tick of the clock they moved
-a little nearer together. That was the process, as I have called it, and
-none the less interesting to the observer that it may not have been, and
-may not yet be, rapid, full, complete, quite easy or clear or
-successful. It was the seed of contact that assuredly was sown; it was
-the friendly beginning that in a manner was made. The situation was
-handled and modified—the day was a date. I shall perhaps remain obscure
-unless I say more expressly and literally that the particular thing into
-which, for the perfect outsider, the occasion most worked was a lively
-interest—so far as an outsider could feel it—in the whole odd
-phenomenon and spectacle of a certain usual positive _want_ of
-convergence, want of communication between what the seat and habit of
-the classics, the famous frequentation and discipline, do for their
-victims in one direction and what they do not do for them in another.
-Was the invitation to M. Bourget not a dim symptom of a bridging of this
-queerest of all chasms? I can only so denominate—as a most anomalous
-gap—the class of possibilities to which we owe its so often coming over
-us in England that the light kindled by the immense academic privilege
-is apt suddenly to turn to thick smoke in the air of contemporary
-letters.
-
-There are movements of the classic torch round modern objects—strange
-drips and drops and wondrous waverings—that have the effect of putting
-it straight out. The range of reference that I allude to and that is
-most the fashion draws its credit from being an education of the taste,
-and it doubtless makes on the prescribed lines and in the close company
-of the ancients tremendous tests and triumphs for that principle.
-Nothing, however, is so singular as to see what again and again becomes
-of it in the presence of examples for which prescription and association
-are of no avail. I am speaking here of course not of unexpected
-reserves, but of unexpected raptures, bewildering revelations of a
-failure of the sense of perspective. This leads at times to queer
-conjunctions, strange collocations in which Euripides gives an arm to
-Sarah Grand and Octave Feuillet harks back to Virgil. It is the breath
-of a madness in which one gropes for a method—probes in vain the hiatus
-and sighs for the missing link. I am far from meaning to say that all
-this will find itself amended by the discreet dose administered the
-other day at the Taylorian of even so great an antidote as Flaubert; but
-I come back to my theory that there is after all hope for a world still
-so accessible to salutary shocks. That was apparent indeed some years
-ago. Was it not at the Taylorian that Taine and Renan successively
-lectured? Oxford, wherever it was, heard them even then to the end. It
-is for the Taines, Renans and Bourgets very much the salting of the tail
-of the bird: there must be more than one try.
-
-It is possible to have glanced at some of the odd estimates that the
-conversation of the cultivated throws to the surface and yet to say
-quite without reserve that the world of books has suffered no small
-shrinkage by the recent death of Mrs. Oliphant. She had long lived and
-worked in it, and from no individual perhaps had the great contemporary
-flood received a more copious tribute. I know not if some study of her
-remarkable life, and still more of her remarkable character, be in
-preparation, but she was a figure that would on many sides still lend
-itself to vivid portraiture. Her success had been in its day as great as
-her activity, yet it was always present to me that her singular gift was
-less recognised, or at any rate less reflected, less reported upon, than
-it deserved: unless indeed she may have been one of those difficult
-cases for criticism, an energy of which the spirit and the form,
-straggling apart, never join hands with that effect of union which in
-literature more than anywhere else is strength.
-
-Criticism, among us all, has come to the pass of being shy of difficult
-cases, and no one, for that matter, practised it more in the hit-or-miss
-fashion and on happy-go-lucky lines than Mrs. Oliphant herself. She
-practised it, as she practised everything, on such an inordinate scale
-that her biographer, if there is to be one, will have no small task in
-the mere drafting of lists of her contributions to magazines and
-journals in general and to “Blackwood” in particular. She wrought in
-“Blackwood” for years, anonymously and profusely; no writer of the day
-found a _porte-voix_ nearer to hand or used it with an easier personal
-latitude and comfort. I should almost suppose in fact that no woman had
-ever, for half a century, had her personal “say” so publicly and
-irresponsibly. Her facilities of course were of her own making, but the
-wonder was that once made they could be so applied.
-
-The explanation of her extraordinary fecundity was a rare original
-equipment, an imperturbability of courage, health and brain, to which
-was added the fortune or the merit of her having had to tune her
-instrument at the earliest age. That instrument was essentially a Scotch
-one; her stream flowed long and full without losing its primary colour.
-To say that she was organised highly for literature would be to make too
-light of too many hazards and conditions; but few writers of our time
-have been so organised for liberal, for—one may almost put it—heroic
-production. One of the interesting things in big persons is that they
-leave us plenty of questions, if only about themselves; and precisely
-one of those that Mrs. Oliphant suggests is the wonder and mystery of a
-love of letters that could be so great without ever, on a single
-occasion even, being greater. It was of course not a matter of mere
-love; it was a part of her volume and abundance that she understood life
-itself in a fine freehanded manner and, I imagine, seldom refused to
-risk a push at a subject, however it might have given pause, that would
-help to turn her wide wheel. She worked largely from obligation—to meet
-the necessities and charges and pleasures and sorrows of which she had a
-plentiful share. She showed in it all a sort of sedentary dash—an
-acceptance of the day’s task and an abstention from the plaintive note
-from which I confess I could never withhold my admiration.
-
-Her capacity for labour was infinite—for labour of the only sort that,
-with the fine strain of old Scotch pride and belated letterless toryism
-that was in her, she regarded as respectable. She had small patience
-with new-fangled attitudes or with a finical conscience. What was good
-enough for Sir Walter was good enough for her, and I make no doubt that
-her shrewd unfiltered easy flow, fed after all by an immensity of
-reading as well as of observation and humour, would have been good
-enough for Sir Walter. If this had been the case with her abounding
-history, biography and criticism, it would have been still more the case
-with her uncontrolled flood of fiction. She was really a great
-_improvisatrice_, a night-working spinner of long, loose, vivid yarns,
-numberless, pauseless, admirable, repeatedly, for their full, pleasant,
-reckless rustle over depths and difficulties—admirable indeed, in any
-case of Scotch elements, for many a close engagement with these. She
-showed in no literary relation more acuteness than in the relation—so
-profitable a one as it has always been—to the inexhaustible little
-country which has given so much, yet has ever so much more to give, and
-all the romance and reality of which she had at the end of her pen. Her
-Scotch folk have a wealth of life, and I think no Scotch talk in fiction
-less of a strain to the patience of the profane. It may be less
-austerely veracious than some—but these are esoteric matters.
-
-Reading since her death “Kirsteen”—one of the hundred, but published in
-her latest period and much admired by some judges—I was, though
-beguiled, not too much beguiled to be struck afresh with that elusive
-fact on which I just touched, the mixture in the whole thing. Such a
-product as “Kirsteen” has life—is full of life, but the critic is
-infinitely baffled. It may of course be said to him that he has nothing
-to do with compositions of this order—with such wares altogether as
-Mrs. Oliphant dealt in. But he can accept that retort only with a
-renunciation of some of his liveliest anxieties. Let him take some early
-day for getting behind, as it were, the complexion of a talent that
-could care to handle a thing to the tune of so many pages and yet not
-care more to “do” it. There is a fascination in the mere spectacle of so
-serene an instinct for the middle way, so visible a conviction that to
-reflect is to be lost.
-
-Mrs. Oliphant was never lost, but she too often saved herself at the
-expense of her subject. I have no space to insist, but so much of the
-essence of the situation in “Kirsteen” strikes me as missed, dropped out
-without a thought, that the wonder is all the greater of the fact that
-in spite of it the book does in a manner scramble over its course and
-throw up a fresh strong air. This was certainly the most that the author
-would have pretended, and from her scorn of precautions springs a gleam
-of impertinence quite in place in her sharp and handsome physiognomy,
-that of a person whose eggs are not all in one basket, nor all her
-imagination in service at once. There is scant enough question of “art”
-in the matter, but there is a friendly way for us to feel about so much
-cleverness, courage and humanity. We meet the case in wishing that the
-timid talents were a little more like her and the bold ones a little
-less.
-
- THE END
-
-
-
-
- TRANSCRIBER NOTES
-
-
-Mis-spelled words and printer errors have been fixed.
-Inconsistency in hyphenation has been retained.
-
-
-
-
-
-
-
-
-
-
-End of the Project Gutenberg EBook of Notes on Novelists, by Henry James
-
-*** END OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK NOTES ON NOVELISTS ***
-
-***** This file should be named 60040-0.txt or 60040-0.zip *****
-This and all associated files of various formats will be found in:
- http://www.gutenberg.org/6/0/0/4/60040/
-
-Produced by David T. Jones, Alex White & the online
-Distributed Proofreaders Canada team at
-http://www.pgdpcanada.net
-
-Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions will
-be renamed.
-
-Creating the works from print editions not protected by U.S. copyright
-law means that no one owns a United States copyright in these works,
-so the Foundation (and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United
-States without permission and without paying copyright
-royalties. Special rules, set forth in the General Terms of Use part
-of this license, apply to copying and distributing Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works to protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm
-concept and trademark. Project Gutenberg is a registered trademark,
-and may not be used if you charge for the eBooks, unless you receive
-specific permission. If you do not charge anything for copies of this
-eBook, complying with the rules is very easy. You may use this eBook
-for nearly any purpose such as creation of derivative works, reports,
-performances and research. They may be modified and printed and given
-away--you may do practically ANYTHING in the United States with eBooks
-not protected by U.S. copyright law. Redistribution is subject to the
-trademark license, especially commercial redistribution.
-
-START: FULL LICENSE
-
-THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE
-PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK
-
-To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free
-distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
-(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg"), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full
-Project Gutenberg-tm License available with this file or online at
-www.gutenberg.org/license.
-
-Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-
-1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
-and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
-(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
-the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or
-destroy all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your
-possession. If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a
-Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound
-by the terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the
-person or entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph
-1.E.8.
-
-1.B. "Project Gutenberg" is a registered trademark. It may only be
-used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
-agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
-things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
-paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the terms of this
-agreement and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works. See paragraph 1.E below.
-
-1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation ("the
-Foundation" or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection
-of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual
-works in the collection are in the public domain in the United
-States. If an individual work is unprotected by copyright law in the
-United States and you are located in the United States, we do not
-claim a right to prevent you from copying, distributing, performing,
-displaying or creating derivative works based on the work as long as
-all references to Project Gutenberg are removed. Of course, we hope
-that you will support the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting
-free access to electronic works by freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm
-works in compliance with the terms of this agreement for keeping the
-Project Gutenberg-tm name associated with the work. You can easily
-comply with the terms of this agreement by keeping this work in the
-same format with its attached full Project Gutenberg-tm License when
-you share it without charge with others.
-
-1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
-what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are
-in a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States,
-check the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this
-agreement before downloading, copying, displaying, performing,
-distributing or creating derivative works based on this work or any
-other Project Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no
-representations concerning the copyright status of any work in any
-country outside the United States.
-
-1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
-
-1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other
-immediate access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear
-prominently whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work
-on which the phrase "Project Gutenberg" appears, or with which the
-phrase "Project Gutenberg" is associated) is accessed, displayed,
-performed, viewed, copied or distributed:
-
- This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and
- most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no
- restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it
- under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included with this
- eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the
- United States, you'll have to check the laws of the country where you
- are located before using this ebook.
-
-1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is
-derived from texts not protected by U.S. copyright law (does not
-contain a notice indicating that it is posted with permission of the
-copyright holder), the work can be copied and distributed to anyone in
-the United States without paying any fees or charges. If you are
-redistributing or providing access to a work with the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg" associated with or appearing on the work, you must comply
-either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 or
-obtain permission for the use of the work and the Project Gutenberg-tm
-trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted
-with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
-must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any
-additional terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms
-will be linked to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works
-posted with the permission of the copyright holder found at the
-beginning of this work.
-
-1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm
-License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
-work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm.
-
-1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
-electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
-prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
-active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm License.
-
-1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
-compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including
-any word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access
-to or distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format
-other than "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other format used in the official
-version posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm web site
-(www.gutenberg.org), you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense
-to the user, provide a copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means
-of obtaining a copy upon request, of the work in its original "Plain
-Vanilla ASCII" or other form. Any alternate format must include the
-full Project Gutenberg-tm License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
-
-1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
-performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works
-unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
-access to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-provided that
-
-* You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
- the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method
- you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is owed
- to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he has
- agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments must be paid
- within 60 days following each date on which you prepare (or are
- legally required to prepare) your periodic tax returns. Royalty
- payments should be clearly marked as such and sent to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the address specified in
- Section 4, "Information about donations to the Project Gutenberg
- Literary Archive Foundation."
-
-* You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
- you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
- does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm
- License. You must require such a user to return or destroy all
- copies of the works possessed in a physical medium and discontinue
- all use of and all access to other copies of Project Gutenberg-tm
- works.
-
-* You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of
- any money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
- electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days of
- receipt of the work.
-
-* You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
- distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works.
-
-1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work or group of works on different terms than
-are set forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing
-from both the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and The
-Project Gutenberg Trademark LLC, the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm
-trademark. Contact the Foundation as set forth in Section 3 below.
-
-1.F.
-
-1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
-effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
-works not protected by U.S. copyright law in creating the Project
-Gutenberg-tm collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may
-contain "Defects," such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate
-or corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other
-intellectual property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or
-other medium, a computer virus, or computer codes that damage or
-cannot be read by your equipment.
-
-1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the "Right
-of Replacement or Refund" described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
-liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
-fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
-LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
-PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
-TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
-LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
-INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
-DAMAGE.
-
-1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
-defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
-receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
-written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
-received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium
-with your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you
-with the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in
-lieu of a refund. If you received the work electronically, the person
-or entity providing it to you may choose to give you a second
-opportunity to receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If
-the second copy is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing
-without further opportunities to fix the problem.
-
-1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
-in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS', WITH NO
-OTHER WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT
-LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
-
-1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
-warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of
-damages. If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement
-violates the law of the state applicable to this agreement, the
-agreement shall be interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or
-limitation permitted by the applicable state law. The invalidity or
-unenforceability of any provision of this agreement shall not void the
-remaining provisions.
-
-1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
-trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
-providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in
-accordance with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the
-production, promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works, harmless from all liability, costs and expenses,
-including legal fees, that arise directly or indirectly from any of
-the following which you do or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this
-or any Project Gutenberg-tm work, (b) alteration, modification, or
-additions or deletions to any Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any
-Defect you cause.
-
-Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of
-electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of
-computers including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It
-exists because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations
-from people in all walks of life.
-
-Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
-assistance they need are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm's
-goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will
-remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
-and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future
-generations. To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation and how your efforts and donations can help, see
-Sections 3 and 4 and the Foundation information page at
-www.gutenberg.org
-
-
-
-Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation
-
-The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non profit
-501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
-state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
-Revenue Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification
-number is 64-6221541. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent permitted by
-U.S. federal laws and your state's laws.
-
-The Foundation's principal office is in Fairbanks, Alaska, with the
-mailing address: PO Box 750175, Fairbanks, AK 99775, but its
-volunteers and employees are scattered throughout numerous
-locations. Its business office is located at 809 North 1500 West, Salt
-Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887. Email contact links and up to
-date contact information can be found at the Foundation's web site and
-official page at www.gutenberg.org/contact
-
-For additional contact information:
-
- Dr. Gregory B. Newby
- Chief Executive and Director
- gbnewby@pglaf.org
-
-Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg
-Literary Archive Foundation
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without wide
-spread public support and donations to carry out its mission of
-increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
-freely distributed in machine readable form accessible by the widest
-array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
-($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
-status with the IRS.
-
-The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
-charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
-States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
-considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
-with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
-where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To SEND
-DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any particular
-state visit www.gutenberg.org/donate
-
-While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
-have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
-against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
-approach us with offers to donate.
-
-International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
-any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
-outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
-
-Please check the Project Gutenberg Web pages for current donation
-methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
-ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations. To
-donate, please visit: www.gutenberg.org/donate
-
-Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works.
-
-Professor Michael S. Hart was the originator of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm concept of a library of electronic works that could be
-freely shared with anyone. For forty years, he produced and
-distributed Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of
-volunteer support.
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed
-editions, all of which are confirmed as not protected by copyright in
-the U.S. unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not
-necessarily keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper
-edition.
-
-Most people start at our Web site which has the main PG search
-facility: www.gutenberg.org
-
-This Web site includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm,
-including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
-subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.
-
diff --git a/old/60040-0.zip b/old/60040-0.zip
deleted file mode 100644
index 8d0a358..0000000
--- a/old/60040-0.zip
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/60040-h.zip b/old/60040-h.zip
deleted file mode 100644
index fa637de..0000000
--- a/old/60040-h.zip
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/60040-h/60040-h.htm b/old/60040-h/60040-h.htm
deleted file mode 100644
index a493379..0000000
--- a/old/60040-h/60040-h.htm
+++ /dev/null
@@ -1,16081 +0,0 @@
-<!DOCTYPE html PUBLIC "-//W3C//DTD XHTML 1.0 Strict//EN"
- "http://www.w3.org/TR/xhtml1/DTD/xhtml1-strict.dtd">
-<html xmlns="http://www.w3.org/1999/xhtml" xml:lang="en" lang="en">
- <head>
- <meta http-equiv="Content-Type" content="text/html;charset=utf-8" />
- <title>Notes on Novelists With Some Other Notes</title>
- <link rel="coverpage" href="images/cover.jpg"/>
- <meta name="cover" content="images/cover.jpg" />
- <meta name="DC.Creator" content="James, Henry"/>
- <meta name="DC.Title" content="Notes on Novelists With Some Other Notes"/>
- <meta name="DC.Language" content="en"/>
- <meta name="DC.Created" content="1914"/>
- <meta name="DC.date.issued" content="1914"/>
- <meta name="DC.Subject" content="Literature"/>
- <meta name="Tags" content="Literature"/>
- <meta name="DC.Publisher" content="Distributed Proofreaders Canada"/>
- <meta name="generator" content="fpgen 4.03"/>
- <style type="text/css">
- body { margin-left:8%;margin-right:10%; }
- .pagenum { right: 1%; font-size: x-small; background-color: inherit; color: silver;
- text-indent: 0em; text-align: right; position: absolute;
- border: 1px solid silver; padding: 1px 3px; font-style: normal;
- font-variant: normal; font-weight: normal; text-decoration: none; }
- .it { font-style:italic; }
- .bold { font-weight:bold; }
- .sc { font-variant:small-caps; }
- p { text-indent:0; margin-top:0.5em; margin-bottom:0.5em;
- text-align: justify; }
- div.lgc { }
- div.lgl { }
- div.lgc p { text-align:center; text-indent:0; margin-top:0; margin-bottom:0; }
- div.lgl p { text-indent: -17px; margin-left:17px; margin-top:0; margin-bottom:0; }
- div.lgp { }
- div.lgp p { text-align:left; text-indent:0; margin-top:0; margin-bottom:0; }
- .poetry-container { display:inline-block; text-align:left; margin-left:2em; }
- h1 { text-align:center; font-weight:normal;
- font-size:1.2em; margin:2em auto 1em auto}
- h2 { text-align:center; font-weight:normal;
- font-size:1.1em; margin:1em auto 0.5em auto}
- hr.tbk100{ border:none; border-bottom:1px solid black; width:10%; margin-top:0.5em; margin-bottom:0.5em; text-align:center; margin-left:45%; margin-right:45% }
- hr.pbk { border:none; border-bottom:1px solid silver; width:100%; margin-top:2em; margin-bottom:2em }
- hr.footnotemark { border:none; border-bottom:1px solid silver; width:10%; margin:1em auto 1em 0; }
- .figcenter { text-align:center; margin:1em auto;}
- div.blockquote { margin:1em 2em; text-align:justify; }
- h1.nobreak { page-break-before: avoid; }
- p.line { text-indent:0; margin-top:0; margin-bottom:0; }
- div.lgp p.line0 { text-indent:-3em; margin:0 auto 0 3em; }
- table.center { margin:0.5em auto; border-collapse: collapse; padding:3px; }
- </style>
- <style type="text/css">
- h1 { font-size:1.8em }
- p.toc { font-variant:small-caps }
- p { text-indent:1.5em; margin-top:0em; margin-bottom:0em }
- div.blockquote.p { text-indent:1.5em; margin-top:1em; margin-bottom:2em }
- </style>
- </head>
- <body>
-
-
-<pre>
-
-The Project Gutenberg EBook of Notes on Novelists, by Henry James
-
-This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and most
-other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions
-whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms of
-the Project Gutenberg License included with this eBook or online at
-www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the United States, you'll have
-to check the laws of the country where you are located before using this ebook.
-
-Title: Notes on Novelists
- With Some Other Notes
-
-Author: Henry James
-
-Release Date: August 1, 2019 [EBook #60040]
-
-Language: English
-
-Character set encoding: UTF-8
-
-*** START OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK NOTES ON NOVELISTS ***
-
-
-
-
-Produced by David T. Jones, Alex White & the online
-Distributed Proofreaders Canada team at
-http://www.pgdpcanada.net
-
-
-
-
-
-
-</pre>
-
-
-
-<hr class='pbk'/>
-
-<div class='figcenter'>
-<img src='images/cover.jpg' alt='' id='iid-0000' style='width:250px;height:377px;'/>
-</div>
-
-<hr class='pbk'/>
-
-<div class='lgc' style=''> <!-- rend=';' -->
-<p class='line'>&#160;</p>
-<p class='line'>&#160;</p>
-<p class='line'>&#160;</p>
-<p class='line'>&#160;</p>
-<p class='line'>NOTES ON NOVELISTS</p>
-<p class='line'>&#160;</p>
-<p class='line'>WITH SOME OTHER NOTES</p>
-<p class='line'>&#160;</p>
-</div> <!-- end rend -->
-
-<hr class='pbk'/>
-
-<div class='lgc' style=''> <!-- rend=';sc;' -->
-<p class='line'>&#160;</p>
-<p class='line'>&#160;</p>
-<p class='line'>&#160;</p>
-<p class='line'>&#160;</p>
-<p class='line'>&#160;</p>
-<p class='line' style='font-variant:small-caps;'>By HENRY JAMES</p>
-<p class='line'>&#160;</p>
-<p class='line'>&#160;</p>
-<p class='line' style='font-variant:small-caps;'>A SMALL BOY AND OTHERS</p>
-<p class='line'>&#160;</p>
-<p class='line' style='font-variant:small-caps;'>NOTES OF A SON AND BROTHER</p>
-<p class='line'>&#160;</p>
-<p class='line' style='font-variant:small-caps;'>NOTES ON NOVELISTS</p>
-<p class='line' style='font-variant:small-caps;'>WITH SOME OTHER NOTES</p>
-</div> <!-- end rend -->
-
-<hr class='pbk'/>
-
-<div class='lgc' style=''> <!-- rend=';bold;' -->
-<p class='line'>&#160;</p>
-<p class='line' style='font-size:x-large;font-weight:bold;'>NOTES ON NOVELISTS</p>
-<p class='line' style='font-size:large;font-weight:bold;'>WITH SOME OTHER NOTES</p>
-<p class='line'>&#160;</p>
-<p class='line' style='font-weight:bold;'>BY</p>
-<p class='line'>&#160;</p>
-<p class='line' style='font-size:large;font-weight:bold;'>HENRY JAMES</p>
-<p class='line'>&#160;</p>
-<p class='line'>&#160;</p>
-<p class='line'>&#160;</p>
-<p class='line'>&#160;</p>
-<p class='line'>&#160;</p>
-<p class='line'>&#160;</p>
-<p class='line' style='font-weight:bold;'>NEW YORK</p>
-<p class='line' style='font-weight:bold;'>CHARLES SCRIBNER’S SONS</p>
-<p class='line' style='font-weight:bold;'>1914</p>
-</div> <!-- end rend -->
-
-<hr class='pbk'/>
-
-<div class='lgc' style=''> <!-- rend=';' -->
-<p class='line'>&#160;</p>
-<p class='line'>&#160;</p>
-<p class='line'>&#160;</p>
-<p class='line'><span class='sc'>Copyright, 1914, by</span></p>
-<p class='line'>CHARLES SCRIBNER’S SONS</p>
-<hr class='tbk100'/>
-<p class='line'>Published October, 1914</p>
-<p class='line'>&#160;</p>
-</div> <!-- end rend -->
-
-<hr class='pbk'/>
-
-<p class='line' style='text-align:center;font-size:x-large;'>CONTENTS</p>
-
-<table summary="" class='center'>
-<tr><td style='padding: 2px 5px; text-align:left; vertical-align:top'></td><td style='padding: 2px 5px; text-align:right; vertical-align:top'> <span style='font-size:smaller'>PAGE</span></td></tr>
-<tr><td colspan='0'>&nbsp;</td></tr>
-<tr><td style='padding: 2px 5px; text-align:left; vertical-align:top'><span class='sc'>Robert Louis Stevenson</span> </td><td style='padding: 2px 5px; text-align:right; vertical-align:top'><a href='#Page_1'>1</a></td></tr>
-<tr><td style='padding: 2px 5px; text-align:left; vertical-align:top'><span class='sc'>Émile Zola</span> </td><td style='padding: 2px 5px; text-align:right; vertical-align:top'><a href='#Page_26'>26</a></td></tr>
-<tr><td style='padding: 2px 5px; text-align:left; vertical-align:top'><span class='sc'>Gustave Flaubert</span> </td><td style='padding: 2px 5px; text-align:right; vertical-align:top'><a href='#Page_65'>65</a></td></tr>
-<tr><td style='padding: 2px 5px; text-align:left; vertical-align:top'><span class='sc'>Honoré de Balzac, 1902</span> </td><td style='padding: 2px 5px; text-align:right; vertical-align:top'><a href='#Page_109'>109</a></td></tr>
-<tr><td style='padding: 2px 5px; text-align:left; vertical-align:top'><span class='sc'>Honoré de Balzac, 1913</span> </td><td style='padding: 2px 5px; text-align:right; vertical-align:top'><a href='#Page_143'>143</a></td></tr>
-<tr><td style='padding: 2px 5px; text-align:left; vertical-align:top'><span class='sc'>George Sand, 1897</span> </td><td style='padding: 2px 5px; text-align:right; vertical-align:top'><a href='#Page_160'>160</a></td></tr>
-<tr><td style='padding: 2px 5px; text-align:left; vertical-align:top'><span class='sc'>George Sand, 1899</span> </td><td style='padding: 2px 5px; text-align:right; vertical-align:top'><a href='#Page_187'>187</a></td></tr>
-<tr><td style='padding: 2px 5px; text-align:left; vertical-align:top'><span class='sc'>George Sand, 1914</span> </td><td style='padding: 2px 5px; text-align:right; vertical-align:top'><a href='#Page_214'>214</a></td></tr>
-<tr><td style='padding: 2px 5px; text-align:left; vertical-align:top'><span class='sc'>Gabriele D’Annunzio, 1902</span> </td><td style='padding: 2px 5px; text-align:right; vertical-align:top'><a href='#Page_245'>245</a></td></tr>
-<tr><td style='padding: 2px 5px; text-align:left; vertical-align:top'><span class='sc'>Matilde Serao</span> </td><td style='padding: 2px 5px; text-align:right; vertical-align:top'><a href='#Page_294'>294</a></td></tr>
-<tr><td style='padding: 2px 5px; text-align:left; vertical-align:top'><span class='sc'>The New Novel, 1914</span> </td><td style='padding: 2px 5px; text-align:right; vertical-align:top'><a href='#Page_314'>314</a></td></tr>
-<tr><td style='padding: 2px 5px; text-align:left; vertical-align:top'><span class='sc'>Dumas the Younger, 1895</span> </td><td style='padding: 2px 5px; text-align:right; vertical-align:top'><a href='#Page_362'>362</a></td></tr>
-<tr><td style='padding: 2px 5px; text-align:left; vertical-align:top'><span class='sc'>The Novel in “The Ring and the Book,” 1912</span> </td><td style='padding: 2px 5px; text-align:right; vertical-align:top'><a href='#Page_385'>385</a></td></tr>
-<tr><td style='padding: 2px 5px; text-align:left; vertical-align:top'><span class='sc'>An American Art-Scholar: Charles Eliot Norton, 1908</span> </td><td style='padding: 2px 5px; text-align:right; vertical-align:top'><a href='#Page_412'>412</a></td></tr>
-<tr><td style='padding: 2px 5px; text-align:left; vertical-align:top'><span class='sc'>London Notes, January 1897</span> </td><td style='padding: 2px 5px; text-align:right; vertical-align:top'><a href='#Page_424'>424</a></td></tr>
-<tr><td style='padding: 2px 5px; text-align:left; vertical-align:top'><span class='sc'>London Notes, June 1897</span> </td><td style='padding: 2px 5px; text-align:right; vertical-align:top'><a href='#Page_428'>428</a></td></tr>
-<tr><td style='padding: 2px 5px; text-align:left; vertical-align:top'><span class='sc'>London Notes, July 1897</span> </td><td style='padding: 2px 5px; text-align:right; vertical-align:top'><a href='#Page_436'>436</a></td></tr>
-<tr><td style='padding: 2px 5px; text-align:left; vertical-align:top'><span class='sc'>London Notes, August 1897</span> </td><td style='padding: 2px 5px; text-align:right; vertical-align:top'><a href='#Page_446'>446</a></td></tr>
-</table>
-
-<hr class='pbk'/>
-
-<div class='lgc' style=''> <!-- rend=';xlg;' -->
-<p class='line'>&#160;</p>
-<p class='line'>&#160;</p>
-<p class='line'>&#160;</p>
-<p class='line'>&#160;</p>
-<p class='line'>&#160;</p>
-<p class='line' style='font-size:x-large;'>NOTES ON NOVELISTS</p>
-<p class='line'>&#160;</p>
-<p class='line' style='font-size:x-large;'>WITH SOME OTHER NOTES</p>
-</div> <!-- end rend -->
-
-<hr class='pbk'/>
-
-<p class='line' style='text-align:center;margin-top:2em;margin-bottom:1.5em;font-size:2em;font-weight:bold;'>NOTES ON NOVELISTS</p>
-
-<div><span class='pagenum'><a name='Page_1' id='Page_1'>1</a></span><h1 class='nobreak' id='t166'>ROBERT LOUIS STEVENSON</h1></div>
-
-<p>It was the happy fortune of Robert Louis Stevenson to
-have created beyond any man of his craft in our day a
-body of readers inspired with the feelings that we for
-the most part place at the service only of those for
-whom our affection is personal. There was no one
-who knew the man, one may safely assert, who was
-not also devoted to the writer—conforming in this respect
-to a general law (if law it be) that shows us many
-exceptions; but, naturally and not inconveniently, it
-had to remain far from true that all devotees of the
-writer were able to approach the man. The case was
-nevertheless that the man somehow approached <span class='it'>them</span>,
-and that to read him—certainly to read him with the
-full sense of his charm—came to mean for many persons
-much the same as to “meet” him. It was as if
-he wrote himself outright and altogether, rose straight
-to the surface of his prose, and still more of his happiest
-verse; so that these things gave out, besides whatever
-else, his look and motions and voice, showed his
-life and manners, all that there was of him, his “tremendous
-secrets” not excepted. We grew in short to
-possess him entire, and the example is the more curious
-and beautiful as he neither made a business of
-“confession” nor cultivated most those forms through
-which the <span class='it'>ego</span> shines. His great successes were supposititious
-histories of persons quite different from himself,
-and the objective, as we have learned to call it,
-was the ideal to which he oftenest sacrificed.</p>
-
-<p>The effect of it all none the less was such that his
-Correspondence has only seemed to administer delightfully
-a further push to a door already half open
-and through which we enter with an extraordinary
-failure of any sense of intrusion. We feel indeed that
-we are living with him, but what is that but what we
-were doing before? Through his Correspondence certainly
-the <span class='it'>ego</span> does, magnificently, shine—which is
-much the best thing that in any correspondence it can
-ever do. But even the “Vailima Letters,” published
-by Mr. Sidney Colvin in 1895, had already both established
-that and allayed our diffidence. “It came
-over me the other day suddenly that this diary of mine
-to you would make good pickings after I am dead, and
-a man could make some kind of book out of it without
-much trouble. So, for God’s sake, don’t lose them.”</p>
-
-<p>Being on these terms with our author, and feeling as
-if we had always been, we profit by freedoms that seem
-but the consecration of intimacy. Not only have we
-no sense of intrusion, but we are so prepared to penetrate
-further that when we come to limits we quite
-feel as if the story were mutilated and the copy not
-complete. There it is precisely that we seize the
-secret of our tie. Of course it was personal, for how
-did it operate in any connection whatever but to make
-us live with him? We had lived with him in “Treasure
-Island,” in “Kidnapped” and in “Catriona,” just as
-we do, by the light of these posthumous volumes, in
-the South Seas and at Vailima; and our present confidence
-comes from the fact of a particularly charming
-continuity. It is not that his novels were “subjective,”
-but that his life was romantic, and in the very
-same degree in which his own conception, his own presentation,
-of that element touches and thrills. If we
-want to know even more it is because we are always
-and everywhere in the story.</p>
-
-<p>To this absorbing extension of the story then the
-two volumes of Letters<a id='r1'/><a href='#f1' style='text-decoration:none'><sup><span style='font-size:0.9em'>[1]</span></sup></a> now published by Mr. Sidney
-Colvin beautifully contribute. The shelf of our library
-that contains our best letter-writers is considerably
-furnished, but not overcrowded, and its glory is
-not too great to keep Stevenson from finding there a
-place with the very first. He will not figure among
-the writers—those apt in this line to enjoy precedence—to
-whom only small things happen and who beguile
-us by making the most of them; he belongs to the class
-who have both matter and manner, substance and
-spirit, whom life carries swiftly before it and who
-signal and communicate, not to say gesticulate, as
-they go. He lived to the topmost pulse, and the last
-thing that could happen was that he should find himself
-on any occasion with nothing to report. Of all
-that he may have uttered on certain occasions we are
-inevitably not here possessed—a fact that, as I have
-hinted above, affects us, perversely, as an inexcusable
-gap in the story; but he never fails of the thing that
-we most love letters for, the full expression of the moment
-and the mood, the actual good or bad or middling,
-the thing in his head, his heart or his house.
-Mr. Colvin has given us an admirable “Introduction”—a
-characterisation of his friend so founded at once on
-knowledge and on judgment that the whole sense of
-the man strikes us as extracted in it. He has elucidated
-each group or period with notes that leave nothing
-to be desired; and nothing remains that I can
-think of to thank him for unless the intimation that we
-may yet look for another volume—which, however
-much more free it might make us of the author’s mystery,
-we should accept, I repeat, with the same absence
-of scruple. Nothing more belongs to our day than
-this question of the inviolable, of the rights of privacy
-and the justice of our claim to aid from editors and
-other retailers in getting behind certain eminent or
-defiant appearances; and the general knot so presented
-is indeed a hard one to untie. Yet we may take it for
-a matter regarding which such publications as Mr.
-Colvin’s have much to suggest.</p>
-
-<p>There is no absolute privacy—save of course when
-the exposed subject may have wished or endeavoured
-positively to constitute it; and things too sacred are
-often only things that are not perhaps at all otherwise
-superlative. One may hold both that people—that
-artists perhaps in particular—are well advised to cover
-their tracks, and yet that our having gone behind, or
-merely stayed before, in a particular case, may be a
-minor question compared with our having picked up a
-value. Personal records of the type before us can at
-any rate obviously be but the reverse of a deterrent to
-the urged inquirer. They are too happy an instance—they
-positively make for the risked indiscretion.
-Stevenson never covered his tracks, and the tracks
-prove perhaps to be what most attaches us. We follow
-them here, from year to year and from stage to
-stage, with the same charmed sense with which he has
-made us follow some hunted hero in the heather.
-Life and fate and an early catastrophe were ever at his
-heels, and when he at last falls fighting, sinks down in
-the very act of valour, the “happy ending,” as he calls
-it for some of his correspondents, is, though precipitated
-and not conventional, essentially given us.</p>
-
-<p>His descent and his origin all contribute to the picture,
-which it seems to me could scarce—since we speak
-of “endings”—have had a better beginning had he
-himself prearranged it. Without prearrangements indeed
-it was such a cluster of terms as could never be
-wasted on him, one of those innumerable matters of
-“effect,” Scotch and other, that helped to fill his
-romantic consciousness. Edinburgh, in the first place,
-the “romantic town,” was as much his “own” as it
-ever was the great precursor’s whom, in “Weir of
-Hermiston” as well as elsewhere, he presses so hard;
-and this even in spite of continual absence—in virtue
-of a constant imaginative reference and an intense intellectual
-possession. The immediate background
-formed by the profession of his family—the charge of
-the public lights on northern coasts—was a setting that
-he could not have seen his way to better; while no less
-happy a condition was met by his being all lonely in
-his father’s house—the more that the father, admirably
-commemorated by the son and after his fashion as
-strongly marked, was antique and strenuous, and that
-the son, a genius to be and of frail constitution, was (in
-the words of the charming anecdote of an Edinburgh
-lady retailed in one of these volumes), if not exactly
-what could be called bonny, “pale, penetrating and interesting.”
-The poet in him had from the first to be
-pacified—temporarily, that is, and from hand to mouth,
-as is the manner for poets; so that with friction and
-tension playing their part, with the filial relation quite
-classically troubled, with breaks of tradition and lapses
-from faith, with restless excursions and sombre returns,
-with the love of life at large mixed in his heart with
-every sort of local piety and passion and the unjustified
-artist fermenting on top of all in the recusant
-engineer, he was as well started as possible toward the
-character he was to keep.</p>
-
-<p>All this obviously, however, was the sort of thing
-that the story the most generally approved would have
-had at heart to represent as the mere wild oats of a
-slightly uncanny cleverness—as the life handsomely
-reconciled in time to the common course and crowned,
-after a fling or two of amusement, with young wedded
-love and civic responsibility. The actual story, alas,
-was to transcend the conventional one, for it happened
-to be a case of a hero of too long a wind and too well
-turned out for his part. Everything was right for the
-discipline of Alan Fairford but that the youth <span class='it'>was</span>
-after all a phœnix. As soon as it became a case of
-justifying himself for straying—as in the enchanting
-“Inland Voyage” and the “Travels with a Donkey”—how
-was he to escape doing so with supreme felicity?
-The fascination in him from the first is the mixture,
-and the extraordinary charm of his letters is that they
-are always showing this. It is the proportions moreover
-that are so admirable—the quantity of each different
-thing that he fitted to each other one and to
-the whole. The free life would have been all his
-dream if so large a part of it had not been that love of
-letters, of expression and form, which is but another
-name for the life of service. Almost the last word
-about him, by the same law, would be that he had at
-any rate consummately written, were it not that he
-seems still better characterised by his having at any
-rate supremely lived.</p>
-
-<p>Perpetually and exquisitely amusing as he was, his
-ambiguities and compatibilities yielded, for all the wear
-and tear of them, endless “fun” even to himself; and
-no one knew so well with what linked diversities he
-was saddled or, to put it the other way, how many
-horses he had to drive at once. It took his own delightful
-talk to show how more than absurd it might
-be, and, if convenient, how very obscurely so, that such
-an incurable rover should have been complicated both
-with such an incurable scribbler and such an incurable
-invalid, and that a man should find himself such an
-anomaly as a drenched yachtsman haunted with
-“style,” a shameless Bohemian haunted with duty,
-and a victim at once of the personal hunger and instinct
-for adventure and of the critical, constructive,
-sedentary view of it. He had everything all round—adventure
-most of all; to feel which we have only to
-turn from the beautiful flush of it in his text to the scarce
-less beautiful vision of the great hilltop in Pacific seas
-to which he was borne after death by islanders and
-chiefs. Fate, as if to distinguish him as handsomely as
-possible, seemed to be ever treating him to some chance
-for an act or a course that had almost nothing in its
-favour but its inordinate difficulty. If the difficulty
-was in these cases not <span class='it'>all</span> the beauty for him it at least
-never prevented his finding in it—or our finding, at
-any rate, as observers—so much beauty as comes from
-a great risk accepted either for an idea or for simple
-joy. The joy of risks, the more personal the better,
-was never far from him, any more than the excitement
-of ideas. The most important step in his life was a
-signal instance of this, as we may discern in the light
-of “The Amateur Emigrant” and “Across the Plains,”
-the report of the conditions in which he fared from
-England to California to be married. Here as always
-the great note is the heroic mixture—the thing he <span class='it'>saw</span>,
-morally as well as imaginatively; action and performance
-at any cost, and the cost made immense by want
-of health and want of money, illness and anxiety of the
-extremest kind, and by unsparing sensibilities and perceptions.
-He had been launched in the world for a
-fighter with the organism say of a “composer,” though
-also it must be added with a beautiful saving sanity.</p>
-
-<p>It is doubtless after his settlement in Samoa that his
-letters have most to give, but there are things they
-throw off from the first that strike the note above all
-characteristic, show his imagination always at play, for
-drollery or philosophy, with his circumstances. The
-difficulty in writing of him under the personal impression
-is to suggest enough how directly his being the
-genius that he was kept counting in it. In 1879 he
-writes from Monterey to Mr. Edmund Gosse, in reference
-to certain grave symptoms of illness: “I may be
-wrong, but .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. I believe I must go.&nbsp;.&nbsp;.&nbsp;. But death
-is no bad friend; a few aches and gasps, and we are
-done; like the truant child, I am beginning to grow
-weary and timid in this big, jostling city, and could run
-to my nurse, even although she should have to whip me
-before putting me to bed.” This charming renunciation
-expresses itself at the very time his talent was
-growing finer; he was so fond of the sense of youth and
-the idea of play that he saw whatever happened to him
-in images and figures, in the terms almost of the sports
-of childhood. “Are you coming over again to see me
-some day soon? I keep returning, and now hand over
-fist, from the realms of Hades. I saw that gentleman
-between the eyes, and fear him less after each visit.
-Only Charon and his rough boatmanship I somewhat
-fear.”</p>
-
-<p>The fear remained with him, sometimes greater,
-sometimes less, during the first years after his marriage,
-those spent abroad and in England in health resorts,
-and it marks constantly, as one may say, one
-end of the range of his humour—the humour always
-busy at the other end with the impatience of timidities
-and precautions and the vision and invention of essentially
-open-air situations. It was the possibility of
-the open-air situation that at last appealed to him as
-the cast worth staking all for—on which, as usual in
-his admirable rashnesses, he was extraordinarily justified.
-“No man but myself knew all my bitterness in
-those days. Remember that, the next time you think
-I regret my exile.&nbsp;.&nbsp;.&nbsp;. Remember the pallid brute
-that lived in Skerryvore like a weevil in a biscuit.”</p>
-
-<p>He found after an extraordinarily adventurous quest
-the treasure island, the climatic paradise that met, that
-enhanced his possibilities; and with this discovery was
-ushered in his completely full and rich period, the time
-in which—as the wondrous whimsicality and spontaneity
-of his correspondence testify—his genius and
-his character most overflowed. He had done as well
-for himself in his appropriation of Samoa as if he had
-done it for the hero of a novel, only with the complications
-and braveries actual and palpable. “I have no
-more hope in anything”—and this in the midst of magnificent
-production—“than a dead frog; I go into
-everything with a composed despair, and don’t mind—just
-as I always go to sea with the conviction I am to be
-drowned, and like it before all other pleasures.” He
-could go to sea as often as he liked and not be spared
-such hours as one of these pages vividly evokes—those
-of the joy of fictive composition in an otherwise prostrating
-storm, amid the crash of the elements and with
-his grasp of his subject but too needfully sacrificed, it
-might have appeared, to his clutch of seat and ink-stand.
-“If only I could secure a violent death, what a
-fine success! I wish to die in my boots; no more Land
-of Counterpane for me. To be drowned, to be shot,
-to be thrown from a horse—aye, to be hanged rather
-than pass again through that slow dissolution.”</p>
-
-<p>He speaks in one of the “Vailima Letters,” Mr. Colvin’s
-publication of 1895, to which it is an office of
-these volumes promptly to make us return, of one of
-his fictions as a “long tough yarn with some pictures
-of the manners of to-day in the greater world—not the
-shoddy sham world of cities, clubs and colleges, but
-the world where men still live a man’s life.” That is
-distinct, and in the same letter he throws off a summary
-of all that in his final phase satisfied and bribed
-him which is as significant as it is racy. His correspondent,
-as was inevitable now and then for his friends
-at home, appears to have indulged in one of those
-harmless pointings of the moral—as to the distant
-dangers he <span class='it'>would</span> court—by which we all were more or
-less moved to relieve ourselves of the depressed consciousness
-that he could do beautifully without us and
-that our collective tameness was far (which indeed was
-distinctly the case) from forming his proper element.
-There is no romantic life for which something amiable
-has not to be sweepingly sacrificed, and of <span class='it'>us</span> in our
-inevitable category the sweep practically was clean.</p>
-
-<div class='blockquote'>
-
-<p>Your letter had the most wonderful “I told you so” I ever heard
-in the course of my life. Why, you madman, I wouldn’t change
-my present installation for any post, dignity, honour, or advantage
-conceivable to me. It fills the bill; I have the loveliest time.
-And as for wars and rumours of wars, you surely know enough of
-me to be aware that I like that also a thousand times better than
-decrepit peace in Middlesex. I do not quite like politics. I am too
-aristocratic, I fear, for that. God knows I don’t care who I chum
-with; perhaps like sailors best; but to go round and sue and sneak
-to keep a crowd together—never.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>His categories satisfied him; he had got hold of “the
-world where men still live a man’s life”—which was
-not, as we have just seen, that of “cities, clubs and
-colleges.” He was supremely suited in short at last—at
-the cost, it was to be said, of simplifications of view
-that, intellectually, he failed quite exactly (it was one
-of his few limitations) to measure; but in a way that
-ministered to his rare capacity for growth and placed
-in supreme relief his affinity with the universal romantic.
-It was not that anything could ever be for him plain
-sailing, but that he had been able at forty to turn his
-life into the fairytale of achieving, in a climate that he
-somewhere describes as “an expurgated heaven,” such
-a happy physical consciousness as he had never known.
-This enlarged in every way his career, opening the
-door still wider to that real puss-in-the-corner game of
-opposites by which we have critically the interest of
-seeing him perpetually agitated. Let me repeat that
-these new volumes, from the date of his definite expatriation,
-direct us for the details of the picture constantly
-to the “Vailima Letters;” with as constant an
-effect of our thanking our fortune—to say nothing of
-his own—that he should have had in these years a
-correspondent and a confidant who so beautifully drew
-him out. If he possessed in Mr. Sidney Colvin his
-literary chargé d’affaires at home, the ideal friend and
-<span class='it'>alter ego</span> on whom he could unlimitedly rest, this is a
-proof the more—with the general rarity of such cases—of
-what it was in his nature to make people wish to
-do for him. To Mr. Colvin he is more familiar than to
-any one, more whimsical and natural and frequently
-more inimitable—of all of which a just notion can be
-given only by abundant citation. And yet citation
-itself is embarrassed, with nothing to guide it but his
-perpetual spirits, perpetual acuteness and felicity,
-restlessness of fancy and of judgment. These things
-make him jump from pole to pole and fairly hum, at
-times, among the objects and subjects that filled his
-air, like a charged bee among flowers.</p>
-
-<p>He is never more delightful than when he is most
-egotistic, most consciously charmed with something he
-has done.</p>
-
-<div class='blockquote'>
-
-<p>And the papers are some of them up to dick, and no mistake. I
-agree with you, the lights seem a little turned down.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>When we learn that the articles alluded to are those
-collected in “Across the Plains” we quite assent to this
-impression made by them after a troubled interval, and
-envy the author who, in a far Pacific isle, could see
-“The Lantern Bearers,” “A Letter to a Young Gentleman”
-and “Pulvis et Umbra” float back to him as a
-guarantee of his faculty and between covers constituting
-the book that is to live. Stevenson’s masculine
-wisdom moreover, his remarkable final sanity, is always—and
-it was not what made least in him for happy
-intercourse—close to his comedy and next door to his
-slang.</p>
-
-<div class='blockquote'>
-
-<p>And however low the lights are, the stuff is true, and I believe
-the more effective; after all, what I wish to fight is the best fought
-by a rather cheerless presentation of the truth. The world must
-return some day to the word “duty,” and be done with the word
-“reward.” There are no rewards, and plenty duties. And the
-sooner a man sees that and acts upon it, like a gentleman or a fine
-old barbarian, the better for himself.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>It would perhaps be difficult to quote a single paragraph
-giving more than that of the whole of him.
-But there is abundance of him in this too:</p>
-
-<div class='blockquote'>
-
-<p>How do journalists fetch up their drivel? .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. It has taken me
-two months to write 45,500 words; and, be damned to my wicked
-prowess, I am proud of the exploit! .&nbsp;.&nbsp;. A respectable little five-bob
-volume, to bloom unread in shop windows. After that I’ll
-have a spank at fiction. And rest? I shall rest in the grave, or
-when I come to Italy. If only the public will continue to support
-me! I lost my chance not dying; there seems blooming little fear
-of it now. I worked close on five hours this morning; the day
-before, close on nine; and unless I finish myself off with this letter
-I’ll have another hour and a half, or <span class='it'>aiblins twa</span>, before dinner.
-Poor man, how you must envy me as you hear of these orgies of
-work, and you scarce able for a letter. But Lord! Colvin, how
-lucky the situations are not reversed, for I have no situation, nor
-am fit for any. Life is a steigh brae. Here, have at Knappe, and
-no more clavers!</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>If he talked profusely—and this is perfect talk—if he
-loved to talk above all of his work in hand, it was because,
-though perpetually frail, he was never inert, and
-did a thing, if he did it at all, with passion. He was
-not fit, he says, for a situation, but a situation overtook
-him inexorably at Vailima, and doubtless at last indeed
-swallowed him up. His position, with differences,
-comparing in some respects smaller things to greater,
-and with fewer differences after all than likenesses,
-his position resembles that of Scott at Abbotsford,
-just as, sound, sensible and strong on each side in spite
-of the immense gift of dramatic and poetic vision, the
-earlier and the later man had something of a common
-nature. Life became bigger for each than the answering
-effort could meet, and in their death they were not
-divided. Stevenson’s late emancipation was a fairytale
-only because he himself was in his manner a magician.
-He liked to handle many matters and to shrink
-from none; nothing can exceed the impression we get
-of the things that in these years he dealt with from day
-to day and as they came up, and the things that, as
-well, almost without order or relief, he planned and
-invented, took up and talked of and dropped, took up
-and talked of and carried through. Had I space to
-treat myself to a clue for selection from the whole
-record there is nothing I should better like it to be than
-a tracking of his “literary opinions” and literary projects,
-the scattered swarm of his views, sympathies,
-antipathies, <span class='it'>obiter dicta</span>, as an artist—his flurries and
-fancies, imaginations, evocations, quick infatuations,
-as a teller of possible tales. Here is a whole little circle
-of discussion, yet such a circle that to engage one’s self
-at all is to be too much engulfed.</p>
-
-<p>His overflow on such matters is meanwhile amusing
-enough as mere spirits and sport—interesting as it
-would yet be to catch as we might, at different moments,
-the congruity between the manner of his feeling a fable
-in the germ and that of his afterwards handling it.
-There are passages again and again that light strikingly
-what I should call his general conscious method in
-this relation, were I not more tempted to call it his
-conscious—for that is what it seems to come to—negation
-of method. A whole delightful letter—to Mr.
-Colvin, February 1, 1892—is a vivid type. (This letter,
-I may mention, is independently notable for the drollery
-of its allusion to a sense of scandal—of all things in the
-world—excited in some editorial breast by “The Beach
-of Falesà;” which leads him to the highly pertinent
-remark that “this is a poison bad world for the romancer,
-this Anglo-Saxon world; I usually get out of it
-by not having any women in it at all.” Then he remembers
-he had “The Treasure of Franchard” refused
-as unfit for a family magazine and feels—as well he
-may—“despair weigh upon his wrists.” The despair
-haunts him and comes out on another occasion. “Five
-more chapters of David.&nbsp;.&nbsp;.&nbsp;. All love affair; seems
-pretty good to me. Will it do for the young person?
-I don’t know: since the Beach, I know nothing except
-that men are fools and hypocrites, and I know less of
-them than I was fond enough to fancy.”) Always a
-part of his physiognomy is the play, so particularly
-salient, of his moral fluctuations, the way his spirits
-are upset by his melancholy and his grand conclusions
-by his rueful doubts.</p>
-
-<p>He communicates to his confidant with the eagerness
-of a boy confabulating in holidays over a Christmas
-charade; but I remember no instance of his expressing
-a subject, as one may say, as a subject—hinting
-at what novelists mainly know, one would imagine,
-as the determinant thing in it, the idea out of which it
-springs. The form, the envelope, is there with him,
-headforemost, <span class='it'>as</span> the idea; titles, names, that is, chapters,
-sequences, orders, while we are still asking ourselves
-how it was that he primarily put to his own mind
-what it was all to be about. He simply <span class='it'>felt</span> this, evidently,
-and it is always the one dumb sound, the stopped
-pipe or only unexpressed thing, in all his contagious
-candour. He finds none the less in the letter to which
-I refer one of the problems of the wonderful projected
-“Sophia Scarlet” “exactly a Balzac one, and I wish I
-had his fist—for I have already a better method—the
-kinetic—whereas he continually allowed himself to be
-led into the static.” There we have him—Stevenson,
-not Balzac—at his most overflowing, and after all
-radiantly capable of conceiving at another moment that
-his “better method” would have been none at all for
-Balzac’s vision of a subject, least of all of <span class='it'>the</span> subject,
-the whole of life. Balzac’s method was adapted to
-his notion of presentation—which we may accept, it
-strikes me, under the protection of what he presents.
-Were it not, in fine, as I may repeat, to embark in a
-bigger boat than would here turn round I might note
-further that Stevenson has elsewhere—was disposed in
-general to have—too short a way with this master.
-There is an interesting passage in which he charges
-him with having never known what to leave out, a
-passage which has its bearing on condition of being
-read with due remembrance of the class of performance
-to which “Le Colonel Chabert,” for instance, “Le
-Curé de Tours,” “L’Interdiction,” “La Messe de
-l’Athée” (to name but a few brief masterpieces in a
-long list) appertain.</p>
-
-<p>These, however, are comparatively small questions;
-<span class='it'>the</span> impression, for the reader of the later letters, is
-simply one of singular beauty—of deepening talent, of
-happier and richer expression, and in especial of an
-ironic desperate gallantry that burns away, with a finer
-and finer fire, in a strange alien air and is only the more
-touching to us from his own resolute consumption of
-the smoke. He had incurred great charges, he sailed a
-ship loaded to the brim, so that the strain under which
-he lived and wrought was immense; but the very grimness
-of it all is sunny, slangy, funny, familiar; there is
-as little of the florid in his flashes of melancholy as of
-the really grey under stress of his wisdom. This
-wisdom had sometimes on matters of art, I think, its
-lapses, but on matters of life it was really winged and
-inspired. He has a soundness as to questions of the
-vital connection, a soundness all liberal and easy and
-born of the manly experience, that it is a luxury to
-touch. There are no compunctions nor real impatiences,
-for he had in a singular degree got what he
-wanted, the life absolutely discockneyfied, the situation
-as romantically “swagger” as if it had been an imagination
-made real; but his practical anxieties necessarily
-spin themselves finer, and it is just this production of
-the thing imagined that has more and more to meet
-them. It all hung, the situation, by <span class='it'>that</span> beautiful
-golden thread, the swinging of which in the wind, as he
-spins it in alternate doubt and elation, we watch with
-much of the suspense and pity with which we sit at the
-serious drama. It is serious in the extreme; yet the
-forcing of production, in the case of a faculty so beautiful
-and delicate, affects us almost as the straining of a
-nerve or the distortion of a feature.</p>
-
-<div class='blockquote'>
-
-<p>I sometimes sit and yearn for anything in the nature of an income
-that would come in—mine has all got to be gone and fished
-for with the immortal mind of man. What I want is the income
-that really comes in of itself, while all you have to do is just
-to blossom and exist and sit on chairs.&nbsp;.&nbsp;.&nbsp;. I should probably
-amuse myself with works that would make your hair curl, if you
-had any left.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>To read over some of his happiest things, to renew
-one’s sense of the extraordinarily fine temper of his
-imagination, is to say to one’s self “What a horse to
-have to ride every week to market!” We must all go
-to market, but the most fortunate of us surely are those
-who may drive thither, and on days not too frequent,
-nor by a road too rough, a ruder and homelier animal.
-He touches in more than one place—and with notable
-beauty and real authority in that little mine of felicities
-the “Letter to a Young Gentleman”—on the conscience
-for “frugality” which should be the artist’s
-finest point of honour: so that one of his complications
-here was undoubtedly the sense that on this score his
-position had inevitably become somewhat false. The
-literary romantic is by no means necessarily expensive,
-but of the many ways in which the practical, the active,
-has to be paid for this departure from frugality would
-be, it is easy to conceive, not the least. And we perceive
-his recognising this as he recognised everything—if
-not in time, then out of it; accepting inconsistency,
-as he always did, with the gaiety of a man of courage—not
-being, that is, however intelligent, priggish for
-logic and the grocer’s book any more than for anything
-else. Only everything made for keeping it up,
-and it was a great deal to keep up; though when he
-throws off “The Ebb-Tide” and rises to “Catriona,”
-and then again to “Weir of Hermiston,” as if he could
-rise to almost anything, we breathe anew and look
-longingly forward. The latest of these letters contain
-such admirable things, testify so to the reach of his
-intelligence and in short vibrate so with genius and
-charm, that we feel him at moments not only unexhausted
-but replenished, and capable perhaps, for all
-we know to the contrary, of new experiments and
-deeper notes. The intelligence and attention are so
-fine that he misses nothing from unawareness; not a
-gossamer thread of the “thought of the time” that,
-wafted to him on the other side of the globe, may not
-be caught in a branch and played with; he puts such a
-soul into nature and such human meanings, for comedy
-and tragedy, into what surrounds him, however shabby
-or short, that he really lives in society by living in his
-own perceptions and generosities or, as we say nowadays,
-his own atmosphere. In this atmosphere—which
-seems to have had the gift of abounding the more it
-was breathed by others—these pages somehow prompt
-us to see almost every object on his tropic isle bathed
-and refreshed.</p>
-
-<p>So far at any rate from growing thin for want of
-London he can transmit to London or to its neighbourhood
-communications such as it would scarce
-know otherwise where to seek. A letter to his cousin,
-R. A. M. Stevenson, of September 1894, touches so on
-all things and, as he would himself have said, so adorns
-them, brimming over with its happy extravagance of
-thought, that, far again from our feeling Vailima, in
-the light of it, to be out of the world, it strikes us that
-the world has moved for the time to Vailima. There
-is world enough everywhere, he quite unconsciously
-shows, for the individual, the right one, to be what we
-call a man of it. He has, like every one not convenienced
-with the pleasant back-door of stupidity, to make his
-account with seeing and facing more things, seeing
-and facing everything, with the unrest of new impressions
-and ideas, the loss of the fond complacencies of
-youth.</p>
-
-<div class='blockquote'>
-
-<p>But as I go on in life, day by day, I become more of a bewildered
-child; I cannot get used to this world, to procreation, to
-heredity, to sight, to hearing; the commonest things are a burthen.
-The prim obliterated polite face of life, and the broad, bawdy and
-orgiastic—or mænadic—foundations, form a spectacle to which no
-habit reconciles me; and “I could wish my days to be bound each
-to each” by the same open-mouthed wonder. They <span class='it'>are</span> anyway,
-and whether I wish it or not.&nbsp;.&nbsp;.&nbsp;. I remember very well your
-attitude to life—this conventional surface of it. You have none of
-that curiosity for the social stage directions, the trivial <span class='it'>ficelles</span> of
-the business; it is simian; but that is how the wild youth of man is
-captured.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>The whole letter is enchanting.</p>
-
-<div class='blockquote'>
-
-<p>But no doubt there is something great in the half success that
-has attended the effort of turning into an emotional region Bald
-Conduct without any appeal, or almost none, to the figurative,
-mysterious and constitutive facts of life. Not that conduct is
-not constitutive, but dear! it’s dreary! On the whole, conduct is
-better dealt with on the cast-iron “gentleman” and duty formula,
-with as little fervour and poetry as possible; stoical and short.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>The last letter of all, it will have been abundantly
-noted, has, with one of those characteristically thrown-out
-references to himself that were always half a whim,
-half a truth and all a picture, a remarkable premonition.
-It is addressed to Mr. Edmond Gosse.</p>
-
-<div class='blockquote'>
-
-<p>It is all very well to talk of renunciation, and of course it has to
-be done. But for my part, give me a roaring toothache! I do like
-to be deceived and to dream, but I have very little use for either
-watching or meditation. I was not born for age.&nbsp;.&nbsp;.&nbsp;. I am a
-childless, rather bitter, very clear-eyed, blighted youth. I have,
-in fact, lost the path that makes it easy and natural for you to
-descend the hill. I am going at it straight. And where I have to
-go down it is a precipice.&nbsp;.&nbsp;.&nbsp;. You can never write another dedication
-that can give the same pleasure to the vanished Tusitala.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>Two days later he met his end in the happiest form,
-by the straight swift bolt of the gods. It was, as all
-his readers know, with an admirable unfinished thing
-in hand, scarce a quarter written—a composition as
-to which his hopes were, presumably with much justice
-and as they were by no means always, of the highest.
-Nothing is more interesting than the rich way in which,
-in “Weir of Hermiston” and “Catriona,” the predominant
-imaginative Scot reasserts himself after gaps
-and lapses, distractions and deflections superficially
-extreme. There are surely few backward jumps of
-this energy more joyous and <span class='it'>à pieds joints</span>, or of a kind
-more interesting to a critic. The imaginative vision
-is hungry and tender just in proportion as the actual
-is otherwise beset; so that we must sigh always in vain
-for the quality that this purified flame, as we call it,
-would have been able to give the metal. And how
-many things for the critic the case suggests—how many
-possible reflections cluster about it and seem to take
-light from it! It was “romance” indeed, “Weir of
-Hermiston,” we feel, as we see it only grow in assurance
-and ease when the reach to it over all the spaces
-becomes more positively artificial. The case is <span class='it'>literary</span>
-to intensity, and, given the nature of the talent,
-only thereby the more beautiful: he embroiders in
-silk and silver—in defiance of climate and nature, of
-every near aspect, and with such another antique
-needle as was nowhere, least of all in those latitudes, to
-be bought—in the intervals of wondrous international
-and insular politics and of fifty material cares and complications.
-His special stock of association, most personal
-style and most unteachable trick fly away again
-to him like so many strayed birds to nest, each with
-the flutter in its beak of some scrap of document or
-legend, some fragment of picture or story, to be retouched,
-revarnished and reframed.</p>
-
-<p>These things he does with a gusto, moreover, for
-which it must be granted that his literary treatment of
-the islands and the island life had ever vainly waited.
-Curious enough that his years of the tropics and his
-fraternity with the natives never drew from him any
-such “rendered” view as might have been looked for
-in advance. For the absent and vanished Scotland he
-<span class='it'>has</span> the image—within the limits (too narrow ones we
-may perhaps judge) admitted by his particular poetic;
-but the law of these things in him was, as of
-many others, amusingly, conscientiously perverse. The
-Pacific, in which he materially delighted, made him
-“descriptively” serious and even rather dry; with his
-own country, on the other hand, materially impossible,
-he was ready to tread an endless measure. He
-easily sends us back again here to our vision of his
-mixture. There was only one thing on earth that he
-loved as much as literature—which was the total absence
-of it; and to the present, the immediate, whatever
-it was, he always made the latter offering. Samoa was
-susceptible of no “style”—none of that, above all,
-with which he was most conscious of an affinity—save
-the demonstration of its rightness for life; and this
-left the field abundantly clear for the Border, the Great
-North Road and the eighteenth century. I have been
-reading over “Catriona” and “Weir” with the purest
-pleasure with which we can follow a man of genius—that
-of seeing him abound in his own sense. In “Weir”
-especially, like an improvising pianist, he superabounds
-and revels, and his own sense, by a happy stroke, appeared
-likely never more fully and brightly to justify
-him; to have become even in some degree a new sense,
-with new chords and possibilities. It is the “old game,”
-but it is the old game that he exquisitely understands.
-The figure of Hermiston is creative work of the highest
-order, those of the two Kirsties, especially that of
-the elder, scarce less so; and we ache for the loss of a
-thing which could give out such touches as the quick
-joy, at finding herself in falsehood, of the enamoured
-girl whose brooding elder brother has told her that as
-soon as she has a lover she will begin to lie (“ ‘Will I
-have gotten my jo now?’ she thought with secret rapture”);
-or a passage so richly charged with imagination
-as that in which the young lover recalls her as he has
-first seen and desired her, seated at grey of evening
-on an old tomb in the moorland and unconsciously
-making him think, by her scrap of song, both of his
-mother, who sang it and whom he has lost, and</p>
-
-<div class='blockquote'>
-
-<p>of their common ancestors now dead, of their rude wars composed,
-their weapons buried with them, and of these strange changelings,
-their descendants, who lingered a little in their places and
-would soon be gone also, and perhaps sung of by others at the gloaming
-hour. By one of the unconscious arts of tenderness the two
-women were enshrined together in his memory. Tears, in that hour
-of sensibility, came into his eyes indifferently at the thought of
-either; and the girl, from being something merely bright and
-shapely, was caught up into the zone of things serious as life and
-death and his dead mother. So that, in all ways and on either side,
-Fate played his game artfully with this poor pair of children. The
-generations were prepared, the pangs were made ready, before the
-curtain rose on the dark drama.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>It is not a tribute that Stevenson would at all have
-appreciated, but I may not forbear noting how closely
-such a page recalls many another in the tenderest
-manner of Pierre Loti. There would not, compared,
-be a pin to choose between them. How, we at all
-events ask ourselves as we consider “Weir,” could he
-have kept it up?—while the reason for which he didn’t
-reads itself back into his text as a kind of beautiful
-rash divination in him that he mightn’t have to.
-Among prose fragments it stands quite alone, with the
-particular grace and sanctity of mutilation worn by
-the marble morsels of masterwork in another art.
-This and the other things of his best he left; but these
-things, lovely as, on rereading many of them at the
-suggestion of his Correspondence, they are, are not
-the whole, nor more than the half, of his abiding
-charm. The finest papers in “Across the Plains,” in
-“Memories and Portraits,” in “Virginibus Puerisque,”
-stout of substance and supremely silver of speech,
-have both a nobleness and a nearness that place them,
-for perfection and roundness, above his fictions, and
-that also may well remind a vulgarised generation of
-what, even under its nose, English prose can be. But
-it is bound up with his name, for our wonder and reflection,
-that he is something other than the author
-of this or that particular beautiful thing, or of all such
-things together. It has been his fortune (whether or
-no the greatest that can befall a man of letters) to
-have had to consent to become, by a process not purely
-mystic and not wholly untraceable—what shall we call
-it?—a Figure. Tracing is needless now, for the personality
-has acted and the incarnation is full. There
-he is—he has passed ineffaceably into happy legend.
-This case of the figure is of the rarest and the honour
-surely of the greatest. In all our literature we can
-count them, sometimes with the work and sometimes
-without. The work has often been great and yet the
-figure <span class='it'>nil</span>. Johnson was one, and Goldsmith and
-Byron; and the two former moreover not in any degree,
-like Stevenson, in virtue of the element of grace. Was
-it this element that fixed the claim even for Byron?
-It seems doubtful; and the list at all events as we approach
-our own day shortens and stops. Stevenson
-has it at present—may we not say?—pretty well to
-himself, and it is not one of the scrolls in which he
-least will live.</p>
-
-<hr class='footnotemark'/>
-
-<table style='margin:0 4em 0 0;' summary='footnote_1'>
-<colgroup>
-<col span='1' style='width: 3em;'/>
-<col span='1'/>
-</colgroup>
-<tr><td style='vertical-align:top;'>
-<div id='f1'><a href='#r1'>[1]</a></div>
-</td><td>
-
-<p>“The Letters of Robert Louis Stevenson to his Family and Friends.
-Selected and Edited, with Notes and Introduction, by Sidney Colvin,”
-1899.</p>
-
-</td></tr>
-</table>
-
-<div><span class='pagenum'><a name='Page_26' id='Page_26'>26</a></span><h1 id='t1031'>ÉMILE ZOLA</h1></div>
-
-<p>If it be true that the critical spirit to-day, in presence
-of the rising tide of prose fiction, a watery waste out
-of which old standards and landmarks are seen barely
-to emerge, like chimneys and the tops of trees in a
-country under flood—if it be true that the anxious
-observer, with the water up to his chin, finds himself
-asking for the <span class='it'>reason</span> of the strange phenomenon, for
-its warrant and title, so we likewise make out that
-these credentials rather fail to float on the surface.
-We live in a world of wanton and importunate fable,
-we breathe its air and consume its fruits; yet who shall
-say that we are able, when invited, to account for
-our preferring it so largely to the world of fact? To
-do so would be to make some adequate statement of
-the good the product in question does us. What does
-it do for our life, our mind, our manners, our morals—what
-does it do that history, poetry, philosophy may
-not do, as well or better, to warn, to comfort and command
-the countless thousands for whom and by whom
-it comes into being? We seem too often left with our
-riddle on our hands. The lame conclusion on which
-we retreat is that “stories” are multiplied, circulated,
-paid for, on the scale of the present hour, simply because
-people “like” them. As to why people <span class='it'>should</span>
-like anything so loose and mean as the preponderant
-mass of the “output,” so little indebted for the magic
-of its action to any mystery in the making, is more than
-the actual state of our perceptions enables us to say.</p>
-
-<p>This bewilderment might be our last word if it were
-not for the occasional occurrence of accidents especially
-appointed to straighten out a little our tangle. We
-are reminded that if the unnatural prosperity of the
-wanton fable cannot be adequately explained, it can at
-least be illustrated with a sharpness that is practically
-an argument. An abstract solution failing we encounter
-it in the concrete. We catch in short a new impression
-or, to speak more truly, recover an old one. It
-was always there to be had, but we ourselves throw off
-an oblivion, an indifference for which there are plenty
-of excuses. We become conscious, for our profit, of a
-<span class='it'>case</span>, and we see that our mystification came from the
-way cases had appeared for so long to fail us. None of
-the shapeless forms about us for the time had attained
-to the dignity of one. The one I am now conceiving
-as suddenly effective—for which I fear I must have
-been regarding it as somewhat in eclipse—is that of
-Émile Zola, whom, as a manifestation of the sort we
-are considering, three or four striking facts have lately
-combined to render more objective and, so to speak,
-more massive. His close connection with the most
-resounding of recent public quarrels; his premature and
-disastrous death; above all, at the moment I write, the
-appearance of his last-finished novel, bequeathed to
-his huge public from beyond the grave—these rapid
-events have thrust him forward and made him loom
-abruptly larger; much as if our pedestrian critic,
-treading the dusty highway, had turned a sharp corner.</p>
-
-<p>It is not assuredly that Zola has ever been veiled or
-unapparent; he had, on the contrary been digging his
-field these thirty years, and for all passers to see, with
-an industry that kept him, after the fashion of one of
-the grand grim sowers or reapers of his brother of the
-brush, or at least of the canvas, Jean-François Millet,
-duskily outlined against the sky. He was there in the
-landscape of labour—he had always been; but he was
-there as a big natural or pictorial feature, a spreading
-tree, a battered tower, a lumpish round-shouldered useful
-hayrick, confounded with the air and the weather,
-the rain and the shine, the day and the dusk, merged
-more or less, as it were, in the play of the elements
-themselves. We had got used to him, and, thanks in
-a measure just to this stoutness of his presence, to the
-long regularity of his performance, had come to notice
-him hardly more than the dwellers in the marketplace
-notice the quarters struck by the town-clock. On top
-of all accordingly, for our skeptical mood, the sense of
-his work—a sense determined afresh by the strange
-climax of his personal history—rings out almost with
-violence as a reply to our wonder. It is as if an earthquake
-or some other rude interference had shaken
-from the town-clock a note of such unusual depth as
-to compel attention. We therefore once more give
-heed, and the result of this is that we feel ourselves
-after a little probably as much enlightened as we can
-hope ever to be. We have worked round to the so
-marked and impressive anomaly of the adoption of
-the futile art by one of the stoutest minds and stoutest
-characters of our time. This extraordinarily robust
-worker has found it good enough for him, and if the
-fact is, as I say, anomalous, we are doubtless helped
-to conclude that by its anomalies, in future, the bankrupt
-business, as we are so often moved to pronounce
-it, will most recover credit.</p>
-
-<p>What is at all events striking for us, critically speaking,
-is that, in the midst of the dishonour it has gradually
-harvested by triumphant vulgarity of practice, its
-pliancy and applicability can still plead for themselves.
-The curious contradiction stands forth for our relief—the
-circumstance that thirty years ago a young man of
-extraordinary brain and indomitable purpose, wishing
-to give the measure of these endowments in a piece of
-work supremely solid, conceived and sat down to Les
-Rougon-Macquart rather than to an equal task in
-physics, mathematics, politics or economics. He saw
-his undertaking, thanks to his patience and courage,
-practically to a close; so that it is exactly neither of the
-so-called constructive sciences that happens to have had
-the benefit, intellectually speaking, of one of the few
-most constructive achievements of our time. There
-then, provisionally at least, we touch bottom; we get a
-glimpse of the pliancy and variety, the ideal of vividness,
-on behalf of which our equivocal form may appeal
-to a strong head. In the name of what ideal on its
-own side, however, does the strong head yield to the
-appeal? What is the logic of its so deeply committing
-itself? Zola’s case seems to tell us, as it tells us other
-things. The logic is in its huge freedom of adjustment
-to the temperament of the worker, which it
-carries, so to say, as no other vehicle can do. It expresses
-fully and directly the whole man, and big as
-he may be it can still be big enough for him without
-becoming false to its type. We see this truth made
-strong, from beginning to end, in Zola’s work; we see
-the temperament, we see the whole man, with his size
-and all his marks, stored and packed away in the huge
-hold of Les Rougon-Macquart as a cargo is packed
-away on a ship. His personality is the thing that
-finally pervades and prevails, just as so often on a
-vessel the presence of the cargo makes itself felt for
-the assaulted senses. What has most come home to
-me in reading him over is that a scheme of fiction so
-conducted is in fact a capacious vessel. It can carry
-anything—with art and force in the stowage; nothing
-in this case will sink it. And it is the only form for
-which such a claim can be made. All others have to
-confess to a smaller scope—to selection, to exclusion,
-to the danger of distortion, explosion, combustion.
-The novel has nothing to fear but sailing too light. It
-will take aboard all we bring in good faith to the dock.</p>
-
-<p>An intense vision of this truth must have been Zola’s
-comfort from the earliest time—the years, immediately
-following the crash of the Empire, during which he
-settled himself to the tremendous task he had mapped
-out. No finer act of courage and confidence, I think,
-is recorded in the history of letters. The critic in
-sympathy with him returns again and again to the
-great wonder of it, in which something so strange is
-mixed with something so august. Entertained and
-carried out almost from the threshold of manhood, the
-high project, the work of a lifetime, announces beforehand
-its inevitable weakness and yet speaks in the same
-voice for its admirable, its almost unimaginable strength.
-The strength was in the young man’s very person—in
-his character, his will, his passion, his fighting
-temper, his aggressive lips, his squared shoulders (when
-he “sat up”) and overweening confidence; his weakness
-was in that inexperience of life from which he
-proposed not to suffer, from which he in fact suffered
-on the surface remarkably little, and from which he
-was never to suspect, I judge, that he had suffered at
-all. I may mention for the interest of it that, meeting
-him during his first short visit to London—made several
-years before his stay in England during the Dreyfus
-trial—I received a direct impression of him that was
-more informing than any previous study. I had seen
-him a little, in Paris, years before that, when this impression
-was a perceptible promise, and I was now to
-perceive how time had made it good. It consisted,
-simply stated, in his fairly bristling with the betrayal
-that nothing whatever had happened to him in life but
-to write Les Rougon-Macquart. It was even for that
-matter almost more as if Les Rougon-Macquart had
-written <span class='it'>him</span>, written him as he stood and sat, as he
-looked and spoke, as the long, concentrated, merciless
-effort had made and stamped and left him. Something
-very fundamental was to happen to him in due
-course, it is true, shaking him to his base; fate was not
-wholly to cheat him of an independent evolution. Recalling
-him from this London hour one strongly felt
-during the famous “Affair” that his outbreak in connection
-with it was the act of a man with arrears of
-personal history to make up, the act of a spirit for
-which life, or for which at any rate freedom, had been
-too much postponed, treating itself at last to a luxury
-of experience.</p>
-
-<p>I welcomed the general impression at all events—I
-intimately entertained it; it represented so many
-things, it suggested, just as it was, such a lesson. You
-could neither have everything nor be everything—you
-had to choose; you could not at once sit firm at your
-job and wander through space inviting initiations.
-The author of Les Rougon-Macquart had had all
-those, certainly, that this wonderful company could
-bring him; but I can scarce express how it was implied
-in him that his time had been fruitfully passed with
-<span class='it'>them</span> alone. His artistic evolution struck one thus as,
-in spite of its magnitude, singularly simple, and evidence
-of the simplicity seems further offered by his last
-production, of which we have just come into possession.
-“Vérité” truly does give the measure, makes the
-author’s high maturity join hands with his youth,
-marks the rigid straightness of his course from point
-to point. He had seen his horizon and his fixed goal
-from the first, and no cross-scent, no new distance, no
-blue gap in the hills to right or to left ever tempted
-him to stray. “Vérité,” of which I shall have more to
-say, is in fact, as a moral finality and the crown of an
-edifice, one of the strangest possible performances.
-Machine-minted and made good by an immense expertness,
-it yet makes us ask how, for disinterested
-observation and perception, the writer had used so
-much time and so much acquisition, and how he can
-all along have handled so much material without some
-larger subjective consequence. We really rub our eyes
-in other words to see so great an intellectual adventure
-as Les Rougon-Macquart come to its end in deep
-desert sand. Difficult truly to read, because showing
-him at last almost completely a prey to the danger
-that had for a long time more and more dogged his
-steps, the danger of the mechanical all confident and
-triumphant, the book is nevertheless full of interest
-for a reader desirous to penetrate. It speaks with
-more distinctness of the author’s temperament, tone
-and manner than if, like several of his volumes, it
-achieved or enjoyed a successful life of its own. Its
-heavy completeness, with all this, as of some prodigiously
-neat, strong and complicated scaffolding constructed
-by a firm of builders for the erection of a house
-whose foundations refuse to bear it and that is unable
-therefore to rise—its very betrayal of a method and a
-habit more than adequate, on past occasions, to similar
-ends, carries us back to the original rare exhibition, the
-grand assurance and grand patience with which the
-system was launched.</p>
-
-<p>If it topples over, the system, by its own weight in
-these last applications of it, that only makes the history
-of its prolonged success the more curious and,
-speaking for myself, the spectacle of its origin more
-attaching. Readers of my generation will remember
-well the publication of “La Conquête de Plassans”
-and the portent, indefinable but irresistible, after perusal
-of the volume, conveyed in the general rubric under
-which it was a first instalment, Natural and Social
-History of a Family under the Second Empire. It
-squared itself there at its ease, the announcement, from
-the first, and we were to learn promptly enough what a
-fund of life it masked. It was like the mouth of a cave
-with a signboard hung above, or better still perhaps
-like the big booth at a fair with the name of the show
-across the flapping canvas. One strange animal after
-another stepped forth into the light, each in its way a
-monster bristling and spotted, each a curiosity of that
-“natural history” in the name of which we were addressed,
-though it was doubtless not till the issue of
-“L’Assommoir” that the true type of the monstrous
-seemed to be reached. The enterprise, for those who
-had attention, was even at a distance impressive, and
-the nearer the critic gets to it retrospectively the more
-so it becomes. The pyramid had been planned and
-the site staked out, but the young builder stood there,
-in his sturdy strength, with no equipment save his two
-hands and, as we may say, his wheelbarrow and his
-trowel. His pile of material—of stone, brick and rubble
-or whatever—was of the smallest, but this he apparently
-felt as the least of his difficulties. Poor, uninstructed,
-unacquainted, unintroduced, he set up his
-subject wholly from the outside, proposing to himself
-wonderfully to get into it, into its depths, as he went.</p>
-
-<p>If we imagine him asking himself what he knew of
-the “social” life of the second Empire to start with,
-we imagine him also answering in all honesty: “I have
-my eyes and my ears—I have all my senses: I have
-what I’ve seen and heard, what I’ve smelled and tasted
-and touched. And then I’ve my curiosity and my pertinacity;
-I’ve libraries, books, newspapers, witnesses,
-the material, from step to step, of an <span class='it'>enquête</span>. And
-then I’ve my genius—that is, my imagination, my
-passion, my sensibility to life. Lastly I’ve my method,
-and that will be half the battle. Best of all perhaps
-even, I’ve plentiful lack of doubt.” Of the absence in
-him of a doubt, indeed of his inability, once his direction
-taken, to entertain so much as the shadow of one,
-“Vérité” is a positive monument—which again represents
-in this way the unity of his tone and the meeting
-of his extremes. If we remember that his design
-was nothing if not architectural, that a “majestic
-whole,” a great balanced façade, with all its orders
-and parts, that a singleness of mass and a unity of
-effect, in fine, were before him from the first, his notion
-of picking up his bricks as he proceeded becomes,
-in operation, heroic. It is not in the least as a record
-of failure for him that I note this particular fact of
-the growth of the long series as on the whole the liveliest
-interest it has to offer. “I don’t know my subject,
-but I must live into it; I don’t know life, but I must
-learn it as I work”—that attitude and programme represent,
-to my sense, a drama more intense on the
-worker’s own part than any of the dramas he was to
-invent and put before us.</p>
-
-<p>It was the fortune, it was in a manner the doom, of
-Les Rougon-Macquart to deal with things almost
-always in gregarious form, to be a picture of <span class='it'>numbers</span>,
-of classes, crowds, confusions, movements, industries—and
-this for a reason of which it will be interesting to
-attempt some account. The individual life is, if not
-wholly absent, reflected in coarse and common, in
-generalised terms; whereby we arrive precisely at the
-oddity just named, the circumstance that, looking out
-somewhere, and often woefully athirst, for the taste
-of fineness, we find it not in the fruits of our author’s
-fancy, but in a different matter altogether. We get
-it in the very history of his effort, the image itself of
-his lifelong process, comparatively so personal, so
-spiritual even, and, through all its patience and pain, of
-a quality so much more distinguished than the qualities
-he succeeds in attributing to his figures even when he
-most aims at distinction. There can be no question
-in these narrow limits of my taking the successive volumes
-one by one—all the more that our sense of the
-exhibition is as little as possible an impression of
-parts and books, of particular “plots” and persons.
-It produces the effect of a mass of imagery in which
-shades are sacrificed, the effect of character and passion
-in the lump or by the ton. The fullest, the most
-characteristic episodes affect us like a sounding chorus
-or procession, as with a hubbub of voices and a multitudinous
-tread of feet. The setter of the mass into
-motion, he himself, in the crowd, figures best, with
-whatever queer idiosyncrasies, excrescences and gaps, a
-being of a substance akin to our own. Taking him as
-we must, I repeat, for quite heroic, the interest of
-detail in him is the interest of his struggle at every point
-with his problem.</p>
-
-<p>The sense for crowds and processions, for the gross
-and the general, was largely the <span class='it'>result</span> of this predicament,
-of the disproportion between his scheme and
-his material—though it was certainly also in part an
-effect of his particular turn of mind. What the reader
-easily discerns in him is the sturdy resolution with
-which breadth and energy supply the place of penetration.
-He rests to his utmost on his documents, devours
-and assimilates them, makes them yield him
-extraordinary appearances of life; but in his way he
-too improvises in the grand manner, the manner of
-Walter Scott and of Dumas the elder. We feel that
-he <span class='it'>has</span> to improvise for his moral and social world, the
-world as to which vision and opportunity must come,
-if they are to come at all, unhurried and unhustled—must
-take their own time, helped undoubtedly more
-or less by blue-books, reports and interviews, by inquiries
-“on the spot,” but never wholly replaced by
-such substitutes without a general disfigurement.
-Vision and opportunity reside in a personal sense and a
-personal history, and no short cut to them in the interest
-of plausible fiction has ever been discovered.
-The short cut, it is not too much to say, was with Zola
-the subject of constant ingenious experiment, and it is
-largely to this source, I surmise, that we owe the celebrated
-element of his grossness. He was <span class='it'>obliged</span> to
-be gross, on his system, or neglect to his cost an invaluable
-aid to representation, as well as one that apparently
-struck him as lying close at hand; and I cannot
-withhold my frank admiration from the courage and
-consistency with which he faced his need.</p>
-
-<p>His general subject in the last analysis was the nature
-of man; in dealing with which he took up, obviously,
-the harp of most numerous strings. His business was
-to make these strings sound true, and there were none
-that he did not, so far as his general economy permitted,
-persistently try. What happened then was that many—say
-about half, and these, as I have noted, the most
-silvered, the most golden—refused to give out their
-music. They would only sound false, since (as with
-all his earnestness he must have felt) he could command
-them, through want of skill, of practice, of ear,
-to none of the right harmony. What therefore was
-more natural than that, still splendidly bent on producing
-his illusion, he should throw himself on the
-strings he might thump with effect, and should work
-them, as our phrase is, for all they were worth? The
-nature of man, he had plentiful warrant for holding,
-is an extraordinary mixture, but the great thing was
-to represent a sufficient part of it to show that it was
-solidly, palpably, commonly the nature. With this
-preoccupation he doubtless fell into extravagance—there
-was clearly so much to lead him on. The coarser
-side of his subject, based on the community of all the
-instincts, was for instance the more practicable side, a
-sphere the vision of which required but the general
-human, scarcely more than the plain physical, initiation,
-and dispensed thereby conveniently enough with
-special introductions or revelations. A free entry into
-this sphere was undoubtedly compatible with a youthful
-career as hampered right and left even as Zola’s
-own.</p>
-
-<p>He was in prompt possession thus of the range of
-sympathy that he <span class='it'>could</span> cultivate, though it must be
-added that the complete exercise of that sympathy
-might have encountered an obstacle that would somewhat
-undermine his advantage. Our friend might
-have found himself able, in other words, to pay to
-the instinctive, as I have called it, only such tribute
-as protesting taste (his own dose of it) permitted. Yet
-there it was again that fortune and his temperament
-served him. Taste as he knew it, taste as his own
-constitution supplied it, proved to have nothing to say
-to the matter. His own dose of the precious elixir
-had no perceptible regulating power. Paradoxical as
-the remark may sound, this accident was positively to
-operate as one of his greatest felicities. There are
-parts of his work, those dealing with romantic or poetic
-elements, in which the inactivity of the principle in
-question is sufficiently hurtful; but it surely should
-not be described as hurtful to such pictures as “Le
-Ventre de Paris,” as “L’Assommoir,” as “Germinal.”
-The conception on which each of these productions
-rests is that of a world with which taste has nothing to
-do, and though the act of representation may be justly
-held, as an artistic act, to involve its presence, the discrimination
-would probably have been in fact, given
-the particular illusion sought, more detrimental than
-the deficiency. There was a great outcry, as we all
-remember, over the rank materialism of “L’Assommoir,”
-but who cannot see to-day how much a milder
-infusion of it would have told against the close embrace
-of the subject aimed at? “L’Assommoir” is the
-nature of man—but not his finer, nobler, cleaner or
-more cultivated nature; it is the image of his free instincts,
-the better and the worse, the better struggling
-as they can, gasping for light and air, the worse making
-themselves at home in darkness, ignorance and poverty.
-The whole handling makes for emphasis and scale, and
-it is not to be measured how, as a picture of conditions,
-the thing would have suffered from timidity. The
-qualification of the painter was precisely his stoutness
-of stomach, and we scarce exceed in saying that to
-have taken in and given out again less of the infected
-air would, with such a resource, have meant the waste
-of a faculty.</p>
-
-<p>I may add in this connection moreover that refinement
-of intention did on occasion and after a fashion
-of its own unmistakably preside at these experiments;
-making the remark in order to have done once for all
-with a feature of Zola’s literary physiognomy that appears
-to have attached the gaze of many persons to
-the exclusion of every other. There are judges in
-these matters so perversely preoccupied that for them
-to see anywhere the “improper” is for them straightway
-to cease to see anything else. The said improper,
-looming supremely large and casting all the varieties
-of the proper quite into the shade, suffers thus in their
-consciousness a much greater extension than it ever
-claimed, and this consciousness becomes, for the edification
-of many and the information of a few, a colossal
-reflector and record of it. Much may be said, in relation
-to some of the possibilities of the nature of man,
-of the nature in especial of the “people,” on the defect
-of our author’s sense of proportion. But the sense of
-proportion of many of those he has scandalised would
-take us further yet. I recall at all events as relevant—for
-it comes under a very attaching general head—two
-occasions of long ago, two Sunday afternoons in
-Paris, on which I found the question of intention very
-curiously lighted. Several men of letters of a group
-in which almost every member either had arrived at
-renown or was well on his way to it, were assembled
-under the roof of the most distinguished of their number,
-where they exchanged free confidences on current
-work, on plans and ambitions, in a manner full of interest
-for one never previously privileged to see artistic
-conviction, artistic passion (at least on the literary
-ground) so systematic and so articulate. “Well, I
-on my side,” I remember Zola’s saying, “am engaged
-on a book, a study of the <span class='it'>mœurs</span> of the people, for which
-I am making a collection of all the ‘bad words,’ the
-<span class='it'>gros mots</span>, of the language, those with which the vocabulary
-of the people, those with which their familiar
-talk, bristles.” I was struck with the tone in which
-he made the announcement—without bravado and
-without apology, as an interesting idea that had come
-to him and that he was working, really to arrive at
-character and particular truth, with all his conscience;
-just as I was struck with the unqualified interest that
-his plan excited. It was <span class='it'>on</span> a plan that he was working—formidably,
-almost grimly, as his fatigued face
-showed; and the whole consideration of this interesting
-element partook of the general seriousness.</p>
-
-<p>But there comes back to me also as a companion-piece
-to this another day, after some interval, on which
-the interest was excited by the fact that the work for
-love of which the brave license had been taken was
-actually under the ban of the daily newspaper that had
-engaged to “serialise” it. Publication had definitively
-ceased. The thing had run a part of its course, but it
-had outrun the courage of editors and the curiosity
-of subscribers—that stout curiosity to which it had
-evidently in such good faith been addressed. The
-chorus of contempt for the ways of such people, their
-pusillanimity, their superficiality, vulgarity, intellectual
-platitude, was the striking note on this occasion;
-for the journal impugned had declined to proceed
-and the serial, broken off, been obliged, if I am
-not mistaken, to seek the hospitality of other columns,
-secured indeed with no great difficulty. The composition
-so qualified for future fame was none other,
-as I was later to learn, than “L’Assommoir”; and my
-reminiscence has perhaps no greater point than in
-connecting itself with a matter always dear to the
-critical spirit, especially when the latter has not too
-completely elbowed out the romantic—the matter of
-the “origins,” the early consciousness, early steps,
-early tribulations, early obscurity, as so often happens,
-of productions finally crowned by time.</p>
-
-<p>Their greatness is for the most part a thing that has
-originally begun so small; and this impression is particularly
-strong when we have been in any degree
-present, so to speak, at the birth. The course of the
-matter is apt to tend preponderantly in that case to
-enrich our stores of irony. In the eventual conquest of
-consideration by an abused book we recognise, in
-other terms, a drama of romantic interest, a drama
-often with large comic no less than with fine pathetic
-interweavings. It may of course be said in this particular
-connection that “L’Assommoir” had not been
-one of the literary things that creep humbly into the
-world. Its “success” may be cited as almost insolently
-prompt, and the fact remains true if the idea of success
-be restricted, after the inveterate fashion, to the
-idea of circulation. What remains truer still, however,
-is that for the critical spirit circulation mostly matters
-not the least little bit, and it is of the success with which
-the history of Gervaise and Coupeau nestles in <span class='it'>that</span>
-capacious bosom, even as the just man sleeps in Abraham’s,
-that I here speak. But it is a point I may better
-refer to a moment hence.</p>
-
-<p>Though a summary study of Zola need not too
-anxiously concern itself with book after book—always
-with a partial exception from this remark for “L’Assommoir”—groups
-and varieties none the less exist in
-the huge series, aids to discrimination without which
-no measure of the presiding genius is possible. These
-divisions range themselves to my sight, roughly speaking,
-however, as scarce more than three in number—I
-mean if the ten volumes of the Œuvres Critiques
-and the Théâtre be left out of account. The critical
-volumes in especial abound in the characteristic, as
-they were also a wondrous addition to his sum of
-achievement during his most strenuous years. But I
-am forced not to consider them. The two groups
-constituted after the close of Les Rougon-Macquart—“Les
-Trois Villes” and the incomplete “Quatre
-Évangiles”—distribute themselves easily among the
-three types, or, to speak more exactly, stand together
-under one of the three. This one, so comprehensive
-as to be the author’s main exhibition, includes to my
-sense all his best volumes—to the point in fact of producing
-an effect of distinct inferiority for those outside
-of it, which are, luckily for his general credit, the less
-numerous. It is so inveterately pointed out in any
-allusion to him that one shrinks, in repeating it, from
-sounding flat; but as he was admirably equipped from
-the start for the evocation of number and quantity, so
-those of his social pictures that most easily surpass
-the others are those in which appearances, the appearances
-familiar to him, are at once most magnified and
-most multiplied.</p>
-
-<p>To make his characters swarm, and to make the
-great central thing they swarm about “as large as life,”
-portentously, heroically big, that was the task he set
-himself very nearly from the first, that was the secret
-he triumphantly mastered. Add that the big central
-thing was always some highly representative institution
-or industry of the France of his time, some seated
-Moloch of custom, of commerce, of faith, lending itself
-to portrayal through its abuses and excesses, its
-idol-face and great devouring mouth, and we embrace
-main lines of his attack. In “Le Ventre de Paris”
-he had dealt with the life of the huge Halles, the general
-markets and their supply, the personal forces,
-personal situations, passions, involved in (strangest of
-all subjects) the alimentation of the monstrous city,
-the city whose victualling occupies so inordinately
-much of its consciousness. Paris richly gorged, Paris
-sublime and indifferent in her assurance (so all unlike
-poor Oliver’s) of “more,” figures here the theme itself,
-lies across the scene like some vast ruminant
-creature breathing in a cloud of parasites. The book
-was the first of the long series to show the full freedom
-of the author’s hand, though “La Curée” had already
-been symptomatic. This freedom, after an interval,
-broke out on a much bigger scale in “L’Assommoir,”
-in “Au Bonheur des Dames,” in “Germinal,” in “La
-Bête Humaine,” in “L’Argent,” in “La Débâcle,”
-and then again, though more mechanically and with
-much of the glory gone, in the more or less wasted
-energy of “Lourdes,” “Rome,” “Paris,” of “Fécondité,”
-“Travail” and “Vérité.”</p>
-
-<p>“Au Bonheur des Dames” handles the colossal
-modern shop, traces the growth of such an organisation
-as the Bon Marché or the Magasin-du-Louvre,
-sounds the abysses of its inner life, marshals its population,
-its hierarchy of clerks, counters, departments,
-divisions and sub-divisions, plunges into the labyrinth
-of the mutual relations of its staff, and above all traces
-its ravage amid the smaller fry of the trade, of all the
-trades, pictures these latter gasping for breath in an
-air pumped clean by its mighty lungs. “Germinal”
-revolves about the coal-mines of Flemish France, with
-the subterranean world of the pits for its central presence,
-just as “La Bête Humaine” has for its protagonist
-a great railway and “L’Argent” presents in terms
-of human passion—mainly of human baseness—the
-fury of the Bourse and the monster of Credit. “La
-Débâcle” takes up with extraordinary breadth the first
-act of the Franco-Prussian war, the collapse at Sedan,
-and the titles of the six volumes of The Three Cities
-and the Four Gospels sufficiently explain them. I
-may mention, however, for the last lucidity, that
-among these “Fécondité” manipulates, with an amazing
-misapprehension of means to ends, of remedies to
-ills, no less thickly peopled a theme than that of the
-decline in the French birth-rate, and that “Vérité”
-presents a fictive equivalent of the Dreyfus case, with
-a vast and elaborate picture of the battle in France
-between lay and clerical instruction. I may even
-further mention, to clear the ground, that with the
-close of Les Rougon-Macquart the diminution of
-freshness in the author’s energy, the diminution of intensity
-and, in short, of quality, becomes such as to
-render sadly difficult a happy life with some of the
-later volumes. Happiness of the purest strain never
-indeed, in old absorptions of Zola, quite sat at the
-feast; but there was mostly a measure of coercion, a
-spell without a charm. From these last-named productions
-of the climax everything strikes me as absent
-but quantity (“Vérité,” for instance, is, with the possible
-exception of “Nana,” the longest of the list);
-though indeed there is something impressive in the
-way his quantity represents his patience.</p>
-
-<p>There are efforts here at stout perusal that, frankly,
-I have been unable to carry through, and I should
-verily like, in connection with the vanity of these, to
-dispose on the spot of the sufficiently strange phenomenon
-constituted by what I have called the climax.
-It embodies in fact an immense anomaly; it casts back
-over Zola’s prime and his middle years the queerest
-grey light of eclipse. Nothing moreover—nothing
-“literary”—was ever so odd as in this matter the whole
-turn of the case, the consummation so logical yet so
-unexpected. Writers have grown old and withered
-and failed; they have grown weak and sad; they have
-lost heart, lost ability, yielded in one way or another—the
-possible ways being so numerous—to the cruelty
-of time. But the singular doom of this genius, and
-which began to multiply its symptoms ten years before
-his death, was to find, with life, at fifty, still rich in
-him, strength only to undermine all the “authority”
-he had gathered. He had not grown old and he had
-not grown feeble; he had only grown all too wrongly
-insistent, setting himself to wreck, poetically, his so
-massive identity—to wreck it in the very waters in
-which he had formally arrayed his victorious fleet,
-(I say “poetically” on purpose to give him the just
-benefit of all the beauty of his power.) The process
-of the disaster, so full of the effect, though so without
-the intention, of perversity, is difficult to trace in a few
-words; it may best be indicated by an example or two
-of its action.</p>
-
-<p>The example that perhaps most comes home to me
-is again connected with a personal reminiscence. In
-the course of some talk that I had with him during
-his first visit to England I happened to ask him what
-opportunity to travel (if any) his immense application
-had ever left him, and whether in particular he had been
-able to see Italy, a country from which I had either
-just returned or which I was luckily—not having the
-Natural History of a Family on my hands—about to
-revisit. “All I’ve done, alas,” he replied, “was, the
-other year, in the course of a little journey to the south,
-to my own <span class='it'>pays</span>—all that has been possible was then
-to make a little dash as far as Genoa, a matter of only
-a few days.” “Le Docteur Pascal,” the conclusion
-of Les Rougon-Macquart, had appeared shortly before,
-and it further befell that I asked him what plans he
-had for the future, now that, still <span class='it'>dans la force de
-l’âge</span>, he had so cleared the ground. I shall never
-forget the fine promptitude of his answer—“Oh, I
-shall begin at once Les Trois Villes.” “And which
-cities are they to be?” The reply was finer still—“Lourdes,
-Paris, Rome.”</p>
-
-<p>It was splendid for confidence and cheer, but it left
-me, I fear, more or less gaping, and it was to give me
-afterwards the key, critically speaking, to many a
-mystery. It struck me as breathing to an almost
-tragic degree the fatuity of those in whom the gods
-stimulate that vice to their ruin. He was an honest
-man—he had always bristled with it at every pore;
-but no artistic reverse was inconceivable for an adventurer
-who, stating in one breath that his knowledge of
-Italy consisted of a few days spent at Genoa, was
-ready to declare in the next that he had planned, on a
-scale, a picture of Rome. It flooded his career, to my
-sense, with light; it showed how he had marched from
-subject to subject and had “got up” each in turn—showing
-also how consummately he had reduced such
-getting-up to an artifice. He had success and a rare
-impunity behind him, but nothing would now be so
-interesting as to see if he could again play the trick.
-One would leave him, and welcome, Lourdes and
-Paris—he had already dealt, on a scale, with his own
-country and people. But was the adored Rome also
-to be his on such terms, the Rome he was already
-giving away before possessing an inch of it? One
-thought of one’s own frequentations, saturations—a
-history of long years, and of how the effect of them
-had somehow been but to make the subject too august.
-Was <span class='it'>he</span> to find it easy through a visit of a month or two
-with “introductions” and a Bædeker?</p>
-
-<p>It was not indeed that the Bædeker and the introductions
-didn’t show, to my sense, at that hour, as
-extremely suggestive; they were positively a part of
-the light struck out by his announcement. They defined
-the system on which he had brought Les Rougon-Macquart
-safely into port. He had had his Bædeker
-and his introductions for “Germinal,” for “L’Assommoir,”
-for “L’Argent,” for “La Débâcle,” for “Au
-Bonheur des Dames”; which advantages, which researches,
-had clearly been all the more in character for
-being documentary, extractive, a matter of <span class='it'>renseignements</span>,
-published or private, even when most mixed
-with personal impressions snatched, with <span class='it'>enquêtes sur
-les lieux</span>, with facts obtained from the best authorities,
-proud and happy to co-operate in so famous a connection.
-That was, as we say, all right, all the more that
-the process, to my imagination, became vivid and was
-wonderfully reflected back from its fruits. There <span class='it'>were</span>
-the fruits—so it hadn’t been presumptuous. Presumption,
-however, was now to begin, and what omen
-mightn’t there be in its beginning with such complacency?
-Well, time would show—as time in due course
-effectually did. “Rome,” as the second volume of
-The Three Cities, appeared with high punctuality a
-year or two later; and the interesting question, an occasion
-really for the moralist, was by that time not to
-recognise in it the mere triumph of a mechanical art,
-a “receipt” applied with the skill of long practice, but
-to do much more than this—that is really to give a
-name to the particular shade of blindness that could
-constitute a trap for so great an artistic intelligence.
-The presumptuous volume, without sweetness, without
-antecedents, superficial and violent, has the minimum
-instead of the maximum of <span class='it'>value</span>; so that it betrayed
-or “gave away” just in this degree the state of mind
-on the author’s part responsible for its inflated hollowness.
-To put one’s finger on the state of mind was to
-find out accordingly what was, as we say, the matter
-with him.</p>
-
-<p>It seemed to me, I remember, that I found out as
-never before when, in its turn, “Fécondité” began the
-work of crowning the edifice. “Fécondité” is physiological,
-whereas “Rome” is not, whereas “Vérité”
-likewise is not; yet these three productions joined hands
-at a given moment to fit into the lock of the mystery
-the key of my meditation. They came to the same
-thing, to the extent of permitting me to read into them
-together the same precious lesson. This lesson may
-not, barely stated, sound remarkable; yet without
-being in possession of it I should have ventured on
-none of these remarks. “The matter with” Zola then,
-so far as it goes, was that, as the imagination of the
-artist is in the best cases not only clarified but intensified
-by his equal possession of Taste (deserving here if
-ever the old-fashioned honour of a capital) so when he
-has lucklessly never inherited that auxiliary blessing
-the imagination itself inevitably breaks down as a
-consequence. There is simply no limit, in fine, to the
-misfortune of being tasteless; it does not merely disfigure
-the surface and the fringe of your performance—it
-eats back into the very heart and enfeebles the
-sources of life. When you have no taste you have no
-discretion, which is the conscience of taste, and when
-you have no discretion you perpetrate books like
-“Rome,” which are without intellectual modesty, books
-like “Fécondité,” which are without a sense of the
-ridiculous, books like “Vérité,” which are without the
-finer vision of human experience.</p>
-
-<p>It is marked that in each of these examples the deficiency
-has been directly fatal. No stranger doom
-was ever appointed for a man so plainly desiring only
-to be just than the absurdity of not resting till he had
-buried the felicity of his past, such as it was, under a
-great flat leaden slab. “Vérité” is a plea for science,
-as science, to Zola, is <span class='it'>all</span> truth, the mention of any
-other kind being mere imbecility; and the simplification
-of the human picture to which his negations and
-exasperations have here conducted him was not, even
-when all had been said, credible in advance. The result
-is amazing when we consider that the finer observation
-is the supposed basis of all such work. It is
-not that even here the author has not a queer idealism
-of his own; this idealism is on the contrary so present
-as to show positively for the falsest of his simplifications.
-In “Fécondité” it becomes grotesque, makes
-of the book the most muscular mistake of <span class='it'>sense</span> probably
-ever committed. Where was the judgment of which
-experience is supposed to be the guarantee when the
-perpetrator could persuade himself that the lesson he
-wished in these pages to convey could be made immediate
-and direct, chalked, with loud taps and a still
-louder commentary, the sexes and generations all convoked,
-on the blackboard of the “family sentiment?”</p>
-
-<p>I have mentioned, however, all this time but one of
-his categories. The second consists of such things as
-“La Fortune des Rougon” and “La Curée,” as “Eugène
-Rougon” and even “Nana,” as “Pot-Bouille,” as
-“L’Œuvre” and “La Joie de Vivre.” These volumes
-may rank as social pictures in the narrowest sense,
-studies, comprehensively speaking, of the manners, the
-morals, the miseries—for it mainly comes to that—of
-a bourgeoisie grossly materialised. They deal with the
-life of individuals in the liberal professions and with
-that of political and social adventures, and offer the
-personal character and career, more or less detached,
-as the centre of interest. “La Curée” is an evocation,
-violent and “romantic,” of the extravagant appetites,
-the fever of the senses, supposedly fostered, for its
-ruin, by the hapless second Empire, upon which general
-ills and turpitudes at large were at one time so freely
-and conveniently fathered. “Eugène Rougon” carries
-out this view in the high colour of a political portrait,
-not other than scandalous, for which one of the ministerial
-<span class='it'>âmes damnées</span> of Napoleon III., M. Rouher, is
-reputed, I know not how justly, to have sat. “Nana,”
-attaching itself by a hundred strings to a prearranged
-table of kinships, heredities, transmissions, is the vast
-crowded <span class='it'>epos</span> of the daughter of the people filled with
-poisoned blood and sacrificed as well as sacrificing on
-the altar of luxury and lust; the panorama of such a
-“progress” as Hogarth would more definitely have
-named—the progress across the high plateau of
-“pleasure” and down the facile descent on the other
-side. “Nana” is truly a monument to Zola’s patience;
-the subject being so ungrateful, so formidably special,
-that the multiplication of illustrative detail, the
-plunge into pestilent depths, represents a kind of technical
-intrepidity.</p>
-
-<p>There are other plunges, into different sorts of darkness;
-of which the esthetic, even the scientific, even the
-ironic motive fairly escapes us—explorations of stagnant
-pools like that of “La Joie de Vivre,” as to which,
-granting the nature of the curiosity and the substance
-laboured in, the patience is again prodigious, but
-which make us wonder what pearl of philosophy, of
-suggestion or just of homely recognition, the general
-picture, as of rats dying in a hole, has to offer. Our
-various senses, sight, smell, sound, touch, are, as with
-Zola always, more or less convinced; but when the
-particular effect upon each of these is added to the
-effect upon the others the mind still remains bewilderedly
-unconscious of any use for the total. I am not
-sure indeed that the case is in this respect better with
-the productions of the third order—“La Faute de
-l’Abbé Mouret,” “Une Page d’Amour,” “Le Rêve,”
-“Le Docteur Pascal”—in which the appeal is more
-directly, is in fact quite earnestly, to the moral vision;
-so much, on such ground, was to depend precisely on
-those discriminations in which the writer is least at
-home. The volumes whose names I have just quoted
-are his express tribute to the “ideal,” to the select
-and the charming—fair fruits of invention intended to
-remove from the mouth so far as possible the bitterness
-of the ugly things in which so much of the rest
-of his work had been condemned to consist. The subjects
-in question then are “idyllic” and the treatment
-poetic, concerned essentially to please on the largest
-lines and involving at every turn that salutary need.
-They are matters of conscious delicacy, and nothing
-might interest us more than to see what, in the shock
-of the potent forces enlisted, becomes of this shy element.
-Nothing might interest us more, literally, and
-might positively affect us more, even very nearly to
-tears, though indeed sometimes also to smiles, than to
-see the constructor of Les Rougon-Macquart trying,
-“for all he is worth,” to be fine with fineness, finely
-tender, finely true—trying to be, as it is called, distinguished—in
-face of constitutional hindrance.</p>
-
-<p>The effort is admirably honest, the tug at his subject
-splendidly strong; but the consequences remain of the
-strangest, and we get the impression that—as representing
-discriminations unattainable—they are somehow
-the price he paid. “Le Docteur Pascal,” for
-instance, which winds up the long chronicle on the
-romantic note, on the note of invoked beauty, in order
-to sweeten, as it were, the total draught—“Le Docteur
-Pascal,” treating of the erotic ardour entertained for
-each other by an uncle and his niece, leaves us amazed
-at such a conception of beauty, such an application of
-romance, such an estimate of sweetness, a sacrifice to
-poetry and passion so little in order. Of course, we
-definitely remind ourselves, the whole long chronicle
-is explicitly a scheme, solidly set up and intricately
-worked out, lighted, according to the author’s pretension,
-by “science,” high, dry and clear, and with each
-part involved and necessitated in all the other parts,
-each block of the edifice, each “morceau de vie,”
-<span class='it'>physiologically</span> determined by previous combinations.
-“How can I help it,” we hear the builder of the pyramid
-ask, “if experience (by which alone I proceed)
-shows me certain plain results—if, holding up the torch
-of my famous ‘experimental method,’ I find it stare me
-in the face that the union of certain types, the conflux
-of certain strains of blood, the intermarriage, in a
-word, of certain families, produces nervous conditions,
-conditions temperamental, psychical and pathological,
-in which nieces <span class='it'>have</span> to fall in love with uncles and
-uncles with nieces? Observation and imagination,
-for any picture of life,” he as audibly adds, “know no
-light but science, and are false to all intellectual decency,
-false to their own honour, when they fear it,
-dodge it, darken it. To pretend to any other guide
-or law is mere base humbug.”</p>
-
-<p>That is very well, and the value, in a hundred ways,
-of a mass of production conceived in such a spirit can
-never (when robust execution has followed) be small.
-But the formula really sees us no further. It offers a
-definition which is no definition. “Science” is soon
-said—the whole thing depends on the ground so
-covered. Science accepts surely <span class='it'>all</span> our consciousness
-of life; even, rather, the latter closes maternally round
-it—so that, becoming thus a force within us, not a
-force outside, it exists, it illuminates only as we apply
-it. We do emphatically apply it in art. But Zola
-would apparently hold that it much more applies <span class='it'>us</span>.
-On the showing of many of his volumes then it makes
-but a dim use of us, and this we should still consider
-the case even were we sure that the article offered us
-in the majestic name is absolutely at one with its own
-pretension. This confidence we can on too many
-grounds never have. The matter is one of appreciation,
-and when an artist answers for science who
-answers for the artist—who at the least answers for
-art? Thus it is with the mistakes that affect us, I
-say, as Zola’s penalties. We are reminded by them
-that the game of art has, as the phrase is, to be played.
-It may not with any sure felicity for the result be both
-taken and left. If you insist on the common you must
-submit to the common; if you discriminate, on the
-contrary, you must, however invidious your discriminations
-may be called, trust to them to see you through.</p>
-
-<p>To the common then Zola, often with splendid results,
-inordinately sacrifices, and this fact of its overwhelming
-him is what I have called his paying for it.
-In “L’Assommoir,” in “Germinal,” in “La Débâcle,”
-productions in which he must most survive, the sacrifice
-is ordered and fruitful, for the subject and
-the treatment harmonise and work together. He describes
-what he best feels, and feels it more and more
-as it naturally comes to him—quite, if I may allow
-myself the image, as we zoologically see some mighty
-animal, a beast of a corrugated hide and a portentous
-snout, soaking with joy in the warm ooze of an African
-riverside. In these cases everything matches, and
-“science,” we may be permitted to believe, has had
-little hand in the business. The author’s perceptions
-go straight, and the subject, grateful and responsive,
-gives itself wholly up. It is no longer a case of an uncertain
-smoky torch, but of a personal vision, the
-vision of genius, springing from an inward source. Of
-this genius “L’Assommoir” is the most extraordinary
-record. It contains, with the two companions I have
-given it, all the best of Zola, and the three books together
-are solid ground—or would be could I now so
-take them—for a study of the particulars of his power.
-His strongest marks and features abound in them;
-“L’Assommoir” above all is (not least in respect to
-its bold free linguistic reach, already glanced at) completely
-genial, while his misadventures, his unequipped
-and delusive pursuit of the life of the spirit and the
-tone of culture, are almost completely absent.</p>
-
-<p>It is a singular sight enough this of a producer of illusions
-whose interest for us is so independent of our
-pleasure or at least of our complacency—who touches
-us deeply even while he most “puts us off,” who makes
-us care for his ugliness and yet himself at the same
-time pitilessly (pitilessly, that is, for <span class='it'>us</span>) makes a mock
-of it, who fills us with a sense of the rich which is none
-the less never the rare. Gervaise, the most immediately
-“felt,” I cannot but think, of all his characters,
-is a lame washerwoman, loose and gluttonous, without
-will, without any principle of cohesion, the sport of
-every wind that assaults her exposed life, and who,
-rolling from one gross mistake to another, finds her
-end in misery, drink and despair. But her career, as
-presented, has fairly the largeness that, throughout the
-chronicle, we feel as epic, and the intensity of her
-creator’s vision of it and of the dense sordid life hanging
-about it is one of the great things the modern novel
-has been able to do. It has done nothing more completely
-constitutive and of a tone so rich and full and
-sustained. The tone of “L’Assommoir” is, for mere
-“keeping up,” unsurpassable, a vast deep steady tide
-on which every object represented is triumphantly
-borne. It never shrinks nor flows thin, and nothing
-for an instant drops, dips or catches; the high-water
-mark of sincerity, of the genial, as I have called it, is
-unfailingly kept.</p>
-
-<p>For the artist in the same general “line” such a production
-has an interest almost inexpressible, a mystery
-as to origin and growth over which he fondly but rather
-vainly bends. How after all does it so get itself <span class='it'>done</span>?—the
-“done” being admirably the sign and crown of
-it. The light of the richer mind has been elsewhere,
-as I have sufficiently hinted, frequent enough, but
-nothing truly in all fiction was ever built so strong or
-made so dense as here. Needless to say there are a
-thousand things with more charm in their truth, with
-more beguilement of every sort, more prettiness of
-pathos, more innocence of drollery, for the spectator’s
-sense of truth. But I doubt if there has ever been a
-more totally <span class='it'>represented</span> world, anything more founded
-and established, more provided for all round, more
-organised and carried on. It is a world practically
-workable, with every part as functional as every other,
-and with the parts all chosen for direct mutual aid.
-Let it not be said either that the equal constitution
-of parts makes for repletion or excess; the air circulates
-and the subject blooms; deadness comes in these matters
-only when the right parts are absent and there
-is vain beating of the air in their place—the refuge of
-the fumbler incapable of the thing “done” at all.</p>
-
-<p>The mystery I speak of, for the reader who reflects
-as he goes, is the wonder of the scale and energy of
-Zola’s assimilations. This wonder besets us above
-all throughout the three books I have placed first.
-How, all sedentary and “scientific,” did he get so
-<span class='it'>near</span>? By what art, inscrutable, immeasurable, indefatigable,
-did he arrange to make of his documents,
-in these connections, a use so vivified? Say he was
-“near” the subject of “L’Assommoir” in imagination,
-in more or less familiar impression, in temperament
-and humour, he could not after all have been
-near it in personal experience, and the copious personalism
-of the picture, not to say its frank animalism,
-yet remains its note and its strength. When the note
-had been struck in a thousand forms we had, by multiplication,
-as a kind of cumulative consequence, the
-finished and rounded book; just as we had the same
-result by the same process in “Germinal.” It is not
-of course that multiplication and accumulation, the
-extraordinary pair of legs on which he walks, are
-easily or directly consistent with his projecting himself
-morally; this immense diffusion, with its appropriation
-of everything it meets, affects us on the contrary
-as perpetually delaying access to what we may
-call the private world, the world of the individual.
-Yet since the individual—for it so happens—is simple
-and shallow our author’s dealings with him, as met and
-measured, maintain their resemblance to those of the
-lusty bee who succeeds in plumping for an instant, of a
-summer morning, into every flower-cup of the garden.</p>
-
-<p>Grant—and the generalisation may be emphatic—that
-the shallow and the simple are <span class='it'>all</span> the population
-of his richest and most crowded pictures, and that his
-“psychology,” in a psychologic age, remains thereby
-comparatively coarse, grant this and we but get another
-view of the miracle. We see enough of the
-superficial among novelists at large, assuredly, without
-deriving from it, as we derive from Zola at his best,
-the concomitant impression of the solid. It is in general—I
-mean among the novelists at large—the impression
-of the <span class='it'>cheap</span>, which the author of Les Rougon-Macquart,
-honest man, never faithless for a moment
-to his own stiff standard, manages to spare us even in
-the prolonged sandstorm of “Vérité.” The Common
-is another matter; it is one of the forms of the superficial—pervading
-and consecrating all things in such a
-book as “Germinal”—and it only adds to the number
-of our critical questions. How in the world is it made,
-this deplorable democratic malodorous Common, so
-strange and so interesting? How is it taught to receive
-into its loins the stuff of the epic and still, in spite of
-that association with poetry, never depart from its
-nature? It is in the great lusty game he plays with
-the shallow and the simple that Zola’s mastery resides,
-and we see of course that when values are small it
-takes innumerable items and combinations to make up
-the sum. In “L’Assommoir” and in “Germinal,” to
-some extent even in “La Débâcle,” the values are all,
-morally, personally, of the lowest—the highest is poor
-Gervaise herself, richly human in her generosities and
-follies—yet each is as distinct as a brass-headed nail.</p>
-
-<p>What we come back to accordingly is the unprecedented
-case of such a combination of parts. Painters,
-of great schools, often of great talent, have responded
-liberally on canvas to the appeal of ugly things, of
-Spanish beggars, squalid and dusty-footed, of martyred
-saints or other convulsed sufferers, tortured and
-bleeding, of boors and louts soaking a Dutch proboscis
-in perpetual beer; but we had never before had to
-reckon with so literary a treatment of the mean and
-vulgar. When we others of the Anglo-Saxon race are
-vulgar we are, handsomely and with the best conscience
-in the world, vulgar all through, too vulgar to
-be in any degree literary, and too much so therefore
-to be critically reckoned with at all. The French are
-different—they separate their sympathies, multiply
-their possibilities, observe their shades, remain more
-or less outside of their worst disasters. They mostly
-contrive to get the <span class='it'>idea</span>, in however dead a faint, down
-into the lifeboat. They may lose sight of the stars,
-but they save in some such fashion as that their intellectual
-souls. Zola’s own reply to all puzzlements
-would have been, at any rate, I take it, a straight summary
-of his inveterate professional habits. “It is all
-very simple—I produce, roughly speaking, a volume a
-year, and of this time some five months go to preparation,
-to special study. In the other months, with all
-my <span class='it'>cadres</span> established, I write the book. And I can
-hardly say which part of the job is stiffest.”</p>
-
-<p>The story was not more wonderful for him than
-that, nor the job more complex; which is why we must
-say of his whole process and its results that they constitute
-together perhaps the most extraordinary <span class='it'>imitation</span>
-of observation that we possess. Balzac appealed
-to “science” and proceeded by her aid; Balzac had
-<span class='it'>cadres</span> enough and a tabulated world, rubrics, relationships
-and genealogies; but Balzac affects us in spite of
-everything as personally overtaken by life, as fairly
-hunted and run to earth by it. He strikes us as struggling
-and all but submerged, as beating over the scene
-such a pair of wings as were not soon again to be wielded
-by any visitor of his general air and as had not at all
-events attached themselves to Zola’s rounded shoulders.
-His bequest is in consequence immeasurably more interesting,
-yet who shall declare that his adventure was
-in its greatness more successful? Zola “pulled it off,”
-as we say, supremely, in that he never but once found
-himself obliged to quit, to our vision, his magnificent
-treadmill of the pigeonholed and documented—the
-region we may qualify as that of experience by imitation.
-His splendid economy saw him through, he
-laboured to the end within sight of his notes and his
-charts.</p>
-
-<p>The extraordinary thing, however, is that on the
-single occasion when, publicly—as his whole manifestation
-was public—life did swoop down on him, the
-effect of the visitation was quite perversely other than
-might have been looked for. His courage in the
-Dreyfus connection testified admirably to his ability
-to live for himself and out of the order of his volumes—little
-indeed as living at all might have seemed a
-question for one exposed, when his crisis was at its
-height and he was found guilty of “insulting” the
-powers that were, to be literally torn to pieces in the
-precincts of the Palace of Justice. Our point is that
-nothing was ever so odd as that these great moments
-should appear to have been wasted, when all was said,
-for his creative intelligence. “Vérité,” as I have intimated,
-the production in which they might most
-have been reflected, is a production unrenewed and
-unrefreshed by them, spreads before us as somehow
-flatter and greyer, not richer and more relieved, by
-reason of them. They really arrived, I surmise, too
-late in the day; the imagination they might have vivified
-was already fatigued and spent.</p>
-
-<p>I must not moreover appear to say that the power
-to evoke and present has not even on the dead level of
-“Vérité” its occasional minor revenges. There are
-passages, whole pages, of the old full-bodied sort,
-pictures that elsewhere in the series would in all likelihood
-have seemed abundantly convincing. Their misfortune
-is to have been discounted by our intensified,
-our finally fatal sense of the <span class='it'>procédé</span>. Quarrelling with
-all conventions, defiant of them in general, Zola was
-yet inevitably to set up his own group of them—as,
-for that matter, without a sufficient collection, without
-their aid in simplifying and making possible, how could
-he ever have seen his big ship into port? Art welcomes
-them, feeds upon them always; no sort of form
-is practicable without them. It is only a question of
-what particular ones we use—to wage war on certain
-others and to arrive at particular forms. The convention
-of the blameless being, the thoroughly “scientific”
-creature possessed impeccably of all truth and
-serving as the mouthpiece of it and of the author’s
-highest complacencies, this character is for instance
-a convention inveterate and indispensable, without
-whom the “sympathetic” side of the work could never
-have been achieved. Marc in “Vérité,” Pierre Froment
-in “Lourdes” and in “Rome,” the wondrous
-representatives of the principle of reproduction in
-“Fécondité,” the exemplary painter of “L’Œuvre,”
-sublime in his modernity and paternity, the patient
-Jean Macquart of “La Débâcle,” whose patience is as
-guaranteed as the exactitude of a well-made watch,
-the supremely enlightened Docteur Pascal even, as I
-recall him, all amorous nepotism but all virtue too and
-all beauty of life—such figures show us the reasonable
-and the good not merely in the white light of the old
-George Sand novel and its improved moralities, but
-almost in that of our childhood’s nursery and school-room,
-that of the moral tale of Miss Edgeworth and
-Mr. Thomas Day.</p>
-
-<p>Yet let not these restrictions be my last word. I
-had intended, under the effect of a reperusal of “La
-Débâcle,” “Germinal” and “L’Assommoir,” to make
-no discriminations that should not be in our hero’s
-favour. The long-drawn incident of the marriage of
-Gervaise and Cadet-Cassis and that of the Homeric
-birthday feast later on in the laundress’s workshop,
-each treated from beginning to end and in every item
-of their coarse comedy and humanity, still show the
-unprecedented breadth by which they originally made
-us stare, still abound in the particular kind and degree
-of vividness that helped them, when they appeared,
-to mark a date in the portrayal of manners. Nothing
-had then been so sustained and at every moment of
-its grotesque and pitiful existence lived into as the
-nuptial day of the Coupeau pair in especial, their
-fantastic processional pilgrimage through the streets
-of Paris in the rain, their bedraggled exploration of the
-halls of the Louvre museum, lost as in the labyrinth
-of Crete, and their arrival at last, ravenous and exasperated,
-at the <span class='it'>guinguette</span> where they sup at so much
-a head, each paying, and where we sit down with
-them in the grease and the perspiration and succumb,
-half in sympathy, half in shame, to their monstrous
-pleasantries, acerbities and miseries. I have said
-enough of the mechanical in Zola; here in truth is,
-given the elements, almost insupportably the sense of
-life. That effect is equally in the historic chapter of
-the strike of the miners in “Germinal,” another of
-those illustrative episodes, viewed as great passages
-to be “rendered,” for which our author established
-altogether a new measure and standard of handling, a
-new energy and veracity, something since which the
-old trivialities and poverties of treatment of such
-aspects have become incompatible, for the novelist,
-with either rudimentary intelligence or rudimentary
-self-respect.</p>
-
-<p>As for “La Débâcle,” finally, it takes its place with
-Tolstoi’s very much more universal but very much less
-composed and condensed epic as an incomparably
-human picture of war. I have been re-reading it, I
-confess, with a certain timidity, the dread of perhaps
-impairing the deep impression received at the time of
-its appearance. I recall the effect it then produced
-on me as a really luxurious act of submission. It was
-early in the summer; I was in an old Italian town; the
-heat was oppressive, and one could but recline, in the
-lightest garments, in a great dim room and give one’s
-self up. I like to think of the conditions and the
-emotion, which melt for me together into the memory
-I fear to imperil. I remember that in the glow of my
-admiration there was not a reserve I had ever made
-that I was not ready to take back. As an application
-of the author’s system and his supreme faculty, as a
-triumph of what these things could do for him, how
-could such a performance be surpassed? The long,
-complex, horrific, pathetic battle, embraced, mastered,
-with every crash of its squadrons, every pulse of its
-thunder and blood resolved for us, by reflection, by
-communication from two of the humblest and obscurest
-of the military units, into immediate vision and
-contact, into deep human thrills of terror and pity—this
-bristling centre of the book was such a piece of
-“doing” (to come back to our word) as could only
-shut our mouths. That doubtless is why a generous
-critic, nursing the sensation, may desire to drop for a
-farewell no term into the other scale. That our author
-was clearly great at congruous subjects—this may
-well be our conclusion. If the others, subjects of the
-private and intimate order, gave him more or less
-inevitably “away,” they yet left him the great distinction
-that the more he could be promiscuous and collective,
-the more even he could (to repeat my imputation)
-illustrate our large natural allowance of health,
-heartiness and grossness, the more he could strike us
-as penetrating and true. It was a distinction not easy
-to win and that his name is not likely soon to lose.</p>
-
-<div><span class='pagenum'><a name='Page_65' id='Page_65'>65</a></span><h1 id='t2356'>GUSTAVE FLAUBERT</h1></div>
-
-<p>The first thing I find to-day and on my very threshold<a id='r2'/><a href='#f2' style='text-decoration:none'><sup><span style='font-size:0.9em'>[2]</span></sup></a>
-to say about Gustave Flaubert is that he has been reported
-on by M. Émile Faguet in the series of Les
-Grands Écrivains Français with such lucidity as may
-almost be taken to warn off a later critic. I desire to
-pay at the outset my tribute to M. Faguet’s exhaustive
-study, which is really in its kind a model and a
-monument. Never can a critic have got closer to a
-subject of this order; never can the results of the approach
-have been more copious or more interesting;
-never in short can the master of a complex art have
-been more mastered in his turn, nor his art more penetrated,
-by the application of an earnest curiosity.
-That remark I have it at heart to make, so pre-eminently
-has the little volume I refer to not left the
-subject where it found it. It abounds in contributive
-light, and yet, I feel on reflection that it scarce wholly
-dazzles another contributor away. One reason of this
-is that, though I enter into everything M. Faguet has
-said, there are things—things perhaps especially of
-the province of the artist, the fellow-craftsman of
-Flaubert—that I am conscious of his not having said;
-another is that inevitably there are particular possibilities
-of reaction in our English-speaking consciousness
-that hold up a light of their own. Therefore I venture
-to follow even on a field so laboured, only paying this
-toll to the latest and best work because the author has
-made it impossible to do less.</p>
-
-<p>Flaubert’s life is so almost exclusively the story of
-his literary application that to speak of his five or six
-fictions is pretty well to account for it all. He died
-in 1880 after a career of fifty-nine years singularly
-little marked by changes of scene, of fortune, of attitude,
-of occupation, of character, and above all, as
-may be said, of mind. He would be interesting to the
-race of novelists if only because, quite apart from the
-value of his work, he so personally gives us the example
-and the image, so presents the intellectual case. He
-was born a novelist, grew up, lived, died a novelist,
-breathing, feeling, thinking, speaking, performing
-every operation of life, only as that votary; and this
-though his production was to be small in amount and
-though it constituted all his diligence. It was not
-indeed perhaps primarily so much that he was born
-and lived a novelist as that he was born and lived
-literary, and that to be literary represented for him
-an almost overwhelming situation. No life was long
-enough, no courage great enough, no fortune kind
-enough to support a man under the burden of this
-character when once such a doom had been laid on
-him. His case was a doom because he felt of his vocation
-almost nothing but the difficulty. He had many
-strange sides, but this was the strangest, that if we
-argued from his difficulty to his work, the difficulty
-being registered for us in his letters and elsewhere, we
-should expect from the result but the smallest things.
-We should be prepared to find in it well-nigh a complete
-absence of the signs of a gift. We should regret that
-the unhappy man had not addressed himself to something
-he might have found at least comparatively easy.
-We should singularly miss the consecration supposedly
-given to a work of art by its having been conceived
-in joy. That is Flaubert’s remarkable, his so
-far as I know unmatched distinction, that he has left
-works of an extraordinary art even the conception of
-which failed to help him to think in serenity. The
-chapter of execution, from the moment execution gets
-really into the shafts, is of course always and everywhere
-a troubled one—about which moreover too much
-has of late been written; but we frequently find Flaubert
-cursing his subjects themselves, wishing he had
-not chosen them, holding himself up to derision for
-having done so, and hating them in the very act of
-sitting down to them. He cared immensely for the
-medium, the task and the triumph involved, but was
-himself the last to be able to say why. He is sustained
-only by the rage and the habit of effort; the mere <span class='it'>love</span>
-of letters, let alone the love of life, appears at an early
-age to have deserted him. Certain passages in his correspondence
-make us even wonder if it be not hate
-that sustains him most. So, successively, his several
-supremely finished and crowned compositions came
-into the world, and we may feel sure that none others
-of the kind, none that were to have an equal fortune,
-had sprung from such adversity.</p>
-
-<p>I insist upon this because his at once excited and
-baffled passion gives the key of his life and determines
-its outline. I must speak of him at least as I feel him
-and as in his very latest years I had the fortune occasionally
-to see him. I said just now, practically, that he
-is for many of our tribe at large <span class='it'>the</span> novelist, intent and
-typical, and so, gathered together and foreshortened,
-simplified and fixed, the lapse of time seems to show
-him. It has made him in his prolonged posture extraordinarily
-objective, made him even resemble one
-of his own productions, constituted him as a subject,
-determined him as a figure; the limit of his range, and
-above all of his reach, is after this fashion, no doubt,
-sufficiently indicated, and yet perhaps in the event
-without injury to his name. If our consideration of
-him cultivates a certain tenderness on the double
-ground that he suffered supremely in the cause and
-that there is endlessly much to be learned from him,
-we remember at the same time that, indirectly, the
-world at large possesses him not less than the <span class='it'>confrère</span>.
-He has fed and fertilised, has filtered through others,
-and so arrived at contact with that public from whom
-it was his theory that he was separated by a deep and
-impassable trench, the labour of his own spade. He is
-none the less more interesting, I repeat, as a failure
-however qualified than as a success however explained,
-and it is as so viewed that the unity of his career
-attaches and admonishes. Save in some degree by a
-condition of health (a liability to epileptic fits at
-times frequent, but never so frequent as to have been
-generally suspected,) he was not outwardly hampered
-as the tribe of men of letters goes—an anxious brotherhood
-at the best; yet the fewest possible things appear
-to have ever succeeded in happening to him. The
-only son of an eminent provincial physician, he inherited
-a modest ease and no other incumbrance than,
-as was the case for Balzac, an over-attentive, an importunate
-mother; but freedom spoke to him from
-behind a veil, and when we have mentioned the few apparent
-facts of experience that make up his landmarks
-over and beyond his interspaced publications we shall
-have completed his biography. Tall, strong, striking,
-he caused his friends to admire in him the elder, the
-florid Norman type, and he seems himself, as a man of
-imagination, to have found some transmission of race
-in his stature and presence, his light-coloured salient
-eyes and long tawny moustache.</p>
-
-<p>The central event of his life was his journey to the
-East in 1849 with M. Maxime Du Camp, of which the
-latter has left in his “Impressions Littéraires” a singularly
-interesting and, as we may perhaps say, slightly
-treacherous report, and which prepared for Flaubert
-a state of nostalgia that was not only never to leave
-him, but that was to work in him as a motive. He
-had during that year, and just in sufficient quantity,
-his revelation, the particular appropriate disclosure to
-which the gods at some moment treat the artist unless
-they happen too perversely to conspire against him:
-he tasted of the knowledge by which he was subsequently
-to measure everything, appeal from everything,
-find everything flat. Never probably was an
-impression so assimilated, so positively transmuted to
-a function; he lived on it to the end and we may say
-that in “Salammbô” and “La Tentation de Saint-Antoine”
-he almost died of it. He made afterwards
-no other journey of the least importance save a disgusted
-excursion to the Rigi-Kaltbad shortly before his
-death. The Franco-German War was of course to
-him for the time as the valley of the shadow itself;
-but this was an ordeal, unlike most of his other ordeals,
-shared after all with millions. He never married—he
-declared, toward the end, to the most comprehending
-of his confidants, that he had been from the first
-“afraid of life”; and the friendliest element of his
-later time was, we judge, that admirable comfortable
-commerce, in her fullest maturity, with Madame
-George Sand, the confidant I just referred to; which
-has been preserved for us in the published correspondence
-of each. He had in Ivan Turgenieff a friend almost
-as valued; he spent each year a few months in
-Paris, where (to mention everything) he had his
-natural place, so far as he cared to take it, at the small
-literary court of the Princess Mathilde; and, lastly, he
-lost toward the close of his life, by no fault of his own,
-a considerable part of his modest fortune. It is, however,
-in the long security, the almost unbroken solitude
-of Croisset, near Rouen, that he mainly figures
-for us, gouging out his successive books in the wide
-old room, of many windows, that, with an intervening
-terrace, overlooked the broad Seine and the passing
-boats. This was virtually a monastic cell, closed to
-echoes and accidents; with its stillness for long periods
-scarce broken save by the creak of the towing-chain
-of the tugs across the water. When I have added that
-his published letters offer a view, not very refreshing,
-of his youthful entanglement with Madame Louise
-Colet—whom we name because, apparently not a
-shrinking person, she long ago practically named herself—I
-shall have catalogued his personal vicissitudes.
-And I may add further that the connection with Madame
-Colet, such as it was, rears its head for us in
-something like a desert of immunity from such complications.</p>
-
-<p>His complications were of the spirit, of the literary
-vision, and though he was thoroughly profane he was
-yet essentially anchoretic. I perhaps miss a point,
-however, in not finally subjoining that he was liberally
-accessible to his friends during the months he regularly
-spent in Paris. Sensitive, passionate, perverse, not
-less than <span class='it'>immediately</span> sociable—for if he detested his
-collective contemporaries this dropped, thanks to his
-humanising shyness, before the individual encounter—he
-was in particular and superexcellently not <span class='it'>banal</span>,
-and he attached men perhaps more than women, inspiring
-a marked, a by no means colourless shade of
-respect; a respect not founded, as the air of it is apt to
-be, on the vague presumption, but addressed almost in
-especial to his disparities and oddities and thereby,
-no doubt, none too different from affection. His friends
-at all events were a rich and eager <span class='it'>cénacle</span>, among whom
-he was on occasion, by his picturesque personality, a
-natural and overtopping centre; partly perhaps because
-he was so much and so familiarly at home. He
-wore, up to any hour of the afternoon, that long, colloquial
-dressing-gown, with trousers to match, which
-one has always associated with literature in France—the
-uniform really of freedom of talk. Freedom of
-talk abounded by his winter fire, for the <span class='it'>cénacle</span> was
-made up almost wholly of the more finely distinguished
-among his contemporaries; of philosophers, men of
-letters and men of affairs belonging to his own generation
-and the next. He had at the time I have in mind
-a small perch, far aloft, at the distant, the then almost
-suburban, end of the Faubourg Saint-Honoré, where on
-Sunday afternoons, at the very top of an endless flight
-of stairs, were to be encountered in a cloud of conversation
-and smoke most of the novelists of the general
-Balzac tradition. Others of a different birth and complexion
-were markedly not of the number, were not
-even conceivable as present; none of those, unless I
-misremember, whose fictions were at that time “serialised”
-in the Revue des Deux Mondes. In spite of
-Renan and Taine and two or three more, the contributor
-to the Revue would indeed at no time have found
-in the circle in question his foot on his native heath.
-One could recall if one would two or three vivid allusions
-to him, not of the most quotable, on the lips
-of the most famous of “naturalists”—allusions to him
-as represented for instance by M. Victor Cherbuliez
-and M. Octave Feuillet. The author of these pages
-recalls a concise qualification of this last of his fellows
-on the lips of Émile Zola, which that absorbed auditor
-had too directly, too rashly asked for; but which is alas
-not reproducible here. There was little else but the
-talk, which had extreme intensity and variety; almost
-nothing, as I remember, but a painted and gilded idol,
-of considerable size, a relic and a memento, on the
-chimney-piece. Flaubert was huge and diffident, but
-florid too and resonant, and my main remembrance is
-of a conception of courtesy in him, an accessibility to
-the human relation, that only wanted to be sure of
-the way taken or to take. The uncertainties of the
-French for the determination of intercourse have often
-struck me as quite matching the sharpness of their
-certainties, as we for the most part feel these latter,
-which sometimes in fact throw the indeterminate into
-almost touching relief. I have thought of them at
-such times as the people in the world one may have
-to go more of the way to meet than to meet any other,
-and this, as it were, through their being seated and
-embedded, provided for at home, in a manner that
-is all their own and that has bred them to the positive
-preacceptance of interest on their behalf. We at least
-of the Anglo-American race, more abroad in the world,
-perching everywhere, so far as grounds of intercourse
-are concerned, more vaguely and superficially, as well
-as less intelligently, are the more ready by that fact
-with inexpensive accommodations, rather conscious
-that these themselves forbear from the claim to fascinate,
-and advancing with the good nature that is the
-mantle of our obtuseness to any point whatever where
-entertainment may be offered us. My recollection is
-at any rate simplified by the fact of the presence almost
-always, in the little high room of the Faubourg’s
-end, of other persons and other voices. Flaubert’s
-own voice is clearest to me from the uneffaced sense
-of a winter week-day afternoon when I found him by
-exception alone and when something led to his reading
-me aloud, in support of some judgment he had thrown
-off, a poem of Théophile Gautier’s. He cited it as an
-example of verse intensely and distinctively French,
-and French in its melancholy, which neither Goethe
-nor Heine nor Leopardi, neither Pushkin nor Tennyson
-nor, as he said, Byron, could at all have matched in
-<span class='it'>kind</span>. He converted me at the moment to this perception,
-alike by the sense of the thing and by his large
-utterance of it; after which it is dreadful to have to
-confess not only that the poem was then new to me,
-but that, hunt as I will in every volume of its author,
-I am never able to recover it. This is perhaps after all
-happy, causing Flaubert’s own full tone, which was the
-note of the occasion, to linger the more unquenched.
-But for the rhyme in fact I could have believed him to
-be spouting to me something strange and sonorous of
-his own. The thing really rare would have been to
-hear him do that—hear him <span class='it'>gueuler</span>, as he liked to
-call it. Verse, I felt, we had always with us, and almost
-any idiot of goodwill could give it a value. The value
-of so many a passage of “Salammbô” and of “L’Éducation”
-was on the other hand exactly such as gained
-when he allowed himself, as had by the legend ever
-been frequent <span class='it'>dans l’intimité</span>, to “bellow” it to its
-fullest effect.</p>
-
-<p>One of the things that make him most exhibitional
-and most describable, so that if we had invented him
-as an illustration or a character we would exactly so
-have arranged him, is that he was formed intellectually
-of two quite distinct compartments, a sense of the real
-and a sense of the romantic, and that his production,
-for our present cognisance, thus neatly and vividly
-divides itself. The divisions are as marked as the
-sections on the back of a scarab, though their distinctness
-is undoubtedly but the final expression of much
-inward strife. M. Faguet indeed, who is admirable on
-this question of our author’s duality, gives an account
-of the romanticism that found its way for him into the
-real and of the reality that found its way into the
-romantic; but he none the less strikes us as a curious
-splendid insect sustained on wings of a different coloration,
-the right a vivid red, say, and the left as frank a
-yellow. This duality has in its sharp operation placed
-“Madame Bovary” and “L’Éducation” on one side
-together and placed together on the other “Salammbô”
-and “La Tentation.” “Bouvard et Pécuchet” it can
-scarce be spoken of, I think, as having placed anywhere
-or anyhow. If it was Flaubert’s way to find his subject
-impossible there was none he saw so much in that
-light as this last-named, but also none that he appears
-to have held so important for that very reason
-to pursue to the bitter end. Posterity agrees with
-him about the impossibility, but rather takes upon
-itself to break with the rest of the logic. We may perhaps,
-however, for symmetry, let “Bouvard et Pécuchet”
-figure as the tail—if scarabs ever have tails—of
-our analogous insect. Only in that case we should also
-append as the very tip the small volume of the “Trois
-Contes,” preponderantly of the deepest imaginative
-hue.</p>
-
-<p>His imagination was great and splendid; in spite of
-which, strangely enough, his masterpiece is not his
-most imaginative work. “Madame Bovary,” beyond
-question, holds that first place, and “Madame Bovary”
-is concerned with the career of a country doctor’s wife
-in a petty Norman town. The elements of the picture
-are of the fewest, the situation of the heroine
-almost of the meanest, the material for interest, considering
-the interest yielded, of the most unpromising;
-but these facts only throw into relief one of those incalculable
-incidents that attend the proceedings of
-genius. “Madame Bovary” was doomed by circumstances
-and causes—the freshness of comparative youth
-and good faith on the author’s part being perhaps the
-chief—definitely to take its position, even though its
-subject was fundamentally a negation of the remote,
-the splendid and the strange, the stuff of his fondest and
-most cultivated dreams. It would have seemed very
-nearly to exclude the free play of the imagination,
-and the way this faculty on the author’s part nevertheless
-presides is one of those accidents, manœuvres,
-inspirations, we hardly know what to call them, by
-which masterpieces grow. He of course knew more or
-less what he was doing for his book in making Emma
-Bovary a victim of the imaginative habit, but he must
-have been far from designing or measuring the total
-effect which renders the work so general, so complete
-an expression of himself. His separate idiosyncrasies,
-his irritated sensibility to the life about him, with the
-power to catch it in the fact and hold it hard, and his
-hunger for style and history and poetry, for the rich
-and the rare, great reverberations, great adumbrations,
-are here represented together as they are not in his
-later writings. There is nothing of the near, of the
-directly observed, though there may be much of the
-directly perceived and the minutely detailed, either in
-“Salammbô” or in “Saint-Antoine,” and little enough
-of the extravagance of illusion in that indefinable last
-word of restrained evocation and cold execution
-“L’Éducation Sentimentale.” M. Faguet has of
-course excellently noted this—that the fortune and
-felicity of the book were assured by the stroke that
-made the central figure an embodiment of helpless
-romanticism. Flaubert himself but narrowly escaped
-being such an embodiment after all, and he is thus able
-to express the romantic mind with extraordinary
-truth. As to the rest of the matter he had the luck of
-having been in possession from the first, having begun
-so early to nurse and work up his plan that, familiarity
-and the native air, the native soil, aiding, he had
-finally made out to the last lurking shade the small
-sordid sunny dusty village picture, its emptiness constituted
-and peopled. It is in the background and the
-accessories that the real, the real of his theme, abides;
-and the romantic, the romantic of his theme, accordingly
-occupies the front. Emma Bovary’s poor adventures
-are a tragedy for the very reason that in a
-world unsuspecting, unassisting, unconsoling, she has
-herself to distil the rich and the rare. Ignorant, unguided,
-undiverted, ridden by the very nature and
-mixture of her consciousness, she makes of the business
-an inordinate failure, a failure which in its turn makes
-for Flaubert the most pointed, the most <span class='it'>told</span> of anecdotes.</p>
-
-<p>There are many things to say about “Madame
-Bovary,” but an old admirer of the book would be but
-half-hearted—so far as they represent reserves or
-puzzlements—were he not to note first of all the circumstances
-by which it is most endeared to him. To
-remember it from far back is to have been present all
-along at a process of singular interest to a literary
-mind, a case indeed full of comfort and cheer. The
-finest of Flaubert’s novels is to-day, on the French
-shelf of fiction, one of the first of the classics; it has attained
-that position, slowly but steadily, before our
-eyes; and we seem so to follow the evolution of the fate
-of a classic. We see how the thing takes place; which
-we rarely can, for we mostly miss either the beginning
-or the end, especially in the case of a consecration as
-complete as this. The consecrations of the past are
-too far behind and those of the future too far in front.
-That the production before us <span class='it'>should</span> have come in for
-the heavenly crown may be a fact to offer English and
-American readers a mystifying side; but it is exactly
-our ground and a part moreover of the total interest.
-The author of these remarks remembers, as with a
-sense of the way such things happen, that when a very
-young person in Paris he took up from the parental
-table the latest number of the periodical in which
-Flaubert’s then duly unrecognised masterpiece was in
-course of publication. The moment is not historic,
-but it was to become in the light of history, as may be
-said, so unforgettable that every small feature of it
-yet again lives for him: it rests there like the backward
-end of the span. The cover of the old Revue de Paris
-was yellow, if I mistake not, like that of the new, and
-“Madame Bovary: Mœurs de Province,” on the inside
-of it, was already, on the spot, as a title, mysteriously
-arresting, inscrutably charged. I was ignorant
-of what had preceded and was not to know till much
-later what followed; but present to me still is the act
-of standing there before the fire, my back against the
-low beplushed and begarnished French chimney-piece
-and taking in what I might of that instalment, taking
-it in with so surprised an interest, and perhaps as well
-such a stir of faint foreknowledge, that the sunny little
-salon, the autumn day, the window ajar and the cheerful
-outside clatter of the Rue Montaigne are all now for
-me more or less in the story and the story more or less
-in them. The story, however, was at that moment
-having a difficult life; its fortune was all to make; its
-merit was so far from suspected that, as Maxime Du
-Camp—though verily with no excess of contrition—relates,
-its cloth of gold barely escaped the editorial
-shears. This, with much more, contributes for us to
-the course of things to come. The book, on its appearance
-as a volume, proved a shock to the high propriety
-of the guardians of public morals under the
-second Empire, and Flaubert was prosecuted as author
-of a work indecent to scandal. The prosecution in the
-event fell to the ground, but I should perhaps have
-mentioned this agitation as one of the very few, of
-any public order, in his short list. “Le Candidat”
-fell at the Vaudeville Theatre, several years later, with
-a violence indicated by its withdrawal after a performance
-of but two nights, the first of these marked by a
-deafening uproar; only if the comedy was not to recover
-from this accident the misprised lustre of the
-novel was entirely to reassert itself. It is strange enough
-at present—so far have we travelled since then—that
-“Madame Bovary” should in so comparatively recent
-a past have been to that extent a cause of reprobation;
-and suggestive above all, in such connections, as to
-the large unconsciousness of superior minds. The desire
-of the superior mind of the day—that is the governmental,
-official, legal—to distinguish a book with such
-a destiny before it is a case conceivable, but conception
-breaks down before its design of making the distinction
-purely invidious. We can imagine its knowing
-so little, however face to face with the object, what it
-had got hold of; but for it to have been so urged on
-by a blind inward spring to publish to posterity the
-extent of its ignorance, that would have been beyond
-imagination, beyond everything but pity.</p>
-
-<p>And yet it is not after all that the place the book has
-taken is so overwhelmingly explained by its inherent
-dignity; for here comes in the curiosity of the matter.
-Here comes in especially its fund of admonition for
-alien readers. The dignity of its substance is the dignity
-of Madame Bovary herself as a vessel of experience—a
-question as to which, unmistakably, I judge,
-we can only depart from the consensus of French
-critical opinion. M. Faguet for example commends
-the character of the heroine as one of the most living
-and discriminated figures of women in all literature,
-praises it as a field for the display of the romantic
-spirit that leaves nothing to be desired. Subject to an
-observation I shall presently make and that bears
-heavily in general, I think, on Flaubert as a painter
-of life, subject to this restriction he is right; which is a
-proof that a work of art may be markedly open to objection
-and at the same time be rare in its kind, and
-that when it is perfect to this point nothing else particularly
-matters. “Madame Bovary” has a perfection
-that not only stamps it, but that makes it stand
-almost alone; it holds itself with such a supreme unapproachable
-assurance as both excites and defies
-judgment. For it deals not in the least, as to unapproachability,
-with things exalted or refined; it only
-confers on its sufficiently vulgar elements of exhibition
-a final unsurpassable form. The form is in <span class='it'>itself</span> as
-interesting, as active, as much of the essence of the
-subject as the idea, and yet so close is its fit and so
-inseparable its life that we catch it at no moment on
-any errand of its own. That verily is to <span class='it'>be</span> interesting—all
-round; that is to be genuine and whole. The
-work is a classic because the thing, such as it is, is
-ideally <span class='it'>done</span>, and because it shows that in such doing
-eternal beauty may dwell. A pretty young woman
-who lives, socially and morally speaking, in a hole, and
-who is ignorant, foolish, flimsy, unhappy, takes a pair
-of lovers by whom she is successively deserted; in the
-midst of the bewilderment of which, giving up her
-husband and her child, letting everything go, she sinks
-deeper into duplicity, debt, despair, and arrives on the
-spot, on the small scene itself of her poor depravities,
-at a pitiful tragic end. In especial she does these things
-while remaining absorbed in romantic intention and
-vision, and she remains absorbed in romantic intention
-and vision while fairly rolling in the dust. That is the
-triumph of the book as the triumph stands, that Emma
-interests us by the nature of her consciousness and the
-play of her mind, thanks to the reality and beauty
-with which those sources are invested. It is not only
-that they represent <span class='it'>her</span> state; they are so true, so
-observed and felt, and especially so shown, that they
-represent the state, actual or potential, of all persons
-like her, persons romantically determined. Then her
-setting, the medium in which she struggles, becomes in
-its way as important, becomes eminent with the
-eminence of art; the tiny world in which she revolves,
-the contracted cage in which she flutters, is hung out
-in space for her, and her companions in captivity there
-are as true as herself.</p>
-
-<p>I have said enough to show what I mean by Flaubert’s
-having in this picture expressed something of
-his intimate self, given his heroine something of his
-own imagination: a point precisely that brings me back
-to the restriction at which I just now hinted, in which
-M. Faguet fails to indulge and yet which is immediate
-for the alien reader. Our complaint is that Emma
-Bovary, in spite of the nature of her consciousness
-and in spite of her reflecting so much that of her
-creator, is really too small an affair. This, critically
-speaking, is in view both of the value and the fortune
-of her history, a wonderful circumstance. She associates
-herself with Frédéric Moreau in “L’Éducation”
-to suggest for us a question that can be answered, I
-hold, only to Flaubert’s detriment. Emma taken
-alone would possibly not so directly press it, but in
-her company the hero of our author’s second study of
-the “real” drives it home. Why did Flaubert choose,
-as special conduits of the life he proposed to depict,
-such inferior and in the case of Frédéric such abject
-human specimens? I insist only in respect to the latter,
-the perfection of Madame Bovary scarce leaving one
-much warrant for wishing anything other. Even here,
-however, the general scale and size of Emma, who is
-small even of her sort, should be a warning to hyperbole.
-If I say that in the matter of Frédéric at all events the
-answer is inevitably detrimental I mean that it weighs
-heavily on our author’s general credit. He wished in
-each case to make a picture of experience—middling
-experience, it is true—and of the world close to him;
-but if he imagined nothing better for his purpose than
-such a heroine and such a hero, both such limited reflectors
-and registers, we are forced to believe it to
-have been by a defect of his mind. And that sign of
-weakness remains even if it be objected that the images
-in question were addressed to his purpose better than
-others would have been: the purpose itself then shows
-as inferior. “L’Éducation Sentimentale” is a strange,
-an indescribable work, about which there would be
-many more things to say than I have space for, and
-all of them of the deepest interest. It is moreover, to
-simplify my statement, very much less satisfying a
-thing, less pleasing whether in its unity or its variety,
-than its specific predecessor. But take it as we will,
-for a success or a failure—M. Faguet indeed ranks it,
-by the measure of its quantity of intention, a failure,
-and I on the whole agree with him—the personage
-offered us as bearing the weight of the drama, and in
-whom we are invited to that extent to interest ourselves,
-leaves us mainly wondering what our entertainer could
-have been thinking of. He takes Frédéric Moreau on
-the threshold of life and conducts him to the extreme
-of maturity without apparently suspecting for a moment
-either our wonder or our protest—“Why, why
-him?” Frédéric is positively too poor for his part,
-too scant for his charge; and we feel with a kind of
-embarrassment, certainly with a kind of compassion,
-that it is somehow the business of a protagonist to
-prevent in his designer an excessive waste of faith.
-When I speak of the faith in Emma Bovary as proportionately
-wasted I reflect on M. Faguet’s judgment
-that she is from the point of view of deep interest
-richly or at least roundedly representative. Representative
-of what? he makes us ask even while granting
-all the grounds of misery and tragedy involved.
-The plea for her is the plea made for all the figures
-that live without evaporation under the painter’s hand—that
-they are not only particular persons but types
-of their kind, and as valid in one light as in the other.
-It is Emma’s “kind” that I question for this responsibility,
-even if it be inquired of me why I then fail to
-question that of Charles Bovary, in its perfection, or
-that of the inimitable, the immortal Homais. If we
-express Emma’s deficiency as the poverty of her consciousness
-for the typical function, it is certainly not,
-one must admit, that she is surpassed in this respect
-either by her platitudinous husband or by his friend
-the pretentious apothecary. The difference is none
-the less somehow in the fact that they are respectively
-studies but of their character and office, which function
-in each expresses adequately <span class='it'>all</span> they are. It may be,
-I concede, because Emma is the only woman in the
-book that she is taken by M. Faguet as <span class='it'>femininely</span>
-typical, typical in the larger illustrative way, whereas
-the others pass with him for images specifically conditioned.
-Emma is this same for myself, I plead; she
-is conditioned to such an excess of the specific, and the
-specific in her case leaves out so many even of the
-commoner elements of conceivable life in a woman
-when we are invited to see that life as pathetic, as
-dramatic agitation, that we challenge both the author’s
-and the critic’s scale of importances. The book is a
-picture of the middling as much as they like, but does
-Emma attain even to <span class='it'>that</span>? Hers is a narrow middling
-even for a little imaginative person whose “social”
-significance is small. It is greater on the whole than
-her capacity of consciousness, taking this all round;
-and so, in a word, we feel her less illustrational than she
-might have been not only if the world had offered her
-more points of contact, but if she had had more of
-these to give it.</p>
-
-<p>We meet Frédéric first, we remain with him long, as
-a <span class='it'>moyen</span>, a provincial bourgeois of the mid-century,
-educated and not without fortune, thereby with freedom,
-in whom the life of his day reflects itself. Yet
-the life of his day, on Flaubert’s showing, hangs together
-with the poverty of Frédéric’s own inward or
-for that matter outward life; so that, the whole thing
-being, for scale, intention and extension, a sort of epic
-of the usual (with the Revolution of 1848 introduced
-indeed as an episode,) it affects us as an epic without
-air, without wings to lift it; reminds us in fact more
-than anything else of a huge balloon, all of silk pieces
-strongly sewn together and patiently blown up, but
-that absolutely refuses to leave the ground. The discrimination
-I here make as against our author is, however,
-the only one inevitable in a series of remarks so
-brief. What it really represents—and nothing could
-be more curious—is that Frédéric enjoys his position
-not only without the aid of a single “sympathetic”
-character of consequence, but even without the aid of
-one with whom we can directly communicate. Can we
-communicate with the central personage? or would we
-really if we could? A hundred times no, and if he himself
-can communicate with the people shown us as
-surrounding him this only proves him of their kind.
-Flaubert on his “real” side was in truth an ironic
-painter, and ironic to a tune that makes his final accepted
-state, his present literary dignity and “classic”
-peace, superficially anomalous. There is an explanation
-to which I shall immediately come; but I find myself
-feeling for a moment longer in presence of “L’Éducation”
-how much more interesting a writer may be
-on occasion by the given failure than by the given
-success. Successes pure and simple disconnect and
-dismiss him; failures—though I admit they must be
-a bit qualified—keep him in touch and in relation.
-Thus it is that as the work of a “grand écrivain”
-“L’Éducation,” large, laboured, immensely “written,”
-with beautiful passages and a general emptiness, with
-a kind of leak in its stored sadness, moreover, by which
-its moral dignity escapes—thus it is that Flaubert’s
-ill-starred novel is a curiosity for a literary museum.
-Thus it is also that it suggests a hundred reflections,
-and suggests perhaps most of them directly to the intending
-labourer in the same field. If in short, as I
-have said, Flaubert is the novelist’s novelist, this performance
-does more than any other toward making
-him so.</p>
-
-<p>I have to add in the same connection that I had not
-lost sight of Madame Arnoux, the main ornament of
-“L’Éducation,” in pronouncing just above on its
-deficiency in the sympathetic. Madame Arnoux is
-exactly the author’s one marked attempt, here or elsewhere,
-to represent beauty otherwise than for the
-senses, beauty of character and life; and what becomes
-of the attempt is a matter highly significant. M.
-Faguet praises with justice his conception of the figure
-and of the relation, the relation that never bears fruit,
-that keeps Frédéric adoring her, through hindrance and
-change, from the beginning of life to the end; that
-keeps her, by the same constraint, forever immaculately
-“good,” from youth to age, though deeply
-moved and cruelly tempted and sorely tried. Her
-contacts with her adorer are not even frequent, in proportion
-to the field of time; her conditions of fortune,
-of association and occupation are almost sordid, and
-we see them with the march of the drama, such as it
-is, become more and more so; besides which—I again
-remember that M. Faguet excellently notes it—nothing
-in the nature of “parts” is attributed to her; not only
-is she not presented as clever, she is scarce invested
-with a character at all. Almost nothing that she says
-is repeated, almost nothing that she does is shown.
-She is an image none the less beautiful and vague, an
-image of passion cherished and abjured, renouncing
-all sustenance and yet persisting in life. Only she has
-for real distinction the extreme drawback that she is
-offered us quite preponderantly through Frédéric’s
-vision of her, that we see her practically in no other
-light. Now Flaubert unfortunately has not been able
-not so to discredit Frédéric’s vision in general, his
-vision of everyone and everything, and in particular of
-his own life, that it makes a medium good enough to
-convey adequately a noble impression. Madame Arnoux
-is of course ever so much the best thing in his
-life—which is saying little; but his life is made up of
-such queer material that we find ourselves displeased
-at her being “in” it on whatever terms; all the more
-that she seems scarcely to affect, improve or determine
-it. Her creator in short never had a more awkward
-idea than this attempt to give us the benefit of
-such a conception in such a way; and even though I
-have still something else to say about that I may as
-well speak of it at once as a mistake that gravely counts
-against him. It is but one of three, no doubt, in all his
-work; but I shall not, I trust, pass for extravagant if
-I call it the most indicative. What makes it so is its
-being the least superficial; the two others are, so to
-speak, intellectual, while this is somehow moral. It
-was a mistake, as I have already hinted, to propose
-to register in so mean a consciousness as that of such
-a hero so large and so mixed a quantity of life as “L’Éducation”
-clearly intends; and it was a mistake of the
-tragic sort that is a theme mainly for silence to have
-embarked on “Bouvard et Pécuchet” at all, not to
-have given it up sooner than be given up by it. But
-these were at the worst not wholly compromising
-blunders. What <span class='it'>was</span> compromising—and the great
-point is that it remained so, that nothing has an equal
-weight against it—is the unconsciousness of error in
-respect to the opportunity that would have counted
-as his finest. We feel not so much that Flaubert
-misses it, for that we could bear; but that he doesn’t
-<span class='it'>know</span> he misses it is what stamps the blunder. We do
-not pretend to say how he might have shown us Madame
-Arnoux better—that was his own affair. What
-is ours is that he really thought he was showing her
-as well as he could, or as she might be shown; at which
-we veil our face. For once that he had a conception
-quite apart, apart I mean from the array of his other
-conceptions and more delicate than any, he “went,”
-as we say, and spoiled it. Let me add in all tenderness,
-and to make up for possibly too much insistence,
-that it is the only stain on his shield; let me even confess
-that I should not wonder if, when all is said, it is
-a blemish no one has ever noticed.</p>
-
-<p>Perhaps no one has ever noticed either what was
-present to me just above as the partial makeweight
-there glanced at, the fact that in the midst of this
-general awkwardness, as I have called it, there is at
-the same time a danger so escaped as to entitle our
-author to full credit. I scarce know how to put it
-with little enough of the ungracious, but I think that
-even the true Flaubertist finds himself wondering a
-little that some flaw of taste, some small but unfortunate
-lapse by the way, <span class='it'>should</span> as a matter of fact
-not somehow or somewhere have waited on the demonstration
-of the platonic purity prevailing between
-this heroine and her hero—so far as we do find that
-image projected. It is alike difficult to indicate without
-offence or to ignore without unkindness a fond
-reader’s apprehension here of a possibility of the wrong
-touch, the just perceptibly false note. I would not
-have staked my life on Flaubert’s security of instinct
-in such a connection—as an absolutely fine and predetermined
-security; and yet in the event that felicity
-has settled, there is not so much as the lightest wrong
-breath (speaking of the matter in this light of tact and
-taste) or the shade of a crooked stroke. One exclaims
-at the end of the question “Dear old Flaubert after
-all—!” and perhaps so risks seeming to patronise for
-fear of not making a point. The point made for what
-it is worth, at any rate, I am the more free to recover
-the benefit of what I mean by critical “tenderness” in
-our general connection—expressing in it as I do our
-general respect, and my own particular, for our author’s
-method and process and history, and my sense
-of the luxury of such a sentiment at such a vulgar
-literary time. It is a respect positive and settled and
-the thing that has most to do with consecrating for
-us that loyalty to him as the novelist of the novelist—unlike
-as it is even the best feeling inspired by any
-other member of the craft. He may stand for our
-operative conscience or our vicarious sacrifice; animated
-by a sense of literary honour, attached to an
-ideal of perfection, incapable of lapsing in fine from
-a self-respect, that enable us to sit at ease, to surrender
-to the age, to indulge in whatever comparative
-meannesses (and no meanness in art is so mean as the
-sneaking economic,) we may find most comfortable or
-profitable. May it not in truth be said that we practise
-our industry, so many of us, at relatively little
-cost just <span class='it'>because</span> poor Flaubert, producing the most
-expensive fictions ever written, so handsomely paid for
-it? It is as if this put it in our power to produce cheap
-and thereby sell dear; as if, so expressing it, literary
-honour being by his example effectively secure for the
-firm at large and the general concern, on its whole
-esthetic side, floated once for all, we find our individual
-attention free for literary and esthetic indifference.
-All the while we thus lavish our indifference the spirit
-of the author of “Madame Bovary,” in the cross-light
-of the old room above the Seine, is trying to the last
-admiration for the thing itself. That production puts
-the matter into a nutshell: “Madame Bovary,” subject
-to whatever qualification, is absolutely the most
-literary of novels, so literary that it covers us with
-its mantle. It shows us once for all that there is no
-<span class='it'>intrinsic</span> call for a debasement of the type. The mantle
-I speak of is wrought with surpassing fineness, and we
-may always, under stress of whatever charge of illiteracy,
-frivolity, vulgarity, flaunt it as the flag of the guild.
-Let us therefore frankly concede that to surround
-Flaubert with our consideration is the least return
-we can make for such a privilege. The consideration
-moreover is idle unless it be real, unless it be intelligent
-enough to measure his effort and his success.
-Of the effort as mere effort I have already spoken, of
-the desperate difficulty involved for him in making his
-form square with his conception; and I by no means
-attach general importance to these secrets of the workshop,
-which are but as the contortions of the fastidious
-muse who is the servant of the oracle. They are really
-rather secrets of the kitchen and contortions of the
-priestess of <span class='it'>that</span> tripod—they are not an upstairs
-matter. It is of their specially distinctive importance
-I am now speaking, of the light shed on them by the
-results before us.</p>
-
-<p>They all represent the pursuit of a style, of the
-ideally right one for its relations, and would still be interesting
-if the style had not been achieved. “Madame
-Bovary,” “Salammbô,” “Saint-Antoine,” “L’Éducation”
-are so written and so composed (though the last-named
-in a minor degree) that the more we look at
-them the more we find in them, under this head, a beauty
-of intention and of effect; the more they figure in the
-too often dreary desert of fictional prose a class by
-themselves and a little living oasis. So far as that
-desert is of the complexion of our own English speech
-it supplies with remarkable rarity this particular source
-of refreshment. So strikingly is that the case, so scant
-for the most part any dream of a scheme of beauty in
-these connections, that a critic betrayed at artless moments
-into a plea for composition may find himself as
-blankly met as if his plea were for trigonometry. He
-makes inevitably his reflections, which are numerous
-enough; one of them being that if we turn our back so
-squarely, so universally to this order of considerations
-it is because the novel is so preponderantly cultivated
-among us by women, in other words by a sex ever
-gracefully, comfortably, enviably unconscious (it would
-be too much to call them even suspicious,) of the
-requirements of form. The case is at any rate sharply
-enough made for us, or against us, by the circumstance
-that women are held to have achieved on all
-our ground, in spite of this weakness and others, as
-great results as any. The judgment is undoubtedly
-founded: Jane Austen was instinctive and charming,
-and the other recognitions—even over the heads of
-the ladies, some of them, from Fielding to Pater—are
-obvious; without, however, in the least touching my
-contention. For signal examples of what composition,
-distribution, arrangement can do, of how they intensify
-the life of a work of art, we have to go elsewhere; and
-the value of Flaubert for us is that he admirably
-points the moral. This is the explanation of the
-“classic” fortune of “Madame Bovary” in especial,
-though I may add that also of Hérodias and Saint-Julien
-l’Hospitalier in the “Trois Contes,” as well as
-an aspect of these works endlessly suggestive. I spoke
-just now of the small field of the picture in the longest
-of them, the small capacity, as I called it, of the vessel;
-yet the way the thing is done not only triumphs
-over the question of value but in respect to it fairly
-misleads and confounds us. Where else shall we find
-in anything proportionately so small such an air of
-dignity of size? Flaubert <span class='it'>made</span> things big—it was his
-way, his ambition and his necessity; and I say this
-while remembering that in “L’Éducation” (in proportion
-I mean again,) the effect has not been produced.
-The subject of “L’Éducation” is in spite of Frédéric
-large, but an indefinable shrinkage has overtaken it
-in the execution. The exception so marked, however,
-is single; “Salammbô” and “Saint-Antoine” are both
-at once very “heavy” conceptions and very consistently
-and splendidly high applications of a manner.</p>
-
-<p>It is in this assured manner that the lesson sits aloft,
-that the spell for the critical reader resides; and if
-the conviction under which Flaubert labours is more
-and more grossly discredited among us his compact
-mass is but the greater. He regarded the work of art
-as <span class='it'>existing</span> but by its expression, and defied us to name
-any other measure of its life that is not a stultification.
-He held style to be accordingly an indefeasible part of
-it, and found beauty, interest and distinction as dependent
-on it for emergence as a letter committed to
-the post-office is dependent on an addressed envelope.
-Strange enough it may well appear to us to have to
-apologise for such notions as eccentric. There are
-persons who consider that style comes of itself—we see
-and hear at present, I think, enough of them; and to
-whom he would doubtless have remarked that it goes,
-of itself, still faster. The thing naturally differs in
-fact with the nature of the imagination; the question
-is one of proprieties and affinities, sympathy and proportion.
-The sympathy of the author of “Salammbô”
-was all with the magnificent, his imagination for the
-phrase as variously noble or ignoble in itself, contribute
-or destructive, adapted and harmonious or casual
-and common. The worse among such possibilities have
-been multiplied by the infection of bad writing, and he
-denied that the better ever do anything so obliging as
-to come of themselves. They scarcely indeed for
-Flaubert “came” at all; their arrival was determined
-only by fasting and prayer or by patience of pursuit,
-the arts of the chase, long waits and watches, figuratively
-speaking, among the peaks or by the waters.
-The production of a book was of course made inordinately
-slow by the fatigue of these measures; in illustration
-of which his letters often record that it has
-taken him three days<a id='r3'/><a href='#f3' style='text-decoration:none'><sup><span style='font-size:0.9em'>[3]</span></sup></a> to arrive at one right sentence,
-tested by the pitch of his ideal of the right for the suggestion
-aimed at. His difficulties drew from the author,
-as I have mentioned, much resounding complaint;
-but those voices have ceased to trouble us and the
-final voice remains. No feature of the whole business
-is more edifying than the fact that he in the first place
-never misses style and in the second never appears
-to have beaten about for it. That betrayal is of course
-the worst betrayal of all, and I think the way he has
-escaped it the happiest form of the peace that has
-finally visited him. It was truly a wonderful success
-to be so the devotee of the phrase and yet never its
-victim. Fine as he inveterately desired it should be
-he still never lost sight of the question Fine for what?
-It is always so related and associated, so properly part
-of something else that is in turn part of something
-other, part of a reference, a tone, a passage, a page,
-that the simple may enjoy it for its least bearing and
-the initiated for its greatest. That surely is to be a
-writer of the first order, to resemble when in the hand
-and however closely viewed a shapely crystal box,
-and yet to be seen when placed on the table and opened
-to contain innumerable compartments, springs and
-tricks. One is ornamental either way, but one is in
-the second way precious too.</p>
-
-<p>The crystal box then figures the style of “Salammbô”
-and “Saint-Antoine” in a greater degree than that of
-“Bovary,” because, as the two former express the
-writer’s romantic side, he had in them, while equally
-covering his tracks, still further to fare and still more
-to hunt. Beyond this allusion to their completing his
-duality I shall not attempt closely to characterise
-them; though I admit that in not insisting on them I
-press most lightly on the scale into which he had in his
-own view cast his greatest pressure. He lamented the
-doom that drove him so oddly, so ruefully, to choose
-his subjects, but he lamented it least when these subjects
-were most pompous and most exotic, feeling as
-he did that they had then after all most affinity with
-his special eloquence. In dealing with the near, the
-directly perceived, he had to keep down his tone, to
-make the eloquence small; though with the consequence,
-as we have seen, that in spite of such precautions the
-whole thing mostly insists on being ample. The
-familiar, that is, under his touch, took on character,
-importance, extension, one scarce knows what to call
-it, in order to carry the style or perhaps rather, as we
-may say, sit with proper ease in the vehicle, and there
-was accordingly a limit to its smallness; whereas in
-the romantic books, the preferred world of Flaubert’s
-imagination, there was practically no need of compromise.
-The compromise gave him throughout endless
-trouble, and nothing would be more to the point
-than to show, had I space, why in particular it distressed
-him. It was obviously his strange predicament
-that the only spectacle open to him by experience and
-direct knowledge was the bourgeois, which on that
-ground imposed on him successively his three so intensely
-bourgeois themes. He was obliged to treat
-these themes, which he hated, because his experience
-left him no alternative; his only alternative was given
-by history, geography, philosophy, fancy, the world of
-erudition and of imagination, the world especially of
-this last. In the bourgeois sphere his ideal of expression
-laboured under protest; in the other, the imagined,
-the projected, his need for facts, for matter, and his
-pursuit of them, sat no less heavily. But as his style
-all the while required a certain exercise of pride he
-was on the whole more at home in the exotic than in
-the familiar; he escaped above all in the former connection
-the associations, the disparities he detested.
-He could be frankly noble in “Salammbô” and “Saint-Antoine,”
-whereas in “Bovary” and “L’Éducation”
-he could be but circuitously and insidiously so. He
-could in the one case cut his coat according to his
-cloth—if we mean by his cloth his predetermined tone,
-while in the other he had to take it already cut. Singular
-enough in his life the situation so constituted:
-the comparatively meagre human consciousness—for
-we must come back to that in him—struggling with the
-absolutely large artistic; and the large artistic half
-wreaking itself on the meagre human and half seeking
-a refuge from it, as well as a revenge against it, in something
-quite different.</p>
-
-<p>Flaubert had in fact command of two refuges which
-he worked in turn. The first of these was the attitude
-of irony, so constant in him that “L’Éducation”
-bristles and hardens with it and “Bouvard et Pécuchet”—strangest
-of “poetic” justices—is made as
-dry as sand and as heavy as lead; the second only was,
-by processes, by journeys the most expensive, to get
-away altogether. And we inevitably ask ourselves
-whether, eschewing the policy of flight, he might not
-after all have fought out his case a little more on the
-spot. Might he not have addressed himself to the
-human still otherwise than in “L’Éducation” and in
-“Bouvard”? When one thinks of the view of the life
-of his country, of the vast French community and its
-constituent creatures, offered in these productions, one
-declines to believe it could make up the <span class='it'>whole</span> vision
-of a man of his quality. Or when all was said and done
-was he absolutely and exclusively condemned to irony?
-The second refuge I speak of, the getting away from
-the human, the congruously and measurably human,
-altogether, perhaps becomes in the light of this possibility
-but an irony the more. Carthage and the
-Thebaid, Salammbô, Spendius, Matho, Hannon, Saint
-Anthony, Hilarion, the Paternians, the Marcosians
-and the Carpocratians, what are all these, inviting because
-queer, but a confession of supreme impatience
-with the actual and the near, often queer enough too,
-no doubt, but not consolingly, not transcendently?
-Last remains the question whether, even if our author’s
-immediate as distinguished from his remote view had
-had more reach, the particular gift we claim for him,
-the perfection of arrangement and form, would have
-had in certain directions the acquired flexibility.
-States of mind, states of soul, of the simpler kind, the
-kinds supposable in the Emma Bovarys, the Frédérics,
-the Bouvards and the Pécuchets, to say nothing of
-the Carthaginians and the Eremites—for Flaubert’s
-eremites are eminently artless—these conditions represent,
-I think, his proved psychological range. And
-that throws us back remarkably, almost confoundingly,
-upon another face of the general anomaly. The “gift”
-was of the greatest, a force in itself, in virtue of which
-he is a consummate writer; and yet there are whole
-sides of life to which it was never addressed and which
-it apparently quite failed to suspect as a field of exercise.
-If he never approached the complicated character
-in man or woman—Emma Bovary is not the least
-little bit complicated—or the really furnished, the finely
-civilised, was this because, surprisingly, he could not?
-<span class='it'>L’âme française</span> at all events shows in him but ill.</p>
-
-<p>This undoubtedly marks a limit, but limits are for
-the critic familiar country, and he may mostly well
-feel the prospect wide enough when he finds something
-positively well enough done. By disposition or by
-obligation Flaubert selected, and though his selection
-was in some respects narrow he stops not too short
-to have left us three really “cast” works and a fourth
-of several perfect parts, to say nothing of the element
-of perfection, of the superlative for the size, in his
-three <span class='it'>nouvelles</span>. What he attempted he attempted in
-a spirit that gives an extension to the idea of the
-achievable and the achieved in a literary thing, and
-it is by this that we contentedly gauge the matter.
-As success goes in this world of the approximate it
-may pass for success of the greatest. If I am unable
-to pursue the proof of my remark in “Salammbô” and
-“Saint-Antoine” it is because I have also had to
-select and have found the questions connected with
-their two companions more interesting. There are
-numerous judges, I hasten to mention, who, showing
-the opposite preference, lose themselves with rapture
-in the strange bristling archæological picture—yet all
-amazingly vivified and co-ordinated—of the Carthaginian
-mercenaries in revolt and the sacred veil of the
-great goddess profaned and stolen; as well in the still
-more peopled panorama of the ancient sects, superstitions
-and mythologies that swim in the desert before
-the fevered eyes of the Saint. One may be able, however,
-at once to breathe more freely in “Bovary”
-than in “Salammbô” and yet to hope that there is no
-intention of the latter that one has missed. The
-great intention certainly, and little as we may be
-sweetly beguiled, holds us fast; which is simply the
-author’s indomitable purpose of fully pervading his
-field. There are countries beyond the sea in which
-tracts are allowed to settlers on condition that they
-will really, not nominally, cultivate them. Flaubert
-is on his romantic ground like one of these settlers; he
-makes good with all his might his title to his tract, and
-in a way that shows how it is not only for him a question
-of safety but a question of honour. Honour demands
-that he shall set up his home and his faith there
-in such a way that every inch of the surface be planted
-or paved. He would have been ashamed merely to
-encamp and, after the fashion of most other adventurers,
-knock up a log hut among charred stumps.
-This was not what would have been for him taking
-artistic possession, it was not what would have been
-for him even personal honour, let alone literary; and
-yet the general lapse from integrity was a thing that,
-wherever he looked, he saw not only condoned but acclaimed
-and rewarded. He lived, as he felt, in an age
-of mean production and cheap criticism, the practical
-upshot of which took on for him a name that was
-often on his lips. He called it the hatred of literature,
-a hatred in the midst of which, the most literary of
-men, he found himself appointed to suffer. I may not,
-however, follow him in that direction—which would
-take us far; and the less that he was for himself after
-all, in spite of groans and imprecations, a man of resources
-and remedies, and that there was always his
-possibility of building himself in.</p>
-
-<p>This he did equally in all his books—built himself
-into literature by means of a material put together
-with extraordinary art; but it leads me again to the
-question of what such a stiff ideal imposed on him for
-the element of exactitude. This element, in the romantic,
-was his merciless law; it was perhaps even in
-the romantic that—if there could indeed be degrees
-for him in such matters—he most despised the loose
-and the more-or-less. To be intensely definite and
-perfectly positive, to know so well what he meant
-that he could at every point strikingly and conclusively
-verify it, was the first of his needs; and if in addition
-to being thus synthetically final he could be
-strange and sad and terrible, and leave the cause of
-these effects inscrutable, success then had for him its
-highest savour. We feel the inscrutability in those
-memorable few words that put before us Frédéric
-Moreau’s start upon his vain course of travel, “Il
-connût alors la mélancholie des paquebots;” an image
-to the last degree comprehensive and embracing, but
-which haunts us, in its droll pathos, without our quite
-knowing why. But he was really never so pleased as
-when he could be both rare and precise about the
-dreadful. His own sense of all this, as I have already
-indicated, was that beauty comes with expression, that
-expression is creation, that it <span class='it'>makes</span> the reality, and
-only in the degree in which it <span class='it'>is</span>, exquisitely, expression;
-and that we move in literature through a world
-of different values and relations, a blest world in which
-we know nothing except by style, but in which also
-everything is saved by it, and in which the image is
-thus always superior to the thing itself. This quest
-and multiplication of the image, the image tested and
-warranted and consecrated for the occasion, was accordingly
-his high elegance, to which he too much sacrificed
-and to which “Salammbô” and partly “Saint-Antoine”
-are monstrous monuments. Old cruelties
-and perversities, old wonders and errors and terrors,
-endlessly appealed to him; they constitute the unhuman
-side of his work, and if we have not the bribe of curiosity,
-of a lively interest in method, or rather in evocation
-just <span class='it'>as</span> evocation, we tread our way among them,
-especially in “Salammbô,” with a reserve too dry for
-our pleasure. To my own view the curiosity and the
-literary interest are equal in dealing with the non-romantic
-books, and the world presented, the aspects
-and agents, are less deterrent and more amenable
-both to our own social and expressional terms. Style
-itself moreover, with all respect to Flaubert, never
-<span class='it'>totally</span> beguiles; since even when we are so queerly
-constituted as to be ninety-nine parts literary we are
-still a hundredth part something else. This hundredth
-part may, once we possess the book—or the book possesses
-us—make us imperfect as readers, and yet without
-it should we want or get the book at all? The curiosity
-at any rate, to repeat, is even greatest for me in “Madame
-Bovary,” say, for here I can measure, can more
-directly appreciate, the terms. The aspects and impressions
-being of an experience conceivable to me I
-am more touched by the beauty; my interest gets
-more of the benefit of the beauty even though this be
-not intrinsically greater. Which brings back our appreciation
-inevitably at last to the question of our
-author’s lucidity.</p>
-
-<p>I have sufficiently remarked that I speak from the
-point of view of his interest to a reader of his own craft,
-the point of view of his extraordinary technical wealth—though
-indeed when I think of the general power of
-“Madame Bovary” I find myself desiring not to narrow
-the ground of the lesson, not to connect the lesson,
-to its prejudice, with that idea of the “technical,”
-that question of the way a thing is done, so abhorrent,
-as a call upon attention, in whatever art, to the wondrous
-Anglo-Saxon mind. Without proposing Flaubert
-as the type of the newspaper novelist, or as an
-easy alternative to golf or the bicycle, we should do
-him less than justice in failing to insist that a masterpiece
-like “Madame Bovary” may benefit even with
-the simple-minded by the way it has been done. It
-derives from its firm roundness that sign of all rare
-works that there is something in it for every one. It
-may be read ever so attentively, ever so freely, without
-a suspicion of how it is written, to say nothing of
-put together; it may equally be read under the excitement
-of these perceptions alone, one of the greatest
-known to the reader who is fully open to them. Both
-readers will have been transported, which is all any
-can ask. Leaving the first of them, however that may
-be, to state the case for himself, I state it yet again for
-the second, if only on this final ground. The book and
-its companions represent for us a practical solution,
-Flaubert’s own troubled but settled one, of the eternal
-dilemma of the painter of life. From the moment
-this rash adventurer deals with his mysterious matter
-at all directly his desire is not to deal with it stintedly.
-It at the same time remains true that from the moment
-he desires to produce forms in which it shall be preserved,
-he desires that these forms, things of <span class='it'>his</span> creation,
-shall not be, as testifying to his way with them,
-weak or ignoble. He must make them complete and
-beautiful, of satisfactory production, intrinsically interesting,
-under peril of disgrace with those who know.
-Those who don’t know of course don’t count for him,
-and it neither helps nor hinders him to say that every
-one knows about life. Every one does not—it is distinctly
-the case of the few; and if it were in fact the
-case of the many the knowledge still might exist, on
-the evidence around us, even in an age of unprecedented
-printing, without attesting itself by a multiplication of
-masterpieces. The question for the artist can only be
-of doing the artistic utmost, and thereby of <span class='it'>seeing</span> the
-general task. When it is seen with the intensity with
-which it presented itself to Flaubert a lifetime is none
-too much for fairly tackling it. It must either be left
-alone or be dealt with, and to leave it alone is a comparatively
-simple matter.</p>
-
-<p>To deal with it is on the other hand to produce a
-certain number of finished works; there being no other
-known method; and the quantity of life depicted will
-depend on this array. What will this array, however,
-depend on, and what will condition the number of pieces
-of which it is composed? The “finish,” evidently,
-that the formula so glibly postulates and for which the
-novelist is thus so handsomely responsible. He has
-on the one side to feel his subject and on the other side
-to render it, and there are undoubtedly two ways in
-which his situation may be expressed, especially perhaps
-by himself. The more he feels his subject the
-more he <span class='it'>can</span> render it—that is the first way. The more
-he renders it the more he <span class='it'>can</span> feel it—that is the second
-way. This second way was unmistakeably Flaubert’s,
-and if the result of it for him was a bar to abundant
-production he could only accept such an incident as
-part of the game. He probably for that matter would
-have challenged any easy definition of “abundance,”
-contested the application of it to the repetition, however
-frequent, of the thing not “done.” What but the
-“doing” makes the thing, he would have asked, and
-how can a positive result from a mere iteration of
-negatives, or wealth proceed from the simple addition
-of so many instances of penury? We should here, in
-closer communion with him, have got into his highly
-characteristic and suggestive view of the fertilisation
-of subject by form, penetration of the sense, ever, by
-the expression—the latter reacting creatively on the
-former; a conviction in the light of which he appears
-to have wrought with real consistency and which
-borrows from him thus its high measure of credit. It
-would undoubtedly have suffered if his books had been
-things of a loose logic, whereas we refer to it not only
-without shame but with an encouraged confidence by
-their showing of a logic so close. Let the phrase, the
-form that the whole is at the given moment staked on,
-be beautiful and related, and the rest will take care of
-itself—such is a rough indication of Flaubert’s faith;
-which has the importance that it was a faith sincere,
-active and inspiring. I hasten to add indeed that we
-must most of all remember how in these matters everything
-hangs on definitions. The “beautiful,” with
-our author, covered for the phrase a great deal of
-ground, and when every sort of propriety had been
-gathered in under it and every relation, in a complexity
-of such, protected, the idea itself, the presiding thought,
-ended surely by being pretty well provided for.</p>
-
-<p>These, however, are subordinate notes, and the plain
-question, in the connection I have touched upon, is of
-whether we would really wish him to have written
-more books, say either of the type of “Bovary” or of
-the type of “Salammbô,” and not have written them
-so well. When the production of a great artist who has
-lived a length of years has been small there is always
-the regret; but there is seldom, any more than here,
-the conceivable remedy. For the case is doubtless
-predetermined by the particular kind of great artist a
-writer happens to be, and this even if when we come to
-the conflict, to the historic case, deliberation and delay
-may not all have been imposed by temperament. The
-admirable George Sand, Flaubert’s beneficent friend
-and correspondent, is exactly the happiest example
-we could find of the genius constitutionally incapable
-of worry, the genius for whom style “came,” for whom
-the sought effect was ever quickly and easily struck off,
-the book freely and swiftly written, and who consequently
-is represented for us by upwards of ninety
-volumes. If the comparison were with this lady’s
-great contemporary the elder Dumas the disparity
-would be quadrupled, but that ambiguous genius,
-somehow never really caught by us in the <span class='it'>fact</span> of composition,
-is out of our concern here: the issue is of those
-developments of expression which involve a style,
-and as Dumas never so much as once grazed one in
-all his long career, there was not even enough of that
-grace in him for a fillip of the finger-nail. Flaubert is
-at any rate represented by six books, so that he may on
-that estimate figure as poor, while Madame Sand,
-falling so little short of a hundred, figures as rich;
-and yet the fact remains that I can refer the congenial
-mind to him with confidence and can do nothing of
-the sort for it in respect to Madame Sand. She is
-loose and liquid and iridescent, as iridescent as we may
-undertake to find her; but I can imagine compositions
-quite without virtue—the virtue I mean, of sticking
-together—begotten by the impulse to emulate her.
-She had undoubtedly herself the benefit of her facility,
-but are we not left wondering to what extent <span class='it'>we</span> have
-it? There is too little in her, by the literary connection,
-for the critical mind, weary of much wandering, to
-rest upon. Flaubert himself wandered, wandered far,
-went much roundabout and sometimes lost himself
-by the way, but how handsomely he provided for our
-present repose! He found the French language inconceivably
-difficult to write with elegance and was confronted
-with the equal truths that elegance is the last
-thing that languages, even as they most mature, seem
-to concern themselves with, and that at the same time
-taste, asserting rights, insists on it, to the effect of
-showing us in a boundless circumjacent waste of effort
-what the absence of it may mean. He saw the less of
-this desert of death come back to that—that everything
-at all saved from it for us since the beginning
-had been saved by a soul of elegance within, or in
-other words by the last refinement of selection, by the
-indifference on the part of the very idiom, huge quite
-other than “composing” agent, to the individual pretension.
-Recognising thus that to carry through the
-individual pretension is at the best a battle, he adored
-a hard surface and detested a soft one—much more a
-muddled; regarded a style without rhythm and harmony
-as in a work of pretended beauty no style at all.
-He considered that the failure of complete expression
-so registered made of the work of pretended beauty a
-work of achieved barbarity. It would take us far to
-glance even at his fewest discriminations; but rhythm
-and harmony were for example most menaced in his
-scheme by repetition—when repetition had not a
-positive grace; and were above all most at the mercy
-of the bristling particles of which our modern tongues
-are mainly composed and which make of the desired
-surface a texture pricked through, from beneath, even
-to destruction, as by innumerable thorns.</p>
-
-<p>On these lines production was of course slow work for
-him—especially as he met the difficulty, met it with
-an inveteracy which shows how it <span class='it'>can</span> be met; and full
-of interest for readers of English speech is the reflection
-he causes us to make as to the possibility of success
-at all comparable among ourselves. I have spoken
-of his groans and imprecations, his interminable waits
-and deep despairs; but what would these things have
-been, what would have become of him and what of his
-wrought residuum, had he been condemned to deal
-with a form of speech consisting, like ours, as to one
-part, of “that” and “which”; as to a second part, of
-the blest “it,” which an English sentence may repeat
-in three or four opposed references without in the least
-losing caste; as to a third face of all the “tos” of the
-infinitive and the preposition; as to a fourth of our precious
-auxiliaries “be” and “do”; and as to a fifth, of
-whatever survives in the language for the precious art
-of pleasing? Whether or no the fact that the painter
-of “life” among us has to contend with a medium intrinsically
-indocile, on certain sides, like our own,
-whether this drawback accounts for his having failed,
-in our time, to treat us, arrested and charmed, to a
-single case of crowned classicism, there is at any rate
-no doubt that we in some degree owe Flaubert’s counter-weight
-for that deficiency to <span class='it'>his</span> having, on his own
-ground, more happily triumphed. By which I do not
-mean that “Madame Bovary” is a classic because the
-“thats,” the “its” and the “tos” are made to march
-as Orpheus and his lute made the beasts, but because
-the element of order and harmony works as a symbol of
-everything else that is preserved for us by the history
-of the book. The history of the book remains the
-lesson and the important, the delightful thing, remains
-above all the drama that moves slowly to its climax.
-It is what we come back to for the sake of what it shows
-us. We see—from the present to the past indeed,
-never alas from the present to the future—how a classic
-almost inveterately grows. Unimportant, unnoticed,
-or, so far as noticed, contested, unrelated, alien, it
-has a cradle round which the fairies but scantly flock
-and is waited on in general by scarce a hint of significance.
-The significance comes by a process slow
-and small, the fact only that one perceptive private
-reader after another discovers at his convenience that
-the book is rare. The addition of the perceptive
-private readers is no quick affair, and would doubtless
-be a vain one did they not—while plenty of other much
-more remarkable books come and go—accumulate and
-count. They count by their quality and continuity of
-attention; so they have gathered for “Madame Bovary,”
-and so they are held. That is really once more
-the great circumstance. It is always in order for us
-to feel yet again what it is we are held by. Such is
-my reason, definitely, for speaking of Flaubert as the
-novelist’s novelist. Are we not moreover—and let it
-pass this time as a happy hope!—pretty well all novelists
-now?</p>
-
-<hr class='footnotemark'/>
-
-<table style='margin:0 4em 0 0;' summary='footnote_2'>
-<colgroup>
-<col span='1' style='width: 3em;'/>
-<col span='1'/>
-</colgroup>
-<tr><td style='vertical-align:top;'>
-<div id='f2'><a href='#r2'>[2]</a></div>
-</td><td>
-
-<p>On the occasion of these prefatory remarks to a translation of “Madame
-Bovary,” appearing in A Century of French Romance, under the auspices
-of Mr. Edmund Gosse and Mr. William Heinemann, in 1902.</p>
-
-</td></tr>
-</table>
-
-<table style='margin:0 4em 0 0;' summary='footnote_3'>
-<colgroup>
-<col span='1' style='width: 3em;'/>
-<col span='1'/>
-</colgroup>
-<tr><td style='vertical-align:top;'>
-<div id='f3'><a href='#r3'>[3]</a></div>
-</td><td>
-
-<p>It was true, delightfully true, that, extravagance in this province of his
-life, though apparently in no other, being Flaubert’s necessity and law, he
-deliberated and hung fire, wrestled, retreated and returned, indulged generally
-in a tragi-comedy of waste; which I recall a charming expression of
-on the lips of Edmond de Goncourt, who quite recognised the heroic legend,
-but prettily qualified it: “Il faut vous dire qu’il y avait là-dedans beaucoup
-de coucheries et d’école buissonière.” And he related how on the occasion
-of a stay with his friend under the roof of the Princess Mathilde, the
-friend, missed during the middle hours of a fine afternoon, was found to
-have undressed himself and gone to bed to think!</p>
-
-</td></tr>
-</table>
-
-<div><span class='pagenum'><a name='Page_109' id='Page_109'>109</a></span><h1 id='t3835'>HONORÉ DE BALZAC<br/>1902</h1></div>
-
-<h2 class='nobreak' id='t3838'>I</h2>
-
-<p>Stronger than ever, even than under the spell of first
-acquaintance and of the early time, is the sense—thanks
-to a renewal of intimacy and, I am tempted to say, of
-loyalty—that Balzac stands signally apart, that he is
-the first and foremost member of his craft, and that
-above all the Balzac-lover is in no position till he has
-cleared the ground by saying so. The Balzac-lover
-alone, for that matter, is worthy to have his word on
-so happy an occasion as this<a id='r4'/><a href='#f4' style='text-decoration:none'><sup><span style='font-size:0.9em'>[4]</span></sup></a> about the author of “La
-Comédie Humaine,” and it is indeed not easy to see
-how the amount of attention so inevitably induced
-could at the worst have failed to find itself turning to
-an act of homage. I have been deeply affected, to
-be frank, by the mere refreshment of memory, which
-has brought in its train moreover consequences critical
-and sentimental too numerous to figure here in their
-completeness. The authors and the books that have,
-as we say, done something for us, become part of the
-answer to our curiosity when our curiosity had the
-freshness of youth, these particular agents exist for
-us, with the lapse of time, as the substance itself of
-knowledge: they have been intellectually so swallowed,
-digested and assimilated that we take their general
-use and suggestion for granted, cease to be aware of
-them because they have passed out of sight. But
-they have passed out of sight simply by having passed
-into our lives. They have become a part of our personal
-history, a part of ourselves, very often, so far
-as we may have succeeded in best expressing ourselves.
-Endless, however, are the uses of great persons
-and great things, and it may easily happen in
-these cases that the connection, even as an “excitement”—the
-form mainly of the connections of youth—is
-never really broken. We have largely been living
-on our benefactor—which is the highest acknowledgment
-one can make; only, thanks to a blest law that
-operates in the long run to rekindle excitement, we are
-accessible to the sense of having neglected him. Even
-when we may not constantly have read him over the
-neglect is quite an illusion, but the illusion perhaps
-prepares us for the finest emotion we are to have owed
-to the acquaintance. Without having abandoned or
-denied our author we yet come expressly back to him,
-and if not quite in tatters and in penitence like the
-Prodigal Son, with something at all events of the tenderness
-with which we revert to the parental threshold
-and hearthstone, if not, more fortunately, to the
-parental presence. The beauty of this adventure,
-that of seeing the dust blown off a relation that had
-been put away as on a shelf, almost out of reach, at
-the back of one’s mind, consists in finding the precious
-object not only fresh and intact, but with its firm
-lacquer still further figured, gilded and enriched. It
-is all overscored with traces and impressions—vivid,
-definite, almost as valuable as itself—of the recognitions
-and agitations it originally produced in us. Our
-old—that is our young—feelings are very nearly what
-page after page most gives us. The case has become
-a case of authority <span class='it'>plus</span> association. If Balzac in
-himself is indubitably wanting in the sufficiently common
-felicity we know as charm, it is this association
-that may on occasion contribute the grace.</p>
-
-<p>The impression then, confirmed and brightened, is of
-the mass and weight of the figure and of the extent
-of ground it occupies; a tract on which we might all
-of us together quite pitch our little tents, open our
-little booths, deal in our little wares, and not materially
-either diminish the area or impede the circulation of
-the occupant. I seem to see him in such an image
-moving about as Gulliver among the pigmies, and not
-less good-natured than Gulliver for the exercise of
-any function, without exception, that can illustrate
-his larger life. The first and the last word about the
-author of “Les Contes Drolatiques” is that of all
-novelists he is the most serious—by which I am far
-from meaning that in the human comedy as he shows
-it the comic is an absent quantity. His sense of the
-comic was on the scale of his extraordinary senses in
-general, though his expression of it suffers perhaps
-exceptionally from that odd want of elbow-room—the
-penalty somehow of his close-packed, pressed-down
-contents—which reminds us of some designedly beautiful
-thing but half-disengaged from the clay or the
-marble. It is the scheme and the scope that are
-supreme in him, applying this moreover not to mere
-great intention, but to the concrete form, the proved
-case, in which we possess them. We most of us aspire
-to achieve at the best but a patch here and there, to
-pluck a sprig or a single branch, to break ground in a
-corner of the great garden of life. Balzac’s plan was
-simply to do everything that could be done. He
-proposed to himself to “turn over” the great garden
-from north to south and from east to west; a task—immense,
-heroic, to this day immeasurable—that he
-bequeathed us the partial performance of, a prodigious
-ragged clod, in the twenty monstrous years representing
-his productive career, years of concentration
-and sacrifice the vision of which still makes us ache.
-He had indeed a striking good fortune, the only one
-he was to enjoy as an harassed and exasperated worker:
-the great garden of life presented itself to him absolutely
-and exactly in the guise of the great garden of
-France, a subject vast and comprehensive enough, yet
-with definite edges and corners. This identity of his
-universal with his local and national vision is the
-particular thing we should doubtless call his greatest
-strength were we preparing agreeably to speak of it
-also as his visible weakness. Of Balzac’s weaknesses,
-however, it takes some assurance to talk; there is
-always plenty of time for them; they are the last
-signs we know him by—such things truly as in other
-painters of manners often come under the head of
-mere exuberance of energy. So little in short do they
-earn the invidious name even when we feel them as
-defects.</p>
-
-<p>What he did above all was to read the universe, as
-hard and as loud as he could, <span class='it'>into</span> the France of his
-time; his own eyes regarding his work as at once the
-drama of man and a mirror of the mass of social phenomena
-the most rounded and registered, most organised
-and administered, and thereby most exposed
-to systematic observation and portrayal, that the
-world had seen. There are happily other interesting
-societies, but these are for schemes of such an order
-comparatively loose and incoherent, with more extent
-and perhaps more variety, but with less of the great
-enclosed and exhibited quality, less neatness and
-sharpness of arrangement, fewer categories, sub-divisions,
-juxtapositions. Balzac’s France was both
-inspiring enough for an immense prose epic and reducible
-enough for a report or a chart. To allow his
-achievement all its dignity we should doubtless say
-also treatable enough for a history, since it was as a
-patient historian, a Benedictine of the actual, the
-living painter of his living time, that he regarded himself
-and handled his material. All painters of manners
-and fashions, if we will, are historians, even when they
-least don the uniform: Fielding, Dickens, Thackeray,
-George Eliot, Hawthorne among ourselves. But the
-great difference between the great Frenchman and
-the eminent others is that, with an imagination of
-the highest power, an unequalled intensity of vision, he
-saw his subject in the light of science as well, in the
-light of the bearing of all its parts on each other, and
-under pressure of a passion for exactitude, an appetite,
-the appetite of an ogre, for <span class='it'>all</span> the kinds of facts.
-We find I think in the union here suggested something
-like the truth about his genius, the nearest approach
-to a final account of him. Of imagination on one side
-all compact, he was on the other an insatiable reporter
-of the immediate, the material, the current combination,
-and perpetually moved by the historian’s impulse
-to fix, preserve and explain them. One asks one’s self
-as one reads him what concern the poet has with so
-much arithmetic and so much criticism, so many
-statistics and documents, what concern the critic and
-the economist have with so many passions, characters
-and adventures. The contradiction is always before
-us; it springs from the inordinate scale of the author’s
-two faces; it explains more than anything else his eccentricities
-and difficulties. It accounts for his want of
-grace, his want of the lightness associated with an
-amusing literary form, his bristling surface, his closeness
-of texture, so rough with richness, yet so productive
-of the effect we have in mind when we speak of
-not being able to see the wood for the trees.</p>
-
-<p>A thorough-paced votary, for that matter, can
-easily afford to declare at once that this confounding
-duality of character does more things still, or does at
-least the most important of all—introduces us without
-mercy (mercy for ourselves I mean) to the oddest truth
-we could have dreamed of meeting in such a connection.
-It was certainly <span class='it'>a priori</span> not to be expected we
-should feel it of him, but our hero is after all not in
-his magnificence totally an artist: which would be the
-strangest thing possible, one must hasten to add, were
-not the smallness of the practical difference so made
-even stranger. His endowment and his effect are each
-so great that the anomaly makes at the most a difference
-only by adding to his interest for the critic.
-The critic worth his salt is indiscreetly curious and
-wants ever to know how and why—whereby Balzac
-is thus a still rarer case for him, suggesting that exceptional
-curiosity may have exceptional rewards.
-The question of what makes the artist on a great
-scale is interesting enough; but we feel it in Balzac’s
-company to be nothing to the question of what on an
-equal scale frustrates him. The scattered pieces, the
-<span class='it'>disjecta membra</span> of the character are here so numerous
-and so splendid that they prove misleading; we pile
-them together, and the heap assuredly is monumental;
-it forms an overtopping figure. The genius this figure
-stands for, none the less, is really such a lesson to the
-artist as perfection itself would be powerless to give;
-it carries him so much further into the special mystery.
-Where it carries him, at the same time, I must
-not in this scant space attempt to say—which would
-be a loss of the fine thread of my argument. I stick
-to our point in putting it, more concisely, that the
-artist of the Comédie Humaine is half smothered by
-the historian. Yet it belongs as well to the matter
-also to meet the question of whether the historian
-himself may not be an artist—in which case Balzac’s
-catastrophe would seem to lose its excuse. The answer
-of course is that the reporter, however philosophic, has
-one law, and the originator, however substantially fed,
-has another; so that the two laws can with no sort of
-harmony or congruity make, for the finer sense, a
-common household. Balzac’s catastrophe—so to name
-it once again—was in this perpetual conflict and final
-impossibility, an impossibility that explains his defeat
-on the classic side and extends so far at times as to
-make us think of his work as, from the point of view of
-beauty, a tragic waste of effort.</p>
-
-<p>What it would come to, we judge, is that the irreconcilability
-of the two kinds of law is, more simply
-expressed, but the irreconcilability of two different
-ways of composing one’s effect. The principle of
-composition that his free imagination would have, or
-certainly might have, handsomely imposed on him is
-perpetually dislocated by the quite opposite principle
-of the earnest seeker, the inquirer to a useful end, in
-whom nothing is free but a born antipathy to his yoke-fellow.
-Such a production as “Le Curé de Village,”
-the wonderful story of Madame Graslin, so nearly a
-masterpiece yet so ultimately not one, would be, in
-this connection, could I take due space for it, a perfect
-illustration. If, as I say, Madame Graslin’s creator
-was confined by his doom to patches and pieces, no
-piece is finer than the first half of the book in question,
-the half in which the picture is determined by his
-unequalled power of putting people on their feet,
-planting them before us in their habit as they lived—a
-faculty nourished by observation as much as one will,
-but with the inner vision all the while wide-awake, the
-vision for which ideas are as living as facts and assume
-an equal intensity. This intensity, greatest indeed in
-the facts, has in Balzac a force all its own, to which
-none other in any novelist I know can be likened. His
-touch communicates on the spot to the object, the
-creature evoked, the hardness and permanence that
-certain substances, some sorts of stone, acquire by exposure
-to the air. The hardening medium, for the
-image soaked in it, is the air of his mind. It would
-take but little more to make the peopled world of
-fiction as we know it elsewhere affect us by contrast
-as a world of rather gray pulp. This mixture of the
-solid and the vivid is Balzac at his best, and it prevails
-without a break, without a note not admirably
-true, in “Le Curé de Village”—since I have named
-that instance—up to the point at which Madame
-Graslin moves out from Limoges to Montégnac in her
-ardent passion of penitence, her determination to
-expiate her strange and undiscovered association with
-a dark misdeed by living and working for others. Her
-drama is a particularly inward one, interesting, and
-in the highest degree, so long as she herself, her nature,
-her behaviour, her personal history and the relations
-in which they place her, control the picture and feed
-our illusion. The firmness with which the author
-makes them play this part, the whole constitution of
-the scene and of its developments from the moment
-we cross the threshold of her dusky stuffy old-time
-birth-house, is a rare delight, producing in the reader
-that sense of local and material immersion which is
-one of Balzac’s supreme secrets. What characteristically
-befalls, however, is that the spell accompanies
-us but part of the way—only until, at a given moment,
-his attention ruthlessly transfers itself from inside to
-outside, from the centre of his subject to its circumference.</p>
-
-<p>This is Balzac caught in the very fact of his monstrous
-duality, caught in his most complete self-expression.
-He is clearly quite unwitting that in handing
-over his <span class='it'>data</span> to his twin-brother the impassioned
-economist and surveyor, the insatiate general inquirer
-and reporter, he is in any sort betraying our confidence,
-for his good conscience at such times, the spirit of
-edification in him, is a lesson even to the best of us,
-his rich robust temperament nowhere more striking,
-no more marked anywhere the great push of the
-shoulder with which he makes his theme move, overcharged
-though it may be like a carrier’s van. It is
-not therefore assuredly that he loses either sincerity or
-power in putting before us to the last detail such a matter
-as, in this case, his heroine’s management of her
-property, her tenantry, her economic opportunities and
-visions, for these are cases in which he never shrinks
-nor relents, in which positively he stiffens and terribly
-towers—to remind us again of M. Taine’s simplifying
-word about his being an artist doubled with a man of
-business. Balzac was indeed doubled if ever a writer
-was, and to that extent that we almost as often, while
-we read, feel ourselves thinking of him as a man of
-business doubled with an artist. Whichever way we
-turn it the oddity never fails, nor the wonder of the
-ease with which either character bears the burden of
-the other. I use the word burden because, as the fusion
-is never complete—witness in the book before us the
-fatal break of “tone,” the one unpardonable sin for
-the novelist—we are beset by the conviction that but
-for this strangest of dooms one or other of the two
-partners might, to our relief and to his own, have been
-disembarrassed. The disembarrassment, for each, by
-a more insidious fusion, would probably have conduced
-to the mastership of interest proceeding from form, or
-at all events to the search for it, that Balzac fails to
-embody. Perhaps the possibility of an artist constructed
-on such strong lines is one of those fine things
-that are not of this world, a mere dream of the fond
-critical spirit. Let these speculations and condonations
-at least pass as the amusement, as a result of the
-high spirits—if high spirits be the word—of the reader
-feeling himself again in touch. It was not of our
-author’s difficulties—that is of his difficulty, the great
-one—that I proposed to speak, but of his immense
-clear action. Even that is not truly an impression of
-ease, and it is strange and striking that we are in fact
-so attached by his want of the unity that keeps surfaces
-smooth and dangers down as scarce to feel sure
-at any moment that we shall not come back to it
-with most curiosity. We are never so curious about
-successes as about interesting failures. The more
-reason therefore to speak promptly, and once for all,
-of the scale on which, in its own quarter of his genius,
-success worked itself out for him.</p>
-
-<p>It is to that I <span class='it'>should</span> come back—to the infinite reach
-in him of the painter and the poet. We can never know
-what might have become of him with less importunity
-in his consciousness of the machinery of life, of its
-furniture and fittings, of all that, right and left, he
-causes to assail us, sometimes almost to suffocation,
-under the general rubric of <span class='it'>things</span>. Things, in this
-sense with him, are at once our delight and our despair;
-we pass from being inordinately beguiled and convinced
-by them to feeling that his universe fairly
-smells too much of them, that the larger ether, the
-diviner air, is in peril of finding among them scarce
-room to circulate. His landscapes, his “local colour”—thick
-in his pages at a time when it was to be found
-in his pages almost alone—his towns, his streets, his
-houses, his Saumurs, Angoulêmes, Guérandes, his great
-prose Turner-views of the land of the Loire, his rooms,
-shops, interiors, details of domesticity and traffic, are
-a short list of the terms into which he saw the real
-as clamouring to be rendered and into which he rendered
-it with unequalled authority. It would be
-doubtless more to the point to make our profit of this
-consummation than to try to reconstruct a Balzac
-planted more in the open. We hardly, as the case
-stands, know most whether to admire in such an example
-as the short tale of “La Grenadière” the exquisite
-feeling for “natural objects” with which it
-overflows like a brimming wine-cup, the energy of
-perception and description which so multiplies them
-for beauty’s sake and for the love of their beauty, or
-the general wealth of genius that can calculate, or at
-least count, so little and spend so joyously. The tale
-practically exists for the sake of the enchanting aspects
-involved—those of the embowered white house
-that nestles on its terraced hill above the great French
-river, and we can think, frankly, of no one else with
-an equal amount of business on his hands who would
-either have so put himself out for aspects or made them
-almost by themselves a living subject. A born son of
-Touraine, it must be said, he pictures his province,
-on every pretext and occasion, with filial passion and
-extraordinary breadth. The prime aspect in his
-scene all the while, it must be added, is the money
-aspect. The general money question so loads him up
-and weighs him down that he moves through the human
-comedy, from beginning to end, very much in the
-fashion of a camel, the ship of the desert, surmounted
-with a cargo. “Things” for him are francs and centimes
-more than any others, and I give up as inscrutable,
-unfathomable, the nature, the peculiar avidity
-of his interest in them. It makes us wonder again
-and again what then is the use on Balzac’s scale of
-the divine faculty. The imagination, as we all know,
-may be employed up to a certain point in inventing
-uses for money; but its office beyond that point is
-surely to make us forget that anything so odious exists.
-This is what Balzac never forgot; his universe goes on
-expressing itself for him, to its furthest reaches, on
-its finest sides, in the terms of the market. To say
-these things, however, is after all to come out where
-we want, to suggest his extraordinary scale and his
-terrible completeness. I am not sure that he does not
-see character too, see passion, motive, personality, as
-quite in the order of the “things” we have spoken of.
-He makes them no less concrete and palpable, handles
-them no less directly and freely. It is the whole business
-in fine—that grand total to which he proposed to
-himself to do high justice—that gives him his place
-apart, makes him, among the novelists, the largest
-weightiest presence. There are some of his obsessions—that
-of the material, that of the financial, that of
-the “social,” that of the technical, political, civil—for
-which I feel myself unable to judge him, judgment
-losing itself unexpectedly in a particular shade of pity.
-The way to judge him is to try to walk all round him—on
-which we see how remarkably far we have to go.
-He is the only member of his order really monumental,
-the sturdiest-seated mass that rises in our path.</p>
-
-<hr class='footnotemark'/>
-
-<table style='margin:0 4em 0 0;' summary='footnote_4'>
-<colgroup>
-<col span='1' style='width: 3em;'/>
-<col span='1'/>
-</colgroup>
-<tr><td style='vertical-align:top;'>
-<div id='f4'><a href='#r4'>[4]</a></div>
-</td><td>
-
-<p>The appearance of a translation of the “Deux Jeunes Mariées” in A
-Century of French Romance.</p>
-
-</td></tr>
-</table>
-
-<h2 class='nobreak' id='t4257'>II</h2>
-
-<p>We recognise none the less that the finest consequence
-of these re-established relations is linked with
-just that appearance in him, that obsession of the
-actual under so many heads, that makes us look at
-him, as we would at some rare animal in captivity, between
-the bars of a cage. It amounts to a sort of suffered
-doom, since to be solicited by the world from
-all quarters at once, what is that for the spirit but a
-denial of escape? We feel his doom to be his want of
-a private door, and that he felt it, though more obscurely,
-himself. When we speak of his want of charm
-therefore we perhaps so surrender the question as but
-to show our own poverty. If charm, to cut it short,
-is what he lacks, how comes it that he so touches and
-holds us that—above all if we be actual or possible
-fellow-workers—we are uncomfortably conscious of
-the disloyalty of almost any shade of surrender? We
-are lodged perhaps by our excited sensibility in a dilemma
-of which one of the horns is a compassion that
-savours of patronage; but we must resign ourselves
-to that by reflecting that our partiality at least takes
-nothing away from him. It leaves him solidly where
-he is and only brings us near, brings us to a view of <span class='it'>all</span>
-his formidable parts and properties. The conception
-of the Comédie Humaine represents them all, and represents
-them mostly in their felicity and their triumph—or
-at least the execution does: in spite of which we
-irresistibly find ourselves thinking of him, in reperusals,
-as most essentially the victim of a cruel joke. The
-joke is one of the jokes of fate, the fate that rode him
-for twenty years at so terrible a pace and with the whip
-so constantly applied. To have wanted to do so much,
-to have thought it possible, to have faced and in a manner
-resisted the effort, to have felt life poisoned and
-consumed by such a bravery of self-committal—these
-things form for us in him a face of trouble that, oddly
-enough, is not appreciably lighted by the fact of his
-success. It was the having wanted to do so much that
-was the trap, whatever possibilities of glory might
-accompany the good faith with which he fell into it.
-What accompanies <span class='it'>us</span> as we frequent him is a sense of
-the deepening ache of that good faith with the increase
-of his working consciousness, the merciless development
-of his huge subject and of the rigour of all the
-conditions. We see the whole thing quite as if Destiny
-had said to him: “You want to ‘do’ France, presumptuous,
-magnificent, miserable man—the France
-of revolutions, revivals, restorations, of Bonapartes,
-Bourbons, republics, of war and peace, of blood and
-romanticism, of violent change and intimate continuity,
-the France of the first half of your century? Very
-well; you most distinctly <span class='it'>shall</span>, and you shall particularly
-let me hear, even if the great groan of your
-labour do fill at moments the temple of letters, how you
-like the job.” We must of course not appear to deny
-the existence of a robust joy in him, the joy of power
-and creation, the joy of the observer and the dreamer
-who finds a use for his observations and his dreams
-as fast as they come. The “Contes Drolatiques”
-would by themselves sufficiently contradict us, and the
-savour of the “Contes Drolatiques” is not confined to
-these productions. His work at large tastes of the
-same kind of humour, and we feel him again and again,
-like any other great healthy producer of these matters,
-beguiled and carried along. He would have been, I
-dare say, the last not to insist that the artist has pleasures
-forever indescribable; he lived in short in his
-human comedy with the largest life we can attribute
-to the largest capacity. There are particular parts of
-his subject from which, with our sense of his enjoyment
-of them, we have to check the impulse to call him
-away—frequently as I confess in this relation that impulse
-arises.</p>
-
-<p>The relation is with the special element of his spectacle
-from which he never fully detaches himself, the
-element, to express it succinctly, of the “old families”
-and the great ladies. Balzac frankly revelled in his
-conception of an aristocracy—a conception that never
-succeeded in becoming his happiest; whether, objectively,
-thanks to the facts supplied him by the society
-he studied, or through one of the strangest deviations
-of taste that the literary critic is in an important connection
-likely to encounter. Nothing would in fact
-be more interesting than to attempt a general measure
-of the part played in the total comedy, to his imagination,
-by the old families; and one or two contributions
-to such an attempt I must not fail presently to make.
-I glance at them here, however, the delectable class,
-but as most representing on the author’s part free and
-amused creation; by which too I am far from hinting
-that the amusement is at all at their expense. It is in
-their great ladies that the old families most shine out
-for him, images of strange colour and form, but “felt”
-as we say, to their finger-tips, and extraordinarily interesting
-as a mark of the high predominance—predominance
-of character, of cleverness, of will, of general
-“personality”—that almost every scene of the
-Comedy attributes to women. It attributes to them
-in fact a recognised, an uncontested supremacy; it
-is through them that the hierarchy of old families most
-expresses itself; and it is as surrounded by them even
-as some magnificent indulgent pasha by his overflowing
-seraglio that Balzac sits most at his ease. All of
-which reaffirms—if it be needed—that his inspiration,
-and the sense of it, were even greater than his task.
-And yet such betrayals of spontaneity in him make
-for an old friend at the end of the chapter no great difference
-in respect to the pathos—since it amounts to
-that—of his genius-ridden aspect. It comes to us as
-we go back to him that his spirit had fairly made of
-itself a cage in which he was to turn round and round,
-always unwinding his reel, much in the manner of
-a criminal condemned to hard labour for life. The
-cage is simply the complicated but dreadfully definite
-French world that built itself so solidly in and roofed
-itself so impenetrably over him.</p>
-
-<p>It is not that, caught there with him though we be,
-we ourselves prematurely seek an issue: we throw ourselves
-back, on the contrary, for the particular sense of
-it, into his ancient superseded comparatively <span class='it'>rococo</span>
-and quite patriarchal France—patriarchal in spite of
-social and political convulsions; into his old-time antediluvian
-Paris, all picturesque and all workable, full,
-to the fancy, of an amenity that has passed away;
-into his intensely differentiated sphere of <span class='it'>la province</span>,
-evoked in each sharpest or faintest note of its difference,
-described systematically as narrow and flat, and
-yet attaching us if only by the contagion of the author’s
-overflowing sensibility. He feels in his vast exhibition
-many things, but there is nothing he feels with the
-communicable shocks and vibrations, the sustained fury
-of perception—not always a fierceness of judgment,
-which is another matter—that <span class='it'>la province</span> excites in
-him. Half our interest in him springs still from our
-own sense that, for all the convulsions, the revolutions
-and experiments that have come and gone, the order
-he describes is the old order that our sense of the past
-perversely recurs to as to something happy we have
-irretrievably missed. His pages bristle with the revelation
-of the lingering earlier world, the world in which
-places and people still had their queerness, their strong
-marks, their sharp type, and in which, as before the
-platitude that was to come, the observer with an appetite
-for the salient could by way of precaution fill his
-lungs. Balzac’s appetite for the salient was voracious,
-yet he came, as it were, in time, in spite of his so often
-speaking as if what he sees about him is but the last
-desolation of the modern. His conservatism, the most
-entire, consistent and convinced that ever was—yet
-even at that much inclined to whistling in the dark as
-if to the tune of “Oh how mediæval I <span class='it'>am</span>!”—was doubtless
-the best point of view from which he could rake his
-field. But if what he sniffed from afar in that position
-was the extremity of change, we in turn feel both
-subject and painter drenched with the smell of the past.
-It is preserved in his work as nowhere else—not vague
-nor faint nor delicate, but as strong to-day as when
-first distilled.</p>
-
-<p>It may seem odd to find a conscious melancholy in
-the fact that a great worker succeeded in clasping his
-opportunity in such an embrace, this being exactly
-our usual measure of the felicity of great workers. I
-speak, I hasten to reassert, all in the name of sympathy—without
-which it would have been detestable to
-speak at all; and the sentiment puts its hand instinctively
-on the thing that makes it least futile. This
-particular thing then is not in the least Balzac’s own
-hold of his terrible mass of matter; it is absolutely the
-convolutions of the serpent he had with a magnificent
-courage invited to wind itself round him. We must
-use the common image—he had created his Frankenstein
-monster. It is the fellow-craftsman who can
-most feel for him—it being apparently possible to read
-him from another point of view without getting really
-into his presence. We undergo with him from book
-to book, from picture to picture, the convolutions of
-the serpent, we especially whose refined performances
-are given, as we know, but with the small common or
-garden snake. I stick to this to justify my image
-just above of his having been “caged” by the intensity
-with which he saw his general matter as a whole. To
-see it always as a whole is our wise, our virtuous effort,
-the very condition, as we keep in mind, of superior
-art. Balzac was in this connection then wise and virtuous
-to the most exemplary degree; so that he doubtless
-ought logically but to prompt to complacent reflections.
-No painter ever saw his general matter nearly
-so much as a whole. Why is it then that we hover
-about him, if we are real Balzacians, not with cheerful
-chatter, but with a consideration deeper in its reach
-than any mere moralising? The reason is largely that
-if you wish with absolute immaculate virtue to look
-at your matter as a whole and yet remain a theme for
-cheerful chatter, you must be careful to take some
-quantity that will not hug you to death. Balzac’s
-active intention was, to vary our simile, a beast with
-a hundred claws, and the spectacle is in the hugging
-process of which, as energy against energy, the beast
-was capable. Its victim died of the process at fifty,
-and if what we see in the long gallery in which it is
-mirrored is not the defeat, but the admirable resistance,
-we none the less never lose the sense that the fighter is
-shut up with his fate. He has locked himself in—it
-is doubtless his own fault—and thrown the key away.
-Most of all perhaps the impression comes—the impression
-of the adventurer committed and anxious, but
-with no retreat—from the so formidably concrete
-nature of his plastic stuff. When we work in the open,
-as it were, our material is not classed and catalogued,
-so that we have at hand a hundred ways of being loose,
-superficial, disingenuous, and yet passing, to our no
-small profit, for remarkable. Balzac had no “open”;
-he held that the great central normal fruitful country
-of his birth and race, overarched with its infinite social
-complexity, yielded a sufficiency of earth and sea and
-sky. We seem to see as his catastrophe that the sky,
-all the same, came down on him. He couldn’t keep
-it up—in more senses than one. These are perhaps
-fine fancies for a critic to weave about a literary figure
-of whom he has undertaken to give a plain account;
-but I leave them so on the plea that there are relations
-in which, for the Balzacian, criticism simply
-drops out. That is not a liberty, I admit, ever to be
-much encouraged; critics in fact are the only people
-who have a right occasionally to take it. There is no
-such plain account of the Comédie Humaine as that
-it makes us fold up our yard-measure and put away
-our note-book quite as we do with some extraordinary
-character, some mysterious and various stranger, who
-brings with him his own standards and his own air.
-There is a kind of eminent presence that abashes even
-the interviewer, moves him to respect and wonder,
-makes him, for consideration itself, not insist. This
-takes of course a personage sole of his kind. But
-such a personage precisely is Balzac.</p>
-
-<h2 class='nobreak' id='t4499'>III</h2>
-
-<p>By all of which have I none the less felt it but too
-clear that I must not pretend in this place to take
-apart the pieces of his immense complicated work, to
-number them or group them or dispose them about.
-The most we can do is to pick one up here and there
-and wonder, as we weigh it in our hand, at its close
-compact substance. That is all even M. Taine could
-do in the longest and most penetrating study of which
-our author has been the subject. Every piece we handle
-is so full of stuff, condensed like the edibles provided
-for campaigns and explorations, positively so
-charged with distilled life, that we find ourselves dropping
-it, in certain states of sensibility, as we drop an
-object unguardedly touched that startles us by being
-animate. We seem really scarce to want anything
-to <span class='it'>be</span> so animate. It would verily take Balzac to detail
-Balzac, and he has had in fact Balzacians nearly
-enough affiliated to affront the task with courage.
-The “Répertoire de la Comédie Humaine” of MM.
-Anatole Cerfberr and Jules Christophe is a closely-printed
-octavo of 550 pages which constitutes in relation
-to his characters great and small an impeccable
-biographical dictionary. His votaries and expositors
-are so numerous that the Balzac library of comment
-and research must be, of its type, one of the
-most copious. M. de Lovenjoul has laboured all
-round the subject; his “Histoire des Œuvres” alone
-is another crowded octavo of 400 pages; in connection
-with which I must mention Miss Wormeley, the devoted
-American translator, interpreter, worshipper,
-who in the course of her own studies has so often
-found occasion to differ from M. de Lovenjoul on matters
-of fact and questions of date and of appreciation.
-Miss Wormeley, M. Paul Bourget and many others
-are examples of the passionate piety that our author
-can inspire. As I turn over the encyclopedia of his
-characters I note that whereas such works usually
-commemorate but the ostensibly eminent of a race
-and time, every creature so much as named in the
-fictive swarm is in this case preserved to fame: so
-close is the implication that to have <span class='it'>been</span> named by
-such a dispenser of life and privilege is to be, as we say
-it of baronets and peers, created. He infinitely divided
-moreover, as we know, he subdivided, altered and
-multiplied his heads and categories—his “Vie Parisienne,”
-his “Vie de Province,” his “Vie Politique,” his
-“Parents Pauvres,” his “Études Philosophiques,” his
-“Splendeurs et Misères des Courtisanes,” his “Envers
-de l’Histoire Contemporaine” and all the rest; so that
-nominal reference to them becomes the more difficult.
-Yet without prejudice either to the energy of conception
-with which he mapped out his theme as with
-chalk on a huge blackboard, or to the prodigious patience
-with which he executed his plan, practically
-filling in with a wealth of illustration, from sources
-that to this day we fail to make out, every compartment
-of his table, M. de Lovenjoul draws up the list,
-year by year, from 1822 to 1848, of his mass of work,
-giving us thus the measure of the tension represented
-for him by almost any twelvemonth. It is wholly
-unequalled, considering the quality of Balzac’s show,
-by any other eminent abundance.</p>
-
-<p>I must be pardoned for coming back to it, for seeming
-unable to leave it; it enshrouds so interesting a
-mystery. How was so solidly systematic a literary
-attack on life to be conjoined with whatever workable
-minimum of needful intermission, of free observation,
-of personal experience? Some small possibility of personal
-experience and disinterested life must, at the
-worst, from deep within or far without, feed and fortify
-the strained productive machine. These things were
-luxuries that Balzac appears really never to have tasted
-on any appreciable scale. His published letters—the
-driest and most starved of those of any man of equal
-distinction—are with the exception of those to Madame
-de Hanska, whom he married shortly before his death,
-almost exclusively the audible wail of a galley-slave
-chained to the oar. M. Zola, in our time, among the
-novelists, has sacrificed to the huge plan in something
-of the same manner, yet with goodly modern differences
-that leave him a comparatively simple instance. His
-work assuredly has been more nearly dried up by the
-sacrifice than ever Balzac’s was—so miraculously,
-given the conditions, was Balzac’s to escape the anti-climax.
-Method and system, in the chronicle of the
-tribe of Rougon-Macquart, an economy in itself certainly
-of the rarest and most interesting, have spread
-so from centre to circumference that they have ended
-by being almost the only thing we feel. And then
-M. Zola has survived and triumphed in his lifetime,
-has continued and lasted, has piled up and, if the
-remark be not frivolous, enjoyed in all its <span class='it'>agréments</span>
-the reward for which Balzac toiled and sweated in
-vain. On top of which he will have had also his
-literary great-grandfather’s heroic example to start
-from and profit by, the positive heritage of a <span class='it'>fils de
-famille</span> to enjoy, spend, save, waste. Balzac had
-frankly no heritage at all but his stiff subject, and by
-way of model not even in any direct or immediate
-manner that of the inner light and kindly admonition
-of his genius. Nothing adds more to the strangeness
-of his general performance than his having failed so
-long to find his inner light, groped for it almost ten
-years, missed it again and again, moved straight away
-from it, turned his back on it, lived in fine round about
-it, in a darkness still scarce penetrable, a darkness into
-which we peep only half to make out the dreary little
-waste of his numerous <span class='it'>œuvres de jeunesse</span>. To M. Zola
-was vouchsafed the good fortune of settling down to the
-Rougon-Macquart with the happiest promptitude; it
-was as if time for one look about him—and I say it
-without disparagement to the reach of his look—had
-sufficiently served his purpose. Balzac moreover might
-have written five hundred novels without our feeling
-in him the faintest hint of the breath of doom, if he
-had only been comfortably capable of conceiving the
-short cut of the fashion practised by others under his
-eyes. As Alexandre Dumas and George Sand, illustrious
-contemporaries, cultivated a personal life and
-a disinterested consciousness by the bushel, having, for
-their easier duration, not too consistently known, as
-the true painter knows it, the obsession of the thing to
-be done, so Balzac was condemned by his constitution
-itself, by his inveterately seeing this “thing to be done”
-as part and parcel, as of the very essence, of his enterprise.
-The latter existed for him, as the process worked
-and hallucination settled, in the form, and the form
-only, of the thing done, and not in any hocus-pocus
-about doing. There was no kindly convenient escape
-for him by the little swinging back-door of the thing
-<span class='it'>not</span> done. He desired—no man more—to get out of
-his obsession, but only at the other end, that is by
-boring through it. “How then, thus deprived of the
-outer air almost as much as if he were gouging a passage
-for a railway through an Alp, <span class='it'>did</span> he live?” is the
-question that haunts us—with the consequence for
-the most part of promptly meeting its fairly tragic
-answer. He did <span class='it'>not</span> live—save in his imagination, or
-by other aid than he could find there; his imagination
-was all his experience; he had provably no time for
-the real thing. This brings us to the rich if simple
-truth that his imagination alone did the business, carried
-through both the conception and the execution—as
-large an effort and as proportionate a success, in all
-but the vulgar sense, as the faculty when equally
-handicapped was ever concerned in. Handicapped I
-say because this interesting fact about him, with the
-claim it makes, rests on the ground, the high distinction,
-that more than all the rest of us put together he
-went in, as we say, for detail, circumstance and specification,
-proposed to himself <span class='it'>all</span> the connections of
-every part of his matter and the full total of the parts.
-The whole thing, it is impossible not to keep repeating,
-was what he deemed treatable. One really knows in
-all imaginative literature no undertaking to compare
-with it for courage, good faith and sublimity. There,
-once more, was the necessity that rode him and that
-places him apart in our homage. It is no light thing
-to have been condemned to become provably sublime.
-And looking through, or trying to, at what is beneath
-and behind, we are left benevolently uncertain if the
-predominant quantity be audacity or innocence.</p>
-
-<p>It is of course inevitable at this point to seem to hear
-the colder critic promptly take us up. He undertook
-the whole thing—oh exactly, the ponderous person!
-But <span class='it'>did</span> he “do” the whole thing, if you please, any
-more than sundry others of fewer pretensions? The
-retort to this it can only be a positive joy to make, so
-high a note instantly sounds as an effect of the inquiry.
-Nothing is more interesting and amusing than to find
-one’s self recognising both that Balzac’s pretensions
-were immense, portentous, and that yet, taking him—and
-taking <span class='it'>them</span>—altogether, they but minister in
-the long run to our fondness. They affect us not only
-as the endearing eccentricities of a person we greatly
-admire, but fairly as the very condition of his having
-become such a person. We take them thus in the first
-place for the very terms of his plan, and in the second
-for a part of that high robustness and that general
-richness of nature which made him in face of such a
-project believe in himself. One would really scarce
-have liked to see such a job as La Comédie Humaine
-tackled without swagger. To think of the thing
-really as practicable <span class='it'>was</span> swagger, and of the very
-rarest order. So to think assuredly implied pretensions,
-pretensions that risked showing as monstrous should
-the enterprise fail to succeed. It is for the colder
-critic to take the trouble to make out that of the two
-parties to it the body of pretension remains greater
-than the success. One may put it moreover at the
-worst for him, may recognise that it is in the matter
-of opinion still more than in the matter of knowledge
-that Balzac offers himself as universally competent.
-He has flights of judgment—on subjects the most
-special as well as the most general—that are vertiginous
-and on his alighting from which we greet him
-with a special indulgence. We can easily imagine
-him to respond, confessing humorously—if he had only
-time—to such a benevolent understanding smile as
-would fain hold our own eyes a moment. Then it is
-that he would most show us his scheme and his necessities
-and how in operation they all hang together.
-<span class='it'>Naturally</span> everything about everything, though how
-he had time to learn it is the last thing he has time to
-tell us; which matters the less, moreover, as it is not
-over the question of his knowledge that we sociably
-invite him, as it were (and remembering the two augurs
-behind the altar) to wink at us for a sign. His convictions
-it is that are his great pardonable “swagger”;
-to them in particular I refer as his general operative
-condition, the constituted terms of his experiment,
-and not less as his consolation, his support, his amusement
-by the way. They embrace everything in the
-world—that is in his world of the so parti-coloured
-France of his age: religion, morals, politics, economics,
-physics, esthetics, letters, art, science, sociology, every
-question of faith, every branch of research. They
-represent thus his equipment of ideas, those ideas of
-which it will never do for a man who aspires to constitute
-a State to be deprived. He must take them
-with him as an ambassador extraordinary takes with
-him secretaries, uniforms, stars and garters, a gilded
-coach and a high assurance. Balzac’s opinions are
-his gilded coach, in which he is more amused than anything
-else to feel himself riding, but which is indispensably
-concerned in getting him over the ground.
-What more inevitable than that they should be intensely
-Catholic, intensely monarchical, intensely saturated
-with the real genius—as between 1830 and 1848
-he believed it to be—of the French character and
-French institutions?</p>
-
-<p>Nothing is happier for us than that he should have
-enjoyed his outlook before the first half of the century
-closed. He could then still treat his subject as comparatively
-homogeneous. Any country could have a
-Revolution—every country <span class='it'>had</span> had one. A Restoration
-was merely what a revolution involved, and the
-Empire had been for the French but a revolutionary
-incident, in addition to being by good luck for the
-novelist an immensely pictorial one. He was free
-therefore to arrange the background of the comedy
-in the manner that seemed to him best to suit anything
-so great; in the manner at the same time prescribed
-according to his contention by the noblest traditions.
-The church, the throne, the noblesse, the bourgeoisie,
-the people, the peasantry, all in their order and each
-solidly kept in it, these were precious things, things
-his superabundant insistence on the price of which is
-what I refer to as his exuberance of opinion. It was
-a luxury for more reasons than one, though one,
-presently to be mentioned, handsomely predominates.
-The meaning of that exchange of intelligences in the
-rear of the oracle which I have figured for him with
-the perceptive friend bears simply on his pleading
-guilty to the purport of the friend’s discrimination.
-The point the latter makes with him—a beautiful
-cordial critical point—is that he truly cares for nothing
-in the world, thank goodness, so much as for the
-passions and embroilments of men and women, the
-free play of character and the sharp revelation of type,
-all the real stuff of drama and the natural food of
-novelists. Religion, morals, politics, economics, esthetics
-would be thus, as systematic matter, very well
-in their place, but quite secondary and subservient.
-Balzac’s attitude is again and again that he cares for
-the adventures and emotions because, as his last word,
-he cares for the good and the greatness of the State—which
-is where his swagger, with a whole society on his
-hands, comes in. What we on our side in a thousand
-places gratefully feel is that he cares for his monarchical
-and hierarchical and ecclesiastical society because
-it rounds itself for his mind into the most congruous
-and capacious theatre for the repertory of his innumerable
-comedians. It has above all, for a painter
-abhorrent of the superficial, the inestimable benefit
-of the accumulated, of strong marks and fine shades,
-contrasts and complications. There had certainly
-been since 1789 dispersals and confusions enough, but
-the thick tradition, no more at the most than half
-smothered, lay under them all. So the whole of his
-faith and no small part of his working omniscience
-were neither more nor less than that historic sense
-which I have spoken of as the spur of his invention
-and which he possessed as no other novelist has done.
-We immediately feel that to name it in connection
-with him is to answer every question he suggests and
-to account for each of his idiosyncrasies in turn. The
-novel, the tale, however brief, the passage, the sentence
-by itself, the situation, the person, the place, the motive
-exposed, the speech reported—these things were
-in his view history, with the absoluteness and the
-dignity of history. This is the source both of his
-weight and of his wealth. What is the historic sense
-after all but animated, but impassioned knowledge
-seeking to enlarge itself? I have said that his imagination
-did the whole thing, no other explanation—no
-reckoning of the possibilities of personal saturation—meeting
-the mysteries of the case. Therefore his
-imagination achieved the miracle of absolutely resolving
-itself into multifarious knowledge. Since history
-proceeds by documents he constructed, as he needed
-them, the documents too—fictive sources that imitated
-the actual to the life. It was of course a terrible business,
-but at least in the light of it his claims to creatorship
-are justified—which is what was to be shown.</p>
-
-<h2 class='nobreak' id='t4811'>IV</h2>
-
-<p>It is very well even in the sketchiest attempt at a
-portrait of his genius to try to take particulars in their
-order: one peeps over the shoulder of another at the
-moment we get a feature into focus. The loud appeal
-not to be left out prevails among them all, and certainly
-with the excuse that each as we fix it seems to fall
-most into the picture. I have so indulged myself as
-to his general air that I find a whole list of vivid contributive
-marks almost left on my hands. Such a list,
-in any study of Balzac, is delightful for intimate
-edification as well as for the fine humour of the thing;
-we proceed from one of the items of his breathing
-physiognomy to the other with quite the same sense
-of life, the same active curiosity, with which we push
-our way through the thick undergrowth of one of the
-novels. The difficulty is really that the special point
-for which we at the moment observe him melts into
-all the other points, is swallowed up before our eyes in
-the formidable mass. The French apply the happiest
-term to certain characters when they speak of them
-as <span class='it'>entiers</span>, and if the word had been invented for Balzac
-it could scarce better have expressed him. He is
-“entire” as was never a man of his craft; he moves
-always in his mass; wherever we find him we find him
-in force; whatever touch he applies he applies it with
-his whole apparatus. He is like an army gathered to
-besiege a cottage equally with a city, and living voraciously
-in either case on all the country about. It
-may well be, at any rate, that his infatuation with the
-idea of the social, the practical primacy of “the sex”
-is the article at the top of one’s list; there could certainly
-be no better occasion than this of a rich reissue
-of the “Deux Jeunes Mariées” for placing it there at
-a venture. Here indeed precisely we get a sharp example
-of the way in which, as I have just said, a capital
-illustration of one of his sides becomes, just as we take
-it up, a capital illustration of another. The correspondence
-of Louise de Chaulieu and Renée de Maucombe
-is in fact one of those cases that light up with
-a great golden glow all his parts at once. We needn’t
-mean by this that such parts are themselves absolutely
-all golden—given the amount of tinsel for instance in
-his view, supereminent, transcendent here, of the old
-families and the great ladies. What we do convey,
-however, is that his creative temperament finds in such
-<span class='it'>data</span> as these one of its best occasions for shining out.
-Again we fondly recognise his splendid, his attaching
-swagger—that of a “bounder” of genius and of feeling;
-again we see how, with opportunity, its elements may
-vibrate into a perfect ecstasy of creation.</p>
-
-<p>Why shouldn’t a man swagger, he treats us to the
-diversion of asking ourselves, who has created from top
-to toe the most brilliant, the most historic, the most
-insolent, above all the most detailed and discriminated
-of aristocracies? Balzac carried the uppermost class
-of his comedy, from the princes, dukes, and unspeakable
-duchesses down to his poor barons <span class='it'>de province</span>,
-about in his pocket as he might have carried a tolerably
-befingered pack of cards, to deal them about with a
-flourish of the highest authority whenever there was
-the chance of a game. He knew them up and down
-and in and out, their arms, infallibly supplied, their
-quarterings, pedigrees, services, intermarriages, relationships,
-ramifications and other enthralling attributes.
-This indeed is comparatively simple learning; the real
-wonder is rather when we linger on the ground of the
-patrician consciousness itself, the innermost, the
-esoteric, the spirit, temper, tone—tone above all—of
-the titled and the proud. The questions multiply for
-every scene of the comedy; there is no one who makes
-us walk in such a cloud of them. The clouds elsewhere,
-in comparison, are at best of questions not
-worth asking. <span class='it'>Was</span> the patrician consciousness that
-figured as our author’s model so splendidly fatuous as
-he—almost without irony, often in fact with a certain
-poetic sympathy—everywhere represents it? His imagination
-lives in it, breathes its scented air, swallows
-this element with the smack of the lips of the connoisseur;
-but I feel that we never know, even to the
-end, whether he be here directly historic or only quite
-misguidedly romantic. The romantic side of him has
-the extent of all the others; it represents in the oddest
-manner his escape from the walled and roofed structure
-into which he had built himself—his longing for
-the vaguely-felt outside and as much as might be of the
-rest of the globe. But it is characteristic of him that
-the most he could do for this relief was to bring the
-fantastic into the circle and fit it somehow to his conditions.
-Was his tone for the duchess, the marquise
-but the imported fantastic, one of those smashes of
-the window-pane of the real that reactions sometimes
-produce even in the stubborn? or are we to take it as
-observed, as really reported, as, for all its difference
-from our notion of the natural—and, quite as much,
-of the artificial—in another and happier strain of manners,
-substantially true? The whole episode, in “Les
-Illusions Perdues,” of Madame de Bargeton’s “chucking”
-Lucien de Rubempré, on reaching Paris with
-him, under pressure of Madame d’Espard’s shockability
-as to his coat and trousers and other such matters,
-is either a magnificent lurid document or the
-baseless fabric of a vision. The great wonder is that,
-as I rejoice to put in, we can never really discover
-which, and that we feel as we read that we can’t, and
-that we suffer at the hands of no other author this particular
-helplessness of immersion. It is <span class='it'>done</span>—we are
-always thrown back on that; we can’t get out of it;
-all we can do is to say that the true itself can’t be more
-than done and that if the false in this way equals it
-we must give up looking for the difference. Alone
-among novelists Balzac has the secret of an insistence
-that somehow makes the difference nought. He
-warms his facts into life—as witness the certainty that
-the episode I just cited has absolutely as much of that
-property as if perfect matching had been achieved.
-If the great ladies in question <span class='it'>didn’t</span> behave, wouldn’t,
-couldn’t have behaved, like a pair of nervous snobs,
-why so much the worse, we say to ourselves, for the
-great ladies in question. We <span class='it'>know</span> them so—they owe
-their being to our so seeing them; whereas we never
-can tell ourselves how we should otherwise have known
-them or what quantity of being they would on a different
-footing have been able to put forth.</p>
-
-<p>The case is the same with Louise de Chaulieu, who
-besides coming out of her convent school, as a quite
-young thing, with an amount of sophistication that
-would have chilled the heart of a horse-dealer, exhales—and
-to her familiar friend, a young person of a supposedly
-equal breeding—an extravagance of complacency
-in her “social position” that makes us rub
-our eyes. Whereupon after a little the same phenomenon
-occurs; we swallow her bragging, against our
-better reason, or at any rate against our startled sense,
-under coercion of the total intensity. We do more
-than this, we cease to care for the question, which
-loses itself in the hot fusion of the whole picture. He
-has “gone for” his subject, in the vulgar phrase, with
-an avidity that makes the attack of his most eminent
-rivals affect us as the intercourse between introduced
-indifferences at a dull evening party. He squeezes it
-till it cries out, we hardly know whether for pleasure
-or pain. In the case before us for example—without
-wandering from book to book, impossible here, I make
-the most of the ground already broken—he has seen at
-once that the state of marriage itself, sounded to its
-depths, is, in the connection, his real theme. He sees
-it of course in the conditions that exist for him, but he
-weighs it to the last ounce, feels it in all its dimensions,
-as well as in all his own, and would scorn to take refuge
-in any engaging side-issue. He gets, for further intensity,
-into the very skin of his <span class='it'>jeunes mariées</span>—into
-each alternately, as they are different enough; so that,
-to repeat again, any other mode of representing women,
-or of representing anybody, becomes, in juxtaposition,
-a thing so void of the active contortions of truth
-as to be comparatively wooden. He bears children
-with Madame de l’Estorade, knows intimately how she
-suffers for them, and not less intimately how her correspondent
-suffers, as well as enjoys, without them.
-Big as he is he makes himself small to be handled by
-her with young maternal passion and positively to
-handle her in turn with infantile innocence. These
-things are the very flourishes, the little technical
-amusements of his penetrating power. But it is doubtless
-in his hand for such a matter as the jealous passion
-of Louise de Chaulieu, the free play of her intelligence
-and the almost beautiful good faith of her egotism,
-that he is most individual. It is one of the neatest
-examples of his extraordinary leading gift, his art—which
-is really moreover not an art—of working the
-exhibition of a given character up to intensity. I say
-it is not an art because it acts for us rather as a hunger
-on the part of his nature to take on in all freedom
-another nature—take it by a direct process of the
-senses. Art is for the mass of us who have only the
-process of art, comparatively so stiff. The thing
-amounts with him to a kind of shameless personal,
-physical, not merely intellectual, duality—the very
-spirit and secret of transmigration.</p>
-
-<div><span class='pagenum'><a name='Page_143' id='Page_143'>143</a></span><h1 id='t4998'>HONORÉ DE BALZAC<br/>1913</h1></div>
-
-<p>It is a pleasure to meet M. Émile Faguet<a id='r5'/><a href='#f5' style='text-decoration:none'><sup><span style='font-size:0.9em'>[5]</span></sup></a> on the same
-ground of mastered critical method and in the same
-air of cool deliberation and conclusion that so favoured
-his excellent study of Flaubert in the rich series to
-which the present volume belongs. It was worth
-while waiting these many years for a Balzac to get it
-at last from a hand of so firm a grip, if not quite of the
-very finest manipulative instinct. It can scarce ever
-be said of M. Faguet that he tends to play with a
-subject, at least a literary one; but nobody is better
-for circling his theme in sound and easy pedestrian
-fashion, for taking up each of its aspects in order, for
-a sense, above all, of the order in which they <span class='it'>should</span>
-be taken, and for then, after doing them successively
-justice, reaching the point from which they appear
-to melt together. He thus gives us one of those literary
-portraits the tradition of which, so far at least as
-they are the fruit of method, has continued scantily
-to flourish among ourselves. We cannot help thinking
-indeed that an ideally authoritative portrait of Balzac
-would be the work of some pondering painter able to
-measure the great man’s bequest a little more from
-within or by a coincidence of special faculty, or that
-in other words the particular initiation and fellow-feeling
-of some like—that is not too unlike—imaginative
-projector as well are rather wanted here to warm
-and colour the critical truth to the right glow of appreciation.
-Which comes to saying, we quite acknowledge,
-that a “tribute” to Balzac, of however embracing an
-intention, may still strike us as partly unachieved if
-we fail to catch yearning and shining through it, like
-a motive in a musical mixture or a thread of gold in a
-piece of close weaving, the all but overriding sympathy
-of novelist with novelist. M. Faguet’s intelligence at
-any rate sweeps his ground clear of the anecdotal,
-the question-begging reference to odds and ends of
-the personal and superficial, in a single short chapter,
-and, having got so promptly over this second line of
-defence, attacks at once the issue of his author’s general
-ideas—matters apt to be, in any group of contributors
-to a “series” of our own, exactly what the
-contributor most shirks considering.</p>
-
-<p>It is true that few writers, and especially few novelists,
-bring up that question with anything like the
-gross assurance and systematic confidence of Balzac,
-who clearly took for involved in his plan of a complete
-picture of the manners and aspects of his country
-and his period that he should have his confident “say”
-about as many things as possible, and who, throughout
-his immense work, appears never for an instant or
-in any connection to flinch from that complacency.
-Here it is easy to await him, waylay him and catch
-him in the act, with the consequence, for the most
-part, of our having to recognise almost with compassion
-the disparity between the author of “La Cousine
-Bette” exercising his genius, as Matthew Arnold said
-of Ruskin, in making a like distinction, and the same
-writer taking on a character not in the least really
-rooted in that soil. The fact none the less than his
-generalising remains throughout so markedly inferior to
-his particularising—which latter element and very essence
-of the novelist’s art it was his greatness to carry
-further and apply more consistently than any member
-of the craft, without exception, has felt the impulse,
-to say nothing of finding the way, to do—by no means
-wholly destroys the interest of the habit itself or relieves
-us of a due attention to it; so characteristic and
-significant, so suggestive even of his special force,
-though in a manner indirect, are the very folds and
-redundancies of this philosopher’s robe that flaps
-about his feet and drags along the ground like an
-assumed official train. The interest here—where it
-is exactly that a whole face of his undertaking would
-be most illumined for the fellow-artist we imagine
-trying to exhibit him—depends much less on what
-his reflection and opinion, his irrepressible <span class='it'>obiter dicta</span>
-and monstrous <span class='it'>suffisances</span> of judgment may be, than
-on the part played in his scheme by his holding himself
-ready at every turn and at such short notice to judge.
-For this latter fact probably lights up more than any
-other his conception of the range of the novel, the
-fashion after which, in his hands, it had been felt as an
-all-inclusive form, a form without rift or leak, a tight
-mould, literally, into which everything relevant to a
-consideration of the society surrounding him—and
-the less relevant unfortunately, as well as the more—might
-be poured in a stream of increasing consistency,
-the underlapping subject stretched, all so formidably,
-to its own constituted edge and the compound
-appointed to reproduce, as in finest and subtlest
-relief, its every minutest feature, overlying and corresponding
-with it all round to the loss of no fraction of
-an inch.</p>
-
-<p>It is thus the painter’s aspiring and rejoicing consciousness
-of the great square swarming picture, the
-picture of France from side to side and from top to
-bottom, which he proposes to copy—unless we see
-the collective quantity rather as the vast primary
-model or sitter that he is unprecedentedly to portray,
-it is this that, rendering him enviable in proportion
-to his audacity and his presumption, gives a dignity
-to everything that makes the consciousness whole.
-The result is a state of possession of his material unlike
-that of any other teller of tales whatever about a circumjacent
-world, and the process of his gain of which
-opens up well-nigh the first of those more or less baffling
-questions, parts indeed of the great question of
-the economic rule, the practical secret, of his activity,
-that beset us as soon as we study him. To fit what he
-was and what he did, that is the measure of how he
-used himself and how he used every one and everything
-else, into his after all so brief career (for twenty
-years cover the really productive term of it) is for
-ourselves, we confess, to renounce any other solution
-than that of his having proceeded by a sense for facts,
-the multitudinous facts of the scene about him, that
-somehow involved a preliminary, a pre-experiential
-inspiration, a straightness of intuition truly impossible
-to give an account of and the like of which had never
-before been shown. He had not to learn things in
-order to know them; and even though he multiplied
-himself in more ways than we can reckon up, going
-hither and thither geographically, leading his life with
-violence, as it were, though always with intention, and
-wasting almost nothing that had ever touched him,
-the natural man, the baptised and registered Honoré,
-let loose with harsh promptitude upon a world formed
-from the first moment to excite his voracity, can only
-have been <span class='it'>all</span> the exploiting agent, the pushing inquirer,
-the infallible appraiser, the subject of an <span class='it'>arrière-pensée</span>
-as merciless, in spite of being otherwise genial, as the
-black care riding behind the horseman. There was
-thus left over for him less of mere human looseness,
-of mere emotion, of mere naturalness, or of any curiosity
-whatever, that didn’t “pay”—and the extent
-to which he liked things to pay, to see them, think of
-them, and describe them as prodigiously paying, is
-not to be expressed—than probably marks any recorded
-relation between author and subject as we
-know each of these terms.</p>
-
-<p>So it comes that his mastership of whatever given
-identity might be in question, and much more of the
-general identity of his rounded (for the artistic vision),
-his compact and containing France, the fixed, felt
-frame to him of the vividest items and richest characteristics
-of human life, can really not be thought of
-as a matter of degrees of confidence, as acquired or
-built up or cumbered with verifying fears. He <span class='it'>was</span>
-the given identity and, on the faintest shade of a hint
-about it caught up, became one with it and lived it—this
-in the only way in which he could live, anywhere
-or at any time: which was by losing himself in its
-relation to his need or to what we call his voracity.
-Just so his mind, his power of apprehension, worked
-<span class='it'>naturally</span> in the interest of a society disclosed to that
-appetite; on the mere approach to the display he inhaled
-information, he recognised himself as what he
-might best be known for, an historian unprecedented,
-an historian documented as none had not only ever
-been, but had ever dreamed of being—and even if the
-method of his documentation can leave us for the most
-part but wondering. The method of his use of it, or
-of a portion of it, we more or less analyse and measure;
-but the wealth of his provision or outfit itself, the
-crammed store of his categories and <span class='it'>cadres</span>, leaves us
-the more stupefied as we feel it to have been honestly
-come by. All this is what it is impossible not to regard
-as in itself a fundamental felicity as no <span class='it'>confrère</span>
-had known; so far, indeed, as Balzac suffered <span class='it'>confrères</span>
-or as the very nature of his faculty could be
-thought of for them. M. Brunetière’s monograph of
-some years ago, which is but a couple of degrees less
-weighty, to our sense, than this of M. Faguet before us,
-justly notes that, whatever other felicity may have
-graced the exercise of such a genius, for instance, as
-that rare contemporary George Sand, she was reduced
-well-nigh altogether to drawing upon resources and
-enjoying advantages comparatively vague and unassured.
-She had of course in a manner her special resource
-and particular advantage, which consisted, so
-to speak, in a finer feeling about what she did possess
-and could treat of with authority, and particularly in
-a finer command of the terms of expression, than any
-involved in Balzac’s “happier” example. But her
-almost fatal weakness as a novelist—an exponent of
-the art who has waned exactly as, for our general
-long-drawn appreciation, Balzac has waxed—comes
-from her having had to throw herself upon ground
-that no order governed, no frame, as we have said,
-enclosed, and no safety attended; safety of the sort,
-we mean, the safety of the constitutive, illustrative
-fact among facts, which we find in her rival as a warm
-socialised air, an element supremely assimilable.</p>
-
-<p>It may freely be pronounced interesting that
-whereas, in her instinct for her highest security, she
-threw herself upon the consideration of love as the
-<span class='it'>type</span> attraction or most representable thing in the
-human scene, so, assuredly, no student of that field
-has, in proportion to the thoroughness of his study,
-felt he could afford to subordinate or almost even to
-neglect it to anything like the tune in which we see it
-put and kept in its place through the parts of the
-Comédie Humaine that most count. If this passion
-but too often exhales a tepid breath in much other
-fiction—much other of ours at least—that is apt to
-come decidedly less from the writer’s sense of proportion
-than from his failure of art, or in other words
-of intensity. It is rarely absent by intention or by
-intelligence, it is pretty well always there as the theoretic
-principal thing—any difference from writer to
-writer being mostly in the power to put the principal
-thing effectively forward. It figures as a pressing, an
-indispensable even if a perfunctory motive, for example,
-in every situation devised by Walter Scott; the case
-being simply that if it doesn’t in fact attractively
-occupy the foreground this is because his hand has had
-so native, so much greater, an ease for other parts of
-the picture. What makes Balzac so pre-eminent and
-exemplary that he was to leave the novel a far other and
-a vastly more capacious and significant affair than he
-found it, is his having felt his fellow-creatures (almost
-altogether for him his contemporaries) as quite failing
-of reality, as swimming in the vague and the void and
-the abstract, unless their social conditions, to the last
-particular, their generative and contributive circumstances,
-of every discernible sort, enter for all these
-are “worth” into his representative attempt. This
-great compound of the total looked into and starting
-up in its element, as it always does, to meet the eye
-of genius and patience half way, bristled for him with
-all its branching connections, those thanks to which
-any figure could <span class='it'>be</span> a figure but by showing for endlessly
-entangled in them.</p>
-
-<p>So it was then that his huge felicity, to re-emphasise
-our term, was in his state of circulating where
-recognitions and identifications didn’t so much await
-as rejoicingly assault him, having never yet in all the
-world, grudged or at the best suspected feeders as they
-were at the board where sentiment occupied the head,
-felt themselves so finely important or subject to such a
-worried intention. They hung over a scene as to which
-it was one of the forces of his inspiration that history
-had lately been there at work, with incomparable
-energy and inimitable art, to pile one upon another,
-not to say squeeze and dovetail violently into each
-other, after such a fashion as might defy competition
-anywhere, her successive deposits and layers of form
-and order, her restless determinations of appearance—so
-like those of the different “states” of an engraver’s
-impression; all to an effect which <span class='it'>should</span> have constituted,
-as by a miracle of coincidence it did, the
-paradise of an extraordinary observer. Balzac lived
-accordingly, extraordinary since he was, in an earthly
-heaven so near perfect for his kind of vision that he
-could have come at no moment more conceivably blest
-to him. The later part of the eighteenth century,
-with the Revolution, the Empire and the Restoration,
-had inimitably conspired together to scatter abroad
-their separate marks and stigmas, their separate trails
-of character and physiognomic hits—for which advantage
-he might have arrived too late, as his hapless successors,
-even his more or less direct imitators, visibly
-have done. The fatal fusions and uniformities inflicted
-on our newer generations, the running together
-of all the differences of form and tone, the ruinous
-liquefying wash of the great industrial brush over the
-old conditions of contrast and colour, doubtless still
-have left the painter of manners much to do, but have
-ground him down to the sad fact that his ideals of differentiation,
-those inherent oppositions from type to
-type, in which drama most naturally resides, have
-well-nigh perished. They pant for life in a hostile air;
-and we may surely say that their last successful struggle,
-their last bright resistance to eclipse among ourselves,
-was in their feverish dance to the great fiddling
-of Dickens. Dickens made them dance, we seem to
-see, caper and kick their heels, wave their arms, and
-above all agitate their features, for the simple reason
-that he couldn’t make them stand or sit <span class='it'>at once</span> quietly
-and expressively, couldn’t make them look straight out
-as for themselves—quite in fact as through his not
-daring to, not feeling he could afford to, in a changing
-hour when ambiguities and the wavering line, droll
-and “dodgy” dazzlements and the possibly undetected
-factitious alone, might be trusted to keep him right
-with an incredibly uncritical public, a public blind to
-the difference between a shade and a patch.</p>
-
-<p>Balzac on the other hand, born as we have seen to
-confidence, the tonic air of his paradise, might make
-character, in the sense in which we use it, that of the
-element exposable to the closest verification, sit or
-stand for its “likeness” as still as ever it would. It is
-true that he could, as he often did, resort to fond extravagance,
-since he was apt at his worst to plunge
-into agitation for mere agitation’s sake—which is a
-course that, by any turn, may cast the plunger on the
-barrenest strand. But he is at his best when the conditions,
-the whole complex of subdivisible form and
-pressure, are virtually themselves the situation, the
-action and the interest, or in other words when these
-things exhaust themselves, as it were, in expressing
-the persons we are concerned with, agents and victims
-alike, and when by such vivified figures, whether victims
-or agents, they are themselves completely expressed.
-The three distinguished critics who have
-best studied him, Taine, Brunetière and now (as well
-as before this) M. Faguet—the first the most eloquent
-but the loosest, and the last the closest even if the
-dryest—are in agreement indeed as to the vast quantity
-of waste in him, inevitably judging the romanticist as
-whom he so frequently, speculatively, desperately
-paraded altogether inferior to the realist whose function
-he could still repeatedly and richly and for his
-greater glory exercise. This estimate of his particularly
-greater glory is of a truth not wholly shared by
-M. Taine; but the three are virtually at one, where
-we of course join them, or rather go further than they,
-as to the enviability, so again to call it (and by which we
-mean the matchless freedom of play), of his harvesting
-sense when he gave himself up in fullest measure
-to his apprehension of the dense wholeness of reality.
-It was this that led him on and kept him true to that
-happily largest side of his labour by which he must
-massively live; just as it is this, the breath of his real
-geniality, when every abatement is made, that stirs
-to loyalty those who under his example also take his
-direction and find their joy in watching him thoroughly
-at work. We see then how, when social character
-and evolved type are the prize to be grasped, the facts
-of observation and certification, unrestingly social and
-historic too, that form and fondle and retouch it,
-never relaxing their action, are so easily and blessedly
-absolute to him that this is what we mean by their
-virtue.</p>
-
-<p>When there were enough of these quantities and
-qualities flowering into the definite and the absolute
-for him to feed on, feed if not to satiety at least to the
-largest loosening of his intellectual belt, there were
-so many that we may even fall in with most of M.
-Faguet’s discriminations and reserves about him and
-yet find his edifice rest on proportioned foundations.
-For it is his assimilation of things and things, of his
-store of them and of the right ones, the right for representation,
-that leaves his general image, even with
-great chunks of surface surgically, that is critically,
-removed, still coherent and erect. There are moments
-when M. Faguet—most surgical he!—seems to
-threaten to remove so much that we ask ourselves in
-wonder what may be left; but no removal matters
-while the principle of observation animating the mass
-is left unattacked. Our present critic for instance is
-“down”—very understandingly down as seems to us—on
-some of the sides of his author’s rich temperamental
-vulgarity; which is accompanied on those
-sides by want of taste, want of wit, want of style, want
-of knowledge of ever so many parts of the general subject,
-too precipitately proposed, and want of fineness
-of feeling about ever so many others. We agree with
-him freely enough, subject always to this reserve
-already glanced at, that a novelist of a high esthetic
-sensibility must always find more in any other novelist
-worth considering seriously at all than he can perhaps
-hope to impart even to the most intelligent of critics
-pure and simple his subtle reasons for. This said,
-we lose ourselves, to admiration, in such a matter for
-example as the tight hug of the mere material, the
-supremely important if such ever was, represented by
-the appeal to us on behalf of the money-matters of
-César Birotteau.</p>
-
-<p>This illustration gains logically, much more than
-loses, from the rank predominance of the money-question,
-the money-vision, throughout all Balzac. There
-are lights in which it can scarce not appear to us that
-his own interest is greater, his possibilities of attention
-truer, in these pressing particulars than in all other
-questions put together; there could be no better sign
-of the appreciation of “things,” exactly, than so never
-relaxed a grasp of the part played in the world by just
-these. Things for things, the franc, the shilling, the
-dollar, are the very most underlying and conditioning,
-even dramatically, even poetically, that call upon him;
-and we have everywhere to recognise how little he
-feels himself to be telling us of this, that and the
-other person unless he has first given us full information,
-with every detail, either as to their private means,
-their income, investments, savings, losses, the state
-in fine of their pockets, or as to their immediate place
-of habitation, their home, their outermost shell, with
-its windows and doors, its outside appearance and
-inside plan, its rooms and furniture and arrangements,
-its altogether intimate facts, down to its very smell.
-This prompt and earnest evocation of the shell and
-its lining is but another way of testifying with due
-emphasis to economic conditions. The most personal
-shell of all, the significant dress of the individual,
-whether man or woman, is subject to as sharp and as
-deep a notation—it being no small part of his wealth
-of luck that the age of dress differentiated and specialised
-from class to class and character to character,
-not least moreover among men, could still give him
-opportunities of choice, still help him to define and
-intensify, or peculiarly to <span class='it'>place</span> his apparitions. The
-old world in which costume had, to the last refinement
-of variety, a social meaning happily lingered on for
-him; and nothing is more interesting, nothing goes
-further in this sense of the way the social concrete
-could minister to him, than the fact that “César
-Birotteau,” to instance that masterpiece again, besides
-being a money-drama of the closest texture, the very
-epic of retail bankruptcy, is at the same time the all-vividest
-exhibition of the habited and figured, the
-representatively stamped and countenanced, buttoned
-and buckled state of the persons moving through it.
-No livelier example therefore can we name of the
-triumphant way in which any given, or as we should
-rather say taken, total of conditions works out under
-our author’s hand for accentuation of type. The
-story of poor Birotteau is just in this supreme degree
-a hard total, even if every one’s money-relation does
-loom larger, for his or her case, than anything else.</p>
-
-<p>The main thing doubtless to agree with M. Faguet
-about, however, is the wonder of the rate at which
-this genius for an infatuated grasp of the environment
-could multiply the creatures swarming, and swarming
-at their best to perfection, in that jungle of elements.
-A jungle certainly the environment, the rank many-coloured
-picture of France, would have been had it not
-really created in our observer the joy, thanks to his
-need of a clear and marked order, of its becoming so
-arrangeable. Nothing could interest us more than to
-note with our critic that such multiplications—taken
-after all at such a rush—have to be paid for by a sort
-of limitation of quality in each, the quality that, beyond
-a certain point and after a certain allowance,
-ever looks askance at any approach to what it may
-be figured as taking for <span class='it'>insolence</span> of quantity. Some
-inquiry into the general mystery of such laws of payment
-would beckon us on had we the space—whereby
-we might glance a little at the wondrous why and
-wherefore of the sacrifice foredoomed, the loss, greater
-or less, of those ideals now compromised by the tarnished
-names of refinement and distinction, yet which
-we are none the less, at our decentest, still ashamed
-too entirely to turn our backs on, in the presence of
-energies that, shaking the air by their embrace of the
-common, tend to dispossess the rare of a certified place
-in it. Delightful to the critical mind to estimate the
-point at which, in the picture of life, a sense for the
-element of the rare ceases to consort with a sense,
-necessarily large and lusty, for the varieties of the real
-that super-abound. Reducible perhaps to some exquisite
-measure is this point of fatal divergence. It
-declared itself, the divergence, in the heart of Balzac’s
-genius; for nothing about him is less to be gainsaid
-than that on the other or further side of a certain line
-of rareness drawn his authority, so splendid on the
-hither or familiar side, is sadly liable to lapse. It
-fails to take in whatever fine truth experience may
-have vouchsafed to us about the highest kinds of
-temper, the inward life of the mind, the <span class='it'>cultivated</span>
-consciousness. His truest and vividest people are
-those whom the conditions in which they are so palpably
-embedded have simplified not less than emphasised;
-simplified mostly to singleness of motive and
-passion and interest, to quite measurably finite existence;
-whereas his ostensibly higher spirits, types
-necessarily least observed and most independently
-thought out, in the interest of their humanity, as we
-would fain ourselves think them, are his falsest and
-weakest and show most where his imagination and
-his efficient sympathy break down.</p>
-
-<p>To say so much as this is doubtless to provoke the
-question of where and how then, under so many other
-restrictions, he is so great—which question is answered
-simply by our claim for his unsurpassed mastery of
-the “middling” sort, so much the most numerous in
-the world, the middling sort pressed upon by the vast
-variety of their dangers. These it is in their multitude
-whom he makes individually living, each with a
-clustered bunch of concomitants, as no one, to our
-mind, has equalled him in doing—above all with the
-amount of repetition of the feat considered. Finer
-images than the middling, but so much fewer, other
-creative talents have thrown off; swarms of the common,
-on the other hand, have obeyed with an even
-greater air of multitude perhaps than in Balzac’s
-pages the big brandished enumerative wand—only
-with a signal forfeiture in this case of that gift of the
-sharply separate, the really rounded, personality which
-he untiringly conferred. Émile Zola, by so far the
-strongest example of his influence, mustered groups
-and crowds beyond even the master’s own compass;
-but as throughout Zola we live and move for the most
-part but in crowds (he thinking his best but in terms
-of crowdedness), so in Balzac, where he rises highest,
-we deal, whether or no more for our sense of ugliness
-than of beauty, but with memorable person after person.
-He thought, on his side—when he thought at
-least to good purpose—in terms the most expressively
-personal, in such as could even eventuate in monsters
-and forms of evil the most finished we know; so that
-if he too has left us a multitude of which we may say
-that it stands alone for solidity, it nevertheless exists
-by addition and extension, not by a chemical shaking-together,
-a cheapening or diminishing fusion.</p>
-
-<p>It is not that the series of the Rougon-Macquart
-has not several distinct men and women to show—though
-they occur, as a fact, almost in “L’Assommoir”
-alone; it is not either that Zola did not on occasion
-try for the cultivated consciousness, a thing of course,
-so far as ever achieved anywhere, necessarily separate
-and distinguished; it is that he tried, on such ground,
-with a futility only a shade less marked than Balzac’s,
-and perhaps would have tried with equal disaster had
-he happened to try oftener. If we find in his pages no
-such spreading waste as Balzac’s general picture of
-the classes “enjoying every advantage,” that is of the
-socially highest—to the elder writer’s success in depicting
-particularly the female members of which
-Sainte-Beuve, and Brunetière in his footsteps, have
-rendered such strange and stupefying homage—the
-reason may very well be that such groups could not
-in the nature of the case figure to him after the fashion
-in which he liked groups to figure, as merely herded
-and compressed. To Balzac they were groups in
-which individualisation might be raised to its very
-finest; and it is by this possibility in them that we
-watch him and his fertile vulgarity, his peccant taste,
-so fallible for delicacies, so unerring for simplicities,
-above all doubtless the homeliest, strongest and grimmest,
-wofully led astray. But it is fairly almost a
-pleasure to our admiration, before him, to see what
-we have permitted ourselves to call the “chunks” of
-excision carted off to the disengagement of the values
-that still live. The wondrous thing is that they live
-best where his grand vulgarity—since we are not
-afraid of the word—serves him rather than betrays;
-which it <span class='it'>has</span> to do, we make out, over the greater part
-of the field of any observer for whom man is on the
-whole cruelly, crushingly, deformedly conditioned. We
-grant <span class='it'>that</span> as to Balzac’s view, and yet feel the view to
-have been at the same time incomparably active and
-productively genial; which are by themselves somehow
-qualities and reactions that redress the tragedy
-and the doom. The vulgarity was at any rate a force
-that simply got nearer than any other could have done
-to the whole detail, the whole intimate and evidenced
-story, of submission and perversion, and as such it
-could but prove itself immensely human. It is on all
-this considered ground that he has for so many years
-stood firm and that we feel him by reason of it and in
-spite of them, in spite of all that has come and gone,
-not to have yielded, have “given,” an inch.</p>
-
-<hr class='footnotemark'/>
-
-<table style='margin:0 4em 0 0;' summary='footnote_5'>
-<colgroup>
-<col span='1' style='width: 3em;'/>
-<col span='1'/>
-</colgroup>
-<tr><td style='vertical-align:top;'>
-<div id='f5'><a href='#r5'>[5]</a></div>
-</td><td>
-
-<p>Balzac. Par Émile Faguet, de l’Académie Française. Les Grands
-Écrivains Français. Paris, Hachette, 1913.</p>
-
-</td></tr>
-</table>
-
-<div><span class='pagenum'><a name='Page_160' id='Page_160'>160</a></span><h1 id='t5574'>GEORGE SAND<br/>1897</h1></div>
-
-<p>I have been reading in the Revue de Paris for November
-1st, 1896, some fifty pages, of an extraordinary
-interest, which have had in respect to an old admiration
-a remarkable effect. Undoubtedly for other admirers
-too who have come to fifty year—admirers, I
-mean, once eager, of the distinguished woman involved—the
-perusal of the letters addressed by George Sand
-to Alfred de Musset in the course of a famous friendship
-will have stirred in an odd fashion the ashes of
-an early ardour. I speak of ashes because early
-ardours for the most part burn themselves out, while
-the place they hold in our lives varies, I think, mainly
-according to the degree of tenderness with which we
-gather up and preserve their dust; and I speak of
-oddity because in the present case it is difficult to say
-whether the agitation of the embers results at last in a
-returning glow or in a yet more sensible chill. That
-indeed is perhaps a small question compared with the
-simple pleasure of the reviving emotion. One reads
-and wonders and enjoys again, just for the sake of the
-renewal. The small fry of the hour submit to further
-shrinkage, and we revert with a sigh of relief to the
-free genius and large life of one of the greatest of all
-masters of expression. Do people still handle the
-works of this master—people other than young ladies
-studying French with La “Mare au Diable” and a
-dictionary? Are there persons who still read “Valentine”?
-Are there others capable of losing themselves
-in “Mauprat”? Has “André,” the exquisite,
-dropped out of knowledge, and is any one left who
-remembers “Teverino”? I ask these questions for the
-mere sweet sound of them, without the least expectation
-of an answer. I remember asking them twenty
-years ago, after Madame Sand’s death, and not then
-being hopeful of the answer of the future. But the
-only response that matters to us perhaps is our own,
-even if it be after all somewhat ambiguous. “André”
-and “Valentine” then are rather on our shelves than
-in our hands, but in the light of what is given us in
-the “Revue de Paris” who shall say that we do not,
-and with avidity, “read” George Sand? She died in
-1876, but she lives again intensely in these singular
-pages, both as to what in her spirit was most attaching
-and what most disconcerting. We are vague as to
-what they may represent for the generation that has
-come to the front since her death; nothing, I dare say,
-very imposing or even very pleasing. But they give
-out a great deal to a reader for whom thirty years
-ago—the best time to have taken her as a whole—she
-was a high clear figure, a great familiar magician.
-This impression is a strange mixture, but perhaps not
-quite incommunicable; and we are steeped as we
-receive it in one of the most curious episodes in the
-annals of the literary race.</p>
-
-<h2 class='nobreak' id='t5633'>I</h2>
-
-<p>It is the great interest of such an episode that, apart
-from its proportionate place in the unfolding of a
-personal life it has a wonderful deal to say on the relation
-between experience and art at large. It constitutes
-an eminent special case, in which the workings
-of that relation are more or less uncovered; a case too
-of which one of the most striking notes is that we are
-in possession of it almost exclusively by the act of one
-of the persons concerned. Madame Sand at least,
-as we see to-day, was eager to leave nothing undone
-that could make us further acquainted than we were
-before with one of the liveliest chapters of her personal
-history. We cannot, doubtless, be sure that
-her conscious purpose in the production of “Elle et
-Lui” was to show us the process by which private
-ecstasies and pains find themselves transmuted in the
-artist’s workshop into promising literary material—any
-more than we can be certain of her motive for
-making toward the end of her life earnest and complete
-arrangements for the ultimate publication of the
-letters in which the passion is recorded and in which
-we can remount to the origin of the volume. If “Elle
-et Lui” had been the inevitable picture, postponed
-and retouched, of the great adventure of her youth, so
-the letters show us the crude primary stuff from which
-the moral detachment of the book was distilled. Were
-they to be given to the world for the encouragement
-of the artist-nature—as a contribution to the view
-that no suffering is great enough, no emotion tragic
-enough to exclude the hope that such pangs may sooner
-or later be esthetically assimilated? Was the whole
-proceeding, in intention, a frank plea for the intellectual
-and in some degree even the commercial profit, to a
-robust organism, of a store of erotic reminiscence?
-Whatever the reasons behind the matter, that is to a
-certain extent the moral of the strange story.</p>
-
-<p>It may be objected that this moral is qualified to
-come home to us only when the relation between art
-and experience really proves a happier one than it
-may be held to have proved in the combination before
-us. The element in danger of being most absent from
-the process is the element of dignity, and its presence,
-so far as that may ever at all be hoped for in an appeal
-from a personal quarrel, is assured only in proportion
-as the esthetic event, standing on its own feet, represents
-a noble gift. It was vain, the objector may say,
-for our author to pretend to justify by so slight a performance
-as “Elle et Lui” that sacrifice of all delicacy
-which has culminated in this supreme surrender.
-“If you sacrifice all delicacy,” I hear such a critic contend,
-“show at least that you were right by giving us
-a masterpiece. The novel in question is no more a
-masterpiece,” I even hear him proceed, “than any
-other of the loose liquid lucid works of its author. By
-your supposition of a great intention you give much
-too fine an account on the one hand of a personal habit
-of incontinence and on the other of a literary habit of
-egotism. Madame Sand, in writing her tale and in
-publishing her love-letters, obeyed no prompting more
-exalted than that of exhibiting her personal (in which I
-include her verbal) facility, and of doing so at the cost
-of whatever other persons might be concerned; and
-you are therefore—and you might as well immediately
-confess it—thrown back for the element of interest on
-the attraction of her general eloquence, the plausibility
-of her general manner and the great number of her
-particular confidences. You are thrown back on your
-mere curiosity or sympathy—thrown back from any
-question of service rendered to ‘art.’ ” One might be
-thrown back doubtless still further even than such remarks
-would represent if one were not quite prepared
-with the confession they propose. It is only because
-such a figure is interesting—in every manifestation—that
-its course is marked for us by vivid footprints
-and possible lessons. And to enable us to find these
-it scarcely need have aimed after all so extravagantly
-high. George Sand lived her remarkable life and drove
-her perpetual pen, but the illustration that I began by
-speaking of is for ourselves to gather—if we can.</p>
-
-<p>I remember hearing many years ago in Paris an
-anecdote for the truth of which I am far from vouching,
-though it professed to come direct—an anecdote that
-has recurred to me more than once in turning over the
-revelations of the Revue de Paris, and without the
-need of the special reminder (in the shape of an allusion
-to her intimacy with the hero of the story) contained
-in those letters to Sainte-Beuve which are published
-in the number of November 15th. Prosper Mérimée
-was said to have related—in a reprehensible spirit—that
-during a term of association with the author of
-“Lélia” he once opened his eyes, in the raw winter
-dawn, to see his companion, in a dressing-gown, on
-her knees before the domestic hearth, a candlestick
-beside her and a red <span class='it'>madras</span> round her head, making
-bravely, with her own hands, the fire that was to
-enable her to sit down betimes to urgent pen and
-paper. The story represents him as having felt that
-the spectacle chilled his ardour and tried his taste;
-her appearance was unfortunate, her occupation an
-inconsequence and her industry a reproof—the result
-of all of which was a lively irritation and an early
-rupture. To the firm admirer of Madame Sand’s
-prose the little sketch has a very different value, for
-it presents her in an attitude which is the very key
-to the enigma, the answer to most of the questions
-with which her character confronts us. She rose early
-because she was pressed to write, and she was pressed
-to write because she had the greatest instinct of expression
-ever conferred on a woman; a faculty that
-put a premium on all passion, on all pain, on all experience
-and all exposure, on the greatest variety of
-ties and the smallest reserve about them. The really
-interesting thing in these posthumous <span class='it'>laideurs</span> is the
-way the gift, the voice, carries its possessor through
-them and lifts her on the whole above them. It gave
-her, it may be confessed at the outset and in spite of
-all magnanimities in the use of it, an unfair advantage
-in every connection. So at least we must continue to
-feel till—for our appreciation of this particular one—we
-have Alfred de Musset’s share of the correspondence.
-For we shall have it at last, in whatever faded
-fury or beauty it may still possess—to that we may
-make up our minds. Let the galled jade wince, it is
-only a question of time. The greatest of literary quarrels
-will in short, on the general ground, once more
-come up—the quarrel beside which all others are mild
-and arrangeable, the eternal dispute between the
-public and the private, between curiosity and delicacy.</p>
-
-<p>This discussion is precisely all the sharper because
-it takes place for each of us within as well as without.
-When we wish to know at all we wish to know everything;
-yet there happen to be certain things of which
-no better description can be given than that they are
-simply none of our business. “What <span class='it'>is</span> then forsooth
-of our business?” the genuine analyst may always ask;
-and he may easily challenge us to produce any rule of
-general application by which we shall know when to
-push in and when to back out. “In the first place,”
-he may continue, “half the ‘interesting’ people in the
-world have at one time or another set themselves to
-drag us in with all their might; and what in the world
-in such a relation is the observer that he should absurdly
-pretend to be in more of a flutter than the object
-observed? The mannikin, in all schools, is at an early
-stage of study of the human form inexorably superseded
-by the man. Say that we are to give up the attempt
-to understand: it might certainly be better so, and
-there would be a delightful side to the new arrangement.
-But in the name of common-sense don’t say
-that the continuity of life is not to have some equivalent
-in the continuity of pursuit, the renewal of phenomena
-in the renewal of notation. There is not a
-door you can lock here against the critic or the painter,
-not a cry you can raise or a long face you can pull at
-him, that are not quite arbitrary things. The only
-thing that makes the observer competent is that he is
-neither afraid nor ashamed; the only thing that makes
-him decent—just think!—is that he is not superficial.”
-All this is very well, but somehow we all equally feel
-that there is clean linen and soiled and that life would
-be intolerable without some acknowledgment even by
-the pushing of such a thing as forbidden ground. M.
-Émile Zola, at the moment I write, gives to the world
-his reasons for rejoicing in the publication of the
-physiological <span class='it'>enquête</span> of Dr. Toulouse—a marvellous
-catalogue or handbook of M. Zola’s outward and inward
-parts, which leaves him not an inch of privacy,
-so to speak, to stand on, leaves him nothing about
-himself that is <span class='it'>for</span> himself, for his friends, his relatives,
-his intimates, his lovers, for discovery, for emulation,
-for fond conjecture or flattering deluded envy. It is
-enough for M. Zola that everything is for the public
-and no sacrifice worth thinking of when it is a question
-of presenting to the open mouth of that apparently
-gorged but still gaping monster the smallest spoonful
-of truth. The truth, to his view, is never either ridiculous
-or unclean, and the way to a better life lies
-through telling it, so far as possible, about everything
-and about every one.</p>
-
-<p>There would probably be no difficulty in agreeing
-to this if it didn’t seem on the part of the speaker the
-result of a rare confusion between give and take, between
-“truth” and information. The true thing that
-most matters to us is the true thing we have most use
-for, and there are surely many occasions on which the
-truest thing of all is the necessity of the mind, its simple
-necessity of feeling. Whether it feels in order to
-learn or learns in order to feel, the event is the same:
-the side on which it shall most feel will be the side to
-which it will most incline. If it feels more about a
-Zola functionally undeciphered it will be governed
-more by that particular truth than by the truth about
-his digestive idiosyncrasies, or even about his “olfactive
-perceptions” and his “arithmomania or impulse to
-count.” An affirmation of our “mere taste” may very
-supposedly be our individual contribution to the general
-clearing up. Nothing often is less superficial than
-to ignore and overlook, or more constructive (for living
-and feeling at all) than to want impatiently to
-choose. If we are aware that in the same way as
-about a Zola undeciphered we should have felt more
-about a George Sand unexposed, the true thing we
-have gained becomes a poor substitute for the one we
-have lost; and I scarce see what difference it makes
-that the view of the elder novelist appears in this matter
-quite to march with that of the younger. I hasten
-to add that as to being of course asked why in the
-world with such a leaning we have given time either
-to M. Zola’s physician or to Musset’s correspondent,
-this is only another illustration of the bewildering
-state of the subject.</p>
-
-<p>When we meet on the broad highway the rueful
-denuded figure we need some presence of mind to
-decide whether to cut it dead or to lead it gently home,
-and meanwhile the fatal complication easily occurs.
-We have <span class='it'>seen</span>, in a flash of our own wit, and mystery
-has fled with a shriek. These encounters are indeed
-accidents which may at any time take place, and the
-general guarantee in a noisy world lies, I judge, not so
-much in any hope of really averting them as in a regular
-organisation of the struggle. The reporter and
-the reported have duly and equally to understand that
-they carry their life in their hands. There are secrets
-for privacy and silence; let them only be cultivated
-on the part of the hunted creature with even half the
-method with which the love of sport—or call it the
-historic sense—is cultivated on the part of the investigator.
-They have been left too much to the natural,
-the instinctive man; but they will be twice as effective
-after it begins to be observed that they may take their
-place among the triumphs of civilisation. Then at
-last the game will be fair and the two forces face to
-face; it will be “pull devil, pull tailor,” and the hardest
-pull will doubtless provide the happiest result.
-Then the cunning of the inquirer, envenomed with
-resistance, will exceed in subtlety and ferocity anything
-we to-day conceive, and the pale forewarned victim,
-with every track covered, every paper burnt and
-every letter unanswered, will, in the tower of art, the
-invulnerable granite, stand, without a sally, the siege
-of all the years.</p>
-
-<h2 class='nobreak' id='t5883'>II</h2>
-
-<p>It was not in the tower of art that George Sand ever
-shut herself up; but I come back to a point already
-made in saying that it is in the citadel of style that,
-notwithstanding rash <span class='it'>sorties</span>, she continues to hold out.
-The outline of the complicated story that was to cause
-so much ink to flow gives, even with the omission of a
-hundred features, a direct measure of the strain to
-which her astonishing faculty was exposed. In the
-summer of 1833, as a woman of nearly thirty, she encountered
-Alfred de Musset, who was six years her
-junior. In spite of their youth they were already
-somewhat bowed by the weight of a troubled past.
-Musset, at twenty-three, had that of his confirmed
-libertinism—so Madame Arvède Barine, who has had
-access to materials, tells us in the admirable short
-biography of the poet contributed to the rather markedly
-unequal but very interesting series of Hachette’s
-Grands Écrivains Français. Madame Sand had a
-husband, a son and a daughter, and the impress of
-that succession of lovers—Jules Sandeau had been
-one, Prosper Mérimée another—to which she so freely
-alludes in the letters to Sainte-Beuve, a friend more
-disinterested than these and qualified to give much
-counsel in exchange for much confidence. It cannot
-be said that the situation of either of our young persons
-was of good omen for a happy relation, but they
-appear to have burnt their ships with much promptitude
-and a great blaze, and in the December of that
-year they started together for Italy. The following
-month saw them settled, on a frail basis, in Venice,
-where the elder companion remained till late in the summer
-of 1834 and where she wrote, in part, “Jacques”
-and the “Lettres d’un Voyageur,” as well as “André”
-and “Léone-Léoni,” and gathered the impressions
-to be embodied later in half-a-dozen stories
-with Italian titles—notably in the delightful “Consuelo.”
-The journey, the Italian climate, the Venetian
-winter at first agreed with neither of the friends;
-they were both taken ill—the young man very gravely—and
-after a stay of three months Musset returned,
-alone and much ravaged, to Paris.</p>
-
-<p>In the meantime a great deal had happened, for
-their union had been stormy and their security small.
-Madame Sand had nursed her companion in illness
-(a matter-of-course office, it must be owned) and her
-companion had railed at his nurse in health. A
-young physician, called in, had become a close friend
-of both parties, but more particularly a close friend
-of the lady, and it was to his tender care that on quitting
-the scene Musset solemnly committed her. She
-took up life with Pietro Pagello—the transition is
-startling—for the rest of her stay, and on her journey
-back to France he was no inconsiderable part of her
-luggage. He was simple, robust and kind—not a man
-of genius. He remained, however, but a short time
-in Paris; in the autumn of 1834 he returned to Italy,
-to live on till our own day but never again, so far as we
-know, to meet his illustrious mistress. Her intercourse
-with her poet was, in all its intensity, one may
-almost say its ferocity, promptly renewed, and was
-sustained in that key for several months more. The
-effect of this strange and tormented passion on the
-mere student of its records is simply to make him ask
-himself what on earth is the matter with the subjects
-of it. Nothing is more easy than to say, as I have
-intimated, that it has no need of records and no need
-of students; but this leaves out of account the thick
-medium of genius in which it was foredoomed to disport
-itself. It was self-registering, as the phrase is,
-for the genius on both sides happened to be the genius
-of eloquence. It is all rapture and all rage and all
-literature. The “Lettres d’un Voyageur” spring from
-the thick of the fight; “La Confession d’un Enfant du
-Siècle” and “Les Nuits” are immediate echoes of the
-concert. The lovers are naked in the market-place
-and perform for the benefit of society. The matter
-with them, to the perception of the stupefied spectator,
-is that they entertained for each other every feeling
-in life but the feeling of respect. What the absence
-of that article may do for the passion of hate is apparently
-nothing to what it may do for the passion of
-love.</p>
-
-<p>By our unhappy pair at any rate the luxury in
-question—the little luxury of plainer folk—was not to
-be purchased, and in the comedy of their despair and
-the tragedy of their recovery nothing is more striking
-than their convulsive effort either to reach up to it or
-to do without it. They would have given for it all
-else they possessed, but they only meet in their struggle
-the inexorable <span class='it'>never</span>. They strain and pant and
-gasp, they beat the air in vain for the cup of cold
-water of their hell. They missed it in a way for which
-none of their superiorities could make up. Their
-great affliction was that each found in the life of the
-other an armoury of weapons to wound. Young as
-they were, young as Musset was in particular, they
-appeared to have afforded each other in that direction
-the most extraordinary facilities; and nothing in the
-matter of the mutual consideration that failed them is
-more sad and strange than that even in later years,
-when their rage, very quickly, had cooled, they never
-arrived at simple silence. For Madame Sand, in her
-so much longer life, there was no hush, no letting
-alone; though it would be difficult indeed to exaggerate
-the depth of relative indifference from which,
-a few years after Musset’s death, such a production
-as “Elle et Lui” could spring. Of course there had
-been floods of tenderness, of forgiveness; but those,
-for all their beauty of expression, are quite another
-matter. It is just the fact of our sense of the ugliness
-of so much of the episode that makes a wonder and a
-force of the fine style, all round, in which it is offered
-us. That force is in its turn a sort of clue to guide,
-or perhaps rather a sign to stay, our feet in paths after
-all not the most edifying. It gives a degree of importance
-to the somewhat squalid and the somewhat
-ridiculous story, and, for the old George-Sandist at
-least, lends a positive spell to the smeared and yellowed
-paper, the blotted and faded ink. In this twilight
-of association we seem to find a reply to our own
-challenge and to be able to tell ourselves why we meddle
-with such old dead squabbles and waste our time
-with such grimacing ghosts. If we were superior to
-the weakness, moreover, how should we make our
-point (which we must really make at any cost) as to
-the so valuable vivid proof that a great talent is the
-best guarantee—that it may really carry off almost
-anything?</p>
-
-<p>The rather sorry ghost that beckons us on furthest
-is the rare personality of Madame Sand. Under its
-influence—or that of old memories from which it is
-indistinguishable—we pick our steps among the <span class='it'>laideurs</span>
-aforesaid: the misery, the levity, the brevity of it all,
-the greatest ugliness in particular that this life shows us,
-the way the devotions and passions that we see heaven
-and earth called to witness are over before we can turn
-round. It may be said that, for what it was, the intercourse
-of these unfortunates surely lasted long enough;
-but the answer to that is that if it had only lasted
-longer it wouldn’t have been what it was. It was not
-only preceded and followed by intimacies, on one side
-and the other, as unadorned by the stouter sincerity,
-but was mixed up with them in a manner that would
-seem to us dreadful if it didn’t still more seem to us
-droll, or rather perhaps if it didn’t refuse altogether
-to come home to us with the crudity of contemporary
-things. It is antediluvian history, a queer vanished
-world—another Venice from the actually, the deplorably
-familiarised, a Paris of greater bonhomie, an
-inconceivable impossible Nohant. This relegates it
-to an order agreeable somehow to the imagination of
-the fond quinquegenarian, the reader with a fund of
-reminiscence. The vanished world, the Venice unrestored,
-the Paris unextended, is a bribe to his judgment;
-he has even a glance of complacency for the
-lady’s liberal <span class='it'>foyer</span>. Liszt, one lovely year at Nohant,
-“jouait du piano au rez-de-chaussée, et les rossignols,
-ivres de musique et de soleil, s’égosillaient avec rage
-sur les lilas environnants.” The beautiful manner
-confounds itself with the conditions in which it was
-exercised, the large liberty and variety overflow into
-admirable prose, and the whole thing makes a charming
-faded medium in which Chopin gives a hand to
-Consuelo and the small Fadette has her elbows on the
-table of Flaubert.</p>
-
-<p>There is a terrible letter of the autumn of 1834 in
-which our heroine has recourse to Alfred Tattet on a
-dispute with the bewildered Pagello—a disagreeable
-matter that involved a question of money. “À Venise
-il comprenait,” she somewhere says, “à Paris il ne
-comprend plus.” It was a proof of remarkable intelligence
-that he did understand in Venice, where
-he had become a lover in the presence and with the
-exalted approval of an immediate predecessor—an
-alternate representative of the part, whose turn had
-now, on the removal to Paris, come round again and in
-whose resumption of office it was looked to him to
-concur. This attachment—to Pagello—had lasted but
-a few months; yet already it was the prey of complication
-and change, and its sun appears to have set in no
-very graceful fashion. We are not here in truth
-among very graceful things, in spite of superhuman
-attitudes and great romantic flights. As to these
-forced notes Madame Arvède Barine judiciously says
-that the picture of them contained in the letters to
-which she had had access, and some of which are before
-us, “presents an example extraordinary and unmatched
-of what the romantic spirit could do with
-beings who had become its prey.” She adds that she
-regards the records in question, “in which we follow
-step by step the ravages of the monster,” as “one of
-the most precious psychological documents of the first
-half of the century.” That puts the story on its true
-footing, though we may regret that it should not
-divide these documentary honours more equally with
-some other story in which the monster has not quite
-so much the best of it. But it is the misfortune of the
-comparatively short and simple annals of conduct and
-character that they should ever seem to us somehow
-to cut less deep. Scarce—to quote again his best
-biographer—had Musset, at Venice, begun to recover
-from his illness than the two lovers were seized
-afresh by <span class='it'>le vertige du sublime et de l’impossible</span>. “Ils
-imaginèrent les déviations de sentiment les plus bizarres,
-et leur intérieur fut le théâtre de scènes qui
-égalaient en étrangeté les fantaisies les plus audacieuses
-de la littérature contemporaine;” that is of the literature
-of their own day. The register of virtue contains
-no such lively items—save indeed in so far as
-these contortions and convulsions were a conscious
-tribute to virtue.</p>
-
-<p>Ten weeks after Musset has left her in Venice his
-relinquished but not dissevered mistress writes to him
-in Paris: “God keep you, my friend, in your present
-disposition of heart and mind. Love is a temple built
-by the lover to an object more or less worthy of his
-worship, and what is grand in the thing is not so much
-the god as the altar. Why should you be afraid of
-the risk?”—of a new mistress she means. There
-would seem to be reasons enough why he should have
-been afraid, but nothing is more characteristic than her
-eagerness to push him into the arms of another woman—more
-characteristic either of her whole philosophy
-in these matters or of their tremendous, though somewhat
-conflicting, effort to be good. She is to be good
-by showing herself so superior to jealousy as to stir up
-in him a new appetite for a new object, and he is to
-be so by satisfying it to the full. It appears not to
-occur to either one that in such an arrangement his
-own honesty is rather sacrificed. Or is it indeed because
-he has scruples—or even a sense of humour—that
-she insists with such ingenuity and such eloquence?
-“Let the idol stand long or let it soon break, you will
-in either case have built a beautiful shrine. Your soul
-will have lived in it, have filled it with divine incense,
-and a soul like yours must produce great works. The
-god will change perhaps, the temple will last as long
-as yourself.” “Perhaps,” under the circumstances,
-was charming. The letter goes on with the ample
-flow that was always at the author’s command—an
-ease of suggestion and generosity, of beautiful melancholy
-acceptance, in which we foresee, on her own
-horizon, the dawn of new suns. Her simplifications
-are delightful—they remained so to the end; her
-touch is a wondrous sleight-of-hand. The whole of
-this letter in short is a splendid utterance and a masterpiece
-of the shade of sympathy, not perhaps the
-clearest, which consists of wishing another to feel as
-you feel yourself. To feel as George Sand felt, however,
-one had to be, like George Sand, of the true male
-inwardness; which poor Musset was far from being.
-This, we surmise, was the case with most of her lovers,
-and the truth that makes the idea of her <span class='it'>liaison</span> with
-Mérimée, who <span class='it'>was</span> of a consistent virility, sound almost
-like a union against nature. She repeats to her correspondent,
-on grounds admirably stated, the injunction
-that he is to give himself up, to let himself go, to
-take his chance. That he took it we all know—he followed
-her advice only too well. It is indeed not long
-before his manner of doing so draws from her a cry of
-distress. “Ta conduite est déplorable, impossible.
-Mon Dieu, à quelle vie vais-je te laisser? l’ivresse, le
-vin, les filles, et encore et toujours!” But apprehensions
-were now too late; they would have been too
-late at the very earliest stage of this celebrated connection.</p>
-
-<h2 class='nobreak' id='t6157'>III</h2>
-
-<p>The great difficulty was that, though they were sublime,
-the couple were really not serious. But on the
-other hand if on a lady’s part in such a relation the
-want of sincerity or of constancy is a grave reproach
-the matter is a good deal modified when the lady, as I
-have mentioned, happens to be—I may not go so far
-as to say a gentleman. That George Sand just fell
-short of this character was the greatest difficulty of
-all; because if a woman, in a love affair, may be—for
-all she is to gain or to lose—what she likes, there is
-only one thing that, to carry it off with any degree of
-credit, a man may be. Madame Sand forgot this on
-the day she published “Elle et Lui”; she forgot it
-again more gravely when she bequeathed to the great
-snickering public these present shreds and relics of
-unutterably personal things. The aberration refers
-itself to the strange lapses of still other occasions—notably
-to the extraordinary absence of scruples with
-which she in the delightful “Histoire de ma Vie”
-gives away, as we say, the character of her remarkable
-mother. The picture is admirable for vividness, for
-breadth of touch; it would be perfect from any hand
-not a daughter’s, and we ask ourselves wonderingly
-how through all the years, to make her capable of it, a
-long perversion must have worked and the filial fibre—or
-rather the general flower of sensibility—have been
-battered. Not this particular anomaly, however, but
-many another, yields to the reflection that as just after
-her death a very perceptive person who had known
-her well put it to the author of these remarks, she was
-a woman quite by accident. Her immense plausibility
-was almost the only sign of her sex. She needed
-always to prove that she had been in the right; as how
-indeed could a person fail to who, thanks to the special
-equipment I have named, might prove it so brilliantly?
-It is not too much to say of her gift of expression—and
-I have already in effect said so—that
-from beginning to end it floated her over the real as a
-high tide floats a ship over the bar. She was never
-left awkwardly straddling on the sandbank of fact.</p>
-
-<p>For the rest, in any case, with her free experience
-and her free use of it, her literary style, her love of
-ideas and questions, of science and philosophy, her
-comradeship, her boundless tolerance, her intellectual
-patience, her personal good-humour and perpetual
-tobacco (she smoked long before women at large felt
-the cruel obligation), with all these things and many
-I don’t mention she had more of the inward and outward
-of the other sex than of her own. She had
-above all the mark that, to speak at this time of day
-with a freedom for which her action in the matter of
-publicity gives us warrant, the history of her personal
-passions reads singularly like a chronicle of the ravages
-of some male celebrity. Her relations with men closely
-resembled those relations with women that, from the
-age of Pericles or that of Petrarch, have been complacently
-commemorated as stages in the unfolding
-of the great statesman and the great poet. It is very
-much the same large list, the same story of free appropriation
-and consumption. She appeared in short
-to have lived through a succession of such ties exactly
-in the manner of a Goethe, a Byron or a Napoleon;
-and if millions of women, of course, of every
-condition, had had more lovers, it was probable that
-no woman independently so occupied and so diligent
-had had, as might be said, more unions. Her fashion
-was quite her own of extracting from this sort of experience
-all that it had to give her and being withal
-only the more just and bright and true, the more sane
-and superior, improved and improving. She strikes
-us as in the benignity of such an intercourse even more
-than maternal: not so much the mere fond mother
-as the supersensuous grandmother of the wonderful
-affair. Is not that practically the character in which
-Thérèse Jacques studies to present herself to Laurent
-de Fauvel? the light in which “Lucrezia Floriani” (a
-memento of a friendship for Chopin, for Liszt) shows
-the heroine as affected toward Prince Karol and his
-friend? George Sand is too inveterately moral, too
-preoccupied with that need to do good which is in art
-often the enemy of doing well; but in all her work
-the story-part, as children call it, has the freshness and
-good faith of a monastic legend. It is just possible
-indeed that the moral idea was the real mainspring of
-her course—I mean a sense of the duty of avenging on
-the unscrupulous race of men their immemorial selfish
-success with the plastic race of women. Did she wish
-above all to turn the tables—to show how the sex
-that had always ground the other in the volitional mill
-was on occasion capable of being ground?</p>
-
-<p>However this may be, nothing is more striking than
-the inward impunity with which she gave herself to
-conditions that are usually held to denote or to involve
-a state of demoralisation. This impunity (to speak
-only of consequences or features that concern us) was
-not, I admit, complete, but it was sufficiently so to
-warrant us in saying that no one was ever less demoralised.
-She presents a case prodigiously discouraging
-to the usual view—the view that there is no surrender
-to “unconsecrated” passion that we escape paying
-for in one way or another. It is frankly difficult to
-see where this eminent woman conspicuously paid.
-She positively got off from paying—and in a cloud
-of fluency and dignity, benevolence, competence, intelligence.
-She sacrificed, it is true, a handful of
-minor coin—suffered by failing wholly to grasp in her
-picture of life certain shades and certain delicacies.
-What she paid was this irrecoverable loss of her touch
-for them. That is undoubtedly one of the reasons
-why to-day the picture in question has perceptibly
-faded, why there are persons who would perhaps even
-go so far as to say that it has really a comic side. She
-doesn’t know, according to such persons, her right hand
-from her left, the crooked from the straight and the
-clean from the unclean: it was a sense she lacked or a
-tact she had rubbed off, and her great work is by the
-fatal twist quite as lopsided a monument as the leaning
-tower of Pisa. Some readers may charge her with a
-graver confusion still—the incapacity to distinguish
-between fiction and fact, the truth straight from the
-well and the truth curling in steam from the kettle and
-preparing the comfortable tea. There is no word
-oftener on her pen, they will remind us, than the verb
-to “arrange.” She arranged constantly, she arranged
-beautifully; but from this point of view, that of a
-general suspicion of arrangements, she always proved
-too much. Turned over in the light of it the story of
-“Elle et Lui” for instance is an attempt to prove that
-the mistress of Laurent de Fauvel was little less than
-a prodigy of virtue. What is there not, the intemperate
-admirer may be challenged to tell us, an attempt
-to prove in “L’Histoire de ma Vie”?—a work from
-which we gather every delightful impression but the
-impression of an impeccable veracity.</p>
-
-<p>These reservations may, however, all be sufficiently
-just without affecting our author’s peculiar air of having
-eaten her cake and had it, been equally initiated
-in directions the most opposed. Of how much cake
-she partook the letters to Musset and Sainte-Beuve
-well show us, and yet they fall in at the same time, on
-other sides, with all that was noble in her mind, all
-that is beautiful in the books just mentioned and in
-the six volumes of the general “Correspondance: 1812-1876,”
-out of which Madame Sand comes so immensely
-to her advantage. She had, as liberty, all the adventures
-of which the dots are so put on the i’s by the
-documents lately published, and then she had, as law,
-as honour and serenity, all her fine reflections on them
-and all her splendid busy literary use of them. Nothing
-perhaps gives more relief to her masculine stamp
-than the rare art and success with which she cultivated
-an equilibrium. She made from beginning to end a
-masterly study of composure, absolutely refusing to be
-upset, closing her door at last against the very approach
-of irritation and surprise. She had arrived at
-her quiet elastic synthesis—a good-humour, an indulgence
-that were an armour of proof. The great felicity
-of all this was that it was neither indifference nor renunciation,
-but on the contrary an intense partaking;
-imagination, affection, sympathy and life, the way she
-had found for herself of living most and living longest.
-However well it all agreed with her happiness and her
-manners, it agrees still better with her style, as to
-which we come back with her to the sense that this
-was really her <span class='it'>point d’appui</span> or sustaining force. Most
-people have to say, especially about themselves, only
-what they can; but she said—and we nowhere see it
-better than in the letters to Musset—everything in
-life that she wanted. We can well imagine the effect
-of that consciousness on the nerves of this particular
-correspondent, his own poor gift of occasional song
-(to be so early spent) reduced to nothing by so unequalled
-a command of the last word. We feel it, I
-hasten to add, this last word, in all her letters: the
-occasion, no matter which, gathers it from her as the
-breeze gathers the scent from the garden. It is always
-the last word of sympathy and sense, and we meet it
-on every page of the voluminous “Correspondance.”
-These pages are not so “clever” as those, in the same
-order, of some other famous hands—the writer always
-denied, justly enough, that she had either wit or
-presence of mind—and they are not a product of high
-spirits or of a marked avidity for gossip. But they
-have admirable ease, breadth and generosity; they
-are the clear quiet overflow of a very full cup. They
-speak above all for the author’s great gift, her eye for
-the inward drama. Her hand is always on the fiddle-string,
-her ear is always at the heart. It was in the
-soul, in a word, that she saw the drama begin, and to
-the soul that, after whatever outward flourishes, she
-saw it confidently come back. She herself lived with
-all her perceptions and in all her chambers—not
-merely in the showroom of the shop. This brings us
-once more to the question of the instrument and the
-tone, and to our idea that the tone, when you are so
-lucky as to possess it, may be of itself a solution.</p>
-
-<p>By a solution I mean a secret for saving not only
-your reputation but your life—that of your soul; an
-antidote to dangers which the unendowed can hope to
-escape by no process less uncomfortable or less inglorious
-than that of prudence and precautions. The
-unendowed must go round about, the others may go
-straight through the wood. Their weaknesses, those
-of the others, shall be as well redeemed as their books
-shall be well preserved; it may almost indeed be said
-that they are made wise in spite of themselves. If
-you have never in all your days <span class='it'>had</span> a weakness worth
-mentioning, you can be after all no more, at the very
-most, than large and cheerful and imperturbable.
-All these things Madame Sand managed to be on just
-the terms she had found, as we see, most convenient.
-So much, I repeat, does there appear to be in a tone.
-But if the perfect possession of one made her, as it
-well might, an optimist, the action of it is perhaps more
-consistently happy in her letters and her personal
-records than in her “creative” work. Her novels
-to-day have turned rather pale and faint, as if the
-image projected—not intense, not absolutely concrete—failed
-to reach completely the mind’s eye. And the
-odd point is that the wonderful charm of expression is
-not really a remedy for this lack of intensity, but
-rather an aggravation of it through a sort of suffusion
-of the whole thing by the voice and speech of the
-author. These things set the subject, whatever it be,
-afloat in the upper air, where it takes a happy bath of
-brightness and vagueness or swims like a soap-bubble
-kept up by blowing. This is no drawback when she
-is on the ground of her own life, to which she is tied by
-a certain number of tangible threads; but to embark
-on one of her confessed fictions is to have—after all
-that has come and gone, in our time, in the trick of
-persuasion—a little too much the feeling of going up
-in a balloon. We are borne by a fresh cool current
-and the car delightfully dangles; but as we peep over
-the sides we see things—as we usually know them—at
-a dreadful drop beneath. Or perhaps a better way to
-express the sensation is to say what I have just been
-struck with in the re-perusal of “Elle et Lui”; namely
-that this book, like others by the same hand, affects
-the reader—and the impression is of the oddest—not
-as a first but as a second echo or edition of the immediate
-real, or in other words of the subject. The tale
-may in this particular be taken as typical of the
-author’s manner; beautifully told, but told, as if on
-a last remove from the facts, by some one repeating
-what he has read or what he has had from another
-and thereby inevitably becoming more general and
-superficial, missing or forgetting the “hard” parts and
-slurring them over and making them up. Of everything
-but feelings the presentation is dim. We recognise
-that we shall never know the original narrator
-and that the actual introducer is the only one we can
-deal with. But we sigh perhaps as we reflect that we
-may never confront her with her own informant.</p>
-
-<p>To that, however, we must resign ourselves; for I
-remember in time that the volume from which I take
-occasion to speak with this levity is the work that I
-began by pronouncing a precious illustration. With
-the aid of the disclosures of the Revue de Paris it was,
-as I hinted, to show us that no mistakes and no pains
-are too great to be, in the air of art, triumphantly convertible.
-Has it really performed this function? I
-thumb again my copy of the limp little novel and wonder
-what, alas, I shall reply. The case is extreme, for
-it was the case of a suggestive experience particularly
-dire, and the literary flower that has bloomed upon it
-is not quite the full-blown rose. “Oeuvre de rancune”
-Arvède Barine pronounces it, and if we take
-it as that we admit that the artist’s distinctness from
-her material was not ideally complete. Shall I not
-better the question by saying that it strikes me less as
-a work of rancour than—in a peculiar degree—as a
-work of egotism? It becomes in that light at any rate
-a sufficiently happy affirmation of the author’s infallible
-form. This form was never a more successful
-vehicle for the conveyance of sweet reasonableness.
-It is all superlatively calm and clear; there never was
-a kinder, balmier last word. Whatever the measure
-of justice of the particular representation, moreover,
-the picture has only to be put beside the recent documents,
-the “study,” as I may call them, to illustrate
-the general phenomenon. Even if “Elle et Lui” is
-not the full-blown rose we have enough here to place
-in due relief an irrepressible tendency to bloom. In
-fact I seem already to discern that tendency in the
-very midst of the storm; the “tone” in the letters too
-has its own way and performs on its own account—which
-is but another manner of saying that the literary
-instinct, in the worst shipwreck, is never out of its
-depth. The worker observed at the fire by Mérimée
-could be drowned but in an ocean of ink. Is that a
-sufficient account of what I have called the laying
-bare of the relation between experience and art? With
-the two elements, the life and the genius, face to face—the
-smutches and quarrels at one end of the chain
-and the high luminosity at the other—does some
-essential link still appear to be missing? How do
-the graceless facts after all confound themselves with
-the beautiful spirit? They do so, incontestably, before
-our eyes, and the mystification remains. We try
-to trace the process, but before we break down we had
-better perhaps hasten to grant that—so far at least
-as George Sand is concerned—some of its steps are
-impenetrable secrets of the grand manner.</p>
-
-<div><span class='pagenum'><a name='Page_187' id='Page_187'>187</a></span><h1 id='t6472'>GEORGE SAND<br/>1899</h1></div>
-
-<p>Those among us comfortably conscious of our different
-usage—aware, some would say, of our better conscience—may
-well have remarked the general absence from
-French practice of biographic commemoration of extinct
-worthies. The Life as we understand it, the
-prompt pious spacious record and mirror of the eminent
-career, rarely follows the death. The ghost of
-the great man, when he happens to have been a Frenchman,
-“sits” for such portraiture, we gather, with a
-confidence much less assured than among ourselves,
-and with fewer relatives and friends to surround the
-chair. The manner in which even for persons of
-highest mark among our neighbours biography either
-almost endlessly hangs back or altogether fails, suggests
-that the approach is even when authorised too
-often difficult. This general attitude toward the question,
-it would thus appear, implies for such retrospects
-the predominance of doors bolted and barred. Hesitation
-is therefore fairly logical, for it rests on the
-assumption that men and women of great gifts will
-have lived with commensurate intensity, and that as
-regards some of the forms of this intensity the discretion
-of the inquirer may well be the better part of
-his enthusiasm. The critic can therefore only note
-with regret so much absent opportunity for the play
-of perception and the art of composition. The race
-that produced Balzac—to say nothing of Sainte-Beuve—would
-surely have produced a Boswell, a Lockhart
-and a Trevelyan if the fashion had not set so strongly
-against it. We have lately had a capital example of
-the encounter of an admirable English portraitist and
-an admirable English subject. It is not irrelevant
-to cite such a book as Mr. Mackail’s “Life of William
-Morris” as our high-water mark—a reminder of how
-we may be blessed on both faces of the question. Each
-term of the combination appears supposable in France,
-but only as distinct from the other term. The artist,
-we gather, would there have lost his chance and the
-sitter his ease.</p>
-
-<p>It completes in an interesting way these observations,
-which would bear much expansion, to perceive
-that when we at last have a Life of George Sand—a
-celebrity living with the imputed intensity, if ever a
-celebrity did—we are indebted for it to the hand of a
-stranger. No fact could more exactly point the moral
-of my few remarks. Madame Sand’s genius and renown
-would have long ago made her a subject at home
-if alacrity in such a connection had been to be dreamed
-of. There is no more significant sign of the general
-ban under which alacrity rests. Everything about this
-extraordinary woman is interesting, and we can easily
-imagine the posthumous honours we ourselves would
-have hastened to assure to a part taken, in literature
-and life, with such brilliancy and sincerity. These
-demonstrations, where we should most look for them,
-have been none the less as naught—save indeed, to be
-exact, for the publication of a number of volumes of
-letters. It is just Madame Sand’s letters, however—letters
-interesting and admirable, peculiarly qualified
-to dispose the reader in her favour—that in England
-or in America would have quickened the need
-for the rest of the evidence. But now that, as befalls,
-we do at last have the rest of the evidence as we never
-have had it before, we are of course sufficiently enlightened
-as to the reasons for a special application
-of the law of reserves and delays. It is not in fact easy
-to see how a full study of our heroine could have been
-produced earlier; and even at present there is a sensible
-comfort in its being produced at such a distance as
-practically assigns the act to a detached posterity.
-Contemporaneously it was wise to forbear; but to-day,
-and in Russia, by good luck, it is permitted to
-plunge.</p>
-
-<p>Mme. Wladimir Karénine’s extraordinarily diffuse,
-but scarcely less valuable, biography, of which the
-first instalment,<a id='r6'/><a href='#f6' style='text-decoration:none'><sup><span style='font-size:0.9em'>[6]</span></sup></a> in two large volumes, brings the story
-but to the year 1838, reaches us in a French version,
-apparently from the author’s own hand, of chapters
-patiently contributed to Russian periodicals. Were it
-not superficially ungrateful to begin with reserves
-about a book so rich and full, there might be some complaint
-to make of this wonderful tribute on grounds
-of form and taste. Ponderous and prolix, the author
-moves in a mass, escorted by all the penalties of her
-indifference to selection and compression. She insists
-and repeats, she wanders wide; her subject spreads
-about her, in places, as rather a pathless waste. Above
-all she has produced a book which manages to be at
-once remarkably expert and singularly provincial.
-Our innocence is perhaps at fault, but we are moved
-to take the mixture for characteristically Russian.
-Would indeed any but that admirable “Slav” superiority
-to prejudice of which we have lately heard so
-much have availed to handle the particular facts in
-this large free way? Nothing is at all events more
-curious than the union, on the part of our biographer,
-of psychological intelligence and a lame esthetic. The
-writer’s literary appreciations lag in other words half
-a century behind her human and social. She treats
-us to endless disquisitions on pages of her author to
-which we are no longer in any manageable relation
-at all—disquisitions pathetic, almost grotesque, in their
-misplaced good faith. But her attitude to her subject
-is admirable, her thoroughness exemplary, the
-spirit of service in her of the sort that builds the monument
-stone by stone. When we see it reared to the
-summit, as we are clearly to do, we shall feel the
-structure to be solid if not shapely. Nothing is more
-possible meanwhile than that a culture more homogeneous—a
-French hand or a German—could not have
-engaged in the work with anything like the same sincerity.
-An English hand—and the fact, for <span class='it'>our</span> culture,
-means much—would have been incapable of
-touching it. The present scale of it at all events is
-certainly an exotic misconception. But we can take
-of it what concerns us.</p>
-
-<p>The whole thing of course, we promptly reflect,
-concerns at the best only those of us who can remount
-a little the stream of time. The author of “L’Histoire
-de ma Vie” died in 1876, and the light of actuality
-rests to-day on very different heads. It may seem to
-belittle her to say that to care for her at all one must
-have cared for her from far back, for such is not in
-general the proviso we need to make on behalf of the
-greatest figures. It describes Madame Sand with
-breadth, but not with extravagance, to speak of her
-as a sister to Goethe, and we feel that for Goethe it
-can never be too late to care. But the case exemplifies
-perhaps precisely the difference even in the most
-brilliant families between sisters and brothers. She
-was to have the family spirit, but she was to receive
-from the fairies who attended at her cradle the silver
-cup, not the gold. She was to write a hundred books
-but she was not to write “Faust.” She was to have
-all the distinction but not all the perfection; and there
-could be no better instance of the degree in which a
-woman may achieve the one and still fail of the other.
-When it is a question of the rare originals who have
-either she confirms us, masculine as she is, in believing
-that it takes a still greater masculinity to have both.
-What she had, however, she had in profusion; she
-was one of the deepest voices of that great mid-century
-concert against the last fine strains of which we are
-more and more banging the doors. Her work, beautiful,
-plentiful and fluid, has floated itself out to sea
-even as the melting snows of the high places are floated.
-To feel how she has passed away as a “creator” is to
-feel anew the immense waste involved in the general
-ferment of an age, and how much genius and beauty,
-let alone the baser parts of the mixture, it takes to
-produce a moderate quantity of literature. Smaller
-people have conceivably ceased to count; but it is
-strange for a member of the generation immediately
-succeeding her own that she should have had the
-same fate as smaller people: all the more that such
-a mourner may be ruefully conscious of contributing
-not a little himself to the mishap. Does he still read,
-re-read, can he to-day at all deal with, this wonderful
-lady’s novels? It only half cheers him up that on the
-occasion of such a publication as I here speak of he
-finds himself as much interested as ever.</p>
-
-<p>The grounds of the interest are difficult to give—they
-presuppose so much of the old impression. If
-the old impression therefore requires some art to sustain
-and justify itself we must be content, so far as we
-are still under the charm, to pass, though only at the
-worst, for eccentric. The work, whether we still hold
-fast to it or not, has twenty qualities and would still
-have an immense one if it had only its style; but what
-I suppose it has paid for in the long-run is its want of
-plastic intensity. Does any work of representation,
-of imitation, live long that is predominantly loose?
-It may live in spite of looseness; but that, we make out,
-is only because closeness has somewhere, where it has
-most mattered, played a part. It is hard to say of
-George Sand’s productions, I think, that they show
-closeness anywhere; the sense of that fluidity which
-is more than fluency is what, in speaking of them, constantly
-comes back to us, and the sense of fluidity is
-fundamentally fatal to the sense of particular truth.
-The thing presented by intention is never the stream of
-the artist’s inspiration; it is the deposit of the stream.
-For the things presented by George Sand, for the general
-picture, we must look elsewhere, look at her life
-and her nature, and find them in the copious documents
-in which these matters and many others are
-now reflected. All <span class='it'>this</span> mass of evidence it is that
-constitutes the “intensity” we demand. The mass
-has little by little become large, and our obligation
-to Madame Karénine is that she makes it still larger.
-She sets our face, and without intending to, more and
-more in the right direction. Her injudicious analyses
-of forgotten fictions only confirm our discrimination.
-We feel ourselves in the presence of the extraordinary
-author of the hundred tales, and yet also feel it to be
-not by reason of them that she now presents herself
-as one of the most remarkable of human creatures.
-By reason then of what? Of everything that determined,
-accompanied, surrounded their appearance.
-They formed all together a great feature in a career
-and a character, but the career and the character are
-the real thing.</p>
-
-<p>Such is far from usually the case, I hasten to recognise,
-with the complete and consistent artist. Poor
-is the art, a thing positively to be ashamed of, that,
-generally speaking, is not far more pressing for this
-servant of the altar than anything else, anything outside
-the church, can possibly be. To have been the
-tempered and directed hammer that makes the metal
-hard: if that be not good enough for such a ministrant,
-we may know him by whatever he has found better—we
-shall not know him by the great name. The
-immense anomaly in Madame Sand was that she freely
-took the form of being, with most zest, quite another
-sort of hammer. It testifies sufficiently to her large
-endowment that, given the wide range of the rest of
-her appetite, she should seem to us to-day to have
-sacrificed even superficially to <span class='it'>any</span> form of objective
-expression. She had in spite of herself an imagination
-almost of the first order, which overflowed and
-irrigated, turning by its mere swift current, without
-effort, almost without direction, every mill it encountered,
-and launching as it went alike the lightest skiff
-and the stateliest ship. She had in especial the gift
-of speech, speech supreme and inspired, to which we
-particularly owe the high value of the “case” she presents.
-For the case was definitely a bold and direct
-experiment, not at all in “art,” not at all in literature,
-but conspicuously and repeatedly in the business of
-living; so that our profit of it is before anything else
-that it was conscious, articulate, vivid—recorded, reflected,
-imaged. The subject of the experiment became
-also at first hand the journalist—much of her
-work being simply splendid journalism—commissioned
-to bring it up to date. She interviewed nobody else,
-but she admirably interviewed herself, and this is
-exactly our good fortune. Her autobiography, her
-letters, her innumerable prefaces, all her expansive
-parentheses and excursions, make up the generous
-report. We have in this form accordingly a literary
-title for her far superseding any derived from her
-creative work. But that is the result of a mere betrayal,
-not the result of an intention. Her masterpiece,
-by a perversity of fate, is the thing she least sat
-down to. It consists—since she is a case—in the mere
-notation of her symptoms, in help given to the study
-of them. To this has the author of “Consuelo” come.</p>
-
-<p>But how in the world indeed was the point so indicated
-<span class='it'>not</span> to be the particular cross-road at which the
-critic should lie in wait for a poor child of the age
-whom preceding ages and generations had almost infernally
-conspired to trap for him, to give up, candidly
-astray, to his hands? If the element of romance for
-which our heroine’s name stands is best represented
-by her personal sequences and solutions, it is sufficiently
-visible that her heredity left her a scant alternative.
-Space fails me for the story of this heredity, queer and
-complicated, the very stuff that stories are made of—a
-chain of generations succeeding each other in confidence
-and joy and with no aid asked of legal or other
-artificial sanctions. The facts are, moreover, sufficiently
-familiar, though here as elsewhere Madame
-Karénine adds to our knowledge. Presented, foreshortened,
-stretching back from the quiet Nohant
-funeral of 1876 to the steps of the throne of King
-Augustus the Strong of Poland, father of Maurice de
-Saxe, great-great-grandfather of Aurore Dupin, it all
-hangs together as a cluster of components more provocative
-than any the great novelist herself ever handled.
-Her pre-natal past was so peopled with <span class='it'>dramatis
-personæ</span> that her future was really called on to supply
-them in such numbers as would preserve the balance.
-The tide of illegitimacy sets straight through the
-series. No one to speak of—Aurore’s father is an exception—seems
-to have had a “regular” paternity.
-Aurore herself squared with regularity but by a month
-or two; the marriage of her parents gave her a bare
-escape. She was brought up by her paternal grandmother
-between a son of her father and a daughter of
-her mother born out of wedlock. It all moves before
-us as a vivid younger world, a world on the whole more
-amused and more amusing than ours. The period
-from the Restoration to the events of 1848 is the
-stretch of time in which, for more reasons than we can
-now go into, French life gives out to those to whom
-its appeal never fails most of its charm—most, at all
-events, of its ancient sociability. Happy is our sense
-of the picturesque Paris unconscious of a future all
-“avenues” and exhibitions; happy our sense of these
-middle years of a great generation, easy and lusty
-despite the ensanguined spring that had gone before.
-They live again, piecing themselves ever so pleasantly
-and strangely together, in Madame Sand’s records
-and references; almost as much as the conscious close
-of the old régime so vaunted by Talleyrand they strike
-us as a season it would have been indispensable to
-know for the measure of what intercourse could richly
-be.</p>
-
-<p>The time was at any rate unable to withhold from
-the wonderful young person growing up at Nohant
-the conditions she was so freely to use as measures of
-her own. Though the motto of her autobiography
-is <span class='it'>Wahrheit und Dichtung</span> quite as much as it had been
-that of Goethe’s, there is a truth beyond any projected
-by her more regular compositions in her evocation
-of the influences of her youth. Upon these influences
-Madame Karénine, who has enjoyed access
-through her heroine’s actual representatives to much
-evidence hitherto unpublished, throws a hundred
-interesting lights. Madame Dupin de Francueil and
-Madame Dupin the younger survive and perform for
-us, “convince” us as we say, better than any Lélia
-or any Consuelo. Our author’s whole treatment of
-her remarkable mother’s figure and history conveniently
-gives the critic the pitch of the great fact about
-her—the formation apparently at a given moment,
-yet in very truth, we may be sure, from far back, of
-the capacity and the determination to live with high
-consistency for herself. What she made of this resolve
-to allow her nature all its chances and how she
-carried on the process—these things are, thanks to the
-immense illustration her genius enabled her to lend
-them, the essence of her story; of which the full
-adumbration is in the detached pictorial way she
-causes her mother to live for us. Motherhood, daughterhood,
-childhood, embarrassed maturity, were phenomena
-she early encountered in her great adventure,
-and nothing is more typical of her energy and sincerity
-than the short work we can scarce help feeling she
-makes of them. It is not that she for a moment
-blinks or dodges them; she weaves them straight in—embarks
-with them indeed as her principal baggage.
-We know to-day from the pages before us everything
-we need to know about her marriage and the troubled
-years that followed; about M. Casimir Dudevant
-and his possible points of view, about her separation,
-her sharp secession, rather, as it first presents itself,
-and her discovery, at a turn of the road as it can only
-be called, of her genius.</p>
-
-<p>She stumbled on this principle, we see, quite by
-accident and as a consequence of the attempt to do the
-very humblest labour, to support herself from day to
-day. It would be difficult to put one’s finger more
-exactly upon a case of genius unaided and unprompted.
-She embarked, as I have called it, on her great voyage
-with no grounds of confidence whatever; she had
-obscurely, unwittingly the spirit of Columbus, but not
-so much even as his exiguous outfit. She found her
-gift of improvisation, found her tropic wealth, by leaping—a
-surprised <span class='it'>conquistador</span> of “style”—straight upon
-the coral strand. No awakened instinct, probably, was
-ever such a blessing to a writer so much in need. This
-instinct was for a long time all her initiation, practically
-all her equipment. The curious thing is that
-she never really arrived at the fruit of it as the result
-of a process, but that she started with the whole thing
-as a Patti or a Mario starts with a voice which <span class='it'>is</span> a
-method, which <span class='it'>is</span> music, and that it was simply the
-train in which she travelled. It was to render her
-as great a service as any supreme faculty ever rendered
-its possessor, quite the same service as the strategic
-eye renders a commander in the field or instant
-courage the attacking soldier: it was to carry her
-through life still more inimitably than through the
-career of authorship. Her books are all rich and
-resonant with it, but they profit by it meagrely compared
-with her character. She walks from first to
-last in music, that is in literary harmonies, of her own
-making, and it is in truth sometimes only, with her
-present biographer to elbow us a little the way, that
-these triumphant sounds permit us a near enough
-approach to the procession to make out quite exactly
-its course.</p>
-
-<p>No part of her career is to my sense so curious as
-this particular sudden bound into the arena. Nothing
-but the indescribable heredity I have spoken of
-appears traceably to have prepared it. We have on
-one side the mere poverty and provinciality of her
-marriage and her early contacts, the crudity of her
-youth and her ignorance (which included so small a
-view of herself that she had begun by looking for a
-future in the bedaubing, for fancy-shops, of little
-boxes and fans); and on the other, at a stride, the full-blown
-distinction of “Valentine” and “Jacques,”
-which had had nothing to lead up to it, we seem to
-make out, but the very rough sketch of a love-affair
-with M. Jules Sandeau. I spoke just now of the possible
-points of view of poor M. Dudevant; at which,
-had we space, it might be of no small amusement to
-glance—of an amusement indeed large and suggestive.
-We see him, surely, in the light of these records, as the
-most “sold” husband in literature, and not at all, one
-feels, by his wife’s assertion of her freedom, but simply
-by her assertion of her mind. He appears to
-have married her for a nobody approved and guaranteed,
-and he found her, on his hands, a sister, as we
-have seen, of Goethe—unless it be but a figure to say
-that he ever “found” her anything. He appears to
-have lived to an advanced age without having really—in
-spite of the lawsuits he lost—comprehended his
-case; not the least singular feature of which had in
-fact positively been the deceptive delay of his fate.
-It was not till after several years of false calm that it
-presented itself in its special form. We see him and his
-so ruthlessly superseded name, never to be gilded by
-the brilliant event, we see him reduced, like a leaf in a
-whirlwind, to a mere vanishing-point.</p>
-
-<p>We deal here, I think, with something very different
-from the usual tittle-tattle about “private” relations,
-for the simple reason that we deal with relations
-foredoomed to publicity by the strange economy involved
-in the play of genius itself. Nothing was ever
-less wasted, from beginning to end, than all this amorous
-experience and all this luxury of woe. The parties
-to it were to make an inveterate use of it, the principal
-party most of all; and what therefore on that marked
-ground concerns the critic is to see what they were appreciably
-to get out of it. The principal party, the
-constant one through all mutations, was alone qualified
-to produce the extract that affects us as final.
-It was by the publication four years since of her letters
-to Alfred de Musset and to Sainte-Beuve, by the appearance
-also of Madame Arvède Barine’s clear compact
-biography of Musset, that we began to find her
-personal history brought nearer to us than her own
-communications had in her lifetime already brought it.
-The story of her relations with Musset is accordingly
-so known that I need only glance at the fact of her
-having—shortly after the highest degree of intimacy
-between them had, in the summer of 1833, established
-itself in Paris—travelled with him to Italy, settled
-with him briefly in Venice, and there passionately
-quarrelled and parted with him—only, however, several
-months later, on their return to France, to renew
-again, to quarrel and to part again, all more passionately,
-if possible, even than before. Madame Karénine,
-besides supplying us with all added light on this
-episode, keeps us abreast of others that were to follow,
-leaves us no more in the dark about Michel de Bourges,
-Félicien Mallefille and Chopin than we had already
-been left about their several predecessors. She is
-commendably lucid on the subject of Franz Liszt,
-impartially examines the case and authoritatively
-dismisses it. Her second volume brings her heroine
-to the eve of the historic departure with Chopin for
-Majorca. We have thus in a convenient form enough
-for one mouthful of entertainment, as well as for
-superabundant reflection.</p>
-
-<p>We have indeed the whole essence of what most
-touches us, for this consists not at all of the quantity
-of the facts, nor even of their oddity: they are practically
-all there from the moment the heroine’s general
-attitude defines itself. That is the solid element—the
-details to-day are smoke. Yet I hasten to add
-that it was in particular by taking her place of an autumn
-evening in the southward-moving diligence with
-Alfred de Musset, it was on this special occasion that
-she gave most the measure of her choice of the consistent,
-even though it so little meant the consequent,
-life. She had reached toward such a life obviously
-in quitting the conjugal roof in 1831—had attacked
-the experiment clumsily, but according to her light,
-by throwing herself on such material support as faculties
-yet untested might furnish, and on such moral
-as several months of the <span class='it'>intimité</span> of Jules Sandeau and
-a briefer taste of that of Prosper Mérimée might further
-contribute. She had done, in other words, what
-she could; subsequent lights show it as not her fault
-that she had not done better. With Musset her
-future took a long stride; emotionally speaking it
-“looked up.” Nothing was wanting in this case—independently
-of what might then have appeared her
-friend’s equal genius—quite ideally to qualify it. He
-was several years her junior, and as she had her husband
-and her children, he had, in the high degree of
-most young Frenchmen of sensibility, his mother. It
-is recorded that with this lady on the eve of the celebrated
-step she quite had the situation, as the phrase
-is, out; which is a note the more in the general, the
-intellectual lucidity. The only other note in fact to
-be added is that of the absence of funds for the undertaking.
-Neither partner had a penny to spare; the
-plan was wholly to “make money,” on a scale, as they
-went. A great deal was in the event, exactly speaking,
-to be made—but the event was at the time far from
-clear to them. The enterprise was in consequence
-purely and simply, with a rounded perfection that
-gives it its value for the critic, an affair of the heart.
-That the heart, taking it as a fully representative
-organ, should fail of no good occasion completely and
-consistently to engage itself was the definite and, as
-appeared, the promising assumption on which everything
-rested. The heart was real life, frank, fearless,
-intelligent and even, so far as might be, intelligible
-life; everything else was stupid as well as poor, muddle
-as well as misery. The heart of course might be
-misery, for nothing was more possible than that life
-predominantly was; but it was at all events the misery
-that is least ignoble.</p>
-
-<p>This was the basis of Madame Sand’s personal
-evolution, of her immense moral energy, for many a
-year; it was a practical system, applied and reapplied,
-and no “inquiry” concerning her has much point save
-as settling what, for our enlightenment and our esteem,
-she made of it. The answer meets us, I think,
-after we have taken in the facts, promptly enough and
-with great clearness, so long as we consider that it is
-not, that it cannot be in the conditions, a simple one.
-She made of it then intellectually a splendid living,
-but she was able to do this only because she was an
-altogether exceptional example of our human stuff.
-It is here that her famous heredity comes in: we see
-what a race-accumulation of “toughness” had been
-required to build her up. Monstrous monarchs and
-bastards of kings, great generals and bastards of
-bastards, courtesans, dancers supple and hard, accomplished
-men and women of the old dead great world,
-seasoned young soldiers of the Imperial epic, grisettes
-of the <span class='it'>pavé de Paris</span>, Parisian to the core; the mixture
-was not quite the blood of people in general, and obviously
-such a final flower of such a stem might well
-fix the attention and appeal to the vigilance of those
-qualified to watch its development. These persons
-would, doubtless, however, as a result of their observation,
-have acquired betimes a sense of the high
-vitality of their young friend. Formed essentially for
-independence and constructed for resistance and survival
-she was to be trusted, as I have hinted, to take
-care of herself: this was always the residuary fact when
-a passion was spent. She took care of Musset, she
-took care of Chopin, took care, in short, through her
-career, of a whole series of nurslings, but never failed,
-under the worst ingratitude, to be by her own elasticity
-still better taken care of. This is why we call her
-anomalous and deprecate any view of her success that
-loses sight of the anomaly. The success was so great
-that but <span class='it'>for</span> the remainder she would be too encouraging.
-She was one in a myriad, and the cluster of circumstances
-is too unlikely to recur.</p>
-
-<p>It is by her success, none the less, we must also remember,
-that we know her; it is this that makes her
-interesting and calls for study. She had all the illumination
-that sensibility, that curiosity, can give, and
-that so ingeniously induces surrender to it; but the too
-numerous weaknesses, vulgarities and penalties of adventure
-and surrender she had only in sufficient degree
-to complete the experience before they shaped themselves
-into the eloquence into which she could always
-reascend. Her eloquence—it is the simplest way to
-explain her—fairly <span class='it'>made</span> her success; and eloquence
-is superlatively rare. When passion can always depend
-upon it to vibrate passion becomes to that extent
-action, and success is nothing but action repeated and
-confirmed. In Madame Sand’s particular case the
-constant recurrence of the malady of passion promoted
-in the most extraordinary way the superior appearance,
-the general expression, of health. It is of course not
-to be denied that there are in her work infirmities and
-disfigurements, odd smutches even, or unwitting drolleries,
-which show a sense on some sides enfeebled.
-The sense of her characters themselves for instance is
-constantly a confused one; they are too often at sea
-as to what is possible and what impossible for what
-we roughly call decent people. Her own categories,
-loose and liberal, are yet ever positive enough; when
-they err it is by excess of indulgence and by absence
-of the humorous vision, a nose for the ridiculous—the
-fatal want, this last almost always, we are reminded,
-the heel of Achilles, in the sentimental, the romantic
-estimate. The general validity of her novels, at any
-rate, I leave impugned, and the feature I have just
-noted in them is but one of the points at which they
-fail of reality. I stick to the history of her personal
-experiment, as the now so numerous documents show
-it; for it is here, and here only, that her felicity is
-amusing and confounding; amusing by the quaintness
-of some of the facts exposed, and yet confounding by
-reason of the beauty mixed with them.</p>
-
-<p>The “affair” with Musset for example has come to
-figure, thanks to the talent of both parties, as one of
-the great affairs in the history of letters; and yet on
-the near view of it now enjoyed we learn that it
-dragged out scarce more than a year. Even this
-measure indeed is excessive, so far as any measure
-serves amid so much that is incoherent. It supposed
-itself to have dropped for upwards of six months,
-during which another connection, another imperious
-heart-history, reigned in its stead. The enumeration
-of these trifles is not, I insist, futile; so that while we
-are about it we shall find an interest in being clear.
-The events of Venice, with those that immediately preceded
-and followed them, distinctly repay inspection
-as an epitome, taken together, of the usual process.
-They appear to contain, as well as an intensity all
-their own, the essence of all that of other occasions.
-The young poet and the young novelist met then,
-appear to have met for the first time, toward the end
-of June 1833, and to have become finally intimate in
-the month of August of that year. They started together
-for Italy at the beginning of the winter and
-were settled—if settled be not too odd a word to use—by
-the end of January in Venice. I neglect the question
-of Musset’s serious illness there, though it is not
-the least salient part of the adventure, and observe
-simply that by the end of March he had started to
-return to Paris, while his friend, remaining behind,
-had yielded to a new affection. This new affection,
-the connection with Pietro Pagello, dates unmistakably
-from before Musset’s departure; and, with the
-completion of “Jacques” and the composition of the
-beautiful “André,” the wonderful “Léone-Léoni” and
-some of the most interesting of the “Lettres d’un
-Voyageur,” constituted the main support of our heroine
-during the spring and early summer. By midsummer
-she had left Italy with Pagello, and they arrive in
-Paris on August 14th. This arrival marks immediately
-the term of their relations, which had by that
-time lasted some six or seven months. Pagello returned
-to Italy, and if they ever met again it was the merest
-of meetings and after long years.</p>
-
-<p>In October, meanwhile, the connection with Musset
-was renewed, and renewed—this is the great point—because
-the sentiments still entertained by each (in
-spite of Pagello, in spite of everything) are stronger
-even than any awkwardness of which either might have
-been conscious. The whole business really is one in
-which we lose our measure alike of awkwardness and
-of grace. The situation is in the hands of comedy—or
-<span class='it'>would</span> be, I should rather say, were it not so distinctly
-predestined to fall, as I have noted, into those
-of the nobler form. It is prolonged till the following
-February, we make out, at furthest, and only after
-having been more than once in the interval threatened
-with violent extinction. It bequeaths us thus in a
-handful of dates a picture than which probably none
-other in the annals of “passion” was ever more suggestive.
-The passion is of the kind that is called
-“immortal”—and so called, wonderful to say, with
-infinite reason and justice. The poems, the letters,
-the diaries, the novels, the unextinguished accents
-and lingering echoes that commemorate it are among
-the treasures of the human imagination. The literature
-of the world is appreciably the richer for it.
-The noblest forms, in a word, on both sides, marked
-it for their own; it was born, according to the adage,
-with a silver spoon in its mouth. It was an affection
-in short transcendent and sublime, and yet the critic
-sees it come and go before he can positively turn
-round. The brief period of some seventeen or eighteen
-months not only affords it all its opportunity, but
-places comfortably in its lap a relation founded on the
-same elements and yet wholly distinct from it. Musset
-occupied in fact but two-thirds of his mistress’s
-time. Pagello overlapped him because Pagello also
-appealed to the heart; but Pagello’s appeal to the heart
-was disposed of as expeditiously. Musset, in the same
-way, succeeded Pagello at the voice of a similar appeal,
-and this claim, in its turn, was polished off in yet
-livelier fashion.</p>
-
-<p>Liveliness is of course the tune of the “gay” career;
-it has always been supposed to relegate to comedy the
-things to which it puts its mark—so that as a series of
-sequences amenable mainly to satire the approximations
-I have made would fall neatly into place. The
-anomaly here, as on other occasions of the same sort
-in Madame Karénine’s volumes, is that the
-facts, as we are brought near to them, strike us as so
-out of relation to the beautiful tone. The effect and
-the achieved dignity are those of tragedy—tragedy
-rearranging, begetting afresh, in its own interest, all
-the elements of ecstasy and despair. How can it not
-be tragedy when this interest is just the interest, which
-I have touched on, of exemplary eloquence? There
-are lights in which the material, with its want of nobleness,
-want of temper, want even of manners, seems
-scarcely life at all, as the civilised conscience understands
-life; and yet it is as the most magnanimous of
-surrenders to life that the whole business is triumphantly
-reflected in the documents. It is not only that
-“La Nuit d’Octobre” is divine, that Madame Sand’s
-letters are superb and that nothing can exceed, in particular,
-the high style of the passage that we now perceive
-Musset to have borrowed from one of them for
-insertion in “On ne Badine pas avec l’Amour”—to the
-extreme profit of the generation which was, for many
-years thereafter, to hear Delaunay exquisitely declaim
-it at the Théâtre Français; it is that, strange to say,
-almost the finest flower of the bouquet is the now-famous
-written “declaration” addressed to Pagello one
-evening by the lady. Musset was ill in bed; he was the
-attendant doctor; and while, watching and ignorant
-of French, he twirled his thumbs or dipped into a book,
-his patient’s companion, on the other side of the table
-and with the lamp between them, dashed off (it took
-time) a specimen of her finest prose, which she then
-folded and handed to him, and which, for perusal more
-at leisure, he carried off in his pocket. It proved
-neither more nor less than one of the pontoon bridges
-which a force engaged in an active campaign holds
-itself ready at any time to throw across a river, and
-was in fact of its kind a stout and beautiful structure.
-It happily spanned at all events the gulf of a short
-acquaintance.</p>
-
-<p>The incident bears a family resemblance to another
-which our biographer finds in her path in the year 1837.
-Having to chronicle the close of the relation with
-Michel de Bourges, from which again her heroine had
-so much to suffer, she has also to mention that this
-catastrophe was precipitated, to all appearance, by
-the contemporaneous dawn of an affection “plus
-douce, moins enthousiaste, moins âpre aussi, et j’espère
-plus durable.” The object of this affection was
-none other than the young man then installed at
-Nohant as preceptor to Madame Sand’s children—but
-as to whom in the event we ask ourselves what by
-this time her notion of measure or durability can have
-become. It is just this element that has positively
-least to do, we seem to make out, with “affection” as
-so practised. Affection in any sense worth speaking
-of <span class='it'>is</span> durability; and it is the repeated impermanence
-of those manifestations of it on behalf of which the
-high horse of “passion” is ridden so hard that makes us
-wonder whether such loves and such licences, in spite
-of the quality of free experience they represent, had
-really anything to do with it. It was surely the last
-thing they contained. Félicien Mallefille may be,
-to his heart’s content, of 1837 and even of a portion
-of 1838; it is Chopin who is of the rest of the year
-and—let us hope our biographer will have occasion to
-show us—of at least the whole of the following. It is
-here that, as I have mentioned, she pauses.</p>
-
-<p>One of the most interesting contributions to her
-subject is the long letter from Balzac to his future
-wife, Madame Hanska, now reproduced in the most
-substantial of the few volumes of his correspondence
-(“Lettres à l’Étrangère, 1833-1842,” published 1899)
-and printed by Madame Karénine. The author, finding
-himself near Nohant in the spring of 1838, went
-over to pay his illustrious colleague a visit and spent
-more than a day in sustained conversation with her.
-He had the good fortune to find her alone, so that they
-could endlessly talk and smoke by the fire, and nothing
-can be all at once more vivid, more curious and more
-judicious than his immediate report of the occasion.
-It lets into the whole question of his hostess’s character
-and relations—inevitably more or less misrepresented
-by the party most involved—air and light and truth;
-it fixes points and re-establishes proportions. It shows
-appearances confronted, in a word, with Balzac’s
-strong sense of the real and offers the grateful critic
-still another chance to testify for that precious gift.
-This same critic’s mind, it must be added, rests with
-complacency on the vision thus evoked, the way that
-for three days, from five o’clock in the afternoon till
-five in the morning, the wonderful friends must have
-had things out. For once, we feel sure, fundamental
-questions were not shirked. As regards his comrade
-at any rate Balzac puts his finger again and again on
-the truth and the idiosyncrasy. “She is not <span class='it'>aimable</span>
-and in consequence will always find it difficult to be
-loved.” He adds—and it is here that he comes nearest
-straightening the question—that she has in character
-all the leading marks of the man and as few as possible
-those of his counterpart. He implies that, though
-judged as a woman she may be puzzling enough, she
-hangs together perfectly if judged as a man. She <span class='it'>is</span>
-a man, he repeats, “and all the more that she wants
-to be, that she has sunk the woman, that she isn’t
-one. Women attract, and she repels; and, as I am
-much of a man, if this is the effect she produces on me
-she must produce it on men who are like me—so that
-she will always be unhappy.” He qualifies as justly,
-I may parenthesise, her artistic side, the limits of which,
-he moreover intimates, she had herself expressed to
-him. “She has neither intensity of conception, nor
-the constructive gift, nor the faculty of reaching the
-truth”—Balzac’s own deep dye of the truth—“nor
-the art of the pathetic. But she holds that, without
-knowing the French language, she has <span class='it'>style</span>. And
-it’s true.”</p>
-
-<p>The light of mere evidence, the light of such researches
-as Madame Karénine’s, added to her so
-copious correspondence and autobiography, makes
-Madame Sand so much of a riddle that we grasp at
-Balzac’s authoritative word as at an approach to a
-solution. It is, strange to say, by reading another
-complexity into her image that we finally simplify it.
-The riddle consists in the irreconcilability of her distinction
-and her vulgarity. Vulgar somehow in spite
-of everything is the record of so much taking and
-tasting and leaving, so much publicity and palpability
-of “heart,” so much experience reduced only to the
-terms of so many more or less greasy males. And not
-only vulgar but in a manner grotesque—from the moment,
-that is, that the experience is presented to us
-with any emphasis in the name of terror and pity. It
-was not a passive but an active situation, that of a
-nature robust and not too fastidious, full at all times
-of resistance and recovery. No history gives us really
-more ground to protest against the new fashion, rife
-in France, of transporting “love,” as there mainly
-represented, to the air of morals and of melancholy.
-The fashion betrays only the need to rejuvenate, at a
-considerable cost of falsity, an element in connection
-with which levity is felt either to have exhausted itself
-or to look thin as a motive. It is in the light of levity
-that many of the facts presented by Madame Karénine
-are most intelligible, and that is the circumstance
-awkward for sensibility and for all the graces it is
-invited to show.</p>
-
-<p>The scene quite changes when we cease to expect
-these graces. As a man Madame Sand was admirable—especially
-as a man of the dressing-gown and slippers
-order, easy of approach and of <span class='it'>tutoiement</span>, rubbing
-shoulders with queer company and not superstitiously
-haunted by the conception of the gentleman. There
-have been many men of genius, delightful, prodigal
-and even immortal, who squared but scantly with that
-conception, and it is a company to which our heroine
-is simply one of the most interesting of recruits. She
-has in it all her value and loses none of her charm.
-Above all she becomes in a manner comprehensible, as
-any frank Bohemian is comprehensible. We have
-only to imagine the Bohemian really endowed, the
-Bohemian, that is, both industrious and wise, to get
-almost all her formula. She keeps here and there a
-feminine streak—has at moments an excess of volubility
-and too great an insistence on having been in
-the right; but for the rest, as Balzac says, the character,
-confronted with the position, is an explanation.
-“Son mâle,” he tells Madame Hanska, “était rare”—than
-which nothing could have been more natural.
-Yet for this masculine counterpart—so difficult to find—she
-ingenuously spent much of her early life in looking.
-That the search was a mistake is what constitutes,
-in all the business of which the Musset episode
-is the type, the only, the real melancholy, the real
-moral tragedy.</p>
-
-<p>For all such mistakes, none the less, the whole lesson
-of the picture is precisely in the disconcerting success
-of her system. Everything was at the start against
-that presumption; but everything at the end was to
-indicate that she was not to have been defeated.
-Others might well have been, and the banks of the
-stream of her career are marked, not invisibly, with
-mouldering traces of the less lucky or the less buoyant;
-but her attitude as life went on was more and more
-that of showing how she profited of all things for wisdom
-and sympathy, for a general expertness and
-nobleness. These forces, all clarified to an admirable
-judgment, kept her to the last day serene and superior,
-and they are one of the reasons why the monument
-before us is felt not to be misplaced. There should
-always be a monument to those who have achieved a
-prodigy. What greater prodigy than to have bequeathed
-in such mixed elements, to have principally
-made up of them, the affirmation of an unprecedented
-intensity of life? For though this intensity was one
-that broke down in each proposed exhibition the general
-example remains, incongruously, almost the best
-we can cite. And all we can say is that this brings
-us back once more to the large manner, the exceptional
-energy and well-nigh monstrous vitality, of the individual
-concerned. Nothing is so absurd as a half-disguise,
-and Madame Sand’s abiding value will probably
-be in her having given her sex, for its new evolution
-and transformation, the real standard and measure of
-change. This evolution and this transformation are
-all round us unmistakable; the change is in the air;
-women are turned more and more to looking at life as
-men look at it and to getting from it what men get.
-In this direction their aim has been as yet comparatively
-modest and their emulation low; the challenge
-they have hitherto picked up is but the challenge
-of the “average” male. The approximation of the
-extraordinary woman has been practically, in other
-words, to the ordinary man. George Sand’s service
-is that she planted the flag much higher—her own
-approximation at least was to the extraordinary. She
-reached him, she surpassed him, and she showed how,
-with native dispositions, the thing could be done. So
-far as we have come these new records will live as the
-precious text-book of the business.</p>
-
-<hr class='footnotemark'/>
-
-<table style='margin:0 4em 0 0;' summary='footnote_6'>
-<colgroup>
-<col span='1' style='width: 3em;'/>
-<col span='1'/>
-</colgroup>
-<tr><td style='vertical-align:top;'>
-<div id='f6'><a href='#r6'>[6]</a></div>
-</td><td>
-
-<p>“George Sand, sa Vie et ses Œuvres, 1804-1876.” Paris, 1899.</p>
-
-</td></tr>
-</table>
-
-<div><span class='pagenum'><a name='Page_214' id='Page_214'>214</a></span><h1 id='t7388'>GEORGE SAND<br/>1914</h1></div>
-
-<p>It has much occurred to us, touching those further
-liberations of the subordinate sex which fill our ears
-just now with their multitudinous sound, that the promoters
-of the great cause make a good deal less than
-they might of one of their very first contentious
-“assets,” if it may not indeed be looked at as quite
-the first; and thereby fail to pass about, to the general
-elation, a great vessel of truth. Is this because
-the life and example of George Sand are things unknown
-or obscure to the talkers and fighters of to-day—present
-and vivid as they were to those of the last
-mid-century, or because of some fear that to invoke
-victory in her name might, for particular, for even
-rueful reasons, not be altogether a safe course? It is
-difficult to account otherwise for the fact that so
-ample and embossed a shield, and one that shines too
-at last with a strong and settled lustre, is rather left
-hanging on the wall than seen to cover advances or
-ward off attacks in the fray. Certain it is that if a
-lapse of tradition appeared at one time to have left
-a little in the lurch the figure of the greatest of all
-women of letters, of Letters in truth most exactly, as
-we hold her surely to have been, that explanation
-should have begun to fail, some fourteen years ago,
-with the publication of the first volume of Madame
-Wladimir Karénine’s biography, and even in spite of
-the fact that this singularly interesting work was not
-till a twelvemonth ago to arrive at the dignity of a
-third,<a id='r7'/><a href='#f7' style='text-decoration:none'><sup><span style='font-size:0.9em'>[7]</span></sup></a> which leaves it, for all its amplitude, still incomplete.
-The latest instalment, now before us, follows
-its predecessors after an interval that had alarmed
-us not a little for the proper consummation; and the
-story is even now carried but to the eve of the Revolution
-of 1848, after which its heroine (that of the Revolution,
-we may almost say, as well as of the narrative)
-was to have some twenty-seven years to live. Madame
-Karénine appears to be a Russian critic writing under
-a pseudonym; portions of her overbrimming study
-have appeared dispersedly, we gather, in Russian
-periodicals, but the harmonious French idiom, of which
-she is all-sufficient mistress, welds them effectively together,
-and the result may already be pronounced a
-commemorative monument of all but the first order.
-The first order in such attempts has for its sign a
-faculty of selection and synthesis, not to say a sense of
-composition and proportion, which neither the chronicler
-nor the critic in these too multiplied pages is able
-consistently to exhibit; though on the other hand they
-represent quite the high-water mark of patience and
-persistence, of the ideal biographic curiosity. They
-enjoy further the advantage of the documented state
-in a degree that was scarce to have been hoped for,
-every source of information that had remained in reserve—and
-these proved admirably numerous—having
-been opened to our inquirer by the confidence of the
-illustrious lady’s two great-granddaughters, both alive
-at the time the work was begun. Add to this that
-there has grown up in France a copious George Sand
-literature, a vast body of illustrative odds and ends,
-relics and revelations, on which the would-be propagator
-of the last word is now free to draw—always
-with discrimination. Ideally, well-nigh overwhelmingly
-informed we may at present therefore hold ourselves;
-and were that state all that is in question for
-us nothing could exceed our advantage.</p>
-
-<hr class='footnotemark'/>
-
-<table style='margin:0 4em 0 0;' summary='footnote_7'>
-<colgroup>
-<col span='1' style='width: 3em;'/>
-<col span='1'/>
-</colgroup>
-<tr><td style='vertical-align:top;'>
-<div id='f7'><a href='#r7'>[7]</a></div>
-</td><td>
-
-<p>George Sand, sa Vie et ses Œuvres, vol. iii. (1838-1848). Par Wladimir
-Karénine. Paris, Plon, 1912.</p>
-
-</td></tr>
-</table>
-
-<h2 class='nobreak' id='t7464'>I</h2>
-
-<p>Just the beauty and the interest of the case are,
-however, that such a condition by no means exhausts
-our opportunity, since in no like connection could it
-be less said that to know most is most easily or most
-complacently to conclude. May we not decidedly feel
-the sense and the “lesson,” the suggestive spread, of
-a career as a thing scarce really to be measured when
-the effect of more and more acquaintance with it is
-simply to make the bounds of appreciation recede?
-This is why the figure now shown us, blazed upon to
-the last intensity by the lamplight of investigation,
-and with the rank oil consumed in the process fairly
-filling the air, declines to let us off from an hour of
-that contemplation which yet involves discomfiture
-for us so long as certain lucidities on our own part,
-certain serenities of assurance, fail correspondingly to
-play up. We feel ourselves so outfaced, as it were;
-we somehow want in any such case to meet and match
-the assurances with which the subject himself or herself
-immitigably bristles, and are nevertheless by no
-means certain that our bringing up premature forces
-or trying to reply with lights of our own may not check
-the current of communication, practically without
-sense for us unless flowing at its fullest. At our biographer’s
-rate of progress we shall still have much to
-wait for; but it can meanwhile not be said that we
-have not plenty to go on with. To this may be added
-that the stretch of “life,” apart from the more concrete
-exhibition, already accounted for by our three
-volumes (if one may discriminate between “production”
-and life to a degree that is in this connection
-exceptionally questionable), represents to all appearance
-the most violently and variously agitated face
-of the career. The establishment of the Second
-Empire ushered in for Madame Sand, we seem in
-course of preparation to make out, the long period
-already more or less known to fame, that is to criticism,
-as the period of her great placidity, her more
-or less notorious appeasement; a string of afternoon
-hours as hazily golden as so many reigns of Antonines,
-when her genius had mastered the high art of acting
-without waste, when a happy play of inspiration had
-all the air, so far as our spectatorship went, of filling
-her large capacity and her beautiful form to the brim,
-and when the gathered fruit of what she had dauntlessly
-done and been heaped itself upon her table as
-a rich feast for memory and philosophy. So she came
-in for the enjoyment of all the <span class='it'>sagesse</span> her contemporaries
-(with only such exceptions as M. Paul de Musset
-and Madame Louise Colet and the few discordant
-pleaders for poor Chopin) finally rejoiced on their side
-to acclaim; the sum of her aspects “composing,” arranging
-themselves in relation to each other, with a
-felicity that nothing could exceed and that swept with
-great glosses and justifications every aspect of the
-past. To few has it been given to “pay” so little,
-according to <span class='it'>our</span> superstition of payment, in proportion
-to such enormities of ostensibly buying or borrowing—which
-fact, we have to recognise, left an existence
-as far removed either from moral, or intellectual, or
-even social bankruptcy as if it had proceeded from
-the first but on the most saving lines.</p>
-
-<p>That is what remains on the whole most inimitable
-in the picture—the impression it conveys of an art of
-life by which the rough sense of the homely adage that
-we may not both eat our cake and have it was to be
-signally falsified; this wondrous mistress of the matter
-strikes us so as having consumed <span class='it'>her</span> refreshment, her
-vital supply, to the last crumb, so far as the provision
-meant at least freedom and ease, and yet having ever
-found on the shelf the luxury in question undiminished.
-Superlatively interesting the idea of how this result
-was, how it <span class='it'>could</span> be, achieved—given the world as
-we on our side of the water mainly know it; and it is
-as meeting the mystery that the monument before us
-has doubtless most significance. We shall presently see,
-in the light of our renewed occasion, how the question
-is solved; yet we may as well at once say that this will
-have had for its conclusion to present our heroine—mainly
-figuring as a novelist of the romantic or sentimental
-order once pre-eminent but now of shrunken
-credit—simply as a supreme case of the successful
-practice of life itself. We have to distinguish for this
-induction after a fashion in which neither Madame
-Sand nor her historian has seemed at all positively
-concerned to distinguish; the indifference on the historian’s
-part sufficiently indicated, we feel, by the complacency
-with which, to be thorough, she explores
-even the most thankless tracts of her author’s fictional
-activity, telling the tales over as she comes to them on
-much the same scale on which she unfolds the situations
-otherwise documented. The writer of “Consuelo”
-and “Claudie” and a hundred other things is
-to this view a literary genius whose output, as our
-current term so gracefully has it, the exercise of an
-inordinate personal energy happens to mark; whereas
-the exercise of personal energy is for ourselves what
-most reflects the genius—recorded though this again
-chances here to be through the inestimable fact of the
-possession of style. Of the action of that perfect, that
-only real preservative in face of other perils George
-Sand is a wondrous example; but her letters alone
-suffice to show it, and the style of her letters is no more
-than the breath of her nature, her so remarkable one,
-in which expression and aspiration were much the same
-function. That is what it is really to <span class='it'>have</span> style—when
-you set about performing the act of life. The
-forms taken by this latter impulse then cover everything;
-they serve for your adventures not less than
-they may serve at their most refined pitch for your
-Lélias and your Mauprats.</p>
-
-<p>This means accordingly, we submit, that those of us
-who at the present hour “feel the change,” as the
-phrase is, in the computation of the feminine range,
-with the fullest sense of what it may portend, shirk
-at once our opportunity and our obligation in not
-squeezing for its last drop of testimony such an exceptional
-body of illustration as we here possess. It has
-so much to say to any view—whether, in the light of
-old conventions, the brightest or the darkest—of what
-may either glitter or gloom in a conquest of every
-license by our contemporaries of the contending sex,
-that we scarce strain a point in judging it a provision
-of the watchful fates for this particular purpose and
-profit: its answers are so full to most of our uncertainties.
-It is to be noted of course that the creator
-of Lélia and of Mauprat was on the one hand a woman
-of an extraordinary gift and on the other a woman
-resignedly and triumphantly voteless—doing without
-that boon so beautifully, for free development and the
-acquisition and application of “rights,” that we seem
-to see her sardonically smile, before our present tumults,
-as at a rumpus about nothing; as if women
-need set such preposterous machinery in motion for
-obtaining things which she had found it of the first
-facility, right and left, to stretch forth her hand and
-take. There it is that her precedent stands out—apparently
-to a blind generation; so that some little
-insistence on the method of her appropriations would
-seem to be peculiarly in place. It was a method that
-may be summed up indeed in a fairly simple, if comprehensive,
-statement: it consisted in her dealing with
-life exactly as if she had been a man—exactly not
-being too much to say. Nature certainly had contributed
-on her behalf to this success; it had given her
-a constitution and a temperament, the kind of health,
-the kind of mind, the kind of courage, that might most
-directly help—so that she had but to convert these
-strong matters into the kind of experience. The
-writer of these lines remembers how a distinguished
-and intimate friend of her later years, who was a very
-great admirer, said of her to him just after her death
-that her not having been born a man seemed, when
-one knew her, but an awkward accident: she had been
-to all intents and purposes so fine and frank a specimen
-of the sex. This anomalous native turn, it may be
-urged, can have no general application—women cannot
-be men by the mere trying or by calling themselves
-“as good”; they must have been provided with what
-we have just noted as the outfit. The force of George
-Sand’s exhibition consorts, we contend, none the less
-perfectly with the logic of the consummation awaiting
-us, if a multitude of signs are to be trusted, in a more
-or less near future: that effective repudiation of the
-<span class='it'>distinctive</span>, as to function and opportunity, as to working
-and playing activity, for which the definite removal
-of immemorial disabilities is but another name.
-We are in presence already of a practical shrinkage of
-the distinctive, at the rapidest rate, and that it must
-shrink till nothing of it worth mentioning be left,
-what is this but a war-cry (presenting itself also indeed
-as a plea for peace) with which our ears are familiar?
-Unless the suppression of the distinctive, however, is
-to work to the prejudice, as we may fairly call it, of
-men, drawing them over to the feminine type rather
-than drawing women over to theirs—which is not
-what seems most probable—the course of the business
-will be a virtual undertaking on the part of the half of
-humanity acting ostensibly for the first time in freedom
-to annex the male identity, that of the other half,
-so far as may be at all contrivable, to its own cluster
-of elements. Individuals are in great world and race
-movements negligible, and if that undertaking must
-inevitably appeal to different recruits with a differing
-cogency, its really enlisting its army or becoming reflected,
-to a perfectly conceivable vividness, in the
-mass, is all our demonstration requires. At that
-point begins the revolution, the shift of the emphasis
-from the idea of woman’s weakness to the idea of her
-strength—which is where the emphasis has lain, from
-far back, by his every tradition, on behalf of man;
-and George Sand’s great value, as we say, is that she
-gives us the vision, gives us the particular case, of the
-shift achieved, displayed with every assurance and
-working with every success.</p>
-
-<p>The answer of her life to the question of what an
-effective annexation of the male identity may amount
-to, amount to in favouring conditions certainly, but
-in conditions susceptible to the highest degree of encouragement
-and cultivation, leaves nothing to be
-desired for completeness. This is the moral of her
-tale, the beauty of what she does for us—that at no
-point whatever of her history or her character do their
-power thus to give satisfaction break down; so that
-what we in fact on the whole most recognise is not the
-extension she gives to the feminine nature, but the
-richness that she adds to the masculine. It is not
-simply that she could don a disguise that gaped at
-the seams, that she could figure as a man of the mere
-carnival or pantomime variety, but that she made so
-virile, so efficient and homogeneous a one. Admirable
-child of the old order as we find her, she was far
-from our late-coming theories and fevers—by the
-reason simply of her not being reduced to them; as
-to which nothing about her is more eloquent than her
-living at such ease with a conception of the main relevance
-of women that is viewed among ourselves as
-antiquated to “quaintness.” She could afford the
-traditional and sentimental, the old romantic and historic
-theory of the function most natural to them,
-since she entertained it exactly as a man would. It is
-not that she fails again and again to represent her
-heroines as doing the most unconventional things—upon
-these they freely embark; but they never in the
-least do them for themselves, themselves as the “sex,”
-they do them altogether for men. Nothing could well
-be more interesting thus than the extraordinary union
-of the pair of opposites in her philosophy of the relation
-of the sexes—than the manner in which her immense
-imagination, the imagination of a man for range
-and abundance, intervened in the whole matter for
-the benefit, absolutely, of the so-called stronger party,
-or to liberate her sisters up to the point at which men
-may most gain and least lose by the liberation. She
-read the relation essentially in the plural term—the
-relations, and her last word about these was as far as
-possible from being that they are of minor importance
-to women. Nothing in her view could exceed their
-importance to women—it left every other far behind it;
-and nothing that could make for authority in her, no
-pitch of tone, no range of personal inquiry nor wealth
-of experience, no acquaintance with the question that
-might derive light from free and repeated adventure,
-but belonged to the business of driving this argument
-home.</p>
-
-<h2 class='nobreak' id='t7716'>II</h2>
-
-<p>Madame Karénine’s third volume is copiously devoted
-to the period of her heroine’s intimacy with
-Chopin and to the events surrounding this agitated
-friendship, which largely fill the ten years precedent
-to ’48. Our author is on all this ground overwhelmingly
-documented, and enlisted though she is in the service
-of the more successful party to the association—in the
-sense of Madame Sand’s having heartily outlived and
-survived, not to say professionally and brilliantly
-“used,” it—the great composer’s side of the story
-receives her conscientious attention. Curious and
-interesting in many ways, these reflections of George
-Sand’s middle life afford above all the most pointed
-illustration of the turn of her personal genius, her
-aptitude for dealing with men, in the intimate relation,
-exactly after the fashion in which numberless
-celebrated men have contributed to their reputation,
-not to say crowned their claim to superiority, by dealing
-with women. This being above all the note of her
-career, with its vivid show of what such dealing could
-mean for play of mind, for quickening of gift, for general
-experience and, as we say, intellectual development,
-for determination of philosophic bent and
-education of character and fertilisation of fancy, we
-seem to catch the whole process in the fact, under the
-light here supplied us, as we catch it nowhere else.
-It gives us in this application endlessly much to consider—it
-is in itself so replete and rounded a show;
-we at once recognise moreover how comparatively
-little it matters that such works as “Lucrezia Floriani”
-and “Un Hiver à Majorque” should have proceeded
-from it, cast into the shade as these are, on
-our biographer’s evidence, by a picture of concomitant
-energies still more attaching. It is not here by
-the force of her gift for rich improvisation, beautiful
-as this was, that the extraordinary woman holds us,
-but by the force of her ability to act herself out, given
-the astounding quantities concerned in this self.
-That energy too, we feel, was in a manner an improvisation—so
-closely allied somehow are both the currents,
-the flow of literary composition admirably instinctive
-and free, and the handling power, as we are
-constantly moved to call it, the flow of a splendid
-intelligence all the while at its fullest expressional ease,
-for the <span class='it'>actual</span> situations created by her, for whatever
-it might be that vitally confronted her. Of how to
-bring about, or at the least find one’s self “in for,” an
-inordinate number of situations, most of them of the
-last difficulty, and then deal with them on the spot,
-in the narrowest quarters as it were, with an eloquence
-and a plausibility that does them and one’s own nature
-at once a sort of ideal justice, the demonstration
-here is the fullest—as of what it was further to have her
-unfailing verbal as well as her unfailing moral inspiration.
-What predicament could have been more of
-an hourly strain for instance, as we cannot but suppose,
-than her finding herself inevitably accompanied
-by her two children during the stay at Majorca made
-by Chopin in ’38 under her protection? The victory
-of assurance and of the handling power strikes us as
-none the less never an instant in doubt, that being
-essentially but over the general <span class='it'>kind</span> of inconvenience
-or embarrassment involved for a mother and a friend
-in any real consistency of attempt to carry things off
-male fashion. We do not, it is true, see a man as a
-mother, any more than we easily see a woman as a
-gentleman—and least of all perhaps in either case as
-an awkwardly placed one; but we see Madame Sand
-as a sufficiently bustling, though rather a rough and
-ready, father, a father accepting his charge and doing
-the best possible under the circumstances; the truth
-being of course that the circumstances never <span class='it'>can</span> be,
-even at the worst, or still at the best, the best for
-parental fondness, so awkward for him as for a mother.</p>
-
-<p>What call, again, upon every sort of presence of
-mind could have been livelier than the one made by
-the conditions attending and following the marriage
-of young Solange Dudevant to the sculptor Clésinger
-in 1846, when our heroine, summoned by the stress of
-events both to take responsible action and to rise to
-synthetic expression, in a situation, that is in presence
-of a series of demonstrations on her daughter’s part,
-that we seem to find imaginable for a perfect dramatic
-adequacy only in that particular home circle, fairly
-surpassed herself by her capacity to “meet” everything,
-meet it much incommoded, yet undismayed,
-unabashed and unconfuted, and have on it all, to her
-great advantage, the always prodigious last word?
-The elements of this especial crisis claim the more
-attention through its having been, as a test of her
-powers, decidedly the most acute that she was in her
-whole course of life to have traversed, more acute
-even, because more complicated, than the great occasion
-of her rupture with Alfred de Musset, at Venice
-in ’35, on which such a wealth of contemplation and
-of ink has been expended. Dramatic enough in their
-relation to each other certainly those immortal circumstances,
-immortal so far as immortalised on either
-side by genius and passion: Musset’s return, ravaged
-and alone, to Paris; his companion’s transfer of her
-favour to Pietro Pagello, whom she had called in to
-attend her friend medically in illness and whose intervention,
-so far from simplifying the juncture, complicated
-it in a fashion probably scarce paralleled in
-the history of the erotic relation; her retention of
-Pagello under her protection for the rest of her period
-in Venice; her marvellously domesticated state, in
-view of the literary baggage, the collection of social
-standards, even taking these but at what they were,
-and the general amplitude of personality, that she
-brought into residence with her; the conveyance of
-Pagello to Paris, on her own return, and the apparent
-signification to him at the very gate that her countenance
-was then and there withdrawn. This was a
-brilliant case for her—of coming off with flying colours;
-but it strikes us as a mere preliminary flourish of the
-bow or rough practice of scales compared to the high
-virtuosity which Madame Karénine’s new material in
-respect to the latter imbroglio now enables us ever so
-gratefully to estimate. The protagonist’s young children
-were in the Venetian crisis quite off the scene, and
-on occasions subsequent to the one we now glance at
-were old enough and, as we seem free to call it, initiated
-enough not to solicit our particular concern for them;
-whereas at the climax of the connection with Chopin
-they were of the perfect age (which was the fresh
-marriageable in the case of Solange) to engage our best
-anxiety, let alone their being of a salience of sensibility
-and temper to leave no one of their aspects negligible.
-That their parent should not have found herself conclusively
-“upset,” sickened beyond repair, or otherwise
-morally bankrupt, on her having to recognise in
-her daughter’s hideous perversity and depravity, as
-we learn these things to have been, certain inevitabilities
-of consequence from the social air of the maternal
-circle, is really a monumental fact in respect to
-our great woman’s elasticity, her instinct for never
-abdicating by mere discouragement. Here in especial
-we get the broad male note—it being so exactly the
-manly part, and so very questionably the womanly,
-not to have to draw from such imputations of responsibility
-too crushing a self-consciousness. Of the
-extent and variety of danger to which the enjoyment
-of a moral tone could be exposed and yet superbly survive
-Madame Karénine’s pages give us the measure;
-they offer us in action the very ideal of an exemplary
-triumph of character and mind over one of the very
-highest tides of private embarrassment that it is well
-possible to conceive. And it is no case of that <span class='it'>passive</span>
-acceptance of deplorable matters which has abounded
-in the history of women, even distinguished ones,
-whether to the pathetic or to the merely scandalous
-effect; the acceptance is active, constructive, almost
-exhilarated by the resources of affirmation and argument
-that it has at its command. The whole instance
-is sublime in its sort, thanks to the acuteness of <span class='it'>all</span>
-its illustrative sides, the intense interest of which loses
-nothing in the hands of our chronicler; who perhaps,
-however, reaches off into the vast vague of Chopin’s
-native affiliations and references with an energy with
-which we find it a little difficult to keep step.</p>
-
-<p>In speaking as we have done of George Sand’s “use”
-of each twist of her road as it came—a use which we
-now recognise as the very thriftiest—we touch on that
-principle of vital health in her which made nothing
-that might by the common measure have been called
-one of the graver dilemmas, that is one of the checks
-to the continuity of life, really matter. What this
-felicity most comes to in fact is that doing at any cost
-the work that lies to one’s hand shines out again and
-yet again as the saving secret of the soul. She affirmed
-her freedom right and left, but her most characteristic
-assertion of it throughout was just in the
-luxury of labour. The exhaustive account we at any
-rate now enjoy of the family life surrounding her during
-the years here treated of and as she had constituted
-it, the picture of all the queer conflicting sensibilities
-engaged, and of the endless ramifications and
-reflections provided for these, leaves us nothing to
-learn on that congested air, that obstructive medium
-for the range of the higher tone, which the lady of
-Nohant was so at her “objective” happiest, even if
-at her superficially, that is her nervously, most flurried
-and depressed, in bravely breasting. It is as if the
-conditions there and in Paris during these several years
-had been consistently appointed by fate to throw into
-relief the applications of a huge facility, a sort of
-universal readiness, with a rare intelligence to back it.
-Absolutely nothing was absent, or with all the data
-<span class='it'>could</span> have been, that might have bewildered a weaker
-genius into some lapse of eloquence or of industry;
-everything that might have overwhelmed, or at least
-have disconcerted, the worker who could throw off the
-splendid “Lucrezia Floriani” in the thick of battle
-came upon her at once, inspiring her to show that on
-her system of health and cheer, of experiential economy,
-as we may call it, to be disconcerted was to be lost.
-To be lacerated and calumniated was in comparison
-a trifle; with a certain sanity of reaction these things
-became as naught, for the sanity of reaction was but
-the line of consistency, the theory and attitude of
-sincerity kept at the highest point. The artist in
-general, we need scarcely remind ourselves, is in a
-high degree liable to arrive at the sense of what he may
-have seen or felt, or said or suffered, by working it out
-as a subject, casting it into some form prescribed by his
-art; but even here he in general knows limits—unless
-perchance he be loose as Byron was loose, or possess
-such a power of disconnection, such a clear stand-off of
-the intelligence, as accompanied the experiments of
-Goethe. Our own experiments, we commonly feel, are
-comparatively timid, just as we can scarce be said, in
-the homely phrase, to serve our esthetic results of them
-hot and hot; we are too conscious of a restrictive instinct
-about the conditions we may, in like familiar
-language let ourselves in for, there being always the
-question of what we should be able “intellectually” to
-show for them. The life of the author of “Lucrezia
-Floriani” at its most active may fairly be described
-as an immunity from restrictive instincts more ably
-cultivated than any we know. Again and yet again
-we note the positive premium so put upon the surrender
-to sensibility, and how, since the latter was
-certain to spread to its maximum and to be admired
-in proportion to its spread, some surrender was always
-to have been worth while. “Lucrezia Floriani” ought
-to have been rather measurably bad—lucidity, harmony,
-maturity, definiteness of sense, being so likely
-to fail it in the troubled air in which it was born.
-Yet how can we do less than applaud a composition
-throwing off as it goes such a passage as the splendid
-group of pages cited by Madame Karénine from the
-incident of the heroine’s causing herself to be rowed
-over to the island in her Italian lake on that summer
-afternoon when the sense of her situation had become
-sharp for her to anguish, in order to take stock of the
-same without interruption and see, as we should say
-to-day, where she is? The whole thing has the grand
-manner and the noblest eloquence, reaching out as
-it does on the spot to the lesson and the moral of the
-convulsions that have been prepared in the first instance
-with such complacency, and illustrating in perfection
-the author’s faculty for the clear re-emergence
-and the prompt or, as we may call it, the paying reaction.
-The case is put for her here as into its final
-nutshell: you may “live” exactly as you like, that is
-live in perfect security and fertility, when such breadth
-of rendering awaits your simply sitting down to it. Is
-it not true, we say, that without her breadth our wonderful
-woman would have been “nowhere”?—whereas
-with it she is effectively and indestructibly at any
-point of her field where she may care to pretend to
-stand.</p>
-
-<p>This biographer, I must of course note, discriminates
-with delicacy among her heroine’s felicities and mistakes,
-recognising that some of the former, as a latent
-awkwardness in them developed, inevitably parted
-with the signs that distinguished them from the latter;
-but I think we feel, as the instances multiply, that no
-regret could have equalled for us that of our not having
-the display vivid and complete. Once all the elements
-of the scarce in advance imaginable were there it
-would have been a pity that they should not offer us
-the show of their full fruition. What more striking
-show, for example, than that, as recorded by Madame
-Karénine in a footnote, the afflicted parent of Solange
-should have lived to reproduce, or rather, as she would
-herself have said, to “arrange” the girlish character
-and conduct of that young person, so humiliating at the
-time to any near relation, let alone a mother, in the
-novel of “Mademoiselle Merquem,” where the truth
-to the original facts and the emulation of the graceless
-prime “effects” are such as our author can vouch
-for? The fiction we name followed indeed after long
-years, but during the lifetime of the displeasing daughter
-and with an ease of reference to the past that may
-fairly strike us as the last word of superiority to blighting
-association. It is quite as if the close and amused
-matching of the character and its play in the novel
-with the wretched old realities, those that had broken
-in their day upon the scared maternal vision, had been
-a work of ingenuity attended with no pang. The
-example is interesting as a measure of the possible
-victory of time in a case where we might have supposed
-the one escape to have been by forgetting.
-Madame Sand remembers to the point of gratefully—gratefully
-as an artist—reconstituting; we in fact feel
-her, as the irrepressible, the “healthy” artist, positively
-to enjoy so doing. Thus it clearly defined itself for
-her in the fulness of time that, humiliating, to use our
-expression, as the dreadful Solange might have been
-and have incessantly remained, she herself had never
-in the least consented to the stupidity or sterility of
-humiliation. So it could be that the free mind and the
-free hand were ever at her service. A beautiful indifferent
-agility, a power to cast out that was at least
-proportioned to the power to take in, hangs about all
-this and meets us in twenty connections. Who of her
-readers has forgotten the harmonious dedication—her
-inveterate dedications have always, like her clear
-light prefaces, the last grace—of “Jeanne,” so anciently,
-so romantically readable, to her faithful Berrichon
-servant who sits spinning by the fire? “Vous ne savez
-pas lire, ma paisible amie,” but that was not to prevent
-the association of her name with the book, since both
-her own daughter and the author’s are in happy possession
-of the art and will be able to pass the entertainment
-on to her. This in itself is no more than a
-sign of the writer’s fine democratic ease, which she
-carried at all times to all lengths, and of her charming
-habit of speech; but it somehow becomes further illustrational,
-testifying for the manner in which genius,
-if it be but great enough, lives its life at small cost,
-when we learn that after all, by a turn of the hand,
-the “paisible amie” was, under provocation, bundled
-out of the house as if the beautiful relation had not
-meant half of what appeared. Françoise and her
-presence were dispensed with, but the exquisite lines
-remain, which we would not be without for the world.</p>
-
-<h2 class='nobreak' id='t8042'>III</h2>
-
-<p>The various situations determined for the more eminent
-of George Sand’s intimate associates would always
-be independently interesting, thanks to the intrinsic
-appeal of these characters and even without the light
-reflected withal on the great agent herself; which is
-why poor Chopin’s figuration in the events of the year
-1847, as Madame Karénine so fully reconstitutes
-them, is all that is wanted to point their almost nightmare
-quality. Without something of a close view of
-them we fail of a grasp of our heroine’s genius—her
-genius for keeping her head in deep seas morally and
-reflectively above water, though but a glance at them
-must suffice us for averting this loss. The old-world
-quality of drama, which throughout so thickens and
-tones the air around her, finds remarkable expression
-in the whole picture of the moment. Every connection
-involved bristles like a conscious consequence, tells for
-all it is worth, as we say, and the sinister complexity
-of reference—for all the golden clearings-up that awaited
-it on the ideal plane—leaves nothing to be desired.
-The great and odd sign of the complications and convulsions,
-the alarms and excursions recorded, is that
-these are all the more or less direct fruits of sensibility,
-which had primarily been indulged in, under the
-doom of a preparation of them which no preparation
-of anything else was to emulate, with a good faith
-fairly touching in presence of the eventual ugliness.
-Madame Sand’s wonderful mother, commemorated
-for us in “L’Histoire de ma Vie” with the truth surely
-attaching in a like degree to no mother in all the
-literature of so-called confession, had had for cousin
-a “fille entretenue” who had married a mechanic.
-This Adèle Brault had had in the course of her adventures
-a daughter in whom, as an unfortunate young
-relative, Madame Dupin had taken an interest, introducing
-her to the heiress of Nohant, who viewed her
-with favour—she appears to have been amiable and
-commendable—and eventually associated her with her
-own children. She was thus the third member of that
-illegitimate progeny with which the Nohant scene was
-to have become familiar, George Sand’s natural brother
-on her father’s side and her natural sister on her
-mother’s representing this element from the earlier
-time on. The young Augustine, fugitive from a circle
-still less edifying, was thus made a companion of the son
-and the daughter of the house, and was especially held
-to compare with the latter to her great advantage in
-the matter of character, docility and temper. These
-young persons formed, as it were, with his more distinguished
-friend, the virtual family of Chopin during
-those years of specifically qualified domestication which
-affect us as only less of a mystification to taste than
-that phase of the unrestricted which had immediately
-preceded them. Hence a tangled tissue of relations
-within the circle that became, as it strikes us, indescribable
-for difficulty and “delicacy,” not to say for
-the perfection of their impracticability, and as to
-which the great point is that Madame Sand’s having
-taken them so robustly for granted throws upon her
-temperamental genius a more direct light than any
-other. The whole case belongs doubtless even more
-to the hapless history of Chopin himself than to that
-of his terrible friend—terrible for her power to flourish
-in conditions sooner or later fatal to weaker vessels;
-but is in addition to this one of the most striking illustrations
-possible of that view or theory of social life
-handed over to the reactions of sensibility almost alone
-which, while ever so little the ideal of the Anglo-Saxon
-world, has largely governed the manners of its sister
-societies. It has been our view, very emphatically,
-in general, that the sane and active social body—or,
-for that matter, the sane and active individual, addressed
-to the natural business of life—goes wrongly
-about it to <span class='it'>encourage</span> sensibility, or to do anything on
-the whole but treat it as of no prime importance; the
-traps it may lay for us, however, being really of the
-fewest in a race to which the very imagination of it
-may be said, I think, to have been comparatively
-denied. The imagination of it sat irremovably, on the
-other hand, and as a matter of course, at the Nohant
-fireside; where indeed we find the play and the
-ravage chiefly interesting through our thus seeing the
-delicate Chopin, whose semi-smothered appeal remains
-peculiarly pathetic, all helpless and foredoomed at the
-centre of the whirl. Nothing again strikes us more
-in the connection than the familiar truth that interesting
-persons make everything that concerns them interesting,
-or seldom fail to redeem from what might in
-another air seem but meanness and vanity even their
-most compromised states and their greatest wastes of
-value. Every one in the particular Nohant drama
-here exposed loses by the exposure—so far as loss could
-be predicated of amounts which, in general, excepting
-the said sensibility, were so scant among them; every
-one, that is, save the ruling spirit of all, with the extraordinary
-mark in her of the practical defiance of
-waste and of her inevitable enrichment, for our measure,
-as by reflection from the surrounding shrinkage.
-One of the oddest aspects of the scene is also one of
-the wretchedest, but the oddity makes it interesting,
-by the law I just glanced at, in spite of its vulgar side.
-How could it not be interesting, we ask as we read,
-to feel that Chopin, though far from the one man, was
-the one gentleman of the association, the finest set of
-nerves and scruples, and yet to see how little that
-availed him, in exasperated reactions, against mistakes
-of perverted sympathy? It is relevant in a high degree
-to our view of his great protectress as reducible at her
-best to male terms that she herself in this very light
-fell short, missed the ideal safeguard which for her
-friend had been preinvolved—as of course may be the
-peril, ever, with the creature so transmuted, and as is
-so strikingly exemplified, in the pages before us, when
-Madame Karénine ingenuously gives us chapter and
-verse for her heroine’s so unqualified demolition of
-the person of Madame d’Agoult, devotee of Liszt,
-mother to be, by that token, of Richard Wagner’s
-second wife, and sometime intimate of the author
-of “Isidora,” in which fiction we are shown the parody
-perpetrated. If women rend each other on occasion
-with sharper talons than seem to belong on the whole
-to the male hand, however intendingly applied, we
-find ourselves reflect parenthetically that the loss of
-this advantage may well be a matter for them to consider
-when the new approximation is the issue.</p>
-
-<p>The great sign of the Nohant circle on all this showing,
-at any rate, is the intense personalism, as we may
-call it, reigning there, or in other words the vivacity,
-the acuity and irritability of the personal relations—which
-flourished so largely, we at the same time feel,
-by reason of the general gift for expression, that gift
-to which we owe the general superiority of every letter,
-from it scarce matters whom, laid under contribution
-by our author. How could people not feel with acuity
-when they could, when they had to, write with such
-point and such specific intelligence?—just indeed as
-one asks how letters could fail to remain at such a level
-among them when they incessantly generated choice
-matter for expression. Madame Sand herself is of
-course on this ground easily the most admirable, as
-we have seen; but every one “knows how” to write,
-and does it well in proportion as the matter in hand
-most demands and most rewards proper saying. Much
-of all this stuff of history seems indeed to have been
-susceptible of any amount of force of statement; yet
-we note all the while how in the case of the great
-mistress of the pen at least some shade of intrinsic
-beauty attends even the presentation of quite abominable
-facts. We can only see it as abominable, at least,
-so long as we have Madame Sand’s words—which are
-somehow a different thing from her word—for it, that
-Chopin had from the first “sided” with the atrocious
-Solange in that play of her genius which is characterised
-by our chronicler as wickedness for the sake of
-wickedness, as art for the sake of art, without other
-logic or other cause. “Once married,” says Madame
-Karénine, “she made a double use of this wickedness.
-She had always hated Augustine; she wished, one
-doesn’t know why, to break off her marriage, and by
-calumnies and insinuations she succeeded. Then
-angry with her mother she avenged herself on her as
-well by further calumnies. Thereupon took place at
-Nohant such events that”—that in fine we stop before
-them with this preliminary shudder. The cross-currents
-of violence among them would take more
-keeping apart than we have time for, the more that
-everything comes back, for interest, to the intrinsic
-weight of the tone of the principal sufferer from them—as
-we see her, as we wouldn’t for the world not see her,
-in spite of the fact that Chopin was to succumb scarce
-more than a year later to multiplied lacerations, and
-that she was to override and reproduce and pre-appointedly
-flourish for long years after. If it is interesting,
-as I have pronounced it, that Chopin, again,
-should have consented to be of the opinion of Solange
-that the relations between her brother Maurice and
-the hapless Augustine were of the last impropriety, I
-fear I can account no better for this than by our sense
-that the more the <span class='it'>genius loci</span> has to feed her full tone
-the more our faith in it, as such a fine thing in itself,
-is justified. Almost immediately after the precipitated
-marriage of the daughter of the house has taken
-place, the Clésinger couple, avid and insolent, of a
-breadth of old time impudence in fact of which our
-paler day has lost the pattern, are back on the mother’s
-hands, to the effect of a vividest picture of Maurice
-well-nigh in a death-grapple with his apparently quite
-monstrous “bounder” of a brother-in-law, a picture
-that further gives us Madame Sand herself smiting
-Clésinger in the face and receiving from him a blow
-in the breast, while Solange “coldly,” with an iciness
-indeed peculiarly her own, fans the rage and approves
-her husband’s assault, and while the divine composer,
-though for that moment much in the background, approves
-the wondrous approval. He still approves, to
-all appearance, the daughter’s interpretation of the
-mother’s wish to “get rid” of him as the result of an
-amorous design on the latter’s part in respect of a
-young man lately introduced to the circle as Maurice’s
-friend and for the intimate relation with whom it is
-thus desirable that the coast shall be made clear.
-How else than through no fewer consistencies of the
-unedifying on the part of these provokers of the expressional
-reaction should we have come by innumerable
-fine epistolary passages, passages constituting in
-themselves verily such adornments of the tale, such
-notes in the scale of all the damaged dignity redressed,
-that we should be morally the poorer without them?
-One of the vividest glimpses indeed is not in a letter
-but in a few lines from “L’Histoire de ma Vie,” the
-composition of which was begun toward the end of
-this period and while its shadow still hung about—early
-in life for a projected autobiography, inasmuch
-as the author had not then reached her forty-fifth
-year. Chopin at work, improvising and composing,
-was apt to become a prey to doubts and depressions,
-so that there were times when to break in upon these
-was to render him a service.</p>
-
-<div class='blockquote'>
-
-<p>But it was not always possible to induce him to leave the piano,
-often so much more his torment than his joy, and he began gradually
-to resent my proposing he should do so. I never ventured
-on these occasions to insist. Chopin in displeasure was appalling,
-and as with me he always controlled himself it was as if he might
-die of suffocation.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>It is a vision of the possibilities of vibration in such
-organisms that does in fact appal, and with the clash
-of vibrations, those both of genius and of the general
-less sanctioned sensibility, the air must have more than
-sufficiently resounded. Some eight years after the beginning
-of their friendship and the year after the final
-complete break in it she writes to Madame Pauline
-Viardot:</p>
-
-<div class='blockquote'>
-
-<p>Do you see Chopin? Tell me about his health. I have been
-unable to repay his fury and his hatred by hatred and fury. I
-think of him as of a sick, embittered, bewildered child. I saw
-much of Solange in Paris, the letter goes on, and made her my constant
-occupation, but without finding anything but a stone in the
-place of her heart. I have taken up my work again while waiting
-for the tide to carry me elsewhere.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>All the author’s “authority” is in these few words,
-and in none more than in the glance at the work and
-the tide. The work and the tide rose ever as high as
-she would to float her, and wherever we look there is
-always the authority. “I find Chopin <span class='it'>magnificent</span>,”
-she had already written from the thick of the fray, “to
-keep seeing, frequenting and approving Clésinger, who
-struck me because I snatched from his hands the
-hammer he had raised upon Maurice—Chopin whom
-every one talks of as my most faithful and devoted
-friend.” Well indeed may our biographer have put it
-that from a certain date in May 1847 “the two <span class='it'>Leitmotive</span>
-which might have been called in the terms of
-Wagner the <span class='it'>Leitmotif</span> of soreness and the <span class='it'>Leitmotif</span> of
-despair—Chopin, Solange—sound together now in
-fusion, now in a mutual grip, now simply side by side,
-in all Madame Sand’s unpublished letters and in the
-few (of the moment) that have been published. A
-little later a third joins in—Augustine Brault, a motive
-narrowly and tragically linked to the <span class='it'>basso obligato</span> of
-Solange.” To meet such a passage as the following
-under our heroine’s hand again is to feel the whole
-temper of intercourse implied slip straight out of our
-analytic grasp. The allusion is to Chopin and to the
-“defection” of which he had been guilty, to her view,
-at the time when it had been most important that
-she might count on him. What we have first, as outsiders,
-to swallow down, as it were, is the state of
-things, the hysteric pitch of family life, in which any
-ideal of reticence, any principle, as we know it, of
-minding one’s business, for mere dignity’s sake if for
-none other, had undergone such collapse.</p>
-
-<div class='blockquote'>
-
-<p>I grant you I am not sorry that he has withdrawn from me the
-government of his life, for which both he and his friends wanted
-to make me responsible in so much too absolute a fashion. His
-temper kept growing in asperity, so that it had come to his constantly
-blowing me up, from spite, ill-humour and jealousy, in
-presence of my friends and my children. Solange made use of it
-with the astuteness that belongs to her, while Maurice began to
-give way to indignation. Knowing and seeing <span class='it'>la chasteté de nos
-rapports</span>, he saw also that the poor sick soul took up, without
-<span class='it'>wanting to</span> and perhaps without being able to help it, the attitude
-of the lover, the husband, the proprietor of my thoughts and actions.
-He was on the point of breaking out and telling him to his face
-that he was making me play, at forty-three years of age, a ridiculous
-part, and that it was an abuse of my kindness, my patience, and my
-pity for his nervous morbid state. A few months more, a few days
-perhaps, of this situation, and an impossible frightful struggle
-would have broken out between them. Foreseeing the storm, I
-took advantage of Chopin’s predilection for Solange and left him
-to sulk, without an effort to bring him round. We have not for
-three months exchanged a word in writing, and I don’t know how
-such a cooling-off will end.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>She develops the picture of the extravagance of his
-sick irritability; she accepts with indifference the certainty
-that his friends will accuse her of having cast
-him out to take a lover; the one thing she “minds” is
-the force of evil in her daughter, who is the centre of
-all the treachery. “She will come back to me when
-she needs me, that I know. But her return will be
-neither tender nor consoling.” Therefore it is when at
-the beginning of the winter of this same dreadful year
-she throws off the free rich summary of what she has
-been through in the letter to M. Charles Poncy already
-published in her Correspondence we are swept into
-the current of sympathy and admiration. The preceding
-months had been the heaviest and most painful
-of her life.</p>
-
-<div class='blockquote'>
-
-<p>I all but broke down under them utterly, though I had for long
-seen them coming. But you know how one is not always overhung
-by the evil portent, however clear one may read it—there are days,
-weeks, even whole months, when one lives on illusion and fondly
-hopes to divert the blow that threatens. It is always at last the
-most probable ill that surprises us unarmed and unprepared. To
-this explosion of unhappy underground germs joined themselves
-sundry contributive matters, bitter things too and quite unexpected;
-so that I am broken by grief in body and soul. I believe
-my grief incurable, for I never succeed in throwing it off for a few
-hours without its coming upon me again during the next in greater
-force and gloom. I nevertheless struggle against it without respite,
-and if I don’t hope for a victory which would have to consist
-of not feeling at all, at least I have reached that of still bearing
-with life, of even scarcely feeling ill, of having recovered my taste
-for work and of not showing my distress. I have got back outside
-calm and cheer, which are so necessary for others, and everything
-in my life seems to go on well.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>We had already become aware, through commemorations
-previous to the present, of that first or innermost
-line of defence residing in George Sand’s splendid
-mastery of the letter, the gift that was always so to
-assure her, on every issue, the enjoyment of the first
-chance with posterity. The mere cerebral and manual
-activity represented by the quantity no less than the
-quality of her outflow through the post at a season
-when her engagements were most pressing and her
-anxieties of every sort most cruel is justly qualified by
-Madame Karénine as astounding; the new letters here
-given to the world heaping up the exhibition and testifying
-even beyond the finest of those gathered in after
-the writer’s death—the mutilations, suppressions and
-other freedoms then used, for that matter, being now
-exposed. If no plot of her most bustling fiction ever
-thickened at the rate at which those agitations of her
-inner circle at which we have glanced multiplied upon
-her hands through the later ’forties, so we are tempted
-to find her rather less in possession of her great <span class='it'>moyens</span>
-when handling the artificial presentation than when
-handling what we may call the natural. It is not too
-much to say that the long letter addressed to the cynical
-Solange in April ’52, and which these pages give
-us <span class='it'>in extenso</span>, would have made the fortune of any
-mere interesting “story” in which one of the characters
-might have been presented as writing it. It is
-a document of the highest psychological value and a
-practical summary of all the elements of the writer’s
-genius, of all her indefeasible advantages; it is verily
-the gem of her biographer’s collection. Taken in connection
-with a copious communication to her son, of
-the previous year, on the subject of his sister’s character
-and vices, and of their common experience of
-these, it offers, in its ease of movement, its extraordinary
-frankness and lucidity, its splendid apprehension
-and interpretation of realities, its state, as it were,
-of saturation with these, exactly the kind of interest
-for which her novels were held remarkable, but in a
-degree even above their maximum. Such a letter is
-an effusion of the highest price; none of a weight so
-baffling to estimation was probably ever inspired in a
-mother by solicitude for a clever daughter’s possibilities.
-Never surely had an accomplished daughter
-laid under such contribution a mother of high culture;
-never had such remarkable and pertinent things had
-to flow from such a source; never in fine was so urgent
-an occasion so admirably, so inimitably risen to.
-Marvellous through it all is the way in which, while a
-common recognition of the “facts of life,” as between
-two perfectly intelligent men of the world, gives the
-whole diapason, the abdication of moral authority
-and of the rights of wisdom never takes place. The
-tone is a high implication of the moral advantages that
-Solange had inveterately enjoyed and had decided
-none the less to avail herself of so little; which advantages
-we absolutely believe in as we read—<span class='it'>there</span> is the
-prodigious part: such an education of the soul, and in
-fact of every faculty, such a claim for the irreproachable,
-it would fairly seem, do we feel any association
-with the great fluent artist, in whatever conditions
-taking place, inevitably, necessarily to have been.
-If we put ourselves questions we yet wave away
-doubts, and with whatever remnants of prejudice the
-writer’s last word may often have to clash, our own is
-that there is nothing for grand final rightness like a
-sufficiently <span class='it'>general</span> humanity—when a particularly
-beautiful voice happens to serve it.</p>
-
-<div><span class='pagenum'><a name='Page_245' id='Page_245'>245</a></span><h1 id='t8458'>GABRIELE D’ANNUNZIO<br/>1902</h1></div>
-
-<p>The great feast-days of all, for the restless critic, are
-those much interspaced occasions of his really meeting
-a “case,” as he soon enough learns to call, for his
-convenience and assistance, any supremely contributive
-or determinant party to the critical question.
-These are recognitions that make up for many dull
-hours and dry contacts, many a thankless, a disconcerted
-gaze into faces that have proved expressionless.
-Always looking, always hoping for his happiest chance,
-the inquirer into the reasons of things—by which I
-mean especially into the reasons of books—so often
-misses it, so often wastes his steps and withdraws his
-confidence, that he inevitably works out for himself,
-sooner or later, some handy principle of recognition.
-It may be a rough thing, a mere home-made tool of
-his trade, but it serves his purpose if it keeps him from
-beginning with mistakes. He becomes able to note in
-its light the signs and marks of the possible precious
-identity, able to weigh with some exactitude the appearances
-that make for its reality. He ends, through
-much expenditure of patience, by seeing when, how,
-why, the “case” announces and presents itself, and he
-perhaps even feels that failure and felicity have worked
-together to produce in him a sense for it that may at
-last be trusted as an instinct. He thus arrives at a
-view of all the candidates, frequently interesting
-enough, who fall short of the effective title, because he
-has at need, perhaps even from afar, scented along the
-wind the strongest member of the herd. He may perhaps
-not always be able to give us the grounds of his
-certainty, but he is at least never without knowing it
-in presence of one of the full-blown products that
-are the joy of the analyst. He recognises as well
-how the state of being full-blown comes above all
-from the achievement of consistency, of that last consistency
-which springs from the unrestricted enjoyment
-of freedom.</p>
-
-<p>Many of us will doubtless not have forgotten how
-we were witnesses a certain number of years since to a
-season and a society that had found themselves of a
-sudden roused, as from some deep drugged sleep, to
-the conception of the “esthetic” law of life; in consequence
-of which this happy thought had begun to receive
-the honours of a lively appetite and an eager
-curiosity, but was at the same time surrounded and
-manipulated by as many different kinds of inexpertness
-as probably ever huddled together on a single pretext.
-The spectacle was strange and finally was wearisome,
-for the simple reason that the principle in question,
-once it was proclaimed—a principle not easily formulated,
-but which we may conveniently speak of
-as that of beauty at any price, beauty appealing alike
-to the senses and to the mind—was never felt to fall
-into its place as really adopted and efficient. It remained
-for us a queer high-flavoured fruit from overseas,
-grown under another sun than ours, passed round
-and solemnly partaken of at banquets organised to try
-it, but not found on the whole really to agree with us,
-not proving thoroughly digestible. It brought with it
-no repose, brought with it only agitation. We were
-not really, not fully convinced, for the state of conviction
-is quiet. This was to have been the state itself—that
-is the state of mind achieved and established—in
-which we were to know ugliness no more, to make
-the esthetic consciousness feel at home with us, or
-learn ourselves at any rate to feel at home with <span class='it'>it</span>.
-That would have been the reign of peace, the supreme
-beatitude; but stability continued to elude us. We
-had mustered a hundred good reasons for it, yet the
-reasons but lighted up our desert. They failed to
-flower into a single concrete esthetic “type.” One
-authentic, one masterful specimen would have done
-wonders for us, would at least have assuaged our curiosity.
-But we were to be left till lately with our curiosity
-on our hands.</p>
-
-<p>This is a yearning, however, that Signor D’Annunzio
-may at last strike us as supremely formed to gratify;
-so promptly we find in him as a literary figure the highest
-expression of the reality that our own conditions
-were to fail of making possible. He has immediately
-the value of giving us by his mere logical unfolding
-the measure of our shortcomings in the same direction,
-that of our timidities and penuries and failures. He
-throws a straighter and more inevitable light on the
-esthetic consciousness than has, to my sense, in our
-time, reached it from any other quarter; and there is
-many a mystery that properly interrogated he may
-help to clear up for us, many an explanation of our
-misadventure that—as I have glanced at it—he may
-give. He starts with the immense advantage of enjoying
-the invoked boon by grace and not by effort, of
-claiming it under another title than the sweat of his
-brow and the aspiration of his culture. He testifies
-to the influence of things that have had time to get
-themselves taken for granted. Beauty at any price is
-an old story to him; art and form and style as the aim
-of the superior life are a matter of course; and it may
-be said of him, I think, that, thanks to these transmitted
-and implanted instincts and aptitudes, his individual
-development begins where the struggle of the
-mere earnest questioner ends. Signor D’Annunzio is
-earnest in his way, quite extraordinarily—which is a
-feature of his physiognomy that we shall presently
-come to and about which there will be something to
-say; but we feel him all the while in such secure possession
-of his heritage of favouring circumstance that
-his sense of intellectual responsibility is almost out of
-proportion. This is one of his interesting special marks,
-the manner in which the play of the esthetic instinct
-in him takes on, for positive extravagance and as a
-last refinement of freedom, the crown of solicitude and
-anxiety. Such things but make with him for ornament
-and parade; they are his tribute to civility; the essence
-of the matter is meanwhile in his blood and his bones.
-No mistake was possible from the first as to his being
-of the inner literary camp—a new form altogether of
-perceptive and expressive energy; the question was
-settled by the intensity and variety, to say nothing of
-the precocity, of his early poetic production.</p>
-
-<p>Born at Pescara, in the Regno, the old kingdom of
-Naples, “toward” 1863, as I find noted by a cautious
-biographer, he had while scarce out of his teens allowed
-his lyric genius full opportunity of scandalising even
-the moderately austere. He defined himself betimes
-very much as he was to remain, a rare imagination, a
-poetic, an artistic intelligence of extraordinary range
-and fineness concentrated almost wholly on the life of
-the senses. For the critic who simplifies a little to
-state clearly, the only ideas he urges upon us are the
-erotic and the plastic, which have for him about an
-equal intensity, or of which it would be doubtless more
-correct to say that he makes them interchangeable
-faces of the same figure. He began his career by
-playing with them together in verse, to innumerable
-light tunes and with an extraordinary general effect of
-curiosity and brilliancy. He has continued still more
-strikingly to play with them in prose; they have remained
-the substance of his intellectual furniture.
-It is of his prose only, however, that, leaving aside the
-Intermezzo, L’Isottèo, La Chimera, Odi Navali and
-other such matters, I propose to speak, the subject
-being of itself ample for one occasion. His five novels
-and his four plays have extended his fame; they suggest
-by themselves as many observations as we shall
-have space for. The group of productions, as the
-literary industry proceeds among us to-day, is not
-large, but we may doubt if a talent and a temperament,
-if indeed a whole “view of life,” ever built themselves
-up as vividly for the reader out of so few blocks. The
-writer is even yet enviably young; but this solidity of
-his literary image, as of something already seated on
-time and accumulation, makes him a rare example.
-Precocity is somehow an inadequate name for it, as
-precocity seldom gets away from the element of
-promise, and it is not exactly promise that blooms in
-the hard maturity of such a performance as “The
-Triumph of Death.” There are certain expressions of
-experience, of the experience of the whole man, that
-are like final milestones, milestones for his possible
-fertility if not for his possible dexterity; a truth that
-has not indeed prevented “Il Fuoco,” with its doubtless
-still ampler finality, from following the work just mentioned.
-And we have had particularly before us, in
-verse, I must add, “Francesca da Rimini,” with the
-great impression a great actress has enabled this drama
-to make.</p>
-
-<p>Only I must immediately in this connection also add
-that Signor D’Annunzio’s plays are, beside his novels,
-of decidedly minor weight; testifying abundantly to
-his style, his romantic sense and his command of images,
-but standing in spite of their eloquence only for half
-of his talent, largely as he yet appears in “Il Fuoco” to
-announce himself by implication as an intending, indeed
-as a pre-eminent dramatist. The example is
-interesting when we catch in the fact the opportunity
-for comparing with the last closeness the capacity of
-the two rival canvases, as they become for the occasion,
-on which the picture of life may be painted. The
-closeness is never so great, the comparison never so
-pertinent, as when the separate efforts are but different
-phases of the same talent. It is not at any rate under
-this juxtaposition that the infinitely greater amplitude
-of portrayal resident in the novel strikes us least. It
-in fact strikes us the more, in this quarter, for Signor
-D’Annunzio, that his plays have been with one exception
-successes. We must none the less take “Francesca”
-but for a success of curiosity; on the part of
-the author I mean even more than on the part of the
-public. It is primarily a pictorial and ingenious thing
-and, as a picture of passion, takes, in the total collection,
-despite its felicities of surface and arrangement,
-distinctly a “back seat.” Scarcely less than its companions
-it overflows with the writer’s plenitude of
-verbal expression, thanks to which, largely, the series
-will always prompt a curiosity and even a tenderness
-in any reader interested precisely in this momentous
-question of “style in a play”—interested in particular
-to learn by what esthetic chemistry a play would as a
-work of art propose to eschew it. It is in any such
-connection so inexpugnable that we have only to be
-cheated of it in one place to feel the subject cry aloud
-for it, like a sick man forsaken, in another.</p>
-
-<p>I may mention at all events the slightly perverse fact
-that, thanks, on this side, to the highest watermark of
-translation, Signor D’Annunzio makes his best appeal
-to the English public as a dramatist. Of each of the
-three English versions of other examples of his work
-whose titles are inscribed at the beginning of these
-remarks it may be said that they are adequate and
-respectable considering the great difficulty encountered.
-The author’s highest good fortune has nevertheless
-been at the hands of his French interpreter, who has
-managed to keep constantly close to him—allowing
-for an occasional inconsequent failure of courage when
-the directness of the original <span class='it'>brave l’honnêteté</span>—and
-yet to achieve a tone not less idiomatic, and above all
-not less marked by “authority,” than his own. Mr.
-Arthur Symons, among ourselves, however, has rendered
-the somewhat insistent eloquence of “La Gioconda”
-and the intricate and difficult verse of “Francesca”
-with all due sympathy, and in the latter case
-especially—a highly arduous task—with remarkably
-patient skill. It is not his fault, doubtless, if the feet
-of his English text strike us as moving with less freedom
-than those of his original; such being the hard
-price paid always by the translator who tries for correspondence
-from step to step, tries for an identical
-order. Even less is he responsible for its coming still
-more home to us in a translation that the meagre anecdote
-here furnishing the subject, and on which the
-large superstructure rests, does not really lend itself
-to those developments that make a full or an interesting
-tragic complexity. Behind the glamour of its immense
-literary association the subject of “Francesca”
-is for purposes of essential, of enlarged exhibition delusive
-and “short.”</p>
-
-<p>These, however, are for the moment side-issues;
-what is more relevant is the stride taken by our author’s
-early progress in his first novel and his second, “Il
-Piacere” and “L’Innocente”; a pair from the freshness,
-the direct young energy of which he was, for some
-of his admirers, too promptly and to markedly to decline.
-We may take it as characteristic of the intensity
-of the literary life in him that his brief career falls
-already thus into periods and supplies a quantity of
-history sufficient for those differences among students
-by which the dignity of history appears mainly to be
-preserved. The nature of his prime inspiration I have
-already glanced at; and we are helped to a characterisation
-if I say that the famous enthroned “beauty”
-which operates here, so straight, as the great obsession,
-is not in any perceptible degree moral beauty. It
-would be difficult perhaps to find elsewhere in the
-same compass so much expression of the personal life
-resting so little on any picture of the personal character
-and the personal will. It is not that Signor
-D’Annunzio has not more than once pushed his furrow
-in this latter direction; but nothing is exactly more
-interesting, as we shall see, than the seemingly inevitable
-way in which the attempt falls short.</p>
-
-<p>“Il Piacere,” the first in date of the five tales, has,
-though with imperfections, the merit of giving us
-strongly at the outset the author’s scale and range of
-view, and of so constituting a sort of prophetic summary
-of his elements. All that is done in the later things
-is more or less done here, and nothing is absent here
-that we are not afterwards also to miss. I propose,
-however, that it shall not be prematurely a question
-with us of what we miss; no intelligible statement of
-which, for that matter, in such considerations as these,
-is ever possible till there has been some adequate
-statement of what we find. Count Andrea Sperelli is
-a young man who pays, pays heavily, as we take it
-that we are to understand, for an unbridled surrender
-to the life of the senses; whereby it is primarily a picture
-of that life that the story gives us. He is represented
-as inordinately, as quite monstrously, endowed
-for the career that from the first absorbs and that
-finally is to be held, we suppose, to engulf him; and it
-is a tribute to the truth with which his endowment is
-presented that we should scarce know where else to
-look for so complete and convincing an account of
-such adventures. Casanova de Seingalt is of course
-infinitely more copious, but his autobiography is cheap
-loose journalism compared with the directed, finely-condensed
-iridescent epic of Count Andrea.</p>
-
-<p>This young man’s years have run but half their
-course from twenty to thirty when he meets and becomes
-entangled with a woman more infernally expert
-even than himself in the matters in which he is most
-expert—and he is given us as a miracle of social and intellectual
-accomplishment—the effect of whom is
-fatally to pervert and poison his imagination. As his
-imagination is applied exclusively to the employments
-of “love,” this means, for him, a frustration of all
-happiness, all comfortable consistency, in subsequent
-relations of the same order. The author’s view—this
-is fundamental—is all of a world in which relations of
-any other order whatever mainly fail to offer themselves
-in any attractive form. Andrea Sperelli, loving,
-accordingly—in the manner in which D’Annunzio’s
-young men love and to which we must specifically return—a
-woman of good faith, a woman as different as
-possible from the creature of evil communications, finds
-the vessel of his spirit itself so infected and disqualified
-that it falsifies and dries up everything that passes
-through it. The idea that has virtually determined
-the situation appears in fact to be that the hero <span class='it'>would</span>
-have loved in another manner, or would at least have
-wished to, but that he had too promptly put any such
-fortune, so far as his capacity is concerned, out of court.
-We have our reasons, presently manifest, for doubting
-the possibility itself; but the theory has nevertheless
-given its direction to the fable.</p>
-
-<p>For the rest the author’s three sharpest signs are
-already unmistakable: first his rare notation of states
-of excited sensibility; second his splendid visual sense,
-the quick generosity of his response to the message,
-as we nowadays say, of aspects and appearances, to
-the beauty of places and things; third his ample and
-exquisite style, his curious, various, inquisitive, always
-active employment of language as a means of communication
-and representation. So close is the marriage
-between his power of “rendering,” in the light of the
-imagination, and whatever he sees and feels, that we
-should much mislead in speaking of his manner as a
-thing distinct from the matter submitted to it. The
-fusion is complete and admirable, so that, though his
-work is nothing if not “literary,” we see at no point of
-it where literature or where life begins or ends: we
-swallow our successive morsels with as little question
-as we swallow food that has by proper preparation
-been reduced to singleness of savour. It is brought
-home to us afresh that there is no complete creation
-without style any more than there is complete music
-without sound; also that when language becomes as
-closely applied and impressed a thing as for the most
-part in the volumes before us the fact of artistic creation
-is registered at a stroke. It is never more present
-than in the thick-sown illustrative images and figures
-that fairly bloom under D’Annunzio’s hand. I find
-examples in “Il Piacere,” as elsewhere, by simply
-turning the pages. “His will”—of the hero’s weakness—“useless
-as a sword of base temper hung at the side
-of a drunkard or a dullard.” Or of his own southern
-land in September: “I scarce know why, looking at the
-country in this season, I always think of some beautiful
-woman after childbirth, who lies back in her
-white bed, smiling with a pale astonished inextinguishable
-smile.” Or the incision of this: “Where for him
-now were those unclean short-lived loves that left in
-the mouth the strange acidity of fruit cut with a steel
-knife?” Or the felicity of the following, of a southern
-night seen and felt from the terrace of a villa. “Clear
-meteors at intervals streaked the motionless air,
-running over it as lightly and silently as drops of water
-on a crystal pane.” “The sails on the sea,” he says of
-the same look-out by day, “were as pious and numberless
-as the wings of cherubim on the gold grounds of old
-Giottesque panels.”</p>
-
-<p>But it is above all here for two things that his faculty
-is admirable; one of them his making us feel through
-the windows of his situation, or the gaps, as it were, of
-his flowering wood, the golden presence of Rome, the
-charm that appeals to him as if he were one of the pilgrims
-from afar, save that he reproduces it with an
-authority in which, as we have seen, the pilgrims from
-afar have mainly been deficient. The other is the
-whole category of the phenomena of “passion,” as
-passion prevails between his men and his women—and
-scarcely anything else prevails; the states of feeling, of
-ecstasy and suffering engendered, the play of sensibility
-from end to end of the scale. In this direction he
-has left no dropped stitches for any worker of like
-tapestries to pick up. We shall here have made out
-that many of his “values” are much to be contested,
-but that where they are true they are as fresh as discoveries;
-witness the passage where Sperelli, driving
-back to Rome after a steeplechase in which he has been
-at the supreme moment worsted, meets nothing that
-does not play with significance into his vision and act
-with force on his nerves. He has before the race had
-“words,” almost blows, on the subject of one of the
-ladies present, with one of the other riders, of which
-the result is that they are to send each other their
-seconds; but the omens are not for his adversary, in
-spite of the latter’s success on the course.</p>
-
-<div class='blockquote'>
-
-<p>From the mail-coach, on the return, he overtook the flight
-toward Rome of Giannetto Rutolo, seated in a small two-wheeled
-trap, behind the quick trot of a great roan, over whom he bent
-with tight reins, holding his head down and his cigar in his teeth,
-heedless of the attempts of policemen to keep him in line. Rome,
-in the distance, stood up dark against a zone of light as yellow as
-sulphur; and the statues crowning St. John Lateran looked huge,
-above the zone, in their violet sky. <span class='it'>Then it was that Andrea fully
-knew the pain he was making another soul suffer.</span></p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>Nothing could be more characteristic of the writer
-than the way what has preceded flowers into that last
-reality; and equally in his best manner, doubtless, is
-such a passage as the following from the same volume,
-which treats of the hero’s first visit to the sinister great
-lady whose influence on his soul and his senses is to
-become as the trail of a serpent. She receives him,
-after their first accidental meeting, with extraordinary
-promptitude and the last intimacy, receives him in the
-depths of a great Roman palace which the author,
-with a failure of taste that is, unfortunately for him,
-on ground of this sort, systematic, makes a point of
-naming. “Then they ceased to speak. Each felt the
-presence of the other flow and mingle with his own,
-with her own, very blood; till it was <span class='it'>her</span> blood at last
-that seemed to have become his life, and his that seemed
-to have become hers. The room grew larger in the
-deep silence; the crucifix of Guido Reni made the
-shade of the canopy and curtains religious; the rumour
-of the city came to them like the murmur of some far-away
-flood.” Or take for an instance of the writer’s
-way of showing the consciousness as a full, mixed cup,
-of touching us ourselves with the mystery at work
-in his characters, the description of the young man’s
-leaving the princely apartments in question after the
-initiation vouchsafed to him. He has found the great
-lady ill in bed, with remedies and medicine-bottles at
-her side, but not too ill, as we have seen, to make him
-welcome. “Farewell,” she has said. “Love me!
-Remember!”</p>
-
-<div class='blockquote'>
-
-<p>It seemed to him, crossing the threshold again, that he heard
-behind him a burst of sobs. But he went on, a little uncertain,
-wavering like a man who sees imperfectly. The odour of the
-chloroform clung to his sense like some fume of intoxication; but
-at each step something intimate passed away from him, wasting
-itself in the air, so that, impulsively, instinctively, he would have
-kept himself as he was, have closed himself in, have wrapped himself
-up to prevent the dispersion. The rooms in front of him were
-deserted and dumb. At one of the doors “Mademoiselle” appeared,
-with no sound of steps, with no rustle of skirts, standing there like
-a ghost. “This way, signor conte. You won’t find it.” She had
-an ambiguous, irritating smile, and her curiosity made her grey
-eyes more piercing. Andrea said nothing. The woman’s presence
-again disconcerted and troubled him, affected him with a
-vague repugnance, stirred indeed his wrath.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>Even the best things suffer by detachment from
-their context; but so it is that we are in <span class='it'>possession</span> of
-the young man’s exit, so it is that the act interests us.
-Fully announced from the first, among these things,
-was D’Annunzio’s signal gift of never approaching the
-thing particularly to be done, the thing that so presents
-itself to the painter, without consummately doing it.
-Each of his volumes offers thus its little gallery of
-episodes that stand out like the larger pearls occurring
-at intervals on a string of beads. The steeplechase in
-“Il Piacere,” the auction sale of precious trinkets in
-Via Sistina on the wet afternoon, the morning in the
-garden at Schifanoia, by the southern sea, when Donna
-Maria, the new revelation, first comes down to Andrea,
-who awaits her there in the languor of convalescence
-from the almost fatal wound received in the duel of
-which the altercation on the race-course has been the
-issue: the manner of such things as these has an extraordinary
-completeness of beauty. But they are, like
-similar pages in “Il Trionfo” and “Il Fuoco,” not
-things for adequate citation, not things that lend
-themselves as some of the briefer felicities. Donna
-Maria, on the September night at Schifanoia, has been
-playing for Andrea and their hostess certain old quaint
-gavottes and toccatas.</p>
-
-<div class='blockquote'>
-
-<p>It lived again wondrously beneath her fingers, the eighteenth-century
-music, so melancholy in its dance-tunes—tunes that might
-have been composed to be danced, on languid afternoons of some
-St. Martin’s summer, in a deserted park, among hushed fountains
-and pedestals without their statues, over carpets of dead roses, by
-pairs of lovers soon to love no more.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>Autobiographic in form, “L’Innocente” sticks closely
-to its theme, and though the form is on the whole a
-disadvantage to it the texture is admirably close. The
-question is of nothing less than a young husband’s relation
-to the illegitimate child of his wife, born confessedly
-as such, and so born, marvellous to say, in
-spite of the circumstance that the wife adores him, and
-of the fact that, though long grossly, brutally false to
-her, he also adores his wife. To state these data is
-sufficiently to express the demand truly made by them
-for superiority of treatment; they require certainly two
-or three almost impossible postulates. But we of
-course never play the fair critical game with an author,
-never get into relation with him at all, unless we grant
-him his postulates. His subject is what is given him—given
-him by influences, by a process, with which we
-have nothing to do; since what art, what revelation,
-can ever really make such a mystery, such a passage
-in the private life of the intellect, adequately traceable
-for us? His treatment of it, on the other hand, is
-what he actively gives; and it is with what he gives
-that we are critically concerned. If there is nothing
-in him that effectually induces us to make the postulate,
-he is then empty for us altogether, and the sooner we
-have done with him the better; little as the truly curious
-critic enjoys, as a general thing, having publicly to
-throw up the sponge.</p>
-
-<p>Tullio Hermil, who finally compasses the death of
-the little “innocent,” the small intruder whose presence
-in the family life has become too intolerable, retraces
-with a master’s hand each step of the process
-by which he has arrived at this sole issue. Save that
-his wife dumbly divines and accepts it his perpetration
-of the deed is not suspected, and we take the secret
-confession of which the book consists as made for the
-relief and justification of his conscience. The action
-all goes forward in that sphere of exasperated sensibility
-which Signor D’Annunzio has made his own so
-triumphantly that other story-tellers strike us in comparison
-as remaining at the door of the inner precinct,
-as listening there but to catch an occasional faint sound,
-while he alone is well within and moving through the
-place as its master. The sensibility has again in itself
-to be qualified; the exasperation of feeling is ever the
-essence of the intercourse of some man with some
-woman who has reduced him, as in “L’Innocente”
-and in “Il Trionfo,” to homicidal madness, or of some
-woman with some man who, as in “Il Fuoco,” and
-also again by a strange duplication of its office in
-“L’Innocente,” causes her atrociously to suffer. The
-plane of the situation is thus visibly a singularly special
-plane; that, always, of the more or less insanely demoralised
-pair of lovers, for neither of whom is any
-other personal relation indicated either as actual or
-as conceivably possible. Here, it may be said on such
-a showing, is material rather alarmingly cut down as
-to range, as to interest and, not least, as to charm;
-but here precisely it is that, by a wonderful chance,
-the author’s magic comes effectively into play.</p>
-
-<p>Little in fact as the relation of the erotically exasperated
-<span class='it'>with</span> the erotically exasperated, when pushed
-on either side to frenzy, would appear to lend itself to
-luminous developments, the difficulty is surmounted
-each time in a fashion that, for consistency no less than
-for brilliancy, is all the author’s own. Though surmounted
-triumphantly as to interest, that is, the trick
-is played without the least falsification of the luckless
-subjects of his study. They remain the abject victims
-of sensibility that his plan has originally made
-them; they remain exasperated, erotic, hysterical,
-either homicidally or suicidally determined, cut off
-from any personal source of life that does not poison
-them; notwithstanding all of which they neither starve
-dramatically nor suffer us to starve with them. How
-then is this seemingly inevitable catastrophe prevented?
-We ask it but to find on reflection that the
-answer opens the door to their historian’s whole secret.
-The unfortunates are deprived of any enlarging or
-saving personal relation, that is of any beneficent
-reciprocity; but they make up for it by their relation
-both to the <span class='it'>idea</span> in general and to the whole world of
-the senses, which is the completest that the author
-can conceive for them. He may be described as thus
-executing on their behalf an artistic <span class='it'>volte-face</span> of the
-most effective kind, with results wonderful to note.
-The world of the senses, with which he surrounds them—a
-world too of the idea, that is of a few ideas admirably
-expressed—yields them such a crop of impressions
-that the need of other occasions to vibrate and
-respond, to act or to aspire, is superseded by their
-immense factitious agitation. This agitation runs its
-course in strangely brief periods—a singular note, the
-brevity, of every situation; but the period is while it
-lasts, for all its human and social poverty, quite inordinately
-peopled and furnished. The innumerable
-different ways in which his concentrated couples are
-able to feel about each other and about their enclosing
-cage of golden wire, the nature and the art of Italy—these
-things crowd into the picture and pervade it,
-lighting it scarcely less, strange to say, because they
-are things of bitterness and woe.</p>
-
-<p>It is one of the miracles of the imagination; the
-great shining element in which the characters flounder
-and suffer becomes rich and beautiful for them, as
-well as in so many ways for us, by the action of the
-writer’s mind. They not only live in his imagination,
-but they borrow it from him in quantities; indeed
-without this charitable advance they would be poor
-creatures enough, for they have in each case almost
-nothing of their own. On the aid thus received they
-start, they get into motion; it makes their common
-basis of “passion,” desire, enchantment, aversion.
-The essence of the situation is the same in “Il Trionfo”
-and “Il Fuoco” as in “L’Innocente”: the temporarily
-united pair devour each other, tear and rend
-each other, wear each other out through a series of
-erotic convulsions and nervous reactions that are made
-interesting—interesting to <span class='it'>us</span>—almost exclusively by
-the special wealth of their consciousness. The medium
-in which they move is admirably reflected in it;
-the autumn light of Venice, the afterglow of her past,
-in the drama of the elderly actress and the young
-rhetorician of “Il Fuoco”; the splendour of the summer
-by the edge of the lower Adriatic in that of the
-two isolated erotomaniacs of “Il Trionfo,” indissolubly
-linked at last in the fury of physical destruction
-into which the man drags the woman by way of retribution
-for the fury of physical surrender into which
-she has beguiled him.</p>
-
-<p>As for “L’Innocente” again, briefly, there is perhaps
-nothing in it to match the Roman passages of “Il
-Piacere”; but the harmony of the general, the outer
-conditions pervades the picture; the sweetness of the
-villeggiatura life, the happiness of place and air, the
-lovability of the enclosing scene, all at variance with
-the sharpness of the inner tragedy. The inner tragedy
-of “L’Innocente” has a concentration that is like the
-carrying, through turns and twists, upstairs and down,
-of some cup filled to the brim, of which no drop is yet
-spilled; such cumulative truth rules the scene after
-we have once accepted the postulate. It is true that
-the situation as exhibited involves for Giuliana, the
-young wife, the vulgarest of adventures; yet she becomes,
-as it unfolds, the figure of the whole gallery
-in whom the pathetic has at once most of immediate
-truth and of investing poetry. I much prefer her for
-beauty and interest to Donna Maria in “Il Piacere,”
-the principal other image of faith and patience sacrificed.
-We see these virtues as still supreme in her
-even while she faces, in advance, her ordeal, in respect
-to which it has been her hope, in fact her calculation,
-that her husband will have been deceived about the
-paternity of her child; and she is so truthfully touching
-when this possibility breaks down that even though
-we rub our eyes at the kind of dignity claimed for her
-we participate without reserve in her predicament.
-The origin of the infant is frankly ignoble, whereas it
-is on the nobleness of Giuliana that the story essentially
-hinges; but the contradiction is wonderfully kept
-from disconcerting us altogether. What the author
-has needed for his strangest truth is that the mother
-shall feel exactly as the husband does, and that the
-husband shall after the first shock of his horror
-feel intimately and explicitly with the mother. They
-take in this way the same view of their woeful excrescence;
-and the drama of the child’s advent and of
-the first months of his existence, his insistent and
-hated survival, becomes for them in respect to the rest
-of the world a drama of silence and dissimulation, in
-every step of which we feel a terror.</p>
-
-<p>The effect, I may add, gains more than one kind of
-intensity from that almost complete absence of <span class='it'>other</span>
-contacts to which D’Annunzio systematically condemns
-his creatures; introducing here, however, just
-the two or three that more completely mark the
-isolation. It may doubtless be conceded that our
-English-speaking failure of insistence, of inquiry and
-penetration, in certain directions, springs partly from
-our deep-rooted habit of dealing with man, dramatically,
-on his social and gregarious side, as a being the
-variety of whose intercourse with his fellows, whatever
-forms his fellows may take, is positively half his interesting
-motion. We fear to isolate him, for we remember
-that as we see and know him he scarce understands
-himself save in action, action which inevitably mixes
-him with his kind. To see and know him, like Signor
-D’Annunzio, almost only in passion is another matter,
-for passion spends itself quickly in the open and burns
-hot mainly in nooks and corners. Nothing, too, in
-the picture is more striking than the manner in which
-the merely sentimental abyss—that of the couple
-brought together by the thing that might utterly have
-severed them—is consistently and successfully avoided.
-We should have been certain to feel it in many other
-hands yawning but a few steps off. We see the dreadful
-facts in themselves, are brought close to them with
-no interposing vaguenesses or other beggings of the
-question, and are forcibly reminded how much more
-this “crudity” makes for the communication of tenderness—what
-is aimed at—than an attitude conventionally
-more reticent. We feel what the tenderness
-can be when it rests on <span class='it'>all</span> the items of a constituted
-misery, not one of which is illogically blinked.</p>
-
-<p>For the pangs and pities of the flesh in especial
-D’Annunzio has in all his work the finest hand—those
-of the spirit exist with him indeed only as proceeding
-from these; so that Giuliana for instance affects us,
-beyond any figure in fiction we are likely to remember,
-as living and breathing under our touch and before
-our eyes, as a creature of organs, functions and processes,
-palpable, audible, pitiful physical conditions.
-These are facts, many of them, of an order in pursuit
-of which many a spectator of the “picture of life” will
-instinctively desire to stop short, however great in
-general his professed desire to enjoy the borrowed
-consciousness that the picture of life gives us; and
-nothing, it may well be said, is more certain than that
-we have a right in such matters to our preference, a
-right to choose the kind of adventure of the imagination
-we like best. No obligation whatever rests on
-us in respect to a given kind—much light as our choice
-may often throw for the critic on the nature of our own
-intelligence. <span class='it'>There</span> at any rate, we are disposed to
-say of such a piece of penetration as “L’Innocente,”
-there is a particular dreadful adventure, as large as
-life, for those who can bear it. The conditions are all
-present; it is only the reader himself who may break
-down. When in general, it may be added, we see
-readers do so, this is truly more often because they are
-shocked at really finding the last consistency than
-because they are shocked at missing it.</p>
-
-<p>“Il Trionfo della Morte” and “Il Fuoco” stand
-together as the amplest and richest of our author’s
-histories, and the earlier, and more rounded and faultless
-thing of the two, is not unlikely to serve, I should
-judge, as an unsurpassable example of his talent. His
-accomplishment here reaches its maximum; all his
-powers fight for him; the wealth of his expression
-drapes the situation represented in a mantle of voluminous
-folds, stiff with elaborate embroidery. The
-“story” may be told in three words: how Giorgio
-Aurispa meets in Rome the young and extremely pretty
-wife of a vulgar man of business, her unhappiness
-with whom is complete, and, falling in love with her
-on the spot, eventually persuades her—after many
-troubled passages—to come and pass a series of weeks
-with him in a “hermitage” by the summer sea, where, in
-a delirium of free possession, he grows so to hate her,
-and to hate himself for his subjection to her, and for
-the prostration of all honour and decency proceeding
-from it, that his desire to destroy her even at the cost
-of perishing with her at last takes uncontrollable form
-and he drags her, under a pretext, to the edge of a
-sea-cliff and hurls her, interlocked with him in appalled
-resistance, into space. We get at an early stage the
-note of that aridity of agitation in which the narrator
-has expended treasures of art in trying to interest us.
-“Fits of indescribable fury made them try which could
-torture each other best, which most lacerate the other’s
-heart and keep it in martyrdom.” But they understand,
-at least the hero does; and he formulates for his
-companion the essence of their <span class='it'>impasse</span>. It is not her
-fault when she tears and rends.</p>
-
-<div class='blockquote'>
-
-<p>Each human soul carries in it for love but a determinate quantity
-of sensitive force. It is inevitable that this quantity should
-use itself up with time, as everything else does; so that when it <span class='it'>is</span>
-used up no effort has power to prevent love from ceasing. Now it’s
-a long time that you have been loving me; nearly two years!</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>The young man’s intelligence is of the clearest; the
-woman’s here is inferior, though in “Il Fuoco” the two
-opposed faculties are almost equal; but the pair are
-alike far from living in their intelligence, which only
-serves to bestrew with lurid gleams the black darkness
-of their sensual life. So far as the intelligence is one
-with the will our author fundamentally treats it as cut
-off from all communication with any other quarter—that
-is with the senses arrayed and encamped. The
-most his unfortunates arrive at is to carry their extremely
-embellished minds with them through these
-dusky passages as a kind of gilded glimmering lantern,
-the effect of which is merely fantastic and ironic—a
-thing to make the play of their shadows over the walls
-of their catacomb more monstrous and sinister. Again
-in the first pages of “Il Trionfo” the glimmer is given.</p>
-
-<div class='blockquote'>
-
-<p>He recognised the injustice of any resentment against her, because
-he recognised the fatal necessities that controlled them alike.
-No, his misery came from no other human creature; it came from
-the very essence of life. The lover had not the lover to complain
-of, but simply love itself. Love, toward which his whole being
-reached out, from within, with a rush not to be checked, love was
-of all the sad things of this earth the most lamentably sad. And
-to this supreme sadness he was perhaps condemned till death.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>That, in a nutshell, is D’Annunzio’s subject-matter;
-not simply that his characters see in advance what
-love is worth for them, but that they nevertheless need
-to make it the totality of their consciousness. In
-“Il Trionfo” and “Il Fuoco” the law just expressed
-is put into play at the expense of the woman, with
-the difference, however, that in the latter tale the
-woman perceives and judges, suffers in mind, so to
-speak, as well as in nerves and in temper. But it
-would be hard to say in which of these two productions
-the inexhaustible magic of Italy most helps the
-effect, most hangs over the story in such a way as to
-be one with it and to make the ugliness and the beauty
-melt together. The ugliness, it is to be noted, is continually
-<span class='it'>presumed</span> absent; the pursuit and cultivation
-of beauty—that fruitful preoccupation which above all,
-I have said, gives the author his value as our “case”—being
-the very ground on which the whole thing rests.
-The ugliness is an accident, a treachery of fate, the
-intrusion of a foreign substance—having for the most
-part in the scheme itself no admitted inevitability.
-Against it every provision is made that the most developed
-taste in the world can suggest; for, ostensibly,
-transcendently, Signor D’Annunzio’s <span class='it'>is</span> the most developed
-taste in the world—his and that of the ferocious
-yet so contracted <span class='it'>conoscenti</span> his heroes, whose
-virtual identity with himself, affirmed with a strangely
-misplaced complacency by some of his critics, one would
-surely hesitate to take for granted. It is the wondrous
-physical and other endowments of the two heroines
-of “Il Piacere,” it is the joy and splendour of the
-hero’s intercourse with them, to say nothing of the lustre
-of his own person, descent, talents, possessions, and
-of the great general setting in which everything is
-offered us—it is all this that makes up the picture,
-with the constant suggestion that nothing of a baser
-quality for the esthetic sense, or at the worst for a pampered
-curiosity, might hope so much as to live in it.
-The case is the same in “L’Innocente,” a scene all
-primarily smothered in flowers and fruits and fragrances
-and soft Italian airs, in every implication of
-flattered embowered constantly-renewed desire, which
-happens to be a blighted felicity only for the very
-reason that the cultivation of delight—in the form of
-the wife’s luckless experiment—has so awkwardly
-overleaped itself. Whatever furthermore we may reflectively
-think either of the Ippolita of “Il Trionfo”
-or of her companion’s scheme of existence with her, it
-is enchanting grace, strange, original, irresistible in
-kind and degree, that she is given us as representing;
-just as her material situation with her young man
-during the greater part of the tale is a constant communion,
-for both of them, with the poetry and the
-nobleness of classic landscape, of nature consecrated
-by association.</p>
-
-<p>The mixture reaches its maximum, however, in
-“Il Fuoco,” if not perhaps in “The Virgins of the
-Rocks”; the mixture I mean of every exhibited element
-of personal charm, distinction and interest, with
-every insidious local influence, every glamour of place,
-season and surrounding object. The heroine of the
-first-named is a great tragic actress, exquisite for
-everything but for being unfortunately middle-aged,
-battered, marked, as we are constantly reminded, by
-all the after-sense of a career of promiscuous carnal
-connections. The hero is a man of letters, a poet, a
-dramatist of infinite reputation and resource, and their
-union is steeped to the eyes in the gorgeous medium
-of Venice, the moods of whose melancholy and the
-voices of whose past are an active part of the perpetual
-concert. But we see <span class='it'>all</span> the persons introduced to
-us yearn and strain to exercise their perceptions and
-taste their impressions as deeply as possible, conspiring
-together to interweave them with the pleasures of
-passion. They “go in” as the phrase is, for beauty at
-any cost—for each other’s own to begin with; their
-creator, in the inspiring quest, presses them hard, and
-the whole effect becomes for us that of an organised
-general sacrifice to it and an organised general repudiation
-of everything else. It is not idle to repeat that
-the value of the Italian background has to this end
-been inestimable, and that every spark of poetry it
-had to contribute has been struck from it—with what
-supreme felicity we perhaps most admiringly learn
-in “The Virgins of the Rocks.” To measure the
-assistance thus rendered, and especially the immense
-literary lift given, we have only to ask ourselves what
-appearance any one of the situations presented would
-have made in almost any Cisalpine or “northern”
-frame of circumstance whatever. Supported but by
-such associations of local or of literary elegance as <span class='it'>our</span>
-comparatively thin resources are able to furnish, the
-latent weakness in them all, the rock, as to final effect,
-on which they split and of which I shall presently
-speak, would be immeasurably less dissimulated. All
-this is the lesson of style, by which we here catch a
-writer in the very act of profiting after a curious double
-fashion. D’Annunzio arrives at it both by expression
-and by material—that is, by a whole side of the latter;
-so that with such energy at once and such good fortune
-it would be odd indeed if he had not come far.
-It is verily in the very name and interest of beauty, of
-the lovely impression, that Giorgio Aurispa becomes
-homicidal in thought and finally in act.</p>
-
-<div class='blockquote'>
-
-<p>She would in death become for me matter of thought, pure
-ideality. From a precarious and imperfect existence she would
-enter into an existence complete and definitive, forsaking forever
-the infirmity of her weak luxurious flesh. Destroy to possess—there
-is no other way for him who seeks the absolute in love.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>To these reflections he has been brought by the long,
-dangerous past which, as the author says, his connection
-with his mistress has behind it—a past of recriminations
-of which the ghosts still walk. “It dragged
-behind it, through time, an immense dark net, all full
-of dead things.” To quote here at all is always to
-desire to continue, and “Il Trionfo” abounds in the
-illustrative episodes that are ever made so masterfully
-concrete. Offering in strictness, incidentally, the only
-exhibition in all the five volumes of a human relation
-other than the acutely sexual, it deals admirably
-enough with this opportunity when the hero pays his
-visit to his provincial parents before settling with his
-mistress at their hermitage. His people are of ancient
-race and have been much at their ease; but the home
-in the old Apulian town, overdarkened by the misdeeds
-of a demoralised father, is on the verge of ruin,
-and the dull mean despair of it all, lighted by outbreaks
-of helpless rage on the part of the injured mother,
-is more than the visitor can bear, absorbed as he is in
-impatiences and concupiscences which make everything
-else cease to exist for him. His terror of the
-place and its troubles but exposes of course the abjection
-of his weakness, and the sordid squabbles, the
-general misery and mediocrity of life that he has to
-face, constitute precisely, for his personal design, the
-abhorred challenge of ugliness, the interference of a
-call other than erotic. He flees before it, leaving it to
-make shift as it can; but nothing could be more “rendered”
-in detail than his overwhelmed vision of it.</p>
-
-<p>So with the other finest passages of the story, notably
-the summer day spent by the lovers in a long
-dusty dreadful pilgrimage to a famous local miracle-working
-shrine, where they mingle with the multitude
-of the stricken, the deformed, the hideous, the barely
-human, and from which they return, disgusted and
-appalled, to plunge deeper into consoling but too temporary
-transports; notably also the incident, masterly
-in every touch, of the little drowned contadino, the
-whole scene of the small starved dead child on the
-beach, in all the beauty of light and air and view, with
-the effusions and vociferations and grimnesses round
-him, the sights and sounds of the quasi-barbaric life
-that have the relief of antique rites portrayed on old
-tombs and urns, that quality and dignity of looming
-larger which a great feeling on the painter’s part ever
-gives to small things. With this ampler truth the last
-page of the book is above all invested, the description
-of the supreme moment—for some time previous creeping
-nearer and nearer—at which the delirious protagonist
-beguiles his vaguely but not fully suspicious
-companion into coming out with him toward the edge
-of a dizzy place over the sea, where he suddenly grasps
-her for her doom and the sense of his awful intention,
-flashing a light back as into their monstrous past,
-makes her shriek for her life. She dodges him at the
-first betrayal, panting and trembling.</p>
-
-<div class='blockquote'>
-
-<p>“Are you crazy?” she cried with wrath in her throat. “Are you
-crazy?” But as she saw him make for her afresh in silence, as she
-felt herself seized with still harsher violence and dragged afresh
-toward her danger, she understood it all in a great sinister flash
-which blasted her soul with terror. “No, no, Giorgio! Let me
-go! Let me go! Another minute—listen, listen! Just a minute!
-I want to say——!” She supplicated, mad with terror, getting
-herself free and hoping to make him wait, to put him off with pity.
-“A minute! Listen! I love you! Forgive me! Forgive me!”
-She stammered incoherent words, desperate, feeling herself overcome,
-losing her ground, seeing death close. “Murder!” she then
-yelled in her fury. And she defended herself with her nails, with
-her teeth, biting like a wild beast. “Murder!” she yelled, feeling
-herself seized by the hair, felled to the ground on the edge of the
-precipice, lost. The dog meanwhile barked out at the scuffle.
-The struggle was short and ferocious, as between implacable enemies
-who had been nursing to this hour in the depths of their souls
-an intensity of hate. And they plunged into death locked together.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>The wonder-working shrine of the Abruzzi, to which
-they have previously made their way, is a local Lourdes,
-the resort from far and wide of the physically afflicted,
-the evocation of whose multitudinous presence, the
-description of whose unimaginable miseries and ecstasies,
-grovelling struggles and supplications, has the
-mark of a pictorial energy for such matters not inferior
-to that of Émile Zola—to the degree even that
-the originality of the pages in question was, if I remember
-rightly, rather sharply impugned in Paris.
-D’Annunzio’s defence, however, was easy, residing
-as it does in the fact that to handle any subject successfully
-handled by Zola (his failures are another
-matter) is quite inevitably to walk more or less in his
-footsteps, in prints so wide and deep as to leave little
-margin for passing round them. To which I may
-add that, though the judgment may appear odd, the
-truth and force of the young man’s few abject days at
-Guardiagrele, his <span class='it'>casa paterna</span>, are such as to make
-us wish that other such corners of life were more frequent
-in the author’s pages. He has the supremely
-interesting quality in the novelist that he <span class='it'>fixes</span>, as it
-were, the tone of every cluster of objects he approaches,
-fixes it by the consistency and intensity of his reproduction.
-In “The Virgins of the Rocks” we have also
-a <span class='it'>casa paterna</span>, and a thing, as I have indicated, of
-exquisite and wonderful tone; but the tone here is of
-poetry, the truth and the force are less measurable
-and less familiar, and the whole question, after all,
-in its refined and attenuated form, is still that of
-sexual pursuit, which keeps it within the writer’s too
-frequent limits. Giorgio Aurispa, in “Il Trionfo,”
-lives in communion with the spirit of an amiable and
-melancholy uncle who had committed suicide and
-made him the heir of his fortune, and one of the
-nephew’s most frequent and faithful loyalties is to
-hark back, in thought, to the horror of his first knowledge
-of the dead man’s act, put before us always with
-its accompaniment of loud southern resonance and
-confusion. He is in the place again, he is in the room,
-at Guardiagrele, of the original appalled vision.</p>
-
-<div class='blockquote'>
-
-<p>He heard, in the stillness of the air and of his arrested soul, the
-small shrill of an insect in the wainscot. And the little fact sufficed
-to dissipate for the moment the extreme violence of his nervous
-tension, as the puncture of a needle suffices to empty a swollen
-bladder. Every particular of the terrible day came back to his
-memory: the news abruptly brought to Torretta di Sarsa, toward
-three in the afternoon, by a panting messenger who stammered
-and whimpered: the ride on horseback, at lightning speed, under
-the canicular sky and up the torrid slopes, and, during the rush,
-the sudden faintnesses that turned him dizzy in his saddle; then the
-house at home, filled with sobs, filled with a noise of doors slamming
-in the general scare, filled with the strumming of his own arteries;
-and at last his irruption into the room, the sight of the corpse, the
-curtains inflated and rustling, the tinkle on the wall of the little
-font for holy water.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>This young man’s great mistake, we are told, had
-been his insistence on regarding love as a form of enjoyment.
-He would have been in a possible relation
-to it only if he had learned to deal with it as a form of
-suffering. This is the lesson brought home to the
-heroine of “Il Fuoco,” who suffers indeed, as it seems
-to us, so much more than is involved in the occasion.
-We ask ourselves continually why; that is we do so at
-first; we do so before the special force of the book takes
-us captive and reduces us to mere charmed absorption
-of its successive parts and indifference to its moral
-sense. Its defect is verily that it has no moral sense
-proportionate to the truth, the constant high style
-of the general picture; and this fact makes the whole
-thing appear given us simply because it has happened,
-because it was material that the author had become
-possessed of, and not because, in its almost journalistic
-“actuality,” it has any large meaning. We get the impression
-of a direct transfer, a “lift,” bodily, of something
-seen and known, something not really produced
-by the chemical process of art, the crucible or retort
-from which things emerge for a new function. Their
-meaning here at any rate, extracted with difficulty,
-would seem to be that there is an inevitable leak of
-ease and peace when a mistress happens to be considerably
-older than her lover; but even this interesting
-yet not unfamiliar truth loses itself in the great poetic,
-pathetic, psychologic ceremonial.</p>
-
-<p>That matters little indeed, as I say, while we read;
-the two sensibilities concerned bloom, in all the Venetian
-glow, like wondrous water-plants, throwing out
-branches and flowers of which we admire the fantastic
-growth even while we remain, botanically speaking, bewildered.
-They are other sensibilities than those
-with which we ourselves have community—one of the
-main reasons of their appearing so I shall presently explain;
-and, besides, they are isolated, sequestrated, according
-to D’Annunzio’s constant view of such cases,
-for an exclusive, an intensified and arid development.
-The mistress has, abnormally, none of the protection,
-the alternative life, the saving sanity of other interests,
-ties, employments; while the hero, a young poet
-and dramatist with an immense consciousness of
-genius and fame, has for the time at least only those
-poor contacts with existence that the last intimacies
-of his contact with his friend’s person, her poor <span class='it'>corpo
-non più giovane</span>, as he so frequently repeats, represent
-for him. It is not for us, however, to contest the
-relation; it is in the penetrating way again in which
-the relation is rendered that the writer has his triumph;
-the way above all in which the world-weary interesting
-sensitive woman, with her infinite intelligence, yet
-with her longing for some happiness still among all her
-experiments untasted, and her genius at the same time
-for familiar misery, is marked, featured, individualised
-for us, and, with the strangest art in the world—one
-of those mysteries of which great talents alone have
-the trick—at once ennobled with beauty and desecrated
-by a process that we somehow feel to be that of
-exposure, to spring from some violation of a privilege.
-“ ‘Do with me,’ ” says the Foscarina on a certain occasion,
-“ ‘whatever you will’; and she smiled in her
-offered abjection. She belonged to him like the thing
-one holds in one’s fist, like the ring on one’s finger,
-like a glove, like a garment, like a word that may be
-spoken or not, like a draught that may be drunk or
-poured on the ground.” There are some lines describing
-an hour in which she has made him feel as never
-before “the incalculable capacity of the heart of man.
-And it seemed to him as he heard the beating of his
-own heart and divined the violence of the other beside
-him that he had in his ears the loud repercussion
-of the hammer on the hard anvil where human destiny
-is forged.” More than ever here the pitch of the
-personal drama is taken up by everything else in the
-scene—everything else being in fact but the immediate
-presence of Venice, her old faded colour and old vague
-harmonies, played with constantly as we might play
-with some rosy fretted faintly-sounding sea-shell.</p>
-
-<p>It would take time to say what we play with in the
-silver-toned “Virgins of the Rocks,” the history of a
-visit paid by a transcendent young man—always pretty
-much the same young man—to an illustrious family
-whose fortunes have tragically shrunken with the expulsion
-of the Bourbons from the kingdom of Naples,
-and the three last lovely daughters of whose house
-are beginning to wither on the stem, undiscovered, unsought,
-in a dilapidated old palace, an old garden of
-neglected pomp, a place of fountains and colonnades,
-marble steps and statues, all circled with hard bright
-sun-scorched volcanic scenery. They are tacitly candidates
-for the honour of the hero’s hand, and the subject
-of the little tale, which deals with scarce more than
-a few summer days, is the manner of their presenting
-themselves for his admiration and his choice. I decidedly
-name this exquisite composition as my preferred
-of the series; for if its tone is thoroughly romantic
-the romance is yet of the happiest kind, the kind that
-consists in the imaginative development of observable
-things, things present, significant, related to us, and
-not in a weak false fumble for the remote and the disconnected.</p>
-
-<p>It is indeed the romantic mind itself that makes the
-picture, and there could be no better case of the absolute
-artistic vision. The mere facts are soon said; the
-main fact, above all, of the feeble remnant of an exhausted
-race waiting in impotence to see itself cease
-to be. The father has nothing personal left but the
-ruins of his fine presence and of his old superstitions,
-a handful of silver dust; the mother, mad and under
-supervision, stalks about with the delusion of imperial
-greatness (there is a wonderful page on her parading
-through the gardens in her rococo palanquin, like a
-Byzantine empress, attended by sordid keepers, while
-the others are hushed into pity and awe); the two sons,
-hereditarily tainted, are virtually imbecile; the three
-daughters, candidly considered, are what we should
-regard in our Anglo-Saxon world as but the stuff of
-rather particularly dreary and shabby, quite unutterably
-idle old maids. Nothing, within the picture,
-occurs; nothing is done or, more acutely than usual,
-than everywhere, suffered; it is all a mere affair of
-the rich impression, the complexity of images projected
-upon the quintessential spirit of the hero, whose own
-report is what we have—an affair of the quality of
-observation, sentiment and eloquence brought to bear.
-It is not too much to say even that the whole thing
-is in the largest sense but a theme for style, style of
-substance as well as of form. Within this compass it
-blooms and quivers and shimmers with light, becomes
-a wonderful little walled garden of romance. The
-young man has a passage of extreme but respectful
-tenderness with each of the sisters in turn, and the
-general cumulative effect is scarcely impaired by the
-fact that “nothing comes” of any of these relations.
-Too little comes of anything, I think, for any very
-marked human analogy, inasmuch as if it is interesting
-to be puzzled to a certain extent by what an action,
-placed before us, is designed to show or to signify, so
-we require for this refined amusement at least the sense
-that some general idea <span class='it'>is</span> represented. We must feel
-it present.</p>
-
-<p>Therefore if making out nothing very distinct in “Le
-Vergini” but the pictorial idea, and yet cleaving to
-the preference I have expressed, I let the anomaly pass
-as a tribute extorted by literary art, I may seem to
-imply that a book may have a great interest without
-showing a perfect sense. The truth is undoubtedly
-that I am in some degree beguiled and bribed by the
-particularly intense expression given in these pages to
-the author’s esthetic faith. If he is so supremely a
-“case” it is because this production has so much to
-say for it, and says it with such a pride of confidence,
-with an assurance and an elegance that fairly make it
-the last conceivable word of such a profession. The
-observations recorded have their origin in the narrator’s
-passionate reaction against the vulgarity of the
-day. All the writer’s young men react; but Cantelmo,
-in the volume before us, reacts with the finest contempt.
-He is, like his brothers, a <span class='it'>raffiné</span> conservative,
-believing really, so far as we understand it, only in
-the virtue of “race” and in the grand manner. The
-blighted Virgins, with all that surrounds them, are an
-affirmation of the grand manner—that is of the shame
-and scandal of what in an odious age it has been reduced
-to. It consists indeed of a number of different
-things which I may not pretend to have completely
-fitted together, but which are, with other elements, the
-sense of the supremacy of beauty, the supremacy of
-style and, last not least, of the personal will, manifested
-for the most part as a cold insolence of attitude—not
-manifested as anything much more edifying.
-What it really appears to come to is that the will is
-a sort of romantic ornament, the application of which,
-for life in the present and the future, remains awkwardly
-vague, though we are always to remember that
-it has been splendidly forged in the past. The will in
-short <span class='it'>is</span> beauty, is style, is elegance, is art—especially
-in members of great families and possessors of large
-fortunes. That of the hero of “Le Vergini” has been
-handed down to him direct, as by a series of testamentary
-provisions, from a splendid young ancestor for
-whose memory and whose portrait he has a worship,
-a warrior and virtuoso of the Renaissance, the model
-of his spirit.</p>
-
-<div class='blockquote'>
-
-<p>He represents for me the mysterious meaning of the power of
-style, not violable by any one, and least of all ever by myself in
-my own person.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>And elsewhere:—</p>
-
-<div class='blockquote'>
-
-<p>The sublime hands of Violante [the beauty and interest of hands
-play a great part, in general, in the picture], pressing out in drops
-the essence of the tender flowers and letting them fall bruised to
-the ground, performed an act which, as a symbol, corresponded
-perfectly to the character of my style; this being ever to extract
-from a thing its very last scent of life, to take from it all it could
-give and leave it exhausted. Was not this one of the most important
-offices of my art of life?</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>The book is a singularly rich exhibition of an inward
-state, the state of private poetic intercourse with things,
-the kind of current that in a given personal experience
-flows to and fro between the imagination and the world.
-It represents the esthetic consciousness, proud of its
-conquests and discoveries, and yet trying, after all, as
-with the vexed sense of a want, to look through other
-windows and eyes. It goes all lengths, as is of course
-indispensable on behalf of a personage constituting a
-case. “I firmly believe that the greatest sum of future
-dominion will be precisely that which shall have its
-base and its apex in Rome”—such being in our personage
-the confidence of the “Latin” spirit. Does it not
-really all come back to style? It was to the Latin
-spirit that the Renaissance was primarily vouchsafed;
-and was not, for a simplified statement, the last word
-of the Renaissance the question of taste? That is the
-esthetic question; and when the Latin spirit after many
-misadventures again clears itself we shall see how all
-the while this treasure has been in its keeping. Let us
-as frankly as possible add that there is a whole side on
-which the clearance may appear to have made quite a
-splendid advance with Signor D’Annunzio himself.</p>
-
-<p>But there is another side, which I have been too long
-in coming to, yet which I confess is for me much the
-more interesting. No account of our author is complete
-unless we really make out what becomes of that
-esthetic consistency in him which, as I have said, our
-own collective and cultivated effort is so earnestly attempting
-and yet so pathetically, if not so grotesquely,
-missing. We are struck, unmistakably, early in our
-acquaintance with these productions, by the fact that
-their total beauty somehow extraordinarily fails to
-march with their beauty of parts, and that something
-is all the while at work undermining that bulwark
-against ugliness which it is their obvious theory of their
-own office to throw up. The disparity troubles and
-haunts us just in proportion as we admire; and our
-uneasy wonderment over the source of the weakness
-fails to spoil our pleasure only because such questions
-have so lively an interest for the critic. We feel ourselves
-somehow in presence of a singular incessant <span class='it'>leak</span>
-in the effect of distinction so artfully and copiously
-produced, and we apply our test up and down in the
-manner of the inquiring person who, with a tin implement
-and a small flame, searches our premises for an
-escape of gas. The bad smell has, as it were, to be
-accounted for; and yet where, amid the roses and
-lilies and pomegranates, the thousand essences and fragrances,
-can such a thing possibly be? Quite abruptly,
-I think, at last (if we have been much under the spell)
-our test gives us the news, not unaccompanied with
-the shock with which we see our escape of gas spring
-into flame. There is no mistaking it; the leak of distinction
-is produced by a positive element of the vulgar;
-and that the vulgar should flourish in an air so
-charged, intellectually speaking, with the “aristocratic”
-element, becomes for us straightway the greatest of
-oddities and at the same time, critically speaking, one
-of the most interesting things conceivable.</p>
-
-<p>The interest then springs from its being involved for
-us in the “case.” We recognise so many suggested
-consequences if the case is really to prove responsible
-for it. We ask ourselves if there be not a connection,
-we almost tremble lest there shouldn’t be; since what
-is more obvious than that, if a high example of exclusive
-estheticism—as high a one as we are likely ever
-to meet—is bound sooner or later to spring a leak, the
-general question receives much light? We recognise
-here the value of our author’s complete consistency:
-he would have kept his bottom sound, so to speak,
-had he not remained so long at sea. If those imperfect
-exponents of his faith whom we have noted among
-ourselves fail to flower, for a climax, in any proportionate
-way, we make out that they are embarrassed not
-so much by any force they possess as by a force—a
-force of temperament—that they lack. The anomaly
-I speak of presents itself thus as the dilemma in which
-Signor D’Annunzio’s consistency has inexorably landed
-him; and the disfigurement breaks out, strikingly
-enough, in the very forefront of his picture, at the
-point where he has most lavished his colour. It is
-where he has most trusted and depended that he is
-most betrayed, the traitor sharing certainly his tent
-and his confidence. What is it that in the interest of
-beauty he most elaborately builds on if not on the love-affairs
-of his heroes and heroines, if not on his exhibition
-of the free play, the sincere play, the play closely
-studied and frankly represented, of the sexual relation?
-It is round this exercise, for him, that expressible,
-demonstrable, communicable beauty prevailingly clusters;
-a view indeed as to which we all generously go
-with him, subject to the reserve for each of us of our
-own expression and demonstration. It is these things
-on his part that break down, it is his discrimination
-that falls short, and thereby the very kind of intellectual
-authority most implied by his pretension.
-There is according to him an immense amenity that
-can be saved—saved by style—from the general wreck
-and welter of what is most precious, from the bankruptcy
-determined more and more by our basely democratic
-conditions. As we watch the actual process,
-however, it is only to see the lifeboat itself founder.
-The vulgarity into which he so incongruously drops is,
-I will not say the space he allots to love-affairs, but
-the weakness of his sense of “values” in depicting
-them.</p>
-
-<p>We begin to ask ourselves at an early stage what
-this queer passion may be in the representation of
-which the sense of beauty ostensibly finds its richest
-expression and which is yet attended by nothing else
-at all—neither duration, nor propagation, nor common
-kindness, nor common consistency with other relations,
-common congruity with the rest of life—to make its
-importance good. If beauty is the supreme need so
-let it be; nothing is more certain than that we can
-never get too much of it if only we get it of the right
-sort. It is therefore on this very ground—the ground
-of its own sufficiency—that Signor D’Annunzio’s invocation
-of it collapses at our challenge. The vulgarity
-comes from the disorder really introduced into
-values, as I have called them; from the vitiation suffered—that
-we should have to record so mean an accident—by
-taste, impeccable taste, itself. The truth of
-this would come out fully in copious examples, now
-impossible; but it is not too much to say, I think,
-that in every principal situation presented the fundamental
-weakness causes the particular interest to be
-inordinately compromised.</p>
-
-<p>I must not, I know, make too much of “Il Piacere”—one
-of those works of promising youth with which
-criticism is always easy—and I should indeed say
-nothing of it if it were also a work of less ability. It
-really, however, to my mind, quite gives us the key,
-all in the morning early, to our author’s general misadventure.
-Andrea Sperelli is the key; Donna Maria
-is another key of a slightly different shape. They have
-neither of them the esthetic importance, any more
-than the moral, that their narrator claims for them
-and in his elaborate insistence on which he has so
-hopelessly lost his way. If they <span class='it'>were</span> important—by
-which I mean if they showed in any other light than
-that of their particular erotic exercise—they would justify
-the claim made for them with such superior art.
-They have no general history, since their history is
-only, and immediately and extravagantly, that of their
-too cheap and too easy romance. Why should the career
-of the young man be offered as a sample of pathetic,
-of tragic, of edifying corruption?—in which case it
-might indeed be matter for earnest exhibition. The
-march of corruption, the insidious influence of propinquity,
-opportunity, example, the ravage of false estimates
-and the drama of sterilising passion—all this
-is a thinkable theme, thinkable especially in the light
-of a great talent. But for Andrea Sperelli there is not
-only no march, no drama, there is not even a weakness
-to give him the semblance of dramatic, of plastic
-material; he is solidly, invariably, vulgarly strong, and
-not a bit more corrupt at the end of his disorders than
-at the beginning. His erudition, his intellectual accomplishments
-and elevation, are too easily spoken for;
-no view of him is given in which we can feel or taste
-them. Donna Maria is scarcely less signal an instance
-of the apparent desire on the author’s part to impute
-a “value” defeated by his apparently not knowing
-what a value is. She is apparently an immense value
-for the occasions on which the couple secretly meet,
-but how is she otherwise one? and what becomes
-therefore of the beauty, the interest, the pathos, the
-struggle, or whatever else, of her relation—relation of
-character, of judgment, even of mere taste—to her
-own collapse? The immediate physical sensibility that
-surrenders in her is, as throughout, exquisitely painted;
-but since nothing operates for her, one way or the
-other, <span class='it'>but</span> that familiar faculty, we are left casting
-about us almost as much for what else she has to give
-as for what, in any case, she may wish to keep.</p>
-
-<p>The author’s view of the whole matter of durations
-and dates, in these connections, gives the scale of
-“distinction” by itself a marked downward tilt; it
-confounds all differences between the trivial and the
-grave. Giuliana, in “L’Innocente,” is interesting because
-she has had a misadventure, and she is exquisite
-in her delineator’s view because she has repented of
-it. But the misadventure, it appears, was a matter
-but of a minute; so that we oddly see this particular
-romance attenuated on the ground of its brevity.
-Given the claims of the exquisite, the attenuation
-should surely be sought in the very opposite quarter;
-since, where these remarkable affections are concerned,
-how otherwise than by the element of comparative
-duration do we obtain the element of comparative
-good faith, on which we depend for the element, in
-turn, of comparative dignity? Andrea Sperelli becomes
-in the course of a few weeks in Rome the lover
-of some twenty or thirty women of fashion—the number
-scarce matters; but to make this possible his connection
-with each has but to last a day or two; and
-the effect of that in its order is to reduce to nothing,
-by vulgarity, by frank grotesqueness of association,
-the romantic capacity in him on which his chronicler’s
-whole appeal to us is based. The association rising
-before us more nearly than any other is that of the
-manners observable in the most mimetic department
-of any great menagerie.</p>
-
-<p>The most serious relation depicted—in the sense of
-being in some degree the least suggestive of mere zoological
-sociability—is that of the lovers in “Il Fuoco,”
-as we also take this pair for their creator’s sanest and
-most responsible spirits. It is a question between
-them of an heroic affection, and yet the affection appears
-to make good for itself no place worth speaking
-of in their lives. It holds but for a scant few weeks;
-the autumn already reigns when the connection begins,
-and the connection is played out (or if it be not the
-ado is about nothing) with the first flush of the early
-Italian spring. It suddenly, on our hands, becomes
-trivial, with all our own estimate of reasons and realities
-and congruities falsified. The Foscarina has, on
-professional business, to “go away,” and the young
-poet has to do the same; but such a separation, so
-easily bridged over by such great people, makes a beggarly
-climax for an intercourse on behalf of which all
-the forces of poetry and tragedy have been set in motion.
-Where then we ask ourselves is the weakness?—as
-we ask it, very much in the same way, in respect
-to the vulgarised aspect of the tragedy of Giorgio Aurispa.
-The pang of pity, the pang that springs from
-a conceivable community in doom, is in this latter case
-altogether wanting. Directly we lift a little the embroidered
-mantle of that gift for appearances which
-plays, on Signor D’Annunzio’s part, such tricks upon
-us, we find ourselves put off, as the phrase is, with an
-inferior article. The inferior article is the hero’s poverty
-of life, which cuts him down for pathetic interest
-just as the same limitation in “Il Piacere” cuts down
-Donna Maria. Presented each as victims of another
-rapacious person who has got the better of them, there
-is no process, no complexity, no suspense in their
-story; and thereby, we submit, there is no esthetic
-beauty. Why <span class='it'>shouldn’t</span> Giorgio Aurispa go mad?
-Why shouldn’t Stelio Effrena go away? We make the
-inquiry as disconcerted spectators, not feeling in the
-former case that we have had any communication with
-the wretched youth’s sanity, and not seeing in the latter
-why the tie of all the passion that has been made
-so admirably vivid for us should not be able to weather
-change.</p>
-
-<p>Nothing is so singular with D’Annunzio as that the
-very basis and subject of his work should repeatedly
-go aground on such shallows as these. He takes for
-treatment a situation that is substantially none—the
-most fundamental this of his values, and all the more
-compromising that his immense art of producing illusions
-still leaves it exposed. The idea in each case is
-superficially specious, but <span class='it'>where</span> it breaks down is what
-makes all the difference. “Il Piacere” would have
-meant what it seems to try to mean only if a provision
-had been made in it for some adequate “inwardness”
-on the part either of the nature disintegrated or
-of the other nature to which this poisoned contact
-proves fatal. “L’Innocente,” of the group, comes
-nearest to justifying its idea; and I leave it unchallenged,
-though its meaning surely would have been
-written larger if the attitude of the wife toward her
-misbegotten child had been, in face of the husband’s,
-a little less that of the dumb detached animal suffering
-in her simplicity. As a picture of such suffering, the
-pain of the mere dumb animal, the work is indeed
-magnificent; only its connections are poor with the
-higher dramatic, the higher poetic, complexity of
-things.</p>
-
-<p>I can only repeat that to make “The Triumph of
-Death” a fruitful thing we should have been able to
-measure the triumph by its frustration of some conceivable
-opportunity at least for life. There is a moment
-at which we hope for something of this kind,
-the moment at which the young man pays his visit to
-his family, who have grievous need of him and toward
-whom we look to see some one side or other of his
-fine sensibility turn. But nothing comes of that for
-the simple reason that the personage is already dead—that
-nothing exists in him but the established <span class='it'>fear</span>
-of life. He turns his back on everything but a special
-sensation, and so completely shuts the door on the
-elements of contrast and curiosity. Death really triumphs,
-in the matter, but over the physical terror of
-the inordinate woman; a pang perfectly communicated
-to us, but too small a surface to bear the weight
-laid on it, which accordingly affects us as that of a
-pyramid turned over on its point. It is throughout
-one of D’Annunzio’s strongest marks that he treats
-“love” as a matter not to be mixed with life, in the
-larger sense of the word, at all—as a matter all of
-whose other connections are dropped; a sort of secret
-game that can go on only if each of the parties has
-nothing to do, even on any <span class='it'>other</span> terms, with any one
-else.</p>
-
-<p>I have dwelt on the fact that the sentimental intention
-in “Il Fuoco” quite bewilderingly fails, in spite
-of the splendid accumulation of material. We wait to
-the end to see it declare itself, and then are left, as
-I have already indicated, with a mere meaningless
-anecdote on our hands. Brilliant and free, each
-freighted with a talent that is given us as incomparable,
-the parties to the combination depicted have, for
-their affection, the whole world before them—and not
-the simple terraqueous globe, but that still vaster
-sphere of the imagination in which, by an exceptionally
-happy chance, they are able to move together
-on very nearly equal terms. A tragedy is a tragedy,
-a comedy is a comedy, when the effect, in either sense,
-is <span class='it'>determined</span> for us, determined by the interference of
-some element that starts a complication or precipitates
-an action. As in “Il Fuoco” nothing whatever interferes—or
-nothing certainly that need weigh with the
-high spirits represented—we ask why such precious revelations
-are made us for nothing. Admirably made in
-themselves they yet strike us as, esthetically speaking,
-almost cruelly wasted.</p>
-
-<p>This general remark would hold good, as well, of
-“Le Vergini,” if I might still linger, though its application
-has already been virtually made. Anatolia, in
-this tale, the most robust of the three sisters, declines
-marriage in order to devote herself to a family who
-have, it would certainly appear, signal need of her
-nursing. But this, though it sufficiently represents <span class='it'>her</span>
-situation, covers as little as possible the ground of the
-hero’s own, since he, quivering intensely with the
-treasure of his “will,” inherited in a straight line from
-the <span class='it'>cinque-cento</span>, only asks to affirm his sublimated
-energy. The temptation to affirm it erotically, at
-least, has been great for him in relation to each of the
-young women in turn; but it is for Anatolia that his
-admiration and affection most increase in volume, and
-it is accordingly for her sake that, with the wonderful
-moral force behind him (kept as in a Florentine casket,)
-we most look to see him justified. He has a fine image—and
-when has the author not fine images?—to illustrate
-the constant readiness of this possession. The
-young woman says something that inspires him, whereupon,
-“as a sudden light playing over the dusky wall
-of a room causes the motionless sword in a trophy to
-shine, so her word drew a great flash from my suspended
-<span class='it'>volontà</span>. There was a virtue in her,” the narrator
-adds, “which could have produced portentous
-fruit. Her substance might have nourished a superhuman
-germ.” In spite of which it never succeeds in
-becoming so much as a question that his affection for
-her shall <span class='it'>act</span>, that this grand imagination in him shall
-operate, that he himself is, in virtue of such things,
-exactly the person to come to her aid and to combine
-with her in devotion. The talk about the <span class='it'>volontà</span> is
-amusing much in the same way as the complacency of
-a primitive man, unacquainted with the uses of things,
-who becomes possessed by some accident of one of the
-toys of civilisation, a watch or a motor-car. And yet
-artistically and for our author the will <span class='it'>has</span> an application,
-since without it he could have done no rare
-vivid work.</p>
-
-<p>Here at all events we put our finger, I think, on the
-very point at which his esthetic plenitude meets the
-misadventure that discredits it. We see just where it
-“joins on” with vulgarity. That sexual passion from
-which he extracts such admirable detached pictures insists
-on remaining for him <span class='it'>only</span> the act of a moment,
-beginning and ending in itself and disowning any representative
-character. From the moment it depends
-on itself alone for its beauty it endangers extremely
-its distinction, so precarious at the best. For what it
-represents, precisely, is it poetically interesting; it
-finds its extension and consummation only in the rest
-of life. Shut out from the rest of life, shut out from
-all fruition and assimilation, it has no more dignity
-than—to use a homely image—the boots and shoes
-that we see, in the corridors of promiscuous hotels,
-standing, often in double pairs, at the doors of rooms.
-Detached and unassociated these clusters of objects
-present, however obtruded, no importance. What the
-participants do with their agitation, in short, or even
-what it does with them, <span class='it'>that</span> is the stuff of poetry, and
-it is never really interesting save when something
-finely contributive in themselves makes it so. It is
-this absence of anything finely contributive in themselves,
-on the part of the various couples here concerned,
-that is the open door to the trivial. I have
-said, with all appreciation, that they present the great
-“relation,” for intimacy, as we shall nowhere else find
-it presented; but to see it related, in its own turn, to
-nothing in the heaven above or the earth beneath,
-this undermines, we definitely learn, the charm of that
-achievement.</p>
-
-<p>And so it is, strangely, that our esthetic “case” enlightens
-us. The only question is whether it be the
-only case of the kind conceivable. May we not suppose
-another with the elements differently mixed?
-May we not in imagination alter the proportions within
-or the influences without, and look with cheerfulness
-for a different issue? <span class='it'>Need</span> the esthetic adventure, in
-a word, organised for real discovery, give us no more
-comforting news of success? Are there not, so to
-speak, finer possible combinations? are there not safeguards
-against futility that in the example before us
-were but too presumably absent? To which the sole
-answer probably is that no man can say. It is Signor
-D’Annunzio alone who has really sailed the sea and
-brought back the booty. The actual case is so good
-that all the potential fade beside it. It has for it
-that it exists, and that, whether for the strength of
-the original outfit or for the weight of the final testimony,
-it could scarce thinkably be bettered.</p>
-
-<div><span class='pagenum'><a name='Page_294' id='Page_294'>294</a></span><h1 id='t10151'>MATILDE SERAO</h1></div>
-
-<p>Few attentive readers, I take it, would deny that the
-English novelist—from whom, in this case, there happens
-to be even less occasion than usual for distinguishing
-the American—testifies in his art much more
-than his foreign comrade, from whatever quarter, to
-the rigour of convention. There are whole sides of
-life about which he has as little to say as possible,
-about which he observes indeed in general a silence
-that has visibly ended by becoming for the foreign
-comrade his great characteristic. He strikes the spectator
-as having with a misplaced humility consented
-once for all to be admonished as to what he shall or
-shall not “mention”—and to be admonished in especial
-by an authority altogether indefinite. He subscribes,
-when his turn comes round, to an agreement
-in the drawing-up of which he has had no hand; he
-sits down to his task with a certain received canon of
-the “proper” before his eyes. The critic I am supposing
-reproaches him, naturally, in this critic’s way,
-with a marked failure ever to challenge, much less to
-analyse, that conception; with having never, as would
-appear, so much as put to himself in regard to most
-of the matters of which he makes his mystery the
-simple question “Proper to what?” How can any
-authority, even the most embodied, asks the exponent
-of other views, decide for us in advance what shall in
-any case be proper—with the consequent implication
-of impropriety—to our given subject?</p>
-
-<p>The English novelist would, I imagine, even sometimes
-be led on to finding that he has practically had
-to meet such an overhauling by a further admission,
-though an admission still tacit and showing him not
-a little shy of the whole discussion—principles and formulas
-being in general, as we know, but little his
-affair. Would he not, if off his guard, have been in
-peril of lapsing into the doctrine—suicidal when reflected
-upon—that there may be also an <span class='it'>a priori</span> rule,
-a “Thou shalt not,” if not a “Thou shalt,” as to treatable
-subjects themselves? Then it would be that his
-alien foe might fairly revel in the sense of having him
-in a corner, laughing an evil laugh to hear him plead
-in explanation that it is exactly <span class='it'>most</span> as to the subject
-to be treated that he feels the need laid upon him
-to conform. What is he to do when he has an idea to
-embody, we might suspect him rashly to inquire, unless,
-frankly to ask himself in the first place of <span class='it'>all</span> if
-it be proper? Not indeed—we catch the reservation—that
-he is consciously often accessible to ideas for
-which that virtue may not be claimed. Naturally,
-however, still, such a plea only brings forth for his
-interlocutor a repetition of the original appeal: “Proper
-to what?” There is only one propriety the painter of
-life can ask of his morsel of material: Is it, or is it
-not, of the stuff of life? So, in simplified terms at
-any rate, I seem to hear the interchange; to which I
-need listen no longer than thus to have derived from
-it a word of support for my position. The question of
-our possible rejoinder to the scorn of societies otherwise
-affected I must leave for some other connection.
-The point is—if point I may expect to obtain any
-countenance to its being called—that, in spite of our
-great Dickens and, in a minor degree, of our great
-George Eliot, the limitations of our practice are elsewhere
-than among ourselves pretty well held to have
-put us out of court. The thing least conceded to us
-moreover is that we handle at all frankly—if we put
-forward such a claim—even our own subject-matter or
-in other words our own life. “Your own is all we
-want of you, all we should like to see. But that your
-system really touches your own is exactly what we
-deny. Never, never!” For what it really comes to
-is that practically we, of all people in the world, are
-accused of a system. Call this system a conspiracy of
-silence, and the whole charge is upon us.</p>
-
-<p>The fact of the silence, whether or no of the system,
-is fortunately all that at present concerns us. Did this
-not happen to be the case nothing could be more interesting,
-I think, than to follow somewhat further
-several of the bearings of the matter, which would
-bring us face to face with some wonderful and, I
-hasten to add, by no means doubtless merely disconcerting
-truths about ourselves. It has been given us
-to read a good deal, in these latter days, about <span class='it'>l’âme
-Française</span> and <span class='it'>l’âme Russe</span>—and with the result, in all
-probability, of our being rather less than more penetrated
-with the desire, in emulation of these opportunities,
-to deliver ourselves upon the English or the
-American soul. There would appear to be nothing
-we are totally conscious of that we are less eager to
-reduce to the mere expressible, to hand over to publicity,
-current journalistic prose aiding, than either of
-these fine essence; and yet incontestably there are
-neighbourhoods in which we feel ourselves within scent
-and reach of them by something of the same sense
-that in thick forests serves the hunter of great game.
-He may not quite touch the precious presence, but he
-knows when it is near. So somehow we know that
-the “Anglo-Saxon” soul, the modern at least, is not
-far off when we frankly consider the practice of our
-race—comparatively recent though it be—in taking
-for granted the “innocence” of literature.</p>
-
-<p>Our perhaps a trifle witless way of expressing our
-conception of this innocence and our desire for it is,
-characteristically enough, by taking refuge in another
-vagueness, by invoking the allowances that we understand
-works of imagination and of criticism to make
-to the “young.” I know not whether it has ever officially
-been stated for us that, given the young, given
-literature, and given, under stress, the need of sacrificing
-one or the other party, it is not certainly by
-our sense of “style” that our choice would be determined:
-no great art in the reading of signs and symptoms
-is at all events required for a view of our probable
-instinct in such a case. That instinct, however,
-has too many deep things in it to be briefly or easily
-disposed of, and there would be no greater mistake than
-to attempt too simple an account of it. The account
-most likely to be given by a completely detached critic
-would be that we are as a race better equipped for
-action than for thought, and that to let the art of
-expression go by the board is through that very fact
-to point to the limits of what we mostly have to express.
-If we accept such a report we shall do so, I think,
-rather from a strong than from a weak sense of what
-may easily be made of it; but I glance at these things
-only as at objects almost too flooded with light, and
-come back after my parenthesis to what more immediately
-concerns me: the plain reflection that, if the
-elements of compromise—compromise with fifty of the
-“facts of life”—be the common feature of the novel
-of English speech, so it is mainly indebted for this
-character to the sex comparatively without a feeling
-for logic.</p>
-
-<p>Nothing is at any rate <span class='it'>a priori</span> more natural than
-to trace a connection between our general mildness,
-as it may conveniently be called, and the fact that
-we are likewise so generally feminine. Is the English
-novel “proper” because it is so much written by women,
-or is it only so much written by women because its
-propriety has been so firmly established? The intimate
-relation is on either determination all that is
-here pertinent—effect and cause may be left to themselves.
-What is further pertinent, as happens, is that
-on a near view the relation is not constant; by which
-I mean that, though the ladies are always productive,
-the fashion of mildness is not always the same. Convention
-in short has its ups and downs, and these votaries
-have of late years, I think, been as often seen
-weltering in the hollow of the wave as borne aloft on
-its crest. Some of them may even be held positively
-to have distinguished themselves most—whether or no
-in veils of anonymity—on the occasion of the downward
-movement; making us really wonder if their
-number might not fairly, under any steadier force of
-such a movement, be counted on to increase. All
-sorts of inquiries are suggested in truth by the sight.
-“Emancipations” are in the air, and may it not possibly
-be that we shall see two of the most striking coincide?
-If convention has, to the tune to which I just
-invited an ear, blighted our fiction, what shall we say
-of its admitted, its still more deprecated and in so
-many quarters even deplored, effect upon the great
-body under the special patronage of which the “output”
-has none the less insisted on becoming incomparably
-copious? Since the general inaptitude of
-women appears by this time triumphantly to have
-been proved an assumption particularly hollow, despoiled
-more and more each day of the last tatters of
-its credit, why should not the new force thus liberated
-really, in the connection I indicate, give something
-of its measure?</p>
-
-<p>It is at any rate keeping within bounds to say that
-the novel will surely not become less free in proportion
-as the condition of women becomes more easy.
-It is more or less in deference to their constant concern
-with it that we have seen it, among ourselves,
-pick its steps so carefully; but there are indications
-that the future may reserve us the surprise of having
-to thank the very class whose supposed sensibilities
-have most oppressed us for teaching it not only a
-longer stride, but a healthy indifference to an occasional
-splash. It is for instance only of quite recent
-years that the type of fiction commonly identified as
-the “sexual” has achieved—for purposes of reference,
-so far as notices in newspapers may be held to constitute
-reference—a salience variously estimated. Now
-therefore, though it is early to say that all “imaginative
-work” from the female hand is subject to this
-description, there is assuredly none markedly so subject
-that is <span class='it'>not</span> from the female hand. The female
-mind has in fact throughout the competition carried
-off the prize in the familiar game, known to us all
-from childhood’s hour, of playing at “grown-up;”
-finding thus its opportunity, with no small acuteness,
-in the more and more marked tendency of the mind
-of the other gender to revert, alike in the grave and
-the gay, to those simplicities which there would appear
-to be some warrant for pronouncing puerile. It
-is the ladies in a word who have lately done most to
-remind us of man’s relations with himself, that is with
-woman. His relations with the pistol, the pirate, the
-police, the wild and the tame beast—are not these
-prevailingly what the gentlemen have given us? And
-does not the difference sufficiently point my moral?</p>
-
-<p>Let me, however, not seem to have gone too far
-afield to seek it; for my reflections—general perhaps
-to excess—closely connect themselves with a subject
-to which they are quite ready to yield in interest. I
-have lately been giving a happy extension to an old
-acquaintance, dating from early in the eighties, with
-the striking romantic work of Matilde Serao; a writer
-who, apart from other successes, has the excellent effect,
-the sign of the stronger few, that the end of her
-story is, for her reader, never the end of her work.
-On thus recently returning to her I have found in her
-something much more to my present purpose than the
-mere appearance of power and ease. If she is interesting
-largely because she is, in the light of her free,
-her extraordinary Neapolitan temperament, a vivid
-painter and a rich register of sensations and impressions,
-she is still more so as an exceptionally compact
-and suggestive <span class='it'>case</span>, a case exempt from interference
-and presenting itself with a beautiful unconsciousness.
-She has had the good fortune—if it be, after all, not
-the ill—to develop in an air in which convention, in
-our invidious sense, has had as little to say to her as
-possible; and she is accordingly a precious example of
-the possibilities of free exercise. The questions of the
-proper and the improper are comfortably far from
-her; and though more than in the line of her sisters
-of English speech she may have to reckon with prescriptions
-as to form—a burden at which in truth she
-snaps her fingers with an approach to impertinence—she
-moves in a circle practically void of all pre-judgment
-as to subject and matter. Conscious enough,
-doubtless, of a literary law to be offended, and caring
-little in fact, I repeat—for it is her weakness—what
-wrong it may suffer, she has not even the agreeable
-incentive of an ability to calculate the “moral” shocks
-she may administer.</p>
-
-<p>Practically chartered then she is further happy—since
-they both minister to ease—in two substantial
-facts: she is a daughter of the veritable south and a
-product of the contemporary newspaper. A Neapolitan
-by birth and a journalist by circumstance, by
-marriage and in some degree doubtless also by inclination,
-she strikes for us from the first the note of
-facility and spontaneity and the note of initiation and
-practice. Concerned, through her husband, in the
-conduct of a Neapolitan morning paper, of a large circulation
-and a radical colour, she has, as I infer, produced
-her novels and tales mainly in such snatches of
-time and of inspiration as have been left her by urgent
-day-to-day journalism. They distinctly betray,
-throughout, the conditions of their birth—so little are
-they to the literary sense children of maturity and
-leisure. On the question of style in a foreign writer
-it takes many contributive lights to make us sure of
-our ground; but I feel myself on the safe side in conceiving
-that this lady, full of perception and vibration,
-can not only not figure as a purist, but must be supposed
-throughout, in spite of an explosive eloquence, to pretend
-but little to distinction of form: which for an
-Italian is a much graver predicament than for one of
-our shapeless selves. That, however, would perhaps
-pass for a small quarrel with a writer, or rather with
-a talker and—for it is what one must most insist on—a
-<span class='it'>feeler</span>, of Matilde Serao’s remarkable spontaneity.
-Her Neapolitan nature is by itself a value, to whatever
-literary lapses it may minister. A torch kindled
-at that flame can be but freely waved, and our author’s
-arm has a fine action. Loud, loquacious, abundant,
-natural, happy, with luxurious insistences on the
-handsome, the costly and the fleshly, the fine persons
-and fine clothes of her characters, their satin and
-velvet, their bracelets, rings, white waistcoats, general
-appointments and bedroom furniture, with almost as
-many repetitions and as free a tongue, in short, as
-Juliet’s nurse, she reflects at every turn the wonderful
-mixture that surrounds her—the beauty, the misery,
-the history, the light and noise and dust, the prolonged
-paganism and the renewed reactions, the great style of
-the distant and the past and the generally compromised
-state of the immediate and the near. These
-things were all in the germ for the reader of her earlier
-novels—they have since only gathered volume and
-assurance—so that I well remember the impression
-made on me, when the book was new (my copy, apparently
-of the first edition, bears the date of 1885),
-by the rare energy, the immense <span class='it'>disinvoltura</span>, of “La
-Conquista di Roma.” This was my introduction to
-the author, in consequence of which I immediately
-read “Fantasia” and the “Vita e Avventure di Riccardo
-Joanna,” with some smaller pieces; after which,
-interrupted but not detached, I knew nothing more
-till, in the course of time, I renewed acquaintance on
-the ground of “Il Paese di Cuccagna,” then, however,
-no longer in its first freshness. That work set me
-straightway to reading everything else I could lay
-hands on, and I think therefore that, save “Il Ventre
-di Napoli” and two or three quite recent productions
-that I have not met, there is nothing from our author
-that I have not mastered. Such as I find her in
-everything, she remains above all things the signal
-“case.”</p>
-
-<p>If, however, she appears, as I am bound to note,
-not to have kept the full promise of her early energy,
-this is because it has suited her to move less in the direction—where
-so much might have awaited her—of
-“Riccardo Joanna” and “La Conquista” than in that,
-on the whole less happily symptomatic, of “Fantasia.”
-“Fantasia” is, before all else, a study of “passion,”
-or rather of the intenser form of that mystery which
-the Italian <span class='it'>passione</span> better expresses; and I hasten to
-confess that had she not so marked herself an exponent
-of this specialty I should probably not now be
-writing of her. I conceive none the less that it would
-have been open to her to favour more that side of her
-great talent of which the so powerful “Paese di Cuccagna”
-is the strongest example. There is by good
-fortune in this large miscellaneous picture of Neapolitan
-life no <span class='it'>passione</span> save that of the observer curiously
-and pityingly intent upon it, that of the artist resolute
-at any cost to embrace and reproduce it. Admirably,
-easily, convincingly objective, the thing is a sustained
-panorama, a chronicle of manners finding its unity in
-one recurrent note, that of the consuming lottery-hunger
-which constitutes the joy, the curse, the obsession
-and the ruin, according to Matilde Serao, of her fellow-citizens.
-Her works are thus divided by a somewhat
-unequal line, those on one side of which the
-critic is tempted to accuse her of having not altogether
-happily sacrificed to those on the other. When she
-for the most part invokes under the name of <span class='it'>passione</span>
-the main explanation of the mortal lot it is to follow
-the windings of this clue in the upper walks of life,
-to haunt the aristocracy, to embrace the world of
-fashion, to overflow with clothes, jewels and promiscuous
-intercourse, all to the proportionate eclipse of
-her strong, full vision of the more usually vulgar.
-“La Conquista” is the story of a young deputy who
-comes up to the Chamber, from the Basilicata, with
-a touching candour of ambition and a perilous ignorance
-of the pitfalls of capitals. His dream is to conquer
-Rome, but it is by Rome naturally that he is
-conquered. He alights on his political twig with a
-flutter of wings, but has reckoned in his innocence
-without the strong taste in so many quarters for sport;
-and it is with a charge of shot in his breast and a
-drag of his pinions in the dust that he takes his way
-back to mediocrity, obscurity and the parent nest.
-It is from the ladies—as was indeed even from the
-first to be expected with Serao—that he receives his
-doom; <span class='it'>passione</span> is in these pages already at the door
-and soon arrives; <span class='it'>passione</span> rapidly enough passes its
-sponge over everything not itself.</p>
-
-<p>In “Cuore Infermo,” in “Addio Amore,” in “Il
-Castigo,” in the two volumes of “Gli Amanti” and in
-various other pieces this effacement is so complete that
-we see the persons concerned but in the one relation,
-with every other circumstance, those of concurrent
-profession, possession, occupation, connection, interest,
-amusement, kinship, utterly superseded and obscured.
-Save in the three or four books I have
-named as exceptional the figures evoked are literally
-professional lovers, “available,” as the term is, for
-<span class='it'>passione</span> alone: which is the striking sign, as I shall
-presently indicate, of the extremity in which her enjoyment
-of the freedom we so often have to envy has
-strangely landed our author. “Riccardo Joanna,”
-which, like “La Conquista,” has force, humour and
-charm, sounding with freshness the note of the general
-life, is such a picture of certain of the sordid conditions
-of Italian journalism as, if I may trust my
-memory without re-perusal, sharply and pathetically
-imposes itself. I recall “Fantasia” on the other hand
-as wholly <span class='it'>passione</span>—all concentration and erotics, the
-latter practised in this instance, as in “Addio Amore,”
-with extreme cruelty to the “good” heroine, the person
-innocent and sacrificed; yet this volume too contributes
-its part in the retrospect to that appearance
-of marked discipleship which was one of the original
-sources of my interest. Nothing could more have engaged
-one’s attention in these matters at that moment
-than the fresh phenomenon of a lady-novelist so confessedly
-flushed with the influence of Émile Zola.
-Passing among ourselves as a lurid warning even to
-workers of his own sex, he drew a new grace from the
-candid homage—all implied and indirect, but, as I refigure
-my impression, not the less unmistakable—of
-that half of humanity which, let alone attempting to
-follow in his footsteps, was not supposed even to turn
-his pages. There is an episode in “Fantasia”—a
-scene in which the relations of the hero and the “bad”
-heroine are strangely consolidated by a visit together
-to a cattle-show—in which the courage of the pupil
-has but little to envy the breadth of the master. The
-hot day and hot hour, the heavy air and the strong
-smells, the great and small beasts, the action on the
-sensibilities of the lady and the gentleman of the rich
-animal life, the collapse indeed of the lady in the presence
-of the prize bull—all these are touches for which
-luckily our author has the warrant of a greater name.
-The general picture, in “Fantasia,” of the agricultural
-exhibition at Caserta is in fact not the worse at any
-point for a noticeable echo of more than one French
-model. Would the author have found so full an occasion
-in it without a fond memory of the immortal
-Cornices of “Madame Bovary”?</p>
-
-<p>These, however, are minor questions—pertinent only
-as connecting themselves with the more serious side
-of her talent. We may rejoice in such a specimen of
-it as is offered by the too brief series of episodes of
-“The Romance of the Maiden.” These things, dealing
-mainly with the small miseries of small folk, have
-a palpable truth, and it is striking that, to put the
-matter simply, Madame Serao is at her best almost in
-direct proportion as her characters are poor. By poor
-I mean literally the reverse of rich; for directly they
-<span class='it'>are</span> rich and begin, as the phrase is, to keep their carriage,
-her taste totters and lapses, her style approximates
-at moments to that of the ladies who do the
-fashions and the letters from the watering-places in
-the society papers. She has acutely and she renders
-with excellent breadth the sense of benighted lives, of
-small sordid troubles, of the general unhappy youthful
-(on the part of her own sex at least) and the general
-more or less starved plebeian consciousness. The
-degree to which it testifies to all this is one of the
-great beauties of “Il Paese di Cuccagna,” even if the
-moral of that dire picture be simply that in respect
-to the gaming-passion, the madness of “numbers,” no
-walk of life at Naples is too high or too low to be
-ravaged. Beautiful, in “Il Romanzo della Fanciulla,”
-are the exhibitions of grinding girl-life in the big telegraph
-office and in the State normal school. The gem
-of “Gli Amanti” is the tiny tale of “Vicenzella,” a
-masterpiece in twenty small pages—the vision of what
-three or four afternoon hours could contain for a slip
-of a creature of the Naples waterside, a poor girl who
-picks up a living by the cookery and sale, on the edge
-of a parapet, of various rank dismembered polyps of
-the southern sea, and who is from stage to stage despoiled
-of the pence she patiently pockets for them by
-the successive small emissaries of her artful, absent
-lover, constantly faithless, occupied, not too far off,
-in regaling a lady of his temporary preference, and
-proportionately clamorous for fresh remittances. The
-moment and the picture are but a scrap, yet they are
-as large as life.</p>
-
-<p>“Canituccia,” in “Piccole Anime,” may happily pair
-with “Vicenzella,” Canituccia being simply the humble
-rustic guardian, in field and wood—scarce more
-than a child—of the still more tender Ciccotto; and
-Ciccotto being a fine young pink-and-white pig, an
-animal of endowments that lead, after he has had
-time to render infatuated his otherwise quite solitary
-and joyless friend, to his premature conversion into
-bacon. She assists, helplessly silent, staring, almost
-idiotic, from a corner of the cabin-yard, by night and
-lamplight, in the presence of gleaming knives and
-steaming pots and bloody tubs, at the sacrifice that
-deprives her of all company, and nothing can exceed the
-homely truth of the touch that finally rounds off
-the scene and for which I must refer my reader to
-the volume. Let me further not fail to register my
-admiration for the curious cluster of scenes that, in
-“Il Romanzo,” bears the title of “Nella Lava.” Here
-frankly, I take it, we have the real principle of “naturalism”—a
-consistent presentment of the famous
-“slice of life.” The slices given us—slices of shabby
-hungry maidenhood in small cockney circles—are but
-sketchily related to the volcanic catastrophe we hear
-rumbling behind them, the undertone of all the noise
-of Naples; but they have the real artistic importance
-of showing us how little “story” is required to hold
-us when we get, before the object evoked and in the
-air created, the impression of the real thing. Whatever
-thing—interesting inference—has but effectively
-to <span class='it'>be</span> real to constitute in itself story enough. There
-is no story without it, none that is not rank humbug;
-whereas with it the very desert blooms.</p>
-
-<p>This last-named phenomenon takes place, I fear, but
-in a minor degree in such of our author’s productions
-as “Cuore Infermo,” “Addio Amore,” “Il Castigo”
-and the double series of “Gli Amanti”; and for a
-reason that I the more promptly indicate as it not
-only explains, I think, the comparative inanity of
-these pictures, but does more than anything else to
-reward our inquiry. The very first reflection suggested
-by Serao’s novels of “passion” is that they
-perfectly meet our speculation as to what might with
-a little time become of our own fiction were our particular
-convention suspended. We see so what, on its
-actual lines, does, what <span class='it'>has</span>, become of it, and are so
-sated with the vision that a little consideration of the
-latent other chance will surely but refresh us. The
-effect then, we discover, of the undertaking to give
-<span class='it'>passione</span> its whole place is that by the operation of a
-singular law no place speedily appears to be left for
-anything else; and the effect of that in turn is greatly
-to modify, first, the truth of things, and second, with
-small delay, what may be left them of their beauty.
-We find ourselves wondering after a little whether
-there may not really be more truth in the world misrepresented
-according to our own familiar fashion than
-in such a world as that of Madame Serao’s exuberant
-victims of Venus. It is not only that if Venus herself
-is notoriously beautiful her altar, as happens, is by no
-means always proportionately august; it is also that
-we draw, in the long run, small comfort from the virtual
-suppression, by any painter, of whatever skill—and
-the skill of this particular one fails to rise to the
-height—of every relation in life but that over which
-Venus presides. In “Fior di Passione” and the several
-others of a like connection that I have named the
-suppression is really complete; the common humanities
-and sociabilities are wholly absent from the picture.</p>
-
-<p>The effect of this is extraordinarily to falsify the
-total show and to present the particular affair—the
-intimacy in hand for the moment, though the moment
-be but brief—as taking place in a strange false
-perspective, a denuded desert which experience surely
-fails ever to give us the like of and the action of which
-on the faculty of observation in the painter is anything
-but favourable. It strikes at the root, in the
-impression producible and produced, of discrimination
-and irony, of humour and pathos. Our present author
-would doubtless contend on behalf of the works
-I have mentioned that pathos at least does abound in
-them—the particular bitterness, the inevitable despair
-that she again and again shows to be the final savour
-of the cup of <span class='it'>passione</span>. It would be quite open to her
-to urge—and she would be sure to do so with eloquence—that
-if we pusillanimously pant for a moral, no moral
-really can have the force of her almost inveterate
-evocation of the absolute ravage of Venus, the dry
-desolation that in nine cases out of ten Venus may be
-perceived to leave behind her. That, however, but
-half meets our argument—which bears by no means
-merely on the desolation behind, but on the desolation
-before, beside and generally roundabout. It is not in
-short at all the moral but the fable itself that in the exclusively
-sexual light breaks down and fails us. Love,
-at Naples and in Rome, as Madame Serao exhibits it, is
-simply unaccompanied with any interplay of our usual
-conditions—with affection, with duration, with circumstances
-or consequences, with friends, enemies, husbands,
-wives, children, parents, interests, occupations,
-the manifestation of tastes. Who are these people, we
-presently ask ourselves, who love indeed with fury—though
-for the most part with astonishing brevity—but
-who are so without any suggested situation in life
-that they can only strike us as loving for nothing and
-in the void, to no gain of experience and no effect of
-a felt medium or a breathed air. We know them by
-nothing but their convulsions and spasms, and we feel
-once again that it is not the passion of hero and heroine
-that gives, that can ever give, the heroine and the
-hero interest, but that it is they themselves, with the
-ground they stand on and the objects enclosing them,
-who give interest to their passion. This element
-touches us just in proportion as we see it mixed with
-other things, with all the things with which it has to
-reckon and struggle. There is moreover another reflection
-with which the pathetic in this connection has
-to count, even though it undermine not a little the
-whole of the tragic effect of the agitations of <span class='it'>passione</span>.
-Is it, ruthlessly speaking, certain that the effect most
-consonant, for the spectator, with truth is half as
-tragic as it is something else? Should not the moral
-be sought in the very different quarter where the muse
-of comedy rather would have the last word? The
-ambiguity and the difficulty are, it strikes me, of a
-new growth, and spring from a perverse desire on the
-part of the erotic novelist to secure for the adventures
-he depicts a dignity that is not of the essence. To
-compass this dignity he has to cultivate the high pitch
-and beat the big drum, but when he has done so he
-has given everything the wrong accent and the whole
-the wrong extravagance. Why see it all, we ask him,
-as an extravagance of the solemn and the strained?
-Why make <span class='it'>such</span> an erotic a matter of tears and imprecations,
-and by so doing render so poor a service
-both to pleasure and to pain? Since by your own free
-showing it is pre-eminently a matter of folly, let us at
-least have folly with her bells, or when these must—since
-they must—sound knells and dirges, leave them
-only to the light hand of the lyric poet, who turns
-them at the worst to music. Matilde Serao is in this
-connection constantly lugubrious; even from the little
-so-called pastels of “Gli Amanti” she manages, with
-an ingenuity worthy of a better cause, to expunge the
-note of gaiety.</p>
-
-<p>This dismal <span class='it'>parti pris</span> indeed will inevitably, it is
-to be feared, when all the emancipations shall have said
-their last word, be that of the ladies. Yet perhaps
-too, whatever such a probability, the tone scarce signifies—in
-the presence, I mean, of the fundamental
-mistake from which the author before us warns us off.
-That mistake, we gather from her warning, would be
-to encourage, after all, any considerable lowering of
-the level of our precious fund of reserve. When we
-come to analyse we arrive at a final impression of what
-we pay, as lovers of the novel, for such a chartered
-state as we have here a glimpse of; and we find it to
-be an exposure, on the intervention at least of such a
-literary temperament as the one before us, to a new
-kind of vulgarity. We have surely as it is kinds
-enough. The absence of the convention throws the
-writer back on tact, taste, delicacy, discretion, subjecting
-these principles to a strain from which the
-happy office of its presence is, in a considerable degree
-and for performers of the mere usual endowment, to
-relieve him. When we have not a very fine sense the
-convention appears in a manner to have it on our behalf.
-And how frequent to-day, in the hurrying herd
-of brothers and sisters of the pen, <span class='it'>is</span> a fine sense—of
-<span class='it'>any</span> side of their affair? Do we not approach the
-truth in divining that only an eminent individual here
-and there may be trusted for it? Here—for the case
-is our very lesson—is this robust and wonderful Serao
-who is yet not to be trusted at all. Does not the dim
-religious light with which we surround its shrine do
-more, on the whole, for the poetry of <span class='it'>passione</span> than the
-flood of flaring gas with which, in her pages, and at
-her touch, it is drenched? Does it not shrink, as a
-subject under treatment, from such expert recognitions
-and easy discussions, from its so pitiless reduction
-to the category of the familiar? It issues from the
-ordeal with the aspect with which it might escape
-from a noisy family party or alight from a crowded
-omnibus. It is at the category of the familiar that vulgarity
-begins. There may be a cool virtue therefore
-even for “art,” and an appreciable distinction even for
-truth, in the grace of hanging back and the choice of
-standing off, in that shade of the superficial which we
-best defend by simply practising it in season. A feeling
-revives at last, after a timed intermission, that we
-may not immediately be quite able, quite assured
-enough, to name, but which, gradually clearing up,
-soon defines itself almost as a yearning. We turn
-round in obedience to it—unmistakably we turn round
-again to the opposite pole, and there before we know it
-have positively laid a clinging hand on dear old Jane
-Austen.</p>
-
-<div><span class='pagenum'><a name='Page_314' id='Page_314'>314</a></span><h1 id='t10818'>THE NEW NOVEL<br/>1914</h1></div>
-
-<p>We feel it not to be the paradox it may at the first
-blush seem that the state of the novel in England at
-the present time is virtually very much the state of
-criticism itself; and this moreover, at the risk perhaps
-of some added appearance of perverse remark, by the
-very reason that we see criticism so much in abeyance.
-So far as we miss it altogether how and why does its
-“state” matter, and why and how can it or should
-it, as an absent force, enjoy a relation to that constant
-renewal of our supply of fiction which is a present one
-so far as a force at all? The relation is this, in the
-fewest words: that no equal outpouring of matter into
-the mould of literature, or what roughly passes for
-such, has been noted to live its life and maintain its
-flood, its level at least of quantity and mass, in such
-free and easy independence of critical attention. It
-constitutes a condition and a perversity on the part of
-this element to remain irresponsive before an appeal
-so vociferous at least and so incessant; therefore how
-can such a neglect of occasions, so careless a habit in
-spite of marked openings, be better described than as
-responsibility declined in the face of disorder? The
-disorder thus determines the relation, from the moment
-we feel that it might be less, that it might be different,
-that something in the way of an order even might be
-disengaged from it and replace it; from the moment in
-fact that the low critical pitch is logically <span class='it'>reflected</span> in
-the poetic or, less pedantically speaking, the improvisational
-at large. The effect, if not the prime office,
-of criticism is to make our absorption and our enjoyment
-of the things that feed the mind as aware of itself
-as possible, since that awareness quickens the mental
-demand, which thus in turn wanders further and further
-for pasture. This action on the part of the mind
-practically amounts to a reaching out for the reasons
-of its interest, as only by its so ascertaining them can
-the interest grow more various. This is the very
-education of our imaginative life; and thanks to it the
-general question of how to refine, and of why certain
-things refine more and most, on that happy consciousness,
-becomes for us of the last importance. Then
-we cease to be only instinctive and at the mercy of
-chance, feeling that we can ourselves take a hand in
-our satisfaction and provide for it, making ourselves
-safe against dearth, and through the door opened by
-that perception criticism enters, if we but give it time,
-as a flood, the great flood of awareness; so maintaining
-its high tide unless through some lapse of our sense
-for it, some flat reversion to instinct alone, we block up
-the ingress and sit in stale and shrinking waters.
-Stupidity may arrest any current and fatuity transcend
-any privilege. The comfort of those who at such a
-time consider the scene may be a little, with <span class='it'>their</span>
-curiosity still insistent, to survey its platitude and
-record the exhibited shrinkage; which amounts to the
-attempt to understand how stupidity could so have
-prevailed. We take it here that the answer to that
-inquiry can but be ever the same. The flood of “production”
-has so inordinately exceeded the activity of
-control that this latter anxious agent, first alarmed but
-then indifferent, has been forced backward out of the
-gate, leaving the contents of the reservoir to boil and
-evaporate. It is verily on the wrong side of the gate
-that we just now seem to see criticism stand, for never
-was the reservoir so bubblingly and noisily full, at
-least by the superficial measure of life. We have
-caught the odd accident in the very fact of its occurrence;
-we have seen the torrent swell by extravagant
-cheap contribution, the huge increase of affluents
-turbid and unstrained. Beyond number are the ways
-in which the democratic example, once gathering momentum,
-sets its mark on societies and seasons that
-stand in its course. Nowhere is that example written
-larger, to our perception, than in “the new novel”;
-though this, we hasten to add, not in the least because
-prose fiction now occupies itself as never before with
-the “condition of the people,” a fact quite irrelevant
-to the nature it has taken on, but because that nature
-amounts exactly to the complacent declaration of a
-common literary level, a repudiation the most operative
-even if the least reasoned of the idea of differences,
-the virtual law, as we may call it, of sorts and kinds,
-the values of individual quality and weight in the presence
-of undiscriminated quantity and rough-and-tumble
-“output”—these attestations made, we naturally
-mean, in the air of composition and on the esthetic
-plane, if such terms have still an attenuated reference
-to the case before us. With which, if we be asked, in
-the light of that generalisation, whether we impute to
-the novel, or in other words the novelist, <span class='it'>all</span> the stupidity
-against which the spirit of appreciation spends
-itself in vain, we reply perforce that we stop short of
-that, it being too obvious that of an exhibition so sterilised,
-so void of all force and suggestion, there would
-be nothing whatever to say. Our contention is exactly
-that, in spite of all vain aspects, it does yet present
-an interest, and that here and there seem written on it
-likelihoods of its presenting still more—always on condition
-of its consenting to that more intimate education
-which is precisely what democratised movements
-look most askance at. It strikes us as not too much to
-say that our actual view of the practice of fiction gives
-as just a measure as could be desired of the general,
-the incurable democratic suspicion of the selective and
-comparative principles in almost any application, and
-the tendency therewith to regard, and above all to
-treat, one manner of book, like one manner of person,
-as, if not absolutely as good as another, yet good
-enough for any democratic use. Criticism reflects contentiously
-on that appearance, though it be an appearance
-in which comfort for the book and the manner
-much resides; so that the idea prompting these remarks
-of our own is that the comfort may be deeply
-fallacious.</p>
-
-<h2 class='nobreak' id='t10937'>I</h2>
-
-<p>Still not to let go of our imputation of interest to
-some part at least of what is happening in the world
-of production in this kind, we may say that non-selective
-and non-comparative practice appears bent
-on showing us all it can do and how far or to what
-appointed shores, what waiting havens and inviting
-inlets, the current that is mainly made a current by
-looseness, by want of observable direction, shall succeed
-in carrying it. We respond to any sign of an intelligent
-view or even of a lively instinct—which is
-why we give the appearance so noted the benefit of
-every presumption as to its life and health. It may
-be that the dim sense is livelier than the presentable
-reason, but even that is no graceless fact for us, especially
-when the keenness of young curiosity and energy
-is betrayed in its pace, and betrayed, for that matter,
-in no small abundance and variety. The new or at
-least the young novel is up and doing, clearly, with the
-best faith and the highest spirits in the world; if we
-but extend a little our measure of youth indeed, as we
-are happily more and more disposed to, we may speak
-of it as already chin-deep in trophies. The men who
-are not so young as the youngest were but the other
-day very little older than these: Mr. Joseph Conrad,
-Mr. Maurice Hewlett and Mr. Galsworthy, Mr. H. G.
-Wells and Mr. Arnold Bennett, have not quite perhaps
-the early bloom of Mr. Hugh Walpole, Mr. Gilbert
-Cannan, Mr. Compton Mackenzie and Mr. D. H.
-Lawrence, but the spring unrelaxed is still, to our perception,
-in their step, and we see two or three of them
-sufficiently related to the still newer generation in a
-quasi-parental way to make our whole enumeration
-as illustrational as we need it. Mr. Wells and Mr.
-Arnold Bennett have their strongest mark, the aspect
-by which we may most classify them, in common—even
-if their three named contemporaries are doubtless
-most interesting in one of the connections we are not
-now seeking to make. The author of “Tono-Bungay”
-and of “The New Machiavelli,” and the author of
-“The Old Wives’ Tale” and of “Clayhanger,” have
-practically launched the boat in which we admire the
-fresh play of oar of the author of “The Duchess of
-Wrexe,” and the documented aspect exhibited successively
-by “Round the Corner,” by “Carnival” and
-“Sinister Street,” and even by “Sons and Lovers”
-(however much we may find Mr. Lawrence, we confess,
-hang in the dusty rear). We shall explain in a
-moment what we mean by this designation of the element
-that these best of the younger men strike us as
-more particularly sharing, our point being provisionally
-that Mr. Wells and Mr. Arnold Bennett (speaking
-now only of them) began some time back to show us,
-and to show sundry emulous and generous young
-spirits then in the act of more or less waking up, what
-the state in question might amount to. We confound
-the author of “Tono-Bungay” and the author of
-“Clayhanger” in this imputation for the simple reason
-that with the sharpest differences of character and
-range they yet come together under our so convenient
-measure of value by <span class='it'>saturation</span>. This is the greatest
-value, to our sense, in either of them, their other
-values, even when at the highest, not being quite in
-proportion to it; and as to be saturated is to be documented,
-to be able even on occasion to prove quite
-enviably and potently so, they are alike in the authority
-that creates emulation. It little signifies that Mr.
-Wells’s documented or saturated state in respect to a
-particular matter in hand is but one of the faces of his
-<span class='it'>generally</span> informed condition, of his extraordinary mass
-of gathered and assimilated knowledge, a miscellaneous
-collection more remarkable surely than any teller
-of “mere” tales, with the possible exception of Balzac,
-has been able to draw upon, whereas Mr. Arnold
-Bennett’s corresponding provision affects us as, though
-singularly copious, special, exclusive and artfully
-economic. This distinction avails nothing against
-that happy fact of the handiest possession by Mr.
-Wells of immeasurably more concrete material, amenable
-for straight and vivid reference, convertible into
-apt illustration, than we should know where to look
-for other examples of. The author of “The New
-Machiavelli” knows, somehow, to our mystified and
-dazzled apprehension, because he writes and because
-that act constitutes for him the need, on occasion a
-most desperate, of absorbing knowledge at the pores;
-the chronicler of the Five Towns writing so much more
-discernibly, on the other hand, because he knows, and
-conscious of no need more desperate than that particular
-circle of civilisation may satisfy.</p>
-
-<p>Our argument is that each is ideally immersed in
-his own body of reference, and that immersion in any
-such degree and to the effect of any such variety, intensity
-and plausibility is really among us a new feature
-of the novelist’s range of resource. We have seen
-him, we have even seen <span class='it'>her</span>, otherwise auspiciously endowed,
-seen him observant, impassioned, inspired, and
-in virtue of these things often very charming, very
-interesting, very triumphant, visibly qualified for the
-highest distinction before the fact and visibly crowned
-by the same after it—we have seen him with a great
-imagination and a great sense of life, we have seen him
-even with a great sense of expression and a considerable
-sense of art: so that we have only to reascend the stream
-of our comparatively recent literature to meet him
-serene and immortal, brow-bound with the bay and
-erect on his particular pedestal. We have only to
-do that, but have only also, while we do it, to recognise
-that meantime other things still than these various
-apotheoses have taken place, and that, to the increase
-of our recreation, and even if our limited space condemns
-us to put the matter a trifle clumsily, a change
-has come over our general receptive sensibility not
-less than over our productive tradition. In these connections,
-we admit, overstatement is easy and over-emphasis
-tempting; we confess furthermore to a
-frank desire to enrich the case, the historic, with all
-the meaning we can stuff into it. So viewed accordingly
-it gives us the “new,” to repeat our expression,
-as an appetite for a closer notation, a sharper specification
-of the signs of life, of consciousness, of the
-human scene and the human subject in general, than
-the three or four generations before us had been at all
-moved to insist on. They had insisted indeed, these
-generations, we see as we look back to them, on almost
-nothing whatever; what was to come to them had
-come, in enormous affluence and freshness at its best,
-and to our continued appreciation as well as to the
-honour of their sweet susceptibility, because again and
-again the great miracle of genius took place, while they
-gaped, in their social and sentimental sky. For ourselves
-that miracle has not been markedly renewed,
-but it has none the less happened that by hook and by
-crook the case for appreciation remains interesting.
-The great thing that saves it, under the drawback we
-have named, is, no doubt, that we have simply—always
-for appreciation—learned a little to insist, and that we
-thus get back on one hand something of what we have
-lost on the other. We are unable of course, with
-whatever habit of presumption engendered, to insist
-upon genius; so that who shall describe the measure
-of success we still achieve as not virtually the search
-for freshness, and above all for closeness, in quite a
-different direction? To this nearer view of commoner
-things Mr. Wells, say, and Mr. Arnold Bennett, and
-in their degree, under the infection communicated,
-Mr. D. H. Lawrence and Mr. Gilbert Cannan and Mr.
-Compton Mackenzie and Mr. Hugh Walpole, strike
-us as having all gathered themselves up with a movement
-never yet undertaken on our literary scene, and,
-beyond anything else, with an instinctive divination
-of what had most waved their predecessors off it.
-What had this lion in the path been, we make them
-out as after a fashion asking themselves, what had it
-been from far back and straight down through all the
-Victorian time, but the fond superstition that the key
-of the situation, of each and every situation that could
-turn up for the novelist, was the sentimental key, which
-might fit into no door or window opening on closeness
-or on freshness at all? Was it not for all the world
-as if even the brightest practitioners of the past, those
-we now distinguish as saved for glory in spite of themselves,
-had been as sentimental as they could, or, to
-give the trick another name, as romantic and thereby
-as shamelessly “dodgy”?—just in order <span class='it'>not</span> to be close
-and fresh, not to be authentic, as that takes trouble,
-takes talent, and you can be sentimental, you can be
-romantic, you can be dodgy, alas, not a bit less on the
-footing of genius than on the footing of mediocrity or
-even of imbecility? Was it not as if the sentimental
-had been more and more noted as but another name
-for the romantic, if not indeed the romantic as but
-another name for the sentimental, and as if these
-things, whether separate or united, had been in the
-same degree recognised as unamenable, or at any rate
-unfavourable, to any consistent fineness of notation,
-once the tide of the copious as a condition of the
-thorough had fairly set in?</p>
-
-<p>So, to express it briefly, the possibility of hugging
-the shore of the real as it had not, among us, been
-hugged, and of pushing inland, as far as a keel might
-float, wherever the least opening seemed to smile,
-dawned upon a few votaries and gathered further confidence
-with exercise. Who could say, of course, that
-Jane Austen had not been close, just as who could ask
-if Anthony Trollope had not been copious?—just as
-who could <span class='it'>not</span> say that it all depended on what was
-meant by these terms? The demonstration of what
-was meant, it presently appeared, could come but
-little by little, quite as if each tentative adventurer
-had rather anxiously to learn for himself what <span class='it'>might</span>
-be meant—this failing at least the leap into the arena
-of some great demonstrative, some sudden athletic
-and epoch-making authority. Who could pretend that
-Dickens was anything but romantic, and even more
-romantic in his humour, if possible, than in pathos or
-in queer perfunctory practice of the “plot”? Who
-could pretend that Jane Austen didn’t leave much
-more untold than told about the aspects and manners
-even of the confined circle in which her muse revolved?
-Why shouldn’t it be argued against her that where her
-testimony complacently ends the pressure of appetite
-within us presumes exactly to begin? Who could
-pretend that the reality of Trollope didn’t owe much
-of its abundance to the diluted, the quite extravagantly
-watered strain, no less than to the heavy hand,
-in which it continued to be ladled out? Who of the
-younger persuasion would not have been ready to cite,
-as one of the liveliest opportunities for the critic eager
-to see representation searching, such a claim for the
-close as Thackeray’s sighing and protesting “look-in”
-at the acquaintance between Arthur Pendennis and
-Fanny Bolton, the daughter of the Temple laundress,
-amid the purlieus of that settlement? The sentimental
-habit and the spirit of romance, it was unmistakably
-chargeable, stood out to sea as far as possible the
-moment the shore appeared to offer the least difficulty
-to hugging, and the Victorian age bristled with perfect
-occasions for our catching them in the act of this
-showy retreat. All revolutions have been prepared in
-spite of their often striking us as sudden, and so it was
-doubtless that when scarce longer ago than the other
-day Mr. Arnold Bennett had the fortune to lay his
-hand on a general scene and a cluster of agents deficient
-to a peculiar degree in properties that might interfere
-with a desirable density of illustration—deficient, that
-is, in such connections as might carry the imagination
-off to some sport on its own account—we recognised
-at once a set of conditions auspicious to the newer kind
-of appeal. Let us confess that we were at the same
-time doubtless to master no better way of describing
-these conditions than by the remark that they were,
-for some reason beautifully inherent in them, susceptible
-at once of being entirely known and of seeming
-detectably thick. Reduction to exploitable knowledge
-is apt to mean for many a case of the human complexity
-reduction to comparative thinness; and nothing
-was thereby at the first blush to interest us more
-than the fact that the air and the very smell of packed
-actuality in the subject-matter of such things as the
-author’s two longest works was clearly but another
-name for his personal competence in that matter, the
-fulness and firmness of his embrace of it. This was a
-fresh and beguiling impression—that the state of inordinate
-possession on the chronicler’s part, the mere
-state as such and as an energy directly displayed, <span class='it'>was</span>
-the interest, neither more nor less, <span class='it'>was</span> the sense and the
-meaning and the picture and the drama, all so sufficiently
-constituting them that it scarce mattered what
-they were in themselves. Of what they were in themselves
-their being in Mr. Bennett, as Mr. Bennett to
-such a tune harboured them, represented their one
-conceivable account—not to mention, as reinforcing
-this, our own great comfort and relief when certain
-high questions and wonderments about them, or about
-our mystified relation to them, began one after another
-to come up.</p>
-
-<p>Because such questions did come, we must at once
-declare, and we are still in presence of them, for all
-the world as if that case of the perfect harmony, the
-harmony between subject and author, were just marked
-with a flaw and didn’t meet the whole assault of restless
-criticism. What we make out Mr. Bennett as
-doing is simply recording his possession or, to put it
-more completely, his saturation; and to see him as
-virtually shut up to that process is a note of all the
-more moment that we see our selected cluster of his
-interesting juniors, and whether by his direct action
-on their collective impulse or not, embroiled, as we
-venture to call it, in the same predicament. The act
-of squeezing out to the utmost the plump and more or
-less juicy orange of a particular acquainted state and
-letting this affirmation of energy, however directed or
-undirected, constitute for them the “treatment” of a
-theme—<span class='it'>that</span> is what we remark them as mainly engaged
-in, after remarking the example so strikingly, so
-originally set, even if an undue subjection to it be here
-and there repudiated. Nothing is further from our
-thought than to undervalue saturation and possession,
-the fact of the particular experience, the state and
-degree of acquaintance incurred, however such a consciousness
-may have been determined; for these things
-represent on the part of the novelist, as on the part of
-any painter of things seen, felt or imagined, just one
-half of his authority—the other half being represented
-of course by the application he is inspired to make of
-them. Therefore that fine secured half is so much
-gained at the start, and the fact of its brightly being
-there may really by itself project upon the course so
-much colour and form as to make us on occasion, under
-the genial force, almost not miss the answer to the
-question of application. When the author of “Clayhanger”
-has put down upon the table, in dense unconfused
-array, every fact required, every fact in any
-way invocable, to make the life of the Five Towns
-press upon us, and to make our sense of it, so full-fed,
-content us, we may very well go on for the time in the
-captive condition, the beguiled and bemused condition,
-the acknowledgment of which is in general our
-highest tribute to the temporary master of our sensibility.
-Nothing at such moments—or rather at the
-end of them, when the end begins to threaten—may
-be of a more curious strain than the dawning unrest
-that suggests to us fairly our first critical comment:
-“Yes, yes—but is this <span class='it'>all</span>? These are the circumstances
-of the interest—we see, we see; but where
-is the interest itself, where and what is its centre,
-and how are we to measure it in relation to <span class='it'>that</span>?”
-Of course we may in the act of exhaling that plaint
-(which we have just expressed at its mildest) well
-remember how many people there are to tell us that
-to “measure” an interest is none of our affair; that
-we have but to take it on the cheapest and easiest
-terms and be thankful; and that if by our very confession
-we have been led the imaginative dance the
-music has done for us all it pretends to. Which words,
-however, have only to happen to be for us the most
-unintelligent conceivable not in the least to arrest our
-wonderment as to where our bedrenched consciousness
-may still not awkwardly leave us for the pleasure of
-appreciation. That appreciation is also a mistake
-and a priggishness, being reflective and thereby corrosive,
-is another of the fond dicta which we are here
-concerned but to brush aside—the more closely to
-embrace the welcome induction that appreciation, attentive
-and reflective, inquisitive and conclusive, is
-in this connection absolutely the golden <span class='it'>key</span> to our
-pleasure. The more it plays up, the more we recognise
-and are able to number the sources of our enjoyment,
-the greater the provision made for security in that
-attitude, which corresponds, by the same stroke, with
-the reduced danger of waste in the undertaking to
-amuse us. It all comes back to our amusement, and
-to the noblest surely, on the whole, we know; and it
-is in the very nature of clinging appreciation not to
-sacrifice consentingly a single shade of the art that
-makes for that blessing. From this solicitude spring
-our questions, and not least the one to which we give
-ourselves for the moment here—this moment of our
-being regaled as never yet with the fruits of the movement
-(if the name be not of too pompous an application
-where the flush and the heat of accident too seem
-so candidly to look forth), in favour of the “expression
-of life” in terms as loose as may pretend to an effect
-of expression at all. The relegation of terms to the
-limbo of delusions outlived so far as ever really cultivated
-becomes of necessity, it will be plain, the great
-mark of the faith that for the novelist to show he
-“knows all about” a certain congeries of aspects, the
-more numerous within their mixed circle the better,
-is thereby to set in motion, with due intensity, the pretension
-to interest. The state of knowing all about
-whatever it may be has thus only to become consistently
-and abundantly active to pass for his supreme
-function; and to its so becoming active few difficulties
-appear to be descried—so great may on occasion be
-the mere excitement of activity. To the fact that the
-exhilaration is, as we have hinted, often infectious, to
-this and to the charming young good faith and general
-acclamation under which each case appears to proceed—each
-case we of course mean really repaying attention—the
-critical reader owes his opportunity so considerably
-and so gratefully to generalise.</p>
-
-<h2 class='nobreak' id='t11306'>II</h2>
-
-<p>We should have only to remount the current with a
-certain energy to come straight up against Tolstoy
-as the great illustrative master-hand on all this ground
-of the disconnection of method from matter—which
-encounter, however, would take us much too far, so
-that we must for the present but hang off from it with
-the remark that of all great painters of the social picture
-it was given that epic genius most to serve admirably
-as a rash adventurer and a “caution,” and execrably,
-pestilentially, as a model. In this strange
-union of relations he stands alone: from no other great
-projector of the human image and the human idea is
-so much truth to be extracted under an equal leakage
-of its value. All the proportions in him are so much
-the largest that the drop of attention to our nearer
-cases might by its violence leave little of that principle
-alive; which fact need not disguise from us, none the
-less, that as Mr. H. G. Wells and Mr. Arnold Bennett,
-to return to them briefly again, derive, by multiplied if
-diluted transmissions, from the great Russian (from
-whose all but equal companion Turgenieff we recognise
-no derivatives at all), so, observing the distances,
-we may profitably detect an unexhausted influence in
-our minor, our still considerably less rounded vessels.
-Highly attaching as indeed the game might be, of inquiring
-as to the centre of the interest or the sense of
-the whole in “The Passionate Friends,” or in “The
-Old Wives’ Tale,” after having sought those luxuries
-in vain not only through the general length and breadth
-of “War and Peace,” but within the quite respectable
-confines of any one of the units of effect there clustered:
-this as preparing us to address a like friendly challenge
-to Mr. Cannan’s “Round the Corner,” say, or to Mr.
-Lawrence’s “Sons and Lovers”—should we wish to be
-very friendly to Mr. Lawrence—or to Mr. Hugh Walpole’s
-“Duchess of Wrexe,” or even to Mr. Compton
-Mackenzie’s “Sinister Street” and “Carnival,” discernibly,
-we hasten to add, though certain betrayals
-of a controlling idea and a pointed intention do comparatively
-gleam out of the two fictions last named.
-“The Old Wives’ Tale” is the history of two sisters,
-daughters of a prosperous draper in a Staffordshire
-town, who, separating early in life, through the flight
-of one of them to Paris with an ill-chosen husband and
-the confirmed and prolonged local pitch of the career
-of the other, are reunited late in life by the return of
-the fugitive after much Parisian experience and by her
-pacified acceptance of the conditions of her birthplace.
-The divided current flows together again, and the
-chronicle closes with the simple drying up determined
-by the death of the sisters. That is all; the canvas is
-covered, ever so closely and vividly covered, by the
-exhibition of innumerable small facts and aspects, at
-which we assist with the most comfortable sense of
-their substantial truth. The sisters, and more particularly
-the less adventurous, are at home in their
-author’s mind, they sit and move at their ease in the
-square chamber of his attention, to a degree beyond
-which the production of that ideal harmony between
-creature and creator could scarcely go, and all by an
-art of demonstration so familiar and so “quiet” that
-the truth and the poetry, to use Goethe’s distinction,
-melt utterly together and we see no difference between
-the subject of the show and the showman’s feeling,
-let alone the showman’s manner, about it. This felt
-identity of the elements—because we at least consciously
-feel—becomes in the novel we refer to, and not
-less in “Clayhanger,” which our words equally describe,
-a source for us of abject confidence, confidence
-truly <span class='it'>so</span> abject in the solidity of every appearance
-that it may be said to represent our whole relation
-to the work and completely to exhaust our reaction
-upon it. “Clayhanger,” of the two fictions even the
-more densely loaded with all the evidence in what we
-should call the case presented did we but learn meanwhile
-for what case, or for a case of what, to take it,
-inscribes the annals, the private more particularly,
-of a provincial printer in a considerable way of business,
-beginning with his early boyhood and going on
-to the complications of his maturity—these not exhausted
-with our present possession of the record,
-inasmuch as by the author’s announcement there is
-more of the catalogue to come. This most monumental
-of Mr. Arnold Bennett’s recitals, taking it with its
-supplement of “Hilda Lessways,” already before us,
-is so describable through its being a monument exactly
-not to an idea, a pursued and captured meaning, or in
-short <span class='it'>to</span> anything whatever, but just simply <span class='it'>of</span> the
-quarried and gathered material it happens to contain,
-the stones and bricks and rubble and cement and promiscuous
-constituents of every sort that have been
-heaped in it and thanks to which it quite massively
-piles itself up. Our perusal and our enjoyment are
-our watching of the growth of the pile and of the
-capacity, industry, energy with which the operation is
-directed. A huge and in its way a varied aggregation,
-without traceable lines, divinable direction, effect of
-composition, the mere number of its pieces, the great
-dump of its material, together with the fact that here
-and there in the miscellany, as with the value of bits
-of marble or porphyry, fine elements shine out, it
-keeps us standing and waiting to the end—and largely
-just because it keeps us wondering. We surely wonder
-more what it may all propose to mean than any equal
-appearance of preparation to relieve us of that strain,
-any so founded and grounded a postponement of the
-disclosure of a sense in store, has for a long time called
-upon us to do in a like connection. A great thing it is
-assuredly that <span class='it'>while</span> we wait and wonder we are amused—were
-it not for that, truly, our situation would be
-thankless enough; we may ask ourselves, as has
-already been noted, why on such ambiguous terms we
-should consent to be, and why the practice doesn’t at
-a given moment break down; and our answer brings
-us back to that many-fingered grasp of the orange that
-the author squeezes. This particular orange is of the
-largest and most rotund, and his trust in the consequent
-flow is of its nature communicative. Such is the case
-always, and most naturally, with that air in a person
-who has something, who at the very least has much to
-tell us: we <span class='it'>like</span> so to be affected by it, we meet it half
-way and lend ourselves, sinking in up to the chin.
-Up to the chin only indeed, beyond doubt; we even
-then feel our head emerge, for judgment and articulate
-question, and it is from that position that we remind
-ourselves how the real reward of our patience is still
-to come—the reward attending not at all the immediate
-sense of immersion, but reserved for the after-sense,
-which is a very different matter, whether in
-the form of a glow or of a chill.</p>
-
-<p>If Mr. Bennett’s tight rotundity then is of the handsomest
-size and his manipulation of it so firm, what are
-we to say of Mr. Wells’s, who, a novelist very much
-as Lord Bacon was a philosopher, affects us as taking
-all knowledge for his province and as inspiring in us
-to the very highest degree the confidence enjoyed by
-himself—enjoyed, we feel, with a breadth with which
-it has been given no one of his fellow-craftsmen to
-enjoy anything. If confidence alone could lead utterly
-captive we should all be huddled in a bunch at Mr.
-Wells’s heels—which is indeed where we <span class='it'>are</span> abjectly
-gathered so far as that force does operate. It is literally
-Mr. Wells’s own mind, and the experience of his
-own mind, incessant and extraordinarily various, extraordinarily
-reflective, even with all sorts of conditions
-made, of whatever he may expose it to, that forms
-the reservoir tapped by him, that constitutes his provision
-of grounds of interest. It is, by our thinking,
-in his power to name to us, as a preliminary, more of
-these grounds than all his contemporaries put together,
-and even to exceed any competitor, without exception,
-in the way of suggesting that, thick as he may seem
-to lay them, they remain yet only contributive, are
-not in themselves full expression but are designed
-strictly to subserve it, that this extraordinary writer’s
-spell resides. When full expression, the expression of
-some particular truth, seemed to lapse in this or that
-of his earlier novels (we speak not here of his shorter
-things, for the most part delightfully wanton and exempt,)
-it was but by a hand’s breadth, so that if we
-didn’t inveterately quite know what he intended we
-yet always felt sufficiently that <span class='it'>he</span> knew. The particular
-intentions of such matters as “Kipps,” as
-“Tono-Bungay,” as “Ann Veronica,” so swarmed
-about us, in their blinding, bluffing vivacity, that the
-mere sum of them might have been taken for a sense
-over and above which it was graceless to inquire. The
-more this author learns and learns, or at any rate knows
-and knows, however, the greater is this impression of
-his holding it good enough for us, such as we are, that
-he shall but turn out his mind and its contents upon us
-by any free familiar gesture and as from a high window
-forever open—an entertainment as copious surely as
-any occasion should demand, at least till we have more
-intelligibly expressed our title to a better. Such things
-as “The New Machiavelli,” “Marriage,” “The Passionate
-Friends,” are so very much more attestations
-of the presence of material than attestations of an
-interest in the use of it that we ask ourselves again
-and again why so fondly neglected a state of leakage
-comes not to be fatal to <span class='it'>any</span> provision of quantity,
-or even to stores more specially selected for the ordeal
-than Mr. Wells’s always strike us as being. Is not
-the pang of witnessed waste in fact great just in proportion
-as we are touched by our author’s fine off-handedness
-as to the value of the stores, about which
-he can for the time make us believe what he will? so
-that, to take an example susceptible of brief statement,
-we wince at a certain quite peculiarly gratuitous sacrifice
-to the casual in “Marriage” very much as at
-seeing some fine and indispensable little part of a
-mechanism slip through profane fingers and lose itself.
-Who does not remember what ensues after a
-little upon the aviational descent of the hero of the
-fiction just named into the garden occupied, in company
-with her parents, by the young lady with whom
-he is to fall in love?—and this even though the whole
-opening scene so constituted, with all the comedy hares
-its function appears to be to start, remains with its
-back squarely turned, esthetically speaking, to the
-quarter in which the picture develops. The point for
-our mortification is that by one of the first steps in this
-development, the first impression on him having been
-made, the hero accidentally meets the heroine, of a
-summer eventide, in a leafy lane which supplies them
-with the happiest occasion to pursue their acquaintance—or
-in other words supplies the author with the
-liveliest consciousness (as we at least feel it should have
-been) that just so the relation between the pair, its
-seed already sown and the fact of that bringing about
-all that is still to come, pushes aside whatever veil and
-steps forth into life. To show it step forth and affirm
-itself as a relation, what is this but the interesting
-function of the whole passage, on the performance of
-which what follows is to hang?—and yet who can say
-that when the ostensible sequence is presented, and
-our young lady, encountered again by her stirred
-swain, under cover of night, in a favouring wood, is at
-once encompassed by his arms and pressed to his lips
-and heart (for celebration thus of their third meeting) we
-do not assist at a well-nigh heartbreaking miscarriage
-of “effect”? We see effect, invoked in vain, simply
-stand off unconcerned; effect not having been at all
-consulted in advance she is not to be secured on such
-terms. And her presence would so have redounded—perfectly
-punctual creature as she is on a made appointment
-and a clear understanding—to the advantage
-of all concerned. The bearing of the young man’s
-act is all in our having begun to conceive it as possible,
-begun even to desire it, in the light of what has preceded;
-therefore if the participants have <span class='it'>not</span> been
-shown us as on the way to it, nor the question of it
-made beautifully to tremble for us in the air, its happiest
-connections fail and we but stare at it mystified.
-The instance is undoubtedly trifling, but in the infinite
-complex of such things resides for a work of
-art the shy virtue, shy at least till wooed forth, of
-the whole susceptibility. The case of Mr. Wells might
-take us much further—such remarks as there would
-be to make, say, on such a question as the due understanding,
-on the part of “The Passionate Friends”
-(not as associated persons but as a composed picture),
-of what that composition is specifically <span class='it'>about</span> and
-where, for treatment of this interest, it undertakes to
-find its centre: all of which, we are willing however
-to grant, falls away before the large assurance and incorrigible
-levity with which this adventurer carries
-his lapses—far more of an adventurer as he is than any
-other of the company. The composition, as we have
-called it, heaven saving the mark, is simply at any and
-every moment “about” Mr. Wells’s general adventure;
-which is quite enough while it preserves, as we trust
-it will long continue to do, its present robust pitch.</p>
-
-<p>We have already noted that “Round the Corner,”
-Mr. Gilbert Cannan’s liveliest appeal to our attention,
-belongs to the order of <span class='it'>constatations</span> pure and simple;
-to the degree that <span class='it'>as</span> a document of that nature and
-of that rigour the book could perhaps not more completely
-affirm itself. When we have said that it puts
-on record the “tone,” the manners, the general domestic
-proceedings and <span class='it'>train de vie</span> of an amiable clergyman’s
-family established in one of the more sordid quarters
-of a big black northern city of the Liverpool or Manchester
-complexion we have advanced as far in the way
-of descriptive statement as the interesting work seems
-to warrant. For it <span class='it'>is</span> interesting, in spite of its leaving
-itself on our hands with a consistent indifference
-to any question of the charmed application springing
-from it all that places it in the forefront of its type.
-Again as under the effect of Mr. Bennett’s major productions
-our sole inference is that things, the things
-disclosed, <span class='it'>go on and on, in any given case, in spite of
-everything</span>—with Mr. Cannan’s one discernible care
-perhaps being for how extraordinarily much, in the
-particular example here before him, they were able to
-go on in spite of. The conception, the presentation
-of this enormous inauspicious amount as bearing upon
-the collective career of the Folyats is, we think, as
-near as the author comes at any point to betraying
-an awareness of a subject. Yet again, though so little
-encouraged or “backed,” a subject after a fashion makes
-itself, even as it has made itself in “The Old Wives’
-Tale” and in “Clayhanger,” in “Sons and Lovers,”
-where, as we have hinted, any assistance rendered us
-for a view of one <span class='it'>most</span> comfortably enjoys its absence,
-and in Mr. Hugh Walpole’s newest novel, where we
-wander scarcely less with our hand in no guiding
-grasp, but where the author’s good disposition, as we
-feel it, to provide us with what we lack if he only knew
-how, constitutes in itself such a pleading liberality.
-We seem to see him in this spirit lay again and again a
-flowered carpet for our steps. If we do not include
-Mr. Compton Mackenzie to the same extent in our
-generalisation it is really because we note a difference
-in him, a difference in favour of his care for the application.
-Preoccupations seem at work in “Sinister
-Street,” and withal in “Carnival,” the brush of which
-we in other quarters scarce even suspect and at some of
-which it will presently be of profit to glance. “I
-answer for it, you know,” we seem at any rate to
-hear Mr. Gilbert Cannan say with an admirably
-genuine young pessimism, “I answer for it that they
-were really <span class='it'>like</span> that, odd or unpleasant or uncontributive,
-and therefore tiresome, as it may strike
-you;” and the charm of Mr. Cannan, so far as up or
-down the rank we so disengage a charm, is that we
-take him at his word. His guarantee, his straight
-communication, of his general truth is a value, and
-values are rare—the flood of fiction is apparently
-capable of running hundreds of miles without a single
-glint of one—and thus in default of satisfaction we
-get stopgaps and are thankful often under a genial
-touch to get even so much. The value indeed is crude,
-it would be quadrupled were it only wrought and
-shaped; yet it has still the rude dignity that it counts
-to us for experience or at least for what we call under
-our present pitch of sensibility force of impression.
-The experience, we feel, is ever something to conclude
-upon, while the impression is content to wait; to wait,
-say, in the spirit in which we must accept this younger
-bustle if we accept it at all, the spirit of its serving as
-a rather presumptuous lesson to us in patience. While
-we wait, again, we are amused—not in the least, also
-to repeat, up to the notch of our conception of amusement,
-which draws upon still other forms and sources;
-but none the less for the wonder, the intensity, the
-actuality, the probity of the vision. This is much as
-in “Clayhanger” and in “Hilda Lessways,” where,
-independently of the effect, so considerably rendered, of
-the long lapse of time, always in this type of recital a
-source of amusement in itself, and certainly of the
-noblest, we get such an admirably substantial thing
-as the collective image of the Orgreaves, the local
-family in whose ample lap the amenities and the humanities
-so easily sit, for Mr. Bennett’s evocation and
-his protagonist’s recognition, and the manner of the
-presentation of whom, with the function and relation
-of the picture at large, strikes such a note of felicity,
-achieves such a simulation of sense, as the author
-should never again be excused for treating, that is for
-neglecting, as beyond his range. Here figures signally
-the interesting case of a compositional function absolutely
-performed by mere multiplication, the flow of
-the facts: the Orgreaves, in “Clayhanger,” are there,
-by what we make out, but for “life,” for general life
-only, and yet, with their office under any general or
-inferential meaning entirely unmarked, come doubtless
-as near squaring esthetically with the famous
-formula of the “slice of life” as any example that
-could be adduced; happening moreover as they probably
-do to owe this distinction to their coincidence at
-once with reality and charm—a fact esthetically curious
-and delightful. For we attribute the bold stroke
-they represent much more to Mr. Arnold Bennett’s
-esthetic instinct than to anything like a calculation
-of his bearings, and more to his thoroughly acquainted
-state, as we may again put it, than to all other causes
-together: which strikingly enough shows how much
-complexity of interest may be simulated by mere presentation
-of material, mere squeezing of the orange,
-when the material happens to be “handsome” or the
-orange to be sweet.</p>
-
-<h2 class='nobreak' id='t11674'>III</h2>
-
-<p>The orange of our persistent simile is in Mr. Hugh
-Walpole’s hands very remarkably sweet—a quality
-we recognise in it even while reduced to observing that
-the squeeze pure and simple, the fond, the lingering,
-the reiterated squeeze, constitutes as yet his main
-perception of method. He enjoys in a high degree
-the consciousness of saturation, and is on such serene
-and happy terms with it as almost make of critical
-interference, in so bright an air, an assault on personal
-felicity. Full of material is thus the author of “The
-Duchess of Wrexe,” and of a material which we should
-describe as the consciousness of youth were we not
-rather disposed to call it a peculiar strain of the extreme
-unconsciousness. Mr. Walpole offers us indeed
-a rare and interesting case—we see about the field none
-other like it; the case of a positive identity between the
-spirit, not to say the time of life or stage of experience,
-of the aspiring artist and the field itself of his vision.
-“The Duchess of Wrexe” reeks with youth and the
-love of youth and the confidence of youth—youth
-taking on with a charming exuberance the fondest costume
-or disguise, that of an adventurous and voracious
-felt interest, interest in life, in London, in society, in
-character, in Portland Place, in the Oxford Circus, in
-the afternoon tea-table, in the torrid weather, in fifty
-other immediate things as to which its passion and its
-curiosity are of the sincerest. The wonderful thing is
-that these latter forces operate, in their way, without
-yet being disengaged and hand-free—disengaged, that
-is, from their state of <span class='it'>being</span> young, with its billowy
-mufflings and other soft obstructions, the state of
-being present, being involved and aware, close “up
-against” the whole mass of possibilities, being in short
-intoxicated with the mixed liquors of suggestion. In
-the fumes of this acute situation Mr. Walpole’s subject-matter
-is bathed; the situation being all the while
-so much more his own and that of a juvenility reacting,
-in the presence of everything, “for all it is worth,”
-than the devised and imagined one, however he may
-circle about some such cluster, that every cupful of
-his excited flow tastes three times as much of his temperamental
-freshness as it tastes of this, that or the
-other character or substance, above all of this, that or
-the other group of antecedents and references, supposed
-to be reflected in it. All of which does not mean,
-we hasten to add, that the author of “The Duchess of
-Wrexe” has not the gift of life; but only that he strikes
-us as having received it, straight from nature, with
-such a concussion as to have kept the boon at the stage
-of violence—so that, fairly pinned down by it, he is
-still embarrassed for passing it on. On the day he
-shall have worked free of this primitive predicament,
-the crude fact of the convulsion itself, there need be
-no doubt of his exhibiting matter into which method
-may learn how to bite. The tract meanwhile affects
-us as more or less virgin snow, and we look with interest
-and suspense for the imprint of a process.</p>
-
-<p>If those remarks represent all the while, further, that
-the performances we have glanced at, with others besides,
-lead our attention on, we hear ourselves the more
-naturally asked what it is then that we expect or want,
-confessing as we do that we have been in a manner
-interested, even though, from case to case, in a varying
-degree, and that Thackeray, Turgenieff, Balzac,
-Dickens, Anatole France, no matter who, can not do
-more than interest. Let us therefore concede to the
-last point that small mercies are better than none,
-that there are latent within the critic numberless liabilities
-to being “squared” (the extent to which he may
-on occasion betray his price!) and so great a preference
-for being pleased over not being, that you may again
-and again see him assist with avidity at the attempt
-of the slice of life to butter itself thick. Its explanation
-that it <span class='it'>is</span> a slice of life and pretends to be nothing
-else figures for us, say, while we watch, the jam super-added
-to the butter. For since the jam, on this system,
-descends upon our desert, in its form of manna,
-from quite another heaven than the heaven of method,
-the mere demonstration of its agreeable presence is
-alone sufficient to hint at our more than one chance
-of being supernaturally fed. The happy-go-lucky fashion
-of it is indeed not then, we grant, an objection so
-long as we do take in refreshment: the meal may be
-of the last informality and yet produce in the event
-no small sense of repletion. The slice of life devoured,
-the butter and the jam duly appreciated, we are ready,
-no doubt, on another day, to trust ourselves afresh to
-the desert. We break camp, that is, and face toward
-a further stretch of it, all in the faith that we shall be
-once more provided for. We take the risk, we enjoy
-more or less the assistance—more or less, we put it,
-for the vision of a possible arrest of the miracle or
-failure of our supply never wholly leaves us. The
-phenomenon is too uncanny, the happy-go-lucky, as
-we know it in general, never <span class='it'>has</span> been trustable to the
-end; the absence of the last true touch in the preparation
-of its viands becomes with each renewal of the
-adventure a more sensible fact. By the last true
-touch we mean of course the touch of the hand of selection;
-the principle of selection having been involved
-at the worst or the least, one would suppose, in any
-approach whatever to the loaf of life with the <span class='it'>arrière-pensée</span>
-of a slice. There being no question of a slice
-upon which the further question of where and how to
-cut it does not wait, the office of method, the idea of
-choice and comparison, have occupied the ground from
-the first. This makes clear, to a moment’s reflection,
-that there can be no such thing as an amorphous slice,
-and that any waving aside of inquiry as to the sense
-and value of a chunk of matter has to reckon with the
-simple truth of its having been <span class='it'>born</span> of naught else but
-measured excision. Reasons have been the fairies
-waiting on its cradle, the possible presence of a bad
-fairy in the form of a bad reason to the contrary notwithstanding.
-It has thus had connections at the
-very first stage of its detachment that are at no later
-stage logically to be repudiated; let it lie as lumpish
-as it will—for adoption, we mean, of the ideal of the
-lump—it has been tainted from too far back with the
-hard liability to form, and thus carries in its very
-breast the hapless contradiction of its sturdy claim to
-have none. This claim has the inevitable challenge
-at once to meet. How can a slice of life be anything
-but illustrational of the loaf, and how can illustration
-not immediately bristle with every sign of the extracted
-and related state? The relation is at once to
-what the thing comes from and to what it waits upon—which
-last is our act of recognition. We accordingly
-appreciate it in proportion as it so accounts for itself;
-the quantity and the intensity of its reference are the
-measure of our knowledge of it. This is exactly why
-illustration breaks down when reference, otherwise application,
-runs short, and why before any assemblage
-of figures or aspects, otherwise of samples and specimens,
-the question of what these are, extensively,
-samples and specimens <span class='it'>of</span> declines not to beset us—why,
-otherwise again, we look ever for the supreme
-reference that shall avert the bankruptcy of sense.</p>
-
-<p>Let us profess all readiness to repeat that we may
-still have had, on the merest “life” system, or that of
-the starkest crudity of the slice, all the entertainment
-that can come from watching a wayfarer engage with
-assurance in an alley that we know to have no issue—and
-from watching for the very sake of the face that
-he may show us on reappearing at its mouth. The
-recitals of Mr. Arnold Bennett, Mr. Gilbert Cannan,
-Mr. D. H. Lawrence, fairly smell of the real, just as
-the “Fortitude” and “The Duchess” of Mr. Hugh
-Walpole smell of the romantic; we have sufficiently
-noted then that, once on the scent, we are capable of
-pushing ahead. How far it is at the same time from
-being all a matter of smell the terms in which we just
-above glanced at the weakness of the spell of the
-happy-go-lucky may here serve to indicate. There
-faces us all the while the fact that the act of consideration
-as an incident of the esthetic pleasure, consideration
-confidently knowing us to <span class='it'>have</span> sooner or later to
-arrive at it, may be again and again postponed, but
-can never hope not some time to fall due. Consideration
-is susceptible of many forms, some one or other
-of which no conscious esthetic effort fails to cry out
-for; and the simplest description of the cry of the
-novel when sincere—for have we not heard such compositions
-bluff us, as it were, with false cries?—is as
-an appeal to us when we have read it once to read it
-yet again. <span class='it'>That</span> is the act of consideration; no other
-process of considering approaches this for directness,
-so that anything short of it is virtually not to consider
-at all. The word has sometimes another sense, that of
-the appeal to us <span class='it'>not</span>, for the world, to go back—this
-being of course consideration of a sort; the sort clearly
-that the truly flushed production should be the last to
-invoke. The effect of consideration, we need scarce
-remark, is to light for us in a work of art the hundred
-questions of how and why and whither, and the effect
-of these questions, once lighted, is enormously to thicken
-and complicate, even if toward final clarifications,
-what we have called the amused state produced in us
-by the work. The more our amusement multiplies
-its terms the more fond and the more rewarded consideration
-becomes; the fewer it leaves them, on the
-other hand, the less to be resisted for us is the impression
-of “bare ruined choirs where late the sweet birds
-sang.” Birds that have appeared to sing, or whose
-silence we have not heeded, on a first perusal, prove
-on a second to have no note to contribute, and whether
-or no a second is enough to admonish us of those we
-miss, we mostly expect much from it in the way of
-emphasis of those we find. Then it is that notes of
-intention become more present or more absent; then
-it is that we take the measure of what we have already
-called our effective provision. The bravest providers
-and designers show at this point something still in
-store which only the second rummage was appointed
-to draw forth. To the variety of these ways of not
-letting our fondness fast is there not practically no
-limit?—and of the arts, the devices, the graces, the
-subtle secrets applicable to such an end what presumptuous
-critic shall pretend to draw the list? Let
-him for the moment content himself with saying that
-many of the most effective are mysteries, precisely, of
-method, or that even when they are not most essentially
-and directly so it takes method, blest method, to
-extract their soul and to determine their action.</p>
-
-<p>It is odd and delightful perhaps that at the very
-moment of our urging this truth we should happen to
-be regaled with a really supreme specimen of the part
-playable in a novel by the source of interest, the principle
-of provision attended to, for which we claim
-importance. Mr. Joseph Conrad’s “Chance” is none
-the less a signal instance of provision the most earnest
-and the most copious for its leaving ever so much to
-be said about the particular provision effected. It is
-none the less an extraordinary exhibition of method by
-the fact that the method is, we venture to say, without
-a precedent in any like work. It places Mr. Conrad
-absolutely alone as a votary of the way to do a thing
-that shall make it undergo most doing. The way to
-do it that shall make it undergo least is the line on
-which we are mostly now used to see prizes carried
-off; so that the author of “Chance” gathers up on
-this showing all sorts of comparative distinction. He
-gathers up at least two sorts—that of bravery in absolutely
-reversing the process most accredited, and that,
-quite separate, we make out, of performing the manœuvre
-under salvos of recognition. It is not in these
-days often given to a refinement of design to be recognised,
-but Mr. Conrad has made his achieve that
-miracle—save in so far indeed as the miracle has been
-one thing and the success another. The miracle is of
-the rarest, confounding all calculation and suggesting
-more reflections than we can begin to make place for
-here; but the sources of surprise surrounding it might
-be, were this possible, even greater and yet leave the
-fact itself in all independence, the fact that the whole
-undertaking was committed by its very first step either
-to be “art” exclusively or to be nothing. This is the
-prodigious rarity, since surely we have known for many
-a day no other such case of the whole clutch of eggs,
-and these withal of the freshest, in that one basket;
-to which it may be added that if we say for many a
-day this is not through our readiness positively to
-associate the sight with any very definite moment of
-the past. What concerns us is that the general effect
-of “Chance” is arrived at by a pursuance of means
-to the end in view contrasted with which every other
-current form of the chase can only affect us as cheap
-and futile; the carriage of the burden or amount of
-service required on these lines exceeding surely all
-other such displayed degrees of energy put together.
-Nothing could well interest us more than to see the
-exemplary value of attention, attention given by the
-author and asked of the reader, attested in a case in
-which it has had almost unspeakable difficulties to
-struggle with—since so we are moved to qualify the
-particular difficulty Mr. Conrad has “elected” to
-face: the claim for method in itself, method in this
-very sense of attention applied, would be somehow less
-lighted if the difficulties struck us as less consciously,
-or call it even less wantonly, invoked. What they
-consist of we should have to diverge here a little to say,
-and should even then probably but lose ourselves in
-the dim question of why so special, eccentric and desperate
-a course, so deliberate a plunge into threatened
-frustration, should alone have seemed open. It has
-been the course, so far as three words may here serve,
-of his so multiplying his creators or, as we are now
-fond of saying, producers, as to make them almost
-more numerous and quite emphatically more material
-than the creatures and the production itself in whom
-and which we by the general law of fiction expect such
-agents to lose themselves. We take for granted by the
-general law of fiction a primary author, take him so
-much for granted that we forget him in proportion as
-he works upon us, and that he works upon us most in
-fact by making us forget him.</p>
-
-<p>Mr. Conrad’s first care on the other hand is expressly
-to posit or set up a reciter, a definite responsible intervening
-first person singular, possessed of infinite
-sources of reference, who immediately proceeds to set
-up another, to the end that this other may conform
-again to the practice, and that even at that point the
-bridge over to the creature, or in other words to the
-situation or the subject, the thing “produced,” shall,
-if the fancy takes it, once more and yet once more
-glory in a gap. It is easy to see how heroic the undertaking
-of an effective fusion becomes on these terms,
-fusion between what we are to know and that prodigy
-of our knowing which is ever half the very beauty of
-the atmosphere of authenticity; from the moment the
-reporters are thus multiplied from pitch to pitch the
-tone of each, especially as “rendered” by his precursor
-in the series, becomes for the prime poet of all an immense
-question—these circumferential tones having
-not only to be such individually separate notes, but to
-keep so clear of the others, the central, the numerous
-and various voices of the agents proper, those expressive
-of the action itself and in whom the objectivity
-resides. We usually escape the worst of this difficulty
-of a tone <span class='it'>about</span> the tone of our characters, our
-projected performers, by keeping it single, keeping it
-“down” and thereby comparatively impersonal or, as
-we may say, inscrutable; which is what a creative
-force, in its blest fatuity, likes to be. But the omniscience,
-remaining indeed nameless, though constantly
-active, which sets Marlow’s omniscience in motion
-from the very first page, insisting on a reciprocity
-with it throughout, this original omniscience invites
-consideration of itself only in a degree less than that
-in which Marlow’s own invites it; and Marlow’s own
-is a prolonged hovering flight of the subjective over the
-outstretched ground of the case exposed. We make
-out this ground but through the shadow cast by the
-flight, clarify it though the real author visibly reminds
-himself again and again that he must—all the more
-that, as if by some tremendous forecast of future applied
-science, the upper aeroplane causes another, as
-we have said, to depend from it and that one still
-another; these dropping shadow after shadow, to the
-no small menace of intrinsic colour and form and
-whatever, upon the passive expanse. What shall we
-most call Mr. Conrad’s method accordingly but his
-attempt to clarify <span class='it'>quand même</span>—ridden as he has been,
-we perceive at the end of fifty pages of “Chance,” by
-such a danger of steeping his matter in perfect eventual
-obscuration as we recall no other artist’s consenting to
-with an equal grace. This grace, which presently
-comes over us as the sign of the whole business, is Mr.
-Conrad’s gallantry itself, and the shortest account of
-the rest of the connection for our present purpose is
-that his gallantry is thus his success. It literally strikes
-us that his volume sets in motion more than anything
-else a drama in which his own system and his combined
-eccentricities of recital represent the protagonist
-in face of powers leagued against it, and of which the
-dénouement gives us the system fighting in triumph,
-though with its back desperately to the wall, and laying
-the powers piled up at its feet. This frankly has
-been <span class='it'>our</span> spectacle, our suspense and our thrill; with
-the one flaw on the roundness of it all the fact that the
-predicament was not imposed rather than invoked,
-was not the effect of a challenge from without, but that
-of a mystic impulse from within.</p>
-
-<p>Of an exquisite refinement at all events are the
-critical questions opened up in the attempt, the question
-in particular of by what it exactly is that the experiment
-is crowned. Pronouncing it crowned and
-the case saved by sheer gallantry, as we did above, is
-perhaps to fall just short of the conclusion we might
-reach were we to push further. “Chance” <span class='it'>is</span> an example
-of objectivity, most precious of aims, not only
-menaced but definitely compromised; whereby we are
-in presence of something really of the strangest, a
-general and diffused lapse of authenticity which an
-inordinate number of common readers—since it always
-takes this and these to account encouragingly for
-“editions”—have not only condoned but have emphatically
-commended. They can have done this but
-through the bribe of some authenticity other in kind,
-no doubt, and seeming to them equally great if not
-greater, which gives back by the left hand what the
-right has, with however dissimulated a grace, taken
-away. What Mr. Conrad’s left hand gives back then
-is simply Mr. Conrad himself. We asked above what
-would become, by such a form of practice, of indispensable
-“fusion” or, to call it by another name, of
-the fine process by which our impatient material, at
-a given moment, shakes off the humiliation of the
-handled, the fumbled state, puts its head in the air
-and, to its own beautiful illusory consciousness at
-least, simply runs its race. Such an amount of handling
-and fumbling and repointing has it, on the system
-of the multiplied “putter into marble,” to shake off!
-And yet behold, the sense of discomfort, as the show
-here works out, <span class='it'>has</span> been conjured away. The fusion
-has taken place, or at any rate <span class='it'>a</span> fusion; only it has
-been transferred in wondrous fashion to an unexpected,
-and on the whole more limited plane of operation; it
-has succeeded in getting effected, so to speak, not on
-the ground but in the air, not between our writer’s
-idea and his machinery, but between the different
-parts of his genius itself. His genius is what is left
-over from the other, the compromised and compromising
-quantities—the Marlows and their determinant
-inventors and interlocutors, the Powells, the
-Franklins, the Fynes, the tell-tale little dogs, the successive
-members of a cue from one to the other of
-which the sense and the interest of the subject have
-to be passed on together, in the manner of the buckets
-of water for the improvised extinction of a fire, before
-reaching our apprehension: all with whatever result,
-to this apprehension, of a quantity to be allowed for
-as spilt by the way. The residuum has accordingly
-the form not of such and such a number of images
-discharged and ordered, but that rather of a wandering,
-circling, yearning imaginative <span class='it'>faculty</span>, encountered
-in its habit as it lives and diffusing itself as a presence
-or a tide, a noble sociability of vision. So we have as
-the force that fills the cup just the high-water mark of
-a beautiful and generous mind at play in conditions
-comparatively thankless—thoroughly, unweariedly,
-yet at the same time ever so elegantly at play, and
-doing more for itself than it succeeds in getting done
-for it. Than which nothing could be of a greater
-reward to critical curiosity were it not still for the
-wonder of wonders, a new page in the record altogether—the
-fact that these things are apparently what the
-common reader has seen and understood. Great then
-would seem to be after all the common reader!</p>
-
-<h2 class='nobreak' id='t12092'>IV</h2>
-
-<p>We must not fail of the point, however, that we
-have made these remarks not at all with an eye to the
-question of whether “Chance” has been well or ill
-inspired as to its particular choice of a way of really
-attending to itself among all the possible alternatives,
-but only on the ground of its having compared, selected
-and held on; since any alternative that might
-have been preferred and that should have been effectively
-adopted would point our moral as well—and this
-even if it is of profit none the less to note the most
-striking of Mr. Conrad’s compositional consequences.
-There is one of these that has had most to do with
-making his pages differ in texture, and to our very
-first glance, from that straggle of ungoverned verbiage
-which leads us up and down those of his fellow fabulists
-in general on a vain hunt for some projected mass
-of truth, some solidity of substance, as to which the
-deluge of “dialogue,” the flooding report of things said,
-or at least of words pretendedly spoken, shall have
-learned the art of being merely illustrational. What
-first springs from any form of real attention, no matter
-which, we on a comparison so made quickly perceive
-to be a practical challenge of the preposterous
-pretension of this most fatuous of the luxuries of looseness
-to acquit itself with authority of the structural
-and compositional office. Infinitely valid and vivid
-as illustration, it altogether depends for dignity and
-sense upon our state of possession of its historic preliminaries,
-its promoting conditions, its supporting
-ground; that is upon our waiting occupancy of the
-chamber it proposes to light and which, when no other
-source of effect is more indicated, it doubtless
-inimitably fills with life. Then its relation to what
-encloses and confines and, in its sovereign interest,
-finely compresses it, offering it constituted aspects,
-surfaces, presences, faces and figures of the matter we
-are either generally or acutely concerned with to play
-over and hang upon, then this relation gives it all its
-value: it has flowered from the soil prepared and sheds
-back its richness into the field of cultivation. It is
-interesting, in a word, only when nothing else is equally
-so, carrying the vessel of the interest with least of a
-stumble or a sacrifice; but it is of the essence that the
-sounds so set in motion (it being as sound above all
-that they undertake to convey sense,) should have
-something to proceed from, in their course, to address
-themselves to and be affected by, with all the sensibility
-of sounds. It is of the essence that they should
-live in a medium, and in a medium only, since it takes
-a medium to give them an identity, the intenser the
-better, and that the medium should subserve them by
-enjoying in a like degree the luxury of an existence.
-We need of course scarce expressly note that the play,
-as distinguished from the novel, lives exclusively on
-the spoken word—not on the report of the thing said
-but, directly and audibly, on that very thing; that it
-thrives by its law on the exercise under which the
-novel hopelessly collapses when the attempt is made
-disproportionately to impose it. There is no danger
-for the play of the cart before the horse, no disaster
-involved in it; that form being <span class='it'>all</span> horse and the
-interest itself mounted and astride, and not, as that
-of the novel, dependent in the first instance on wheels.
-The order in which the drama simply says things gives
-it all its form, while the story told and the picture
-painted, as the novel at the pass we have brought it
-to embraces them, reports of an infinite diversity of
-matters, gathers together and gives out again a hundred
-sorts, and finds its order and its structure, its
-unity and its beauty, in the alternation of parts and
-the adjustment of differences. It is no less apparent
-that the novel may be fundamentally <span class='it'>organised</span>—such
-things as “The Egoist” and “The Awkward Age” are
-there to prove it; but in this case it adheres unconfusedly
-to that logic and has nothing to say to any
-other. Were it not for a second exception, one at this
-season rather pertinent, “Chance” then, to return to
-it a moment, would be as happy an example as we
-might just now put our hand on of the automatic
-working of a scheme unfavourable to that treatment
-of the colloquy by endless dangling strings which
-makes the current “story” in general so figure to us
-a porcupine of extravagant yet abnormally relaxed
-bristles.</p>
-
-<p>The exception we speak of would be Mrs. Wharton’s
-“Custom of the Country,” in which, as in this lady’s
-other fictions, we recognise the happy fact of an abuse
-of no one of the resources it enjoys at the expense of
-the others; the whole series offering as general an
-example of dialogue flowering and not weeding, illustrational
-and not itself starved of illustration, or
-starved of referability and association, which is the
-same thing, as meets the eye in any glance that leaves
-Mr. Wells at Mr. Wells’s best-inspired hour out of our
-own account. The truth is, however, that Mrs. Wharton
-is herself here out of our account, even as we
-have easily recognised Mr. Galsworthy and Mr. Maurice
-Hewlett to be; these three authors, with whatever
-differences between them, remaining essentially
-votaries of selection and intention and being embodiments
-thereby, in each case, of some state over and
-above that simple state of possession of much evidence,
-that confused conception of what the “slice”
-of life must consist of, which forms the text of our
-remarks. Mrs. Wharton, <span class='it'>her</span> conception of the “slice”
-so clarified and cultivated, would herself of course
-form a text in quite another connection, as Mr. Hewlett
-and Mr. Galsworthy would do each in his own,
-which we abstain from specifying; but there are two
-or three grounds on which the author of “Ethan
-Frome,” “The Valley of Decision” and “The House
-of Mirth,” whom we brush by with reluctance, would
-point the moral of the treasure of amusement sitting
-in the lap of method with a felicity peculiarly her own.
-If one of these is that she too has clearly a saturation—which
-it would be ever so interesting to determine
-and appreciate—we have it from her not in the crude
-state but in the extract, the extract that makes all
-the difference for our sense of an artistic economy.
-If the extract, as would appear, is the result of an
-artistic economy, as the latter is its logical motive, so
-we find it associated in Mrs. Wharton with such appeals
-to our interest, for instance, as the fact that,
-absolutely sole among our students of this form, she
-suffers, she even encourages, her expression to flower
-into some sharp image or figure of her thought when
-that will make the thought more finely touch us. Her
-step, without straying, encounters the living analogy,
-which she gathers, in passing, without awkwardness of
-pause, and which the page then carries on its breast
-as a trophy plucked by a happy adventurous dash, a
-token of spirit and temper as well as a proof of vision.
-We note it as one of the <span class='it'>kinds</span> of proof of vision that
-most fail us in that comparative desert of the inselective
-where our imagination has itself to hunt out or
-call down (often among strange witnessed flounderings
-or sand-storms) such analogies as may mercifully “put”
-the thing. Mrs. Wharton not only owes to her cultivated
-art of putting it the distinction enjoyed when
-some ideal of expression has the <span class='it'>whole</span> of the case, the
-case once made its concern, in charge, but might further
-act for us, were we to follow up her exhibition,
-as lighting not a little that question of “tone,” the
-author’s own intrinsic, as to which we have just seen
-Mr. Conrad’s late production rather tend to darken
-counsel. “The Custom of the Country” is an eminent
-instance of the sort of tonic value most opposed
-to that baffled relation between the subject-matter
-and its emergence which we find constituted by the
-circumvalations of “Chance.” Mrs. Wharton’s reaction
-in presence of the aspects of life hitherto, it would
-seem, mainly exposed to her is for the most part the
-ironic—to which we gather that these particular aspects
-have so much ministered that, were we to pursue the
-quest, we might recognise in them precisely the saturation
-as to which we a moment ago reserved our
-judgment. “The Custom of the Country” is at any
-rate consistently, almost scientifically satiric, as indeed
-the satiric light was doubtless the only one in which
-the elements engaged could at all be focussed together.
-But this happens directly to the profit of something
-that, as we read, becomes more and more one with
-the principle of authority at work; the light that
-gathers is a dry light, of great intensity, and the effect,
-if not rather the very essence, of its dryness is a particular
-fine asperity. The usual “creative” conditions
-and associations, as we have elsewhere languished
-among them, are thanks to this ever so sensibly altered;
-the general authoritative relation attested becomes clear—we
-move in an air purged at a stroke of the old sentimental
-and romantic values, the perversions with the
-maximum of waste of perversions, and we shall not
-here attempt to state what this makes for in the way
-of esthetic refreshment and relief; the waste having
-kept us so dangling on the dark esthetic abyss. A
-shade of asperity may be in such fashion a security
-against waste, and in the dearth of displayed securities
-we should welcome it on that ground alone. It helps
-at any rate to constitute for the talent manifest in
-“The Custom” a rare identity, so far should we have
-to go to seek another instance of the dry, or call it
-perhaps even the hard, intellectual touch in the soft,
-or call it perhaps even the humid, temperamental air;
-in other words of the masculine conclusion tending so
-to crown the feminine observation.</p>
-
-<p>If we mentioned Mr. Compton Mackenzie at the
-beginning of these reflections only to leave him waiting
-for some further appreciation, this is exactly because
-his case, to the most interesting effect, is no
-simple one, like two or three of our others, but on the
-contrary mystifying enough almost to stand by itself.
-What would be this striking young writer’s state of
-acquaintance and possession, and should we find it,
-on our recognition of it, to be all he is content to
-pitch forth, without discriminations or determinants,
-without motives or lights? Do “Carnival” and “Sinister
-Street” proceed from the theory of the slice or
-from the conception of the extract, “the extract flasked
-and fine,” the chemical process superseding the mechanical?
-Mr. Compton Mackenzie’s literary aspect,
-though decidedly that of youth, or that of experience,
-a great deal of young experience, in its freshness, offers
-the attraction of a complexity defiant of the prompt
-conclusion, really charms us by giving us something
-to wonder about. We literally find it not easy to say
-if there may not lurk in “Carnival,” for example, a
-selective sense more apprehensible, to a push of inquiry,
-than its overflooded surface, a real invitation to
-wade and upon which everything within the author’s
-ken appears poured out, would at first lead us to suspect.
-The question comes up in like fashion as to the
-distinctly more developed successor of that work, before
-which we in fact find questions multiply to a positive
-quickening of critical pleasure. We ask ourselves
-what “Sinister Street” may mean as a whole in spite
-of our sense of being brushed from the first by a hundred
-subordinate purposes, the succession and alternation
-of which seem to make after a fashion a plan,
-and which, though full of occasional design, yet fail
-to gather themselves for application or to converge to
-an idea. Any idea will serve, ever, that has held up
-its candle to composition—and it is perhaps because
-composition proposes itself under Mr. Compton Mackenzie’s
-energy on a scale well-nigh of the most prodigious
-that we must wait to see whither it tends.
-The question of what he may here mean “on the
-whole,” as we just said, is doubtless admonished to
-stand back till we be possessed of the whole. This
-interesting volume is but a first, committed up to its
-eyes to continuity and with an announced sequel to
-follow. The recital exhibits at the point we have
-reached the intimate experience of a boy at school and
-in his holidays, the amplification of which is to come
-with his terms and their breaks at a university; and
-the record will probably form a more squared and extended
-picture of life equally conditioned by the extremity
-of youth than we shall know where else to
-look for. Youth clearly has been Mr. Mackenzie’s
-saturation, as it has been Mr. Hugh Walpole’s, but
-we see this not as a subject (youth in itself is no specific
-subject, any more than age is,) but as matter for
-a subject and as requiring a motive to redeem it from
-the merely passive state of the slice. We are sure
-throughout both “Sinister Street” and “Carnival” of
-breathing the air of the extract, as we contentiously
-call it, only in certain of the rounded episodes strung
-on the loose cord as so many vivid beads, each of its
-chosen hue, and the series of which, even with differences
-of price between them, we take for a lively gage
-of performance to come. These episodes would be
-easy to cite; they are handsomely numerous and each
-strikes us as giving in its turn great salience to its motive;
-besides which each is in its turn “done” with
-an eminent sense and a remarkably straight hand for
-doing. They may well be cited together as both signally
-and finely symptomatic, for the literary gesture
-and the <span class='it'>bravura</span> breadth with which such frequent
-medallions as the adventure on the boy’s part of the
-Catholic church at Bournemouth, as his experiment of
-the Benedictine house in Wiltshire, as his period of
-acquaintance with the esthetic <span class='it'>cénacle</span> in London, as
-his relation with his chosen school friend under the
-intensity of boyish choosing, are ornamentally hung
-up, differ not so much in degree as in kind from any
-play of presentation that we mostly see elsewhere offered
-us. To which we might add other like matters
-that we lack space to enumerate, the scene, the aspect,
-the figure in motion tending always, under touches
-thick and strong, to emerge and flush, sound and strike,
-catch us in its truth. We have read “tales of school
-life” in which the boys more or less swarmed and
-sounded, but from which the masters have practically
-been quite absent, to the great weakening of any picture
-of the boyish consciousness, on which the magisterial
-fact is so heavily projected. If that is less true
-for some boys than for others, the “point” of Michael
-Fane is that for him it is truest. The types of masters
-have in “Sinister Street” both number and salience,
-rendered though they be mostly as grotesques—which
-effect we take as characterising the particular
-turn of mind of the young observer and discoverer
-commemorated.</p>
-
-<p>That he <span class='it'>is</span> a discoverer is of the essence of his interest,
-a successful and resourceful young discoverer,
-even as the poor ballet-girl in “Carnival” is a tragically
-baffled and helpless one; so that what each of
-the works proposes to itself is a recital of the things
-discovered. Those thus brought to our view in the
-boy’s case are of much more interest, to our sense,
-than like matters in the other connection, thanks to
-his remarkable and living capacity; the heroine of
-“Carnival” is frankly too minute a vessel of experience
-for treatment on the scale on which the author
-has honoured her—she is done assuredly, but under
-multiplications of touch that become too much, in the
-narrow field, monotonies; and she leaves us asking almost
-as much what she exhibitionally means, what application
-resides in the accumulation of facts concerning
-her, as if she too were after all but a slice, or at
-the most but a slice <span class='it'>of</span> a slice, and her history but one
-of the aspects, on her author’s part, of the condition
-of repleteness against the postulate of the entire adequacy
-of which we protest. So far as this record does
-affect us as an achieved “extract,” to reiterate our
-term, that result abides in its not losing its centre,
-which is its fidelity to the one question of her dolefully
-embarrassed little measure of life. We know to
-that extent with some intensity what her producer
-would be at, yet an element of the arbitrary hangs for
-us about the particular illustration—illustrations leaving
-us ever but half appreciative till we catch that one
-bright light in which they give out all they contain.
-This light is of course always for the author to set
-somewhere. Is it set then so much as it should be
-in “Sinister Street,” and is our impression of the
-promise of this recital one with a dawning divination
-of the illustrative card that Mr. Mackenzie may still
-have up his sleeve and that our after sense shall recognise
-as the last thing left on the table? By no means,
-we can as yet easily say, for if a boy’s experience has
-ever been given us for its face value simply, for what
-it is worth in mere recovered intensity, it is so given
-us here. Of all the saturations it can in fact scarce
-have helped being the most sufficient in itself, for it
-is exactly, where it is best, from beginning to end the
-remembered and reported thing, that thing alone, that
-thing existent in the field of memory, though gaining
-value too from the applied intelligence, or in other
-words from the lively talent, of the memoriser. The
-memoriser helps, he contributes, he completes, and
-what we have admired in him is that in the case of
-each of the pearls fished up by his dive—though indeed
-these fruits of the rummage are not all pearls—his
-mind has had a further iridescence to confer. It
-is the fineness of the iridescence that on such an occasion
-matters, and this appeal to our interest is again
-and again on Mr. Compton Mackenzie’s page of the
-happiest and the brightest. It is never more so than
-when we catch him, as we repeatedly do, in the act
-of positively caring for his expression as expression,
-positively providing for his phrase as a fondly foreseeing
-parent for a child, positively loving it in the
-light of what it may do for him—meeting revelations,
-that is, in what it may do, and appearing to recognise
-that the value of the offered thing, its whole relation
-to us, is created by the breath of language, that on
-such terms exclusively, for appropriation and enjoyment,
-we know it, and that any claimed independence
-of “form” on its part is the most abject of fallacies.
-Do these things mean that, moved by life, this interesting
-young novelist is even now uncontrollably on
-the way to style? We might cite had we space several
-symptoms, the very vividest, of that possibility;
-though such an appearance in the field of our general
-survey has against it presumptions enough to bring us
-surely back to our original contention—the scant degree
-in which that field has ever had to reckon with
-criticism.</p>
-
-<div><span class='pagenum'><a name='Page_362' id='Page_362'>362</a></span><h1 id='t12459'>DUMAS THE YOUNGER<br/>1895</h1></div>
-
-<p>One of the things that most bring home his time of
-life to a man of fifty is the increase of the rate at
-which he loses his friends. Some one dies every week,
-some one dies every day, and if the rate be high among
-his coevals it is higher still in the generation that, on
-awaking to spectatorship, he found in possession of the
-stage. He begins to feel his own world, the world of
-his most vivid impressions, gradually become historical.
-He is present, and closely present, at the process
-by which legend grows up. He sees the friends
-in question pictured as only death can picture them—a
-master superior to the Rembrandts and Titians.
-They have been of many sorts and many degrees,
-they have been private and public, but they have had
-in common that they were the furniture of this first
-fresh world, the world in which associations are formed.
-That one by one they go is what makes the main difference
-in it. The landscape of life, in foreground and
-distance, becomes, as the painters say, another composition,
-another subject; and quite as much as the
-objects directly under our eyes we miss the features
-that have educated for us our sense of proportion.</p>
-
-<p>Among such features for the author of these lines
-the younger Dumas, who has just passed away, was
-in the public order long one of the most conspicuous.
-Suffused as he is already with the quick historic haze,
-fixed, for whatever term, in his ultimate value, he appeals
-to me, I must begin by declaring, as a party to
-one of these associations that have the savour of the
-prime. I knew him only in his work, but he is the
-object of an old-time sentiment for the beginning of
-which I have to go back absurdly far. He arrived
-early—he was so loudly introduced by his name. I
-am tempted to say that I knew him when he was
-young, but what I suppose I mean is that I knew him
-when I myself was. I knew him indeed when we
-both were, for I recall that in Paris, in distant days
-and undeveloped conditions, I was aware with perhaps
-undue and uncanny precocity of his first successes.
-There emerges in my memory from the night of time
-the image of a small boy walking in the Palais Royal
-with innocent American girls who were his cousins and
-wistfully hearing them relate how many times (they
-lived in Paris) they had seen Madame Doche in “La
-Dame aux Camélias” and what floods of tears she
-had made them weep. It was the first time I had
-heard of pockethandkerchiefs as a provision for the
-play. I had no remotest idea of the social position
-of the lady of the expensive flowers, and the artless
-objects of my envy had, in spite of their repeated
-privilege, even less of one; but her title had a strange
-beauty and her story a strange meaning—things that
-ever after were to accompany the name of the author
-with a faint yet rich echo. The younger Dumas, after
-all, was then not only relatively but absolutely young;
-the American infants, privileged and unprivileged, were
-only somewhat younger; the former going with their
-<span class='it'>bonne</span>, who must have enjoyed the adventure, to the
-“upper boxes” of the old Vaudeville of the Place de
-la Bourse, where later on I remember thinking Madame
-Fargueil divine. He was quite as fortunate
-moreover in his own designation as in that of his heroine;
-for it emphasised that bloom of youth (I don’t
-say bloom of innocence—a very different matter) which
-was the signal-note of the work destined, in the world
-at large, to bring him nine-tenths of his celebrity.</p>
-
-<p>Written at twenty-five “La Dame aux Camélias”
-remains in its combination of freshness and form, of
-the feeling of the springtime of life and the sense of
-the conditions of the theatre, a singular, an astonishing
-production. The author has had no time to part
-with his illusions, but has had full opportunity to master
-the most difficult of the arts. Consecrated as he
-was to this mastery he never afterwards showed greater
-adroitness than he had then done in keeping his knowledge
-and his <span class='it'>naïveté</span> from spoiling each other. The
-play has been blown about the world at a fearful rate,
-but it has never lost its happy juvenility, a charm
-that nothing can vulgarise. It is all champagne and
-tears—fresh perversity, fresh credulity, fresh passion,
-fresh pain. We have each seen it both well done and
-ill done, and perhaps more particularly the latter—in
-strange places, in barbarous tongues, with Marguerite
-Gautier fat and Armand Duval old. I remember ages
-ago in Boston a version in which this young lady and
-this young gentleman were represented as “engaged”:
-that indeed for all I know may still be the form in
-which the piece most enjoys favour with the Anglo-Saxon
-public. Nothing makes any difference—it carries
-with it an April air: some tender young man and
-some coughing young woman have only to speak the
-lines to give it a great place among the love-stories
-of the world. I recollect coming out of the Gymnase
-one night when Madame Pierson had been the Marguerite—this
-was very long since—and giving myself
-up on the boulevard to a fine critical sense of what
-in such a composition was flimsy and what was false.
-Somehow, none the less, my fine critical sense never
-prevented my embracing the next opportunity to expose
-it to the same irritation; for I have been, I am
-happy to think to-day, a playgoer who, whatever else
-he may have had on his conscience, has never had the
-neglect of any chance to see this dramatist acted.
-Least of all, within a much shorter period, has it undermined
-one’s kindness to have had occasion to admire
-in connection with the piece such an artist for
-instance as Eleonora Duse. We have seen Madame
-Duse this year or two in her tattered translation, with
-few advantages, with meagre accessories and with one
-side of the character of the heroine scarcely touched at
-all—so little indeed that the Italian version joins hands
-with the American and the relation of Marguerite and
-Armand seems to present itself as a question of the
-consecrated even if not approved “union.” For this
-interesting actress, however, the most beautiful thing
-is always the great thing, and her performance—if seen
-on a fortunate evening—lives in the mind as a fine
-vindication of the play. I am not sure indeed that
-it is the very performance Dumas intended; but he
-lived long enough to have forgotten perhaps what that
-performance was. He might on some sides, I think,
-have accepted Madame Duse’s as a reminder.</p>
-
-<p>If I have stopped to be myself so much reminded, it
-is because after and outside of “La Dame aux Camélias”
-Dumas really never figured among us all again—a
-circumstance full of illustration of one of the most
-striking of our peculiarities, the capacity for granting
-a prodigious ear to some one manifestation of an author’s
-talent and caring nothing whatever for the
-others. It is solely the manifestation and never the
-talent that interests us, and nothing is stranger than
-the fact that no critic has ever explained on our behalf
-the system by which we hurl ourselves on a writer
-to-day and stare at him to-morrow as if we had never
-heard of him. It gives us the air of perpetually awaking
-from mistakes, but it renders obscure all our canons
-of judgment. A great force makes a great success,
-but a great force is furthermore no less a great
-force on Friday than on Monday. Was the reader a
-sorry dupe on the first day, or is the writer a wanton
-sacrifice on the second? That the public is intelligent
-on both occasions is a claim it can scarcely make: it
-can only choose between having its acuteness impugned
-or its manners condemned. At any rate if we have in
-England and the United States only the two alternatives
-of the roar of the market and the silence of the
-tomb the situation is apt to be different in France,
-where the quality that goes into a man’s work and
-gives it an identity is the source of the attention excited.
-It happens that the interest in the play of the
-genius is greater there than the “boom” of the particular
-hit, the concern primarily for the author rather
-than the subject, instead of, as among ourselves, primarily
-for the subject rather than the author. Is this
-because the French have been acute enough to reflect
-that authors comprehend subjects, but that subjects
-can unfortunately not be said to comprehend authors?
-Literature would be a merry game if the business were
-arranged in the latter fashion. However such a question
-may be answered, Dumas was in his own country,
-to the end, the force that, save in connection
-with his first play, he failed to become elsewhere; and
-if he was there much the most original worker in his
-field one of the incidental signs of his originality was
-that, despite our inveterate practice, in theatrical matters,
-of helping ourselves from our neighbour’s plate,
-he was inveterately not a convenience to us. We
-picked our morsels from the plates of smaller people—we
-never found on that of the author of “Le Fils
-Naturel” any we could swallow. He was not to our
-poor purpose, and I cannot help thinking that this
-helps a little to give his artistic measure. It would
-be a bad note for him now if we had found him amenable
-to that graceless game of which we show signs
-to-day of having grown ashamed, but which flourished
-for years in two imperturbable communities as the art
-of theatrical adaptation. A Dumas adaptable is a
-Dumas inconceivable; and in point of fact he was
-touched by the purveyors of the English-speaking stage
-only to prove fatal to them. If the history of so
-mean a traffic as the one here glanced at were worth
-writing it would throw light on some odd conceptions
-of the delicacy in the abused name of which it was
-carried on. It is all to the honour of our author’s
-seriousness that he was, in such conditions, so unmanageable;
-though one must of course hasten to add
-that this seriousness was not the only reason of it.
-There were several others, not undiscoverable, and the
-effect of the whole combination was, in view of the
-brilliant fortune of his productions at home and the
-eager foraging of English and American speculators,
-to place him on a footing all his own. He was of
-active interest among us only to individual observers—simply
-as one of the most devoted of whom I trace
-these few pages of commemoration.</p>
-
-<p>It takes some analysis, yet is not impossible, to explain
-why among the men of his time to whom the
-creative gift had been granted his image, for sundry
-such admirers, always presented him as somehow the
-happiest consciousness. They were perhaps not always
-aware of it, but now that he is gone they have
-a revelation of the place he occupied in the envious
-mind. This envy flowed doubtless, to begin with,
-from the sense of his extraordinarily firm grasp of his
-hard refractory art; the grasp that had put him into
-possession of it without fumblings or gropings made
-him canter away on the back of it the moment he had
-touched the stirrup. He had the air through all his
-career of a man riding a dangerous horse without ever
-being thrown. Every one else had a fall—he alone
-never really quitted the saddle, never produced a play
-that was not to stay to be revived and in the case of
-his comparative failures enjoy some sort of revenge,
-even to that of travelling in the repertory of great
-actresses round the globe. Such travels, moreover,
-much as they may please his shade, are far from having
-been the only felicities of his long career. The
-others strike me as so numerous that I scarcely indeed
-know where to begin to reckon them. Greatly even
-if oddly auspicious for instance was just his stark son-ship
-to his prodigious father, his having been launched
-with that momentum into the particular world in
-which he was to live. It was a privilege to make up
-for the legal irregularity attaching to his birth; we
-think of it really almost to wonder that it didn’t lift
-him on a still higher wave. His limitations, which
-one encounters with a sort of violence, were not to be
-overlooked; it expresses them in some degree to say
-that he was bricked up in his hard Parisianism, but
-it is also incontestable that some of them were much
-concerned in producing his firm and easy equilibrium.
-We understand, however, the trap they set for him
-when we reflect that a certain omniscience, a great
-breadth of horizon, may well have seemed to him to
-be transmitted, in his blood, from such a boundless
-fountain of life. What mattered to him the fact of a
-reach of reference that stopped at the <span class='it'>banlieue</span>, when
-experience had sat at his cradle in the shape not at
-all of a fairy godmother but of an immediate progenitor
-who was at once fabulous and familiar? He had
-been encompassed by all history in being held in such
-arms—it was an entrance into possession of more matters
-than he could even guess what to do with. The
-profit was all the greater as the son had the luxury of
-differing actively from the father, as well as that of
-actively admiring and, in a splendid sense, on all the
-becoming sides, those of stature, strength and health,
-vividly reproducing him. He had in relation to his
-special gift, his mastery of the dramatic form, a faculty
-of imagination as contracted as that of the author of
-“Monte Cristo” was boundless, but his moral sense
-on the other hand, as distinguished from that of his
-parent, was of the liveliest, was indeed of the most
-special and curious kind. The moral sense of the parent
-was to be found only in his good humour and his
-good health—the moral sense of a musketeer in love.
-This lack of adventurous vision, of the long flight and
-the joy of motion, was in the younger genius quite one
-of the conditions of his strength and luck, of his fine
-assurance, his sharp edge, his high emphasis, his state
-untroubled above all by things not within his too irregularly
-conditioned ken. The things close about
-him were the things he saw—there were alternatives,
-differences, opposites, of which he lacked so much as
-the suspicion. Nothing contributes more to the prompt
-fortune of an artist than some such positive and exclusive
-temper, the courage of his convictions, as we
-usually call it, the power to neglect something thoroughly,
-to abound aggressively in his own sense and
-express without reserve his own saturation. The saturation
-of the author of “Le Demi-Monde” was never
-far to seek. He was as native to Paris as a nectarine
-to a south wall. He would have fared ill if he had
-not had a great gift and Paris had not been a great
-city.</p>
-
-<p>It was another element of the happy mixture that
-he came into the world at the moment in all our time
-that was for a man of letters the most amusing and
-beguiling—the moment exactly when he could see the
-end of one era and the beginning of another and join
-hands luxuriously with each. This was an advantage
-to which it would have taken a genius more elastic to
-do full justice, but which must have made him feel
-himself both greatly related and inspiringly free. He
-sprang straight from the lap of full-grown romanticism;
-he was a boy, a privileged and initiated youth,
-when his father, when Victor Hugo, when Lamartine
-and Musset and Scribe and Michelet and Balzac and
-George Sand were at the high tide of production. He
-saw them all, knew them all, lived with them and
-made of them his profit, tasting just enough of the
-old concoction to understand the proportions in which
-the new should be mixed. He had above all in his
-father, for the purpose that was in him, a magnificent
-springboard—a background to throw into relief, as a
-ruddy sunset seems to make a young tree doubly bristle,
-a profile of another type. If it was not indispensable
-it was at any rate quite poetic justice that the successor
-to the name should be, in his conditions, the great
-casuist of the theatre. He had seen the end of an
-age of imagination, he had seen all that could be done
-and shown in the way of mere illustration of the passions.
-That the passions are always with us is a fact
-he had not the smallest pretension to shut his eyes to—they
-were to constitute the almost exclusive subject
-of his study. But he was to study them not for the
-pleasure, the picture, the poetry they offer; he was
-to study them in the interest of something quite outside
-of them, about which the author of “Antony”
-and “Kean,” about which Victor Hugo and Musset,
-Scribe and Balzac and even George Sand had had
-almost nothing to say. He was to study them from
-the point of view of the idea of the right and the
-wrong, of duty and conduct, and he was to this end
-to spend his artistic life with them and give a new
-turn to the theatre. He was in short to become, on
-the basis of a determined observation of the manners
-of his time and country, a professional moralist.</p>
-
-<p>There can scarcely be a better illustration of differences
-of national habit and attitude than the fact that
-while among his own people this is the character, as
-an operative force, borne by the author of “Le Demi-Monde”
-and “Les Idées de Madame Aubray,” so
-among a couple of others, in the proportion in which
-his reputation there has emerged from the vague, his
-most definite identity is that of a mere painter of indecent
-people and indecent doings. There are, as I
-have hinted, several reasons for the circumstance already
-noted, the failure of the attempt to domesticate
-him on the English-speaking stage; but one states
-the case fairly, I think, in saying that what accounts
-for half of it is our passion, in the presence of a work
-of art, for confounding the object, as the philosophers
-have it, with the subject, for losing sight of the idea
-in the vehicle, of the intention in the fable. Dumas
-is a dramatist as to whom nine playgoers out of ten
-would precipitately exclaim: “Ah, but you know,
-isn’t he dreadfully immoral?” Such are the lions in
-the path of reputation, such the fate, in an alien air,
-of a master whose main reproach in his native clime
-is the importunity and the rigour of his lesson. The
-real difference, I take it, is that whereas we like to be
-good the French like to be better. We like to be
-moral, they like to moralise. This helps us to understand
-the number of our innocent writers—writers innocent
-even of reflection, a practice of course essentially
-indelicate, inasmuch as it speedily brings us face to
-face with scandal and even with evil. It accounts
-doubtless also for the number of writers on the further
-side of the Channel who have made the journey
-once for all and to whom, in the dangerous quarter
-they have reached, it appears of the very nature of
-scandal and evil to be inquired about. The whole
-undertaking of such a writer as Dumas is, according
-to his light, to carry a particular, an esthetic form of
-investigation as far as it will stretch—to study, and
-study thoroughly, the bad cases. These bad cases
-were precisely what our managers and adapters, our
-spectators and critics would have nothing to do with.
-It defines indeed the separation that they should have
-been, in the light in which he presented them, precisely
-what made them for his own public exceptionally
-edifying. One of his great contentions is, for
-instance, that seduced girls should under all circumstances
-be married—by somebody or other, failing the
-seducer. This is a contention that, as we feel, barely
-concerns us, shut up as we are in the antecedent conviction
-that they should under no circumstances be seduced.
-He meets all the cases that, as we see him, we
-feel to have been spread out before him; meets them
-successively, systematically, at once with a great earnestness
-and a great wit. He is exuberantly sincere:
-his good faith sometimes obscures his humour, but
-nothing obscures his good faith. So he gives us in
-their order the unworthy brides who must be denounced,
-the prenuptial children who must be adopted,
-the natural sons who must be avenged, the wavering
-ladies who must be saved, the credulous fiancés who
-must be enlightened, the profligate wives who must be
-shot, the merely blemished ones who must be forgiven,
-the too vindictive ones who must be humoured, the
-venal young men who must be exposed, the unfaithful
-husbands who must be frightened, the frivolous fathers
-who must be pulled up and the earnest sons who
-must pull them. To enjoy his manner of dealing with
-such material we must grant him in every connection
-his full premise: that of the importunity of the phenomenon,
-the ubiquity of the general plight, the plight
-in which people are left by an insufficient control of their
-passions. We must grant him in fact for his didactic
-and dramatic purpose a great many things. These
-things, taken together and added to some others, constitute
-the luxurious terms on which I have spoken of
-him as appearing to the alien admirer to have practised
-his complicated art.</p>
-
-<p>When we speak of the passions in general we really
-mean, for the most part, the first of the number, the
-most imperious in its action and the most interesting
-in its consequences, the passion that unites and divides
-the sexes. It is the passion, at any rate, to
-which Dumas as dramatist and pamphleteer mainly
-devoted himself: his plays, his prefaces, his manifestos,
-his few tales roll exclusively on the special relation of
-the man to the woman and the woman to the man, and
-on the dangers of various sorts, even that of ridicule,
-with which this relation surrounds each party. This
-element of danger is what I have called the general
-plight, for when our author considers the sexes as
-united and divided it is with the predominance of the
-division that he is principally struck. It is not an
-unfair account of him to say that life presented itself
-to him almost wholly as a fierce battle between the
-woman and the man. He sides now with one and now
-with the other; the former combatant, in her own
-country, however, was far from pronouncing him sympathetic.
-His subject at all events is what we of English
-race call the sexes and what they in France call
-the sex. To talk of love is to talk, as we have it, of
-men and women; to talk of love is, as the French
-have it, to <span class='it'>parler femmes</span>. From every play of our
-author’s we receive the impression that to <span class='it'>parler femmes</span>
-is its essential and innermost purpose. It is not assuredly
-singular that a novelist, a dramatist <span class='it'>should</span>
-talk of love, or even should talk of nothing else: what,
-in addition to his adroitness and his penetration, makes
-the position special for Dumas is that he talks of it—and
-in the form of address most associated with pure
-diversion—altogether from the anxious point of view
-of the legislator and the citizen.</p>
-
-<p>“Diane de Lys,” which immediately followed “La
-Dame aux Camélias,” is, so far as I can recall it, a
-picture pure and simple, a pretty story, as we say,
-sufficiently romantic and rather long-winded; but with
-“Le Demi-Monde” began his rich argumentative series,
-concluding only the other day with “Denise” and
-“Francillon,” the series in which every theme is a
-proposition to be established and every proposition a
-form of duty to be faced. The only variation that I
-can recollect in the list is the disinterested portraiture
-of “Le Père Prodigue,” with its remarkable presentation,
-in the figure of Albertine de la Borde, of vice
-domesticated and thrifty, keeping early hours and
-books in double-entry, and its remarkable illustration,
-I may further add, of all that was the reverse of infallible
-in the author’s power to distinguish between
-amiable infirmities and ugly ones. The idea on which
-“Le Père Prodigue” rests belongs more distinctively
-to the world of comedy than almost any other situation
-exhibited in the series; but what are we to say
-of the selection, for comic effect, of a fable of which
-the principal feature is a son’s not unfounded suspicion
-of the attitude of his own father to his own wife?
-The father is the image of a nature profusely frivolous,
-but we scent something more frivolous still in the
-way his frivolity is disposed of. At the time the play
-was produced the spectator thought himself warranted
-in recognising in this picture the personal character
-(certainly not the personal genius) of the elder
-Dumas. If the spectator <span class='it'>was</span> so warranted, that only
-helps, I think, to make “Le Père Prodigue” a stumbling-block
-for the critic—make it, I mean, an exhibition
-of the author off his guard and a fact to be taken
-into account in an estimate of his moral reach; a moral
-reach, for the rest, at all events, never impugned by
-any obliquity in facing that conception of the duty
-imposed which it is the main source of the writer’s interest
-in the figured circumstances that they may be
-held to impose it, and which he was apt to set forth
-more dogmatically, or at least more excitedly, in an
-occasional and polemical pamphlet. These pamphlets,
-I may parenthetically say, strike me as definitely
-compromising to his character as artist. What shines
-in them most is the appetite for a discussion, or rather
-the appetite for a conclusion, and the passion for a
-simplified and vindictive justice. But I have never
-found it easy to forgive a writer who, in possession of
-a form capable of all sorts of splendid application,
-puts on this resource the slight of using substitutes for
-it at will, as if it is good but for parts of the cause.
-If it is good for anything it is good for the whole demonstration,
-and if it is not good for the whole demonstration
-it is good for nothing—nothing that <span class='it'>he</span> is concerned
-with. If the picture of life doesn’t cover the
-ground what in the world <span class='it'>can</span> cover it? The fault
-can only be the painter’s. Woe, in the esthetic line,
-to any example that requires the escort of precept. It
-is like a guest arriving to dine accompanied by constables.
-Our author’s prefaces and treatises show a
-mistrust of disinterested art. He would have declared
-probably that his art was not disinterested; to which
-our reply would be that it had then no right to put
-us off the scent and prepare deceptions for us by
-coming within an ace of being as good as if it were.</p>
-
-<p>The merits of the play—that is of the picture, in
-these hands—are sometimes singularly independent of
-the lesson conveyed. The merits of the lesson conveyed
-are in other cases much more incontestable than
-those of the picture, than the production of the air of
-life or the happiest observance of the conditions of
-the drama. The conclusion, the prescription, of “Denise”
-strikes me (to give an instance) as singularly fine,
-but the subject belongs none the less to the hapless
-order of those that fail to profit by the dramatic form
-though they have sacrificed the highest advantages of
-the literary. A play—even the best—pays so tremendously
-by what it essentially can not do for the
-comparatively little it practically can, that a mistake
-in the arithmetic of this positive side speedily produces
-a wide deviation. In other words the spectator,
-and still more the reader, sees such a theme as that
-of “Denise,” which may be described as the evolution
-of a view, presented most in accordance with its
-nature when the attempt is not made to present it in
-accordance with the nature of the theatre. It is the
-nature of the theatre to give its victims, in exchange
-for melancholy concessions, a vision of the immediate
-not to be enjoyed in any other way; and consequently
-when the material offered it to deal with is not the
-immediate, but the contingent, the derived, the hypothetic,
-our melancholy concessions have been made in
-vain and the inadequacy of the form comes out. In
-“Francillon,” partly perhaps because the thing has
-nothing to do with anybody’s duty—least of all with
-the heroine’s, which would be surely to keep off the
-streets—the form happens to be remarkably adequate.
-The question is of the liberty of the protagonist, the
-right of a wronged and indignant wife to work out her
-husband’s chastisement in the same material as his
-sin, work it out moreover on the spot, as a blow is
-repaid by a blow, exacting an eye for an eye and a
-tooth for a tooth. The play has all the kinds of life
-that the theatre can achieve, because in the first place
-Dumas, though acting as the wife’s advocate, has had
-the intelligence to give us a solution which is only a
-scenic sequence and not a real, still less a “philosophic,”
-one; and because in the second it deals with emotions
-and impulses, which can be shown by the short measure,
-and not with reflections and aspirations, which
-can be shown but by the long.</p>
-
-<p>I am not pretending to take things in turn, but a
-critic with a generous memory of the spell of Dumas
-should not, however pressed, neglect to strain a point
-for “Le Demi-Monde.” I doubt my competence, however,
-to consider that admirable work scientifically—I
-find myself too condemned to consider it sentimentally.
-A critic is lost, as a critic, from the moment his
-feeling about the worse parts of the matter he investigates
-fails to differ materially from his feeling about
-the better. That is an attitude even less enlightened
-than being unconscious of the blemishes; all the same
-it must serve me for the present case. I am perfectly
-aware that Olivier de Jalin is a man of no true delicacy;
-in spite of which I take when I see them represented
-the liveliest interest in his proceedings. I am
-perfectly aware that Madame d’Ange, with her <span class='it'>calme
-infernal</span>, as George Sand calls it, is tainted and tortuous;
-in spite of which my imagination quite warms to
-Madame d’Ange. Perhaps I should indeed rather say
-that this interest and this sympathy have for their
-object the great total of the play. It is the member
-of the series in which Dumas first took up the scales
-in one hand and the sword in the other, and it is a
-wonderful piece of work, wonderful in kind of maturity,
-for a man of thirty. It has all the easy amplitude
-we call authority. I won’t pretend to say what
-I think, here, of the author’s justice, and if I happen
-to think ill of it I won’t pretend to care. I see the
-thing through too many old memories, old echoes, old
-charms. In the light of the admirable acting of ancient
-days, of the faded image of the exquisite Desclée,
-of a dim recollection even of the prehistoric Rose
-Chéri and of Mademoiselle Delaporte, it represents too
-many of the reasons why I saw him always ideally
-triumphant. To practise an art which for its full, its
-rich effect depended on interpretation, and to be able
-to do one’s work with an eye on interpretation of that
-quality—this had in common with supreme bliss the
-element at any rate of being attainable only by the
-elect. It partook of a peace the world cannot give.
-To be a moralist with the aid of Croizette, a philosopher
-with the aid of Delaunay, an Academician, even,
-with the aid of Bartet—such things suggested an almost
-equivocal union of virtue and success. One had
-never seen virtue so agreeable to one’s self, nor success
-so useful to others. One had never seen a play
-that was a model so alive in spite of it. Models in
-the theatre were apt to be dead and vivacities vulgar.
-One had never above all seen on the stage a picture
-so conformable to deep pictorial art, a drama so liberally,
-gradually, scientifically flushed with its action.
-Beautiful in “Le Demi-Monde” is the way the subject
-quietly, steadily, strongly expands from within.</p>
-
-<p>It was always the coercive force that his tone gave
-one the strongest sense of life, and it remains the interesting
-thing that this element in Dumas abounds
-in spite of not being fed from the source that we usually
-assume to be the richest. It was not fed from the
-imagination, for his imagination, by no means of the
-great plastic sort, has left us a comparatively small
-heritage of typical figures. His characters are all
-pointed by observation, they are clear notes in the
-concert, but not one of them has known the little invisible
-push that, even when shyly and awkwardly administered,
-makes the puppet, in spite of the string,
-walk off by himself and quite “cut,” if the mood take
-him, that distant relation his creator. They are always
-formal with this personage and thoroughly conscious
-and proud of him; there is a charm of mystery
-and poetry and oddity, a glory of unexpectedness,
-that they consistently lack. Their life, and that, in
-each case, of the whole story (quite the most wonderful
-part of this) is simply the author’s own life, his
-high vitality, his very presence and temperament and
-voice. They do more for him even than they do for
-the subject, and he himself is at last accordingly the
-most vivid thing in every situation. He keeps it at
-arm’s length because he has the instinct of the dramatist
-and the conscience of the artist, but we feel all the
-while that his face is bigger than his mask. Nothing
-about his work is more extraordinary than this manner
-in which his personality pervades without spoiling
-it the most detached and most impersonal of literary
-forms. The reasons for such an impunity are first
-that his precautions, the result of a great intelligence,
-were so effective, and second that his personality, the
-result of a great affiliation, was so robust. It may be
-said that the precautions were not effective if the
-man himself was what one most enjoyed in the play.
-The only answer to that can be that I speak merely
-for myself and for the fresher sensibility of the happy
-time. Other admirers found certainly other things;
-what I found most was a tall figure in muscular motion
-and the sense of a character that had made admirably
-free with life. If it was mainly as an unabashed
-observer that he had made free, and if the
-life supplied was much of it uncommonly queer, that
-never diminished the action of his hard masculinity
-and his fine intellectual brutality. There was an easy
-competence in it all, and a masterful experience, and
-a kind of vicarious courage. In particular there was a
-real genius for putting all persons—especially all bad
-ones—very much in their place. Then it was all, for
-another bribe, so copious and so close, so sustained
-and so quiet, with such fascinating unities and complex
-simplicities and natural solutions. It was the
-breath of the world and the development of an art.</p>
-
-<p>All the good, however, that I recollect thinking of
-Dumas only reminds me how little I desired that my
-remarks in general should lead me into vain discriminations.
-There are some indeed that are not vain—at
-least they help us to understand. He has a noble
-strain of force, a fulness of blood that has permitted
-him to be tapped without shrinking. We must speak
-of him in the present tense, as we always speak of the
-masters. The theatre of his time, wherever it has
-been serious, has on the ground of general method
-lived on him; wherever it has not done so it has not
-lived at all. To pretend to be too shocked to profit
-by him was a way of covering up its levity, but there
-was no escaping its fate. He was the kind of artistic
-influence that is as inevitable as a medical specific:
-you may decline it from black bottle to-day—you will
-take it from a green bottle to-morrow. The energy
-that went forth blooming as Dumas has come back
-grizzled as Ibsen, and would under the latter form, I
-am sure, very freely acknowledge its debt. A critic
-whose words meet my eyes as I write very justly says
-that: “Just as we have the novel before Balzac and
-the novel after Balzac, the poetry that preceded Victor
-Hugo and the poetry that followed him, so we have
-the drama before Alexandre Dumas and the drama
-after him.” He has left his strong hand upon it; he
-remodelled it as a vehicle, he refreshed it as an art.
-His passion for it was obviously great, but there would
-be a high injustice to him in not immediately adding
-that his interest in the material it dealt with, in his
-subject, his question, his problem, was greater still
-than this joy of the craftsman. That might well be,
-but there are celebrated cases in which it has not
-been. The largest quality in Dumas was his immense
-concern about life—his sense of human character and
-human fate as commanding and controllable things.
-To do something on their behalf was paramount for
-him, and <span class='it'>what</span> to do in his own case clear: what else
-but act upon the conscience as violently as he could,
-and with the remarkable weapons that Providence had
-placed within his grasp and for which he was to show
-his gratitude by a perfectly intrepid application?
-These weapons were three: a hard rare wit, not lambent
-like a flame, but stiff and straight like an arrow
-from a crossbow; a perception not less rare of some
-of the realities of the particular human tendency about
-which most falsities have clustered; and lastly that
-native instinct for the conditions of dramatic presentation
-without which any attempt to meet them is a
-helpless groping.</p>
-
-<p>It must always be remembered of him that he was
-the observer of a special order of things, the moralist
-of a particular relation as the umpire of a yacht-race
-is the legislator of a particular sport. His vision and
-his talent, as I have said, were all for the immediate,
-for the manners and the practices he himself was
-drenched with: he had none of the faculty that scents
-from afar, that wings away and dips beyond the horizon.
-There are moments when a reader not of his
-own race feels that he simplifies almost absurdly.
-There are too many things he didn’t after all guess,
-too many cases he didn’t after all provide for. He
-has a certain odour of bad company that almost imperils
-his distinction. This was doubtless the deepest
-of the reasons why among ourselves he flourished
-so scantly: we felt ourselves to be of a world in which
-the elements were differently mixed, the proportions
-differently marked, so that the tables of our law would
-have to be differently graven. His very earnestness
-was only a hindrance—he might have had more to
-say to us if he had consented to have less application.
-This produced the curious dryness, the obtrusive economy
-of his drama—the hammered sharpness of every
-outline, the metallic ring of every sound. His terrible
-knowledge suggested a kind of uniform—gilt buttons,
-a feathered hat and a little official book; it was
-almost like an irruption of the police. The most general
-masters are the poets, with all the things they
-blessedly don’t hold for so very certain and all the
-things they blessedly and preferably invent. It is
-true that Dumas was splendid, in his way, exactly
-because he was not vague: his concentration, all confidence
-and doctrine and epigram, is the explanation of
-his extraordinary force. That force is his abiding
-quality: one feels that he was magnificently a man—that
-he stands up high and sees straight and speaks
-loud. It is his great temperament, undiminished by
-what it lacks, that endears him to his admirers. It
-made him still of the greater race and played well its
-part in its time—so well that one thinks of him finally
-as perhaps not, when all is said, of the very happiest
-group, the group of those for whom in the general affection
-there is yet more to come. He had an immense
-reverberation—he practised the art that makes
-up for being the most difficult by being the most acclaimed.
-There is no postponed poetic justice for
-those who have had everything. He was seconded in
-a manner that must have made success a double delight.
-There are indications that the dramatist of the
-future will be less and less elated. He may well become
-so if he is to see himself less and less interpreted.</p>
-
-<div><span class='pagenum'><a name='Page_385' id='Page_385'>385</a></span><h1>THE NOVEL IN “THE RING AND THE BOOK”<a id='r8'/><a href='#f8' style='text-decoration:none'><sup><span style='font-size:0.9em'>[8]</span></sup></a><br/>1912</h1></div>
-
-<p>If on such an occasion as this—even with our natural
-impulse to shake ourselves free of reserves—some sharp
-choice between the dozen different aspects of one of
-the most copious of our poets becomes a prime necessity,
-though remaining at the same time a great difficulty,
-so in respect to the most voluminous of his
-works the admirer is promptly held up, as we have
-come to call it; finds himself almost baffled by alternatives.
-“The Ring and the Book” is so vast and so
-essentially gothic a structure, spreading and soaring
-and branching at such a rate, covering such ground,
-putting forth such pinnacles and towers and brave excrescences,
-planting its transepts and chapels and porticos,
-its clustered hugeness or inordinate muchness,
-that with any first approach we but walk vaguely and
-slowly, rather bewilderedly, round and round it, wondering
-at what point we had best attempt such entrance
-as will save our steps and light our uncertainty,
-most enable us to reach our personal chair, our indicated
-chapel or shrine, when once within. For it is to
-be granted that to this inner view the likeness of the
-literary monument to one of the great religious gives
-way a little, sustains itself less than in the first, the
-affronting mass; unless we simply figure ourselves,
-under the great roof, looking about us through a splendid
-thickness and dimness of air, an accumulation of
-spiritual presences or unprofaned mysteries, that makes
-our impression heavily general—general only—and
-leaves us helpless for reporting on particulars. The
-particulars for our purpose have thus their identity
-much rather in certain features of the twenty faces—either
-of one or of another of these—that the structure
-turns to the outer day and that we can, as it
-were, sit down before and consider at our comparative
-ease. I say comparative advisedly, for I cling to the
-dear old tradition that Browning is “difficult”—which
-we were all brought up on and which I think we should,
-especially on a rich retrospective day like this, with
-the atmosphere of his great career settling upon us as
-much as possible, feel it a shock to see break down
-in too many places at once. Selecting my ground, by
-your kind invitation, for sticking in and planting before
-you, to flourish so far as it shall, my little sprig
-of bay, I have of course tried to measure the quantity
-of ease with which our material may on that noted
-spot allow itself to be treated. There are innumerable
-things in “The Ring and the Book”—as the
-comprehensive image I began with makes it needless
-I should say; and I have been above all appealed to
-by the possibility that one of these, pursued for a
-while through the labyrinth, but at last overtaken and
-then more or less confessing its identity, might have
-yielded up its best essence as a grateful theme under
-some fine strong economy of <span class='it'>prose</span> treatment. So here
-you have me talking at once of prose and seeking
-that connection to help out my case.</p>
-
-<p>From far back, from my first reading of these volumes,
-which took place at the time of their disclosure
-to the world, when I was a fairly young person, the
-sense, almost the pang, of the novel they might have
-constituted sprang sharply from them; so that I was
-to go on through the years almost irreverently, all but
-quite profanely if you will, thinking of the great loose
-and uncontrolled composition, the great heavy-hanging
-cluster of related but unreconciled parts, as a fiction
-of the so-called historic type, that is as a suggested
-study of the manners and conditions from which our
-own have more or less traceably issued, just tragically
-spoiled—or as a work of art, in other words, smothered
-in the producing. To which I hasten to add my
-consciousness of the scant degree in which such a
-fresh start from our author’s documents, such a reprojection
-of them, wonderful documents as they can
-only have been, may claim a critical basis. Conceive
-me as simply astride of my different fancy, my other
-dream, of the matter—which bolted with me, as I have
-said, at the first alarm.</p>
-
-<p>Browning worked in this connection literally <span class='it'>upon</span>
-documents; no page of his long story is more vivid and
-splendid than that of his find of the Book in the litter
-of a market-stall in Florence and the swoop of practised
-perception with which he caught up in it a treasure.
-Here was a subject stated to the last ounce of
-its weight, a living and breathing record of facts pitiful
-and terrible, a mass of matter bristling with revelations
-and yet at the same time wrapped over with
-layer upon layer of contemporary appreciation; which
-appreciation, in its turn, was a part of the wealth to
-be appreciated. What our great master saw was his
-situation founded, seated there in positively packed
-and congested significance, though by just so much as
-it was charged with meanings and values were those
-things undeveloped and unexpressed. They looked up
-at him, even in that first flush and from their market-stall,
-and said to him, in their compressed compass, as
-with the muffled rumble of a slow-coming earthquake,
-“Express us, express us, immortalise us as we’ll immortalise
-<span class='it'>you</span>!”—so that the terms of the understanding
-were so far cogent and clear. It was an understanding,
-on their side, with the poet; and since that
-poet had produced “Men and Women,” “Dramatic
-Lyrics,” “Dramatis Personæ” and sundry plays—we
-needn’t even foist on him “Sordello”—he could but
-understand in his own way. That way would have
-had to be quite some other, we fully see, had he been
-by habit and profession not just the lyric, epic, dramatic
-commentator, the extractor, to whatever essential
-potency and redundancy, of the moral of the fable,
-but the very fabulist himself, the inventor and projector,
-layer down of the postulate and digger of the
-foundation. I doubt if we have a precedent for this
-energy of appropriation of a deposit of <span class='it'>stated</span> matter,
-a block of sense already in position and requiring not
-to be shaped and squared and caused any further to
-solidify, but rather to suffer disintegration, be pulled
-apart, melted down, hammered, by the most characteristic
-of the poet’s processes, to powder—dust of
-gold and silver, let us say. He was to apply to it his
-favourite system—that of looking at his subject from
-the point of view of a curiosity almost sublime in its
-freedom, yet almost homely in its method, and of
-smuggling as many more points of view together into
-that one as the fancy might take him to smuggle, on
-a scale on which even he had never before applied it;
-this with a courage and a confidence that, in presence of
-all the conditions, conditions many of them arduous
-and arid and thankless even to defiance, we can only
-pronounce splendid, and of which the issue was to be
-of a proportioned monstrous magnificence.</p>
-
-<p>The one definite forecast for this product would
-have been that it should figure for its producer as a
-poem—as if he had simply said, “I embark at any rate
-for the Golden Isles”; everything else was of the pure
-incalculable, the frank voyage of adventure. To what
-extent the Golden Isles were in fact to be reached is a
-matter we needn’t pretend, I think, absolutely to determine;
-let us feel for ourselves and as we will about
-it—either see our adventurer, disembarked bag and
-baggage and in possession, plant his flag on the highest
-eminence within his circle of sea, or, on the other hand,
-but watch him approach and beat back a little, tack
-and turn and stand off, always fairly in sight of land,
-catching rare glimpses and meeting strange airs, but
-not quite achieving the final <span class='it'>coup</span> that annexes the
-group. He returns to us under either view all scented
-and salted with his measure of contact, and that for
-the moment is enough for us—more than enough for
-me at any rate, engaged for your beguilement in this
-practical relation of snuffing up what he brings. He
-brings, however one puts it, a detailed report, which is
-but another word for a story; and it is with his story,
-his offered, not his borrowed one—a very different
-matter—that I am concerned. We are probably most
-of us so aware of its general content that if I sum this
-up I may do so briefly. The Book of the Florentine
-rubbish-heap is the full account (as full accounts were
-conceived in those days) of the trial before the Roman
-courts, with inquiries and judgments by the Tuscan
-authorities intermixed, of a certain Count Guido Franceschini
-of Arezzo, decapitated, in company with four
-confederates—these latter hanged—on February 22,
-1698, for the murder of his young wife Pompilia Comparini
-and her ostensible parents, Pietro and Violante
-of that ilk.</p>
-
-<p>The circumstances leading to this climax were primarily
-his marriage to Pompilia, some years before, in
-Rome—she being then but in her thirteenth year—under
-the impression, fostered in him by the elder pair,
-that she was their own child and on this head heiress
-to moneys settled on them from of old in the event of
-their having a child. They had in fact had none, and
-had, in substitution, invented, so to speak, Pompilia,
-the luckless base-born baby of a woman of lamentable
-character easily induced to part with her for cash.
-They bring up the hapless creature as their daughter,
-and as their daughter they marry her, in Rome, to the
-middle-aged and impecunious Count Guido, a rapacious
-and unscrupulous fortune-seeker by whose superior
-social position, as we say, dreadfully <span class='it'>decaduto</span>
-though he be, they are dazzled out of all circumspection.
-The girl, innocent, ignorant, bewildered, scared
-and purely passive, is taken home by her husband to
-Arezzo, where she is at first attended by Pietro and
-Violante and where the direst disappointment await
-the three. Count Guido proves the basest of men and
-his home a place of terror and of torture, from which at
-the age of seventeen, and shortly prior to her giving
-birth to an heir to the house, such as it is, she is rescued
-by a pitying witness of her misery, Canon Caponsacchi,
-a man of the world and adorning it, yet in holy
-orders, as men of the world in Italy might then be, who
-clandestinely helps her, at peril of both their lives, back
-to Rome, and of whom it is attested that he has had
-no other relation with her but this of distinguished and
-all-disinterested friend in need. The pretended parents
-have at an early stage thrown up their benighted game,
-fleeing from the rigour of their dupe’s domestic rule,
-disclosing to him vindictively the part they have played
-and the consequent failure of any profit to him through
-his wife, and leaving him in turn to wreak his spite,
-which has become infernal, on the wretched Pompilia.
-He pursues her to Rome, on her eventual flight, and
-overtakes her, with her companion, just outside the
-gates; but having, by the aid of the local powers, reachieved
-possession of her, he contents himself for the
-time with procuring her sequestration in a convent,
-from which, however, she is presently allowed to emerge
-in view of the near birth of her child. She rejoins
-Pietro and Violante, devoted to her, oddly enough,
-through all their folly and fatuity; and under their
-roof, in a lonely Roman suburb, her child comes into
-the world. Her husband meanwhile, hearing of her
-release, gives way afresh to the fury that had not at
-the climax of his former pursuit taken full effect; he
-recruits a band of four of his young tenants or farm-labourers
-and makes his way, armed, like his companions,
-with knives, to the door behind which three
-of the parties to all the wrong done him, as he holds,
-then lurk. He pronounces, after knocking and waiting,
-the name of Caponsacchi; upon which, as the
-door opens, Violante presents herself. He stabs her
-to death on the spot with repeated blows—like her
-companions she is off her guard; and he throws himself
-on each of these with equal murderous effect.
-Pietro, crying for mercy, falls second beneath him;
-after which he attacks his wife, whom he literally
-hacks to death. She survives, by a miracle, long
-enough, in spite of all her wounds, to testify; which
-testimony, as may be imagined, is not the least precious
-part of the case. Justice is on the whole, though
-deprecated and delayed, what we call satisfactory; the
-last word is for the Pope in person, Innocent XII.
-Pignatelli, at whose deliberation, lone and supreme,
-on Browning’s page, we splendidly assist; and Count
-Guido and his accomplices, bloodless as to the act
-though these appear to have been, meet their discriminated
-doom.</p>
-
-<p>That is the bundle of facts, accompanied with the
-bundle of proceedings, legal, ecclesiastical, diplomatic
-and other, <span class='it'>on</span> the facts, that our author, of a summer’s
-day, made prize of; but our general temptation,
-as I say—out of which springs this question of
-the other values of character and effect, the other
-completeness of picture and drama, that the confused
-whole might have had for us—is a distinctly different
-thing. The difference consists, you see, to begin
-with, in the very breath of our poet’s genius, already,
-and so inordinately, at play on them from the first
-of our knowing them. And it consists in the second
-place of such an extracted sense of the whole, which
-becomes, after the most extraordinary fashion, bigger
-by the extraction, immeasurably bigger than even the
-most cumulative weight of the mere crude evidence,
-that our choice of how to take it all is in a manner
-determined for us: we can only take it as tremendously
-interesting, interesting not only in itself but
-with the great added interest, the dignity and authority
-and beauty, of Browning’s general perception
-of it. We can’t not accept this, and little enough on
-the whole do we want not to: it sees us, with its tremendous
-push, that of its poetic, esthetic, historic,
-psychologic shoulder (one scarce knows how to name
-it), so far on our way. Yet all the while we are in
-presence not at all of an achieved form, but of a mere
-preparation for one, though on the hugest scale; so
-that, you see, we are no more than decently attentive
-with our question: “Which of them all, of the
-various methods of casting the wondrously mixed
-metal, is he, as he goes, preparing?” Well, as he
-keeps giving and giving, in immeasurable plenty, it is
-in our selection from it all and our picking it over that
-we seek, and to whatever various and unequal effect
-find, our account. He works over his vast material,
-and we then work <span class='it'>him</span> over, though not availing ourselves,
-to this end, of a grain he himself doesn’t somehow
-give us; and there we are.</p>
-
-<p>I admit that my faith in my particular contention
-would be a degree firmer and fonder if there didn’t
-glimmer through our poet’s splendid hocus-pocus just
-the hint of one of those flaws that sometimes deform
-the fair face of a subject otherwise generally appealing
-or promising—of such a subject in especial as may
-have been submitted to us, possibly even with the
-pretension to impose it, in too complete a shape. The
-idea but half hinted—when it is a very good one—is
-apt to contain the germ of happier fruit than the
-freight of the whole branch, waved at us or dropped
-into our lap, very often proves. This happens when
-we take over, as the phrase is, established data, take
-them over from existing records and under some involved
-obligation to take them as they stand. That
-drawback rests heavily for instance on the so-called
-historic fiction—so beautiful a case it is of a muddlement
-of terms—and is just one of the eminent reasons
-why the embarrassed Muse of that form, pulled up
-again and again, and the more often the fine intelligence
-invokes her, by the need of a superior harmony
-which shall be after all but a superior truth, catches
-up her flurried skirts and makes her saving dash for
-some gap in the hedge of romance. Now the flaw on
-this so intensely expressive face, that of the general
-<span class='it'>donnée</span> of the fate of Pompilia, is that amid the variety
-of forces at play about her the unity of the situation
-isn’t, by one of those large straight ideal gestures
-on the part of the Muse, handed to us at a stroke.
-The question of the whereabouts of the unity of a
-group of data subject to be wrought together into a
-thing of art, the question in other words of the point
-at which the various implications of interest, no matter
-how many, <span class='it'>most</span> converge and interfuse, becomes
-always, by my sense of the affair, quite the first to be
-answered; for according to the answer shapes and fills
-itself the very vessel of that beauty—the beauty, exactly,
-<span class='it'>of</span> interest, of maximum interest, which is the
-ultimate extract of any collocation of facts, any picture
-of life, and the finest aspect of any artistic work.
-Call a novel a picture of life as much as we will; call
-it, according to one of our recent fashions, a slice, or
-even a chunk, even a “bloody” chunk, of life, a rough
-excision from that substance as superficially cut and
-as summarily served as possible, it still fails to escape
-this exposure to appreciation, or in other words to
-criticism, that it has had to be selected, selected under
-some sense for something; and the unity of the exhibition
-should meet us, does meet us if the work be
-done, at the point at which that sense is most patent.
-If the slice or the chunk, or whatever we call it, if <span class='it'>it</span>
-isn’t “done,” as we say—and as it so often declines
-to be—the work itself of course isn’t likely to be; and
-there we may dismiss it.</p>
-
-<p>The first thing we do is to cast about for some centre
-in our field; seeing that, for such a purpose as
-ours, the subject might very nearly go a-begging with
-none more definite than the author has provided for
-it. I find that centre in the embracing consciousness
-of Caponsacchi, which, coming to the rescue of our
-question of treatment, of our search for a point of
-control, practically saves everything, and shows itself
-moreover the only thing that <span class='it'>can</span> save. The more
-we ask of any other part of our picture that it shall
-exercise a comprehensive function, the more we see
-that particular part inadequate; as inadequate even
-in the extraordinarily magnified range of spirit and
-reach of intelligence of the atrocious Franceschini as
-in the sublime passivity and plasticity of the childish
-Pompilia, educated to the last point though she be
-indeed by suffering, but otherwise so untaught that
-she can neither read nor write. The magnified state
-is in this work still more than elsewhere the note of
-the intelligence, of any and every faculty of thought, imputed
-by our poet to his creatures; and it takes a great
-mind, one of the greatest, we may at once say, to make
-these persons express and confess themselves to such
-an effect of intellectual splendour. He resorts primarily
-to <span class='it'>their</span> sense, their sense of themselves and of
-everything else they know, to exhibit them, and has
-for this purpose to keep them, and to keep them persistently
-and inexhaustibly, under the fixed lens of his
-prodigious vision. He this makes out in them boundless
-treasures of truth—truth even when it happens
-to be, as in the case of Count Guido, but a shining
-wealth of constitutional falsity. Of the extent to
-which he may after this fashion unlimitedly draw upon
-them his exposure of Count Guido, which goes on and
-on, though partly, I admit, by repeating itself, is a
-wondrous example. It is not too much to say of Pompilia—Pompilia
-pierced with twenty wounds, Pompilia
-on her death-bed, Pompilia but seventeen years old
-and but a fortnight a mother—that she <span class='it'>acquires</span> an
-intellectual splendour just by the fact of the vast covering
-charity of imagination with which her recording,
-our commemorated, avenger, never so as in this case
-an avenger of the wronged beautiful things in life,
-hangs over and breathes upon her. We see her come
-out to him, and the extremely remarkable thing is
-that we see it, on the whole, without doubting that it
-might just have been. Nothing could thus be more
-interesting, however it may at moments and in places
-puzzle us, than the impunity, on our poet’s part, of
-most of these overstretchings of proportion, these violations
-of the immediate appearance. Browning is
-deep down below the immediate with the first step
-of his approach; he has vaulted over the gate, is already
-far afield and never, so long as we watch him,
-has occasion to fall back. We wonder, for, after all,
-the real is his quest, the very ideal of the real, the
-real most finely mixed with life, which <span class='it'>is</span> in the last
-analysis the ideal; and we know, with our dimmer
-vision, no such reality as a Franceschini fighting for
-his life, fighting for the vindication of his baseness,
-embodying his squalor, with an audacity of wit, an
-intensity of colour, a variety of speculation and illustration,
-that represent well-nigh the maximum play
-of the human mind. It is in like sort scarce too much
-to say of the exquisite Pompilia that on her part intelligence
-and expression are disengaged to a point at
-which the angels may well begin to envy her; and all
-again without our once wincing so far as our consistently
-liking to see and hear and believe is concerned.
-Caponsacchi regales us, of course, with the rarest fruit
-of a great character, a great culture and a great case;
-but Caponsacchi is acceptedly and naturally, needfully
-and illustratively, splendid. He <span class='it'>is</span> the soul of
-man at its finest—having passed through the smoky
-fires of life and emerging clear and high. Greatest of
-all the spirits exhibited, however, is that of the more
-than octogenarian Pope, at whose brooding, pondering,
-solitary vigil, by the end of a hard grey winter
-day in the great bleak waiting Vatican—“in the plain
-closet where he does such work”—we assist as intimately
-as at every other step of the case, and on
-whose grand meditation we heavily hang. But the
-Pope strikes us at first—though indeed perhaps only
-at first—as too high above the whole connection functionally
-and historically for us to place him within it
-dramatically. Our novel faces provisionally the question
-of dispensing with him, as it dispenses with the
-amazing, bristling, all too indulgently presented Roman
-advocates on either side of the case, who combine to
-put together the most formidable monument we possess
-to Browning’s active curiosity and the liveliest
-proof of his almost unlimited power to give on his
-readers’ nerves without giving on his own.</p>
-
-<p>What remains with us all this time, none the less,
-is the effect of magnification, the exposure of each of
-these figures, in its degree, to that iridescent wash of
-personality, of temper and faculty, that our author
-ladles out to them, as the copious share of each, from
-his own great reservoir of spiritual health, and which
-makes us, as I have noted, seek the reason of a perpetual
-anomaly. Why, bristling so with references to
-<span class='it'>him</span> rather than with references to each other or to
-any accompanying set of circumstances, do they still
-establish more truth and beauty than they sacrifice,
-do they still, according to their chance, help to make
-“The Ring and the Book” a great living thing, a
-great objective mass? I brushed by the answer a moment
-ago, I think, in speaking of the development in
-Pompilia of the resource of expression, which brings
-us round, it seems to me, to the justification of Browning’s
-method. To express his inner self—his outward
-was a different affair!—and to express it utterly, even
-if no matter how, was clearly, for his own measure
-and consciousness of that inner self, to <span class='it'>be</span> poetic; and
-the solution of all the deviations and disparities or,
-speaking critically, monstrosities, in the mingled tissue
-of this work, is the fact that whether or no by such
-convulsions of soul and sense life got delivered for
-him, the garment of life (which for him was poetry
-and poetry alone) got disposed in its due and adequate
-multitudinous folds. We move with him but
-in images and references and vast and far correspondences;
-we eat but of strange compounds and drink but
-of rare distillations; and very soon, after a course of
-this, we feel ourselves, however much or however little
-to our advantage we may on occasion pronounce it,
-in the world of Expression at any cost. That, essentially,
-<span class='it'>is</span> the world of poetry—which in the cases known
-to our experience where it seems to us to differ from
-Browning’s world does so but through this latter’s
-having been, by the vigour and violence, the bold
-familiarity, of his grasp and pull at it, moved several
-degrees nearer us, so to speak, than any other of the
-same general sort with which we are acquainted; so
-that, intellectually, we back away from it a little, back
-down before it, again and again, as we try to get off
-from a picture or a group or a view which is too much
-<span class='it'>upon</span> us and thereby out of focus. Browning is “upon”
-us, straighter upon us always, somehow, than anyone
-else of his race; and we thus recoil, we push our chair
-back, from the table he so tremendously spreads, just
-to see a little better what is on it. This makes a
-relation with him that it is difficult to express; as if
-he came up against us, each time, on the same side
-of the street and not on the other side, across the
-way, where we mostly see the poets elegantly walk,
-and where we greet them without danger of concussion.
-It is on this same side, as I call it, on <span class='it'>our</span> side, on
-the other hand, that I rather see our encounter with
-the novelists taking place; we being, as it were, more
-mixed with them, or they at least, by their desire and
-necessity, more mixed with us, and our brush of them,
-in their minor frenzy, a comparatively muffled encounter.</p>
-
-<p>We have in the whole thing, at any rate, the element
-of action which is at the same time constant picture,
-and the element of picture which is at the same
-time constant action; and with a fusion, as the mass
-moves, that is none the less effective, none the less
-thick and complete, from our not owing it in the
-least to an artful economy. Another force pushes its
-way through the waste and rules the scene, making
-wrong things right and right things a hundred times
-more so—that breath of Browning’s own particular
-matchless Italy which takes us full in the face and
-remains from the first the felt rich coloured air in
-which we live. The quantity of that atmosphere that
-he had to give out is like nothing else in English poetry,
-any more than in English prose, that I recall; and
-since I am taking these liberties with him, let me
-take one too, a little, with the fruit of another genius
-shining at us here in association—with that great
-placed and timed prose fiction which we owe to George
-Eliot and in which <span class='it'>her</span> projection of the stage and
-scenery is so different a matter. Curious enough this
-difference where so many things make for identity—the
-quantity of talent, the quantity of knowledge, the
-high equality (or almost) of culture and curiosity, not
-to say of “spiritual life.” Each writer drags along a
-far-sweeping train, though indeed Browning’s spreads
-so considerably furthest; but his stirs up, to my vision,
-a perfect cloud of gold-dust, while hers, in “Romola,”
-by contrast, leaves the air about as clear, about as
-white, and withal about as cold, as before she had
-benevolently entered it. This straight saturation of
-our author’s, this prime assimilation of the elements for
-which the name of Italy stands, is a single splendid
-case, however; I can think of no second one that is
-not below it—if we take it as supremely expressed in
-those of his lyrics and shorter dramatic monologues
-that it has most helped to inspire. The Rome and
-Tuscany of the early ’fifties had become for him so
-at once a medium, a bath of the senses and perceptions,
-into which he could sink, in which he could
-unlimitedly soak, that wherever he might be touched
-afterwards he gave out some effect of that immersion.
-This places him to my mind quite apart, makes the
-rest of our poetic record of a similar experience comparatively
-pale and abstract. Shelley and Swinburne—to
-name only his compeers—are, I know, a part of
-the record; but the author of “Men and Women,”
-of “Pippa Passes,” of certain of the Dramatic Lyrics
-and other scattered felicities, not only expresses and
-reflects the matter; he fairly, he heatedly, if I may
-use such a term, exudes and perspires it. Shelley, let
-us say in the connection, is a light and Swinburne, let
-us say, a sound; Browning alone of them all is a temperature.
-We feel it, we are in it at a plunge, with
-the very first pages of the thing before us; to which,
-I confess, we surrender with a momentum drawn from
-fifty of their predecessors, pages not less sovereign,
-elsewhere.</p>
-
-<p>The old Florence of the late spring closes round us;
-the hand of Italy is at once, with the recital of the
-old-world litter of Piazza San Lorenzo, with that of
-the great glare and of the great shadow-masses, heavy
-upon us, heavy with that strange weight, that mixed
-pressure, which is somehow, to the imagination, at
-once a caress and a menace. Our poet kicks up on the
-spot and at short notice what I have called his cloud
-of gold-dust. I can but speak for myself at least—something
-that I want to feel both as historic and
-esthetic truth, both as pictorial and moral interest,
-something that will repay my fancy tenfold if I can
-but feel it, hovers before me, and I say to myself that,
-whether or no a great poem is to come off, I will be
-hanged if one of the vividest of all stories and one of
-the sharpest of all impressions doesn’t. I beckon these
-things on, I follow them up, I so desire and need them
-that I of course, by my imaginative collaboration,
-contribute to them—from the moment, that is, of my
-finding myself really in relation to the great points.
-On the other hand, as certainly, it has taken the author
-of the first volume, and of the two admirable
-chapters of the same—since I can’t call them cantos—entitled
-respectively “Half-Rome” and “The Other
-Half-Rome,” to put me in relation; where it is that
-he keeps me more and more, letting the closeness of
-my state, it must be owned, occasionally drop, letting
-the finer call on me even, for bad quarters-of-an-hour,
-considerably languish, but starting up before me again
-in vivid authority if I really presume to droop or
-stray. He takes his wilful way with me, but I make
-it my own, picking over and over as I have said, like
-some lingering talking pedlar’s client, his great unloosed
-pack; and thus it is that by the time I am
-settled with Pompilia at Arezzo I have lived into all
-the conditions. They press upon me close, those wonderful
-dreadful beautiful particulars of the Italy of the
-eve of the eighteenth century—Browning himself moving
-about, darting hither and thither in them, at his
-mighty ease: beautiful, I say, because of the quantity
-of romantic and esthetic tradition from a more
-romantic and esthetic age still visibly, palpably, in
-solution there; and wonderful and dreadful through
-something of a similar tissue of matchless and ruthless
-consistencies and immoralities. I make to my
-hand, as this infatuated reader, <span class='it'>my</span> Italy of the eve
-of the eighteenth century—a vast painted and gilded
-rococo shell roofing over a scenic, an amazingly figured
-and furnished earth, but shutting out almost the
-whole of our own dearly-bought, rudely-recovered spiritual
-sky. You see I have this right, all the while,
-if I recognise my suggested material, which keeps
-coming and coming in the measure of my need, and
-my duty to which <span class='it'>is</span> to recognise it, and as handsomely
-and actively as possible. The great thing is
-that I have such a group of figures moving across so
-constituted a scene—figures so typical, so salient, so
-reeking with the old-world character, so impressed all
-over with its manners and its morals, and so predestined,
-we see, to this particular horrid little drama.
-And let me not be charged with giving it away, the
-idea of the latent prose fiction, by calling it little
-and horrid; let me not—for with my contention I
-can’t possibly afford to—appear to agree with those
-who speak of the Franceschini-Comparini case as a
-mere vulgar criminal anecdote.</p>
-
-<p>It might have been such but for two reasons—counting
-only the principal ones; one of these our
-fact that we see it so, I repeat, in Browning’s inordinately-coloured
-light, and the other—which is indeed
-perhaps but another face of the same—that,
-with whatever limitations, it gives us in the rarest
-manner three characters of the first importance. I
-hold three a great many; I could have done with it
-almost, I think, if there had been but one or two;
-our rich provision shows you at any rate what I mean
-by speaking of our author’s performance as above all
-a preparation for something. Deeply he felt that with
-the three—the three built up at us each with an equal
-genial rage of reiterative touches—there couldn’t eventually
-not be something done (artistically done, I
-mean) if someone would only do it. There they are
-in their old yellow Arezzo, that miniature milder
-Florence, as sleepy to my recollection as a little English
-cathedral city clustered about a Close, but dreaming
-not so peacefully nor so innocently; there is the
-great fretted fabric of the Church on which they are
-all swarming and grovelling, yet after their fashion
-interesting parasites, from the high and dry old Archbishop,
-meanly wise or ignobly edifying, to whom
-Pompilia resorts in her woe and who practically pushes
-her way with a shuffling velvet foot; down through
-the couple of Franceschini cadets, Canon Girolamo
-and Abate Paul, mere minions, fairly in the verminous
-degree, of the overgrown order or too-rank organism;
-down to Count Guido himself and to Canon
-Caponsacchi, who have taken the tonsure at the
-outset of their careers, but none too strictly the vows,
-and who lead their lives under some strangest profanest
-pervertedest clerical category. There have been
-before this the Roman preliminaries, the career of the
-queer Comparini, the adoption, the assumption of the
-parentship, of the ill-starred little girl, with the sordid
-cynicism of her marriage out of hand, conveying
-her presumptive little fortune, her poor handful of
-even less than contingent cash, to hungry middle-aged
-Count Guido’s stale “rank”; the many-toned
-note or turbid harmony of all of which recurs to us
-in the vivid image of the pieties and paganisms of
-San Lorenzo in Lucina, that banal little church in the
-old upper Corso—banal, that is, at the worst, with
-the rare Roman <span class='it'>banalité</span>; bravely banal, or banal
-with style—that we have all passed with a sense of
-its reprieve to our sight-seeing, and where the bleeding
-bodies of the still-breathing Pompilia and her extinct
-companions are laid out on the greasy marble
-of the altar-steps. To glance at these things, however,
-is fairly to be tangled, and at once, in the author’s
-complexity of suggestion, to which our own
-thick-coming fancies respond in no less a measure;
-so that I have already missed my time to so much
-even as name properly the tremendous little chapter
-we should have devoted to the Franceschini interior
-as revealed at last to Comparini eyes; the sinister
-scene or ragged ruin of the Aretine “palace,” where
-pride and penury and, at once, rabid resentment show
-their teeth in the dark and the void, and where Pompilia’s
-inspired little character, clear silver hardened,
-effectually beaten and battered, to steel, begins to
-shine at the blackness with a light that fairly outfaces
-at last the gleam of wolfish fangs—the character that
-draws from Guido, in his, alas, too boundless harangue
-of the fourth volume, some of the sharpest specifications
-into which that extraordinary desert, that indescribable
-waste of intellectual life, as I have hinted
-at its being, from time to time flowers.</p>
-
-<div class='poetry-container' style=''><div class='lgp'> <!-- rend=';' -->
-<p class='line0'>“None of your abnegation of revenge!</p>
-<p class='line0'>Fly at me frank, tug where I tear again!</p>
-<p class='line0'>Away with the empty stare! Be holy still,</p>
-<p class='line0'>And stupid ever! Occupy your patch</p>
-<p class='line0'>Of private snow that’s somewhere in what world</p>
-<p class='line0'>May now be growing icy round your head,</p>
-<p class='line0'>And aguish at your foot-print—freeze not me!”</p>
-</div></div> <!-- end poetry block --><!-- end rend -->
-
-<p>I have spoken of the enveloping consciousness—or
-call it just the struggling, emerging, comparing, at last
-intensely living conscience—of Caponsacchi as the indicated
-centre of our situation or determinant of our
-form, in the matter of the excellent novel; and know
-of course what such an indication lets me in for, responsibly
-speaking, in the way of a rearrangement of
-relations, in the way of liberties taken. To lift our
-subject out of the sphere of anecdote and place it in
-the sphere of drama, liberally considered, to give it
-dignity by extracting its finest importance, causing its
-parts to flower together into some splendid special
-sense, we supply it with a large lucid reflector, which
-we find only, as I have already noted, in that mind
-and soul concerned in the business that have at once
-the highest sensibility and the highest capacity, or
-that are, as we may call it, most admirably agitated.
-There is the awkward fact, the objector may say, that
-by our record the mind and soul in question are not
-concerned till a given hour, when many things have
-already happened and the climax is almost in sight;
-to which we reply, at our ease, that we simply don’t
-suffer that fact to be awkward. From the moment
-I am taking liberties I suffer <span class='it'>no</span> awkwardness; I should
-be very helpless, quite without resource and without
-vision, if I did. I said it to begin with: Browning
-works the whole thing over—the whole thing as originally
-given him—and we work <span class='it'>him</span>; helpfully, artfully,
-boldly, which is our whole blest basis. We
-therefore turn Caponsacchi on earlier, ever so much
-earlier; turn him on, with a brave ingenuity, from
-the very first—that is in Rome if need be; place him
-there in the field, at once recipient and agent, vaguely
-conscious and with splendid brooding apprehension,
-awaiting the adventure of his life, awaiting his call,
-his real call (the others have been such vain shows
-and hollow stopgaps), awaiting, in fine, his terrible
-great fortune. His direct connection with Pompilia
-begins certainly at Arezzo, only after she has been
-some time hideously mismated and has suffered all
-but her direst extremity—that is of the essence; we
-<span class='it'>take</span> it; it’s all right. But his indirect participation
-is another affair, and we get it—at a magnificent stroke—by
-the fact that his view of Franceschini, his fellow-Aretine
-sordidly “on the make,” his measure of undesired,
-indeed of quite execrated contact with him,
-brushed against in the motley hungry Roman traffic,
-where and while that sinister soul snuffs about on the
-very vague or the very foul scent of <span class='it'>his</span> fortune, may
-begin whenever we like. We have only to have it
-begin right, only to make it, on the part of two men,
-a relation of strong irritated perception and restless
-righteous convinced instinct in the one nature and of
-equally instinctive hate and envy, jealousy and latent
-fear, on the other, to see the indirect connection, the
-one with Pompilia, as I say, throw across our page
-as portentous a shadow as we need. Then we get
-Caponsacchi as a recipient up to the brim—as an
-agent, a predestined one, up to the hilt. I can scarce
-begin to tell you what I see him give, as we say, or
-how his sentient and observational life, his fine reactions
-in presence of such a creature as Guido, such
-a social type and image and lurid light, as it were,
-make him comparatively a modern man, breathed
-upon, to that deep and interesting agitation I have
-mentioned, by more forces than he yet reckons or
-knows the names of.</p>
-
-<p>The direct relation—always to Pompilia—is made,
-at Arezzo, as we know, by Franceschini himself; preparing
-his own doom, in the false light of his debased
-wit, by creating an appearance of hidden dealing between
-his wife and the priest which shall, as promptly
-as he likes—if he but work it right—compromise and
-overwhelm them. The particular deepest damnation
-he conceives for his weaker, his weakest victim is that
-she shall take the cleric Caponsacchi for her lover,
-he indubitably willing—to Guido’s apprehension; and
-that her castigation at his hands for this, sufficiently
-proved upon her, shall be the last luxury of his own
-baseness. He forges infernally, though grossly enough,
-an imputed correspondence between them, as series of
-love-letters, scandalous scrawls, of the last erotic intensity;
-which we in the event see solemnly weighed
-by his fatuous judges, all fatuous save the grave old
-Pope, in the scale of Pompilia’s guilt and responsibility.
-It is this atrocity that at the <span class='it'>dénouement</span> damns
-Guido himself most, or well-nigh; but if it fails and
-recoils, as all his calculations do—it is only his rush
-of passion that doesn’t miss—this is by the fact exactly
-that, as we have seen, his wife and her friend
-are, for our perfect persuasion, characters of the deepest
-dye. There, if you please, is the finest side of our
-subject; such sides come up, such sides flare out upon
-us, when we get such characters in such embroilments.
-Admire with me therefore our felicity in this first-class
-value of Browning’s beautiful critical genial vision
-of his Caponsacchi—vision of him as the tried
-and tempered and illuminated <span class='it'>man</span>, a great round
-smooth, though as yet but little worn gold-piece, an
-embossed and figured ducat or sequin of the period,
-placed by the poet in my hand. He gives me that
-value to spend for him, spend on all the strange old
-experience, old sights and sounds and stuffs, of the
-old stored Italy—so we have at least the wit to spend
-it to high advantage; which is just what I mean by
-our taking the liberties we spoke of. I see such bits
-we can get with it; but the difficulty is that I see so
-many more things than I can have even dreamed of
-giving you a hint of. I see the Arezzo life and the
-Arezzo crisis with every “i” dotted and every circumstance
-presented; and when Guido takes his wife,
-as a possible trap for her, to the theatre—the theatre
-of old Arezzo: share with me the tattered vision and
-inhale the musty air!—I am well in range of Pompilia,
-the tragically exquisite, in her box, with her husband
-not there for the hour but posted elsewhere; I look
-at her in fact over Caponsacchi’s shoulder and that
-of his brother-canon Conti, while this light character,
-a vivid recruit to our company, manages to toss into
-her lap, and as coming in guise of overture from his
-smitten friend, “a papertwist of comfits.” There is a
-particular famous occasion at the theatre in a work
-of more or less contemporary fiction—at a petty provincial
-theatre which isn’t even, as you might think,
-the place where Pendennis had his first glimpse of
-Miss Fotheringay. The evening at the Rouen playhouse
-of Flaubert’s “Madame Bovary” has a relief
-not elsewhere equalled—it is the most <span class='it'>done</span> visit to
-the play in all literature—but, though “doing” is now
-so woefully out of favour, my idea would be to give
-it here a precious <span class='it'>pendant</span>; which connection, silly
-Canon Conti, the old fripperies and levities, the whole
-queer picture and show of manners, is handed over to
-us, expressly, as inapt for poetic illustration.</p>
-
-<p>What is equally apt for poetic or for the other, indeed,
-is the thing for which we feel “The Ring and
-the Book” preponderantly done—it is at least what
-comes out clearest, comes out as straightest and strongest
-and finest, from Browning’s genius—the exhibition
-of the great constringent relation between man and
-woman at once at its maximum and as the relation
-most worth while in life for either party; an exhibition
-forming quite the main substance of our author’s
-message. He has dealt, in his immense variety and
-vivacity, with other relations, but on this he has
-thrown his most living weight; it remains the thing
-of which his own rich experience most convincingly
-spoke to him. He has testified to it as charged to
-the brim with the burden of the senses, and has testified
-to it as almost too clarified, too liberated and sublimated,
-for traceable application or fair record; he
-has figured it as never too much either of the flesh or
-of the spirit for him, so long as the possibility of both
-of these is in each, but always and ever as the thing
-absolutely most worth while. It is in the highest and
-rarest degree clarified and disengaged for Caponsacchi
-and Pompilia; but what their history most concludes
-to is how ineffably it was, whatever happened,
-worth while. Worth while most then for them or for
-us is the question? Well, let us say worth while assuredly
-for us, in this noble exercise of our imagination.
-Which accordingly shows us what we, for all
-our prose basis, would have found, to repeat my term
-once more, prepared for us. There isn’t a detail of
-their panting flight to Rome over the autumn Apennines—the
-long hours when they melt together only
-<span class='it'>not</span> to meet—that doesn’t positively plead for our perfect
-prose transcript. And if it be said that the mere
-massacre at the final end is a lapse to passivity from
-the high plane, for our pair of protagonists, of constructive,
-of heroic vision, this is not a blur from the
-time everything that happens happens most effectively
-to Caponsacchi’s life. Pompilia’s is taken, but she is
-none the less given; and it is in his consciousness and
-experience that she most intensely flowers—with all
-her jubilation for doing so. So that <span class='it'>he</span> contains the
-whole—unless indeed after all the Pope does, the
-Pope whom I was leaving out as too transcendent for
-<span class='it'>our</span> version. Unless, unless, further and further, I see
-what I have at this late moment no right to; see, as
-the very end and splendid climax of all, Caponsacchi
-sent for to the Vatican and admitted alone to the
-Papal presence. <span class='it'>There</span> is a scene if we will; and in
-the mere mutual confrontation, brief, silent, searching,
-recognising, consecrating, almost as august on the one
-part as on the other. It rounds us off; but you will
-think I stray too far. I have wanted, alas, to say
-such still other fond fine things—it being of our poet’s
-great nature to prompt them at every step—that I
-almost feel I have missed half my points; which will
-doubtless therefore show you these remarks in their
-nakedness. Take them and my particular contention
-as a pretext and a minor affair if you will only feel
-them at the same time as at the worst a restless refinement
-of homage. It has been easy in many another
-case to run to earth the stray prime fancy, the
-original anecdote or artless tale, from which a great
-imaginative work, starting off after meeting it, has
-sprung and rebounded again and soared; and perhaps
-it is right and happy and final that one should
-have faltered in attempting by a converse curiosity
-to clip off or tie back the wings that once have spread.
-You will agree with me none the less, I feel, that
-Browning’s great generous wings are over us still and
-even now, more than ever now; and also that they
-shake down on us his blessing.</p>
-
-<hr class='footnotemark'/>
-
-<table style='margin:0 4em 0 0;' summary='footnote_8'>
-<colgroup>
-<col span='1' style='width: 3em;'/>
-<col span='1'/>
-</colgroup>
-<tr><td style='vertical-align:top;'>
-<div id='f8'><a href='#r8'>[8]</a></div>
-</td><td>
-
-<p>Address delivered before the Academic Committee of the Royal Society
-of Literature in Commemoration of the Centenary of Robert Browning,
-May 7, 1912.</p>
-
-</td></tr>
-</table>
-
-<div><span class='pagenum'><a name='Page_412' id='Page_412'>412</a></span><h1 id='t14148'>AN AMERICAN ART-SCHOLAR: CHARLES ELIOT NORTON<br/>1908</h1></div>
-
-<p>I gladly embrace the occasion to devote a few words
-to the honoured memory of my distinguished friend
-the late Charles Eliot Norton, who, dying at Cambridge,
-Massachusetts, on the 21st of October last,
-after having reached his eightieth year, had long occupied—and
-with an originality of spirit and a beneficence
-of effect all his own—the chair of the History
-of the Fine Arts at Harvard University, as well as, in
-the view of the American world surrounding that seat
-of influence, the position of one of the most accomplished
-of scholars and most efficient of citizens. This
-commemorative page may not disclaim the personal
-tone, for I can speak of Charles Norton but in the
-light of an affection which began long years ago, even
-though my part in our relation had to be, for some
-time, markedly that of a junior; of which tie I was
-to remain ever after, despite long stretches of material
-separation, a conscious and grateful beneficiary. I
-can speak of him therefore as I happened myself to
-see and know him—with interest and sympathy acting,
-for considerable periods together, across distances and
-superficial differences, yet with the sense of his extremely
-individual character and career suffering no
-abatement, and indeed with my impression of the fine
-consistency and exemplary value of these things clear
-as never before.</p>
-
-<p>I find this impression go back for its origin very
-far—to one autumn day when, an extremely immature
-aspirant to the rare laurel of the critic, I went
-out from Boston to Cambridge to offer him a contribution
-to the old, if I should not rather say the then
-middle-aged, “North American Review,” of which he
-had recently undertaken the editorship. I already
-knew him a little, enough to have met casual kindness
-at his hands; but my vision of his active presence
-and function, in the community that had happily produced
-and that was long to enjoy him, found itself, I
-think, completely constituted at that hour, with scarce
-an essential touch to be afterwards added. He largely
-developed and expanded as time went on; certain
-more or less local reserves and conservatisms fell away
-from him; but his temper and attitude, all his own
-from the first, were to give a singular unity to his
-life. This intensity of perception on his young visitor’s
-part may perhaps have sprung a little from the
-fact that he accepted on the spot, as the visitor still
-romantically remembers, a certain very first awkward
-essay in criticism, and was to publish it in his forthcoming
-number; but I little doubt whether even had
-he refused it the grace of the whole occasion would
-have lost anything to my excited view, and feel sure
-that the interest in particular would have gained had
-he charmingly put before me (as he would have been
-sure to do) the ground of his discrimination. For his
-eminent character as a “representative of culture”
-announced itself exactly in proportion as one’s general
-sense of the medium in which it was to be exerted
-was strong; and I seem verily to recall that
-even in the comparative tenderness of that season I
-had grasped the idea of the precious, the quite far-reaching
-part such an exemplar might play. Charles
-Norton’s distinction and value—this was still some
-years before his professorate had taken form—showed
-early and above all the note and the advantage that
-they were to be virtues of American application, and
-were to draw their life from the signal American opportunity;
-to that degree that the detailed record
-of his influence would be really one of the most interesting
-of American social documents, and that his
-good work is best lighted by a due acquaintance with
-the conditions of the life about him, indispensable for
-a founded recognition of it. It is not too much to
-say that the representative of culture—always in the
-high and special sense in which he practised that faith—had
-before him in the United States of those days
-a great and arduous mission, requiring plentiful courage
-as well as plentiful knowledge, endless good humour
-as well as assured taste.</p>
-
-<p>What comes back to me then from the early day I
-have glanced at is exactly that prompt sense of the
-clustered evidence of my friend’s perfect adaptation
-to the civilising mission, and not least to the needfully
-dauntless and unperturbed side of it. His so
-pleasant old hereditary home, with its ample acres and
-numerous spoils—at a time when acres merely marginal
-and, so to speak, atmospheric, as well as spoils
-at all felicitously gathered, were rare in the United
-States—seemed to minister to the general assurance,
-constituting as they did such a picture of life as one
-vaguely supposed recognisable, right and left, in an
-old society, or, otherwise expressed, in that “Europe”
-which was always, roundabout one, the fond alternative
-of the cultivated imagination, but of which the
-possible American copy ever seemed far to seek. To
-put it in a nutshell, the pilgrimage to the Shady Hill
-of those years had, among the “spoils,” among pictures
-and books, drawings and medals, memories and
-relics and anecdotes, things of a remote but charming
-reference, very much the effect of a sudden rise
-into a finer and clearer air and of a stopgap against
-one’s own coveted renewal of the more direct experience.
-If I allude to a particular, to a personal yearning
-appreciation of those matters, it is with the justified
-conviction—this justification having been all along
-abundantly perceptible—that appreciation of the general
-sort only waited to be called for, though to be
-called for with due authority. It was the sign of our
-host, on the attaching spot, and almost the principal
-one, that he spoke, all round and with the highest
-emphasis, as under the warrant of authority, and that
-at a time when, as to the main matter of his claim and
-his discourse, scarce anyone pretended to it, he carried
-himself valiantly under that banner. The main
-matter of his discourse offered itself just simply as
-the matter of <span class='it'>civilisation</span>—the particular civilisation
-that a young roaring and money-getting democracy,
-inevitably but almost exclusively occupied with “business
-success,” most needed to have brought home to
-it. The New England air in especial was no natural
-conductor of any appeal to an esthetic aim, but the
-interest of Professor Norton’s general work, to say
-nothing of the interest of his character for a closer
-view, is exactly that the whole fruitful enterprise was
-to prove intimately a New England adventure; illustrating
-thus at the same time and once more the innate
-capacity of New England for leavening the great
-American mass on the finer issues.</p>
-
-<p>To have grown up as the accomplished man at large
-was in itself at that time to have felt, and even in some
-degree to have suffered, this hand of differentiation;
-the only accomplished men of the exhibited New England
-Society had been the ministers, the heads of the
-congregations—whom, however, one docks of little of
-their credit in saying that their accomplishments and
-their earnestness had been almost wholly in the moral
-order. The advantage of that connection was indeed
-what Norton was fundamentally to have enjoyed in
-his descent, both on his father’s and his mother’s side
-(pre-eminently on the latter, the historic stock of the
-Eliots) from a long line of those stalwart pastoral
-worthies who had notably formed the aristocracy of
-Massachusetts. It was largely, no doubt, to this heritage
-of character and conscience that he owed the
-strong and special strain of confidence with which he
-addressed himself to the business of perfect candour
-toward his fellow-citizens—his pupils in particular;
-they, to whom this candour was to become in the long
-run the rarest and raciest and most endearing of
-“treats,” being but his fellow-citizens in the making.
-This view of an urgent duty would have been a comparatively
-slight thing, moreover, without the special
-preoccupations, without the love of the high humanities
-and curiosities and urbanities in themselves,
-without the conception of science and the ingrained
-studious cast of mind, which had been also an affair
-of heredity with him and had opened his eyes betimes
-to educative values and standards other than most of
-those he saw flourish near at hand. He would defer
-to dilettantism as little as to vulgarity, and if he ultimately
-embraced the fine ideal of taking up the
-work that lay close to him at home, and of irrigating
-the immediate arid tracts and desert spaces, it was
-not from ignorance of the temptation to wander and
-linger where the streams already flowed and the soil
-had already borne an abiding fruit.</p>
-
-<p>He had come to Italy and to England early in life;
-he had repeated his visits to these countries with infinite
-relish and as often as possible—though never, as
-a good New Englander, without certain firm and,
-where they had to be, invidious discriminations; he
-was attached to them by a hundred intellectual and
-social ties; but he had been from the first incapable
-of doubting that the best activity and the liveliest
-interest lay where it always, given certain conditions,
-lies in America—in a measure of response to intellectual
-and esthethic “missionary” labour more traceable
-and appreciable, more distinguishably attested
-and registered, more directly and artlessly grateful, in
-a word, than in the thicker elemental mixture of Europe.
-On the whole side of taste and association his
-choice was thus betimes for conscious exile and for a
-considerably, though doubtless not altogether irremediably,
-deprived state; but it was at the same time
-for a freedom of exhortation and a play of ironic comment
-less restricted, after all, in the clear American
-air, than on ground more pretentiously enclosed—less
-restricted, that is, from the moment personal conviction
-might be absolute and indifference to every form
-of provincial bewilderment equally patient and complete.
-The incontestable <span class='it'>crânerie</span> of his attitude—a
-thing that one felt to be a high form of sincerity—always
-at last won success; the respect and affection
-that more and more surrounded him and that finally
-made his situation sole of its kind and pre-eminently
-happy, attest together the interesting truth that unqualified
-confidence in one’s errand, the serenest acceptance
-of a responsibility and the exercise of a critical
-authority never too apt to return critically upon
-itself, only require for beneficent action that they be
-attended at once with a fund of illustration and a
-fund of good humour.</p>
-
-<p>Professor Norton’s pre-eminent work in the interpretation
-of Dante—by which I mean his translation,
-text and notes, of the “Divine Comedy” and the
-“New Life,” an achievement of infinite piety, patience
-and resource; his admirable volume on Church-Building
-in the Middle Ages (to say nothing of his charming
-earlier one, “Study and Travel in Italy,” largely
-devoted to the cathedral of Orvieto); his long and intimate
-friendship with Ruskin, commemorated by his
-publication, as joint-executor to Ruskin’s will, of the
-best fruits of the latter’s sustained correspondence
-with him; his numerous English friendships, in especial—to
-say nothing of his native—all with persons
-of a highly representative character: these things give
-in part the measure of his finest curiosities and of his
-appetite, in all directions, for the best sources and examples
-and the best company. But it is probable
-that if his Harvard lectures are in form for publication,
-and if his general correspondence, and above all
-his own easily handsomest show in it, comes to be
-published, as most emphatically it should be, they
-will testify not in the least to any unredeemed contraction
-of life, but to the largest and happiest and
-most rewarded energy. An exhilarated invocation of
-close responsibility, an absolute ease of mind about
-one’s point of view, a thorough and never-failing intellectual
-wholeness, are so far from weakening the
-appeal to young allegiances that, once they succeed
-at all, they succeed the better for going all their length.
-So it was that, with admirable urbanity of form and
-uncompromising straightness of attack, the Professor
-of the History of the Fine Arts at Harvard for a quarter
-of a century let himself go; thinking no trouble
-wasted and no flutter and no scandal other than auspicious
-if only he might, to the receptive and aspiring
-undergraduate mind, brand the ugly and the vulgar
-and the inferior wherever he found them, tracking
-them through plausible disguises and into trumpery
-strongholds; if only he might convert young products
-of the unmitigated American order into material for
-men of the world in the finer sense of that term; if
-only in short he might render more supple their view,
-liable to obfuscation from sights and sounds about
-them, of the true meaning of a liberal education and
-of the civilised character and spirit in the civilised
-State.</p>
-
-<p>What it came to thus was that he availed himself
-to the utmost of his free hand for sowing and planting
-ideals—ideals that, though they might after all be
-vague and general things, lacking sometimes a little
-the clearer connections with practice, were yet a new
-and inspiring note to most of his hearers, who could
-be trusted, just so far as they were intelligent and
-loyal, not to be heavily embarrassed by them, not to
-want for fields of application. It was given him,
-quite unprecedentedly, to be popular, to be altogether
-loved and cherished, even while “rubbing it
-into” whomever it might concern that such unfortunates
-were mainly given over to mediocrity and vulgarity,
-and that half the crude and ugly objects and
-aspects, half the low standards and loose ends surrounding
-them and which they might take for granted
-with a facility and a complacency alike deplorable,
-represented a platitude of imagination that dishonoured
-the citizen on whom a University worthy of
-the name should have left its stamp. Happy, it would
-thus in fact seem, beyond any other occasion for educative
-influence, the immense and delightful opportunity
-he enjoyed, the clear field and long reach attached
-to preaching an esthetic crusade, to pleading
-for the higher amenities in general, in a new and
-superficially tutored, yet also but superficially prejudiced,
-country, where a consequently felt and noted
-rise of the tide of manners may be held to have come
-home to him, or certainly to have visited his dreams.
-His effect on the community at large, with allowances
-of time, was ever indubitable—even though such
-workers have everywhere to take much on trust and
-to remember that bushels of doctrine, and even tons
-of example, make at the most ounces and grains of
-responsive life. It can only be the very general and
-hopeful view that sustains and rewards—with here
-and there, at wide intervals, the prized individual instance
-of the sown seed actively emerging and flowering.</p>
-
-<p>If not all ingenious disciples could give independent
-proof, however, all could rally and feel the spirit; all
-could crowd to a course of instruction which, largely
-elective and optional, yet united more listeners than
-many others put together, and in which the subject
-itself, the illustration of European artistic endeavour
-at large, or in other words the record of man’s most
-comprehensive sacrifice to organised beauty, tended so
-to take up on familiar ground the question of manners,
-character, conscience, tone, to bristle with questions
-addressed to the actual and possible American
-scene. That, I hasten to add, was of course but one
-side of the matter; there were wells of special science
-for those who chose to draw from them, and an inner
-circle of pupils whose whole fruitful relation to their
-philosopher and friend—the happy and easy privilege
-of Shady Hill in general, where other charming personal
-influences helped, not counting as least in this—can
-scarce have failed to prepare much practical
-evidence for observation still to come. The ivory
-tower of study would ever, by his natural bent, I
-think, have most solicited Charles Norton; but he
-liked, as I say, he accepted without a reserve, the
-function of presiding over young destinies; he believed
-in the personal and the social communication of light,
-and had a gift for the generous and personal relation
-that perhaps found its best issue, as I have already
-hinted, in his admirable letters. These were not of
-this hustled and hustling age, but of a cooler and
-steadier sphere and rhythm, and of a charming mannerly
-substantial type to which he will have been, I
-think, among correspondents truly animated by the
-social spirit and a due cosmopolite ideal, one of the
-last systematically to sacrifice. With the lapse of
-years I ceased to be, I admit, a near spectator of his
-situation; but my sense of his activity—with more
-intimate renewals, besides, occasionally taking place—was
-to be, all along, so constantly fed by echo and
-anecdote and all manner of indirect glimpses, that I
-find myself speak quite with the confidence and with
-all the attachment of a continuous “assistant.”</p>
-
-<p>With which, if I reflect on this, I see how interesting
-a <span class='it'>case</span> above all my distinguished friend was ever
-to remain to me—a case, I mean, of such a mixture
-of the elements as would have seemed in advance,
-critically speaking, quite anomalous or at least highly
-incalculable. His interest was predominantly in Art,
-as the most beneficial of human products; his ostensible
-plea was for the esthetic law, under the wide
-wing of which we really move, it may seem to many of
-us, in an air of strange and treacherous appearances,
-of much bewilderment and not a little mystification;
-of terribly fine and complicated issues in short, such
-as call for the highest interpretative wisdom. But if
-nothing was of a more delightful example than Professor
-Norton’s large and nourished serenity in all
-these connections, a serenity seasoned and tempered,
-as it were, by infinite interest in his “subject,” by a
-steadying faith in exact and extensive knowledge, so
-to a fond and incorrigible student of character the
-case, as I have called it, and the long and genial career,
-may seem to shine in the light of quite other
-importances, quite other references, than the presumed
-and the nominal. Nothing in fact <span class='it'>can</span> be more interesting
-to a haunter of other intellectual climes and a
-worshipper at the esthetic shrine <span class='it'>quand même</span> than to
-note once more how race and implanted quality and
-association always in the end come by their own; how
-for example a son of the Puritans the most intellectually
-transmuted, the most liberally emancipated and
-initiated possible, could still plead most for substance
-when proposing to plead for style, could still try to
-lose himself in the labyrinth of delight while keeping
-tight hold of the clue of duty, tangled even a little in
-his feet; could still address himself all consistently to
-the moral conscience while speaking as by his office
-for our imagination and our free curiosity. All of
-which vision of him, however, is far from pointing to
-a wasted effort. The great thing, whatever turn we
-take, is to find before us perspectives and to have a
-weight to throw; in accordance with which wisdom
-the world he lived in received for long no firmer nor
-more gallant and generous impress than that of Charles
-Eliot Norton.</p>
-
-<div><span class='pagenum'><a name='Page_424' id='Page_424'>424</a></span><h1 id='t14533'>LONDON NOTES<br/><span class='it'>January</span> 1897</h1></div>
-
-<p>I am afraid the interest of the world of native letters
-is not at this moment so great as to make us despise
-mere translation as an aid to curiosity. There is indeed
-no reason why we should forbear to say in advance
-what we are certain, every time, to say after
-(after the heat has cooled I mean:) namely, that
-nothing is easier to concede than that Ibsen—contentious
-name!—would be much less remarked if he were
-one of a dozen. It is impossible, in London at least,
-to shut one’s eyes to the fact that if to so many ingenious
-minds he is a kind of pictorial monster, a
-grotesque on the sign of a side-show, this is at least
-partly because his form has a monstrous rarity. It
-is one of the odd things of our actual esthetics that
-the more theatres multiply the less any one reads a
-play—the less any one cares, in a word, for the text
-of the adventure. That no one ever <span class='it'>does</span> read a play
-has long been a commonplace of the wisdom of booksellers.
-Ibsen, however, is a text, and Ibsen is read,
-and Ibsen contradicts the custom and confounds the
-prejudice; with the effect thereby, in an odd way, of
-being doubly an exotic. His violent substance imposes,
-as it were, his insidious form; it is not (as
-would have seemed more likely) the form that imposes
-the substance. Mr. William Archer has just published
-his version of “John Gabriel Borkman,” of which,
-moreover, French and German versions reach us at the
-same moment. There are therefore all the elements
-of a fresh breeze in the wind—one has already a sense
-as of a cracking of whips and a girding of loins. You
-may by this time be terribly tired of it all in America;
-but, as I mentioned a fortnight ago, we have had
-very recent evidence that languor here, in this connection,
-is by no means as yet the dominant note.
-It is not the dispute itself, however, that most interests
-me: let me pay it, for what it has been and what
-it still may be, the mere superficial tribute of saying
-that it constitutes one of the very few cases of contagious
-discussion of a matter not political, a question
-not of mere practice, of which I remember to have felt,
-in a heavy air, the engaging titillation. In London
-generally, I think, the wandering breath of criticism
-is the stray guest at the big party—the shy young
-man whom nobody knows. In this remarkable instance
-the shy young man has ventured to pause and
-hover, has lighted on a topic, introduced himself and,
-after a gasp of consternation in the company, seen a
-little circle gather round him. I can only speak as
-one of the little circle, testifying to my individual
-glee.</p>
-
-<p>The author who at the age of seventy, a provincial
-of provincials, turns out “John Gabriel” is frankly
-for me so much one of the peculiar pleasures of the
-day, one of the current strong sensations, that, erect
-as he seems still to stand, I deplore his extreme maturity
-and, thinking of what shall happen, look round
-in vain for any other possible source of the same kind
-of emotion. For Ibsen strikes me as an extraordinary
-curiosity, and every time he sounds his note the miracle
-to my perception is renewed. I call it a miracle
-because it is a result of so dry a view of life, so indifferent
-a vision of the comedy of things. His idea of
-the thing represented is never the comic idea, though
-this is evidently what it often only can be for many
-of his English readers and spectators. Comedy moreover
-is a product mainly of observation, and I scarcely
-know what to say of his figures except that they
-haven’t the <span class='it'>signs</span>. The answer to that is doubtless
-partly that they haven’t the English, but have the
-Norwegian. In such a case one of the Norwegian
-must be in truth this very lack of signs.</p>
-
-<p>They have no tone but their moral tone. They are
-highly animated abstractions, with the extraordinary,
-the brilliant property of becoming when represented at
-once more abstract and more living. If the spirit is
-a lamp within us, glowing through what the world
-and the flesh make of us as through a ground-glass
-shade, then such pictures as Little Eyolf and John
-Gabriel are each a <span class='it'>chassez-croisez</span> of lamps burning, as
-in tasteless parlours, with the flame practically exposed.
-There are no shades in the house, or the Norwegian
-ground-glass is singularly clear. There is a
-positive odour of spiritual paraffin. The author nevertheless
-arrives at the dramatist’s great goal—he arrives
-for all his meagreness at intensity. The meagreness,
-which is after all but an unconscious, an admirable
-economy, never interferes with that: it plays straight
-into the hands of his rare mastery of form. The
-contrast between this form—so difficult to have reached,
-so “evolved,” so civilised—and the bareness and
-bleakness of his little northern democracy is the
-source of half the hard frugal charm that he puts
-forth. In the cold fixed light of it the notes we speak
-of as deficiencies take a sharp value in the picture.
-There is no small-talk, there are scarcely any manners.
-On the other hand there is so little vulgarity
-that this of itself has almost the effect of a deeper, a
-more lonely provincialism. The background at any
-rate is the sunset over the ice. Well in the very front
-of the scene lunges with extraordinary length of arm
-the Ego against the Ego, and rocks in a rigour of passion
-the soul against the soul—a spectacle, a movement,
-as definite as the relief of silhouettes in black
-paper or of a train of Eskimo dogs on the snow. Down
-from that desolation the sturdy old symbolist comes
-this time with a supreme example of his method. It
-is a high wonder and pleasure to welcome such splendid
-fruit from sap that might by now have shown
-something of the chill of age. Never has he juggled
-more gallantly with difficulty and danger than in this
-really prodigious “John Gabriel,” in which a great
-span of tragedy is taken between three or four persons—a
-trio of the grim and grizzled—in the two or
-three hours of a winter’s evening; in which the whole
-thing throbs with an actability that fairly shakes us
-as we read; and in which, as the very flower of his
-artistic triumph, he has given us for the most beautiful
-and touching of his heroines a sad old maid of
-sixty. Such “parts,” even from the vulgarest point
-of view, are Borkman and Ella Rentheim.</p>
-
-<div><span class='pagenum'><a name='Page_428' id='Page_428'>428</a></span><h1 id='t14663'>LONDON NOTES<br/><span class='it'>June</span> 1897</h1></div>
-
-<p>I am afraid there are at this moment only two notes
-for a communication from London to strike. One is
-that of the plunge into the deep and turbid waters of
-the Jubilee; the other is that of the inevitable retreat
-from them—the backward scramble up the bank and
-scurry over its crest and out of sight. London is in a
-sorry state; nevertheless I judge that the number of
-persons about to arrive undaunted will not fall substantially
-short of the number of horror-stricken fugitives.
-Not to depart is practically to arrive; for there
-is little difference in the two kinds of violence, the
-shock you await or the shock that awaits you. Let
-me hasten, however, to declare that—to speak for the
-present only of the former of these—the prospect is
-full of suggestion, the affair promises a rare sort of
-interest. It began a fortnight since to be clear—and
-the certitude grows each day—that we are to be
-treated to a revelation really precious, the domestic
-or familiar vision, as it were, the back-stairs or underside
-view, of a situation that will rank as celebrated.
-Balzac’s image of <span class='it'>l’envers de l’histoire contemporaine</span>
-is in fact already under our nose, already offered us
-in a big bouncing unmistakable case. We brush with
-an irreverent hand the back of the tapestry—we crawl
-on unabashed knees under the tent of the circus. The
-commemoration of the completed sixtieth year of her
-Majesty’s reign will figure to the end of time in the
-roll of English wonders and can scarcely fail to hold
-its own as an occasion unparalleled. And yet we
-touch it as we come and go—we feel it mainly as a
-great incommodity. It has already so intimate, so
-ugly, so measurable a side that these impressions begin
-to fall into their place with a kind of representative
-force, to figure as a symbol of the general truth that
-the principal pomps and circumstances of the historic
-page have had their most intense existence as material
-and social arrangements, disagreeable or amusing accidents,
-affecting the few momentary mortals at that
-time in the neighbourhood. The gross defacement of
-London, the uproarious traffic in seats, the miles of
-unsightly scaffolding between the West End and the
-City, the screaming advertisements, the sordid struggle,
-the individual questions—“Haven’t we been
-cheated by the plausible wretch?” or “How the devil
-shall we get <span class='it'>to</span> our seats after paying such a lot, hey?”—these
-things are actually the historic page. If we
-are writing that page every hour let us at any rate
-commend ourselves for having begun betimes, even
-though this early diligence be attended with extraordinary
-effects. The great day was a week ago still a
-month off, but what we even then had full in view,
-was, for the coming stretch of time, a London reduced
-to such disfigurement as might much better seem to
-consort with some great national penance or mourning.
-The show, when the show comes off, is to last
-but a couple of hours; and nothing so odd surely ever
-occurred in such a connection as so huge a disproportion
-between the discipline and the joy. If this be
-honour, the simple may well say, give us, merciful
-powers, the rigour of indifference! From Hyde Park
-Corner to the heart of the City and over the water
-to the solid south the long line of thoroughfares is
-masked by a forest of timber and smothered in swaggering
-posters and catchpenny bids, with all of which
-and with the vociferous air that enfolds them we are
-to spend these next weeks in such comfort as we may.
-The splendour will have of course to be great to wash
-down the vulgarity—and infinitely dazzling no doubt
-it will be; yet even if it falls short I shall still feel
-that, let the quantity of shock, as I have ventured to
-call it, be what it must, it will on the whole be exceeded
-by what I have ventured to call the quantity of suggestion.
-This, to be frank, has even now rolled up at
-such a rate that to deal with it I should scarce know
-where to take it first. Let me not therefore pretend
-to deal, but only glance and pass.</p>
-
-<p>The foremost, the immense impression is of course
-the constant, the permanent, the ever-supreme—the
-impression of that greatest glory of our race, its passionate
-feeling for trade. I doubt if the commercial
-instinct be not, as London now feels it throb and
-glow, quite as striking as any conceivable projection of
-it that even our American pressure of the pump might,
-at the highest, produce. That is the real tent of the
-circus—that is the real back of the tapestry. There
-have long, I know, been persons ready to prove by
-book that the explanation of the “historical event”
-has always been somebody’s desire to make money;
-never, at all events, from the near view, will that explanation
-have covered so much of the ground. No
-result of the fact that the Queen has reigned sixty
-years—no sort of sentimental or other association with
-it—begins to have the air of coming home to the
-London conscience like this happy consequence of the
-chance in it to sell something dear. As yet that chance
-is the one sound that fills the air, and will probably
-be the only note audibly struck till the plaudits of the
-day itself begin to substitute, none too soon, a more
-mellifluous one. When the people are all at the windows
-and in the trees and on the water-spouts, house-tops,
-scaffolds and other ledges and coigns of vantage
-set as traps for them by the motive power, <span class='it'>then</span> doubtless
-there will be another aspect to reckon with—then
-we shall see, of the grand occasion, nothing but what
-is decently and presentably historic. All I mean is
-that, pending the apotheosis, London has found in
-this particular chapter of the career of its aged sovereign
-only an enormous selfish advertisement. It
-came to me the other day in a quoted epigram that
-the advertisement shows as far off as across the Channel
-and all the way to Paris, where one of the reflections
-it has suggested—as it must inevitably suggest
-many—appears to be that, in contrast, when, a year
-ago, the Russian sovereigns were about to arrive no
-good Parisian thought for a moment of anything but
-how he could most work for the adornment of his
-town. I dare say that in fact from a good Parisian
-or two a window or a tree was to be hired; but the
-echo is at least interesting <span class='it'>as</span> an echo, not less than
-as a reminder of how we still wait here for the outbreak
-of the kind of enthusiasm that shall take the
-decorative form. The graceful tip of its nose has, it
-must be admitted, yet to show. But there are other
-sides still, and one of them immense—the light we
-may take as flooding, I mean, the whole question of
-the solidity of the throne. It is impossible to live
-long in England without feeling that the monarchy
-is—below-ground, so to speak, in particular—a rock;
-but it was reserved for these days to accentuate the
-immobility of even that portion of the rock which
-protrudes above the surface. It is being tested in a
-manner by fire, and it resists with a vitality nothing
-short of prophetic. The commercial instinct, as I say,
-perches upon it with a security and a success that
-banish a rival from the field. It is the biggest of all
-draws for the biggest of all circuses; it will bring more
-money to more doors than anything that can be imagined
-in its place. It will march through the ages
-unshaken. The coronation of a new sovereign is an
-event, at the worst, well within the compass of the
-mind, and what will that bring with it so much as a
-fresh lively market and miles of new posters and new
-carpentry? Then, who knows?—coronations will, for
-a stretch and a change perhaps, be more frequent than
-anniversaries; and the bargains struck over the last
-will, again at the worst, carry an hilarious country
-well on to the next. Has not the monarchy moreover—besides
-thus periodically making trade roar—the
-lively merit, for such an observer as I fancy considering
-these things, of helping more than anything else the
-answers to the questions into which our actual curiosity
-most overflows; the question for instance of whether
-in the case before us the triumph of vulgarity be not
-precisely the flushed but muscular triumph of the inevitable?
-If vulgarity thrones now on the house-tops,
-“blown” and red in the face, is it not because it has
-been pushed aloft by deep forces and is really after
-all itself the show? The picturesque at any rate has
-to meet the conditions. We miss, we regret the old
-“style” of history; but the style would, I think, be
-there if we let it: the age has a manner of its own that
-disconcerts, that swamps it. The age is the loudest
-thing of all. What has altered is simply the conditions.
-Poor history has to meet them, these conditions;
-she must accommodate herself. She must accept
-vulgarity or perish. Some day doubtless she <span class='it'>will</span>
-perish, but for a little while longer she remembers and
-struggles. She becomes indeed, as we look up Piccadilly
-in the light of this image, perhaps rather more
-dramatic than ever—at any rate more pathetic, more
-noble in her choked humiliation. Then even as we
-pity her we try perhaps to bring her round, to make
-her understand a little better. We try to explain that
-if we are dreadful to deal with it is only, really, a good
-deal because we so detestably grow and grow. There
-is so horribly much of us—that’s where <span class='it'>our</span> style breaks
-down. Small crowds and paltry bargains didn’t matter,
-and a little vulgarity—just a very little—could in
-other times manage to pass. Our shame, alas, is our
-quantity.</p>
-
-<p>I have no sooner, none the less, qualified it so ungraciously
-than I ask myself what after all we should
-do without it. If we have opened the floodgates we
-have at least opened them wide, and it is our very
-quantity that perhaps in the last resort will save us.
-It cuts both ways, as the phrase is—it covers all the
-ground; it helps the escape as well as produces the
-assault. If retreat for instance at the present juncture
-is, as I began by hinting, urgently imposed, it
-is thanks to our having so much of everything that
-we find a bridge for our feet. We hope to get off in
-time, but meanwhile even on the spot there are blessed
-alternatives and reliefs. I have been trying a number
-very hard, but I have expatiated so on the complaint
-that I have left little room for the remedy.
-London reminds one of nothing so often as of the help
-she gives one to forget her. One of the forms actually
-taken by this happy habit is the ingenious little
-exhibition, at the Grafton Galleries, of so-called Dramatic
-and Musical Art. The name is rather a grand
-one and the show has many gaps; but it profits, as
-such places in London so often profit, by the law that
-makes you mostly care less what you get into than
-what you get out of. With its Hogarths and Zoffanys—none
-too many, I admit—its other last-century portraits
-and relics, its numerous ghosts of Garrick, its
-old play-bills and prints, its echoes of dead plaudits
-and its very thin attendance, it happens to be for the
-moment a quiet bower in the bear-garden. It is a
-“scratch” company, but only—and I can scarce say
-why—in the portion in which the portraits of the day
-prevail is the impression vulgar. Even there indeed
-this suspicion receives a grand lift from Mr. Whistler’s
-exquisite image of Henry Irving as the Philip of Tennyson’s
-“Queen Mary.” To pause before such a work
-is in fact to be held to the spot by just the highest
-operation of the charm one has sought there—the
-charm of a certain degree of melancholy meditation.
-Meditation indeed forgets Garrick and Hogarth and
-all the handsome heads of the Kembles in wonder reintensified
-at the attitude of a stupid generation toward
-an art and a taste so rare. Wonder is perhaps after
-all not the word to use, for how <span class='it'>should</span> a stupid generation,
-liking so much that it does like and with a
-faculty trained to coarser motions, recognise in Mr.
-Whistler’s work one of the finest of all distillations of
-the artistic intelligence? To turn from his picture to
-the rest of the show—which, of course, I admit, is not
-a collection of masterpieces—is to drop from the world
-of distinction, of perception, of beauty and mystery
-and perpetuity, into—well, a very ordinary place.
-And yet the effect of Whistler at his best is exactly to
-give to the place he hangs in—or perhaps I should
-say to the person he hangs for—something of the
-sense, of the illusion, of a great museum. He isolates
-himself in a manner all his own; his presence is in itself
-a sort of implication of a choice corner. Have we
-in this a faint foresight of the eventual turn of the
-wheel—of one of the nooks of honour, those innermost
-rooms of great collections, in which our posterity
-shall find him? Look at him at any rate on any
-occasion, but above all at his best, only long enough,
-and hallucination sets in. We are in the presence of
-one of the prizes marked with two stars in the guidebook;
-the polished floor is beneath us and the rococo
-roof above; the great names are ranged about, and
-the eye is aware of the near window, in its deep recess,
-that overhangs old gardens or a celebrated square.</p>
-
-<div><span class='pagenum'><a name='Page_436' id='Page_436'>436</a></span><h1 id='t14920'>LONDON NOTES<br/><span class='it'>July</span> 1897</h1></div>
-
-<p>I continued last month to seek private diversion,
-which I found to be more and more required as the
-machinery of public began to work. Never was a
-better chance apparently for the great anodyne of art.
-It was a supreme opportunity to test the spell of the
-magician, for one felt one was saved if a fictive world
-would open. I knocked in this way at a dozen doors,
-I read a succession of novels; with the effect perhaps
-of feeling more than ever before my individual liability
-in our great general debt to the novelists. The
-great thing to say for them is surely that at any given
-moment they offer us another world, another consciousness,
-an experience that, as effective as the dentist’s
-ether, muffles the ache of the actual and, by helping
-us to an interval, tides us over and makes us face,
-in the return to the inevitable, a combination that
-may at least have changed. What we get of course,
-in proportion as the picture lives, is simply another
-actual—the actual of other people; and I no more
-than any one else pretend to say <span class='it'>why</span> that should
-be a relief, a relief as great, I mean, as it practically
-proves. We meet in this question, I think, the eternal
-mystery—the mystery that sends us back simply to
-the queer constitution of man and that is not in the
-least lighted by the plea of “romance,” the argument
-that relief depends wholly upon the quantity, as it
-were, of fable. It depends, to my sense, on the quantity
-of nothing but art—in which the material, fable
-or fact or whatever it be, falls so into solution, is so
-reduced and transmuted, that I absolutely am acquainted
-with no receipt whatever for computing its
-proportion and amount.</p>
-
-<p>The only amount I can compute is the force of the
-author, for that is directly registered in my attention,
-my submission. A hundred things naturally go to
-make it up; but he knows so much better than I
-what they are that I should blush to give him a glimpse
-of my inferior account of them. The anodyne is not
-the particular picture, it is our own act of surrender,
-and therefore most, for each reader, what he most
-surrenders to. This latter element would seem in
-turn to vary from case to case, were it not indeed
-that there are readers prepared, I believe, to limit their
-surrender in advance. With some, we gather, it declines
-for instance to operate save on an exhibition of
-“high life.” In others again it is proof against any
-solicitation but that of low. In many it vibrates only
-to “adventure”; in many only to Charlotte Brontë;
-in various groups, according to affinity, only to Jane
-Austen, to old Dumas, to Miss Corelli, to Dostoievsky
-or whomever it may be. The readers easiest to
-conceive, however, are probably those for whom, in
-the whole impression, the note of sincerity in the artist
-is what most matters, what most reaches and touches.
-That, obviously, is the relation that gives the widest
-range to the anodyne.</p>
-
-<p>I am afraid that, profiting by my license, I drag
-forward Mr. George Gissing from an antiquity of several
-weeks. I blow the dust of oblivion from M.
-Pierre Loti and indeed from all the company—they
-have been published for days and days. I foresee,
-however, that I must neglect the company for the
-sake of the two members I have named, writers—I
-speak for myself—always in order, though not, I admit,
-on quite the same line. Mr. Gissing would have been
-particularly in order had he only kept for the present
-period the work preceding his latest; all the more
-that “In the Year of Jubilee” has to my perception
-some points of superiority to “The Whirlpool.” For
-this author in general, at any rate, I profess, and have
-professed ever since reading “The New Grub Street,”
-a persistent taste—a taste that triumphs even over
-the fact that he almost as persistently disappoints me.
-I fail as yet to make out why exactly it is that going
-so far he so sturdily refuses to go further. The whole
-business of distribution and composition he strikes me
-as having cast to the winds; but just this fact of a
-question about him is a part of the wonder—I use
-the word in the sense of enjoyment—that he excites.
-It is not every day in the year that we meet a novelist
-about whom there is a question. The circumstance
-alone is almost sufficient to beguile or to enthrall; and
-I seem to myself to have said almost everything in
-speaking of something that Mr. Gissing “goes far”
-enough to do. To go far enough to do anything is,
-in the conditions we live in, a lively achievement.</p>
-
-<p>“The Whirlpool,” I crudely confess, was in a manner
-a grief to me, but the book has much substance,
-and there is no light privilege in an emotion so sustained.
-This emotion perhaps it is that most makes
-me, to the end, stick to Mr. Gissing—makes me with
-an almost nervous clutch quite cling to him. I shall
-not know how to deal with him, however, if I withhold
-the last outrage of calling him an interesting case.
-He seems to me above all a case of saturation, and it
-is mainly his saturation that makes him interesting—I
-mean especially in the sense of making him singular.
-The interest would be greater were his art more complete;
-but we must take what we can get, and Mr.
-Gissing has a way of his own. The great thing is that
-his saturation is with elements that, presented to us
-in contemporary English fiction, affect us as a product
-of extraordinary oddity and rarity: he reeks with
-the savour, he is bowed beneath the fruits, of contact
-with the lower, with the lowest middle-class, and that
-is sufficient to make him an authority—<span class='it'>the</span> authority
-in fact—on a region vast and unexplored.</p>
-
-<p>The English novel has as a general thing kept so
-desperately, so nervously clear of it, whisking back
-compromised skirts and bumping frantically against
-obstacles to retreat, that we welcome as the boldest
-of adventurers a painter who has faced it and survived.
-We have had low life in plenty, for, with its
-sores and vices, its crimes and penalties, misery has
-colour enough to open the door to any quantity of
-artistic patronage. We have shuddered in the dens
-of thieves and the cells of murderers, and have dropped
-the inevitable tear over tortured childhood and purified
-sin. We have popped in at the damp cottage with
-my lady and heard the quaint rustic, bless his simple
-heart, commit himself for our amusement. We have
-fraternised on the other hand with the peerage and
-the county families, staying at fine old houses till
-exhausted nature has, for this source of intoxication,
-not a wink of sociability left. It has grown, the source
-in question, as stale as the sweet biscuit with pink enhancements
-in that familiar jar of the refreshment
-counter from which even the attendant young lady in
-black, with admirers and a social position, hesitates
-to extract it. We have recognised the humble, the
-wretched, even the wicked; also we have recognised
-the “smart.” But save under the immense pressure
-of Dickens we have never done anything so dreadful
-as to recognise the vulgar. We have at the very most
-recognised it as the extravagant, the grotesque. The
-case of Dickens was absolutely special; he dealt intensely
-with “lower middle,” with “lowest” middle,
-elements, but he escaped the predicament of showing
-them as vulgar by showing them only as prodigiously
-droll. When his people are not funny who shall dare
-to say what they are? The critic may draw breath
-as from a responsibility averted when he reflects that
-they almost always <span class='it'>are</span> funny. They belong to a walk
-of life that we may be ridiculous but never at all
-serious about. We may be tragic, but that is often but
-a form of humour. I seem to hear Mr. Gissing say:
-“Well, dreariness for dreariness, let us try Brondesbury
-and Pinner; especially as in the first place I
-know them so well; as in the second they are the
-essence of England; and as in the third they are, artistically
-speaking, virgin soil. Behold them glitter
-in the morning dew.”</p>
-
-<p>So he <span class='it'>is</span> serious—almost imperturbably—about them,
-and, as it turns out, even quite manfully and admirably
-sad. He has the great thing: his saturation
-(with the visible and audible common) can project
-itself, let him get outside of it and walk round it. I
-scarcely think he stays, as it were, outside quite as
-much as he might; and on the question of form he
-certainly strikes me as staying far too little. It is
-form above all that is talent, and if Mr. Gissing’s
-were proportionate to his knowledge, to what may be
-called his possession, we should have a larger force to
-reckon with. That—not to speak of the lack of intensity
-in his imagination—is the direction in which
-one would wish him to go further. Our Anglo-Saxon
-tradition of these matters remains surely in some respects
-the strangest. After the perusal of such a book
-as “The Whirlpool” I feel as if I had almost to explain
-that by “these matters” I mean the whole question
-of composition, of foreshortening, of the proportion
-and relation of parts. Mr. Gissing, to wind up
-my reserves, overdoes the ostensible report of spoken
-words; though I hasten to add that this abuse is so
-general a sign, in these days, of the English and the
-American novel as to deprive a challenge of every
-hope of credit. It is attended visibly—that is visibly
-to those who can see—with two or three woeful results.
-If it had none other it would still deserve arraignment
-on the simple ground of what it crowds out—the
-golden blocks themselves of the structure, the whole
-divine exercise and mystery of the exquisite art of
-presentation.</p>
-
-<p>The ugliest trick it plays at any rate is its effect
-on that side of the novelist’s effort—the side of most
-difficulty and thereby of most dignity—which consists
-in giving the sense of duration, of the lapse and
-accumulation of time. This is altogether to my view
-the stiffest problem that the artist in fiction has to
-tackle, and nothing is more striking at present than
-the blankness, for the most part, of his indifference to
-it. The mere multiplication of quoted remarks is the
-last thing to strengthen his hand. Such an expedient
-works exactly to the opposite end, absolutely
-minimising, in regard to time, our impression of lapse
-and passage. That is so much the case that I can
-think of no novel in which it prevails as giving at all
-the sense of the gradual and the retarded—the stretch
-of the years in which developments really take place.
-The picture is nothing unless it be a picture of the
-conditions, and the conditions are usually hereby quite
-omitted. Thanks to this perversity everything dealt
-with in fiction appears at present to occur simply on
-the occasion of a few conversations about it; there
-is no other constitution of it. A few hours, a few
-days seem to account for it. The process, the “dark
-backward and abysm,” is really so little reproduced.
-We feel tempted to send many an author, to learn
-the rudiments of this secret, back to his Balzac again,
-the most accomplished master of it. He will learn
-also from Balzac while he is about it that nothing
-furthermore, as intrinsic effect, so much discounts itself
-as this abuse of the element of colloquy.</p>
-
-<p>“Dialogue,” as it is commonly called, is singularly
-suicidal from the moment it is not directly illustrative
-of something given us by another method, something
-constituted and presented. It is impossible to read
-work even as interesting as Mr. Gissing’s without recognising
-the impossibility of making people both talk
-“all the time” and talk with the needful differences.
-The thing, so far as we have got, is simply too hard.
-There is always at the best the author’s voice to be
-kept out. It can be kept out for occasions, it can not
-be kept out always. The solution therefore is to leave
-it its function, for it has the supreme one. This function,
-properly exercised, averts the disaster of the
-blight of the colloquy really in place—illustrative and
-indispensable. Nothing is more inevitable than such
-a blight when antecedently the general effect of the
-process has been undermined. We then want the report
-of the spoken word—want that only. But, proportionately,
-it doesn’t come, doesn’t count. It has
-been fatally cheapened. There is no effect, no relief.</p>
-
-<p>I am writing a treatise when I meant only to give
-a glance; and it may be asked if the best thing I find
-in Mr. Gissing is after all then but an opportunity to
-denounce. The answer to that is that I find two other
-things—or should find them rather had I not deprived
-myself as usual of proper space. One of these is the
-pretext for speaking, by absolute rebound, as it were,
-and in the interest of vivid contrast, of Pierre Loti;
-the other is a better occasion still, an occasion for the
-liveliest sympathy. It is impossible not to be affected
-by the frankness and straightness of Mr. Gissing’s
-feeling for his subject, a subject almost always distinctly
-remunerative to the ironic and even to the
-dramatic mind. He has the strongest deepest sense
-of common humanity, of the general struggle and the
-general grey grim comedy. He loves the real, he renders
-it, and though he has a tendency to drift too much
-with his tide, he gives us, in the great welter of the
-savourless, an individual manly strain. If he only had
-distinction he would make the suburbs “hum.” I
-don’t mean of course by his circulation there—the effect
-Ibsen is supposed to have on them; I mean objectively
-and as a rounded whole, as a great theme
-treated.</p>
-
-<p>I am ashamed of having postponed “Ramuntcho,”
-for “Ramuntcho” is a direct recall of the beauty of
-“Pêcheur d’Islande” and “Mon Frère Yves”—in
-other words a literary impression of the most exquisite
-order. Perhaps indeed it is as well that a critic
-<span class='it'>should</span> postpone—and quite indefinitely—an author as
-to whom he is ready to confess that his critical instinct
-is quite suspended. Oh the blessing of a book,
-the luxury of a talent, that one is only anxious not to
-reason about, only anxious to turn over in the mind
-and to taste! It is a poor business perhaps, but I
-have nothing more responsible to say of Loti than that
-I adore him. I love him when he is bad—and heaven
-knows he has occasionally been so—more than I love
-other writers when they are good. If therefore he is
-on the whole quite at his best in “Ramuntcho” I fear
-my appreciation is an undertaking too merely active
-for indirect expression. I can give it no more coherent
-form than to say that he makes the act of partaking
-one of the joys that, as things mainly go, a reader
-must be pretty well provided to be able not to jump
-at. And yet there are readers, apparently, who <span class='it'>are</span>
-so provided. There are readers who don’t jump and
-are cocksure they can do without it. My sense of the
-situation is that they are wrong—that with famine
-stalking so abroad literally no one can. I defy it not
-to tell somewhere—become a gap one can immediately
-“spot.”</p>
-
-<p>It is well to content one’s self, at all events, with
-affection; so stiff a job, in such a case, is understanding
-or, still more, explanation. There is a kind of
-finality in Loti’s simplicity—if it even <span class='it'>be</span> simplicity.
-He performs in an air in which, on the part of the
-spectator, analysis withers and only submission lives.
-Has it anything to do with literature? Has it anything
-to do with nature? It must be, we should suppose,
-the last refinement either of one or of the other.
-Is it all emotion, is it all calculation, is it all truth, is
-it all humbug? All we can say as readers is that it
-is for ourselves all experience, and of the most personal
-intensity. The great question is whether it be
-emotion “neat” or emotion rendered and reduced. If
-it be resolved into art why hasn’t it more of the chill?
-If it be sensibility pure why isn’t it cruder and clumsier?
-What is exquisite is the contact of sensibility
-made somehow so convenient—with only the beauty
-preserved. It is not too much to say of Loti that
-his sensibility begins where that of most of those who
-<span class='it'>use</span> the article ends. If moreover in effect he represents
-the triumph of instinct, when was instinct ever
-so sustained and so unerring? It keeps him unfailingly,
-in the matter of “dialogue,” out of the overflow
-and the waste. It is a joy to see how his looseness
-is pervaded after all by proportion.</p>
-
-<div><span class='pagenum'><a name='Page_446' id='Page_446'>446</a></span><h1 id='t15248'>LONDON NOTES<br/><span class='it'>August</span> 1897</h1></div>
-
-<p>I shrink at this day from any air of relapsing into
-reference to those Victorian saturnalia of which the
-force may now be taken as pretty well spent; and if
-I remount the stream for an instant it is but with the
-innocent intention of plucking the one little flower of
-literature that, while the current roared, happened—so
-far at least as I could observe—to sprout by the
-bank. If it was sole of its kind moreover it was, I
-hasten to add, a mere accident of the Jubilee and as
-little a prominent as a preconcerted feature. What it
-comes to therefore is that if I gathered at the supreme
-moment a literary impression, the literary impression
-had yet nothing to do with the affair; nothing, that
-is, beyond the casual connection given by a somewhat
-acrid aftertaste, the vision of the London of the
-morrow as I met this experience in a woeful squeeze
-through town the day after the fair. It was the singular
-fate of M. Paul Bourget, invited to lecture at
-Oxford under university patronage and with Gustave
-Flaubert for his subject, to have found his appearance
-arranged for June 23. I express this untowardness
-but feebly, I know, for those at a distance from
-the edge of the whirlpool, the vast concentric eddies
-that sucked down all other life.</p>
-
-<p>I found, on the morrow in question—the great day
-had been the 22nd—the main suggestion of a journey
-from the south of England up to Waterloo and across
-from Waterloo to Paddington to be that of one of
-those deep gasps or wild staggers, losses of wind and
-of balance, that follow some tremendous effort or some
-violent concussion. The weather was splendid and
-torrid and London a huge dusty cabless confusion of
-timber already tottering, of decorations already stale,
-of <span class='it'>badauds</span> already bored. The banquet-hall was by
-no means deserted, but it was choked with mere echoes
-and candle-ends; one had heard often enough of a
-“great national awakening,” and this was the greatest
-it would have been possible to imagine. Millions
-of eyes, opening to dust and glare from the scenery
-of dreams, seemed slowly to stare and to try to recollect.
-Certainly at that distance the omens were poor
-for such concentration as a French critic might have
-been moved to count upon, and even on reaching Oxford
-I was met by the sense that the spirit of that
-seat of learning, though accustomed to intellectual
-strain, had before the afternoon but little of a margin
-for pulling itself together. Let me say at once that
-it made the most of the scant interval and that when
-five o’clock came the bare scholastic room at the Taylorian
-offered M. Bourget’s reputation and topic, in
-the hot dead Oxford air, an attention as deep and as
-many-headed as the combination could ever have
-hoped to command.</p>
-
-<p>For one auditor of whom I can speak, at all events,
-the occasion had an intensity of interest transcending
-even that of Flaubert’s strange personal story—which
-was part of M. Bourget’s theme—and of the new and
-deep meanings that the lecturer read into it. Just the
-fact of the occasion itself struck me as having well-nigh
-most to say, and at any rate fed most the all but
-bottomless sense that constitutes to-day my chief receptacle
-of impressions; a sense which at the same time
-I fear I cannot better describe than as that of the
-way we are markedly going. No undue eagerness to
-determine whether this be well or ill attaches to the
-particular consciousness I speak of, and I can only
-give it frankly for what, on the whole, it most, for
-beguilement, for amusement, for the sweet thrill of
-perception, represents and achieves—the quickened
-notation of our “modernity.” I feel that I can pay
-this last-named lively influence no greater tribute than
-by candidly accepting as an aid to expression its convenient
-name. To do that doubtless is to accept with
-the name a host of other things. From the moment,
-at any rate, the quickening I speak of sets in it is wonderful
-how many of these other things play, by every
-circumstance, into the picture.</p>
-
-<p>That the day should have come for M. Bourget to
-lecture at Oxford, and should have come by the same
-stroke for Gustave Flaubert to be lectured about, filled
-the mind to a degree, and left it in an agitation of
-violence, which almost excluded the question of what
-in especial one of these spirits was to give and the
-other to gain. It was enough of an emotion, for the
-occasion, to live in the circumstance that the author
-of “Madame Bovary” could receive in England a
-public baptism of such peculiar solemnity. With the
-vision of that, one could bring in all the light and
-colour of all the rest of the picture and absolutely see,
-for the instant, something momentous in the very act
-of happening, something certainly that might easily
-become momentous with a little interpretation. Such
-are the happy chances of the critical spirit, always
-yearning to interpret, but not always in presence of
-the right mystery.</p>
-
-<p>There was a degree of poetic justice, or at least of
-poetic generosity, in the introduction of Flaubert to a
-scene, to conditions of credit and honour, so little to
-have been by himself ever apprehended or estimated:
-it was impossible not to feel that no setting or stage
-for the crowning of his bust could less have appeared
-familiar to him, and that he wouldn’t have failed to
-wonder into what strangely alien air his glory had
-strayed. So it is that, as I say, the whole affair was
-a little miracle of our breathless pace, and no corner
-from which another member of the craft could watch
-it was so quiet as to attenuate the small magnificence
-of the hour. No novelist, in a word, worth his salt
-could fail of a consciousness, under the impression, of
-his becoming rather more of a novelist than before.
-Was it not, on the whole, just the essence of the matter
-that had for the moment there its official recognition?
-were not the blest mystery and art ushered forward
-in a more expectant and consecrating hush than
-had ever yet been known to wait upon them?</p>
-
-<p>One may perhaps take these things too hard and
-read into them foolish fancies; but the hush in question
-was filled to my imagination—quite apart from
-the listening faces, of which there would be special
-things to say that I wouldn’t for the world risk—with
-the great picture of all the old grey quads and old
-green gardens, of all the so totally different traditions
-and processions that were content at last, if only for
-the drowsy end of a summer afternoon, to range themselves
-round and play at hospitality. What it appeared
-possible to make out was a certain faint convergence:
-that was the idea of which, during the whole
-process, I felt the agreeable obsession. From the moment
-it brushed the mind certainly the impulse was
-to clutch and detain it: too doleful would it have
-been to entertain for an instant the fear that M. Bourget’s
-lecture could leave the two elements of his case
-facing each other only at the same distance at which
-it had found them. No, no; there was nothing for it
-but to assume and insist that with each tick of the
-clock they moved a little nearer together. That was
-the process, as I have called it, and none the less interesting
-to the observer that it may not have been,
-and may not yet be, rapid, full, complete, quite easy
-or clear or successful. It was the seed of contact that
-assuredly was sown; it was the friendly beginning
-that in a manner was made. The situation was handled
-and modified—the day was a date. I shall perhaps
-remain obscure unless I say more expressly and
-literally that the particular thing into which, for the
-perfect outsider, the occasion most worked was a lively
-interest—so far as an outsider could feel it—in the
-whole odd phenomenon and spectacle of a certain usual
-positive <span class='it'>want</span> of convergence, want of communication
-between what the seat and habit of the classics, the
-famous frequentation and discipline, do for their victims
-in one direction and what they do not do for
-them in another. Was the invitation to M. Bourget
-not a dim symptom of a bridging of this queerest of
-all chasms? I can only so denominate—as a most
-anomalous gap—the class of possibilities to which we
-owe its so often coming over us in England that the
-light kindled by the immense academic privilege is apt
-suddenly to turn to thick smoke in the air of contemporary
-letters.</p>
-
-<p>There are movements of the classic torch round
-modern objects—strange drips and drops and wondrous
-waverings—that have the effect of putting it
-straight out. The range of reference that I allude to
-and that is most the fashion draws its credit from
-being an education of the taste, and it doubtless makes
-on the prescribed lines and in the close company of
-the ancients tremendous tests and triumphs for that
-principle. Nothing, however, is so singular as to see
-what again and again becomes of it in the presence of
-examples for which prescription and association are
-of no avail. I am speaking here of course not of unexpected
-reserves, but of unexpected raptures, bewildering
-revelations of a failure of the sense of perspective.
-This leads at times to queer conjunctions, strange
-collocations in which Euripides gives an arm to Sarah
-Grand and Octave Feuillet harks back to Virgil. It
-is the breath of a madness in which one gropes for a
-method—probes in vain the hiatus and sighs for the
-missing link. I am far from meaning to say that all
-this will find itself amended by the discreet dose administered
-the other day at the Taylorian of even so
-great an antidote as Flaubert; but I come back to my
-theory that there is after all hope for a world still so
-accessible to salutary shocks. That was apparent indeed
-some years ago. Was it not at the Taylorian
-that Taine and Renan successively lectured? Oxford,
-wherever it was, heard them even then to the end.
-It is for the Taines, Renans and Bourgets very much
-the salting of the tail of the bird: there must be more
-than one try.</p>
-
-<p>It is possible to have glanced at some of the odd
-estimates that the conversation of the cultivated throws
-to the surface and yet to say quite without reserve
-that the world of books has suffered no small shrinkage
-by the recent death of Mrs. Oliphant. She had
-long lived and worked in it, and from no individual
-perhaps had the great contemporary flood received a
-more copious tribute. I know not if some study of
-her remarkable life, and still more of her remarkable
-character, be in preparation, but she was a figure that
-would on many sides still lend itself to vivid portraiture.
-Her success had been in its day as great as her
-activity, yet it was always present to me that her
-singular gift was less recognised, or at any rate less
-reflected, less reported upon, than it deserved: unless
-indeed she may have been one of those difficult cases
-for criticism, an energy of which the spirit and the
-form, straggling apart, never join hands with that effect
-of union which in literature more than anywhere
-else is strength.</p>
-
-<p>Criticism, among us all, has come to the pass of
-being shy of difficult cases, and no one, for that matter,
-practised it more in the hit-or-miss fashion and
-on happy-go-lucky lines than Mrs. Oliphant herself.
-She practised it, as she practised everything, on such
-an inordinate scale that her biographer, if there is to
-be one, will have no small task in the mere drafting
-of lists of her contributions to magazines and journals
-in general and to “Blackwood” in particular. She
-wrought in “Blackwood” for years, anonymously and
-profusely; no writer of the day found a <span class='it'>porte-voix</span>
-nearer to hand or used it with an easier personal latitude
-and comfort. I should almost suppose in fact
-that no woman had ever, for half a century, had her
-personal “say” so publicly and irresponsibly. Her facilities
-of course were of her own making, but the
-wonder was that once made they could be so applied.</p>
-
-<p>The explanation of her extraordinary fecundity was
-a rare original equipment, an imperturbability of courage,
-health and brain, to which was added the fortune
-or the merit of her having had to tune her instrument
-at the earliest age. That instrument was essentially
-a Scotch one; her stream flowed long and full without
-losing its primary colour. To say that she was organised
-highly for literature would be to make too light
-of too many hazards and conditions; but few writers
-of our time have been so organised for liberal, for—one
-may almost put it—heroic production. One of the
-interesting things in big persons is that they leave us
-plenty of questions, if only about themselves; and
-precisely one of those that Mrs. Oliphant suggests is
-the wonder and mystery of a love of letters that could
-be so great without ever, on a single occasion even,
-being greater. It was of course not a matter of mere
-love; it was a part of her volume and abundance that
-she understood life itself in a fine freehanded manner
-and, I imagine, seldom refused to risk a push at a subject,
-however it might have given pause, that would
-help to turn her wide wheel. She worked largely from
-obligation—to meet the necessities and charges and
-pleasures and sorrows of which she had a plentiful
-share. She showed in it all a sort of sedentary dash—an
-acceptance of the day’s task and an abstention
-from the plaintive note from which I confess I could
-never withhold my admiration.</p>
-
-<p>Her capacity for labour was infinite—for labour of
-the only sort that, with the fine strain of old Scotch
-pride and belated letterless toryism that was in her,
-she regarded as respectable. She had small patience
-with new-fangled attitudes or with a finical conscience.
-What was good enough for Sir Walter was good enough
-for her, and I make no doubt that her shrewd unfiltered
-easy flow, fed after all by an immensity of reading
-as well as of observation and humour, would have
-been good enough for Sir Walter. If this had been
-the case with her abounding history, biography and
-criticism, it would have been still more the case with
-her uncontrolled flood of fiction. She was really a
-great <span class='it'>improvisatrice</span>, a night-working spinner of long,
-loose, vivid yarns, numberless, pauseless, admirable,
-repeatedly, for their full, pleasant, reckless rustle over
-depths and difficulties—admirable indeed, in any case
-of Scotch elements, for many a close engagement with
-these. She showed in no literary relation more acuteness
-than in the relation—so profitable a one as it has
-always been—to the inexhaustible little country which
-has given so much, yet has ever so much more to give,
-and all the romance and reality of which she had at
-the end of her pen. Her Scotch folk have a wealth of
-life, and I think no Scotch talk in fiction less of a
-strain to the patience of the profane. It may be less
-austerely veracious than some—but these are esoteric
-matters.</p>
-
-<p>Reading since her death “Kirsteen”—one of the
-hundred, but published in her latest period and much
-admired by some judges—I was, though beguiled, not
-too much beguiled to be struck afresh with that elusive
-fact on which I just touched, the mixture in the
-whole thing. Such a product as “Kirsteen” has life—is
-full of life, but the critic is infinitely baffled. It
-may of course be said to him that he has nothing to
-do with compositions of this order—with such wares
-altogether as Mrs. Oliphant dealt in. But he can accept
-that retort only with a renunciation of some of
-his liveliest anxieties. Let him take some early day
-for getting behind, as it were, the complexion of a
-talent that could care to handle a thing to the tune
-of so many pages and yet not care more to “do” it.
-There is a fascination in the mere spectacle of so serene
-an instinct for the middle way, so visible a conviction
-that to reflect is to be lost.</p>
-
-<p>Mrs. Oliphant was never lost, but she too often
-saved herself at the expense of her subject. I have
-no space to insist, but so much of the essence of the
-situation in “Kirsteen” strikes me as missed, dropped
-out without a thought, that the wonder is all the
-greater of the fact that in spite of it the book does in
-a manner scramble over its course and throw up a
-fresh strong air. This was certainly the most that
-the author would have pretended, and from her scorn
-of precautions springs a gleam of impertinence quite
-in place in her sharp and handsome physiognomy,
-that of a person whose eggs are not all in one basket,
-nor all her imagination in service at once. There is
-scant enough question of “art” in the matter, but
-there is a friendly way for us to feel about so much
-cleverness, courage and humanity. We meet the case
-in wishing that the timid talents were a little more
-like her and the bold ones a little less.</p>
-
-<p class='line' style='text-align:center;margin-top:3em;'>THE END</p>
-
-<hr class='pbk'/>
-
-<h1 id='t15589'>TRANSCRIBER NOTES</h1>
-
-<div class='lgl' style=''> <!-- rend=';' -->
-<p class='line'>Mis-spelled words and printer errors have been fixed.</p>
-<p class='line'>Inconsistency in hyphenation has been retained.</p>
-</div> <!-- end rend -->
-
-
-
-
-
-
-
-
-
-<pre>
-
-
-
-
-
-End of the Project Gutenberg EBook of Notes on Novelists, by Henry James
-
-*** END OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK NOTES ON NOVELISTS ***
-
-***** This file should be named 60040-h.htm or 60040-h.zip *****
-This and all associated files of various formats will be found in:
- http://www.gutenberg.org/6/0/0/4/60040/
-
-Produced by David T. Jones, Alex White & the online
-Distributed Proofreaders Canada team at
-http://www.pgdpcanada.net
-
-Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions will
-be renamed.
-
-Creating the works from print editions not protected by U.S. copyright
-law means that no one owns a United States copyright in these works,
-so the Foundation (and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United
-States without permission and without paying copyright
-royalties. Special rules, set forth in the General Terms of Use part
-of this license, apply to copying and distributing Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works to protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm
-concept and trademark. Project Gutenberg is a registered trademark,
-and may not be used if you charge for the eBooks, unless you receive
-specific permission. If you do not charge anything for copies of this
-eBook, complying with the rules is very easy. You may use this eBook
-for nearly any purpose such as creation of derivative works, reports,
-performances and research. They may be modified and printed and given
-away--you may do practically ANYTHING in the United States with eBooks
-not protected by U.S. copyright law. Redistribution is subject to the
-trademark license, especially commercial redistribution.
-
-START: FULL LICENSE
-
-THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE
-PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK
-
-To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free
-distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
-(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg"), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full
-Project Gutenberg-tm License available with this file or online at
-www.gutenberg.org/license.
-
-Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-
-1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
-and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
-(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
-the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or
-destroy all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your
-possession. If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a
-Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound
-by the terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the
-person or entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph
-1.E.8.
-
-1.B. "Project Gutenberg" is a registered trademark. It may only be
-used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
-agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
-things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
-paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the terms of this
-agreement and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works. See paragraph 1.E below.
-
-1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation ("the
-Foundation" or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection
-of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual
-works in the collection are in the public domain in the United
-States. If an individual work is unprotected by copyright law in the
-United States and you are located in the United States, we do not
-claim a right to prevent you from copying, distributing, performing,
-displaying or creating derivative works based on the work as long as
-all references to Project Gutenberg are removed. Of course, we hope
-that you will support the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting
-free access to electronic works by freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm
-works in compliance with the terms of this agreement for keeping the
-Project Gutenberg-tm name associated with the work. You can easily
-comply with the terms of this agreement by keeping this work in the
-same format with its attached full Project Gutenberg-tm License when
-you share it without charge with others.
-
-1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
-what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are
-in a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States,
-check the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this
-agreement before downloading, copying, displaying, performing,
-distributing or creating derivative works based on this work or any
-other Project Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no
-representations concerning the copyright status of any work in any
-country outside the United States.
-
-1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
-
-1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other
-immediate access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear
-prominently whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work
-on which the phrase "Project Gutenberg" appears, or with which the
-phrase "Project Gutenberg" is associated) is accessed, displayed,
-performed, viewed, copied or distributed:
-
- This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and
- most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no
- restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it
- under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included with this
- eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the
- United States, you'll have to check the laws of the country where you
- are located before using this ebook.
-
-1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is
-derived from texts not protected by U.S. copyright law (does not
-contain a notice indicating that it is posted with permission of the
-copyright holder), the work can be copied and distributed to anyone in
-the United States without paying any fees or charges. If you are
-redistributing or providing access to a work with the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg" associated with or appearing on the work, you must comply
-either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 or
-obtain permission for the use of the work and the Project Gutenberg-tm
-trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted
-with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
-must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any
-additional terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms
-will be linked to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works
-posted with the permission of the copyright holder found at the
-beginning of this work.
-
-1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm
-License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
-work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm.
-
-1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
-electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
-prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
-active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm License.
-
-1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
-compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including
-any word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access
-to or distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format
-other than "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other format used in the official
-version posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm web site
-(www.gutenberg.org), you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense
-to the user, provide a copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means
-of obtaining a copy upon request, of the work in its original "Plain
-Vanilla ASCII" or other form. Any alternate format must include the
-full Project Gutenberg-tm License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
-
-1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
-performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works
-unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
-access to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-provided that
-
-* You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
- the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method
- you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is owed
- to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he has
- agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments must be paid
- within 60 days following each date on which you prepare (or are
- legally required to prepare) your periodic tax returns. Royalty
- payments should be clearly marked as such and sent to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the address specified in
- Section 4, "Information about donations to the Project Gutenberg
- Literary Archive Foundation."
-
-* You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
- you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
- does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm
- License. You must require such a user to return or destroy all
- copies of the works possessed in a physical medium and discontinue
- all use of and all access to other copies of Project Gutenberg-tm
- works.
-
-* You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of
- any money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
- electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days of
- receipt of the work.
-
-* You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
- distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works.
-
-1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work or group of works on different terms than
-are set forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing
-from both the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and The
-Project Gutenberg Trademark LLC, the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm
-trademark. Contact the Foundation as set forth in Section 3 below.
-
-1.F.
-
-1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
-effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
-works not protected by U.S. copyright law in creating the Project
-Gutenberg-tm collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may
-contain "Defects," such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate
-or corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other
-intellectual property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or
-other medium, a computer virus, or computer codes that damage or
-cannot be read by your equipment.
-
-1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the "Right
-of Replacement or Refund" described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
-liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
-fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
-LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
-PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
-TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
-LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
-INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
-DAMAGE.
-
-1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
-defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
-receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
-written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
-received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium
-with your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you
-with the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in
-lieu of a refund. If you received the work electronically, the person
-or entity providing it to you may choose to give you a second
-opportunity to receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If
-the second copy is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing
-without further opportunities to fix the problem.
-
-1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
-in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS', WITH NO
-OTHER WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT
-LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
-
-1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
-warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of
-damages. If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement
-violates the law of the state applicable to this agreement, the
-agreement shall be interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or
-limitation permitted by the applicable state law. The invalidity or
-unenforceability of any provision of this agreement shall not void the
-remaining provisions.
-
-1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
-trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
-providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in
-accordance with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the
-production, promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works, harmless from all liability, costs and expenses,
-including legal fees, that arise directly or indirectly from any of
-the following which you do or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this
-or any Project Gutenberg-tm work, (b) alteration, modification, or
-additions or deletions to any Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any
-Defect you cause.
-
-Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of
-electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of
-computers including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It
-exists because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations
-from people in all walks of life.
-
-Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
-assistance they need are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm's
-goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will
-remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
-and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future
-generations. To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation and how your efforts and donations can help, see
-Sections 3 and 4 and the Foundation information page at
-www.gutenberg.org
-
-
-
-Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation
-
-The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non profit
-501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
-state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
-Revenue Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification
-number is 64-6221541. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent permitted by
-U.S. federal laws and your state's laws.
-
-The Foundation's principal office is in Fairbanks, Alaska, with the
-mailing address: PO Box 750175, Fairbanks, AK 99775, but its
-volunteers and employees are scattered throughout numerous
-locations. Its business office is located at 809 North 1500 West, Salt
-Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887. Email contact links and up to
-date contact information can be found at the Foundation's web site and
-official page at www.gutenberg.org/contact
-
-For additional contact information:
-
- Dr. Gregory B. Newby
- Chief Executive and Director
- gbnewby@pglaf.org
-
-Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg
-Literary Archive Foundation
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without wide
-spread public support and donations to carry out its mission of
-increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
-freely distributed in machine readable form accessible by the widest
-array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
-($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
-status with the IRS.
-
-The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
-charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
-States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
-considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
-with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
-where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To SEND
-DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any particular
-state visit www.gutenberg.org/donate
-
-While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
-have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
-against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
-approach us with offers to donate.
-
-International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
-any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
-outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
-
-Please check the Project Gutenberg Web pages for current donation
-methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
-ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations. To
-donate, please visit: www.gutenberg.org/donate
-
-Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works.
-
-Professor Michael S. Hart was the originator of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm concept of a library of electronic works that could be
-freely shared with anyone. For forty years, he produced and
-distributed Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of
-volunteer support.
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed
-editions, all of which are confirmed as not protected by copyright in
-the U.S. unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not
-necessarily keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper
-edition.
-
-Most people start at our Web site which has the main PG search
-facility: www.gutenberg.org
-
-This Web site includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm,
-including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
-subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.
-
-
-
-</pre>
-
- </body>
- <!-- created with fpgen.py 4.10 on 2014-05-11 14:40:52 GMT -->
-</html>
diff --git a/old/60040-h/images/cover.jpg b/old/60040-h/images/cover.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index a75454b..0000000
--- a/old/60040-h/images/cover.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ